Skip to main content

Full text of "The practical works of Richard Baxter: with a life of the author and a critical examination of his writings by William Orme"

See other formats


Google 


This  is  a  digital  copy  of  a  book  that  was  preserved  for  generations  on  library  shelves  before  it  was  carefully  scanned  by  Google  as  part  of  a  project 

to  make  the  world's  books  discoverable  online. 

It  has  survived  long  enough  for  the  copyright  to  expire  and  the  book  to  enter  the  public  domain.  A  public  domain  book  is  one  that  was  never  subject 

to  copyright  or  whose  legal  copyright  term  has  expired.  Whether  a  book  is  in  the  public  domain  may  vary  country  to  country.  Public  domain  books 

are  our  gateways  to  the  past,  representing  a  wealth  of  history,  culture  and  knowledge  that's  often  difficult  to  discover. 

Marks,  notations  and  other  maiginalia  present  in  the  original  volume  will  appear  in  this  file  -  a  reminder  of  this  book's  long  journey  from  the 

publisher  to  a  library  and  finally  to  you. 

Usage  guidelines 

Google  is  proud  to  partner  with  libraries  to  digitize  public  domain  materials  and  make  them  widely  accessible.  Public  domain  books  belong  to  the 
public  and  we  are  merely  their  custodians.  Nevertheless,  this  work  is  expensive,  so  in  order  to  keep  providing  tliis  resource,  we  liave  taken  steps  to 
prevent  abuse  by  commercial  parties,  including  placing  technical  restrictions  on  automated  querying. 
We  also  ask  that  you: 

+  Make  non-commercial  use  of  the  files  We  designed  Google  Book  Search  for  use  by  individuals,  and  we  request  that  you  use  these  files  for 
personal,  non-commercial  purposes. 

+  Refrain  fivm  automated  querying  Do  not  send  automated  queries  of  any  sort  to  Google's  system:  If  you  are  conducting  research  on  machine 
translation,  optical  character  recognition  or  other  areas  where  access  to  a  large  amount  of  text  is  helpful,  please  contact  us.  We  encourage  the 
use  of  public  domain  materials  for  these  purposes  and  may  be  able  to  help. 

+  Maintain  attributionTht  GoogXt  "watermark"  you  see  on  each  file  is  essential  for  in  forming  people  about  this  project  and  helping  them  find 
additional  materials  through  Google  Book  Search.  Please  do  not  remove  it. 

+  Keep  it  legal  Whatever  your  use,  remember  that  you  are  responsible  for  ensuring  that  what  you  are  doing  is  legal.  Do  not  assume  that  just 
because  we  believe  a  book  is  in  the  public  domain  for  users  in  the  United  States,  that  the  work  is  also  in  the  public  domain  for  users  in  other 
countries.  Whether  a  book  is  still  in  copyright  varies  from  country  to  country,  and  we  can't  offer  guidance  on  whether  any  specific  use  of 
any  specific  book  is  allowed.  Please  do  not  assume  that  a  book's  appearance  in  Google  Book  Search  means  it  can  be  used  in  any  manner 
anywhere  in  the  world.  Copyright  infringement  liabili^  can  be  quite  severe. 

About  Google  Book  Search 

Google's  mission  is  to  organize  the  world's  information  and  to  make  it  universally  accessible  and  useful.   Google  Book  Search  helps  readers 
discover  the  world's  books  while  helping  authors  and  publishers  reach  new  audiences.  You  can  search  through  the  full  text  of  this  book  on  the  web 

at|http: //books  .google  .com/I 


:a 


Mfcrf*     ■"■■    '■ 


•  L0 


TH£ 


PRACTICAL    WORKS 


OK 


THE  KEV.  RICHARD  BAXTER: 


WITH 


A  LIFE  OF  THE  AUTHOR, 

AND 

A  CRITICAL  EXAMINATION  OF  HIS   WRITINGS, 

BY   TUB 

.     REV.    WILLIAM    ORME, 

AUTHOR    OF  '*THE   LIFE   OF    JOHN    OWEN,  D.D.j"   "  BIBLIOTHECA  BIBLICa/'  ETC 


VOL.  VII. 
IN  TWENTY-THREE   VOLUMES. 


LONDON: 
JAMES    DUNCAN,    37,    PATERNOSTER    ROW. 


MDCCCXXX. 


LONDON: 

PRINTBD   BV    UILL8,   JOWBTT,    AND    MILLS, 
BOLT-COURT,    FLEET-STREET. 


THE 


PRACTICAL  WORKS 


OF   THE 


REV.  RICHARD  BAXTER. 


VOLUME  VII. 


CONTAINING 


A  TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION;  A  CALL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED; 

NOW  OR  NEVER. 


VOL.  VII. 


miCHARD  EDWARDS,  CRANK  COURT,  7LIST  STRSRT,  LONDON. 


CONTENTS 

OF 

THE  SEVENTH  VOLUME. 


TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION. 


CHAPTER  I. 

PAGB 

Preface •••••••'• , • iii 

Introduction     13 

The  Text  explained ••.•*....  1(^ 

How  Conversion,  Repentance,  Regeneration,  Vocation,  Sanc- 

tification,  agree  or  diflTer  . ; 18 

What  an  unconverted  state  is,  and  what  Conversion  is,  ac- 
tively and  passively  taken 2« 

The  first  part  of  Conversion  is  the  change  of  the  mind, 

1.  From  ignorance,  by  illumination ^ 34 

2.  From  inconsiderateness  to  sober  consideration 26 

3.  From  unbelief  to  true  believing 26 

4.  It  healeth  their  errors  about  Grod,  and  the  necessary  mat- 
ters of  salvation , 28 

The  second  part  of  Conversion  is  on  the  heart  or  will,  which 
hath, 

1 .  A  new  inclination  and  complacency •  32 

2.  New  intentions  or  ends 38 

3.  New  choice  of  means  j  1.  Principal,  Christ  and  his  Spirit  44 

2.  Subservient )  as, 

(I.)  Confession  of  sin,  Svith  godly  sbttow 51 

(2.)  Earnest  prayer  to  God* 56 

(3.)  The  woni  read  or  heard 69 

(4.)  The  communion  of  saints. 63 

4.  The  will  hath  new  resolutions 67 

5.  The  next  part  is  in  new  affections,  which  are, 

(1.)  A  new  love  and  hatred 71 

(2.)  New  desires  and  aversion 72 

(3.)  New  delight  aiid  sorrow  ....>, «. .  73 

(4.)  New  hope  and  despair 76 

(5.)  New  courage  and  fear 78 

(6.)  New  anger      •  • • 81 

(7.)  New  content  and  discontent 85 

Conversion  makes  men  to  become  as  children  :  in  humility, 

teachableness,  and  beginning  the  world  anew    87 

Conversion  changeth  the  life,  which, 

1 .  Beginneth  with  a  holy  covenant  with  God,  described  . .  98 

VOL.   VII.  b 


ir  CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

3.  Sin  is  actually  forsaken^  and  cast  away 104 

3.  Even  omissions  :  the  man  hath  another  work  to  do. . . .  109 

4.  A  new  tongue  foUoweth  a  new  heart Ill 

5.  And  new  company^ usually 114 

6.  Conversion  makes  men  compassionate  the  unconverted  115 


CHAPTER  11. 


That  none  but  the  Converted  can  be  saved^  is  proved^ 

1.  From  express  words  of  Scripture   120 

2.  By  Scripture  reasons : 

1.  From  Christ's  office 122 

2.  From  the  drift  of  the  Gospel * 125 

S.  From  the  work  of  the  ministry   126 

4.  From  God*s  providences 127 

5.  From  all  men's  duty 138 

Quest,  Are  "there  tiot  many  bom  of  godly  parents^  baptized^ 

,  and  well  educated^  and  that  need  no  Conversion  ?  Answered  129 

Beasonst  1.  From  God*s  absolute  dominion  and  will 131 

2.  From  man's  state^  and  God's  government • .  132 

3.  From  God's  nature 134 

4.  From  God's  ofier^  and  their  refusal  of  salvation 136 

5.  From  the  fiat  impossibility 139 


CHAPTER  III. 


Use  1.  There  is  a  heaven  to  be  obtained 141 

.2.  Of  examination :  whether  you  are  converted.    Reasons 

moving  hereto 143 

Things  to  be  inquired  after 151 

Signs  of  an  unconverted  person*  •  •  • 154 

3.  For  awakenings  and  humbling  the  unconverted  ••<•..  156 


CHAPTER  IV. 


THE  MISERY  OF  THE  UNCONVERTED. 

1.  They  are  no  children  of  God,  and  members  of  Christ. ...  161 

2.  They  have  no  hope  of  salvation  till  converted 164 

3.  No  sin  pardoned    •• \qj 

4.  They  are  satan's  slaves I70 

5.  They  please  not  God 174 

6.  Are  in  continual  danger  of  hell 181 

7.  No  cause  of  one  hour's  peace  and  true  comfort 182 

8.  Their  many  warnings  will  multiply  their  misery 184 

9.  The  further  they  go  the  worse 186 

10.  Lose  a  life  of  blessedness,  which  they  might  have 187 


CONTENTS.  V 
CHAPTER  V. 

THE  BENSriTS  OF  CONVERSION; 

PAGE 

1.  To  be  delivered  from  the  powet  of  satan 190 

2.  United  to  Christ 193 

3.  A  member  of  the  catholic  church   195 

4.  All  sin  pardoned -• ibid; 

5.  Reconciled  to  Grod    •'» *• 197 

6.  Adopted  sons  of  God 198 

7.  Have  the  Spirit  of  Christ 199 

8.  The  promises  are  theirs ibid. 

9.  All  their  service  pleaseth  God 200 

10.  Angels  attend  them 01 

11.  Communion  with  the  church 202 

12.  Christ's  intercession 205 

13.  All  things  are  theirs,  and  work  for  their  good  • 208 

14.  In  a  safe  case  to  die 210 

15.  The  heirs  of  glory,  which  they  shall  possess  •• 211 

16.  The  new  life  is  the  hiappy  beginning  of  everiasting  life, 

and  peace,  and  joy  ••••• • •••  215 

17.  No  evil  can  befalhim,  which  may  be  a  sufficient  reason  to 

lay  by  these  joys 218 

18.  The  further  they  go,  the  greater  their  happiness  ••••••  222 

19.  Conversion  makes  men  useful  to  others  ••••.... 225 

20.  It  rejoiceth  the  angels,  and  Christ  himself  •  • 226 

A  persuasion  on  the  foregoing  grounds 228 


CHAPTER  VI. 
A  Use  of  Exhortation  5  set  on  by  ten  questions 230 


CHAPTER  VII. 

THE  HINDRANCES  OF   CONVERSION,    WITH    DIRECTIONS  CONTRARY  TO 

THEM. 

Hindrance  1.  The  wilful  neglect  of  means,  where  the  cavils 

against  the  means  are  answered 25 1 

Hindrance  2.  Bad  company 262 

Hindrance  3.    Gross  ignorance  of  those  truths  that  should 

be  the  instruments  of  conversion 265 

Hindrance  4.  Unbelief 270 

Hindrance  5.  Inconsiderateness 272 

Hindrance  6.  Hardness  of  heart 274 

Hindrance  7.  The  great  esteem  and  interest  of  the  world*  •  •  •  283 

Hindrance  8.  Custom  in  sin,  subduing  reason  to  the  fie^h*  •  •  •  286 
Hindrance  9.  Foolish  self-love,  cherishing  presumption  and 

false  hopes 288 

Hindrance  10.  Counterfeit  graces^  or  half-conversion,  occa- 
sioning self-deceit 290 


vi  CONimJTS. . 

PAGE 

Hindrance  11.  Living  among  strong  temptations  and  occasions 

of  sin    . «91 

Hindrance  12.  The  scandalous  lives,  and  many  opinions  of 

professors 293 

Hindrance  13.  The  ill  education  of  children 295 

ffindranc^  14.  Striving  against  the  J^irit  of  grace  .......     297 

fiindrance  15.  Unresolvedness,  and  half-purposes 298 

Hindrance  16.  Delay 302 

Hindrance  17*  When  good  beginnings  are  not  followed  on  •  •  304 
Hindrance  18.  A  misunderstanding  of  some  Scriptures,  and 
erroneous  thoughts  of  God's  ways.  As  1 .  Mistaking  the  na- 
ture of  Conversion .  2.  Thinking  sanctification  is  but  a  con- 
ceit. 3.  Or  that  godliness  is  more  ado  than  needs  :  an- 
swered in  twelve  questions.  4.  Trusting  to  their  own  good 
meaning,  and  works.  5.  Misunderstanding  particular  pro- 
mises :  as  that ''  Whoever  believeth>  calleth  on  the  name 
of  the  Lord,"  &c. ''  shall  be  saved."  6.  False  thoughts  of 
predestination,  and  God's  grace.  7*111  conclusions  from 
men*8  impotency.  8.  And  fix)m  the  unprofitableness  of  our 
willing  and  running.  9.  And  from  God's  hardening.  10. 
Placing  holiness  in  mere  opinions  and  siding.  1 1 .  False  con- 
ceits against  ordinances  :  1 .  Family  duties.  2.  Against 
joining  with  our  assemblies,  on  pretence  of  their  pollution  : 
of  our  no-ministry :  no-baptism.  3.  Against  singing  Psalms    304 

Hindrance  19.  A  proud,  unteachable  frame  of  Spirit 323 

Hmdrance  20.  Wilful  obstinacy     .324 

Conclusion 325 


A  CALL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED 

CO  TURN  AND  LIVE. 


A  PREFACE  to  the  Unsanctified,  exhorting  themto  Turn ;  and 

answering  some  objections cccxxxiii 

The  text  opened 355 

Doct,  I.  It  is  the  unchangeable  law  of  God  that  wicked  men 

must  Turn -or  Die 357 

Proved 358 

Object,  God  will  not  be  so  unmerciful  as  to  damn  us :  Answered  359 

Use 362 

Who  are  wicked  men,  and  what  Conversion  is  j  and  how  we 

may  know  whether  we  are  wicked  or  converted 363 

Applied 369 

Doct.  ll.  It  is  the  promise  of  God  that  the  wicked  shall  live  if 

they  will  but  turn ;  that  is,  unfeignedly  and  thoroughly  turn  378 

Proved ...  380 

Doct.  III.  Grod  taketh  pleasure  in  men*s  conversion  and  salva- 
tion ',  but  not  in  their  death  or  damnation,    ^e  had  rather 

they  would  Turn  and  Live,  than  go  on  and  Die  :  Expounded  383 

Proved 386 


CONTENTS.  vii 

PAGE 

Doct.  IV.  The  Lord  hath  confirmed  it  to  us  by  hisoath^  that  he 
hath  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  thathe  Turn 
and  Live :  that  he  may  leave  man  no  pretence  to  doubt  of  it*  ^  389 
Use,  Who  is  it  then  that  takes  pleasure  in  men*s  sins,  and 

death  ?     Not  God,  nor  ministers,  nor  any  good  men  .  •    390 
Doct.  V.  So  earnest  is  Grod  for  the  Conversion  of  sinners,  that  he 
doubkthhis  exhortations  with  vehemency,^'Turn  ye,tum  ye.*'    394 

Applied 396 

Some  motives  to  obey  God*s  call  and  Turn 397 

Doct.  VI.  The  Lord  condescendeth  to  reason  the  case  with 

unconverted  sinners^  and  to  ask  them  why  they  will'  Die.    406 
A  strange  disputation.    1.  For  the  question.    2.  The  disputants   iMdi 

Wicked  men  will  die,  or  destroy  themselves ibid. 

Use.  The  sinner's  cause  is  certainly  unreasonable 409 

Their  seeming  reasons  confuted 414 

Doct,  VII.  If  after  all  this,  men  will  not  Turn,  it-is  not  long  of 
Grod  th^t  they  are  condemned,  but  of  themselves,  even  of 
their  own  wilfulness.    They  Die  because  they,  will  Die, 

that  is,  because  they  will  not  Turn 425 

Use  I .  How  unfit  the  wicked  are  to  charge  God  with  their 
damnation.    It  is  not  because  Qod  is  unm^cifiil,  but 

because  they  are  cruel  and  merciless  to  themselves 430 

Object.  We  cannot  convert  oursdves ;  noir  have  we  freewill. 
Answered 434 

2.  The  subtlety  of  satan ;  the  deceitfulness  of  sin  5  and  the 
folly  of  sinners  manifested *  .  .  .  .    485 

3.  No  wonder  if  the  wicked  would  hinder  the  conversion. 

and  salvation  of  others ibid. 

4.  Man  is  the  greatest  enemy  to  himself 436. 

Man's  destruction  is  of  himself,  proved ibid: 

The  heinous  aggravations  of  setu-destruction 441- 

The  concluding  Exhortation     443 

Ten  Directions  for  those  that  had  rather  Turn  than  Die-    .  .  .  446 
Five  prayers :  one  for  fomilies  3  one  for  the  Lord's  day  9  one 

for  a  penitent  sinner  3    one  for  children  and  servants;  one 

in  the  method  of  the  Lord's  prayer,  being  an  exposition  of  it.    452 


NOW  OR  NEVER. 


Preface.  The  question  resolved  whether  a  man  may  be  saved 
in  any  religion,  that  is  serious  in  practising  it  ?  No  religion 
will  save  a  man  that  is  not  true  to  it,  and.serious,  and  dili- 
gent in  practising  it.  Why  the  author  rather  publisheth 
such  common  necessary  things,  tbanconfiitation  ot  the  ma- 
ny calumnies  published  agsunst  himself.  His  expectations 
from  men  3  and  answers  with  Tertullian  about  sufferiogs. 
An  advertisement  about  a  passage  cited  out  of  the  Homilies. 


viii  CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

His  justification  for  opposing  scomers  and  enemies  of  holi- 
ness, out  of  the  church  Homilies.    A  passage  about  Philip 

Nerius,  the  Father  of  the  Oratorians cccclxxiv 

The  text  opened 487 

Doc/.  I.  The  work  of  this  life  cannot  be  done  when  this 

lifels  ended 488 

Doct  II.  Therefore,  while  we  have  time,  we  must  do  the 

work  of  this  present  life,  with  vigour  and  diligence  ....  ibid. 

1.  Time  cannot  be  recalled     .' 489 

2.  Life  shall  never  be  here  restored 491 

3.  There  is  no  doing  this  work  in  the  life  to  come  ••••••  493 

What  it  is  to  do  it  with  our  might 494 

Some  cautions 496 

Instances  of  the  work  to  be  done  with  our  might 497 

What  might  have  we  ?    .  Answered 508 

ilow  to  rouse  up  ourselves  to  seriousness ibid. 

What  to  think  of  them  that  oppose  a  holy,  serious  diligence 

in  the  service  of  Grod 511 

The  greatness  of  the  sin 513 

Especially  if  they  are  preachers 515 

What  it  is  in  religion  that  hypocrites  hate     517 

Seneca*s  testimony  for  seriousness 520 

A  terrible  passage  in  our  Homilies  against  scomers  at  godliness  523 

The  greatness  of  their  sin 524 

Object.  It  is  not  godliness,  but  humouc,  faction,  disobedience, 

hypocrisy,  &c.    Answered .  632 

Advice  to  the  flocks 535 

Object  Be  not  righteous  overmuch.    Answered  .......  537 

Exhortation  to  serious  diligence «•  538 

Object.  1 . 1  have  lost  my  time.    Answered  •  •  •  • ••••••  544 

Object.  ^^.  I  have  opposition  and  hindrances • . . .  545 

0&;6c/.  3. 1  am  dull  and  cold .  546 

Directions  and  cautions 547 

Reasons  for  pleading  this  cause  with  ministers 549 

The  Exhortation  re-enforced  . 551 

The  devil's  design  to  make  use  of  differences  in  smaller 

matters  against  Christianity  and  godliness  itself******  554 
Such  differences,  sects,  divisions,  shall  be  no  excuse  to  the 
ungodly,  but  aggravate  their  sin,  as  being  against  that 

which  all  sects  and  parties  were  agreed  in 555 

What  that  religion  is  that  we  call  men  to  be  serious  and  dili- 
gent in.     1.  To  live  according  to  the  principles  of  faith 

that  among  Christians  are  past  controversy.    Ten  named  ibid. 

2.T0  do  that  materially  that  all  are  agreed  on.  Ten  duties  named  560 
3.  To  do  that  in  the  very  manner  of  God*s  service  that 

all  are  agreed  in.    Ten  particulars  mentioned 564 

Object.  I  wUl  never  believe  that  God  delights  in  long  and 

earnest  prayers,  or  is  moved  by  the  words  of  men.  Answered  574 
Object.  Is  not  yoiir  strict  observance  of  the  Lord's  day  a 

controversy.    Answered 576 

The  Conclusion  exhortatory 577 


TREATISE 


OF  ri 


CONVERSION, 


PREACHED  AND  NOW  PUBUSHED  FOR  THE  USE  OF  THOSE  THAT 

ARE  STRANGERS  TO  A  TRUE  CONVERSION,  ESPECIALLY 

THE  GROSSLY  IGNORANT  AND  UNGODLY. 


Il'iuijr  man  be  in  Cbrist,  lie  is  a  new  creature:  old  things  arc  passed  away  ',  behold 

all  things  are  become  new. 

2  Cob.  v.  17. 


VOL.    VII. 


TO  THE  INHABITANTS 


or  tiic 


BOROUGH  AND  FOREIGN 


OF 


KIDDERMINSTER. 


Dearly  beloved  Friends  in  the  Lord, 

As  it  was  the  unfeigned  love  of  your  souls,  that  hath  hither- 
to moved  me  much  to  print  what  I  have  done,  that  y'ou  might 
have  the  help  of  those  truths,  which  God  hath  acquainted 
me  with,  when  I  am  dead  and  gone,  so  is  it  the  same  affec- 
tion that  hath  persuaded  me*  here  to  send  you  this  familiar 
discourse.  It  is  the  same  that  you  heard  preached  :  and 
the  reasons  that  moved  me  to  preach  it,  do  move  me  now  io 
publish  it ;  that  if  any  of  you  have  forgot  it,  it  may  be 
brought  to  your  remembrance ;  or  if  it  worked  not  upon 
you  in  the  hearing,  yet  in  the  deliberate  perusal  it  may  work. 
I  bless  the  Lord  that  there  are  so  many  among  you  that 
know  by  experience  the  nature  of  conversion,  which  is  the 
cause  of  my  abundant  affection  towards  you,  above  any 
other  people  that  I  know,  (especially  in  that  you  also  walk 
in  so  much  humility,  unity,  and  peace,  when  pride  and  divi- 
sions have  caused  so  many  ruins  abroad).  But  I  see  that 
there  is  no  place  or  people  on  earth  that  will  answer  our  de- 
sires, or  free  us  from  those  troubles  that  constantly  attend 
our  earthly  state.  I  have  exceeding  cause  to  rejoice  in  very 
many  of  you;  but  in  many  also  I  have  cause  of  sbrrow* 
Long  have  I  travailed  (as  Paul  spesJcs,  Ga\«\v.  \^.^  ^j&vbl 


IV  PREFACE. 

birth,  till  Christ  be  formed  in  you.     For  this  have  I  studied 
and  prayed,  and  preached ;  for  this  have  I  dealt  with  you  in 
private  exhortation ;  for  this  have  I  sent  you  all  such  books 
as  I  conceived  suitable  to  your  needs :  and  yet  to  the  grief 
of  my  soul  I  must  speak  it«  the  lives  of  many  of  you  declare 
that  this  great  work  is  yet  undone.     I  believe   God,  and 
therefore  I  know  that  you  must  every  soul  of  you  be  con- 
verted,  or  condemned   to  everlasting  punishment.      And 
knowing  this,  I  have  told  it  you  over  and  over  again :  I 
have  shewed  you  the  proof  and  reasons  of  it,  and  the  cer- 
tain misery  of  an  unconverted  state  :  I  have  earnestly  be- 
sought you,  and  begged  of  you  to  return ;    and   if  I  had 
tears  at  command,  I  should  have  mixed  all  these  exhortations 
with  my  tears ;  and  if  I  had  but  time  and  strength,  (as  I 
have  not,)  I  should  have  made  bold  to  have  come  more  to 
you,  and  sit  with  you  in  your  houses,  and  entreated  you  on 
the  behalf  of  your  souls,  even  twenty  times,  for  once  that  I 
have  entreated  you.    The  God  that  sent  me  to  you  knows 
that  my  soul  is  grieved  for  your  blindness,  and  stubborn- 
ness, and  wickedness,  and  misery,  more  than  for  all  the 
losses  or  crosses  in  the  world,  and  that  my  heart's  desire 
and  prayer  for  you  to  God,  is,  that  you  may  yet  be  con- 
verted and  saved.     But  alas  !  I  see  not  the  answer  of  my 
desires,  some  few  of  you  (and  1  thank  God  they  be  but  few) 
will  not  so  much  as  come  to  me,  nor  be  willing  that  I  should 
come  to  you  to  be  catechised  or  instructed.  Some  of  you  still 
quarrel  with  the  holy  way  in  which  you  must  walk  if  ever  you 
will  be  saved.     Some  of  you  give  up  yourselves  to  the  world, 
and  thrust  God  out  of  your  hearts  and  houses,  and  have  not  so 
much  as  a  chapter  read,  or  an  earnest  prayer  put  up  to  God 
nor  once  a  savoury  word  of  heaven,  from  morning  to  night. 
I  would  there  were  none  of  you  that  secretly  hate  the  dili- 
gent strictness  that  God  hath  commanded  us,  and  think  this 
daily  care  for  our  salvation  to  be  more  ado  than  needs ;  as 
if  you  had  found  out  something  else,  that  better  deserved 
your  care  and  diligence,  and  would  better  pay  you  for  it. 
Too  many  among  you  are  carping  and  cavilling  against  those 
humble,  godly  Christians  whoin  you  should  carefully  imi- 
tate ;  you  are  hearkening  after  and  aggravating  all  their 
infirmities,  and  charging  them  as  hypocrites,  because  they 
will  not  be  as  careless  as  yourselves  :  but  you  consider  not 


PREFACK.  V 

that  in  so  doing,  you  censure  yourselves,  and  speaH  the 
greatest  terror  to  your  souls,  that  you  can  imagine ;  for  if 
they  that  go  so  far  be  hypocrites,  what  will  become  of  you 
that  come  not  near  them  ?  If  they  that  set  their  minds  on 
the  life  to  come,  and  think  nothing  too  much  that  they  can 
do  to  be  saved,  be  yet  but  hypocrites ;  if  they  that  dare  not 
swear,  or  curse>  or  drink,  or  whore,  or  deceive,  or  wilfully 
live  in  s^ny  sin,  are  yet  but  hypocrites ;  what  then  shall  be- 
come of  such  as  you,  that  so  much  neglect  a  holy  life,  and 
live  so  much  to  the  world  and  flesh,  and  never  did  a  quar- 
ter so  much  as  they  for  the  saving  of  your  souls  ?  If  the 
righteous  themselves  are  scarcely  saved,  (that  is,  with  much 
striving  and  sufFering,  and  with  much  ado,)  and  if  hypocrites 
cannot  be  sav^ed  at  all ;  where  then  shall  the  ungodly  and 
the  sinners  appear*?  Your  Judge  hath  told  you  that  "  ex- 
cept your  righteousness  exceed  the  righteousness  of  the 
scribes  and  pharisees^  you  shall  in  no  case  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  heaven  ^.**  If  these  men  then  be  no  better  than 
pharisees,  you  must  exceed  them,  or  there  is  no  possibility 
of  your  salvation.  Go  beyond  them  first,  and  then  you  may 
the  better  condemn  them.  Till  then,  you  doubly  condemn 
yourselves  that  come  so  short  of  them.  If  malice  did  not 
blind  you,  you  would  have  seen  that  this  stone  which  you 
cast  at  others,  would  fly  back  in  your  faces. 

But  above  all,  it  is  the  odious,  swinish  sin  of  tippling 
and  drunkenness,  and  such  like  sensuality,  that  declareth 
too  many  of  you  to  be  yet  strangers  to  conversion.  I  have 
told  you  the  danger  of  it :  I  have  shewed  you  the  word  of 
God  against  it,  resolving  that  drunkards  shall  not  inherit 
the  kingdom  of  God  %  and  commanding  us  not  to  keep  com- 
pany vrith  you,  or  to  eat  with  you  **.  I  have  told  you,  and 
told  you  an  hundred  times,  with  what  a  iace  these  sins  will 
look  upon  you  in  the  end.  And  yet  all  will  not  do,  for 
aught  yet  I  see,  as  I  found  you  I  must  leave  you ;  and  after 
all  my  pains  and  prayers,  instead  of  rejoicing  in  the  hopes  of 
your  salvation,  I  must  part  with  you  in  sorrow,  and  appear 
against  you  before  the  Lord,  as  a  witness  of  your  wilfulness, 
and  negligence,  and  impenitency.  Ah  Lord  !  is  there  no 
remedy,  but  I  must  leave  so  many  of  my  poor  neighbours 

»  1  Pet,  iv.  17, 18.     Matt.xiiii.  33.  *»  Matt.  v.  20. 

«  1  Cor.  vi.  9,  to.  **  1  Cor.  v.  11—13. 


VI  PREFACE* 

in  the  power  of  satan,  and  in  a  slavery  to  their  fleshy  and  a 
contempt,  of  heaven,  and  a  wilful  neglect  of  a  holy  life?     Is 
there  no  persuading  them  to  cast  away  their  known  and 
wilful  sin ;  and  to  seek  first  the  kingdom  of  God  and  his 
righteousness  ?     Must  I  see  them  condemned  by  Christ  that 
would,  have  saved  them  ?     Must  my  preaching  and  persua- 
sions be  brought  in  against  them,  that  were  intended  by  me 
for  their  conversion  and  salvation  ?     O,  what  is  the  matter, 
that  we  cannot  prevail  with  reasonable  men  in  so  plain  a 
case  ?     Can  they  imagine  tha^  sin  is  better  than  holiness ; 
or  that  it  is  better  to  obey  their  flesh  than  God  ?    Do  they 
think  that  this  life  will  last  always  ?    Or  that  the  pleasures 
of  sin  will  never  have  an  end  ?     Or  that  they  shall  never  be 
called  to  a  reckoning  for  all  this  ?     Can  they  imagine  that 
heaven  is  not  worthy  to  be  sought,  and  eternal  things  to  be 
preferred  before  those  that  are  transitory  ?     Or  that  a  care- 
less, loose,  and  fleshly  life  will  be  better  at  last  than  a  life 
of  diligence,  obedience,  and  hdiiness  ?    O  that  we  did  but 
know  what  to  say  to  these  men  that  would  go  to  their 
hearts,  and  bring  them  to  their  wits,  or  what  ta  do  for  them 
that  might  turn  them  from  their  sin,  and  fetch  them  homje 
to  God,  and  save  them.     Is  there  no  hope  to  prevail  with 
them  before  they  fin4  themselves  in  hell?     Po<;>r  miserable 
souls !     O  that  I  knew  but  what  to  do  for  you,  that  might 
do  you  good,  and  save  you  before  it  be  too  late.     But  alas  ! 
what  should  we  do  more  ?     If  my  life  lay  on  it,  I  cannot 
persuade  a  drunkard  from  his  filthy  drunkenness,  nor  a  co- 
vetous man  from  his  worldly  mind  and  life,  how  much  less 
to  a  thorough  conversion,  and  a  heavenly  conversation  ? 
The  example  of  their  godly  neighbours  at  the  next  doors 
will  not  allure  them,  but  they  will  go  on  towards  hell  with 
the  voice  of  prayers  and  exhortations  in  their  ears  !     The 
reproofs  pf  :their  neighbours  do  but  anger  them,  and  they 
cry  out,  that  all  is  said  in  malice  :  as  if  it  were  a  malicious 
thing  to  go  about  to  save  them  from  sLn  and  hell.     Minis- 
ters cannot  prevail  with  them  in  public  -nor  in  private. 
Many  of  them  will  speak  me  fair ;  but  they  will  not  be  per- 
suaded to  turn  and  live  a  holy  life.     And  if  neither  neigh- 
bours, nor  friends,  nor  -ministers  can  be  heard ;   if  con- 
science itself  cannot  be  heard ;  if  the  God  that  made  them, 
if  Christ  that  bought  them  cannot  be  heard  ;  if  the  plain- 


PREFACE.  Vll 

* 

^est  Scripture  cannot  be  regarded ;  if  mercies  and  afflictions^ 
if  heaven  and  hell  cannot  prevail  to  draw  a  sinner  to  be 
willing  to  be  saved^  and  for  so  reasonable  a  matter,  as  to  let 
go  his  filthy  vice  and  vanity,  and  to  be  ruled  by  his  Maker 
rather  than  by  his  flesh  ;  then  what  remedy,  and  who  shall 
pity  them  that  sees  them  in  damnation  ? 

Neighbours,  my  request  to  you  is  now  but  this  much  ; 
and  as  your  friend,  as  your  teacher,  I  beseech  you  deny  me 
not  so  small  a  matter :  even  that  you  will  be  but  at  so  much 
labour,  as  to  read  over  this  book  to  yourselves,  and  with 
ydur  families ;  and  that  i  you  will  consider  of  it  as  you  go, 
between  God  and  your  own  hearts,  whether  it  be  not  a  mat- 
ter that  concemeth  you  to  the  quick :  and  that  you  will 
daily  beg  of  God  upon  your  knees  to  give  you  this  neces- 
sary mercy  of  conversiob.  Away  with  your  known  sins, 
and^  with  the  unnecessary  company  and  occasions  that 
would  draw  you  to  them.  You  were  baptized  into  the  name 
of  the  Holy  Ghost  a»  your  Sanctifier :  and  will  you  hate 
sanctification,  or  refuse  it,  or  neglect  it  1  Vou  say,  you  be* 
lieve  the  communion  of  saints,  and  will  you  abhor  their 
communion,  and  choose  the  company  of  ignorant,  ungodly 
men?  Well !  if  after  all  this  you  be  still  the  same,  and  any 
of  you  shall  appear  before  the  Lord  in  an  unconverted  state, 
this  book,  besides  the  rest  of  my  labours,  shall  witness^  to 
your  faces,  that  you  were  told  of  the  danger,  and  told  of 
the  necessity  of  a  thorough  conversion.  And  you  that  now  are 
always  telling  us,  that  all  are  sinners,  and  quiet  yourselves 
with  this,  that  all  men  have  their  faults,  shall  then  be  con- 
vinced to  your  everlasting  confusion^  that  there  is  so  great 
a  difference  between  sinners  and  sinners,  the  converted  sin- 
ners and  the  unconverted,  that  the  former  shall  entei*  into 
the  joy  of  their  Lord,  when  you  with  the  rest  must  be  cast 
into  perdition.  Matt.  xxv.  13.  That  you  were  forewarned 
of  this,  is  here  witnessed  against  you,  under  the  hand  of. 

Your  faithful  monitor, 

RICHARD  BAXTER. 

Kidderminster, 
June  1,  1657. 


TO 


THE   READER 


AN     ACCOUNT    OF    THIS     SLENDER     IVORK. 


You  have  here  presented  to  you  a  common  subject,  handled 
in  a  mean  and  vulgar  style,  not  only  without  those  subtleties 
and  citations,  which  might  suit  it  to  the  palates  of  learned 
men,  but  also  without  that  conciseness,  sententiousness  and 
quickness,  which  might  make  it  acceptable  to  the  ingenious 
^d  acute*  If  ]jpu  wonder  why  I  should  trouble  the  world 
with  such"  an  ordinary,  dull  discourse,  as  I  owe  you  an  ac- 
count of  it,  so  I  shall  faithfully  give  it  you*  Besides  my 
defect  of  leisure  and  acuteness  to  satisfy  the  expectations  of 
these  sharper  wits,  I  did  here  purposely  avoid  that  little 
which  I  could  have  done.  I  was  to  preach  not  only  to  a 
popular  auditory,  but  to  the  most  ignorant,  sottish  part  of 
that  auditory  i  for  it  is  they  that  are  principally  concerned 
in  the  matter.  And  knowing  that  the  whole  nation  abounds 
with  such,  I  was  easily  persuaded  to  permit  the  press  to  offer 
it  to  their  view,  and  tkat,  as  it  was  preached  without  altera- 
tion. For  the  subject,  I  know  it  is  the  most  needful  that 
can  be  offered  them.  The  reason  why  they  must  be  con- 
demned is,  because  they  are  not  converted  ;  and  were  they 
but  truly  converted  they  would  escape.  To  convert  a  sinner 
from  the  error  of  his  way,  is  to  save  a  soul  from  death,  and 
to  cover  a  multitude  of  sins  * :  to  convert  them,  is  to  pidl 
them  out  of  the  fire*":  it  is  to  recover  them  out  of  the  snare 
of  the  devil,  who  are  taken  captive  by  him  at  his  will  ^. 
Conversion  is  the  most  blessed  work,  and  the  day  of  con-  * 
version  the  most  blessed  day  that  this  world  is  acquainted 
with.     It  takes  a  slave  from  satan,  aqd  a  hand  from  his  ser- 

•  James  v.  19,  20.  ^  Jude  23.      .  »  2  Tim.  ii.  25,  26. 


A. 


PREFACE.  IX 

vice;  it  addeth  a  subject,  a  son,  a  member  to  the  Lord 
Jesus :  it  rescueth  a  soul  from  everlasting  torments,  and 
maketh  him  an  heir  of  everlasting  joys.  And  for  such  a 
work,  we  can  never  do  too  much.  And  alas,  the  most  are 
little  sensible  of  th^  nature,  or  necessity  of  this  change. 
Many  that  say,  they  believe  in  God  as  their  Creator,  and  in 
Christ  as  their  Redeemi^r,  do  declare  that  they  are  deluded 
by  their  deceitful  hearts,  in  that  they  believe  not  in  the 
Holy  Ghost  as  their  Sanctifier :  for  they  know  not  what 
sanctification  is,  nor  ever  much  looked  after  it  in  them- 
selves. The  commonness  and  the  greatness  of  men's  ne- 
cessity, commanded  me  to  do  any  thing  that  I  could  for 
their  relief,  and  to  bring  forth  some  water  to  cast  upon  this 
fire,  though  I  had  not  at  hand  a  silver  vessel  to  carry  it  in, 
nor  thought  it  the  most  fit.  The  plainest  words  are  the 
most  profitable  oratory  in  the  weightiest  matters.  Fineness 
is  for  ornament,  and  delicacy  for  delight ;  but  they  answer 
not  necessity,  though  sometimes  they  may  modestly  attend 
that  which  answers  it.  Yea,  when  they  are  conjunct,  it  is 
hard  for  the  necessitous  hearer  or  reader  to  observe  the 
matter  of  ornament  and  delicacy,  and  not  to  be  carried  from 
the  matter  of  necessity  ;  and  to  hear  or  read  a  neat,  concise, 
sententious  discourse,  and  not  to  be  hurt  by  it;  for  it 
usually  hindereth  the  due  operation  of  the  matter,  and  keeps 
it  from  the  heart,  and  stops  it  in  the  fancy,  and  makes  it 
seem  as  light  as  the  style.  We  use  not  to  stand  upon  com- 
pliment or  precedency,  when  we  run  to  quench  a  comi]aon 
fire,  nor  to  call  men  out  to  it  by  an  eloquent  speech.  If  we 
see  a  man  fall  into  fire  or  water,  we  stand  not  upon  mannerr 
Uness  in  plucking  him  out,  but  lay  hands  on  him  as  we  can 
without  delay.  I  shall  never  forget  the  relish  of  my  soul, 
when  God  first  warmed  my  heart  with  these  matters,  and 
Nvhenn^  was  newly  entered  into  a  seriousness  in  religion: 
when  I  read  such  a  book  as  Bishop  Andrew's  Sermons,  or 
heard  such  kind  of  preaching,  I  felt  no  life  in  it :  methought 
they  did  but  play  with  holy  things.  Yea,  when  I  read  such 
as  Bishop  Hall,  or  Henshaw's  Meditations,  or  other  such 
Essays,  Resolves  and  witty  things,  I  tasted  little  sweetness 
in  them ;  though  nbw  I  can  find  much.  But  it  was  the  plain 
and  pressing  downright  preacher,  that  only  seemed  to  me  to 
be  in  good  sadness,  and  to  make  somewhat  of  it,  and  to 


X  PREFACE. 

speak  with  life,  aad  lights  and  weight :  and  it  was  such  kind 
of  writings^  that  were  wonderfully  pleasant  and  savoury  to 
my  soul.  And  I  am  apt  to  think  that  it  is  thus  now  with 
my  hearerlt ;  and  that  I  should  measure  them  by  what  I  was, 
and  not  by  what  I  am.  And  yet  I  must  confess,  that  though 
I  can  better  digest  exactness  and  brevity,  than  I  could  so 
long  ago,  yet  I  as  much  value  seriousness  and  plainness  ; 
and  I  feel  in  myself  in  reading  or  hearing,  a  despising  of 
that  wittiness  as  proud  foolery,  which  savoureth  of  levity, 
and  tendeth  to  evaporate  weighty  truths,  and  turn  them  sill 
into  very  fancies,  and  keep  them  from  the  heart.  As  a 
stage-player,  or  morris-dancer  differs  from  a  soldier  or  a 
king,  so  do  these  preachers  from  the  true  and  faithful  mi- 
nisters of  Christ :  and  as  they  deal  liker  to  players  than 
preachers  in  the  pulpit,  so  usually  their  hearers  do  rather 
come  to  play  with  a  sermon,  than  to  attend  a  message  from 
the  God  of  heaven  about  the  life  or  death  of  their  soiils. 

Indeed,  the  more  I  have  to  do  with  the  ignorant  sort  of 
people,  the  more  I  find  that  we  cannot  possibly  speak  too 
plainly  to  them.  If  we  do  not  speak  in  their  own  vulgar 
dialect,  they  understand  us  not.  Nay,  if  we  do  so,  yet  if  we 
compose  thtise  very  words  into  a  handsomeness  of  sentence, 
or  if  we  speak  any  thing  briefly,  they  feel  not  what  we  say  : 
nay,  I  find,  if  we  do  not  purposely  draw  out  the  matter  into 
such  a  length  of  words,  and  use  some  repetition  of  it,  that 
they  may  hear  it  inculcated  on  them  again,  we  do  but  over- 
run their  understandings,  and  they  presently  lose  us  :  that 
very  style  and  way,  that  is  apt  to  be.  a  little  offensive  to  the 
exact,  and  that  is  tedious  and  loathsome  to  the  curious  ear, 
whose  religion  is  most  in  air  and  fancy,  must  be  it  that 
must  do  good  upon  the  ignorant,  and  is  usually  most  sa- 
voury and  acceptable  to  them.  Upon  such  considerations, 
I  purposely  chose  so  coarse  a  style  in  the  handling  rf  this 
subject :  for  I  preached  and  wrote  it,  not  for  the  judicious, 
but  for  the  special  use  of  tbe  most  senseless,  ignorant  sort. 
And  indeed,  I  am  v^ry  sensible  that  herein  I  have  not 
reached  the  thing  that  I  desired ;  and  yet  have  not  spoke 
half  so  plainly  as  I  should :  especially,  that  there  wanteth 
that  life  and  piercing  quickness,  which  may  concur  with 
plainness,  and  a  subject  of  such  necessity  doth  require. 
TTie  true  causes  of  this  were,  the  dulness^nd  badness  of  my 


PREFACE.  XI 

ovm  heart,  and  a  continual  <}ecay  of  the  quickness  of  my 
spirits,  through  the  increase  of  pituitous  scotomatieal  dis- 
teaipers,  together  with  that  exceeding  scarcity  of  leisure, 
which  weakness  and  oppressing  business^have  caused.  But 
if  Qod  will  give  help  and  leisure,  I  shall  seek  a  little  to 
amend  it,  in  something  more  which  on  the  same  subject  I 
hare  begun. 

One  other  reason  that  moved  me  to  consent  to  this  pub- 
lication^ ia  ifhe  scarcity  of  books  that  are  wrote  purposely 
oa  this  subjects  though,  on  the  by  and  by  parts,  I  know 
that  notfaiiig  is  more  common  in  English,  yet  on  this  sub- 
ject purposely^  and  alone  I  remember  scarce  any  besides 
Mr,  Whateley's  "New  Birth,**  (and  some  Sermons  of  Re- 
pentance) :  and  indeed  I  have  long  persuaded  all  that  I  had 
opportunity  to  persuade,  to  buy  that  book  of  Mr.  Whateley's, 
and  to'gire  Aem  abroad  among  the  ignorant,  ungodly  peo- 
ple.    And  if  I  had  seen  any  such  fruit  of  my  persuasions  as 
I  desired,  I  think  I  should  never  have  published  this.     But 
when  I  could  not  prevail  with  the  one  sort  to  buy  them,  nor 
with  tibe  other  sort  to  give  them,  I  resolved  to  print  some- 
what CHI  «o  necessary  a  point,  were  it'  never  so  meanly  done> 
if  it  were  but  that  I  might  have  some  books  to  give  myself 
to  some  that  neied,  and  also  that  the  newness  and  other  ad- 
vantages might  entice  this  book  into  the  hands  of  some, 
that  are  never  like  to  read  those,  which  heretofore  I  have 
commended  to  them. 

One  thing  more  I  observe  is  like  to  be  oiBfensive  in  this 
writing,  and  that  is,  that  the  same  things  do  here  and  there 
fall  in,  which  formerly  have  been  spoken.  I  confess  my 
memory  oft  lets  slip  the  passages  that  I  have  before  written, 
and  in  that  forgetfulness  I  write  them  again :  but  I  make 
no  great  matter  of  it.  The  writing  of  the  same  things  is 
safe  to  the  reader,  and  why  then  should  it  be  grievous  to 
me  ^  ?  not  because  it  is  displeasing  to  the  curious,  till  I  set 
more  by  their  applause,  and  take  the  approbation  of  men  for 
my  reward.  I  like  to  hear  a  man  dwell  much  on  the  same 
essentials  of  Christianity.  For  we  have  but  one  God,  and 
one  Christ,  and  one  faith  to  preach  ;  and  I  \^ill  not  preach 
another  Gospel  to  please  men  with  variety,  as  if  our  Saviour 
and  our  Gospel  were  grown  stale.     This  speaking  the  same 

h  Phil.  iii.  1. 


XII  PREPACK. 

things  is  a  sign  that  a  man  hath  considered  what  he  speaks^ 
and  that  he  hath  made  it  his  own^  and  utters  not  that  which 
accidentally  falls  in.  And  it  is  a  sign  that  he  is  »till  of  the 
same  belief,  and  doth  not  change,  and  that  he  loves  the 
truth,  which  he  so  much  dwells  upon ;  and  that  he  looketh 
more  at  the  feeding  of  men's  souls,  and  strengthening  their 
graces,  than  at  the  feeding  of  their  itching  fancies,  and  mul- 
tiplying their  opinions.  For  it  is  the  essentials  and  com- 
mon truths  (as  I  have  often  said)  that  we  daily  live  upon  as 
our  bread  and  drink.  And  we  have  incomparably  more 
work  before  us,  to  know  these  better,  and  use  them  better, 
than  to  know  more.  The  sea  will  afford  us  more  water  after 
we  have  taken  out  a  thousand  tuns,  than  a  hundred  of  those 
wells  and  pits  from  whence  we  never  yet  fetched  any.  I 
speak  not  against  the  need  of  clothing  the  same  truths  with 
a  grateful  variety  in  representing  it  to  the  world,  nor  against 
a  necessary  compliance  with  the  diseases  of  some  itching 
novelists  in  order  to  the  cure ;  but  only  give  you  an  account 
of  this  publication,  by  him  that  had  rather  be  charged  with 
the  greatest  rudeness  of  style,  than  with  the  guilt  of  neg- 
lecting what  he  might  have  done  for  the  saving  of  one  soul. 

RICHARD  BAXTER. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION 


MATTHEW  zviu.  3. 


Verily  I  say  unto  you,  except  ye  be  converted,  and  become  as  little 
children,  ye  shall  not  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 


Beloved  Hearers, 

Though  the  Gospel  doth  not  presuppose  grace  in  men, 
but  bringeth  it  to  them,  yet  doth  it  suppose  them  to  be 
men,  and  therefore  endued  with  natural  principles.  And 
though  there  is  not  enough  in  nature  to  convert  men,  yet 
doth  grace  find  some  advantage  in  nature  for  its  reception, 
and  somewhat  which  it  may  improve  for  a  further  good : 
otherwise  we  might  as  well  plead  with  beasts  as  men. 
,^'ip^^nfttj]rf^l  ^ight,  supposeth  natural  5^  the  doctrine  of 
faith  supposeth  reason ;  and  he  that  would  draw  you  to  be 
everlastingly  happy,  doth  suppose  you  so  much  to  love 
yourselves  as  to  be  willing  to  be  happy,  and  loath  to  be  ab- 
solutely miserable.  I  come  not  therefore  to  persuade  any 
of  you  to  these  things,  which  are  supposed :  we  are  not  sent 
to  entreat  men  to  be  men,  or  reasonable  creatures,  or  to  love 
themselves,  or  to  be  willing  to  be  happy ;  I  will  not  be  be- 
holden to  any  of  you  for  this,  for  you  cannot  do  otherwise : 
but  we  are  sent  to  tell  you  where  your  happiness  lieth,  and 
where  not,  and  to  advise  you  to  exercise  your  reason  aright, 
and  to  know  the  way  to  happiness;  and  take  that  course  by 
which  it  may  obtained. 


V 


14  TREATISE    OF    CONVfcKSION. 

I  must  confess  to  you  that  ever  since  I  knew  what  it  was 
to  be  a  minister  of  the  Gospel,  what  labour  it  must  cost,  and 
how  cold  a  reward  is  to  be  expected  from  our  hearers,  and 
what  a  troublous  errand  we  come  upon,  in  the  judgment  of 
the  most,  I  never  could  think  any  thing  below  the  pleasing 
of  God,  and  the  saving  of  the  souls  of  our  people  and  our- 
selves, to  be  a  motive  sufficient  to  dr»w  a  man  to  this  em- 
ployment^ Nor  do  I  think  it  meet  to  come  once  into  the 
pulpit,  with  any  lower  ultimate  ends  than  these.  He  that 
is  a  minister  for  lower  ends  than  these,  in  heart  and  deed  is 
no  minister  of  Christ ;  but  as  he  seeks  himself,  so  will  he 
serve  himself,  and  must  reward  himself  as  he  can ;  and  no 
wonder  if  he  be  unfaithful  in  all  his  course.  And  he  that 
pireacheth  one  sermon  for  lower  ultimate  ends  than' these, 
will  seek  himself,  and  not  Christ,  and  so  be  unfaithful  in 
that  sermon  :  and  if  such  study  smooth  words  and  fine  sen- 
tences, which  tend  more  to  please,  than  to  save  men's  souls, 
it  is  no  wonder.  Considering  these  things,  when  I  had 
purposed  this  day's  work  in  this  place,  I  remembered  in 
I  \  y^luD^e  name  I  must  speak,  and  on  whose  errand  I  must  ^o, 
and  therefore  that  from  him  I  must  receive  my  message : 
and  I  remembered  also  to  whom  I  was  to  speak,  ev6tt  to  men 
that  must  be  everlastingly: happy  or  miserable,  and  that  are 
now  inJheVmy,  and  have  that  to  do  in  a  litt)e  time,  which  this 
their  everlasting  state  doth  depend  upon :  I  remembered  also, 
that  Christ  hath  assured  me  that  of  the  many  that  are  called, 
few  are  chosen;  and  that  tnost  men  perish,  for  all  the  mercy 
that  is  in  God,  and  for  all  that  Christ  hath  done  and  suffered, 
atid  for  all  the  grace  that  is  offered  them  in  the  Gospel ;  and  I 
considered  the  reason,  even  because  they  will  not  recfeive 
this  grace,  nor  entertain  Christ  and  the  mercy  of  God,  as  it 
is  offered  to  them.  I  therefore  resolved  to  preach  to  you, 
as  one  that  hath  but  one  Sermon  to  preach  to  you,  and 
•  knows  not  whether  heiihall  6ver  speak  to  you  more,  and 
therefore  to  choose  nolbwer  subject  than  that  which  your 
-  life  or  death  depends  upon,  and  to  handle  it  as  far  as  I  am 
^ble  accordingly,  with  that  plainness  as  a  matter  of  such 
concenimetlt  should  be  handled  with.  If  my  business  hi- 
ther were  to  be  thought  a  learned  man,  or  to  procure  your 
applause,  or  to  please  your  ^ears,  I  should  then  have  pre- 
pared some  pleasing  matter,   and  tried  to  have  adorned  it 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  15 

with  some  flourishes  of  wit,  and  presented  it  to  you  in  a 
mixture  of  languages,  which  you  do  not  understand,  and 
with  such  pretty  jingles  and  gaudy  allusions  as  carnal  fen- 
cies  are  used  to  be  tickled  with ;  but  knowing  that  this  is 
not  the  way  to  please  God,  but  to  please  the  devil,  nor  to 
save  myself,  or  those  that  hear  me,  but  to  hinder  the  salva** 
tion  of  me  and  you,  I  soon  resolved  not  only  to  avoid  the 
study  of  such  unprofitable,  carnal  ostentation,  but  even  to 
study  to  avoid  it:  for  I  should  be  loath  to  please  satan  any 
way  by  the  doing  his  work,  but  doubly  loath  to  please  him 
in  preaching  the  Gospel,  and  to  be  serving  him  in  the 
choicest  service  of  my  Lord. 

Will  the  Lord  but  bless  the  word  that  I  shall  speak  to 
the  conrersion  of  any  souls  here  present,  I  have  the  ends 
I  come  for;  and  shall  believe  that  I  have  cause  to  bless  his 
name  that  sent  me  hither  to  day ;  and  in  hope  of  this  suc- 
cess, which  I  have  begged  of  the  Lord,  I  shall  cheerfully 
address  myself  to  the  work. 

The  occasion  of  these  words  of  Christ,  was  the  carnal 
thoughts  of  his  disciples  concerning  the  state  of  his  king- 
dom, as  if  it  had  been  of  earthly  pomp  and  glory,  like  tht 
great  monarchs  of  the  world  ;  and  also  their  carnal,  aspiring 
desires  and  contrivances  to  get  the  highest  place  in  his 
kingdom.  They  found  these  conceits  among  the  Jews,  and 
nature  easily  entertained  and  cherished  them/which  is  so 
dark  and  so  disaffected  to  higher  things.  Christ  thought  it 
not  yet  seasonable  to  give  them  the  full  discovery  of  his 
kingdom,  it  being  reserved  for  the  Holy  Ghost,  who  v^as  mi- 
raculously to  possess  them,  and  teach  them  all  things  in 
Christ's  bodily  absence,  that  the  world  might  see  that  his 
doctrine  was  not  of  his  devising,  but  from  abov^ :  but  yet  he 
presently  falls  upon  that  sin  which  these  inquiries  did  dis- 
cover in  them ;  and  before  he  fully  telleth  them  the  nature 
of  his  kingdom,  he  plsdnly  telleth  them  what  they  must  be 
if  they  will  have  a  part  in  that  kingdom.  It  may  i^eem  a 
great  doubt,  whether  the  disciples  were  at  this  time  uncon- 
verted, that  Christ  telleth  them  of  the  necessity  of  a  con- 
version, or  whether  it  be  but  a  particular  convisrsion  from 
some  particular  sins  that  he'^here  speaks  of;  as  there  is  a 
general  conversion  or  repentance  necessary  to  the  unrege- 


1 


\ 


\ 


16  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

nerate^  and  a  particular  conversion  or  repentance  necessary 
to  the  godly  upon  their  particular  falls.  To  this  I  answer, 
1.  Judas  was  undoubtedly  unconverted,  and  so  did  conti- 
nue. 2.  The  apostles  were  then  ignorant  of  many  truths 
which  afterwards  became  of  absolute  necessity  to  salvation ; 
as  Christ's  death,  resurrection,  ascension,  the  nature  of  liis 
kingdom,  &c.  Yet  I  dare  not  say,  that  they  were  not  in  a 
'  /  state  of  salvation  when  they  were  thus  ignorant  of  them, 
I  because  they  were  not  then  fundamentals,  or  of  absolute 
/  necessity,  as  afterwards  they  were :  but  yet  Christ  might 
;  r  well  tell  them  that  these  truths  must  be  believed  hereafter, 
^  '  and  they  could  not  have  that  eminent  measure  of  faith  which 
was  proper  to  his  more  illuminated  church  after  his  ascen- 
sion, withoi^t  believing  of  them.  Yea,  if  they  had  not  be- 
lieved them  when  they  were  made  fundamentals  of  absolute 
necessity  to  be  believed,  they  had  ceased  to  be  tine  disciples 
of  Christ.  And  whether  there  be  not  some  noble  effects  of 
this  Gospel-doctrine  upon  the  hearty  which  are  also  proper  to 
the  church  after  Christ's  ascension,  as  well  as  these  articles 
of  belief  were  proper  to  them,  and  so  that  this  text  may 
speak  of  both*,  I  leave  to  further  consideration.  3.  Many 
^think  that  it  is  but  a  particular  conversion  and  repentance 
that  is  here  spoken  of;  that  is,  from  this  sin  of  ambition 
which  the  disciples  did  now  manifest  ^  but  then  they  ob- 
serve not  that  it  will  hence  be  concluded,  that  a  true  dis- 
ciple may  by  a  particular  sin  be  in  such  a  state,  that  if  he 
should  die  in  it,  he  should  not  be  slaved.  But  others  that 
are  learned  and  godly  think  that  no  hard  conclusion,  as 
long  as  God  will  not  suffer  them  to  die  in  it.  4.  I  pur- 
posely forbear  to  trouble  you  with  the  names  of  expositors, 
but  I  make  no  doubt  but  they  are  in  the  right,  that  suppose 
that  Christ  doth  here  reprehend  their  ambition,  by  describ- 
ing the  contrary-  temper  of  his  true  followers,  shewing  them 
the  absolute  necessity  of  conversion,  without  any  determi- 
nation whether  they  were  or  were  not  converted  at  present : 
he  telleth  them  th&t  except  they  be  converted,  humble  per- 
sons, they  cannot  be  saved,  but  doth  not  determine  that 
now  they  are  otherwise.  And  indofkl  it  seemeth  not  likely 
that  the  disciples  of  Christ  had  not  then  that  conversion 
and  humility  of  mind  that  was  of  absolute  necessity  to  sal- 
vation :  these  words  may  well  be  used  to  converted  men,  to 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  17 

shew  them  the  necessity  of  that  conversion  which  they 
have.  As  if  a  Christian  begin  to  grow  covetous,  you  may 
say,  except  you  be  a  man  converted  from  earthlyminded- 
ness  to  heavenlymindedness,  you  cannot  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  heaven ;  which  doth  not  deny  him  to  be  already 
converted.  Though  as  to  our  present  purpose  the  matter 
is  not  great  which  of  these  be  taken  for  the  sense,  because 
they  all  afford  us  that  doctrine  that  we  shall  gather :  for  if 
there  be  no  salvation  without  a  particular  conversion  from 
a  particular  sin,  much  less  without  a  conversion  from 
a  state  of  sin.  But  the  plain  sense  of  the  text  I  doubt  not 
is  this ;  as  if  he  should  say,^  You  strive  for  pre-eminency  I 
and  worldly  greatness  in  my  kingdom ;  why  I  tell  you  my  I 
kingdom  is  a  kingdom  of  babes ;  it  containeth  none  but  the 
humble  that  are  small  in  their  own  eyes,  and  1  jok  not  after 
great  matters  in  this  world ;  and  though  nature  be  proud, 
yet  except  you  be  (now  or  hereafter)  converted  men,  and  be- 
come as  little  children,  you  shall  notenter  into  the  kingdom 
of  heaven.'  By  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  here  meant,  both 
the  estate  of  true  grace,  and  so  of  glory.  Not  as  if  conver- 
sion were  a  preparation  to  their  entering  into  this  kingdom 
as  begun  on  earth,  but  it  is  their  very  entrance  itself,  and  so 
the  beginning  of  it.  The  doctrine  we  shall  hence  handle, 
shall  be  given  you  in  no  other  but  the  words  of  the  text, 
lest  I  seem  to  force  them. 

Doctrine.  It  is  a  most  certain  truth,  protested  by  Jesus 
Christ,  that  except  men  be  converted  and  become  as  little 
children,  they  cannot  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 
The  order  which  we  shall  observe  in  handling  this,  is, — 
L  To  shew  you  what  this  kingdom  of  heaven  is. 

II.  What  it  is  to  be  converted,  and  particularly  what  to 
become  as  little  children. 

III.  Confirm  the  doctrine  from  other  Scriptures. 

IV.  I  shall  give  you  the  reasons  why  no  man  can  enter 
into  the  kingdom  of  heaven  that  is  not  converted. 

V.  We  shall  make  use  of  all,  and  therein  shew  you  the 
hindrances  of  conversion,  the  marks  of  it,  the  motives  to 
it, and  the  Directions  for  attaining  it;  as  the  Lord  shall  en- 
able me.  / 

I.  The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  taken  in  Scripture  both  for 
the  state  of  grac^-^nd  ,glory^.     As  all  men  are  by  nature  in 

VOL.  VII.  c 


18  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

tb6  kingdom  of  satan  here,  by  a  willing  iobcying  of  bim,  and 
hereafter  to'  be  tormented  by  him ;  ao  all  the  conrerted  are 
by  grace  in  the  kingdom  of  Christ,  by  a  willing  sttbmiBsion 

*  and  obedience  here,  and  hereafter  to  be  glorified  by  him  for 
ever.  This  is  all  one  kingdom,  because  there  is  the  same 
king  and  the  sami^  sabjects  j  yet  they  are  diyersified  in  this, 
that' one  is  the  way  or  means  to  the  other,  and  that  the  laws 
and  duties  which  belong  to  u^  in  the  way,  are  not  all  the 
same  as  those  that  shall  continue  at  die  end.  It  is  called 
the  kingdom  of  heaven,  both  because  the  king  is  from  above> 
and  not  a  mere  man  as  earthly  kings  are,  and  reigneth  in 
heaven  invisibly,  and  n6t  as  earthly  monarchs  whom  yoii 
may  see;  and  because  it  is  ^leaveft  which  all  grace  and 
means,  and  duties  do  tend  to>  and  it  is  heaven  where  is  the 

-  end  and  full  felicity,  and  the  most  glorious  part  of  the  king* 
dom.  .  The  Guide  and  Sanctifier  of  t;he  church  also  is  from 
heaven,  «ven  the  Holy  Ghost :  the  law  is  from  h€av€?nby 
the  inspiration  of  the  Spirit :  the  hearts  of  the  subjects  are 
heavenly,  and  their  lives  must  be  heavenly :  itis  herein  the 
seed,  it  will  be  hereafter  in  the  full  tree.  The  difference  be^ 
tween  the  egg  and  the  bird,  the  acorn  and  the  oak,  is  not 
near  so  great  as  the  difference  between  the  kingdom  of  grace 
and  of  glory.  And  yet  a  man  that  had  never  seen  or  known 
the  production  of  such  creatures  would  little  believe,  if  you 
should  shew  him  an  acorn,  that  that  would  come  to  be  an 
oak.  And  it  ia  no  marvel  if  a  carnal  heart  will  not  believe 
that  the  weak>  despised  graces  of  the  saints,  do  tend  to  such 
an  inconceivable  gto^*  When  a  poor  Christian  that  is  dead 
to  this  world  lieth  praying  and  panting  after  God,  and  look- 
ing and  longing^  after  glory,  little  doth  the  unbelieving  world 
think,  what  a  blessed  harbour  it  is  that  by  these  gales  he  is 
moving  and  hasting  to;  they  now  see  him  praying,  and 
shall  then  see  him  possessing  and  praising;  they  now  see 
his  labour  and  suffering,  but  they  will  not  believe  his  bles- 
sedness, and  perfection,  till  they  see  it  to  their  own  sorrow 
who  have  lost  it. 

Before  I  proceed  to  open  the  nature  of  conversion,  I 
shall  say  somewhat  more  of  the  word  :  and  I  shall  shew  you 
the  difference  between  Conversion,  Repentance,  Regenera- 
tion, Sanctification,  Vocation. 

1.  The  truth  is,  all  these  five  words  are  used  in  ScHp- 
ture  to  express  the  same  work  upon  the  soul :  only  they  have 


tr£:ati8b  op  conversion.  19 

^ame  fespectiTe  and  other  smaller  differenees,  whioh  I  shall 
wm  manifest  to  you.  And  the  finrt  word  Vocation  is  t^en 
t>ften  for  Ood's  act  of  calKng  when  it  hath  no  success,  and 
this  is  caUed  uneffectual  calling.  So  it  is  nsed  Prov.  i. 
24.  •*  Because  I  called,  and  ye  refused,  I  have  stretched 
forth  my  hands  and  no  man  regarded  ^  but  ye  have  set  at 
nought  all  my  counsel,  and  would  none  of  my  reproof."  So 
Isa.  Ixv.  12.  Jer.  vii*  13.  "  I  called,  but  ye  answered  not :" 
and  many  other  places.  1.  Sometimes  it  is  taken  for  the 
aet  of  Ood  whet» it  is  successful;  as  1  Thess.  ii.  12.  and 
many  more  places.  2.  This  success  itself  is  termed  our 
ealthig  in  a  passive  sense  :  and  it  is  twofold.  (1 .)  Condon ; 
when  men  are  brought  but  to  'outward  profession  and  com- 
mon gifts ;  and  so  the  word  is  used  often.  (2.)  Special ; 
when  men  are  savingly  converted  to  Christ :  the  former  is 
Common  effectual  Calling;  the  latter  is  Special  efiectual 
Calling.  And  this  last  is  the  same  with  conversion :  only 
these  two  differences  are  observable.  1.  As  to  the  name,  it 
is  metepboiically  taken  from  the  outward  call  of  the  Gospel, 
and  so  ieipplied  to  the  effect  on  the  soul.  2.  It  hath  usutJly 
in  Scripture  a  principal  respect  to  the  first  effect  on  the 
soul,  even  the  act  of  faith  itself  above  all  other  graces,  and 
following  obedience ;  yet  not  excluding  the  latter,  but  some- 
times plainly  comprehending  them»  So  that  some  divines 
eonceive  that  Vocation  is  a  work  different  from  Sanctifica- 
tion,  because  they  conceive  that  it  is  only  the  Spirit's  caus- 
ing the  first  act  of  faith  in  the  soul,  and  by  that  act  a  habit 
is  effected,  and  therewith  the  seed  of  all  graces,  which  they 
call  the  work  of  sanctification.  And  indeed  the  word  Vo- 
cation hath  special  respect  to  the  Gospel-call,  to  the  act  of 
believing  in  Christ,  and  the  proper  effect  of  that  call,  even 
our  actual  belief.  But  sometimes  it  cemprehendeth  the 
whole  Christian  relation  and  state,  as  Heb.  iii.  l/and  2  Pel. 
i.  10,8cc. 

2.  Repentance  is  the  same  thing  as  special  effectual 
calling;  so  we  take  not  calling  in  the  most  narrow  sense  of 
all,  for  the  bare  act  of  faith;  only  this  difference  there  is : 
1.  The  word  Repentance  doth  specially  denote  our  motion 
from  the  '  terminus  k  quo,'  even  that  sinful  state  from  which 
we  turn,  and  which  we  repent  of;  yet  including  essentially 
also  the  state  to  which  we  turn.     Whereas  the  word  Voca- 


20  TREATIS^E   OF    CONVERSION. 

tion  doth  principsjly  express  the  state  to  which  we  are  call- 
ed. 2.  Also  the  word  Repentance  doth  principally  r^pect 
our  turning  to  God  from  whom  we  fell :  but  the  word  Vo- 
cation doth  as  much  or  more  respect  our  coming  to  Christ 
the  Mediator  as  the  way  to  the  Father.  There  is  a  twofold 
repentance ;  (1.)  One  is  our  turning  from  a  state  of  sin  and 
misery,  such  as  the  unconverted  are  in,  and  this  is  it  that  we 
mean  now,  as  the  same  with  conversion  from  the  same  state. 
(2.)  There  is  also  a  particular  repentance,  which  is  a  turning 
from  a  particular  sin,  and  this  must  be  daily  renewed  while 
we  live.  Repentance  signifieth  and  containeth  two  things. 
The  first  is  a  hearty  sorrow  that  ever  we  sinned ;  the  second 
is  a  change  of  the  mind  from  that  sin  to  God.  Indeed  the  for- 
mer is  but  part  of  the  latter:  the  changed  mind  is  changed 
in  this  part,  and  manifesteth  its  change  in  a  special  manner, 
by  remorse  for  former  sins :  though  all  remorse  is  not  from 
such  a  change. 

3.  The  word  Regeneration  also  signifieth  the  same 
thing  with  Conversion,  but  with  this  small  difference ;  1. 
The  term  is  metaphorical,  taken  from  our  natural  genera- 
tion ;  because  there  is  so  great  a  change,  that  a  man  is  aa  it 
were  another  man.  2.  The  word  is  in  Scripture-sense,  I 
think  more  comprehensive  than  Conversion,  Repentance  or 
Vocation;  for  it  signifieth  not  only  the  newness  of  our 
qualities,  but  also  of  our  relations,  even  our  whole  new 
state.  This  is  not  ordinarily  acknowledged,  but  if  we  view 
the  places  where  the  word  is  used,  it  will  prove  so :  for  as 
Paul  describing  the  thing  though  he  useth  not  the  word, 
2  Cor.  V.  11.  saith,  "  He  that  is  in  Christ  is  a  new  creature, 
old  things  are  passed  away,  behold  all  things  are  become 
new  :"  where  relations  must  needs  be  a  part  of  that  all  as 
the  context  will  shew.  So  Tit.  iii.  5.  it  is  called  "the  laver 
or  washing  of  regeneration ;"  and  is  distinguished  from  re- 
newing of  the  Holy  Ghost ;  at  least  as  the  general,  compre- 
hending that  as  a  part.  1.  Most  expositors  think  that  the 
word  huth  reference  to  baptism,  and  expresseth  its  effects  or 
consequents :  and  no  doubt  baptism  is  for  remission  of  sins, 
and  therefore  the  laver  of  regeneration  is  for  remission  of 
sins.  2.  The  very  text  maintaineth  plainly  that  grace  by 
which  we  are  saved;  by  free  grace,  and  that  is  our  free  jus- 
tification as   well   as  free  sanctification :  and  our  divines 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  21 

commonly  cite  that  text  against  the  Papists  upon  that  ac- 
count, as  pleading  for  free  justification :  "  Not  by  works  of 
righteousness  that  we  have  done,  but  according  to  his  mer- 
cy, he  saved  us,  by  the  washing  of  regeneration,  and  the  re- 
newing of  the  Holy  Ghost.*'  Is  not  saving  from  the  guilt 
of  sin  a  part  of  our  salvation  ?  What  reason  to  restrain  sa- 
ving here  to  sanctification  only  ?  Doubtless  if  there  were 
reason  to  restrain  the  word  Regeneration  to  either,  it  would 
be  to  justification  only ;  because  the  giving  of  the  Holy 
Ghost  is  next  mentioned  by  itself,  but  justification  is  not 
mentioned  at  all,  if  regeneration  comprehends  it  not.  And 
it  is  certain,  that  the  apostle  intendeth  uQt  only  to  tell  us, 
that  we  are  freely  sanctified  without  works,  but  also  that  we 
are  freely  justified  by  grace  without  works.  So  John  iii.  3. 
"Except  a  man  be  born  of  water  and  of  the  Spirit,  he  can 
not  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God ;"  where  he  at  least 
hath  some  respect  to  baptism,  as  most  suppose,  and  bap- 
tism is  fbr  the  remission  of  sins  :  to  be  bom  of  water  there- 
fore must  needs  include  remission  of  sin.  And  this  regene- 
ration maketh  a  man  a  new  creature,  and  as  Paul  saith, ''  in 
the  new  creature  all  things  are  become  new,"  and  not  the 
qualities  only.     But  in  the  main,  Regeneration  is  the  same 

with  Conversion. 

4.  The  word  Sanctification  also  signifieth  the  same 
thing  for  the  main,  as  Conversion  doth,  only  with  these 
small  diflFerences  following:  1.  The^  word  is  more  compre- 
hensive, for  it  signifieth  our  whole  state  of  dedication  or 
devotedn^ss  to  God,  which  comprehendeth  in  it  these  four 
things  :  L  The  change  of  a  man's  qualities,  whereby  he  is 
made  fit  for  the  service  of  God,  having  his  heart  bent  to- 
wards hini,  and  set  upon  him.  2.  The  actual  dedication  or 
devoting  of  a  man's  self  to  God  by  faith  and  a  holy  cove- 
nant ;  especially  in  baptism,  by  solemn  vow  or  engagement. 

3.  The  relation  of  a  person  so  dedicated  or  devoted  to  God, 
as  he  is  one  set  apart  to  him  for  holy  uses,  and  it  is  from 
this  relation  especially  that  the  word  Sanctification  is  used. 

4.  The  holiness  of  life  that  foUoweth  hereupon,  in  the  actual 
living  to  God,  to  whom  we  are  devoted.  Sanctification 
comprehendeth  all  this,  and  so  comprehends  in  it  Vocation, 
and  somewhat  more. 

But  then  perhaps  it  may  be  found,  that  the  word  is 


23  TK£ATIS£   OF   CONVERSION. 

8<H|iett0ies«  if  not  often  used  in  Scripture  for  holinesa  of  the 
life  alone,  as  presupposing  all  the  rest.    Indeed  there  are 
more  words  than  one,  which  we  translate  Sanctification, 
which  yet  are  aot  all  of  one  sense.    As  &icaiooic»  SucaMn/iay 
Wd    Sucoixxmni    differ:    so*  doth   ayuurfio^,    aytirnQ,     and 
dyiaaivn  differ :  but  I  shall  purposely  forbear  to  trpuble 
ypu  with  such  matters.    So  that  having  opened  before  to 
you  the  word  Conversion,  and  now  these  four.  Vocation, 
Repentance,  Regeneration  and  Sanctification,  you  may  see 
how  far  they  are  the  same,  or  differ.    The  like  may  be  said 
of  the  word  Changing,  Renewing  or  making  new,  and  the 
^ike^  which  all  signify  the  same  work  of  God  upon  ^e  souL 
Those  therefore  that  inquire  whether  Vocation,  Regene- 
Ifation,  Repentance,  Sanc(;ification,  &c.  are  the  same  thing, 
or  divers  ;  and  which  of  them  goeth  first,  8cc.,  must  first  be 
resolved  of  the  sense  of  the  term,  before  they  proceed  to 
the  matter;  for  most  of  these  words  are  used  in  several 
senses,  and  that  ambiguity  must  first  be  removed. 
.     II.  I  am  next  to  shew  you  what  it  is  to  be  converted 
apd  become  as  little  children;  which  cannot  be  so  well 
done  till  I  have  first  given  some  brief  description  of  the 
state  of  a  man  unconverted  :  to  which  end  you  must  knbw, 
that  God  made  man  perfect,  and  gave  him  a  perfect  law  to 
keep,  which  commanded  perfect  obedience  upon  pain  of 
everlasting  death  :  by  the  temptation  of  satan,  man  broke 
this  law,  and  cast  himselCout  of  the  favour  of  God,  and 
made  himself  the  slave  of  satan,  and  the  child  of  death; 
this  he  did  by  a  wilful  adhering  to^  the  creature,  and  de- 
parting &om  God,  so  that  the  nature  of  man  was  thus  be«- 
Gome  corrupt ;  and  such  as  the  first  man  Adam  was,  such 
mus^  his  posterity  needs  be,  for  who  can  bring  a  clevi 
thing  out  of  an  unclean  •.    And  how  can  Adam  convey  to 
his  posterity  that  image  of  God,  which  he  had  lost  himself, 
or  that  right  to  the  favour  of  God,  and  further  happiness  ? 
So  that  we  are  all  bom  with  corrupted  natures,  inclined  to 
earth  and  earthly  things,  and  strange  and  averse  to  heaven 
a^d  heavenly  things ;  prone  to  evil  and  backward  to  good ! 
estranged  from  (Jod,  and  making  our  carnal  selv^  our  God;; 
pride, 'self-love^covetousness,  voluptuousness,  unbelief,  ig- 
norance, error,  hypocrisy,  ungodliness,  strife,  contention^ 

•  Job  xW,  4. 


TRUATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  83 

cruelty  and  all  wiGkedneas  hare  their  roots  ib^  once  ia  us, 
and.  if  temptation  serve^  we  shall  bring  forth  the  fruit. 

This  beixig  the  sti^te  of  every  man  by  nature,  by  practice 
and  custom  in  sinning  men  become  worse*  and  tbe  longer 
they  deloy  before  they  are  converted,  the  worse  usually  da 
they  grow,  and  the  further  do  they  go  from  God,  and  from 
their  happiness.  By  all  which  methinks  you  may  easily, 
see,  both  what  conversion  is,  and  why  there  is  such  anecesr 
sity  of  it. 

The  word  Conversion  is  sometimes  taken  actively,  for 
that  act  or  work  that  doth  convert  us ;  and  sometimes  pas- 
sively, for  that  change  that  is  thereby  wrought :  as  man  is 
the  subject  or  patient,  so  is  he  also  an  agent  in  the  actual 
turning  of  his  own  soul ;  so  that  God  and  man  are  both 
agents  in  this  work.  The  word  here  in  my  text  is  active, 
and  maketh  it  the  act  of  man,  ''  except  ye  convert  your- 
selves :'*  but  we  translate  it,  *'  be  converted '"  because  the 
word  is  used  reciprocally,  as  some  speak  in  Scripture  :  in  a 
word,  God,  as  the  most  laudable,  principal  cause,  doth 
causae  man's  will  to  tura  itself.  So  that  conversion  actively 
taken,  as  it  is  the  work  of  the  Holy  Ghost/ is  a  work  of  the, 
Spirit  of  Christ,  by  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  by  which  he  efr. 
fectnally  changeth  men's  minds,  and  heart,  and  life  from  the 
creature  ,to  God  in  Christ :  conversion,  as  it  is  our  work,  ia 
the  work  of  man,  wherein  by  the  effectual  grace  of  the  Holy. 
6l^o8|b,  he|  tumeth  his  mind,  and  heart,  and  life  from  the 
creatnre  to  (^pd  in  Christ.  And  conversion  as  taken  pas- 
sively, is  tlie  sincere  change  of  a  man's  mind,  heart  and  life 
from  the  creature  to  God  in  Christ,  which  is  wrought  by  the 
Hojly  Ghost,  tbrpi;^h  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  and  by  himsdf 
th;i]|s, moiled  by  the  Holy  Ghost.  Here  you  may  see,  1.  Who,  \  \  - 
is>the,cau§e.of  this  conversion,  and  what  is  the  means.  2«. 
What  is  the  change  wrought.  3.  On  whom.  4.  From 
what,  and  to  what.  1.  The  most  laudable,  principal  cause 
is  the  Holy  Ghost,  who  is  the  Sanctifier  of  the  elect.  2. 
The  instrumental  cause  is  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  either, 
read, oi;  ]^eard,  or  son^.way  kiiown,  and  brought  by  um 
Spirit  to  me^'s  understandings  and  consideration.  3.  Ma^ 
himself  is  Uie  subject  of  the  Spirit's  operation,  and  the  pron 
per  agent  of  these  holy  actions  of  believing,  repjfoting,  &c. 
which  the  Holy  Ghost  doth  cause  him  to  perform.    It  is 


34  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

not  the  Holy  Ghost  that  believetb,  but  he  causeth  man  to 
believe,  4.  That  which  we  are  tarned  from,  is  as  to  the 
object,  the  creature,  which  sinful  man  doth  adhere  to  above 
God  ;  and  as  to  the  act,  it  is  sin,  that  is,  he  ceaseth  this  vi- 
cious adhering  to  the  creature.  5.  That  which  man  tunieth 
to,  is  God  in  and  by  Christ  the  Mediator.  God  hath  again 
the  heart  of  a  sinner,  when  he  is  converted,  and  God  will  be 
his  happiness ;  his  reformation,  recovery,  reward  and  felicity 
consisteth  in  this. 

The  parts  of  this  conversion  are  these  three,  i.  It  is  a 
change  of  the  mind,     ii.  Of  the  heart,     iii.  Of  the  life. 

I.  Conversion  changeth' the  min37" 

1.  From  ignorance. 

2.  From  inconsiderateness. 

3.  From  unbelief. 

4.  From  error. 

^  1.  Every  unconverted  man  is  ignorant  of  the  saving 
truths  of  the  Gospel,  either  by  a  total  ignorance  of  the 
thing,  or  by  an  insufficient,  superficial,  ineffectual  appre- 
hension of  it :  the  most  of  the  world  do  not  know,  what 
man  is  by  nature  and  actual  sin  ;  how  hateful  sin  and  sin-' 
ners  are  to  God ;  how  it  deserveth  his  everlasting  wrath, 
and  maketh  it  our  portion ;  how  Christ  hath  satisfied  and 
i  redeemed  us  from  this  misery ;  and  on  what  terms,  and  in 
I  what  order  he  offereth  to  man  that  pardon  and  life  which 
{  he  hath  purchased ;  how  he  will  judge  them  that  believe, 
repent  and  obey  him  at  last  to  everlasting  glory,  and  the 
rest  to  everlasting  misery.  Many  poor  souls  are  utterly 
ignorant  of  these  very  principles  of  the  Christian  religion, 
in  the  midst  of  Gospel-light,  and  under  all  our  most  dili- 
gent instructions ;  and  of  those  that  have  some  knowledge 
ef  them,  many  know  them  but  superficially  and  ineffec* 
tually. 

Now  the  first  thing  that  the  Spirit  of  God  doth  either  in 
or  to  the  work  of  conversion,  is  to  open  men's  eyes  to  un- 
derstand these  mysteries  :  so  that,  the  man  that  was  wont 
to  hear  thein  as  a  strange  thing,  as  if  we  spoke  Greek  or 
Hebrew  to  him,  is  now  like  a  man  that  is  brought  out  of  a 
dungeon  into  the  open  light ;  or  that  hath  his  eye-sight  re- 
'  covered,  and  doth  not  only  know  these  things,  but  knows 
them  with  a  somewhat  clear  and  affecting  knowledge ;  and 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  25 

is  much  taken  with  the  light,  and  rejoiceth  in  it,  and  mar* 
velleth  at  his  fonner  ignorance.     I  shall  prove  all  this  to 
you  by  Scripture.    In  1  Cor.  ii.  14.  the  apostle  tells  us, "  The     \ 
natural  man  receiyeth  not  the  things  of  the  Spirit  of  God, 
for  they  are  foolishness  to  him,  neither  can  he  know  them, 
because  they  are  spiritually  discerned."    In  2  Cor.  iv.  3. 
the  apostle  saith,  ''  If  our  Gospel  be  hid,  it  is  hid  to  them 
that  are  lost,  in  whom  the  god  of  this  world  hath  blinded 
the  minds  of  them  which  belieye  not,  lest  the  light  of  the 
glorious  Gospel  of  Christ,  who  is  the  image  of  God,  should 
shine  unto  them.''    And  then  the  cure  you  may  see.  Acts 
xxyi.  18.    ^'  I  send  thee  to  open  their  eyes,  and  turn  them 
irom  darkness  to  light,  and  from  the  power  of  satan  unto 
God/'     Many  poor  people  think  that  utter  ignorance  may 
stand  with  grace,  and  that  they  may  be  saved  without 
knowledge  because  they  are  not  book-learned ;  but  you 
hear  God  telleth  you  otherwise.     Many  have  much  brain- 
knowledge  that  have  no  grace,  but  no  man  can  have  grace 
without  solid  knowledge :  for  who  can  hate  sin  till  he  know- 
eth  it,  and  the  evil  of  it?     And  who  can  love  God  till  he 
know  hiiod  to  be  lovely  ?    And  who  can  do  the  duty  that  he 
understandeth  not,  or  go  the  way  to  heaven  that  he  is  igno- 
rant of?     So  that  this  is  the  first  part  of  the  change  of  the 
mind  from  ignorance  to  knowledge. 

2.  The  second  part  of  the  change  of  the  mind,  is,  from 
careless  inconsiderateness  to  sober  consideration;  and  this 
is  a  great  help  to  all  that  foUoweth.  The  main  reason  why 
we  cannot  bring  men  out  of  love  with  this  vain  world,  nor  to 
yield  to  the  call  of  God,  and  make  out  after  Christ,  and 
their  everlasting  salvation,  is,  because  we  cannot  bring  them 
to  consideration :  men  are  heady  and  rash,  and  drown  their 
own  reason  with  wilfulness,  or  passion,  or  worldly  busi- 
nesses, and  will  not  give  reason  leave  to  work.  Their  vi- 
cious wills  command  their  understandings  to  other  objects, 
and  will  not  let  them  dwell  long  enough  on  those  that 
should  do  them  good.  All  wicked  men  are  inconsiderate 
men,  and  therefore  inconsiderate,  because  wicked ;  and 
therefore  wicked,  because  inconsiderate.  If  they  hear  of 
the  greatest  truths  in  the  congregation,  they  go  home  and 
talk  of  other  matters,  and  all  runs  out,  and  they  are  never 
the  better :  we  cannot  get  them  to  go  alone  6ne  hour,  and 


/ 


/ 


S6  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

seriously  consider  of  what  they  heard:  ignorance   doth 
much  to  men's  perdition,  but  inconsiderateness  much  more. 
Oh !  if  that  little  which  our  common  people  know,  were  but 
frequently  and  earnestly  considered  of>  it  would  not  suffer 
them  to  be  such  as  they  are !    Well,  but  when  the  Spirit  of 
.  God  comes  effectually  to  convert  the  soul,  he  maketb  them 
I  consider:  he  awakejieth  the  sleepy  soul,  and  sheweth  then) 
I  I  that  the  matter  so  nearly  concerns  them,  that  if  they  loye 
themselves,  it  is  time  to  consider  of  it:  he  settetb  these 
truths  still  before  their  eyes,  which  formerly  they  cast  be- 
hind their  backs ;  he  holdeth  their  thoughts  upon  them  so, 
f  that  they  must  needs  consider  them.    They  had  heard  per- 
I  haps  an  hundred  times  before  of  sin,  and  Christ,  and  die 
^necessity  of  conversion,  of  judgment,  and  heaven,  and  hell. 


^ut  they  never  thoroughly  considered  it  till  now.  Oh,  this 
is,  a  great  part  of  the  renewing  work  of  the  Spirit,  to  fijL  a 
man's  thoughts  upon  the  truths  of  God  till  they  work,  ai^d 
to  bring  a  man's  reason  to  do  its  office.  I  will  sliew  you 
this  but  in  two  or  three  texts  of  Scripture.    In  Acts  xyii.  II. 

^'  it  is  said,  that  the  Jews  of  Berea  had  more  ingenuity  than 
the  rest,  ''for  they  searched  die  Scriptures  dsdly,  w;hether 
those  things  were  so,  therefore  many  of  them  believed:' 
when  they  came  home  they  did  not  turn  their  thoughts  pre-: 
sently  to  other  matters,  and  think  no  more  of  what  they  hful 
heard,  but  .they  took  their  Bibles,  and  considered  and  ex- 
amined the  sermons  which  they  had  heard,  that  they  might 
be  resolved  whether  it  were  so  indeed  or  not ;  that  if  it  were 
so,  they  might  obey  it  accordingly ;  and  therefore  they  be- 
lieved.   In  Psalm  cxix.  59,  60.  David  saith,  "  I  thought  on 

'^  my  ways,  and  turned  my  feet  unto  thy  testimonies  ^  I  made 

haste  and  delayed  not  to  keep  thy  commandments :"  when  he 

thought  of  his  ways,  he  turned  without  delay.    And  Go4 

complaineth  of  the  disobedient  Israelites  in  Isaiah  i.  2,  3. 

that  he  had  nourished  and  brought  up  children,  and  they 

rebelled  against  him ;  and  what  was  the  cause  ?  why,  "  The 

ox  knoweth  his  owner,  and  the  ass  his  master's  crib,  but 

Israel  doth  not  know,  my  people  doth  not  consider."    So 

that  you  may  see  the  second  part  of  the  conversion  of  th^ 

mind  is  from  inconsiderateness  to  consideration. 

3.  The  third  part  of  the  change  of  the  mind,  is,  from 

unbelief  to  true  believing.    A  customary  belief  upon  the 


TIIEATI3B   OF   CONVERSION.  27 

bare  credit  of  their  forefathers^  and  the  common  vote  of  the    \    \ 
country  they  dwell  in,  most  among  us  may  have  of  the  Gos-    [ 
pel ;  but  this  fieiith  is  like  the  ground  of  it  and  will  not  senre 
to  establish  and  renew  the  soul.     Men  are  not  soundly  per* 
suaded  of  the  infallible  truth  of  all  the  Word  of  God  till 
couT^rting  grace  doth  bring  them  to  believe  it :  they  think 
it  may  be  true,  and  it  may  be  false  for  ought  they  know, 
they  cannot  tell :  and  therefore  it  is  that  when  we  come  to 
those  particulars  that  displease  them,  they  will  not  believe 
them.    When  they  do  confess  in  general  that  the  Scripture 
is  true,  yet  when  we  tell  them  particularly  of  those  passages 
that  speak  of  the  necessity  of  conversion,  the  difficulty  of 
salvation,  the  fewness  of  the  saved,  and  the  multitude  that 
shall  perish,  with  many  the  like  truths,  they  will  plainly 
shew  that  they  do  not  believe  them.      A  word  of  such 
matters  of  heaven  and  hell,  if  it  were  well  believed,  would 
doubtless  prevail  against  sensual  allurements,  and  mak« 
them  see  that  they  have  something  else  than  this  deceitful 
world  to  look  after.    Certainly  all  unconverted  sinners  are 
at  best  but  such  .half  believers  as  in  Scripture  are  xalled^  ( 
rightly  unbelieyefs.      But  when  the  Spirit  by  the  Word 
doth  illuminate  their  understanding,  they  see  then  that  all 
this  is  most  certainly  true  :  that  the  talk  of  sin,  and  misery^ 
and  Christ,  and  grace,  and  glory,  and  of  everlasting  tor- 
ments to  the  impenitent  are  no  dreams  or  doubtful  suppo- 
sitions.    God  telleth  them  then  to  the  very  heart,  that  diese 
are  matters  not  to  be  questioned,  but  presently  and  seriously 
to  be  regarded :  for  God  will  prove  true  when  all  men  provfe 
liars :  heaven  and  earth  shall  pass  away,  but  a>  jot  or  tittle 
of  his  Word  «hall  not  pass  away  till  aU  be  fulfilled  \    What- 
ever unbelievers  think  of  it  now,  nothing  is  more  certain 
iban  that  all  men  on  earth  shaU  shortly  find  themselves  in    j  \ 
heaven  or  hell.     Now  the  soul  perceiveth  that  this  is  true, 
as  the  God  of  heaven  is  true,  and  that  it  is  madness  to 
question  the  truth  of  his  Word,  who  is  truth  itself,^  and  to 
think  that  Word  will  shake  or  fail  which  beareth  up  heaven 
and  earth  and  is  the  best  security  that  is  possible  to  be  had ; 
and  that  he  should  deceive  them  who  never  deceived  any ; 
and  doth  so  much  to  save  them  from  being  deceived  by 
satan,  and  their  own  deceitful  hearts.     Before  conversion 

»>  Matt.  V.  18. 


( 


28  TRBATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

you  might  have  heard  by  his  cold  prayers,  and  carnal  con- 
ference, and  seen  by  his  careless,  sinful  life,  that  he  did  not 
heartily  believe  the  Word  of  God ;  but  now  you  may  hear, 
and  see  by  him  that  he  doth  believe  it.     If  you  tell  a  man 
that  a  bear  or  a  cut-throat  thief  is  following  after  him,  if  you 
see  him  not  stir  any  faster,  nor  mend  his  pace,  you  will  say, 
sure  he  doth  not  believe  it ;  but  if  you  see  him  run  as  for 
his  life,  it  is  a  sign  that  he  believes  it.     When  once  a  man 
is  truly  converted,  you  may  see  by  his  affection,  and  dili- 
gence, and  self-denial,  that  he  owneth  and  believetb  the 
/    Word  of  God  indeed :  if  you  over-heard  him  in  his  prayers, 
^  I  his  tears,  or  at  least  his  hearty  groans  will  tell  you  that  he 
believeth  :  if  he  talk  with  you  of  his  former  life,  his  sobs 
and  sighs,  and  his  deep  self-accusings  will  tell  you  that  he 
'believeth  it:  his  careful  endeavours  for  the  saving  his  soul, 
;his  earnest  inquiries^  what  he  shall  do  to  be  saved,  will  tell 
you  that  he  believeth.    The  change  of  his  company,  his 
talk,  his  life,  his  casting  away  those  sins  with  hatred  which 
were  his  delight,  and  taking  up  that  holy  life  with  delight 
which  before  he  had  no  heart  to ;  all  this  will  shew  that  he 
is  now  a  true  believer.     Because  "  Noah  believed,  he  was 
moved  with  fear,  and  prepared  the  ark  °."     He  that  had 
seen  him  at  work  might  perceive  that  he  believed  :  he  would 
never  else  have  so  laboured  to  escape  the  danger. 

4.  The  fourth  part  wherein  the  change  of  the  under- 
standing doth  consist,  is,  in  the  healing  of  men's  errors,  and 
turning  them  from  those  false  conceits  which  they  had  about 
God  and  his  ways,  and  the  matters  of  salvation.  While 
they  were  unconverted,  satan  had  taught  them,  and  the 
world  had  taught  them,  and  the  flesh  had  taught  them  many 
things  against  God  and  their  own  safety :  they  were  per- 
suaded that  either  there  was  no  heaven  and  hell,  or  that  God 
would  save  them  though  they  did  not  much  look  after  it 
themselves.  They  thought  sin  was  better  than  holiness, 
and  it  was  a  more  desirable  life  to  please  the  flesh,  and  to  be 
honourable,  and  eat  and  drink,  and  be  merry,  than  to  live 
in  the  thoughts  of  another  world,  and  deny  the  flesh  that 
pleasure  it  desireth,  and  to  spend  so  much  time  in  reading, 
hearing,  praying  and  meditating.  They  thought  this  was  a 
[     tedious,  unnecessary  life,  and  that  all  this  was  more  ado 

«  Heb.  XI.  7, 


I 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  29 

than  needs ;  and  that  the  wisest  way  was  to  follow  their 
business  in  the  world,  and  take  their  pleasure  while  they 
might  haye  it,  and  only  come  to  church,  and  forbear  some 
heinous  sins,  and  then  believe  that  God  will  be  merciful  to 
them,  and  they  shall  do  well  enough  without  all  this  stir, 
and  that  they  may  take  what  they  can  get  of  the  pleasure  of 
the  world,  and  when  they  have  done,  if  there  be  any  heaven, 
they  may  have  it  with  a  short  repentance  when  they  can 
keep  the  world  no  longer.     Abundance  more  such  errors  as 
these  are  in  the  minds  of  unconverted  sinners,  through  the 
seducements  of  the  deceiver:    indeed  they  live  a  life  of 
error.     Some  heretics  err  in  one  particular,  and  some  in 
another,  but  wicked  men  ^rr  \j\  f,|]P  yftry  {\^'^^t  ^fL/2l^i:  liYf^g.. 
But  when  God  converteth,  he  changeth  all  these  opinions. 
The  man  is  then  of  another  mind.     He  that  thought  sin  so 
pleasant,  would  now  fain  spit  it  out ;  he  that  desired  so  to 
glut  himself  with  the  world  and  sinful  delights,  would  now 
be  rid   of  them :  like  a  foolish  person  that  will  needs  take 
poison,  because  it  is  sweet,  and  will  not  believe  him  that 
tells  him  it  is  deadly ;  but  when  he  feeleth  it  begin  to  gripe 
him  in  the  bowels,  and  to  burn  him  at  the  heart,  then  he 
crieth  out,  '  Oh  now  I  believe  you  that  it  is  poison !     Oh 
give  me  a  vomit  that  I  may  cast  it  up  quickly,  or  else  I  die.' 
Then,  if  you  see  him  retching  and  straining  himself  to  get 
it  up  again,  and  groaning,  and  crying  out,  '  Oh  my  heart, 
it  burns  me,  it  tears  me  ;  Oh  that  I  could  get  it  up  !'  you 
may  see  then  that  the  man's  opinion  is  changed.     Sinners, 
believe  it,  if  ever  God  will  save  you,  it  will  be  thus  with 
you.     You  thought  there  was  no  great  harm  in  taking  now 
and  then  a  cup  with  good  fellows  ;  in  neglecting  God  and 
your  souls,  while  you  provide  for  your  bodies  ;  in  dropping 
a  curse  or  a  small  oath  in  the  heat  of  your  passion :  you 
could  ask,  what  harm  is  it  to  spend  the  Lord's  day  in  idle- 
ness, or  vain-talking,  or  recreations,  when  you  had  a  God, 
and  a  soul,  and  an  everlasting  state  to  look  after,  which 
should  have  been  the  business  of  that  day.     Perhaps  you 
let  down  now  and  then  some  sharper  poison  of  covetousness, 
malice,  fornication,  &c.     Oh,  but  if  ever  God  convert  you, 
all  this  must  up  again  ;  you  will  groan  and  strain  at  it  by 
the  vomit  of  repentance,  and  cry  out,  *  Oh  that  I  had  never 
known  it !     Oh  that  I  had  never  seen  the  faces  of  such  un- 


I 


I 


30  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

godly  companions !     Oh  that  I  could  get  up  the  very  roots 
of  this  sin,  I  would  nerer  return  to  it  again/    You  that  nblr 
thifik  it  so  grievous  a  life  to  be  gotlly,  and  that  there  needis 
not  so  much  ado  for  your  salvation ;  if  ever  God  cotiVcrt 
you,  he  will  make  you  see  that  it  is  both  necessary  and  6^ 
lightfiil :  you  will  then  say,  '  What,  shall  I  sit  still  when  my 
everlasting  salvation  is  at  stake  ?    I  have  but  a  little  timie 
to  make  sure  of  escaping  eternal  misery :   I  must  very 
shortly  be  in  heaven  or  hell ;  and  now  is  the  time  that  murt 
turn  the  scales,  for  then  I  must  be  judged  according  to  my 
works  ;  and  is  this  a  time  to  loiter  in  ?     Or  is  this  a  matter 
to  be  forgotten  or  made  light  of?*    Oh  sinners,  if  God  open 
your  eyes,  you  will  marvel,  I  tell  you,  you  will  a  thoasakid 
times  marvel,  that  ever  you  should  be  so  sottish,  and  in  a 
manner  besides  yourselves,  as  to  follow  your  business  in  the 
vain  world,  and  eat  and  drink,  and  Sleep  so  quietly,  while 
you  knew  not  what  should  become  of  you  for  ever.     Yott 
will  cry  out  of  yourselves,  '  Oh  where  was  my  wit,  that  I 
should  make  so  light  of  that  which  was  my  only  business  ? 
And  that  I  should  sleep  out  that  short  time  of  my  life  wliieh 
was  given  me  of  purpose  to  work  out  my  salvation  in  ?     And 
that  I  should  forget  that  judgment  that  was  told  again  and 
again  was  at  the  door  V    Sinners,  if  God  do  once  truly  con- 
vert your  souls,  you  will  see,  that  if  wife,  children,  friend, 
estate,  life  require  your  labour  and  care,  your  salvation  re- 
quireth  an  hundred  times  more.    You  will  the»n  say,  ^  What, 
can  I  make  too  much  haste  to  heaven  ?     Or  be  at  too  much 
care  or  pains  to  make  sure  of  it  ?     Can  any  laboiur  be  too 
much  to  obtain  such  a  glory,  or  to  escape  the  flames  of  ever* 
lasting  misery?     If  I  lose  the  world  and  my  life,  I  may  be 
a  saver  and  a  gainer  in  the  life  eternal ;  but  if  I  lose  thilt 
life,  how  shall  I  be  a  saver  ?     Or  which  way  shall  I  hope 
for  a  reparation  of  my  loss?     And  what  good  will  it  then  do 
me  that  I  had  pleasure,  or  credit,  or  riches  in  the  world? 
Is  it  worth  the  labour  of  all  my  life  to  rake  in  this  eai^th, 
and  to  live  in  more  plenty  of  worldly  vanity  than  othermen 
a  little  while,  till  I  drop  into  my  grave?     And  is  it  not 
worth  ten  thousand  times  more  care  and  pains  to  make  Mure 
that  I  live  among  the  angels,  and  see  the  face  of  God  in 
endless  glory  V    Oh  Lord,  where  is  that  man's  brains  diat 
thinks  he  can  pay  too  dear  for  heaven,  and  yet  that  all  the 
stir  of  his  life  is  not  too  dear  a  price  for  earth !     To  get  him 


TREATISE    OF    CONVRRSION.  31 

a  pleasant  passage  fX)  his  grave,  when  he  might  have  as 
much  pleasure  upon  other  terms?  Where  is  that  man's 
reason  that  will  be  at  all  this  trouble  for  nothing,  and  yet 
will  cry  out  to  God,  or  to  his  minister,  '  What  need  all  this  . 
ado  to  be  saved  V  Ask  a  gasping  man  on  his  death-bed,  |  ) 
whether  this  labour  had  not  been  better  laid  out  for  heaven? 
And  whether  heaven  or  earth  will  pay  a  man  better  for  his 
care  and  pains  ?    What !  doth  the  Lord  himself  cry  out  to  . 

sinners,  /' Lay  not  up  for  yourselves  a  treasure  on  earth,  / 
where  rust  and  moth  doth  corrupt,  but  lay  up  for  yourselves  / 
a  treasure  in  heaven,  &c."  "  Seek  first  the  kingdom  of 
God,  and  his  righteousness.  Sec."  "  Labour  not  for  the  food 
which  perisheth,  but  for  that  which  endureth  to  everlasting 
life^."  And  shall  men  that  call  themselves  Christians  say, 
that  this  is  more  ado  than  needs  ? 

Thus,  sinners,  will  your  minds  be  changed,  if  ever  you  be 
converted :  you  will  then  be  quite  of  another  mind  con- 
cerning the  world,  and  God,  and  the  wicked,  and  the  godly, 
than  now  you  are.     I  tell  you,  God  will  unteach  you  again 
all  these  false  opinions  about  these  matters,  which  the  devil, 
the  world,  and  the  flesh  have  been  so  long  teaching  you. 
It  is  hid  work  to  unteach  you  first,  and  then  to  teach  yon 
better  things :  this  will  be  so.    You  that  now  say  you  will 
never  believe  but  a  man  may  be  saved  without  so  much  ado ; 
you  will  never  believe  that  none  shall  be  saved  but  those 
that  are  thus  changed;  you  will  never  believe  that  God 
maketh  so  great  a  matter  of  sin  as  preachers  talk  of:  if  God 
will  convert  and  save  you,  he  will  make  you  believe  it. 
Even  the  most  confident  of  these  conceits  will  be  changed. 
Be  not  too  peremptory,  man,  God  can  yet  shew  thee  so 
much  mercy  as  to  change  thy  mind  :  he  hath  changed  as 
self-conceited  men's  minds  as  thine,  and  hath  shaken  as 
confident  opinions  as  these  :  Paul  thought  himself  as  wise 
as  you,  before  his  conversion,  and  telleth  us,  ''  I  verily 
thought  myself  that  I  ought. to  do  many  things  contrary  to 
the  name  of  Jesus.''    But  when  God  had  struck  him  down, 
and  amiazed  him  with  his  glory,  &nd  then  illumii^ated  him 
with  his  saving  light,  he  cried  out,  '*  Lord,  what  wouldst 
thou  have  me  to  do  ?"    Acts  ix.  6.     And  this  with  trembling 
and  astonishment.    And  Tit.  iii.  3.    He  telleth  you  what 

^  Matt.  vi.  19,  20.  33.    John  ▼!.  27. 


32  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

he  thought  then  of  his  former  courses :  "  We  ourselves 
were  sometime  foolish,  disobedient,  serving  divers  lusts  and 
pleasures';"  but  how  was  he  healed  ?  ver.  4, 5.  \*  But  after 
that  the  kindness  and  love  of  God  our  Saviour  towards  man 
appeared,  not  by  works  of  righteousness  which  we  have 
done,  but  according  to  his  mercy  he  saved  us  by  the  washing 
of  regeneration  and  renewing  of  the  Holy  Ghost."  You  say 
you  will  never  be  of  another  mind ;  aye,  but  God  can  make 
you  of  another  mind :  his  light  cannot  be  overcome  by 
your  darkness,  if  he  mean  you  so  much  mercy  as  to  shine 
in  upon  your  souls.  This  is  the  fourth  part  of  the  change 
of  men's  understandings  from  error  to  saving  truth  in  the 
matters  of  salvation. 

11.  The  second  part  of  the  work  of  conversion  is  upon 
the  Heart  or  Will,  to  which  this  change  of  the  mind  or  un- 
derstanding is  preparative :  and  in  this  change  of  the  heart, 
there  are  these  several  parts  observable.  L  The  will  is 
brought  to  like  what  it  disliked,  and  to  dislike  what  it  liked 
before*  2.  It  is  brought  to  choose  what  it  refused ;  andjto 
consent  to  that  which  it  would  not  consent  to.  3.  It  is 
brought  to  resolve,  where  it  was,  either  resolved  on  the  con- 
trary, or  unresolved.  4.  The  several  Affections  are  changed, 
of  love  and  hatred,  desire  and  aversion,  delight  and  sorrow, 
hope  and  despair,  courage  and  fear,  and  anger,  and  content, 
and  discontent.  In  all  these  respects  the  converted  is 
changed,  which  we  must  therefore  speak  of  in  their  order. 

1.  The  first  change  that  God  maketh  on  the  heart  or 
will  in  the  work  of  conversion  (after  the  preparatory  works 
which  we  now  pass  over)  is,  in  the  complacency  or  displa- 
cency  of  it :  he  causeth  that  to  savour  or  relish  as  sweet  to 
the  will,  which  before  was  bitter :  the  soul  receiveth  a  new 
inclination ;  it  liketh  that  which  before  it  disliked,  not  only 
by  a  mere  approbation,  but  by  a  willing  closure  of  the  heart 
therewith.  So  that,  these  two  things,  a  New  Inclination, 
and  a  New  Complacency,  do  go  to  make  up  this  first  part 
of  the  work.  Before  conversion  the  very  bent  of  man's 
mind  is  toward  the  things  below,  and  his  heart  is  against 
the  things  of  God :  he  relisheth  the  things  below  as  sweet ; 
and  it  pleaseth  him  to  possess  them,  or  to  think  of  possess- 
ing them,  but  he  hath  no  pleasure  in  God,  nor  in  thinking 
or  hearing  of  the  life  to  come  :  all  things  please  or  displease 


1^         TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  33 

a  man,  according  as  they  agree  or  disagree  to  his  inclina- 
tion ;  and  as  they  seem  to  him  either  suitable  or  unsuitable* 
Things  do  not  please  or  displease  according  to  their  own 
goodness  or  badness,  but  according  to  the  qualification  of 
him  that  apprehendeth  or  entertaineUi  them.    To  the  hungry 
soul  every  bitter  thing  is  sweet,  but  the  full  soul  loathetE 
the  honey-comb  \    What  life  can  be  more  pleasant  to  a 
glutton  or  drunkard,  than  to  pour  in  and  stuff  their  paunch? 
And  to  any  sharp  stomachy  how  good  is  their  meat?     But 
when  a  man  is  sick,  there  is  scarce  a  greater  torment  than 
to  eat  or  drink,  when  the  stomach  goeth  against  it.    Oh 
how  they  loathe  it,  and  cannot  get  it  down !    They  had 
rather  cast  the  daintiest  fare  into  the  channel,  than  take  it 
into  their  stomachs  ;  so  it  is  with  the  sick,  unrenewed  soul : 
he  hath  no  pleasure  in  God,  nor  any  holy  things :  it  goeth 
against  his  heart  to  think  of  them,  or  seriously  to  speak  or 
hear  much  of  them.     He  marvelleth  how  other  men  can  find 
80  much  delight  in  reading,  and  hearing,  and  praying,  and 
the  like ;  for  his  part  he  is  weary  to  bear  it ;  though  for 
fashion,  or  fear  of  God's  wrath  he  comes  to  church,  or  saith 
over  a  few  words  of  hypocritical,  heartless  prayer,  yet  he 
usually  makes  no  long  matter  of  it ;  but  he  longeth  till  it 
be  done,  *  and  he  is  glad  when  it  is  over ;  therefore  the 
Scripture  calleth  such,  enemies  to  God,  and  haters  of  him ; 
(or  their  hearts  are  not  with  him,  though  with  their  tongues 
they  may  draw  near  himS    Iknow  it  is  a  very  common 
thing  with  almost  all  men  to  profess  that  God  hath  more  of 
their  hearts  than  their  pleasures,  profits,  or  any  thing  else ; 
but  it  hath  blinded  them  so,  that  they  know  not  themselves : 
otherwise  it  would  be  a  very  easy  matter  for  them  to  per- 
ceive that  their  very  hearts  are  turned  away  from  God. 
Many  poor  sinners  are  even  willing  to  cheat  their  souls  with 
a  Ue,  when  they  might  know  that  their  hearts  have  no  de- 
Ught  in  God  ;  but  that  the  very  thoughts  of  him  and  of  his 
word,  and  seiTice,  and  everlasting  life,  are  rather  grievous 
to  them ;  and  as  the  psalmist  saith,  "  God  is  not  in  all  their 
thoughts  J'    *'  The  Lord  knoweth  their  thoughts,  that  they 
are  vain^"    Well,  this  is  then  the  first  qhange  that  God  by 
his  renewing  grace  doth  make  upon  the  heart ;  he  tumeth  it 

<*  Prov.  xxTU.  7.  ^  Isa*  xxix.  13.     Matt.  xv.  3. 

f  Psal.  X.  4.    xciv.  11. 

VOL.    VII.  D 


34  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSIQM. 

to  himself,  he  giveth  it  j^  new  inclination  and  bias :  he  first 
openeth  men's  eyes  to  see  God's  excellency  and  tlie  excel* 
lency  of  those  glorious  things  which  he  hath  promised ;  and 
thereby  draweth  their  hearts  unto  them.  It  is  a  great  and 
di£Sjcult  matter  to  set  the  heart  of  man  upon  heaven,  but 
Gdd  can  do  it,  and  doth  it  in  this  great  .change.  I  know 
the  best  are  stilL  earthly  in  part,  and  too  much  in  the  dark, 
ancl  to6  backward  to  the  things  of  God,  and  God  hath  not 
near  that  room  in  their  hearts  as  he  deserves,  and  as  they 
could  wish  he  had  :  yet  a  wonderful  change  is  made  on  them : 
they  that  had  no  savour  of  God  and  glory  before,  do  now 
savour  nothing  else  so  much  ;  they  can  truly  say  as  David, 
though  perhaps  not  so  feelingly  as  he,  "  Whom  have  I  in 
heaven  but  thee,  and  there  is  none  on  earth  that  I  de- 
sire besides  thee  ^"  He  that  scarce  thought  of  God  before, 
now  his  mind  runs  upon  him  ;  now  his  thoughts  are, 
whether  God  be  reconciled  to  him,  or  not :  and  ho^  God 
i^proveth  of  him,  and  his  ways  :  were  he  sure  of  his  favour 
he  would  think  hitnself  happy  :  could  he  but  know  him,  and 
enjoy  him  more,  he  had  the  very  desire  of  his  heart.  It  is 
his  greatest  trouble  that  he  is  no  nearer  him,  and  no  more 
fit  to  please  and  honour  him ;  and  God  hath  no  more  room 
in  his  heart.  Unfeignedly  he  grudgeth  at  the  remnants  of 
sin,  that  they  should  so  weaiy  and  grieve  the  Spirit  of  God, 
and  hinder  his  more  sensible  enjoyment^  of  his  love ;  it 
grieveth  him  that  any  of  that  room  in  his  heart  should  b^ 
taken  up  by  fleshly  and  worldly  vanities,  which  he  knoweth 
doth  of  right  belong  to  Christ.  It  is  his  care  to  give  him 
yet  better  entertainment,  and  to  get  out  those  remnants  of 
sin  and  vanity,  that  God  at  last  may  have  it  all  to  himself. 
It  is  his  daily  business  to  sweep  out  this  dung,  and  dress  up 
his  disordered  heart  for  Christ;  and  glad  he  -is  when  he 
can  but  find  any  signs  of  his  presence,  and  feeleth  any 
stirring  of  his  grace  ;  and  when  he  can  but  move  towards 
him  more  swiftly  by  a  stronger  love  ;  this  is  the  true  condi- 
tion and  temper  of  a  converted  soul ;  all  other  men  do  but 
talk  of  God,  but  it  is  only  these  that  give  him  their  heart. 
Sirs,  I  would  fain  make  this  as  plain  as  I  can  to  you,  and  I 
would  fain  have  you  try  as  we  go  along,  whether  this  change 
has  been  made  in  your  own  hearts  or  not.     You  know  that 

e  Psal.  Ixxiii.  i5. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  35 

there  is  someUiing  or  other  that  every  man  is  most  pleased 
in,  and  his  mind  is  most  towards;  and  this  complacency 
and  bent  of  the  mind,  is  the  very  spring  of  almost  all  his 
conversation ;  but  if  he  have  no  pleasure  iti  it,  nor  mind  to 
it,  he  will  neglect  it,  whatsoever  you  can  say  or  do.     Here 
is  the  true  root  of  the  difference  between  the  hearts  of  the 
carnal,  and  of  the  spiritual :  before  a  man  is  converted,  his    ^ 
mind  is  not  towards  God,  but  upon  other  things ;  but  after- 
wards nothing  is  so  near  and  dear  to  him.    Mark  the  dis-       i 
covery  of  both  these  states,  Rom.  viii.  5 — 9.  **  For  they  that      j  - 
are  after  the  flesh  do  mind  the  things  of  the  flesh ;  but  they 
that  are  after  the  Spirit  the  things  of  the  Spirit*     For  to  be 
earnally  minded  is  death ;  but  to  be  spiritually  minded  is  life 
and  peace.    Because  the  carnal  mind  is  enmity  against  God : 
for  it  is  not  subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither  indeed  can 
be.   So  then,  they  that  are  in  the  flesh  cannot  please  God.; 
But  ye  are  not  in  the  flesh,  but  in  the  Spirit,  if  so  be  that  the 
Spirit  of  God  dwell  in  you.    Now  if  any  man  have  not  the 
Spirit  of  Christ,  he  is  none  of  his."    Here  you  see  in  the 
very  words  of  the  Holy  Ghost  a  plain  description  of  these 
two  diflTerent  conditions  of  men ;  till  a  man  be  converted^ 
his  mind  is  more  on  his  fleshly  pleasure  or  commodity,  or 
credit  in  the  world,  Uian  in  God  or  the  happiness  of  the 
world  to  come.    Whatsoever  he  may  say  or  pretend  to  the 
love  of  God,  yet  God  kno weth  that  his  mind  is  another  way  : 
but  when  converting  grace  comes,  it  taketh  off  the  old  bias> 
and  setteth  on  a  new  one ;  and  now  the  man  that  was  car* 
nally  minded  is  become  spiritually  minded.     Sinners,  if  you 
would  but  enter  into  your  own  hearts,  and  ask  them  what     { 
it.  is  that  seemeth  best  to  you  in  all  the  world  ;  what  it  is     | 
that  most  pleaseth  you ;  what  you  would  have  if  you  might     j 
have  your  choice ;  by  this  you  might  know  the  bent  of  your     ^    ' 
mind  j;  ^nd  so  know  whether  you  are  indeed  converted,  or 
not.    You  think,  it  may  be,  that  you  may  have  worldly  and 
fleshly-  minds,  and  yet  have  grace  too  :  and  that  you  may 
set  your  hearts  most  upon  your  fleshly  and  worldly  pleasures, 
and  yet  be  the  children  of  Qod^;  but  deceive  not  yourselves^ 
it  cannot  be  :  believe  it,  it  cannot  be.     Oh  that  those  men 
did  think  of  this,  that  drown  their  hearts  in  the  cares  of  this 
Ufe ;  or  wilfully  run  on  in  gluttony,  drunkenness,  or  other 
fleshly  delights.    If  ever  you  escape  the  tormenta  you  have 


36  TREATISE    OF  CONVERSION. 

deserved,  if  ^ver  you  will  see  the  face  of  God  in  peace,  those 
hearts  must  be  turned  quite  another  way;  those  delights 
must  grow  bitter  to  you  :  you  must  be  ashamed  of  your  pre- 
sent pleasure  ^.  And  your  souls  must  abhor  them  in  com- 
parison of  Christ,  and  even  abhor  j^ourselves  for  all  your 
abominations  ^  And  cast  them  all  away  as  dross  and  dung, 
and  account  all  as  loss  for  the  winning  of  Christ,  which  now 
you  think  your  greatest  gain  ^.  Oh  sinners,  how  low  will 
all  these  things  be  then  in  your  hearts  ?  When  you  look 
upon  all  the  glory  of  this  world,  it  will  be  no  more  lovely 
than  a  dead  carcase  in  your  eyes :  for  you  will  be  cruci- 
fied to  the  world,  and  the  world  to  you.  If  a  man  would 
then  offer  you  all  the  kingdoms  and  glory  of  the  earth,  it 
would  be  but  as  a  chip  to  you,  it  would  stink  in  your 
thoughts  if  it  tended  to  deprive  you  of  everlasting  glory. 
Many  infirmities  may  stand  with  grace,  but  a  carnal  or 
worldly  mind  in  a  prevailing  sense  cannot.  **  Love  not  the 
world  nor  the  things  of  the  world,  for  if  any  man  love  the 
world,  the  love  of  the  Father  is  not  in  him  "."  I  know  there 
are  few  men  so  foolish  and  ungodly,  but  will  say  with  their 
tongues,  that  God  is  better  than  the  creature,  and  heaven 
than  earth,  and  would  give  it  as  their  judgment  under  their 
hand,  and  confirm  it  with  an  oath,  that  they  do  not  dissem- 
ble: yea,  but  the  question  is  of  the  inclination  and  com- 
placency of  their  hearts ;  which  do  these  men  love  better, 
and  which  dt>  they  mind  as  the  most  suitable  good  ?  Never 
tell  ine  that  their  estimation  of  God  is  sincere,  unless  it 
affect  the  heart  with  aii  answerable  complacency  and  incli- 
nation to  him :  they  may  apprehend  it  as  truth  that  God  isr 
the  chief  good,  but  they  do  not  truly,  that  is  thoroughly,  ap- 
prehend it. 

But  when  converting  grace  comes,  it  doth  this  work.  I 
know  when  the  best  Christians  have  reached  to  the  great- 
est knowledge  of  God,  and  sense  of  his  love,  which  in  this 
life  they  may  expect,  they  will  still  be  looking  higher  after 
more.  And  the  apprehension  of  that  which  they  yet  come 
short  of,  will  much  darken  the  apprehension  of  their  present 
attainment :  infiniteness  will  quite  overmatch  both  our  ap- 
prehensions and  our  affections :  but  though  we  are  ready  to 

»»  Rom.  vi.  21.  ^  »  Ezek.  xxxvu  21.  k  PhU.  iii.  8, 9. 

»  1  Joh5  a.  15. 


TKBATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  37 

call  our  present  glimpse  and  taste  of  God,  a  very  nothing, 
when  we  compare  our  knowledge  of  him  with  our  ignorance, 
and  our  enjoyments  with  our  wants  ;  yet  when  we  compare' 
these  small  things  with  all  the  pleasures  or  profits  of  this 
world,  we  see  that  we  have  chosen  the  better  part.    Alas, 
the  poor  converted  soul  hath  quickly  a  taste  of  the  vanity  of 
this  world  in  the  very  first  heart-breaking  and  humbling 
that  he  was  brought  into  ;  when  his  sin  is  set  in  order  be- 
fore Irim,  and  the  voice  of  the  law  doth  make  his  heart  to 
tremble,  and  an  angry  God  doth  look  him  into  terrors,  what 
then  can  all  the  world  do  for  his  relief?    ^ow  sensibly  then 
doth  he  say.  Oh,  silly-comforters  !  what  should  I  do  if  I  had 
no  better  hopes !     Oh,  what  contemptuous  thoughts  and 
speeches  then  hath  he  of  all  these  things  that  he  once  so 
much  valued !     Qe  thinketh  he  can  scarce  find  words  that 
are  base  enough  for  them.     If  he  could  find  worse  than 
Paul's  losses,  and    dross,    and  dung,  and  dogs-meat,  he 
would  do  iU     O  that  men  would  now  in  the  day  of  their 
prosperity   bethink  themselves   of   this,   which  all  shall 
know  at  last.    It  is  a  most  doleful  sight  to  any  man  of 
wisdom  and  compassion   to  see  men  that  have  wounded 
and  leaden  consciences,  to  run  up  and  down,  after  pleasure 
and  profit,  as  if  these  would  heal  them,  which  have  made 
their  wounds ;  men  that  are  even  undone  for  want  of  heal- 
ing, and  are  within  a  step  of  hell,  and  will  certainly  and 
very  speedily  be  there,  if  Christy  by  saving,  renewing  grace, 
do  not  recover  them,  do  quite  forget  the  nature  of  their 
distress,  and  the  thing  they  want,  and  mind  the  toys  of 
worldly  things,  as  if  they  would  save  them.    What,  still  is 
sin  sweet  to  you,  when  it  hath  made  such  work  against 
your  souls  ?     Still  is  this  world  so  lovely  in  your  eyes,  when 
it  hath  enticed  you  already  to  th^  very. brink  of  hell?  'Oh 
poor  bewitched  souls,  that  will  dote  upon  that  which  you 
confess  deceiveth  you!     That  will  dig  your  own  graves 
with  such  excessive  pains,  and  purchase  a  room  in  ever- 
lasting torments  at  so  dear  a  rate  ?    Well,  if  ever  God  will 
have  mercy  on  your  souls^  he  will  show  you  another  kind  of 
pleasure  and  felicity ;  he  will  acquaint  you  with  that  which 
shall  be  worth  your  labour;  he  will  bring  those  sick  dis- 
tempered souls  to  another  relish  than  now  they  have.    He 
will  make  you  spit  out  this  dirt  and  dung,  and  thirst  for  the 


\ 


38  TRSATISB  OF    CONVERSION. 

liyiag  water  that  shall  spring  np  in  yon  to  everlasting  life  ^ 
And  instead  of  your  over-eager  seeking  the    food  that 
perisheth^  he  will  make  you  hunger  after  the  bread  of  life^. 
What  the  unsanctified  man  doth  most  love,  we  may  see  by 
experience ;  we  see  what  he  seeks  after  partly  by  his  Ufe; 
and  will  you  see  out  of  Scripture  yet  more  fully  which  way 
the  heart  of  the  sanctified  is  inclined  ?    ''  The  lore  of  God 
is  shed  abroad  in  your  hearts  by  the  Holy  Ghost  V    They 
**  are  confident  that  nothing  can  separate  them  from  diis 
love^  neither  height  nor  breadth  S  &c."    They  can  some- 
times ^peal  to  Christ  himself  with  Peter/  *'  Lord,  thorn 
knowest  that  I  love  thee  V    ''  Oh  how  I  love  thy  Lawf 
said  David,  "  it  is  my  meditation  day  and  night,  yea,  I  love 
them  exceedingly ',''  saith  he ;  '*  above  gold  V'  above  their 
appointed  or  necessary  food  V'  st^ith  Job.    '*  Thy  word  was 
the  joy  and  rejoicing  of  my  heart  V'  saith  Jeremiah.    So 
vehement  was  Paul  against  those  men  that  could  not  love 
the  Lord  of  love,  that  he  pronounoeth  them  accursed  widi 
the  greatest  curse  ^.    "  Thy  law,"  saith  David,  **  is  within 
my  heart.    How  amiable  are  thy  tabernacles,  O  Lord.    My 
soul  longetb,  yea,  even  fainieth,  for  die  courts  of  the  Ldtd, 
my  heart  and  my  flesh  crieth  out  for  the  living  God.  BlesBisd 
are  they  that  dwell  in  thy  house ;  blessed  is  the  man  whose 
strength  is  in  thee,  in  whose  hearts  are  the  ways  of  them* 
My  soul  fareaketh  for  the  longing  it  hath  to  thy  judgm^its 
at  all  times.    Thou  art  my  God,  early  will  I  seek  thee ;  my 
soul^thirsteth  for  thee,  my  flesh  longeth  for  thee ;  to  see  thy 
power  and  thy  glory  as  I  have  seen  thee  in  the  sahcttiary. 
Because  thy, loving-kindness  is  better  than  life,  my  lips 
shall  praise  thee.    Thus  will  I  bless  thee,  while  I  live,  I  will 
lift  up  my  heart  in  thy  name.     My  soul  shall  be  satisfied  as 
with  marrow  and  fatness^  and  my  mouth  shall  praise  thee 
with  joyful  lips,  when  I  remember  thee  upon  my  bed,  and 
meditate  om  thee  in  the  night  season'.'^ 

2.  The  second  part  of  the  change  of  the  heart  is  in  its 
intents.  Conversion  setteth  a  man  upon  right  ends.  All 
the  work  of  a  man's  life  lieth  in  intending  certain  ends,  and 

«  John  iv.  14.  «  John  vi.  17.  P  Rom.  v.  5. 

<l  Horn.  viu.  39.  ^  John  xxi.  15.  •  Psal.  cxix.  167; 

•     «  Ver.  1«7,  "  Chap,  xxiii.  12.  «  Chap.xv.  16. 

y  1  Cor.  xw.  Jf.  «  Psal.  xl.  8.  Ixxxiv.  1,  Sf.  cxix.  fO.  Ixiii.  1—3. 


TRSATISE   OF    CONVERSION.  30 

uRing  certain  means  to  obtain  them.    And  all  the  work  of 
Christianity  lieth  in  intending  right  ends,  and  in  using 
right  means  to  obtain  them.    The  chief  part  of  man's  cor- 
ruption in  his  depraved  natural  state,  doth  consist  in  this, 
that  he  intendeth  wrong  ends  :  that  is  a  man's  end,  which 
he  accoiinteth  his  felicity,  his '  treasure,  bis  chiefest  good, 
and  which  he  useth  all  things  else  to  obtain.    Whatsoever 
you  think  the  best  thing  in  the  world  for  you,  and  had 
rather  have  it  than  any  thing  else ;  and  whatsoever  you 
principally  seek  after  in  your  life,  and  think  yourself  most 
happy  if  you  could  obtain  it,  and  think  yourself  most 
miserable  if  you  miss  of  it,  and  therefore  had  rather  lose  all 
than»  that,  and  make  it  your  main  business  to  be  sure  that 
you  may  enjoy  it,  that,  and  nothing  else  but  that,  is  youi^ 
end.     In  general,  every  man's  happiness  is  his  end,  and  this 
nature  itself,  as  nature,  doth  so  far  adhere  to,  and  intend^ 
that  no  man  can  do  otherwise,  and  there  is  no  note  of  man^s 
not  intending  this.     But  generals  are  nothing,  but  as  they 
are  foond  in  particular  things  :  when  it  comes  to  the  partl^ 
cular  object  of  fruition,  and  what  it  is  wherein  men's  hap- 
piness doth  consist,  there  it  is  that  the  depraved  nature 
doth  most  damnably  err.     For  every  carnal  man  doth 
apprehend  it  the  best  condition  for  him  to  enjoy  his  carbal 
pleasure,  and  profit,  and  vain-glory  in  this  world  ;  or  if  he 
took  for  a  life  lx>  come,  he  would  have  it  consist  of  such 
kind  of  pleasures  as  he  here  enjoyed  in  this  life ;  and,  there- 
fore, his  very  heart  is  most  set  upon  these  sensual  worldly 
things :   he  hath  a  nature  so  suitable  to  them,  that  be 
savonreth  these  as  the  sweetest  delights,  and  things  fitt(?st 
for  him  ;  and,  therefore,  his  very  business,  and  daily  care 
and  woric  in  the  world,  is  to  get,  or  increase,  or  keep,  or 
enjoy  and  draw  out  the  sweetness,  of  these  sensual  things. 
So  that  an  earthly  man  hath  an  earthly  mind,  and  earthly 
ends,  as  Christ  said  to  Nicodemus  *.    That  which  is  bom  of 
tlie  earth  is  earthly ;  and  a  fleshly  man  hath  a  fleshly  mind, 
and  fleshly  ends,  as  I  before  shewed,  from  Rom.  viii.  7^  they 
cannot  see  in  the  love  of  God,  or  the  enjoyment  of  him,  so 
certain,  so  suitable  a  good  for  them,  as  may  be  their  felicity, 
and  better  to  them  than  these  earthly  things.     Either  they 
doubt    whether  the    happiness  which    they    see    not    be 

'  John  iii.  6. 


40  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

true^  or  a  mere  delusion ;  or  else  they  think  that  it  is  too  far 
off,  and  a  place  too  strange  to  them  to  be  their  felicity. 
They  think  that  God  and  man  are  at  too  great  a  distance  to 
be  so  mutually  loTed,  and  that  he  is  so  strange  to  us,  as  to 
be  an  unsuitable  object  for  our  highest  love.  Nay,  because 
of  his  holiness,  justice,  and  the  other  blessed  perfections 
of  his  nature,  and  because  he  will  judge  the  ungodly  world 
unto  perdition  ;  therefore  their  hearts  are  even  against  him, 
and  they  that  call  him  their  God,  have  a  secret  enmity  to 
him.  So  that,  before  conversion,  it  is  the  sinful  miserable 
state  of  all  men,  that  God  is  not  their  end ;  he  hath  not 
their  hearts.  It  is  not  he  that  they  most  seek  after  in  their 
lives,  nor  in  whom  their  souls  apprehend  the  chiefest  delight 
and  felicity  to  consist.  But  it  is  in  the  fleshly  pleasures,  or 
profits,  or  honour  of  this  world.  It  is  some  creature,  and 
not  God,  that  hath  men's  hearts,  their  care,  and  earnest  dili- 
gence.   Hence  it  is,  that  they  are  said  to  **  have  their  por- 

X  tion  in  this  life,''  Psa.  xviii.  14.  and  are  there  called  *\  the  men 
of  the  world.'*  They  are  such  as  "  lay  up  a  treasure  on  earth  S" 
They  think  none  -can  shew  them  any  greater  good,  and 
apprehend  not  the  joy  of  the  light  of  God's  countenance  ^. 
They  seek  only  ''what  they  shall  eat  or  drink,  or  wherewith 
they  shall  be  clothed,"  for  this  is  the  custom  of  the  ''  na-> 

y     tions  of  the  world  *'.**    "  They  make  light  of  Christ,*'  and 

/  the  kingdom  that  he  .promiseth,  in  comparison  of  their 
farms,  their  oxen,  their  worldly  wealth  and  pleasure^* 
"  They  lay  up  treasures  for  themselves  here,  but  are  not 

7^  rich  towards  God  ^."  If  they  have  abundance,  they  cheer 
their  souls,  as  having  "  enough  for  many  years,"  and  so  re- 
solve to  "  eat,  drink,  and  be  merry  ^*"  If  they  are  called  by 
a  trial  to  part  with  all  for  Christ,  and  the  hope  of  everlast- 
ing glory,  "  they  go  away  sorrowful  because  of  their  riches,'* 
or  the  deamess  of  that  which  they  are  called  to  forsake.  Ii| 
a  word,  they  are  such  as  a  compassionate  man  should  men- 

V  .  tion  with  tears,  "  they  are  enemies  to  the  cross  of  Christ,*' 
though  not  always  to  his  name.  "  Their  end  is  destruction, 
their  God  is  their  belly,  their  glory  is  in  their  shame,  they 
mind  earthly  things  «."    They  "  make  provision  for  the  flesh 

»  Matt.  vi.  18, 19.  »»  Psal,  iv.  6,  7.  c  Luke  xii.  «9— SI. 

^  Luke  xii.  «1.  Matt.  xxii.  5.  «  Luke  xii.  21.  f  Luke  xH.  19. 

If  Phil.  Hi.  19.  _      ^     ^ 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  41 

to  fulfil  the  lusts  thereof**."  They  have  their  "  good  things 
in  this  life/'  when  the  godly  have  their  **  evil  things/*  and 
therefore  when  others  ^*  are  comforted^  they  shall  be  torment- 
ed ^J*  All  these  Scriptures  declare  to  you  what  are  the  ends 
of  unconverted  men^  and  where  are  their  hearts.  **  For  where 
their  treasure  is^  there  will  their  hearts  be  ^. 

But  when  the  Spirit  comes  with  converting  grace^  the 
very  ends  and  intents  of  a  man  are  changed  :  as  he  findeth 
the  greatest  excellency  in  God,  and  the  things  of  the  life  to 
come ;  so  hath  he  there  laid  up  his  treasure  ^-and  fixed  his 
hopes  :  he  hath  reckoned  what  the  world  is  worth,  and  how 
much  it  can  afford  him,  and  how  long  it  will  last  him,  and 
what  it  will  do  for  him  in  the  greatest  need ;  and  upon  cer- 
tain knowledge  of  its  vanity  and  insufficiency  he  hath  re- 
solved that  this  cannot  make  him  happy.     If  ever  you  be 
converted,  you  will  know  all  this  to  be  true  by  experience 
that  I  say  :  that  it  is  the  work  of  converting  grace  to  make 
a  man  consider  whether  all  that  he  can  hope  for  in  this 
world  will  make  him  indeed  a  happy  man,  and  upon  consi- 
deration he  findeth  it  will  not  serve  his  turn.     God  bringeth 
it  now  dose  to  his  thoughts  and  affections,  so  that  the  mere 
splendour,  and  ■  sugared  taste,  and  glozing  appearances  of 
worldly  things  cannot  deceive  him  as  formerly  they  did ; 
but  h^  understandeth  now  the  utmost  they  can  do  for  him ; 
he  considereth  how  that  they  do  but  flatter  him  into  the 
grave  and  hell,  and  leave  him  when  he  is  in  the  depth  of 
his  distress  :  before  he  was  as  the  prodigal,  that  thought  it 
hard  keeping  to  live  in  his  father's  house,  but  abroad  and 
among  his  companions  and  pleasures  he  would  go;  but 
when  he  comes  to  himself,  he  finds  that  he  must  home  again^ 
or  perish  with  hunger :  the  poor  soul  then  layeth  all  these 
things  to  heart ;  alas,  thinks  he,  I  may  be  merry  a  few  days 
more  if  1  hold  on  in  this  compcmy  and  course,  but  will  this 
life  last  for  ever?    I  may  be  somebody  in  the  world  for  a 
Vhile,  if  I  can  be  rich  6r  honourable ;  but  how  long  can  I 
keep  it  when  I  have  got  it?  I  may  please  my  mind  among 
my  fiiends  and  worldly  businesses,  my  com  and  cattle,  my 
pleasures  and  prosperity  ;  but  what  shall  I  do  shortly  when 
these  things  are  gone  ?    I  may  think  now  that  I  can  live 

»»  RoiD.  nil.  12, 14.  *  Luke  xti.  «6.  ^  Matt.  vi.  «1 . 

>  Matt«¥i.fO. 


42  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

without  the  favour  of  God,  but  can  I  do  so  when  I  have  no- 
thing else  to  live .  on  ?    Alas !  is  that  fit  to  be  instead  of 
God  and  heaven  to  me,  that  will  not  keep  me  out  of  the 
grave,  nor  keep  my  strongest  or  most  beautiful  parts  from 
rotting  in  the  dust ;  no,  nor  keep  my  soul  from  everlasting 
torments  ?     Oh,  what  shall  I  do  if  I  have  not  a  better  por- 
tion than  this  ?    Woe  to  me  that  ever  I  was  bom,  if  I  be 
not  better  provided  for  before  I  die !    Thus  doth  God  take 
off  the  soul  in  conversion  from  its  former  ends,  and  makes  it 
say.  Lord,  these  will  not  serve  my  turn ;  O  put  me  not  off 
with  such  things  as  these.    When  the  soul  is  thus  loosened 
from  its  former  delight,  and  seeth  that  it  must  be  some- 
thing else  that  must  be  his  happiness  ;  then  doth  thd  Spirit 
by  the  word  of  God  reveal  to  him  the  certainty  and  A^ 
fulness  of  that  glory  that  iiT  to  be  had  by  Christ  in  the  evfer^ 
lasting  love  and  fruition  of  God ;  and  then  he  sees   dist 
though  it  be  not  here  to  be  had,  yet  it  is  to  be  had  hereai^ 
ter ;  and  that  man  was  made  to  higher  things  than  he  intth 
hitherto  minded.     Now  he  begins  to  bethink  Jiimself  in 
good  sadness,  that  heaven  may  be  had,  and  that  for  him  ais 
/     well  as  others ;  the  impossibility  is  taken  away  by  Christ^ 
f  and  the  door  is  set  open ;  the  glory  is  inconceivable,  and  if 
i  ^  he  can  but  once  get  it  he  is  made  for  ever.    These  thoughts 
now  work  in  the  heart  of  the  man  that  never  had  sucii  lively 
working  thoughts  of  it  before.    So  that  now  he  feeleth  fai^ 
heart  bum  within  him,  when  he  hath  once  found  where  bis 
happiness  is  tabe  had ;  presently,  the  Spirit  having  touched 
his  heart  with  an  effectual  inclination  thereto,  he  in  heni 
upon  it,  and  sets  his  heart  and  face  to  seek  it.    And  no^^ 
this  is  his  business ;  comparatively  he  hath  nothing  else  t6 
do.     Now  it  must  be  God  or  none ;  heaven,  or  nothing  that 
will  serve  his  turn.     Now  if  God  should  offer  him,  *  I  will 
give  thee  mirth  and  riches  for  a  thousand  years  without  in- 
terruption, I  will  give  thee  the  good  word  6f  all  aboutthee;'! 
will  make  thee  the  greatest  man  on  earth,  and  thou  shalt  Ulilve 
the  world  at  will ;   but  not  my  love  and  grace  in  Christ,  tior 
the  hope  of  everlasting  glory  :'   this  would  be  the  saddest 
news  that  ever  came  to  his  soul.     It  is  not  now  the  same 
thing  that  would  please  him  as  before.     Tell  not  him  now 
of  profit  and  pleasure ;  it  is  everlasting  pleasure  that  he 
I     must  have.    He  hath  atiother  joumey  to  go,  another  home 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  43 

to  regard,  another  kind  of  trade  to  -drive  on  in  the  world 
than  before  he  had.  Now  he  ''  looketh  for  a  city  that  hath 
foundations,  whose  builder  and  maker  is  God ;''  and  there- 
fore doth  take  himself  but  as  a  stranger  on  earth,  and  one 
that  sojourneth  in  a  foreign  country  ^  Now  the  best  of 
worldly  things  will  no  longer  satisfy  them ;  but  they  "  desire 
a  better  country,  that  is,  an  heavenly.  Wherefore  God  is 
not  ashamed  to  be  called  their  God,  for  he  hath  prepared  for 
them  a  city  "*."  Now  they  are  soundly  persuaded  that  "  there 
is  a  God,  and  that  he  is  tiie  rewarder  of  them  that  diligently 
seek  him ;''  and  that  this  reward  is  beyond  the  grave,  and 
therefore  they  hate  respect  to  the  recompence  of'  reward, 
and  are  content  to  submit  to  the  sufferings  of  this  life,  that 
so  they  may  obtain  a  better  resurrection  **•  He  now  is  to 
this  world  as  a  dead  man  in  comparison  ;  '' crucified  to  the 
worlds  and  the  world  to  him  ^.'^  ''  And  his  life  is  hid  with 
Christ  in  God ;  and  when  Christ,  who  is  his  life,  shall  ap- 
pear, then  shall  he  appear  also  with  him  in  glory  p." 

Beloved  hearers,  you  may  easily  conceive  that  it  is  a  very 
great  change,  that  causeth  a  man  to  have  other  ends  than 
ever  be  had  before,  and  that  quite  turneth  the  very  bent  of 
his  heart  and  life,  and  maketh  him  have  quite  a  contrary 
basifiess  in  the  world,  than  before  he  had ;  that  setteth  a 
man's  face  anotAier  way,  so  that  he  that  before  went  one 
way,  doth  n<yw  go  the  clean  contrary.  Alas !  it  is  not  the 
restraint  of  a  wicked  woHl  or  two,  or  the  outward  civilizing 
of  your  lives,  that  is  true  conversion.  It  is  such  a  change 
as  I  am  now  describing  to  you,  that  turneth  you  quite  ano- 
ther way.  If  you  are  true  Christians  that  hear  me,  you  know 
it,  or  may  know  it,  to  be  thus  with  yourselves.  For  cer- 
tamly  you  have  had  experience  of  this  in  your  souls.  It 
were  no  impossible  thing  for  you  now,  if  you  were  but  will- 
ing, to  know  certainly  whether  you  be  converted,  yea  or  no. 
One  l¥ould  think  that  a  man's  end  might  be  discerned  above 
all  things.  Cannot  you  know  what  you  like  and  love  best? 
And  what  you  would  fain  have  ?  And  what  you  cannot  be 
content  without?  And  what  you  drive  at  in  the  course  of 
your  lives  ?  And  what  you  place  your  hopes  and  happiness 
in,  which  you  will  have,  though  you  part  with  all  to  get  it? 

>  Hcb.  xi.  9, 10, 13.  «  Heb.  xi.  16.  »  Heb.  xi.  6,  26,  35. 

*»Giil.Tl.  14.  PCol.ni.  3,  4.     / 


H 


44  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

And  what  it  is  that  beareth  down  all  things  else  in  your 
hearts  and  lives?  Why  something  or  other  doth  this,  what- 
soever it  be,  and  this  is  your  end.  And  one  would  think, 
that  this  which  so  much  takes  one  up,  and  so  much  sways, 
and  is  the  business  of  his  life,  might  be  well  discerned. 
Sirs,  deal  truly  between  God  and  your  souls.  What  hath 
your  hearts  ?  What  game  do  you  follow  ?  What  do  you 
mind  above  all  ?  I  ask  not  whether  you  set  not  a  foot  now 
.and  then  out  of  the  way :  but  which  way  are  you  travelling? 
For  earth  or  for  heaven  ?  O  that  you  would  but  be  faithful 
to  your  souls  in  this  trial !  I  have  often  told  you,  and  will 
tell  you  yet  again,  and  desire  you  to  remember  it  as  long  as 
you  live,  that  this  is  the  true  difference  between  every  true 
converted  soul,  and  all  hypocrites  and  carnal  men  in  the 
world ;  *  That  to  the  true  Christian  indeed,  God  and  ever- 
lasting glory  is  his  main  end,  and  religion  is  his  business, 
and  all  worldly  things  come  in  but  upon  the  bye,  and  there- 
fore he  can  have  them,  or  be  without  them ;  whereas  with 
all  hypocrites  and  carnal  men,  the  pleasing  of  their  flesh  in 
this  world,  is  their  main  end,  and  therefore  worldliness,  vo- 
luptuousness, or  ambition  is  their  business,  and  the  matters 
of  God  and  religion  come  in  but  upon  the  bye,  and  there- 
fore they  can  taste  of  them,  or  they  can  be  without  them.' 
I  would  you  would  keep  this  one  mark  by  you  while  you 
live:  by  which  you  may  judge  yourselves  without  deceit; 
and  so  the  true  Christian  need  not  deny  his  sincerity,  nor 
the  hypocrite  imagine  that  he  is  what  he  is  not,  but  might 
certainly  know  that  he  is  yet  in  the  flesh.  And  thus  I  have 
shewn  you  what  is  the  second  part  of  Conversion  of  the 
Will  or  Heart,  even  the  change  of  a  man's  ends  and  inten- 
tions. 
\  3.  The  third  part  of  the  work  of  Conversion  on  the  Will, 

is  this.  The  same  Spirit  in  the  word,  which  changeth  a  man's 
ends,  doth  also  change  him  as  to  the  chpice^of^  mei^,  and 
causes  him  to  choose  what  before  he  refused,  and  to  consent 
to  that  which  before  he  did  reject.  Heaven  is  not  obtained 
in  every  way,  but  in  God's  own  way,  and  if  a  man  should 
never  so  much  intend  God  as  his  end,  and  yet  not  seek  him 
in  the  means  of  his  appointment,  (though  I  think  there  is 
none  that  doth  so,  or  that  ever  these  indeed  are  separated, 
yet  I  say,  if  such  a  thing  were,)  it  would  not  save  him.     It  is 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  45 

not  enough  to  know  where  we  must  be  happy^  but  we  must 
also  know  how  to  come  thither.  There  is  but  one  right  way 
to  salvation  in  the  main^  and  he  that  will  be  saved  ^  must  be 
sure  to  hit  it. 

(1.)  There  are  two  sorts  of  means  or  ways  to  salvation  ^ 
not  contrary, but  one  subordinate  to  the  other;  but  one  is 
the  chief  and  principal  way,  and  that  is  Jesus  Christ  and  the 
Holy  Ghost ;  the  other  is  the  subservient  way,  and  that  is 
the  means  that  Christ  hath  appointed  under  himself.    When 
man  was  lost,  there  was  no  remedy  for  him  in  heaven  or 
earth,  but  the  ever-living  Son  of  God  to  come  down  from 
heaven,  and  take  our  nature,  and  perfectly  obey  the  law, 
and  suffer  for  our  disobedience ;  this  he  did  in  compassion 
to  mankind.     He  was  born  of  a  virgin,  without  man,  and 
without  sin,  by  the  power  of  the  Holy  Ghost.     He  lived  an 
earth  without  sin  also,  and  proved  his  Godhead  and  doc- 
trine by  his  works ;  he  raised  the  dead,  healed  the  lame,  the 
blind,  the  sick,  and  at  last  offered  himself  on  the  cross  a  sa* 
crifice  for  our  sins,  in  suffering  that  which  we  must  else 
have  suffered ;  and  being  buried,  he  rose  again  on  the  third 
day,  and  after  forty  days  in  the  sight  of  his  disciples,  ascended 
into  heaven,  where  he  is  now  in  our  nature  interceding  for 
us,  and  preparing  us  a  place.    And  before  he  departed  from 
earth,  he  ordained  this  law,  and  sent  his  disciples  to  preach 
it  to  all  the  world ;  that  all  they  that  would  renounce  their 
own  works,  and  trust  their  souls  upon  his  redemption  and 
ransom,  and  forsake  the  world,  the  flesh,  and  the  devil,  and 
take  him  for  their  only  Lord  and  Saviour,  and  so  return  to 
God  himself,  shall  receive  the  pardon  of  all  their  sin,  and 
be  made  the  heirs  of  everlasting  glory.     And  he  hath  pro-^ 
mised  also  to  send  his  sanctifying  Spirit  to  dwell  and  work 
in  those  that  believe.    Thus  you  see  what  is  the  principal 
means  of  salvation :  it  is  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who  having 
suffered  for  us,  is  offered  to  us  in  the  Gospel,  to  be  our  Head    ^  ^ 
and  Husband,  our  Saviour  and  our  Lord. 

Two  things  ^are  here  of  absolute  necessity  to  our  salva- 
tion: the  one  is,  to  believe  unfeignedly  that  Christ  is  the     'p, 
Messiah  and  Redeemer  of  the  world :  and  the  second  is,  to  ac-^      I  . 
cept  him  as  he  is  offered  to  us  in  the  Gospel.  Now  the  heart  of     ^  j 
an  unconverted  sinner  is  against  both  these.  .  1.  It  doth  not 
soundly  believe  the  truth  of  Christ's  incarnation^  resurrec- 


46  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

tion^  and  ascension,  but  only  by  a  common,  customary,  su- 
perficial belief:  but  of  this  I  spoke  before.  2.  He  doth  not 
welcome  Christ  to  his  soul,  as  he  is  offered  to  him ;  partly 
because  men  are  unhumbled  and  feel  not  the  need  of  Christ; 
for  **  the  whole  need  not  a  physician,  but  they  that  are, 
sick :''  and  partly,  because  that  Christ  would  reclaim  them 
from  the  way  that  they  take  pleasure  in,  and  would  bring  them 
into  a  way  diat  is  against  their  hearts ;  and  many  other  causes 
there  are.  So  that,  even  where  Christ  seemeth  to  be  muoh 
honoured,  and  men  will  bow,  and  do  the  greatest  reverence 
to  his  name,  and  profess  themselves  his  faithful  servantSi 
and  that  they  trust  their  salvation  on  him  alone :  yet  for  all 
this  they  do  not  savingly  or  sincerely  believe  in  hini.  They 
have  learned  to  speak  well  of  Christ,  and  they  are  willing  to 
be  forgiven  by  him;  but  they  never  laid  hold  on  him,  as  a 
drowning  man  would  do  on  that  which  might  save  him ; 
nor  did  they  ever  feel  at  their  hearts,  what  a  glorious  work 
of  mercy  he  hath  wrought  in  their  redemption ;  and  how 
much  he  hath  done  for  them,  and  how  much  he  hath  engag- 
ed their  souls  unto  himself.  They  never  had  any  of  the 
saints'  admiration  at  the  height,  and  breadth,  and.  length, 
and  depth  H^  nor  have  they  been. taken  up  with  this  astonish- 
ing project  of  love,  as  men  thus  redeemed  at  such  a  rate 
must  be ;  nor  would  they  ever  consent  that  Christ  should 
cule  over  them,  and  mortify  their  lusts,  and  bring  them  back 
from  the  flesh  to  God :  and  iSierefore  they  are  unbelievers^ 
even  while  they  profess  the  faith  of  Christ.  But  when  coa« 
verting  grace  comes,  as  it  raiseth  the  soul's  estimation  of 
Christ,  as  I  have  said  before,  so  doth  it  open  the  heart  to 
his  entertainment.  O  wjbat  glad  news  is  it  to  desolate, 
self-condemned  souls  to  hear  that  the  Son  of  God  hath 
bought  them  with  his  blood !  It  is  life  to  them  to  hear  the 
glad  tidings  of  their  redemption.  It  is  the  very  work  of  the 
Spirit  in  conversipn,  to  bring  the  soul  into  this  admiration 
of  redemption  ;  and  to  shew  it  the  liches  of  grace  in  Christ, 
and  the  mystery  of  this  blessed  work>  when  bis  eye6  are 
opened  to  see  how  God  designed  here  the  magnifying  of  his 
love ;  and  how  glorious  God  is  in  his  mercy  in  the  work  <^ 
redemption,  even  as  glorious  as  in  his  power  in  the  woriL  of 
creation.    And  when  his  wounded  soul  hath  well  understood 

^  -    <  s  Eph.  ui.  18. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION  47 

how  Christ  hath  made  him  a  plaster  of  his  blood,  this  makes 
him  haye  other  thoughts  of  Christ  and  redemption  than  be* 
fore  he  had.     O  how  much  sweeter  to  him  are  the  hearing, 
and  reading,  and  thinking  of  this  Christ,  than  before  they 
were !     He  that  before  did  shut  the  door,  and  let  Christ 
knock  and  knock  again,  and  could  so  often  churlishly  resist 
him ;  O  how  the  case  is  now  altered  with  him !     Now  Christ 
is  to  him  as  cordial  waters  to  a  man  in  a  swoon  \  as  a  hand 
to  a  drowning  man ;  as  drink  to  a  man  in  a  burning  fever ; 
as  a  pardon  to  a  man  condemned  to  die :  the  name  of  Christ; 
doth  even  revive  him,  when  withal  he  can  but  have  some 
hope  that  he  is  his.     O  could  you  now  assure  him  that 
Christ  is  willing  to  pass  over  all  his  unkind  resistance,  and 
to  be  firiends  with  him,  and  wash  his  soul  in  his  blood,  how 
glad  a  man  would  he  be !    When  sin  stares  him  in  the  face, 
O  then  for  a  Christ  to  make  his  peace !    When  conscience 
is  up  in  arms  against  him,  now  how  doth  Christ  befriend 
him,  to  step  in  and  bear  the  stroke  !    He  saith  not  as  Pha- 
raoh, '' Who^is  the  Lord,  that  I  should  serve  him  ?^'    Nor 
as  they  in  Job  xxi.  14.  ''  Depart  from  us,  we  desire  not  the 
knowledge  of  thy  ways :''  nor  as  the  common  rebels  of  the 
world,  **  We  will  not  have  this  man  to  reign  over  us  ^i"  but 
as  Laban  to  Abraham's  servants,  "  Come  in  thou  blessed  of 
the  Lord ;  wherefore  standest  thou  without  ?    For  the  bouse 
and  room  is  prepared  for  thee ".''    Too  long  have  I  made 
my  soul  a  sink,  a  sty,  a  dungeon,  when  it  might  and  should 
liave  been  thy  dwelling,  and  the  temple  of  thy  Holy  Spirit. 
Come  in,  Lord>  and  let  sin  possess  thy  room  -no  longer. 
Hath  here  been  room  for  the  world,  and  room  for  fleshly 
lusts  and  pleasures,  and  is  there  no  room  for  thee?     Let  thy 
graces  dwell  where  sin  hath  dwelt ;  here  is  room  for  them 
all ;  or  if  there  be  not  room,  O  cast  out  sin,  and  make  thee 
room.    Thou  that  madest  all  things  ready  for  me,  before 
thoQ  calledst  me  by  the  voice  of  the  Gospel,  make  all  within 
Already  for  thyself,  and  cast  out  him  that  is  stronger  than 
I,  and  hath  held  my  heart  so  long  ill  a  peaceable  captivity. 
Only  thy  presence  now  will  do  me  good :  I  die  if  thou  revive 
me  not :  I  am  devoured  by  the  jaws  of  the  devouring  lion,  if 
thou  do  not  rescue  me.     1  am  tormented  by.  my. own  con- 
science, and  nothing  but  thine  applied  blood  can  mollify  it. 

'  Luke  xix.  27*  "  Gen.  xxiv.  31. 


48  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

I  am  accused  and  condemned  by  the  law,  which  I  have  bro- 
ken, and  what  shall  I  say  or  do,  if  thou  come  not  in,  and 
plead  thy  blood,  and  answer  for  me  ?  I  have  many  thou- 
sand sins  that  will  be  brought  in  against  me ;  and  how  shall 
I  come  off,  but  by  the  virtue  of  thy  sacrifice?  Hell  is  ready 
to  devour  me  everlastingly,  if  thou  do  not  save  me.  Save 
me,  save  me.  Lord,  or  I  perish !  I  am  lost,  undone,  a  danm- 
ed  man  if  thou  do  not  save  me.  The  devils  that  have  de- 
ceived me,  do  but  stay  to  torment  me  if  thou  do  not  save 
me.  A  just  and  angry  God  will  be  to  me  everlastingly  a 
'  consuming  fire,  if  his  indignation  be  not  quenched  by  thy 
blood  and  intercession.  There  is  no  other  name  under  hea- 
ven by  which  I  can  be  saved  \  No,  no,  it  must  be  Christ 
alone,  it  must  be  Christ  or  none,  Christ,  or  I  am  lost.  Now 
doth  the  poor  soul  look  upon  Christ  as  on  the  fire  or  air, 
that  he  cannot  live  without ;  he  sees  an  absolute  necessity 
for  him  in  the  main,  and  an  absolute  necessity  for  every  par- 
ticular. Every  sin  that  he  remembereth,  telleth  him  that 
he  hath  need  of  Christ.  Every  corruption  that  he  feeleth 
stirring  within  him,  telleth  him  of  the  absolute  need  of 
Christ.  Every  temptation  that  assaulteth  him,  telleth  him 
of  the  need  of  Christ.  He  never  falleth  into  any  known  sin 
again,  (which  alas !  is  too  often,)  but  it  maketh  him  see  the 
need  of  Christ.  He  findeth  he  could  not  live  a  day  or  an 
hour  safely  without  him :  he  cannot  wash  away  one  spot, 
nor  master  one  corruption  without  him.  When  he  goes  to 
God  in  prayer  for  his  soul,  he  then  findeth  the  need  of  Christ; 
he  dare  not  draw  near  if  Christ  take  him  not  by  the  hand  ;' 
he  knows  there  is  no  admittance  in  any  other  name.  He 
durst  not  look  God  in  the  face,  nor  name  him,  nor  worship 
him,norhope  for.any  mercy  from  him,  but  through  Christ.  In 
a  wordy  without  Christ  he  dares  neither  live  nor  die.  You 
see  then  where  another  part  of  conversion  lieth  in  this  true 
belief  in  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  You  may  know  and  say  all 
this  of  Christ  before  conversion ;  but  you  never  rightly  ap- 
prehend it  and  feel  it,  till  then. 

And  as  the  merit,  so  the  Spirit  of  Christ  is  here  compre- 
hended ;  for  I  join  both  together  for  brevity.  It  is  by  his 
Spirit  that  Christ  takes  down  the  strong  contradiction  of 
the  flesh,  and  bringeth  all  in  subjection  to  himself;  as  light 

*   Acts  iv.  ii. 


TREATISE   OF    CONVERSION.  49 

prevaileth  against  darkness,  and  strength  against  weakness, 
and  life  i^inst  death,  so  doth  the  Spirit  prevail  for  Christ 
in  the  souls  of  the  elect.  Before  conversion,  there  is  no- 
thing but  grieving  and  striving  against,  and  quenching  the 
Spirit,  and  using  it  like  an  enemy.  But  now  how  glad  is 
the  soul  of  his  presence !  how  loath  to  grieve  him !  how 
fearful  of  quenching  it !  And  if  by  some  unkindness  the 
Spirit  seem  to  be  withdrawn,  what  moan  doth  he  make ! 
and  how  sadly  doth  he  cry  out  as  David  did ;  "  Restore 
to  me  the  joy  of  thy  salvation,  and  uphold  me  by  thy  free 
Spirit '*:*'  and  if  he  feel  the  Spirit  as  it  were,  departing  from 
him,  he  calls  aloud  with  David,  *'  Cast  me  not  away  from 
thy  presence,  and  take  not  thy  holy  Spirit  from  me "".''  As 
a  living  man  is  loath  to  die,  and  knoweth  that  when  his 
Spirit  is  gone  from  his  body,  he  will  be  a  carcase,  and  there- 
fore will  use  all  possible  means  to  keep  the  soul  and  body 
from  parting,  even  so  the  true  believer  knows  that  if  the 
Spirit  of  God  were  gone  from  his  soul,  the  soul  were  dead 
or  worse  than  dead,  and  therefore  it  is  his  daily  care  to 
keep  the  Spirit  and  his  soul  from  painting.  He  apprehend- 
eth  it  now  to  be  a  blessed  privilege  indeed,  to  have  the  Spi- 
rit of  Jesus  still  within  him,  to  be  his  temple,  and  by  him  to 
be  preserved  from  temptation,  excited  to  duties,  and  anima- 
ted.in  them,  and  sanctified  to  the  service  of  hitt  that  did  re- 
deem him. 

And  now  sirs,  I  must  heeds  say  to  those  of  you  that  are  / 
unconverted,  that  all  these  matters  are  strange  to  you ;  you  \ 
hear  me,  but  you  have  felt  no  such  things  as  these  within 
yourselves.  Oh  what  a  difference  is  there  between  this 
liring  faith  in  Christ,  and  the  name  of  faith,  and  the  image 
of  Christianity,  which  you  boast  of  and  presume  upon ! 
What  a  difference  is  there  between  these  warm  heart-re- 
riring  closures  with  Christ,  and  your  cold  belief  and  dull 
profession !  It  is  one  thing  for  Christ  to  dwell  in  the  heart 
by  faith,  and  another  thing  for  him  to  have  the  custom  of 
ibe  country,  and  the  law  of  the  land  on  his  side,  to  make 
way  for  him.  It  is  one  thing  for  a  man  that  is  well,  to  ho- 
nour a  physician,  and  another  thing  for  a  sick  man  to  seek 
out  to  him,  and  beg  his  help,  and  take  him  for  his  physi- 
cian, and  willingly  take  down  any  thing  that  he  giveth  him. 

■  P8al.li.l2.  "^  Ver.  11. 

VOL.  VII.  E 


50  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

I  pray  you  mark  what  I  say,  because  it  is  the  most  common 
delusion  of  unconverted  men  among  us,  that  they  verily 
think  that  they  truly  believe  in  Christ  already  :  and  there  is 
a  common  belief  that  will^never  save  them,  and  that  they 
take  up  with,  and  look  not  after  the  saving  faith  :  I  cannot 
better  open  the  difference  to  ordinary  capacities,  than  by 
the  aforesaid  comparison.  You  know  a  man  in  health  may 
truly  believe  that  such  a  man  is  an  able  physician,  and  he 
may  speak  well  of  him,  and  honour  him :  now  suppose  a  man 
were  deadly  sick  of  a  consumption,  and  did  not  know  it ;  if 
this  man  honoureth  the  physician  as  much  as  any  other  health- 
ful man,  will  this  cure  him,  or  save  his  life  ?  No,  but  the  pa- 
tient that  prayefli  him  to  come  to  him,  aiid  will  trust  his  life  in 
his  hands,  andwilltake  the  bitterest  medicine  that  he  gives 
him,  and  will  forbear  any  hurtful  meat  or  drink,  be  it  never  so 
pleasant  to  him,  this  is  he  that  is  like  to  be  healed  by  him. 
Christ  is  known  among  us  to  be  the  able  physician  of  souls ; 
we  all  confess  and  praise  his  skill,  and  know  that  he  can  save 
us.  We  all  bear  of  the  freeiless  of  his  cure,  that  he  takes  no- 
thing, but  doth  it  as  soon  for  the  poorest  beggar,  as  th6 
greatest  prince  ;  but  knowing  all  this,  and  speaking  well  of 
him,  will  cure  no  man ;  no,  but  you  must  go  to  him  believ- 
ingly,  and  beg  his  help,  and  take  him  for  your  physidan, 
and  truirt  your  souls  upon  his  blood  and  Spirit,  and  apply 
his  means,  and  take  the  bitterest  cup  that  he  shall  reach 
you,  and  forsake  the  morsels  of  fleshly  pleasure  that  have 
been  sweet  to  you  heretofore.  Do  not  say,  this  is  to  be 
justified  by  works ;  for  this  is  no  other  kind  of  works  than 
what  standeth  in  a  necessary  subserviency  to  Christ,  even 
the  work  of  grace,  itself.  This  is  but  the  work  that  Christ 
calls  thee  to,  John  vi.  29.  "  This  is  the  work  of  God,  that 
ye  believe  in  him  whom  the  Father  hath  sent  :*'  this  is  but 
"coming  to  Christ  that  ye  may  have  life ^r"  and  "taking 
his  yoke  and  burden  on  you,  that  you  may  find  rest  to  your 
souls '."  When  the  poor  people  followed  him  on  earth 
from  place  to  place,  and  hearkened  to  his  words,  and  took 
up  his  cross  that  they  might  be  his  disciples,  and  be  justified 
and  saved  by  him ;  he  did  not  tell  them,  this  is  sinful  work- 
ing for  justification.    To  conclude,  if  ever  you  be  converted, 

y  Johnv.  40.  ^  Matt,  xi.  29. 


TREA118E    OP   CONVERSION.  Si 

thus  must  you  follow  Christy  and  thus  must  you  yield  to  the 
Spirit  which  you  now  resist. 

Thus  I  haye  shewed  ycm  how  the  converted  soul  doth 
accept  of  Christ  and  the  Spirit^  on  the  terms  and  to  the 
ends  that  are  mentioned  in  the  Gospel.  Christ  Jesus  is  ac- 
cepted as  the  Redeemer  of  their  souls,  that  hath  satisfied 
justice  by  being  a  ransom  for  their  sins,  and  hath  merited 
everlasting  glory  for  them ;  and  as  the  Lord  that  by  the  ti- 
tle of  his  redemption,  must  rule  them;  as  their  head  that  ^ 
must  provide  for  them  and  supply  all  their  wants  ;  and  as 
the  fountain  and  treasure  of  all  that  grace  that  must  save 
them ;  the  Holy  Ghost  is  entertained  as  he  that  must  sanc- 
tify and  guide  them  in  the  way  to  life  everlasting,  having 
already  sealed  the  truth  of  the  doctrine.  ^ 

2.  We  are  next  to  consider  how  the  work  of  conversion 
doth  turn  the  heart  or  will  of  man  to  these  means  that  stand 
in  a  subordination  to  Christ :  and  indeed  a  natural  man  is 
disaffected  not  only  to  Christ,  but  to  all  his  ordinances : 
he  that  mindeth  not  the  end  nor  the  means,  cannot  heartily 
mind  the  subordinate  means. 

(1.)  One  means  that  God  hath  appointed  to  salvation,  is, 
confession  of  sin,  with  a  broken  heart  for  the  sin  confessed. 
A  man  unconverted  doth  neither  see  any  such  evil  in  sin  as 
to  drive  him  to  this  confession,  nor  to  break  his  heart  in 
godly  sorrow  ;  nor  will  his  heart  be  brought  to  consent  to 
the^thfitl  performance  of  that.  A  heart  unhumbled  and 
unchanged  doth  think  it  but  a  piece  of  childish  folly  to 
weep  and  mourn  for  sin,  and  lament  it  before  the  world : 
they  are  too  stout  to  stoop  to  a  disgraceful  acknowledg-- 
ment :  they  scorn  to  be  so  base  as  to  make  an  open  confes- 
sion of  their  sins,  or  to  lament  their  misery.  They  feel  no 
such  burden  upon  their  consciences  as  should  drive  them 
into  such  repentance  to  seek  to  God  and  man  for  ease  ;  and 
if  ihey  confess  to  God  in  secret,  it  is  without  a  broken 
heart ;  they  will  not  endure  so  much  pain  as  to  feel  their 
own  condition,  and  ^have  their  sores  so  faithfully  searched 
as  is  necessary  to  a  cure  :  this  afflicting  of  the  soul,  their 

souls  abhor. 

But  when  converting  grace  hath  changed  their  hearts, 
0  how  the  case  is  altered  with  them  !  Then  godly  sorrow  is 
even  as  it  were,  natural  to  them ;  and  they  that  could  not  en- 


\ 


52  TREATISE  OF   CONVERSION. 

dure  it,  do  now  even  cherish  and  indulge  it.  It  is  a  volun- 
tary sorrow ;  they  mourn  and  would  mourn  like  him  that 
cried  out,  "Labour  not  to  comfost  me  *  ;*'  that  is,  till  God 
will  comfort  me.  As  a  sore  that  is  not  ripe  will  not  break 
nor  run,  and  that  which  is  not  suppurable  is  oft  incurable, 
but  when  it  is  brought  to  suppuration  and  ripeness,  then  it 
will  even  break  of  itself,  and  run  without  any  more  ado  :  so 
is  it  with  the  impenitent  soul  and  the  penitent ;  till  repen- 
tance comes,  the  soul  is  not  ripe  ;  ministers  are  every  day 
applying  to  it  all  the  mollifying,  dissolving  remedies  they 
can  devise,  to  bring  it  to  suppuration,  but  all  will  not  do; 
their  hearts  will  not  break,  not  a  tear  of  unfeigned  repen- 
tance will  come  forth ;  they  hide  their  sin,  and  scorn  to 
make  a  penitent  confession.  But  Oh!  when  grace  hath 
done  the  work,  and  softened  the  heart,  and  ripened  the  sore, 
then  it  will  come  out  of  its  own  accord.  1  would  not  have 
you  take  this  upon  my  bare  word,  but  see  whether  the 
Scripture  say  not  so  before  me.  Acts  ii.  37.  They  were 
once  a  stubborn  generation  of  sinners  that  the  apostles  bad 
there  to  deal  withal,  that  durst  have  their  hands  in  the 
blood  of  Christ  himself ;  but  when  they  were  once  con- 
verted, "  they  were  pricked  at  the  heart,  and  said  to  Peter 
and  the  rest  of  the  apostles.  Men  and  brethren,  what  shall 
we  do?''  This  did  imply  a  confession  of  their  sin:  q.  d. 
We  confess  ourselves  guilty,  and  we  find  our  souls  in  a 
miserable  case  under  the  wrath  and  curse  of  God :  O  give 
us  your  advice  what  we  shall  do.  These  were  three  thou- 
sand people  at x)nce  that  were  brought  to  this  conviction 
and  confession.  See  how  freely  all  comes  out,  when  the 
heart  is  once  pricked  by  the  Word  and  Spirit !  The  like 
you  know  was  the  case  of  Saul  at  his  conversion.  Acts  ix, 
5,  6.  as  stout  a  hearted  sinner  before  as  another ;  but  when 
God  overpowered  him  by  converting  grace,  then  he  calls 
out  with  trembling  and  astonishment,  "Lord,  what  wilt 
thou  have  me  to  do  ?  "  And  when  he  relateth  his  own  life 
and  manner  of  conversion.  Acts  xxii.  4,  5.  how  freely  doth 
he  confess  his  former  persecution!  And  again,  in  Acts 
xxvi.  10,  11.  confessing  that  he  was  a  persecutor,  "yea,  and 
punished  Christians  in  the  synagogue,  and  compelled  them 
to  blaspheme ;  yea,  was  mad,  yea,  exceedingly  mad  against 

*  Isa.  xxii.  4. 


TR£ATISE   OP   CONVERSION.  63 

them/'    The  like  doth  he  confess.  Tit.  iii.  3.    Acts  xvi.  the 
apostles  met  with  a  sturdy  jailor  that  put  them  iiu  the  inner 
prison,   and  their  feet  fast  in    the  stocks ;   but  when  an 
earthquake  opened  the  doors  and  set  them  free,  and  a  heart- 
quake  brought  him  in,  and  laid  him  at  their  feet,  and  grace 
took  the  opportunity  to  do  its  work,  then  he  crieth  out  with 
trembling,  ver.  30.  "  Sirs,  what  must  I  do  to  be  saved  ?  * '  ^ 
David  tells  you  his  own  experience,  Psal.  xxxii.  5,  6.    "  I 
acknowledged  my  sins  unto  thee,  and  mine  iniquity  have  I 
not  hid :  I  said,  I  will  confess  my  transgression  unto  the  Lord ; 
and  thou  forgavest  the  iniquity  of  my  sin :  for  this  shall 
every  one  that  is  godly,  pray  unto  thee  in  a  time  when  thou 
mayst  be  found."    And  after  his  grievous  fall,  the  fifty-first 
Psalm  will  shew  you  his  confession.     So  Acts  xix.   18. 
"Mahy  confessed  and   shewed  their  deeds,  and  brought 
their  books  and  burned  them  before  all  men."    These  were 
such  as  were  reputed  wise  and  learned  before ;  but  when 
grace  had  changed  them,  they  openly  confess  that  all  was 
folly.     Many  more  such  examples  we  have,  and  precepts 
where  God  requireth  it ;  Ezra  x.  1.    N^i  ix.  2,  3.     Lev.  v 
6.     xvi.  21.    xxvi.  40.     Numb.  v.  7.     And  indeed,  pardon 
itself  is  offered  on  these  terms,  1  John  i;  9.     "  If  we  confess, 
he  is  faithful  and  just  to  forgive.*'     Prov,  xxviii.  13.  "  He 
that' covereth  his  sins  shall  not  prosper;  but  whoso  con- 
fesseth  them  and  forsaketh  them,  shall  have  mercy."    James 
V.  16.  "Confess  your  faults  one  to  another,  and  pray  one 
for  another."     And  indeed  in  the  first  times,  no  man  was 
baptised  that  did  not  confess  his  sins  openly  before,  and 
renounce.them ;  even  John  himself  caused  the  Jews  to  con- 
fess their  sins  before  he  would  baptize  them  ;  Matt.  iii.  &. 
Murk  i.  5.     So  in  Jer.  iii.  12, 13.  "Return,  thou  backsliding 
Israel,  saith  the  Lord,  and  I  will  not  cause  mine  anger  to 
lall  upon  you ;  for  I  am  merciful,  saith  the  Lord ;  and  I  will 
not  keep  mine  anger  for  ever ;  only  confess  thine  iniquity, 
that  thou  hast  transgressed  against  the  Lord,  &c.    Turn,  O 
baokslidittg  children,  saith  the  Lord,  for  I  am  married  to 
you,  &c."    You  see  here  that  conversion  hath  ever  confes- 
sion accompanying  it.     He  that  tumeth,  must  and  will  con- 
fess, as  the  repenting  church,  Jer.  xiv.  20.    "We  acknow- 
ledge, O  Lord,  our  wickedness,  and  the  iniquity  of  our  fa- 
thers -,  for  we  have  sinned  against  thee :  do  not  abhor  us 


d4  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSIOt^. 

for  thy  name's  oake."    And  Hob.  v.  16.  it  was  the  Lord's 
threatening  against  them,  "  I  will  go  and  return  unto  my 
place,  till  they  acknowledge  their  offence,  and  seek  my  face ; 
in  their  afflictions  they  will  seek  me  early."     So  tiiat  ii  is 
most  evident  that  conversion  openeth  the  heart  and  mouth 
to  confess,  even  to  God  or  man,  or  both,  according  as  the 
case  requireth :  not  but  that  a  Judas  will  do  it  at  last  in 
horror,  and  cry  out,  "  I  have  sinned  in  betraying  the  ihno- 
cent  blood :"  but  this  is  forced  by  horror,  and  not  by  a  gra- 
cious change.    Many  a  thief  will  confess  their  sin  at  the 
gallows,  that  are  not   converted;  but   when    conversion 
£omes,  the  very  mind  being  changed,  is  set  against  the  sis,    . 
and  therefore  they  long  to  cast  it  up.     Hiding  tendeth  to 
keeping,  confession  tendeth  to  parting  with  sin  :  therefore 
he  that  is  penitent  doth  not  hide  it,  so  far  as  he  hath  any 
call  to  confess  it.     O  sirs,  that  the  Lord  would  bring  this  to 
the  hearts  of  some  of  you  that  most  need  it :  one  may  hear 
by  your  speeches  that  conversion  is  far  from  your  hearts. 
How  many  among  us  are  there  that  have  little  ciMise  to  jus- 
tify themselves,  ai^  yet  we  cannot  bring  them  to  any  con- 
fession, but  what  is  general  and  common  with  alU  That  we 
are  sinners !  «But  for  any  hateful  and  disgraceful  sin,  they  ex- 
cuse it,  and  hide  it ;  and  have  nothing  but  good  almofitt  to  say  of 
themselves.    You  shall  not  hear  one  sad  complaint  almost 
that  they  will  make  against  themselves.     If  you  have  a  firo- 
ward  wife,  you  will  complain  of  that ;  if  disobedient  chil- 
dren, if  careless  or  stubborn  servants,  you  will  complain  of 
them.     If  you  have  unkind  friends  or  neighbours,  you  will 
complain  of  them ;   but  of  yourselves,  where  you  have 
greatest  reason  to  complain,  we  can  scarce  hear  a  word.    If 
any  do  you  wrong,  you  are  still  hairping  upon  it,  and  mak- 
ing the  worst  of  it ;  but  for  all  the  wrong  that  you  have 
done  to  God  and  your  own  souls,  you  can  lightly  pass  it 
over,  and  make  little  of  it :  and  who  heareth  you  half  so  oft 
complain  of  yourselves  as  others?    What  say  you,  i£^  it>not 
thus  with  many  among  us  ?    You  know  not  how  sad  a  mark 
this  is.     1  tell  you,  if  ever  converting  grace  come  to  your  ,- 
hearts,  it  will  make  you  pour  out  complaints  against  your- 
selves ;  it  will  make  you  cry  with  David,  "  I  have  done 
fooKshly  ^ :"   and    with    Paul,    "  I    was     foolish,   disobe- 

^  2  Sam.  xxiv.  10. 


TREATISE    OF   CONVBH^ION.  55 

dient,  I  was  mady  yea,  exceedingly  mad  ^ :  '^and,  "  O  wretched 
man  that  I  am,  who  shall  deliver  me^  ?''  Mark  the  uncon- 
verted man  in  his  talk,  and  you  shall  hear  him,  if  not  as  the 
Pharisee,  saying,  ''  I  am  not  like  other  men ;"  yet  at  least 
saying  nothing  against  himself,  but  nibbling  at  the  good 
names  of  others,  and  making  the  devil  more  servants  than 
indeed  he  hath,  and  God  fewer,  by  their  venturous  censures ; 
they  have  the  hypocrite's  eye  that  was  not  made  to  see  it- 
self, that  is  good  for  little,  but  to  spy  motes  in  others'  eyes ; 
but  the  beam  in  their  own  they  cannot  see.  The  infirmities 
of  those  that  fear  God  they  can  talk  of;  but  a  graceless 
heart  and  a  worldly,  fleshly  life  of  their  own  doth  little  trou- 
ble them.  But  when  converting  grace  comes,  you  may 
hear  by  their  very  talk,  that  the  case  is  changed ;  they  have 
nobody  then  to  talk  against,  so  much  as  themselves ;  their 
censures  against  themselves  do  seem  the  most  uncharitable ; 
their  talk  is  most  of  the  sins  of  their  own  hearts  and  lives  : 
and  blame  them  not,  for  these  are  neiirest  them,  and  most 
concern  them:  the  mote  in  their  own  eye  doth  most  grieve 
them,  and  till  liiey  have  wiped  out  that,  they  have  less  mind 
to  look  into  the  eyes  of  others.  In  a  word,  whosoever  is 
justified  of  God,  and  freed  from  condemnation,  is  a  judger 
and  condemner  of  himself ;  1  Cor.  xi.  31.  But  they  that  lie 
under  the  condemnation  of  God,  are  commonly  self-justir 
fiers;   Luke  xvi.  15. 

(2.)  Another  means  that  converting  grace  doth  turn  the 
heart  to,  is,  earnest  prayer  to  God.  A  man  unconverted  is 
a  stranger  to  true  prayer  ;  either  he  doth  nothing  in  his  duty, 
or  that  which  is  next  to  nothing :  commonly  they  will  not 
be  brought  so  much  as  to  the  outside  and  form  of  the  duty  ; 
butif  they  be,  that  is  all;  till  some  affliction  or  conviction 
come  and  awaken  them  to  a  little  more  for  a  time  :  but  they 
never  fall  to. this  work  to  the  purpose,  till  saving  grace  do 
truly  change  them :  a  carnal  heart  feeleth  no  such  need  of 
God  or  mercy,  as  to  drive  him  to  beg  for  it  from  day  to  day. 
He  feiels  himself  well  enough,  and  therefore  saith  with  them 
in  Job  xxi.  16.  "  What  is  the  Almighty  that  we  should 
\  serve  him?  and  what  profit  should  we  have  if  we  pray  unto 
him?"  as  Mai.  iii.  14.  they  scarce  think  it  worth  their  la- 
bour.    It  may  be  for  fear  of  perishing  with  the  ungodly,  and 

•  Acts  xxvi.  11.     Tit.  ui.  3.  *  Rom.  vu.  24, 


56  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

from  some  general  conviction  of  conscience,  they  may  use 
some  formal,  cold  expressions,  or  perhaps  take  up  the  out- 
side of  this  duty  :  but  it  is  not  prayer,  without  the  desires 
of  the  soul  which  carry  out  a  man  to  seek  for  mercy  add  re- 
lief to  God  :  unconverted  men  are  either  dumb  to  this  holy 
duty,  or  their  hearts  are  dumb  while  their  tongues  are 
speaking :  either  they  have  nothing  to  say  to  God ;  or  no- 
thing but  some  words  that  they  get  by  rote,  and  utter  with- 
out the  feeling  of  their  souls ;  or  else  they  have  little  else 
but  words.  Their  consciences  witness,  and  God  himself  is 
a  witness,  that  they  do  not  in  secret  beg  earnestly  for  his 
mercy :  they  do  not  heartily  call  to  him  for  pardoning  grace 
and  sanctifying  grace :  with  their  families  they  do  not 
earnestly  beg  of  God  the  same  mercy,  as  a  people  that  de- 
sire that  he  should  dwell  among  them.  For  where  there  is 
no  true  feeling  of  sin  and  misery,  and  desire  after  grace, 
there  can  be  no  hearty  prayers  to  God  :  what  need  you  any 
further  mark  of  a  graceless  soul,  than  that  they  are  prayer- 
less. 

But  converting  grace  doth  open  the  heart,  and  let  in  the 
Holy  Ghost,  which  is  a  Spirit  of  supplication  ^ ;  and  this 
Spirit  doth  help  their  infirmities,  and  whereas,  of  themselves,. 
*'  they  know  not  what  to  pray  for  as  they  ought,  he  maketh 
request  for  them  with  groans  that  are  unutterable  V  As 
the  new-born  infant,  or  any  living  creature,  will  quickly 
shew  whether  it  be  alive,  by  making  towards  the  parent  or 
dam  for  its  nourishment ;  so  will  the  new-bom  Christian* 
It  is  not  unlikely  that  the  apostle  referreth  to  this  :  ''  We 
have  received  the  Spirit  of  adoption,  whereby  we  cry  Abba, 
Father."  As  the  child  doth  first  learn  to  cry  dad  or  mam ; 
so  doth  the  Christian  first  learn  to  make  out  to  God  as  a 
Father,  and  by  prayer  to  seek  to  him  for  relief;  and  for 
certain,  as  the  Spirit  of  Christ  is  a  Spirit  of  prayer,  so  if 
any  man  "  have  not  this  Spirit,  he  is  none  of  his  K''  The 
evidence  that  God  giveth  Ananias  of  Saul's  conversion,  was 
this,  "  Behold  he  prayeth  ^."  It  was  the  proof  of  Cornelius'a 
grace,  that  "  he  prayed  to  God  always  K"  And  the  angel 
takes  the  time  of  his  pi*ayer,  to  appear  to  him;  and  Peter 
that  must  be  sent  unto  him,  is  found  at  prayer^.     The  new 

•  Zech.  xii.  10.  '  Rom.  vffi.  26,  27.  f  Rom.  viiL  15.  9. 

^  Acts  ix.  11.  <  Acts  z.  S^  ^  Acts  z.  9. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  67 

conYerted  disciples  "  continued  in  prayer*."    It  is  no  small 
part  of  a  Christian's  life  to  ''  continue  instant  in  prayer, 
and  wat(^  in  liie  same  ^"    It  were  easy  to  prove  this  by 
multitudes  of  Scripture  texts :  he  that  hath  not  this  breath 
of  prayer,  is  either  a  dead  man,  or  in  a  dangerous  swoon. 
As  the  poor  child  when  any  thing  hurteth  it,  or  affirighteth 
it,  runs  to  the  mother  or  father  for  help  ;  so  doth  the  poor 
Christian  to  Christ.    He  may  go  to  ministers,  and  go  to 
other  Christians  (as  Cornelius  to   Peter,  because   Christ 
sendeth  him,  and  so  under  Christ) ;  but  it  is  Christ  that  he 
goetk  directly  to,  and  that  he  is  most  with.     He  hath  a  very 
praying  spirit  within  him,  contrary  to  that  dumb  spirit  that 
posaesseth  the  ungodly :  so  that  he  must  needis  go  to  God 
when  any  thing  aileth  him,  and  he  will  not  be  held  back. 
His  soul  would  be  disconsolate,  and  as  David  in  the  wilder- 
ness, Paal.  xlii.  if  he  were  kept  from  God :  he  would  be 
overwhelmed  with  his  troubles  if  he  might  not  go  ease  his 
mind  with  God  :  some  ease  he  may  get  from  ministers  and 
friends,  but  Oh !  if  he  had  not  more  from  God,  his  case 
were  very  aad :  he  is  in  prayer  as  Jeremiah  in  preaching ; 
"  The  word  was  a  consuming  fire  shut  up  in  his  bones,  he 
was  weary  of  forbearing  and  could  not  stay  ^.*'    So  are  his 
sins  and  his  necessities  like  a  consuming  fire  shut  up  in  his 
heart ;  he  is  weary  with  forbearing,  he  cannot  hold  diem,  to 
God  he  must  go,  as  David,  while  he  held  his  tongue,  his 
Borrow  was  stirred,  his  heart  was  hot  within  him,  the  fire 
burned  till  he  spake  to  God:  ^' While  I  kept  silence  my 
bones  waxed  old  ^J'    You  may  better  keep  the  converted 
Christiana  from  food,  or  raiment,  or  home,  or  friends,  than 
keep  them  from  God :  they  had  rather  be  without  a  shop  to 
wotk  in,  a  house  to  dwell  in,  a  bed  to  lie  in,  than  a  place  to 
pray  in.     But  the  best  is,  that  Gbd  hath  sanctified  every 
place  to  him,  and  commanded  him  every  where  to  lift  up 
pure  hands  p.    His  Lord  and  Saviour  haUi  left  him  his  ex- 
ample, who  was  sometimes  in  a  wilderness,  and  sometimes 
in  a  garden,  and  sometimes  in  other  solitary  places,  pur- 
posely for  prayer,  and  so  accustomed  to  one,  that  Judas 
knew  of  it  *».     He  that  was  perfect  yrould  shew  us  his  de- 

»  Acts  ii.  42.  »"  Rom.  xii.2.  Col.  iv.  2.   Eplies.  vi.  18.    "  Jcr.  xx.  8,  9. 

•  V^\.  xxxix.  «,  3.     xxxu.  3.  »»  1  Tim.  ii.  8. 

1  Mark  xiv.  23.    xxvi.  36.    vu  46.    xiv»  32.    Luke  xxii.  41.  44. 


58  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

pendance  on  the  infimte  Godhead,  by  giving  us  an  exailnpk 
of  constancy  in  this  duty :  so  that  we  find  hioti  even  all 
night  in  prayer  to  God*^.  And  all  his  disciples  do  learn  this 
.lesson  of  him^  and  imitate  him.  in  their  measure,  in  this  holy 
I  work.  If  we  ask  for  other  examples,  we  may  find  Comelius 
and  Daniel  at  it  in  their  families  %  Peter  at  it  in  the  house 
top*;  Paul  and  Silas  at  midnight  are  at  it  in  the  inner 
prison  in  the  stocks  ^.  From  every  place  can  the  prayers  of 
the  godly  have  access  to  heaven.  For  God  is  every  where 
present,  and  therefore  though  the  places  of  public  assem- 
blies be  in  a  special  sort  the  house  of  prayer  ' ;  yet  doth  he 
not  coi^Kne  his  prayer  to  that  house.  The  very  soul  of  a 
Christian  is  habituated  to  prayer,  and  therefore  he  doth  it 
as  it  were  continually  ^ :  and  in  every  thing  he  maketh 
known  his  wants  by  it  to  God^  So  that  he  is  seldom  so 
deep  asleep  in  any  lapse  through  security  but  that  more  or 
less  he  breathes  his  breath  of  grace  in  holy  prayer.  If  he 
want  wisdom,  he  asketh  it  of  God,  for  he  know^  that  be 
giveth  liberally,  and  upbraideth  not^  If  he  want  the 
Spirit  itself  in  a  further  measure,  he  goes  to  God  that  hath 
promised  to  give  it  to  them  that  ask  it^  If  he  want  for- 
giveness of  sin,  deliverance  from  any  evil  or  temptation,  it 
is  the  matter  of  his  daily  prayer,  yea^^  so  is  his  very  daily 
breiad,  his  health  and  life,  and>all  the  comforts  of  it :  for  he^ 
knoweth  that  all  things  are  sanctified  by  the  word  and 
prayer  ^.  If  he  be  afflicted,  he  prayeth ;  and  if  in  sickness, 
he  desireth  the  elders  of  the  church  to  pray  with  him^-:  fi>r 
he  knoweth  that  the  effectual  fervent  prayer  of  the  righteous 
availed  much^.  If  the  servants  of  Christ  be  in  troubles, 
it  is  prayers  without  ceasing  that  is  the  means  of  their  re-t 
lief.  Even  (besides  Beoret  prayers  and  church  prayeia  upon 
any  such  iocoasion  of  their  own  and  others  ;  if  a  few  Christ 
'  tianS'Canget  together  to  prayer,  it  is  more  pleasant  to  them, 
than  to  the  drunkard  or  voluptuous,  when  they  can  get  to- 
gether for  sposts  ,or  wickedness.  When  Peter  was  in  prison, 
many  were. got  together  in  a  house  to  prayer,  when  he  came 
and  knocked  at  the  door,  when  the  angel  had  set  him  free^ 

'  Lake  vi.  12.  •  Acts  x.     Dan.  vi.  »  Acts  x.  9. 

«  Acts  xvi.  25.  «  Matt.  xxi.  13.  y  I  Thess.  v.  17. 

»  FhiUiv.  6.  »  James  15,  »>  Luke  xi.  IS. 

fi  1  Tim.  iv.  5.  «»  James  v.  13, 14. 16.  •  James  v.  15.  17. 
f  Acts  xiU  12. 


TRKATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  59 

In  a  word,  the  true  convert  beginneth  his  new  life  in  prayer ; 
he  continueth  it  in  prayer  habitual  or  actual ;  Bometimett 
by  the  secret  motions  of  the  heart,  and  sometimes  by  the 
expression  also  of  his  mouth  ;  and  he  endeth  it,  as  to  this 
world,  most  commonly  in  prayers  :  as  the  Lord  Jesus  him- 
self, as  his  blessed  martyr  Stephen  did,  committing  their 
spirits  to  God  at  the  closing  of  their  eyes  ;  and  the  saints 
do  commonly  follow  them  in  that  course  :  so  by  the  help  of 
these  blessed  gales  we  are  carried  through  the  waves  and 
troubles  of  this  world,  and  by  this  we  land  at  the  last  in   t  \ 
glory.     Never  think  therefore  to  find  a  prayerless  convert,  7  \ 
any  more  than  to  find  a  breathless  living  man.    O !  the    \ 
poor  Christian  feeleth  that  he  cannot  live  without  prayer, 
because  he  cannot  live  without  God.    He  cannot  be  with- 
out it  one  day ;  he  cannot  be  at  home  without  it,  or  abroad 
without  it ;  he  cannot  travel  or  return  home  without  it ;  he 
cannot  labour  without  it  in  the  shop  or  in  the  field ;  but 
when  be  wants  a  place  to  bow  his  knee  in,  he  hath  yet  an 
opportunity  to  bow  his  soul ;  and  if  company  or  business 
do  shut  his  mouth,  yet  it  must  be  business  indeed  that  tjuite 
taketh  off  his  heart ;  for  his  eyes  are  on  God,  as  the  eye  of 
the  servant  on  the  hand  of  his  master,  satth  Ddvid  ^.    Why 
may  I  not  say,  as  the  eye  of  our  dogs,  when  they  wait  on  us 
at  our  tables,  is  towards  us  for  every  bit  they  have ;  >  so  the 
eye  and  dependance  of  the  Christian  for  soul  and  for  body, 
is  upon  God:  and  many  a  secret  ejaculation  doth  he  send 
up,  and  many  a  groan  doth  pass  his  heart,  that  those  that 
even  stand  by  him  are  unacquainted  with.    As  a  beggar  ia 
known  by  his  needy  begging  tone,  so  is  he  known  by  his 
begging  of  God ;  '*  The  poor  nseth  entreaties  ^,"  or  epeciketh 
Bi&pplication ;  you  may  know  them  by  it ;  they  make  ti  trade 
of  it;  they  live  by  begging ;  they  will,  have  no  naj^ :  such 
an  one  is  the  Christian,  that  even  liveth  by  beggi^  as  his- 
very  trade :  as  one  that  must  always  pray,  and  not  be  weary 
or  wax  faints     So  that  this  is  the  second  means  that. con- 
verting grace  doth  turn  men^s  hearts  to.        , 

(3.)  The  third  means*  subordinate  to  Christ  ;and  the 
Spirit,  which  converting  grace  doth  tuarn  the  heart  to,  is, 
the  Word^f  Qod^  whether  heard,  or  read,  or  preached,  or 
any  way  fitly  made  known.    The  Word  is  the  very  seed  that 

f  Fsal*  cxxiii.  2.  ^  Prov.  xviii.  23.  *  Lake  xviiL  1. 


60  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

f   doth  beget  him  to  this  life,  the  immortal  seed  of  God,  which 
\   always  must  remain  in  him  *".     Of  this  incorruptible  seed  is 
I   he  new  bom  ^    And  therefore  it  cannot  be  but  he  must  lo?e 
!   it,  and  desire  it.    The  Scripture  to  a  carnal  man  is  as  a 
I   common  book  :  many  things  in  it  seem  to  be  unlikely,  and 
many  things  even  next  to  foolishness,  because  he  hath  not 
the  Spirit  to  discern  them.     To  all  the  ungodly  it  is  as  a 
!   sealed  book ;  though  some  of  them  know  the  grammatical 
\  and  logical  sense,  none  of  them  taste  the  spiritual  sweetness, 
nor  partake  of  the  life  that  it  begets  in  the  soul.     Therefore 
we  find  the  learned  Papists  so  many  of  them  making  a  jest 
of  Scripture,  even  while  they  confess  it  to  be  the  Word  of 
God.    Some  of  them  daring  to  accuse  the  matter,  and  some 
the  style,  and  many  the  words  and  manner  of  expression, 
as  if  it  were  obscure,  or  unfit,  or  insufficient  to  its  proper 
use :  a  carnal  man  can  easily  spare  it ;  a  chapter  in  the 
Bible  to  him  is  but  as  a  common  story.     Many  an  one  of 
them  can  delight  to  read  a  romance,  or  a  book  of  fables  and 
fictions,  like  *'  The  Knight  of  the  Sun,"  "  The  Seven  Cham- 
pions," or  "  Palmarine,"  or  **  Guy  of  Warwick,"  or  such 
like  wicked  devices  of  men's  brains  that  are  made  to  rob 
God  of  men's  hearts,  and  to  rob  themselves  of  their  time  and 
wit ;  than  to  read  over  the  sacred  story,  and  the  holy  pre* 
cepts  of  Christ,  and  the  spiritual  doctrine  of  faith  and  sal- 
vation.    We  may  see  the  difference  between  men's  dispo- 
sitions towards  God's  Word  in  the  Papists  and  poor  Pro- 
testants, in  the  time  and  place  of  persecution.    The  Protes- 
tants would  make  much  of  one  leaf  of  the  Bible;  they 
would  get  together  to  hear  a  chapter  read,  as  to  a  feast, 
when  they  knew  their  lives  were  endangered  by  it.    The 
Papists  used  all  their  power  to  suppress  it,  to  hinder  the 
promul^tion  of  it,  and  keep  the  people  from  the  knowledge 
•  of  it,  aim  burned  them  at  a  stake  for  the  using  of  it.     Their 
inquisition  in  Spain  and  Italy  inquire  after  it,  as  if  it  were 
some  book  of  treason  or  witchcraft ;  when  the  poor  Chris- 
tians whose  hearts  are  touched  with  it,  do  hide  it  and  keep 
it,  as  the  chiefest  jewel  in  the  world.     Luther  would  not 
take  a  world  for  one  leaf  of  the  Bible ;  his  adversaries  would 
have  been  glad  if  they  could  have  banished  it  out  of  the 
world.     In  the  primitive  church  the  heathen  persecutors  did 

^  Luke  viii.  11.    1  John  iii.9.  »  1  Pet.i.  «3. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  61 

first  seek  after  the  Christian  Bibles  and  other  good  books^  /  | 
that  they  might  burn  them.  And  if  the  ministers  would  ' 
deliver  them  all  the  books^  sometimes  they  would  spare 
their  lives ;  but  the  poor  Christians  would  be  torn  in  pieces 
and  suffer  any  kind  of  death  before  they  would  deliver  them 
one  of  those  books  to  be  burnt.  And  if  any  through  fear 
had  yielded  to  deliver  them^  they  were  ever  after  looked 
upon  by  the  other  Christians^  as  if  they  were  apostates  and 
deniers  of  Christy  and  were  commonly  called  by  the  name 
of  Traditors,  and  the  very  posterity  of  such  was  in  disgrace 
after  them.  In  so  much  that  the  schism  of  the  Donatists 
sprung  from  an  excessive  zeal  on  this  occasion ;  because  a 
bishop*  was  but  ordained  by  one  that  had  been  a  son  of  a 
Traditor  of  the  Bible,  they  separated  from  hiin^  and  from  all 
the  church  that  held  communion  with  him^  for  his  sake. 
So  that  you  may  see  what  thoughts  the  servants  of  Christ 
have  ever  had  of  the  Holy  Scriptures,  and  how  contrary  to 
these  are  the  men  of  the  world. 

And  we  cannot  blame  them,  for  they  know  that  it  was 
by  this  word  that  God  did  first  quicken  them ;  by  this  he 
convinced  them  of  sin  and  misery;  by  this  he  revealed  to      \ 
them  Christ  and  glory.   In  this  is  contained  the  covenant  of 
grace,  the  charter  for  salvation,  and  that  title  to  all  the  mer- 
cies of  this  life  and  that  which  is  to  come.     Here  are  the 
laws  of  heaven  by  which  they  must  live,  and  by  which  they 
must  all  be  judged.    Here  are  those  promises  which  first 
revived  their  distressed  souls;  the  first  cordials  that  did 
refiresh  their  fainting  spirits :  the  first  news  of  pardon  and 
glad  tidings  of  salvation  that  ever  they  had  was  from  hence. 
They  know  it  is  a  book  inspired  from  heaven  by  the  Spirit 
of  God,  containing  the  discovery  of  the  will  of  God ;  and 
the  highest  mysteries,  which  flesh  and  blood  cannot  reveal ;      '  j 
and  that  they  are  matters  also  of  everlasting  consequence,       ' 
to  which  all  the  matters  in  this  world  are  as  nothing,  and 
not  worthy  the  naming  or  once  remembering.    And  do  you 
blame  a  poor  Christian  for  being  in  love  with  this  blessed 
book  ?     Especially  when  he  knoweth  these  tilings  not  by 
bare  hear-say  only,  but  by  many  a  sweet  experience  in  his 
soul ;  many  a  sweet  draught  hath  be  here  drank  in  his  ex-       [ 
tremity ;  and  many  a  feast  hath  his  soul  here  had,  if  he  be  a 
Christian  of  long  standing  and  experience.     But,  however. 


\ 


62  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

this  was  the  means  of  his  conversion,  and  the  very  instru- 
ment of  the  Spirit  for  raising  him  from  the  dead  ;  and  as  the 
Christian  is  so  in  love  with  the  book  of  God,  so  is  he  with 
the  doctrine  of  it,  wherever  he  finds  it.  Any  other  book 
that  is  written  to  explain  and  apply  this,  is  savory  to  him ; 
especially  the  public  preaching  of  this  word,  which  is  most 
eminently  the  standing  ordinance  of  God  for  man's  conver- 
sion and  edification.  The  same  sermons  that  would  have 
made  him  sleep,  or  made  his  head  ache  before  his  conversion, 
do  now  awaken  him,  and  make  his  heart  ache  for  his  former 
folly ;  and  yet  he  loveth  them,  though  they  trouble  and 
grieve  him,  for  he  loveth  that  kind  of  trouble  and  grief 
which  they  beget.  Oh  how  sweet  is  that  word  to  his  soul^ 
which  heretofore  he  was  wont  to  loathe  or  quarrel  at !  He 
could  live  with  David  in  the  temple,  even  day  and  night: 
otheir  men  can  scarce  be  drawn  to  it,  but  for  customs  or  by- 
respects,  but  it  would  be  a  death  to  him  to  be  kepi  away. 
If  there  were  a  famine  in  the  land  of  the  word  of  God,  he 
would  wander  from  sea  to  sea  before  he  would  be  without 
it*".  It  is  as  natural,  according  to  this  new  nature,  for  a 
true  convert  to  seek  after  the  word  of  God,  as  for  the  in&nt 
to  make  to  the  breast**.  As  new-born  babes,  they  desire 
the  sincere  milk  of  the  word,  that  they  may  live  and  grow 
thereby ;  they  receive  with  meekness  the  engrafted  word  : 
rov  \6yov  ifiinrrov  the  word  which  is  innaturaJized  to  them, 
and  connatural  with  them  :  for  it  is  it  that  is  able  to  save 
their  souls  ;  James  i.  21.  Able  to  do  its  own  part  thereto. 
Never  did  you  know  that  Christian  that  could  live  without 
this  word,  any  more  than  a  man  can  live  without  meat.  I 
told  you  the  language  of  Job,  David,  and  Jeremiah  before. 
O  how  certainly  do  the  careless  neglecters  and  despisers  of 
this  word  discover,  that  yet  they  are  unconverted  souls, 
that  taste  no  niLore  sweetness  in  it  than  in  a  chip  ;  that  will 
rather  make  it  a  matter  of  derision,  when  they  see  people 
read  and  hear  so  diligently,  and  talk  so  much  of  the  word  of 
God :  and  do  in  their  hearts  almost  as  one  of  the  Papist  re- 
bels in  Ireland  did  with  his  feet,  even  stamp  the  Bible  in 
the  dirt,  and  curse  it,  and  said,  **  This  is  it  that  hath  bred 
all  this,  and  set  us  together  by  the  ears."  Little  better 
thoughts  have  many  secret  infidels  of  it  in  their  hearts.  But 

n»  Amos  viil.  12.  n  1  Pet.  i.  2. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  63- 

here  the  Christian  hath  grounded  faishopes ;  h^re  hath  he 

built  and  bottomed  his  soul ;  and  here  will  he  live  and  die. 

This  then  is  another  part  of  the  work  of  conversion^  it  turn- 

eth  men's  hearts  to  the  word  of  God^  and  maketh  them 

value  it  as  their  necessary  food. 

(4.)  The  fourth  means  of  salvation  which  conversion 
turneth  the  heart  of  a  man  to«  is  the  Communion  of  the 
Sednts.     Before  conversion^  the  nature^  and  sometimes  the 
very  name  of  a  saint  is  loathsome  to  them^  though  God 
haih  told  us,  that  without  holiness  none  shall  see  him®. 
And  that  all  his  people  are  called  and  sanctified ;  and  that 
none  but  they  shall  be  glorified,  yet  how  commonly  do  we 
hear  men  make  a  mock  at  the  very  name  of  saints.    These 
are  iite  saints,  say  they,  these  are  the  holy  brethren.    When 
the  blood  of  Christ  is  shed  to  sanctify  men,  when  the  Spirit 
of  grace  is  sent  firom  heaven  to  sanctify  men,  and  hath 
made  it  his  office,  when  all  that  God  doth  by  his  word  and 
ordinances  is  to  sanctify  men.    When  all  true  Christians 
are  sanctified  men,  or  saints,  and  the  church  itself  is  a  com- 
pany of  saints;  and  when  sanctification  is  nothing  else  but 
our  devotedness  to  God  that  made  and  redeemed  us.    Yet, 
dare  these  impious  wretches  open  their  mouths  against 
sanctity,  coming  near  to  the  scorning  of  God  hiij^self,  and 
to  reproJBtching  the  word  and  the  will  of  God !    Yea,  and  to 
some  kind  of  blaspheming  the  Holy  Ghost.    It  is  natural  to 
a  wicked  mta  to  hkte  a  saint  i".    An  enmity  is  put  between 
theiii.     And  the  fitst  two  men  that  Were  born  into  the  world 
did  mslnifest  that  enmity,  for  Cain  killed  his  brother  Abel, 
becahse  his  own  works  were  evil,  and  his  brothe^r's  righte- 
ous %    And  Christ  himself  telleth  his  disciples,  that  be- 
cause they  are  not  of  the  world,  but  he  hath  chosen  them 
out  of  the  world,  therefore  the  world  hateth  them ;  but  if 
they  were  of  the  world,  the  world  would  love  his  own '. 
Yea,  on  this  very  Hccouht,  it  first  hated  Christ  himself ■. 
And  therefore  lio  wonder  if  the  communion  of  the  saints  be 
abhorred,  or  not  delighted  in  by  the  ungodly,  even  while 
ihey  make  it  an  article  of  their  creed.    But  when  once  the 
sotd  is  truly  converted,  there  is  a  likeness  to  God  and  his 
saints  put  upon  them,  and  a  natural  love  to  them  implanted 

<»  Heb.  xii.  14.    ^  ^  Gen.  iii.  15.  i  1  Johniii,  12.  Heb.  xi.  4. 

»  John  XT.  19.  •  John  xv.  8. 


64  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

in  their  hearts,  and  thereupon  a  strong  inclination  to  hare 
communion  with  them  in  the  worship  of  God,  and  the  way 
to  heaven ;  as  m^ny  drops  of  water  will  gather  into  one,  or 
many  streams  will  run  into  one  river,  or  many  small  flames, 
if  you  bring  them  near,  will  make  all  into  one,  and  every 
thing  is  inclined  as  it  were  to  incorporate  with  its  like,  so  is 
it  with  the  truly  sanctified  soul.  The  same  means  will  not 
serve  their  turns,  if  they  have  it  not  in  communion^.  The 
multitude  of  them  that  believed  were  of  one  heart,  and  of 
one  soul,  and  they  distributed  to  one  another,  as  every  one 
had  need,  and  charity  made  that  common  which  law  had 
made  proper  ^«  They  continued  stedfast  in  the  apostles' 
doctrine  and  fellowship,  and  breaking  of  bread  and  prayer; 
and  they  that  believed  were  together,  and  had  all  things 
common,  (that  is,  by  charity,  as  I  said  before)  and  they 
continued  daily  with  one  accord  in  the  temple,  breaking 
bread  from  house  to  house.  Certainly,  there  is  in  all  the 
children  of  God,  such  a  love  to  their  brethren,  that  they  love 
their  company,  especially  in  the  holy  worship  of  him  that 
redeemed  them.  False  hearted  Christians,  that  have  but 
the  name,  may  have  the  hearts  of  heathens,  and  do  as  they 
did,  who  were  unacquainted  with  Christian  love,  but  so  will 
not  the  true.  Hence  it  is,  that  the  Christians  in  all  ages 
have  so  valued  the  sacrament,  which  hath  been  still  caiUed 
the  Communion  of  the  church,  or  of  saints ;  because  there 
they  all  join  together  to  feed  upon  one  Christ,  and  taste  of 
the  supper  of  the  Lord,  as  the  fellow  heirs  of  his  ^lory. 
And  as  many  corns  made  one  loaf  of  bread,  so  are  they,  as 
the  apostle  speaks,  one  bread  and  one  body.  For  the  bread 
which  they  break,  it  is  the  communion  of  the  body  of 
Christ,  and  the  cup  which  they  drink,  is  the  communion  of 
his  blood  ^.  And  hence  it  is,  that  it  hath  ever  been  so  heavy 
a  punishment  in  the  eyes  of  all  Christians  to  be  excommu- 
nicate, and  shut  out  of  the  fellowship  of  the  church, 
(though  there  are  also  other  reasons  greater  than  this).  So 
that  the  poor  Christians,  if  they  had  fallen  into  any  sin 
that  deserved  excommunication,  they  would  have  stood 
with  tears  at  the  church  doors,  month  after  month,  entreat- 
ing the  prayers  of  the  church  that  they  might  be  pardoned, 
and  be  fit  to  be  taken  in  again  ;    and  this  even  when  Chris- 

»  Acts  iv.  3«.  "  Acts  ii.  43.  «  1  Cor.  x.  16. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  65 

tianity  was  so  persecuted,  that  it  was-  a  matter  of  danger  to 
a  man's  life  to  be  a  Christian,  so  precious  then  was  the 
communion  of  saints.  Every  Lord's  day  did  they  adminis" 
ter  the  Lord's  supper,  that  they  might  be  frequent  in  that 
part  of  communion.  And,  therefore,  they  highly  esteemed 
the  Lord's  days,  because  they  were  the  days  of  the  churches' 
holy  communion.  Do  not  marvel  then,  if  any  true  converted 
soul  have  a  closing,  uniting,  combining,  disposition ;  and 
if  they  love  to  be  together  in  the  holy  worship  and  service 
of  God ;  and  if  they  are  glad  when  they  can  get  together  in 
the  public  meeting  place,  or  any  other  convenient  place,^  to 
join  together,  and  help  each  other  in  the  work  that  is 
common  to  all.  I  know  there  may  be  some  upright 
souls  live  among  such  as  hinder  them  from  that  com- 
munion which  they  would  have ;  but  their  hearts  are  to- 
wards it,  cmd  they  will  have  it  if  they  can.  I  know  also, 
that  the  heathens  and  the  Papists,  and  all  enemies  of  the 
church,  have  still  defamed  the  communion  of  Christians, 
and  such  as  join  to  seek  the  Lord.  And  if  any  evil  fall  out 
among  them,  they  would  lay  it  all  on  their  meeting  and 
communion.  But  yet  this  malice  of  the  devil  could 
never  break  the  assembly  and  communion  of  the  saints. 
I  know  also,  that  many  heretics  are  much  addicted  to  secret 
combination,  and  to  tie  together  in  their  way ;  but  that  is 
natural  for  men  to  love  their  like  in  evil ;  so  drunkards  can 
flock  together  to  an  alehouse ;  but  it  is  not  so  natural  to  de- 
light in  good ;  other  men's  conmiunion  in  evil,  doth  not  dis- 
grace, but  commend  our  communion  in  the  fear  of  God. 
Satan  hath  his  legions  that  can  agree  in  one  man ;  but  they 
are  not  such  as  the  legions  that  attended  upon  Christ. 
What,  must  Christ  have  no  school  or  army,  because  satan 
hath  one?  Must  we  dissipate,  because  the  wicked  always 
associate  ?  There  are  means  sufficient  left  us  to  discern  the 
communion  of  the  church  of  Christ  from  all  ungodly  and 
heretical  combinations  whatsoever.  Though  there  be  some 
stings  in  Xhe  church  of  Christ  among  the  bees,  yet  there  is 
more  honey.  The  meetings  of  heretics  are  like  the  nests  of 
wasps,  they  are  all  sting  and  no  honey.  Saith  Tertullian, 
•'  Vespee  habent  fayos,  et  Marcionitae  ecclesias :" — "  Wasps 
have  combs  too,  and  heretics  make  churches."  The  combs 
of  the  bees  and  of  the  wasps  may  be  very  like  to  look  upon, 

VOL.   VII.  F 


66  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

but  the  honey  is  not  like,  nor  thesting  altogether.    It  iB  not 
to  feed  on  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  and  live  to  him,  that  here- 
tics do  combine  ;  but  it  is  to  divide  the  church,  and  to  shew 
their  error  and  pride,  and  to  sting  and  despise  others.     So 
that  their  meetings  are  nothing  like  the  meeting  of  the  church 
in  many  regards.    I  beseech  you  now  beloved  hearers,  try 
how  your  hearts  are  a£Pected  to  the  matter  in  hand.    If  you 
are  true  converts,  your  very  hearts  are  among  the  saints:  it 
doth  you  good  especially  to  join  with  them  in  public,  and 
especially  in  the  two  duties  of  praising  God,  and  receiving 
the  sacraments,  which  are  the  most  proper  to  the  church. 
And  also  it  will  do  yoii  good  to  have  communion  with  them 
in  private,  in  prayer,  in  conference,  in  any  holy  work.     You 
are  where  you  would  be,  when  you  are  thus  employed. 
You  do  not  do  like  the  hypocritical  world,  to  say,  **  I  be- 
lieve the  communion  of  saints,"  and  at  the  same  time  either 
hate  and  scorn,  or  at  least  neglect  and  set  light  by  the  com- 
munion of  saints.     It  is  not  to  every  wicked  man  that  the 
promise  is  made,  **  Where  two  or  three  are  met  together  in 
Christ's  name,  there  is  he  in  the  midst  of  them."    And  it  is 
not  for  nothing,  that  the  saints  delight  in  this  communion* 
For  as  here  is  most  of  God's  blessing,  and  most  help  from 
one  another,  so  when  they  are  nearest  to  one  another,  they 
vare  all  nearest  to  Christ.  And  their  closure  and  communion  is 
a  foretaste  of  their  communion  in  glory :  for  their  happiness 
lieth  in  their  being  one  with  Christ  and  among  themselves  ^i 
'  and  Christ  died  of  purpose  to  ''  gather  into  one  the  children 
of  God,  that  are  scattered  throughout  the  world ':"  and  it  is 
God's  design  in  the  work  of  redemption  to ''  gather  together  in 
one  all  things  in  Christ  ^."  And  as  he  therefore ''  gives  his  pro<: 
phets,  apostles^  and  ministers  to  the  church,  for  the  perfec- 
tion of  the  saints,  and  edifying  the  body,  till  it  be  all  come 
in  the  unity  of  the  faith  to  a  perfect  man,  that  we  may  grow 
up  in  him,  who  is   the  Head  in  all  things  from  whom  the 
body  fitly  joined  together,  and  compacted  by  that  which 
every  joint  supplieth,  according  to  the  eifectual  working  in 
the  measure  of  every  part,  makelh  increase  of  the  body,  to 
the  edifying  of  itself  in  love^"     So  also  at  the  day  of  judg- 
ment shall  the  ^*  angels  gather  the  elect  together  from  the 

y  John  xvii.  SI.  »  John  xi.  52. 

»  Ephes.  i.  10.  b  Eph.  iv.  11-— 16. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  67 

four  winds  S*'  and  they  shall  be  one  in  Christ  for  ever  *. 
Great  reason  therefore  have  the  saints  to  make  out  after 
more  of  that,  which  their  perfection  doth  so  much  consist 
in.  Other  men  may  have  some  delight  in  the  company  and 
assembly  of  Christians  for  bye-respects ;  but  to  love  the 
communion  of  the  saints,  as  such,  and  deUght  in  them  as 
the  body  of  Christ  employed  in  his.  praises,  this  is  the  proper 
disposition  of  a  saint.  And  this  is  another  thing  that  con- 
version doth  turn  their  hearts  unto. 

4.  Having  spoken  of  the  third  part  of  the  Conversion  of 
the  Heart,  which  consisteth  in  the  right  choice  of  the  mean^ 
to  salvation ;  I  proceed  to  the  fourth,  which  consisteth  in 
the  thorough  resolving  of  the  yet  wavering  and  unsettled 
soul.  I  make  not  this  a  part  in  itself  different  from  all  that 
are  beforementioned,  but  the  very  life  and  perfection  of 
them,  especially  of  the  two  last.  Some  kind  of  willingness 
and  unsound  consent  there  may  be  in  the  half-converted, 
and  many  times  it  is  long  after  the  beginning  of  this  change 
before  it  reach  to  a  sound  resolution ;  but  it  is  never  a  saving 
work  of  special  grace  indeed,  and  proper  to  the  saints  till 
then.  Men  may  have  many  convictions,  and  be  brought  to 
engage  themselves  in  covenant  to  God,  and  yet  for  want  of 
this  true  resolution,  their  hearts  may  not  be  right  with  God, 
nor  they  be  stedfast  in  his  covenant*.  We  are  suitors  for 
Christ  to  a  backward  and  obstinate  generation  of  men;  we 
are  long  persuading  them  before  they  will  yield,  and  when 
they  seem, to  yield,  they  are  long  in  the  beginning,  delibe*- 
rating  and  wavering  before  they  will  resolve.  Sometimes 
God  tumeth  the  heart  more  suddenly  at  a  sermon  ;  but  or- 
dinarily, for  aught  I  can  find,  men  stick  long  under  convic- 
tion and  half  purposes,  before  they  are  thus  converted. 
When  they  see  that  all  is  not  well  with  them,  and  that  they 
are  not  in  a  safe  condition  to  appear  before  God  at  judgment, 
in  that  they  have  not  taken  the  right  course  that  Christian 
wisdom  required  them  to  take,  they  feel  then  within  them 
many  persuading^  of  the  Spirit  of  God,  and  their  conscience 
reasoning  the  case  with  them,  and  saying,  '  This  life  will 
not  serve  thy  turn  long,  if  death  find  thee  in  this  condition, 
thou  art  an  undone  man :  away  then  with  thy  negligence 
and  idle  company  and  courses,  and  set  thyself  to  seek  after 

'  Matt.  xxiv.  31.  <*  John  xvii.  21.  ^  Psal.  Ixxviii.  37'. 


68  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

Christ  before  it  be  too  late;'  and  under  these  persuasions 
the  mind  is  sometimes  purposed  to  do  it.  But  these  purpo- 
ses are  eitlier  for  the  time  to  come,  thdt  hereafter  they  will 
be  new  inen^  or  else  they  are  but  half  purposes^  that  reach 
not  to  a  resolution :  and  therefore  if  at  present  they  make 
some  kind  of  change,  it  is  but  by  the  halves ;  and  they  usu- 
ally turn  back  again :  this  is  the  case  of  the  best  men  ordi- 
narily before  conversion. 

But  when  conversion  comes,  it  turns  over  the  mind  un- 
feignedly  to  God ;  it  brings  the  soul  beyond  its  former  wa- 
verings ;  it  shews  men  that  there  is  no  other  remedy,  the 
thing  is  of  necessity,  and  that  all  is  but  vanity  that  can  be 
said  against  it;  and  no  good  reason  can  be  given  to  take 
cmy  wise  man  off  from  the  work  of  repentance  and  a  heaven- 
ly life,  and  therefore  he  is  resolved  that  this  shall  be  his 
way.  He  hath  considered  and  found  for  certain  that  there 
is  no  true  felicity  but  in  the  favour  of  God;  and  that 
his  love  and  promised  glory  are  everlasting,  and  all  things 
else  are  vain  and  transitory ;  and  therefore  he  is  resolved 
that  God  should  be  his  portion,  and  nothing  but  God ;  hea- 
ven shall  be  the  end  of  his  desire  and  labour,  and  nothing 
but  heaven.  He  hath  also  considered  that  there  is  no  par- 
don of  sin,  but  by  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  no  hope  of  sal- 
vation, but  by  cleaving  to  him,  and  yielding  to  his  renewing 
Spirit ;  and  therefore  he  is  now  resolved  that  Christ  shall 
have  his  heart,  and  his  Spirit  shall  do  its  work,  and  that  the 
word  of  God  hereafter  shall  be  his  rule.  He  is  now  deter- 
mined to  know  nothing  but  Christ  crucified  ^  Before  he 
was  like  a  man  that  was  weighing  somewhat  in  the  scales, 
and  the  other  end  was  the  heavier,  or  the  scales  stood  as  it 
were  even :  but  now  the  Holy  Ghost  hath  brought  in  those 
arguments,  and  set  them  home  on  the  conscience,  with  that 
life  that  hath  turned  the  scales.  Before  he  was  like  a  man 
that  had  lost  his  way,  and  standeth  still,  considering  whe- 
ther he  shall  turn  back  or  not,  or  whether  he  shall  go  this 
way  or  that;  but  now  he  is  resolved,  and  he  stands  no  lon- 
ger considering,  but  turns  without  any  more  ado.  And  this 
resolution  is  not  rash  or  ungrounded,  but  having  considered 
what  can  be  said  for  God  and  for  the  world,  for  Bin  and  for 
repentance ;  and  considering  what  he  may  meet  with  in  the 

'  1  Cor.  ii.  «, 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  69 

• 

way  to  heaven,  he  resolveth  whatever  it  cost  him,  repent  he 
will,  return  he  will,  for  saved  he  must  be.    Though  he  meet 
with  hard  dealing  from  the  world,  there  is  no  remedy,  he  will 
go  through  it ;  though  he  may  suffer  much  in  the  flesh,  yet 
that  shall  not  take  him  off;  though  he  knows  he  must  leave 
his  former  pleasure  and  wicked  company,  and  live  that  life 
that  the  flesh  doth  abhor,  yet  all  this  shall  not  take  him  off. 
O  what  a  pleading  and  reasoning  there  is  commonly  between 
the  flesh  and  the  Spirit,  before  the  heart  will  be  thus  resolv- 
ed.    As  it  was  with  Carraciolus,  the  marquis  of  Vicum,  when 
his  conscience  bid  him  leave  his  land,  and  friends,  and  all 
for  Christ,  to  forsake  Popery,  and  betake  himself  to  these 
countries,  where  he  might  enjoy  the  Gospel ;  his  house  and 
lands  then  came  in  his  eyes ;  '  What  must  I  leave  all  these 
for  mere  conscience,  and  live  I  know  not  how  V    His  wife 
hangs  upon  him,  his  children  with  tears  do  cry  after  him, 
'  O  father,  leave  us  not!'    And  many  a  sob  and  sigh  it  costs 
his  heart  before  he  could  resolve  to  get  away :  and  as  it 
was  with  many  of  the  martyrs  when  they  were  to  die  for 
Christ  and  for  his  truth ;  wife,  and  children,  and  friends  fol- 
low them  to  the  fire,  crying  out, '  O  turn,  turn,  and  do  not 
undo  yourselves  and  us ;'  so  that  they  had  almost  as  much 
ado  to  overcome  that  temptation,  as  to  bear  the  flames :  so 
is  it  with  a  sinner  in  the  work  of  conversion ;  wHen  he  looks 
to  Christ  and  everlasting  glory,  and  considereth  withal  that  < 
these  cannot^ be  obtained  without  the  loss  of  earthly,  sinful 
pleasure ;  and  when  he  thinketh  of  his  old  merry  compcmy 
and  course,  his  ease  and  fleshly  pleasure  that  he  must  leave;, 
when  he  thinks  of  the  strangeness  of  the  way  that  he  must 
now  turn  to,  and  how  unacquainted  he  is  with  it,  cmd  how 
many  bitter  scorns,  and  worse,  he  is  like  to  meet  with,  and 
how  much  care  and  pains  it  must  cost  him  to  be  saved  ;  this 
keepeth  him  sometimes  at  a  stand,  and  breedeth  in  him  many 
troublous  thoughts,  so  liiat  he  scarce  knows  which  way  to 
turn  him,  or  what  to  do.    If  he  repent  and  turn  to,  God,  hje 
must  deny  his  flesh,  and  forsake  all  this  world,  and  for 
aught  he  knows,  have  scarce  any  more  of  that  kind  of  plea- 
sure that  he  lived  upon  before.;  and  if  he  do  not  this,  h% 
must  forsake  God,  and  all  hope  of  everlasting  glory,  and 
give  up  himself  to  eternal  misery.    This  seemeth  a  very  sad 
straight  to  one  at  the  first ;  because  he  yet  hath  had  no  ex- 


70  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

perience  of  the  joy  of  the  Holy  Qhost,  and  the  higher  com- 
forts of  a  Christian  life,  nor  of  the  help  which  God  will  af- 
ford him  in  his  way  :  and  therefore  we  cannot  marvel  if  ma- 
ny a  poor  soul  do  here  stick  in  the  birth ;  and  if  it  be  long 
before  they  resolve  for  God;  and  if  others  turnback  and 
])'erish  for  ever ;  and  grace,  and  only  grace  will  resolve  them ; 
when  Christ  opens  their  eyes  effectually  and  to  the  purpose, 
he  lets  them  see,  that  between  heaven  and  earth,  God  and 
the  world,  grace,  and  sin,  there  is  no  comparison.    They  see 
then,  it  id  not  a  matter  to  doubt  of,  or  to  stick  at:  God  must 
be  pleased,  but  there  is  no  necessity  that  the  world  or  the 
flesh  be  pleased.     God's  favour  must  be  had,  but  we  may 
live  without  the  favour  of  the  world  ;  death  and  judgment 
must  be  provided  for,  but  it  is  needless  to  provide  for  the 
desires  of  the  flesh :    an  hundred  considerations  come  in 
upon  his  soul,  which  make  him  say.  Away  with  all  these 
worldly   vanities,    and   welcome   Christ  and  a  holy  life. 
Now  he  "  casteth  off  that  weight  that  hangeth  on  him,  and 
that  sin  that  did  so  easily  beset  him,  that  he  may.  run  with 
patience  the  race  that  is  before  him,  looking  to  Jesus  the 
Aiithor  and  Finisher  of  his  faith,  who  for  the  joy  that  was 
set  before  him,  endured  the  cross,  despised  the  shame,  and 
is  sat  down  at  the  right  hand  of  God  «."    In  a  word,  he  is 
now  thoroughly  convinced  that  one  thing  is  necessary,  and 
therefore  he  hath  chosen  the  better  part,  which  shall  not  be 
taken  from  him^.    O  sirs,-  you  are  never  truly  converted 
till  this  resolution  of  the  soul  ;  whatever  good  purposecryoa 
may  have  for  the  time  to  come,  if  you  be  not  presently  resolved 
presently  to  return ;  I  say,  presently  without  delay,  you 
are  not  yet  truly  converted  to  Christ,  though  you  may  ve- 
rily think  that  the  life  of  faith  and  holiness  is  tibe  best  life, 
and  may  have  some  mind  to  it,  and  purpose  one  of  these 
days  to  return ;  nay,  though  you  may  have  some  present 
purposes  that  are  cold  and  faint,  and  come  not  up  to  the 
height  of  resolution ;  and  though  you  make  some  trial  here- 
after, and  change  some  of  your  company  and  your  courses, 
all  this  is  well,  but  it  will  not  serve  the  tunfi  without  this 
resolution.    Many  a  man  that  is  lost  for  ever,  hath  had 
many  a  good  wish  and  purpose,  and  made  some  essay  to 
mend  his  life,  and  made  some  half  reformation,  acd  yet,  be- 

?  Heb.  xii.  l,^.  »»  Luke  x.  42. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  71 

ing  not  resolved  for  Christ,  they  have  perished.  The  yery 
principal  part  of  the  work  of  saving  grace  in  the  soul  doth 
lie  in  this  resolution.  O  that  the  wavering,  and  the  loiter- 
ingy  and  the  delaying  soul  would  lay  this  well  to  heart.  O 
that  they  understood  this,  who  are  convinced  that  they 
must  return  and  be  new  men,  and  yet  cannot  be  brought  to 
present  resolution,  but  linger  in  their  sins,  as  being  loath  to 
come  away ;  as  Lot  did  in  Sodom,  till  God  being  merciful  to 
him,  caused  the  angel  to  carry  him  out.  Well  this  is  the 
next  work  of  converting  grace.  If  ever  you  be  converted, 
you  will  be  resolved  for  Christ. 

5.  The  fifth  part  of  the  work  of  Conversion  in  the  heart, 
consisteth  in  the  .change  that  is  made  upon  the  Affections. 
Though  these  are  not  so  evident  and  certain  always  to  try  a 
man's  state  by ;  and  therefore  I  would  have  Christians  try 
especially  by  the  former,  yet  it  is  certain  that  conversion 
changeth  these  also ;  and  because  they  are  many,  and  I 
have  been  long  in  the  description  of  this  work  already,  I  will 
the  more  briefly  run  them  over. 

(1.)  The  first  of  the  affections  that  appeareth  in  this 
change,  are,  love  and  hatred.     Before  conversion,  the  heart 
loveth  not  spiritual  things  and  ways:  there  is  an  opposi- 
tion to  them,  and  enmity  against  them  ^    It  loveth  not  in- 
ward holiness,  nor  a  holy  life ;  it  loveth  not  the  people  that 
are  holy;  nay,  it  loveth  not  God  himself  as  he  is  just  and 
holy ;  yea,  it  hath  an  inward  loathing  of  him,  and  of  his 
image  and  way ;  though  yet  it  be  so  deceitful  as  perhaps 
not  to  know  thus  much  by  itself.     But  on  the  contrary,  it 
loveth  fleshly  pleasure,  and  earthly  profit,  aad  vain-glory, 
and  ease,  and  honour  of  the  world ;  for  it  only  savoureth 
these  kind  of  things^.     But  conversion  tumeth  a  man's 
love  and  hatred,  and  maketh  him  love  the  holy  God,  and 
those  holy  people  and  ways  that  he  could  not  heartily  love 
before,  and  it  maketh  him  loathe  those  sins,  that  before  he 
loved  ;  that  this  is  so,  in  all  that  are  converted,  is  evident 
from  many  texts  of  Scripture.    *'He  that  loveth  father  or 
mother  ^  See."    **  His  delight  is  in  the  law  of  the  Lord,  and 
in  his  law  doth  he  meditate  day  and  night  "*."    ''  In  hid  eyes 
a  vile  person  is  contemned ;  but  he  honoureth  them  that 

*  Rom.  viu.  5.  r.  k  Rom.  vm.  7,  »  Mate.  x.  ST. 


72  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

fear  the  Lord  "."  ''By  this  we  may  know  that  we  are  pas- 
sed from  death  unto  life^  because  we  love  the  brethren;  he 
that  loveth  not  his  brother  abideth  in  death  ^"  They  hated 
the  light  before^  because  it  was  against  their  deeds,  but  now 
they  love  it,  and  come  to  it  K  The  very  evil  actions  that 
they  do,  they  now  hate  "i.  Yea,  they  hate  even  the  garments 
spotted  of  the  flesh.  All  that  beareth  the  mark  of  a  fleshly, 
sensual  course'.  Sirs,  if  you  be  ti'uly  converted,  this 
change  will  be  upon  your  afiections. 

(2.)  The  second  pair  of  afiections  that  shew  themselves 
in  this  change,  are,  desire  and  aversion.  These  are  so  near 
akin  to  love  and  hatred,  that  I  need  to  say  the  less  of 
them.  The  unconverted  man's  desires  are  after  the  fleshly 
pleasures  which  he  loveth ;  of  these  they  think  they  can 
never  have  enough,  but  cry  as  the  horse-leech,  give,  give. 
When  do  you  hear  the  covetous  man  say  he  hath  enough  ? 
or  the  ambitious  man  say,  I  would  be  no  higher  ?  or  the 
sensual  man  say,  my  appetite  and  lust  are  now  satisfied, 
I  would  have  no  more  ?  Their  very  life  is  a  thirsting  afiber 
provision  for  the  flesh  ^;  and  the  fulfilling  its  desires  ^ 
And  sometimes  Ood  giveth  them  much  of  that  they  do  de- 
sire for  a  time,  but  it  is  in  judgment,  and  a  curse  to  them 
through  their  sin ".  But  as  for  God  and  Christ,  and  the 
Spirit,  and  holiness,  to  these  they  have  no  appetite,  but  na- 
turally loathe  them,  and  at  the  best  have  but  cold  and  heart- 
less wishes  after  them.  Hence  it  is,  that  they  refuse  so 
many  motions  for  their  own  good.  Move  them  to  spiritual 
things,  and  there  is  somewhat  within  them  that  is  against 
the  motion,  so  that  they  will  not  hear  us,  or  be  persuaded 
by  us.  O  how  backward  is  an  unconverted  soul  to  spiritual 
good !  They  will  go  no  further  than  they  are  drawn,  and 
they  will  not  be  drawn  to  give  up  themselves  to  it.  Hence 
it  is,  that  our  ministerial  labours  are  so  much  lost.  We 
persuade  sick  men  to  their  meat,  that  have  no  appetite  to  it. 
JS^ay,  whose  stomachs  rise  against  it  and  loathe  it.  It  goeth 
against  their  carnal  natures,  against  their  former  customs, 
against  their  ease,  and  profit,  and  pleasure,  and  therefore  it 
will  not  down  with  them,  they  cannot  away  with  it  ^i    We 

"  Psal.  XV.  4.  <»  1  John  iii.  14.  P  John  uU  19,  20. 

4  Rom.  vii.  15.  '  Jude23.  *  Rom.  xiii.  It. 

«  Eph.  ii.  3.  "  Psal  Ixxviii.  29.  *  Job.  xxi.  14. 


TRKATI&fi   OF   CONVERSION.  73 

heave  a  stone  that  will  stir  no  further  than  main  force  doth 
move  it.  O  had  they  but  desire  after  Christ  and  grace,  as 
they  have  after  worldly,  fleshly  vanity,  how  happy  might 
they  be. 

But  when  converting  grace  comes,  it  changeth  their  de-     A 
sire.     God  calls  to  them  then  effectually  by  his  word  and     / 
Spirit.     ^'  Ho,  every  one  that  thirsteth,  come  and  drink  of 
the  water  of  life  freely  *."  As  if  he  should  say, '  What  mean 
you  to  desire  that  which  will  do  so  little  good,  and  to  lay 
out  your  labour  for  that  which  will  not  profit  you,  and  fol-      \ 
low  my  direction,  and  I  will  give  you  that  which  is  worthy 
your  desiire.'    When  God  hath  once  effectually  touched  the       i 
heart  with  converting  grace,  it  leaves  a  secret  thirsting  after      [ 
him  in  the  soul.     As  when  he  called  Peter  and  the  other 
apostles,  and  said  unto  them,  follow  me,  they  presently  left 
2ii  and  followed  him.    Then  they  cry  out  with  David,  "  My 
soul  thirsteth  after  thee  as  the  thirsty  land  y.**    ^'  The  de- 
sire of  their  soul  is  to  his  name,  and  to  the  remembrance  of 
kirn*.**    Now  they  see  that  excellency  in  God's  word,  and 
ways,  and  graces,  that  all  things  that  may  be  desired,  are 
not  to  be  compared  with  it^    "  They  are  more  to  be  de- 
sired than  gold,  yea  than  fine  gold  K'*    Before  they  desired 
many  things,  .and  nothing  would  satisfy  them ;  now  give 
them  but  one  thing  and  they  will  be  satisfied  to  the  full®. 
Before  their  desiries  were  only  after  vanity ;  but  now,  so  far 
as  they  are  renewed,  they  are  only  after  good''.    And  that 
God  tibat  gave  them  these  desires,  will  fulfil  them  *.     He 
that  caused  them  to  hunger  and  thirst  after  righteousness^ 
will  satisfy  them  ^    And  he  that  turned  their  minds  from 
tbis  world,  and  gave  them  to  desire  after  a  better  country  ^, 
will  give  them  that  promised  land  which  they  desire. 

(3.)  The  next  affections,  whose  change  is  discovered  in 
the  work  of  conversion,  are  their  delight  and  sorrow.  This  is 
the  next  pair.  An  unconverted  man  doth  naturally  find  no 
pleasure  in  God  or  spiritual  things :  for  a  fool  hath  na  de- 
light in  understanding^.  It  is  fleshly  lust  and  pleasure  that 
they  desire/.    And  the  "  pleasure  of  sin  for  a  season,''  for 

>  Isa.  Iv.  1— S.  y  Psal  cxliii  6.  xlii.2.  Iziii.  1.  *Isfu  zzvi.  8. 

»  ProT  viii.  11.  ^  P3a].  xix.  1 0.  c  Psal.  xxyii.  4.  IxxiiL  25. 

<»  ProT.  xi.  23.  «  Psal.  cxl  v.  19.  '  Matt.  t.  6. 

g  Heb.  xi.  16.  •»  Prov.  xviii.  2.  *  Tit.  iii.  3. 


/ 


74  TREATISE   OF   C0NTER8I0N. 

which  they  part  with  the  highest  delight  ^. "  They  live  in  plea- 
sures on  earth,  and  fat  themselves  as  for  a  day  of  slaughter  V 
They  account  it  pleasure  to  riot  in  the  daylight  of  the 
gospel,  in  that  day  that  is  given  for  other  kinds  of  works  "*. 
They  not  only  do  evil,  but  have  "  pleasure  in  them  that  do 
it  **."  These  "  fools  hate  knowledge,  and  scomers  delight  in 
scorning  ®/'  And  if  they  have  any  delight  in  better  things 
through  a  common  work  of  grace,  it  is  but  a  superficial  fad- 
ing delight  P.  "  A  rejoicing  in  the  light  for  a  season^." 
But  no  sound  well-grounded  delight.  But  when  convert- 
ing grace  comes,  it  giveth  a  man  those  new  delights  which 
he  knew  not  of  before.  Then  the  things  that  he  before  saw 
not,  nor  well  believed,  the  things  which  he  distasted  and 
loathed,  are  in  his  delight.  Ood  himself  is' his  delight'. 
The  doing  of  his  will  is  their  delight '.  His  law,  his  word, 
his  statutes,  are  their  delight  *.  On  the  Lord's  day  they  de- 
light in  him  "*.  In  the  multitude  of  troubling,  perpl^dng 
thoughts,  his  comforts  delight  their  souls  *.  Their  delight 
is  in  the  saints  on  earth,  and  those  that  excel  in  virtue  ^ 
It  is  their  meat  and  drink  to  draw  nigh  to  Gfod.  It  doth 
them  good  at  the  heart,  when  they  can  but  be  enlarged  to- 
wards him,  and  have  more  light  and  life  than  before  they  had. 
These  are  the  new  delights  of  a  converted  souL  He  doth 
not  part  with  all  delight  at  his  conversion ;  he  doth  but 
change  a  brutish  and  sensual  delight,  for  such  as  are  fit  for 
.a  man  and  a  Christian.  The  wicked  think  they  shall  never 
have  a  merry  day  again,  if  they  should  be  thus  changed ; 
but  he  meets  with  more  truly  comfortable  days  than  ever  he 
did  before :  Nay,  he  never  knew  what  true  comfort  was  till 
now«  I  know  every  poor  Christian  hath  not  that  measure 
of  these  delights  as  some  have.  Some  are  clouded  with 
darkness,  and  infirmities,  and  live  much  more  sadly  than 
others  do,  but  yet  the  delight  which  they  have  in  these 
things,  is  more  than  in  the  things  which  they  before  de- 
lighted in*    It  glads  them  when  they  can  but  see  a  beam  of 


k  Hcb.  zi.  t5.  *  James  t.  5.  "J  Pet.  ii.  13. 

»»  Rom.  i.  3«.  »  Prov.  L  «2.  p  Isa.  Iviii.  «. 

«  John  V.  35.  '  Psal.  xxxvii.  4.  •  Ptel.  xl.  8. 

'  PsaU  L  2.  CMJU  24.  Ixxix.  16,  35, 4r,70.  •  Isa.  Wil.  14. 
^  Psal.  xciv.  19,           I  Psal.  xvi.  3. 


TUBATISB   OF   CONVBftSION.  75 

heavenly  light  from  the  face  of  God.    They  have  to  much 
as  sheweth  the  change  that  is  made  upon  their  souls. 

Hie  like  we  may  say  also  of  the  sorrow  of  the  un- 
converted.    It, is  not  the  same  that  it  was  before.     Before 
it  went  nearer  their  hearts  to  lose  any  pleasure  or  commo- 
dity in  the  world,  or  to  be  wronged,  or  suffer  any  disgrace 
from  men,  or  to  suffer  any  want  in  their  estates,  or  any  pain 
in  their  bodies,  than  it  did  to  lie  under  the  wrath  of  God, 
and  live  as  without  him,  and  his  favour  in  the  world.    They 
were  truly  such  as  satan  fully  reported  Job  to  be  -,  had  you 
but  touched  them  in  Iheir  estates  or  bodies,  they  would 
have  quickly  shewed  you  what  was  next  their  hearts.     But 
all  the  misery  of  their  soul  was  no  great  trouble  to  them. 
A  man  would  marvel,  that  knoweth  what  a  miserable  state 
that  of  sinful  nature  is,  that  so  many  thousands  in  the 
world  can  be  void  of  God's  image,  strangers  to  the  Spirit, 
and  know  no  more  of  Christ  but  the  very  name,  and  yet  be 
so  more  troubled  at  it.    That  they  can  bear  such  a  weight 
of  unpardoned  sins  as  they  do  every  day,  and  feel  it  no 
more. '  That  they  can  live  under  the  curse  of  God's  righte- 
ous law,  and  remain  in  daily  danger  of  damnation,  so  that  if 
they  should  die  before  conversion,  they  are  lost  for  ever, 
and  yet  be  no  more  troubled  at  it.     But  alas,  they  are  blind, 
and  see  not  the  case  that  they  are  in ;  they  are  dead  and 
stupid,  and  therefore  feel  it  not.    It  is  the  nature  of  their 
miserable  condition  to  make  them  so ;  they  are  more  trou- 
bled for  a  worldly  trifle,  than  for  all  these  things  of  ever- 
lasting'tdnsequence.    But  it  is  far  otherwise  with  the  con- 
verted soul ;  one  doubt  of  the  love  of  God  is  more  grievous 
to  them,  than  to  doubt  of  their  worldly  happiness ;  the  rem- 
nant of  their  mortified  sins  is  heavier  on  their  soul,  than 
the' mountains  of  unmortified  sin  was  to  them  before ;  they 
send  out  more  groans  and  cries  to  God,  because  of  their 
daily  failings  and  infirmities,  than  they  did  before  for  all 
their  iniquity ;  the  utter  gracelessness  of  their  hearts  was 
then  not  so  griiBvous  to  them  as  the  weakness  of  their 
graces  now.    He  never  before  knew  what  it  was  to  have  the 
least  spiritual  communion  with  God,  and  yet  he  bare  it 
lightly ;  now  the  miss  of  it  one  day  and  in  one  duty,  is 
more  grievous  to  him.    What  need  we  prove  this  to  you, 
when  every  gracious  soul  doth  feel  it,  and  the  world  about 


76  TREATISE   DF   CONVERSION; 

them  may  see  it,  that  their  sorrows  are  of  another  nature 
than  they  were  before  ?    Were  they  wont  to  lie  in  tears  for 
sin,  and  moum  for  God's  absence  as  now  they  do  ?     Before 
they  were  sorrowful,  that  they  might  not  come  to  heaven 
without  such    a    course   as    would    impoverish    them  in 
the  world';-    but  now  they  are  sorrowful  that  they  can 
shake  off  the  world  and  sin  no  better,  and  get  ground  of 
their  corruptions  no  faster  than  they  do.     Obf^,  Perhaps 
you  will  say,  if  conversion  bring  so  much  sorrow,  is  it  not 
better  to  be  without  it?    Answ.  No,  for  it  is  a  willing  80^ 
row,  a  necessary  healing  sorrow,  that  worketh  repentance  to 
salvation,  not  to  be  repented  of;  and  not  the  sorrow  of  the 
world  that  caused  death'.     See  there  the  blessed  effects  of 
it  at  large  \    It  is  a  sorrow  mixed  with  greater  joy ;  for  we 
are  as  sorrowful,  yet  always  rejoicing  ^.    It  is  a  very  short 
sorrow  that  will  quickly  be  forgotten ;  for  God  hath  pro- 
mised himself  to  wipe  away  all  tears  from  our  eyes  ^     It  is 
a  sorrow  of  God's  own  giving,  and  therefore  it  cannot  choose 
but  be  good^  for  God  giveth  not  evil :  it  is  a  sorrow  prepar- 
ing for  everlasting  joy ;  and  he  that  hath  called  us  lo  it, 
hath  foretold  us,  that  we    "  shall  be   sorrowful,  but  our 
sorrow  shall  be  turned  into  joy,  which  none  shall  take  from 
us.    We  shall  weep  and  lament,  and  the  world  shall  re- 
joice ^ ;"  but  mark  the  end,  who  it  is  that  will  be  sorrowful, 
or  joyful  then.    ^*  Mark  the  upright  man,  and  behold  the 
just,  for  the  end  of  that  man  is  peace*."    What  wise  man 
will  refuse  so  short  a  sorrow  for  so  long  a  joy?    Who  that 
is  well  in  his  wits,  will  choose  rather  to  die  of  his  sore,  than 
to  endure  the  smart  of  the  lancet  to  open  it?    Nay,  there  is 
an  ingenuity  in  a  converted  soul,  which  makes  it  in  a  kind 
of  holy  revenge  even  be  willing  to  taste  somewhat  of  the 
smart  of  his  own  folly.    He  sees  that  it  was  himself  that 
caused  it,  and  brought  all  thi^  upon  himself,  and  the  desert 
of  a  thousand  times  more,  and  therefore  he  even,  choose  th- 
in some  measure  to  afflict  his  soul,  and  doth  not  thrust 
away  sorrow  from  him,  as  before  he  was  wont  to  do. 

(4.)  The  next  pair  of  affections  that  shew  their  change, 
are,  hope  and  despair.     Before  conversion,  the  soul  of  sin- 

y  Matt.  xh.  22.  Luke  xviii.  23.  *  2  Cor.  vii.  10.  »  2  Cor.  vii.  9,  la 

«» 2  Cor.  vL  10.  c  Rev.  vii.  17.  xxi.  4-    ^  John  xvi.  20. 

.    «  Psal.  XXX vii.  37, 


•     i 


TREATISE   OP   CONVERSION.  77 

ners  is  either  borne  up  on  false,  ungrounded  hopes,  which  is 
the  common  case,  or  else  they  drop  into  desperation.    The 
hopes  of  an  unconverted  man,  are  foolish  and  contrary  to 
the  word  of  Ood,  and  do  but  shew  the  delusion  of  his  soul, 
and  tend  to  his  destruction:  they  are.  like  the  hopes  of  a 
man  that  thinketh  he  is  travelling  to  London,  when  he  is  in 
the  way  to  York,  and  yet  goes  on,  and  hopes  he  shall  come 
to  London  for  all  that,  as  well  as  they  that  go  the  right 
way  :  so  do  these  men  commonly  hope  to  come  to  heaven, 
while  they  go  in  the  way  to  hell.     And  though  God  have 
told  them,  and  passed  his  word  on  it,  that  he  that  goes  in 
these  ways  shall  not  see  peace  ^:  and  hath  assured  the 
world,  that  there  is  no  peace  to  the  wicked  ^  :  yet  still  they 
will  hope  to  find  peace  in  evil  ways  :  these  deceiving  hopes 
are  the  common  cause  of  the  damnation  of  the  world ;  as 
the  Scripture  frequently  acquainteth  us.     But  when  con- 
verting grace  comes,  O !  what  work  it  maketh  on  the  soul  in 
this  particular !     How  it  battereth  down  all  the  false  hopes 
of  sinners ;  and  maketh  them  see  that  they  are  all  this  while 
deceived !     O  !  it  maketh  the  poor  soul  even  undone  in  its 
own  apprehension,  and  shews  then  that  all  his  hopes  were 
vain  that  before  he  trusted  in.    Then  he  cries  out,  'I  had       \  \ 
hoped  to  come  to  heaven  without  conversion,  but  now  I  see       i   \ 
it  will  not  be :  I  had  hoped  I  was  well  enough  before  ;  and       !    \ 
that  God  would  have  mercy  on  me  in  that  condition  without 
any  more  ado,  but  now  I  see  I  did  but  deceive  myself.     I 
had  hoped  that  I  had  a  saving  paii;  in  Christ,  though  I  loved 
the  world  and  followed  my  sins ;  but  now  I  see  it  is  not 
so.    I  had  looped  I  might  have  been  saved  if  I  had  died  in 
that  condition ;  but  now  I  see  that  I  had  certainly  been 
danmed.'     Now  the  soul  is  brought  to  a  kind  of  despair ; 
not  an  absolute  despair  that  God  will  have  no  mercy  on 
him ;  no,  he  never  escaped  that  till  now  ;  but  a  conditional 
despair,  that  ever  he  should  come  to  heaven  without  con- 
version ;  he  despaireth  of  ever  being  saved  in  the  old  con- 
dition that  he  was  in  :  and  then  comes  in  another  kind  of 
hope  than  ever  he  knew  before  :  then  the  Spirit  of  grace 
loth  bring  him  to  hope  upon  grounds  that  will  not  deceive 
him :  now  he  hath  a  hope  that  quickeneth  him,  and  that 
comforteth  him  :  before  he  had  a  dull  and  dead  hope  to  es- 

f  Isa.  lix.  8.  ^  Isa.  Ivii.  31.     xlviii.  23. 


I    I 


78 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 


cape  damnation ;  but  now  he  hath  a  living  hope  of  seeing 
the  face  of  God  for  ever.     He  hath  now  that  hope  toward 
God  by  which  we  are  saved,  even  the  hope  of  the  resurrec^ 
tion  of  the  dead,  and  the  hope  of  things  not  seen  ^,     Now 
he  hath  a  hope  which  is  built  on  the  Scripture,  and  bred  by 
experience,  and  which  will  not  make  him  ashamed  | :  before, 
as  he  was  without  God,  so  was  he  without  hope  ^  ;  but  now 
he  hath  that  hope  which  is  an  anchor  of  the  soul  ^ ;  a  hope 
that  he  can  give  a  reason  of  °* ;  a  hope  that  purifieth  him'; 
even  the  hope  of  eternal  life,  which  none  have  but  those  that 
are  heirs  by  faith,  and  are  brought  to  it  by  this  regenera- 
tion^.   And  for  this  blessed  hope  at  the  glorious  appearing 
of  the  great  God  our  Saviour,  doth  his  faith  and  patience 
expect  and  wait  p.    So  that  how  he  hath  some  reason  for 
his  hopes,  for  he  hath  the  promise  of  the  faithful  God  to 
support  them.    The  least  hope  that  a  poor  troufaled  soul 
hath  after  conversion  in  the  midst  of  all  his  fears  and  doubts, 
is  of  more  value  than  all  the  most  confident  boastings  of  the 
unconverted  :  for  there  can  be  no  hope  of  being  saved  oat 
of  the  way  that  God  hath  appointed  to  salvation:  and  the 
bolder  men  are,  and  the  more  they  hope  and  boast  in  a 
wrong  way,  the  blinder  they  shew  themselves,  and  the  more 
is  their  misery ;  but  the  godly  are  safe  in  an  objective  hope, 
even  when  they  want  much  of  the  subjective.     There  is 
hope,  yea,  aiid  assurance  in  itself,  when  they  know  it  not; 
and  they  are  safe  in  that  which  they  do  not  perceive. 

(5.)  The  next  pair  of  affections  that  manifest  their  con- 
version, are,  courage  and  fear;  an  unconverted  man  is  bold 
in  sin,  but  feareth  not  much  the  wrath  of  God,  and  the 
sorest  evil  that  he  threateneth  in  his  word.  But  when  he  . 
should  encounter  with  any  of  the  enemies  of  his  salvaticm, 
there  he  hath  no  courage.  It  is  a  marvel  to  see  the 
strange  distemper  of  a  graceless  soul.  .  These  poor  wretches 
are  so  valiant  in  their  wickedness,  that  they  dare  sin  when 
the  converted  dare  not ;  they  dare  break  the  Lord's-day,  * 
and  dare  drink,  and  revel,  and  take  their  pleasure,  and  neg- 
lect their  souls,  and  slight  God  and  all  his  mercy :  they 
dare  run  upon  his  sorest  wrath  and  upon  hell  itself.     TdQ 


^  Acts  xxiv.  15«     xziii.  6<     Rom.  yiii.  24. 
^  Ephes.  ii.  12.  >  Heb.  vi.  19. 

»  1  John  iii.  3.  «  Tit.  iii.  5— T. 


*  Rom.  XT.  4.     V.  4,  5. 
"»  1  Pet.  iii.  15. 
P  Tit.  ii.  13. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION*  79 

hem  of  these  things,  and  you  cannot  much  daunt  them. 
[t  is  their  mad  valour  that  they  dare  damn  their  own  souls  : 
[ike  a  distracted  man,  that  dares  leap  into  water  and  drown 
limself ;  or  a  blind  man  that  dares  run  into  a  coaUpit,  be- 
:)ause  he  knows  not  what  he  doth :  such  a  kind  of  valour 
baye  unconverted  men,  when  as  in  the  way  of  their  duty, 
khey  are  the  most  notorious  cowards  in  the  world :  they 
dare  not  venture  upon  a  little  suffering  to  prevent  eternal 
sufferings ;  or  upon  the  frowns  of  men,  or  the  danger  of 
being  undone  in  their  worldly  estates,  though  it- be  for  a 
hope  of  everlasting  glory.     Nay,  they  dare  not  venture  upon 
a  very  scorn ;  but  when  they  have  some  mind  to  turn  and 
set  upon  duty,  a  wicked  man  can  mock  them  out  of  all. 
Are  not  these  valiant  men  indeed,  that  dare  not  look  the 
feeblest  enemy  of  their  souls  in  the  face,  and  yet  dare  ven- 
ture on  the  flames  of  hell?    This  is  the  common  case  of  the 
unconverted*.   . 

But  when  grace  hath  miade  this  change,  then  they  are 
clean  contrary  affected ;  then  they  are  the  most  fearful  men 
in  the  world,  of  God  and  his  displeasure,  and  the  most 
courageous  against  all  the  opposition  of  the  world.    Alas  ! 
they  find  then  that  it  is  madness,  not  valour,  to  be  fearless 
of  die  wrath  of  Ood :  there  is  no  standing  before  his  indig- 
nation, and  no  dealing  with  Almightiness,  if  it  be  set  against 
us.     Therefore  doth  the  poor  soul  throw  down  all  weapons 
of  opposition,  and  lay  himself  at  the  feet  of  God,  as  Saul, 
Acts  ix.  3.  and  say,  '^  Lord,  what  wouldst  thou  have  me  to 
do  V^    Therefore  we  find  converts  use  to  come  in  trembling 
to  Christ,  Acts  xvi.  29.  and  ix.  6.     And  Scripture  tells  us, 
"  The  fear  of  God  is  the  beginning  of  wisdom  *»."    Now  he 
dare  not  for  his  life  do  that  which  before  he  did :  he  durst 
have  let  fall  an  oath  or  a  curse  in  his  passion  before  ;  but 
now  he  dares  not :  he  durst  have  secretly  deceived  others, 
and  have  conunitted  secret  filthiness  ;  because  no  body  saw 
him,  he  was  out  of  fear ;  but  now  he  dares  not ;  for  he  fear- 
eth.him  that  is  greater  than  all.  ,  He  durst  have  neglected 
duty ,( and  have  been  indifferent  for  all  company,  and  taken 
his  fleshly  pleasures,  but  now  he  dare  not :  for  his  life  he 
dare  not.     O  !  thinketh  he,  what  if  I  should  die  in  the  act 
of  that  sin  ?     What  if  God  should  deny  me  repentance  and 

1  Psal.  cxi.  10.     Prov.  r.  6.    ix.  10. 


80  TREATISE   OP   CONVERSION. 

forgiveness  ?  Where  were  I  then  ?  He  durst  before  lie  in 
a  state  of  deaths  and  now  he  dares  not  live  quietly,  till  he 
have  laboured  after  assurance  of  his  salvation ;  that  he  may 
know  it  shall  go  well  with  him  when  he  must  be  here 
no  more.  Now  if  he  be  tempted  to  know  sin,  this  is 
his  answer,  '  I  dare  not  do  it,  because  I  fear  Ood '/  Other 
rulers  oppressed  the  people,  and  so  did  not  he  ;  because  he 
feared  Ood.  It  is  the  description  of  the  ungodly,  that 
**  there  is  no  fear  of  God  before  his  eyes  •.*'  And  the  des- 
cription of  a  wicked  place,  **  There  is  no  fear  of  Ood  in  this 
place  *."  And  the  description  of  the  godly,  that  "  they 
fear  God**."  By  this  "  fear  of  the  Lord  it  is  that  men  de- 
part from  evil ''."  This  "  tendeth  to  life  y."  In  this  "  is 
strong  consolation '."  So  that  it  is  the  work  of  conversion 
to  bring  the  presumptuous,  hardened  sinner  to  this  fear  of 
the  Lord :  none  do  so  much  fear  God  as  they. 

But  then  for  the  threats  of  men,  for  worldly  troubles  or 
crosses,  or  losses,  or  any  such  thing  that  may  stand  in  the 
way  to  heaven,  how  little  do  they  fear  them  all?  Here 
where  the  wicked  are  most  cowardly,  the  converted  soul  is 
most  courageous.  Alas !  he  knows  the  difference  between 
the  creature  and  the  Creator.  And  therefore,  when  he  hath 
once  got  God  on  his  side,  he  seeth  he  is  safe,  and  the  danger 
is  most  over.  Then,  O  what  light  thoughts  hath  he  of  man, 
or  of  all  that  he  can  do  !  ''  In  God  have  I  put  my  trust,'' 
saith  David,  '*  I  will  not  fear  what  flesh  can  do  unto  me  *  ''  q.d. 
What  is  flesh  to  be  compared  with  God  ?  Can  flesh  resist 
him,  and  cross  his  pleasure,  and  overcome  him  ?  as  Psal. 
cxviii.  6. "  The  Lord  is  on  my  side,  I  will  not  fear  what  man 
can  do  unto  me  f  and  Psal.  xlvi.  1 — 3.  "  God  is  our  refuge 
arid  strength,  a  very  present  help  in  trouble ;  therefore  witt 
we  not  fear  though  the  earth  be  removed,  and  though  the 
mountains  be  carried  into  the  midst  of  the  sea,  though  the 
waters  thereof  roar."  So  xxvi.  3.  He  knoweth  what  en- 
couragement God  hath  given  him,  la.  xli.  10.  "  Fear  not,  for 
I  am  with  thee  ;'-  and  vii.  4,  35.  xiv.  xli.  13,  14.  xliv.  2,  8, 
li.  7.  **  Fear  ye  not  the  reproach  of  man,  neither  be  afraid  of 
their  revilings ;  for  the  moth  shall  eat  them  up  like  a  gar- 

•■  Nehem.  v.  15.  •  Psal.  xxxvi.  1.  »  Gen.  xx.  11. 

"  Psal.  IxvJ.  16.     Eccles.  viii.  1«,     xii.  13.  »  ProT.  xvi.  6. 

y  Prov.  xix.  «3.  »  Prov,  xiv.  26.  »  Psal.  Ivi.  9. 


TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  81 

menty  and  the  worm  shall  eat  them  like  wool.     But  my  ngh- 
teoasness  shall  be  for  ever,  and  my  salvation  from  genera- 
tion to-  generation/'    These  words  of  God  are  the  instru- 
ments of  that  change  that  is  made  on  the  converted  soul, 
and   therefore  will  make  an  impression  like  themselves. 
When  God  doth  change  men,  he  maketh  them  soldiers  un- 
der the  banner  of  Christ,  and  setteth  them  in  fight  against 
principalities  and  powers,  even  against  a  world  of  wicked 
enemies  ;  and  therefore  he  will  certainly  give  them  courage. 
This  courage  is  an  essential  part  of  our  change,  and  without 
some  measure  of  it  we  cannot  be  Christians.     He  that  will 
come  to  heaven  must  forsake  all,  and  tread  down  all,  and 
despise  all  in  comparison  of  Christ,  that  he  may  not  be  a 
forsaker  and  a  despiser  of  Christ.    Therefore  we  find  the 
apostle,  in  the  name  of  himself  and  his  fellow-soldiers,  cou-r 
rageously  triumphing  over  death,  and  the  grave,  and  every 
enemy,  1  Cor.  xv.  66.   *'  O  death,  where  is  thy  sting  ?     O 
grave,  where  is  thy  victory  ?"  And  Rom.  viii.  18,  31,  to  the 
end  :  '*  The  sufierings  of  this  life  are  not  worthy  to  be  com- 
pared to  the  glory  that  shall  be  revealed  in  us ;  what  shall 
we  say  then  to  these  things  ?     If  God  be  for  us,  who  can  be 
against  us?    It  is  God  that  justifieth,  who  shall  condemn? 
What  shall  separate  us  from  the  love  of  God  V   Read  these 
triumphant  words  at  leisure.    Certain,  a  true  believer  hath 
more  valour  than  to  be  turned  out  of  the  way  to  heaven^  by 
any  assault  that  a  creature  can  make  upon  him. 

(6.)  The  next  passion  that  sheweth  the  change,  is  anger. 
This  is  a  single  passion,  and  hath  no  contrary.  Before 
conversion,  men  are  angry  with  those  that  trouble  them  in 
their  sins.  If  you  would  but  teach  the  ignorant,  or  per- 
suade the  obstinate,  or  cross  them  in  the  way  of  their  be- 
loved sins,  O  how  angry  will  they  be !  as  if  you  were  their 
enemy,  and  did  them  some  deadly  hurt.  You  cannot  speak 
to  theiki  BO  tenderly  in  a  reproof,  but  they  will  think  you  do 
it  to  disgrace  them,  or  in  ill  will  to  them,  or  at  least  that 
you  make  them  worse  than  they  are,  and  they  think  you 
make  more  ado  than  needs ;  as  Amaziah  did  by  the  pro- 
phet *•.  They  would  stop  his  mouth  if  they  could,  who 
would  stop  dieir  course  of  sinning.  You  shall  not  see  one 
of  many  of  them  that  have  so  much  ingenuity  as  to  take  a 

*  !2Chron.  xxf.  16. 
VOL.    VII.  G 


82  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

close  reproof  in  good  part !  no^  not  from  a  minister^  whose 
calling  doth  specially  bind  him  to  it.    Hence  is  the  com* 
mon  indignation   that  we    meet  with    from   pooCfi  blind 
wretches,  when  we  do  but  our  duty.    Nay,  when  we  do  not 
half,  nor  the  tenth  part  of  our  duty,  in  persuading  them  to 
a  greater  care  of  their  salvation,  they  are  offended  with  us, 
as  if  we  did  too  much.    O  what  a  difference  is  there  be- 
tween their  j  udgment,  and  the  judgment  of  God,  and  our  own 
conscience !    And  what  a  strait  a  poor  minister,  or  private 
Christian,  must  needs  be  in  betweea  both  !    I  confess  .to 
you  all  here,  to  my  shame,  that  I  remember  w>  one  sin  in 
the  world,  that  my  conscience  doth  so  much  accuse  and 
judge  me  for,  as  for  doing  so  little  for  the  saving  of  men's 
so,uls,  and  dealing  no   more  fervently  and  eajcQQstly  with 
them  for  their  conversion,  or  reformation.    And  yet.evei^ 
body  is  not  pleased  with  that  little  which  I  do.     Icpi^etka 
to  you,  that  wheA  I  am  alone,  and  think  of  the  case  of  poQr, 
ignorant,  worldly,  earthly^  unconverted  siuQer^L^  that  U^e 
not  to  Ood,  nor  set  their:  hearts;  on  the  lifi^  to.  come,  my: 
conscience  telleth  me,  that  I  should  go  to.  asmwy  of  th^n 
as  I  can,  and  tell  them  plainly  and  roundly  wh^t  will  ben 
come  of  them,  if  they  do  not  turn ;  and  to  beseech  Umiok 
with  all  the  earnestness  that  I  can,  to  cpme  in  to  Christy 
and  change  their  course,  and  make  no  delay.    And^though 
I  have  many  excuses  come  in  from  other  business,  and  from. 
disability  and  want  of  time,  yet  none  of  them  all  do  SfjLjtisfy 
my  own  conscience,  when  I  consider  what  heaven  and  heU 
are,  which  will  one  of  them  be  the  end  of  ey^ry  msA^s  lils ; 
my  conscience  telleth  me,  that  I  should  follow  them  with.all 
possible  ear^stness  night  and  day,  and  take  no  nay,  of 
them  till  they  return  to  God.     But  if  a  man  should  dp  thus,, 
how  would  it  be  taken  ?     Some  of  them  would  think  of 
him  as  Christ's  natural  kindred  did  of  him^,  when  they 
were  about  to  lay  hands  on  him,  and  thought  that  he  was 
besides  himself;  some  would  think  him  a  precise  fellow^ 
that  thought  nobody  should  be  saved  but  a  few  that  jpi^e 
more  stir  than  needs ;    and  most  would  be  angry  with  a^ 
man,  as  if  he  did  them  wrong,  when  he  doth  bat  seek  to 
save  them  with  fear,  pulling  them,  or  keeping  them  otitof 
the  fire  of  sin^.    Christ  himself  is  an  offence  to  the  ungodly 

»=  Mark  iii.  21,  «»  Jude  23. 


IPREATISE    QF   CONVERSIOK.  83 

world  ••  And  therefore  no  wonder  if  we  offend  them.  They 
will  even  bear  a  secret  grudge  in  their  minds  at  those  men 
that  trouble  them  in  their  sins ;  and  "  unger  resteth  in  the 
bosom  of  these  fools  ^''  If  you  should  suddenly  come  in 
tcpdn  a  thief  or  an  adulterer  with  a  light,  who  thought  to 
have  hidden  his  sin  in  the  dark,  he  would  be  offended  at  it; 
and  so  are  most  wicked  men  with  us. 

But  when  converting  grace  hath  changed  the  heart,  the 
case  is  quite  contrary.  Then  he  will  thank  you  for  that 
which  before  he  was  angry  at ;  he  loveth  no  man  so  well  as 
him  that  bath  sought  to  save  his  soul.  O,  those  reproofs 
and  ea^hortations  that  Ood  did  bless  to  his  conversion  will 
stick  by  him  for  ever.  He  will  bless  God  that  ever  he  saw 
yduf '  fkce,  and  remember  those  words  that  helped  to  save 
hiifi,  as  long  ais  he  liveth ;  he  will  take  it  for  a  greater  bene- 
fit than  if  you  had  given  him  all  your  wealth.  A  special 
extraordinary  love  to  those  that  were  made  the  means  of 
their  cbiivetsion  will  stick  for  ever  in  their  minds;  the 
veiy  W6rds  that  you  speak  to  them  will  be  so  remembered, 
that  they  would  hot  for  a  world  but  they  had  heard  these 
wotcls.  O;  what  a  change  is  here  suddenly  wrought !  He 
that  vr^s  wont  to  say,  '  Look  to  yourselves,  you  shall  npt 
answer  for  me,'  and  be  ahgty  with  them  that  troubled  him 
in  the  way  to  hell,  now  loveth  their  very  names,  and  the  re- 
laembraifce  of  their  kindness  is  pleasant  to  him.  Even  like 
a  poor  di&ttacted  than,  that  layeth  about  him,  and  abuseth 
t&e  phylticiaii,  atid'  calls  them  all  to  naught  that  would  cure 
him,  as  if  they  came  to  kill  him ;  but  when  he  is  come  to 
himself  again,  then  he  will  give  them  hearty  thanks.  Some^ 
what  like  it  is  in  a  beast ;  if  he  have  a  thorn  in  his  foot  he 
will  strive  against  you,  and  not  let  you  pull  it  out ;  and  if 
you  cast  him  down  to  force  him  to  it,  he  lieth  as  if  you  were 
about  to  kill  him  :  but  when  it  is  out,  and  be  perceiyeth  the 
ease,  he  will  perceive  you  did  not  mean  him  any  harm.  So 
it  is  with  a  sitfhei'  before  his  conversion :  he  is  angry  with 
those  that  would  do  him  good ;  but  when  once  God  hath 
turned  his  heart,  he  is  quite  of  another  mind.  Then  he  saith, 
'"Let  the  righteous  smite  me,  it  shall  be  a  kindness ;  and 
let  him  reprove  me,  it  shall  be  an  excellent  oil,  which  shall 
not  break  my  head  «."     And  he  taketh  open  "  rebuke  better 

•  1  Pet.  u.  B.   Rom.  ix.  33.  ^  Eccl.  vii.  9.  8^Psal.  cxii.  6. 


84  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

than  secret  love ;  and  the  wounds  of  a  friend  ^to  be  better 
than  the  kisses  of  an  enemy  s."  I  know,  by  sad  experience, 
that  too  much  heart-rising  against  reproof  doth  remain  in 
many  that  I  hope  are  conyerted,  but  that  is  from  their  un- 
converted part ;  and  if  it  were  predominant,  it  would  prove 
them  unconverted  men.  For  so  far  as  they  are  gracious, 
thus  it  will  be. 

Yea,  not  only  so ;  but  when  a  man  is  converted,  his  an- 
ger is  turned  against  himself.  He  was  never  so  angry  with 
others  for  reproving  him,  as  he  is  now  for  sinning  against 
Ood,  and  doing  so  much  wrong  to  his  own  soul.  Certainly 
there  is  in  every  converted  soul  a  great  indignation  against 
themselves  for  their  sin.  They  fall  out  with  themselves, 
and  think  ill  of  themselves,  and  speak  ill  of  themselves ; 
yea,  and  could  find  in  their  hearts  to  be  in  part  revenged 
upon  themselves.  You  may  see  as  much  said  by  Paul, 
2  Cor.  vii.  11.  where,  among  other  efiiects  of  godly  sorrow, 
he  nameth  indignation  and  revenge.  A  true  repenting  sin- 
ner could  even  find  in  his  heart  to  execute  some  punish- 
ment upon  himself.  O,  how  he  calls  himself  almost  all  that 
is  naught !  O,  thinks  he,  what  a  fool,  what  a  wretch,  what  a 
beast  was  I,  to  love  the  filth  of  sin  better  than  the  favour  of 
God  and  the  hopes  of  everlasting  glory  !  What  a  madman 
was  I,  to  be  angry  with  those  that  would  have  kept  me 
from  damnation  !  Where  was  my  wit  and  reason,  when  I 
so  long  forgot  the  work  that  I  was  born  for,  and  made  so 
light  of  the  Lord  that  bought  me,  and  thought  so  little  of  the 
place  that  I  must  live  in  for  ever  ?  Sirs,  I  do  not  speak  this 
of  mine  own  head.  I  have  heard  many,  and  many  a  one, 
through  God's  great  mercy,  after  conversion,  calling  them- 
selves worse  than  all  this  comes  to  ;  and  expressing  greater 
anger  against  themselves,  than  the  wicked  now  express 
.against  those  that  would  convert  them.  And  you  read,  that 
even  the  saints  in  Scripture  did  the  like  ;  and  that  not  by  a 
secret  confession,  but  left  it  on  record  to  all  generations. 
David  calls  himself  an  "  ignorant  fool,"  and  as  "  a  beast  \" 
He  cries  out,  when  his  heart  smote  him  by  true  repentance, 
"I  have  sinned  greatly ;  I  have  done  foolishly  \"  Paul  him- 
self saith,  that  he^was  "  even  mad,  and  exceedingly  mad, 

fir  Prov.  XX vii.  5,  6.         •»  Pwl.  Ixxiii.  22.  »  2  Sara.  xxiv.  10. 


TREATISE   OF   60NVERSI0N.  8B 

against''  the  Christians  before  his  converision^.  And  of 
himself  and  the  rest;  he  confesseth^  ''  We  ourselves  were 
sometime  foolish^  disobedient,  deceived,  serving  divers 
lusts,  and  pleasures,  living  in  malice  and  envy,  hateful,  and 
hating  one  another  ^"  So  that  you  see  converted  men  are 
very  angry  with  themselves  for  their  sinful  lives  ;  you  bear 
how  they  call  themselves.  If  they  used  such  language 
against  another  man,  you  would  think  it  were  railing ;  to 
call  them  fools  and  madmen,  and  all  to  naught.  But,  alas ! 
they  know  by  sad  experience  what  they  say,  and  yet  by  glad 
Experience  that  it  is  now  better  with  them.  Therefore  it  is 
that  they  can  easier  bear  the  hard  words  of  another,  when 
they  are  forced  to  say  as  bad  by  themselves.  Therefore  is 
every  converted  sinner  a  man  that  loatheth  himself  for  his 
iniquity*".  Yea,  they  could  find  in  their  hei^rts,  as  I  said, 
to  be  partly  revenged  on  themselves.  For  though  they 
must  not  destroy  their  own  bodies,  because  they  are  not 
iheir  own  but  Christ's,  nor  must  any  way  hurt  them,  so 
far  as  to  make  them  the  less  serviceable  unto  God ;  yet,  in 
any  other  case,  they  can  find  in  their  heart  to  punish  this 
flesh,  and  to  make  it  smart,  that  hath  led  them  to  so  much 
evil.  Therefore  they  are  the  easier  brought  to  fasting,  and 
denying  the  flesh  its  desires,  though  they  put  tt  to  trouble 
and  pain ;  for  as  this  doth  tend  to  master  it,  and  subdue  it 
for  the  time  to  come,  so  a  vindictive  penance  for  the  time 
past  voluntarily  undertaken,  is  but  a  lawful  fruit  of  repent- 
ance, BO  that  it  do  no  whit  disable  us  from  the  service  of 
God.  Hence  it  is,  that  a  thorough  convert  doth  more  easily 
forbear  a  carnal  pleasure,  than  a  hypocrite  or  half-convert 
will  do.  For  when  they  are  pleading  the  lawfulness  of 
their  pleasure,  and  saying, '  what  harm  is  it,'  and  '  why  may 
I  not  do  this  or  that,'  he  is  willing  to  avoid  it,  though  it 
should  be  but  indifferent,  as  long  as  there  is  any  great  dan- 
ger of  sin  in  it.  For  what  careth  he  if  the  flesh  do  smart 
for  it,  if  they  be  the  worst  ?  Seeing  it  is  the  flesh  that  he 
is  fallen  out  with,  and  hath  done  so  much  wrong  to  God  and 
him.  So  that  you  see  what  a  change  conversion  makes  on 
a  man's  anger  as  well  as  other  passions. 

(7.)  The  last  change  we  shall  mention  on  the  affections; 
that  is  made  by  converting  grace,  is  in  regard  of  a  man's 

^  Acts  xxvi.  11.  >  Tit.  iii.  3.  »  Exek.  xxxvi.  31.   xx.  43. 


8Q  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION* 

epnteqt  and  discontent.  Before  conv^rsipn^  a  man  is  dis* 
Q9nteQt  if  he  had  not  the  desires  of  his  flesh*  He  hath.no 
rest  in  his  mind,  if  he  be  poor  or  afflicted,  and  e^ee  not  some 
hope  of  coming  out  pf  it.  But  for  the  love  of  God,  and  the  life 
of  grace,  and  the  joys  of  the  godly,  he  can  be  well  enough 
content  without  these.  If  he  had  but  what  he  would  have 
in  the  worlds  take  you  the  rest,  for  he  thinks  he  can  live 
wellenbugh  without  them.  When  Gain's  sacrifice  was  not 
accepted  as  his  brother's,  he  was  discontented  at  his  bre- 
vier, and  consequently  at  God  himself.  He  **  was  very 
wroth,,  and  his  countenance  fell  °."  Because  ]|iis  brother 
was  preferred  before  him,  and  was  judged  righteous  when 
he  was  judged  unrighteous.  But  he  could  be  content  with- 
out true  righteousness  itself,  though  he  could  not  be  content 
without  the  estimation  of  it.  So  can  all  ungodly  men  be 
content  well  enough  to  be  ungodly,  but  not  to  be  called 
ungodly ;  the  name  troubleth  them,  when  the  thing  is  so  far 
ftom.  troubling  them,  that  they  will  not  be  persuaded  by 
any  means  to  leave  it.  In  a  word,  it  is  the  things  of  tl^ 
world  that  wicked  men  do  seek  content  in,  though  tbf^y  find 
it  not.  But  as  for  spiritual  and  heavenly  things,  tbey  caa 
be  better  content  in  the  case  that  they  are  now  in ;  witUout 
them,  than  with  them« 

But  conrersion  turneth  the  heart  also  in  thi^  regard.  Fosr 
when  a  man  is  once  truly  changed,  he  can  be  contented 
with  any  state,  if  he  have  but  the  favour  of  God,  and  thie 
Ijife  of  his  grace,  and  communion  with  him ;  and  without 
this  he  can  be  content  with  nothing.  Nothing  but  Christ 
will  serve  his  turn.  .  If  God  will  give  him  more  upon  the  by, 
he  will  take  it  and  be  thankful ;  but  without  Christ  he  take9 
all  things  to  be  as  nothing.  What  if  he  h^d  lands  and 
lordships,  honour  and  dignity,  what  will  this  do  for  him 
without  God  in  Christ  ?  And  blame  him  not,  for  he  hadi 
felt  such  a  disease,  that  these  things  could  not  heal,  when 
Christ,  and  Christ  alone,  could  do  it.  And  therefore  CJuist 
he  must  have  whatsoever  else  he  go  without.  A  little  of  the 
world  will  serve  with  Christ,  but  nothing. in  the  world  will 
serve  without  him.  As  a  wicked  man  is  troubled  and  rest-f 
less,  because  he  hath  not  that  which  he  would  have,  when 
every  thing  is  not  according  to  his  mind.     If  friends,  if  jes* 

n  Gen.  iv.  5. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  87 

tates,  ifhis  house^  orhis  body^  or  any  thing  be  out  of  order, 
he  is  in  discontent,  because  it  is  here  that  he  seeks  content, 
and  tilierefore  is  troubled  when  he  misseth  of  it.  So  is  it  with 
a  believer  in  respect  of  Christ*  If  Ood  hide  his  face,  if  the 
Spirit  seem  to  urithdraw,  if  Christ  seem  strange  to  him,  if 
doubts  of  Saltation  come  in  upon  his  soul,  he  is  as  a  bone 
out  of  joiiit,  pained  and  troubled,  tmd  nothing  will  quiet 
him  till  he  be  set  in  joint  again.  Like  a  child  that  will  be 
quieted  with  nothing  but  that  which  he  cries  for.  If  you 
oflTer  him  any  thing  else,  he  throweth  it  aWay,  for  that  is  not 
it  which  he  crieth  for.  So  is  it  with  this  poor  Christian;  if 
you  tell  him  of  riches,  or  honour,  or  pleasure,  and  not  of 
Christ,  and  grace,  2aid  glory,  you  do  but  trouble  him,  for 
these  are  not  the  things  that  he  looks  after.  There  is  but 
one  thing  in  the  world  that  can  give  him  content;  let  him 
have  that  and  he  hath  enough.  O,  did  he  but  know  that 
Qod  is  reconciled  to  him,  and  that  he  is  united  to  Christ, 
and  the  Spirit  is  in  him,  and  that  he  is  in  the  safe  way  to 
die  kingdom  of  glory,  then  if  he  have  but  food  and  raiment 
he  can  therewith  be  content^.  Yea,  or  if  he  were  without 
them,  if  Ood  so  dispose  of  it.  For  he  hath  learned  by  the 
teaching  of  converting  grace,  to  abound  and  to  want,  and 
in  what  state  soever  he  is,  therewith  to  be  content  p.  And 
therefore,  his  conversation  is  without  covetousness,  and  he 
is  content  with  such  things  as  he  hath,  because  God  hath 
promised  him  that  he  will  never  leave  him  nor  forsake  him^. 
So  this  is  another  fruit  of  conversion  about  men's  ccmtent,  or 
discontent. 

Having  said  thus  much  of  the  change  of  the  affections, 
I  might  proceed  to  shew  you,  what  particular  reigning  sins 
it  is,  that  this  work  doth  cast  out  of  the  heart,  and  what 
particidar  graceis  it  there  setteth  up,  and  so  go  over  all  the 
chief  sins  ^and  graces.  But  because  this  would  hold  me 
longer  .than  I  intend  to  stand  upon  this  subject,  and  be- 
Causae  these  are  comprehended  in  the  change  already  men- 
tiohed,  '{  shall  pass  these  over;  only  that  part  which  my 
fext  doth  particularly  express,  I  take  it  to  be  my  duty  par- 
ticularly to  handle. 

"  Except  ye  become  as  little  children.^'  You  see  here, 
that  Christ  plaoeth  much  of  the  work  of  conversion  in  the 

o  1  Tim.  vi.  8.  p  Pbil.  iv.  11.  i  Heb.  xiii.  .h 


88  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION, 

making  U8  to  become  *'  as  little  children."  I  shall  here, 
therefore,  stay  awhile  to  tell  you,  1.  What  is  not  meant 
by  this  ;  and  2.  What  is  meant  by  it.  1.  Christ  doth  not 
by  this  intend,  that  little  children  are  altogether  innocent, 
and  that  there  is  nothing  in  them  that  is  hateful  to  God :  for 
certainly  they  have  all  original  sin;  for  who  can  bring  a 
clean  thing  out  of  an  unclean  ?  or  how  can  the  parents  be- 
get holy  children  tha(  are  unholy  themselves  ?  and  righte- 
ous children,  that  are  themselves  unrighteous  ?  I  mean, 
without  sin,  when  they  are  not  themselves  without  sin.  I 
remSlhber  what  an  outcry  there  was  *>  once  against  me  in 
this  town,  for  saying,  that  children  by  nature,  considered 
as  sinful  and  unsanctified,  were  as  hateful  in  the  eyes  of 
God,  as  any  toads  or  serpents.are  in  ours :  so  that  the  peo- 
ple railed  at  me  as  I  went  along  the  streets  \  but  doubtle8» 
the  comparison  is  far  too  short ;  for  every  child  by  nature 
hath  original  sin,  and  sin  is  more  hateful  to  God  a  thousand 
times,  than  any  toad  or  serpent  is  to  us.  And  therefore  it 
is  not  by  nature  that  children  are  righteous,  or  come  to  hea- 
ven. But  it  is  by  grace,  through  the  blood  of  Christ  that 
washeth  them ;  and  the  covenant  that  forgiveth  them ;  and 
baptism  that  sealeth  this  unto  them ;  and  they  are  capable 
also  of  the  Spirit,  to  sanctify  them.  If  there  were  not  a 
willing  nature  in  infants  disposing  them  to  evil,  before  they 
do  it;  as  there. is  a  stinging  venomous  nature  in  a  serpent 
before  he  stings,  or  in  a  wasp  even  in  the  comb.  How 
should  it  come  to  pass,  that  children  should  be  so  forward 
to  evil  as  soon  as  they  can  commit  it?  Why  are  they  not 
as  forward  to  good  ?  If  children  be  not  by  nature,  through 
original  sin,  even  hateful  to  God,  what  need  have  we  of  the 
blood  of  Christ,  to  wash  them  and  cleanse  them  from  it? 
And  of  the  water  of  baptism  to  seal  this  cleansing  ?  Doubt- 
less, ther.e  is  not  an  infant  in  the  world  but  would  be  for 
ever  damned,  if  Christ's  blood  did  not  procure  their  pardon 
and  reconciliation  with  God.  It  id  not  therefore  in  abso- 
lute innocence,  that  Christ  here  means  that  we  must  be- 
come as  little  children,  before  we  can  enter  into  the 
kingdom. 

2.  Nor  yet  is  it  in  point  of  safety  from  the  wrath  of  God^ 
as  if  every  child,  or  any  by  nature,  were  free  from  all  dan- 

1  Fifteen  years  ago. 


TRSATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  89 

9 

ger  of  eyerlasting  perdition.  By  grace  many  are,  but  by 
nature  none  at  all.  From  the  hour  of  their  birth  many  may 
be  sanctified  ;  but  it  is  the  covenant  of  grace,  and  the  grace 
of  the  covenant,  that  sanctifieth  them  S  and  not  the  parent 
or  nature. 

The  things,  therefore,  that  Christ  intendeth  in  the  worda 
of  my  text,  are  these  two  :     First,  That  as  children  are  but 
men  entered  into  the  world,  and  beginning  their  lives,  and 
all  things  are  new  to  them,  so  he  that  will  be  saved,  must 
by  conversion,  as  it  were,  begin  the  world  anew.     I  pr^ 
you  mark  it,  sirs,  for  Christ  hath  not  given  you  this  doc- 
trine and  example  for  nothing.     Therefore  it  is  that  we  find 
80  often  in  Scripture  mention  made,  of  laying  by,  or  de- 
stroying, or  putting  off  the  old  man.     In  Rom.  vi.  6.  "  Our 
old  man  is  crucified  with  him,  that  the  body  of  sin  might 
be  destroyed,  that  henceforth  we  should  not  serve   sin.'' 
He  that  hath  truly  learned  Christ,  **  hath  put  off  concerning 
the  former   conversation  the  old  man,    which  is  corrupt 
according  to  the  deceitful  lusts,  and  are  renewed  in  the  spi- 
rit of  their  mind ;  and  put  on  the  new  man,  which  after  God 
is  created  in  righteousness  and  true  holiness  *."    ''  Mortify 
therefore  your  members  which  are  upon  the  earth ;  fornica- 
tion, uncleanness,  inordinate  affection,  evil  concupiscence 
and  covetousness,  which  is   idolatry:    for  which  things' 
sake,  the  wrath  of  God  cometh  on  the  children  of  disobedi- 
ence :    in  the  which  ye  also  walked  sometimes,  when  ye 
lived  in  them.     But  now  ye  also  put  off  all  these ;   anger, 
wrath^  malice,  blasphemy,  filthy  communication  out  of  your 
month.     Lie  not  one  to  another,  seeing  ye  have  put  off  the 
old  man  with  his  deeds ;  and  have  put  on  the   new  man 
which  is  renewed  in  knowledge,  after  the  image  of  him  that 
created  him  ^"    Upon  consideration  of  which  great  change, 
they  are  said  also  to  be  **  dead,  and  risen  again,  and  their  life 
now  hidden  with  Christ  in  God  ^"    You  see  then  that  here 
is  an  old  man  to  be  put  off,  and  destroyed,  and  a  new  man 
to  be  put  on.    That  is,  there  must  be  such  a  change  of  the 
qualities  of  the  soul,  and  the  practice  of  the  life,  that  a  man 
must  not,  in.  his  affectioQ  and  conversation,  be  the  same 
man  that  he  was  before.     For  though  he  be  the  same  in 

'  1  Cor.  vii.  14.~  •  Eph* iv.  22.  *  Col.  iii.5— 10. 

«  Col.  ill.  1—3. 


00  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

substance  and  person,  and  the  naturiail  faculties  of  his  soul, 
yet  not  the  same  in  disposition  and  practice.  In  regard  of 
his  old  corrupt  disposition  and  conversation,  he  is  called  the 
old  man,  and  in  regard  of  his  new  disposition  and  conver- 
sation, he  is  called  the  new  man.  As  a  man  that  hath  been 
an  ill  husband,  and  run  out  of  all,  and  having  nothing  left, 
is  cast  into  prison,  and  when  he  lieth  there,  he  bethinks 
him  of  his  folly,  and  at  last  a  friend  comes  and  payeth  his 
debts,  and  setteth  him  up  again,  and  giveth  him  a  stock  to 
trade  with;  we  say  of  this  man,  *  he  begins  the  world  anew.' 
So  when  a  poor  sinner  is  in  prison,  under  the  wrath  of  God 
for  his  sin,  and  Christ  comes  in  his  gospel  and  telleth  him, 
'  I  have  paid  thy  debt,  and  now  I  will  set  thee  free,  and  give 
thee  the  help  of  my  Spirit,  and  means ;  only  see  then  be 
faithful  to  me,  and  make  better  use  of  my  mercy  for  the 
time  to  come.'  Now  this  converted  sinner  is  to  begin  the 
world,  as  it  were,  anew.  As  a  man  that  hath  fallen  into  a 
Sever,  that  bath  consumed  all  his  flesh  to  the  very  bones, 
when  he  is  cured  his  natural  parts  do  make  him  new  blood 
and  iSesh  again.  So  when  Christ  hath  cured  the  diseased 
soul,  the  old  flesh  is  as  it  were  consumed,  and  we  are  made 
anew.  As  a  man  that  hath  missed  his  way  at  the  first  set- 
ting out,  and  gone  the  contrary  way  all  day,  and  at  last 
comes  to  know  that  he  was  all  this  while  out  of  his  way,  he 
is  then  to  begin  his  journey  anew.  So  is  it  with  the  con- 
verted man.  When  the  illumination  of  the  Spirit  by  the 
word,  doth  acquaint  him,  that  he  hath  all  this  while  been 
out  of  the  way  to  heaven,  he  tumeth  again  and  saith,  *  I  am 
now  to  begin  my  life  again/  The  building  that  he  hadi= 
been  setting  up  all  this  while,  is  blown  down  by  the  breath 
of  God's  displeasure,  or  consumed  by  the  fire  of  his  curse. 
And  therefore  he  must  begin  again,  and  build  all  anew  from 
the  very  ground.  Not  an  earthly  building  like  the  old,  but 
a  spiritual  house  for  himself,  that  maybe  fit  for  his  holy 
Spirit  to  dwell  in  ^.  And  may  attain  at  last  to  the  building 
not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens  ^. 

I  beseech  you,  beloved  hearers,  mark  this  as  we  go,  and 
see  whether  this  be  so  with  your  own  souls.  I  must  tell 
every  carnal,  worldly  sinner  of  you  all,  in  the  name  of  God, 
that  your  old  condition  is  a  miserable  condition,  and  will 

«  Rom.  Tiii.  11.   2  Tim.  i.  54.  y  SXiJor,  v.  1,  8. 


TREA118E   OF   CONVERSIOIf.  91 

not  senre  the  turn  of  heayen.  If  ever  you  will  be  saved,  you 
most  become  as  little  children,  and  even  begin  the  world 
anew.  A  new  heart  you  must  have,  a  new  life  yon  must 
lead,  a  new  course  you  must  take,  and  a  new  end  you  must 
aim  at,  and  intend.  But  of  this  I  must  speak  more  anon, 
mider  the  further  proof  and  application. 

Secondly,  Another  thing  that  Christ  here  principally 
intendeth  in  the  text,  is,  that  we  must  become  as  little  chil- 
dren, in  r^ard  of  humility,  and  all  our  designs  and  contri- 
vances of  the  world.    Though  this  be  not  die  whole  that 
he  intends,  yet  this  is  the  very  reason  for  which  he  men- 
tioaeth  the  whole  work  of  conversion,  as  necessary  to  sal- 
vation;  and  therefiM'e  he  particularly  giveth  instance  in 
diis  part :  though  children  have  the  seed  of  all  these  in 
Aeir  naitures,  yet  are  they  not  acquainted  with  the  acts  of 
all,  even  when  they   begin  to  be  acquainted  with  some. 
Children  will  very  young  shew  their  frowardness  and  dis- 
obedience, and  sensuality,  and  some  pride,  but  not  by  as- 
piring after  great  things  in  the  world,  and  seeking  after  do- 
minions, and  dignities,  and  honours.    They  are  in  no  care 
for  enlarging  possessions,  for  heaping  up  riches,  for  buying 
lands  and  lordships ;  they  envy  not  the  princes  and  lords  of 
the  world,  but  are  as  well  contented  with  their  lower  mat- 
ters, as  kings  and  emperors  are  with  their  crowns ;  if  they 
have  meat,  and  drink,  and  clothes,  and  play,  they  are  pleas- 
ed :  you  never  hear  them  murmur  that  they  are  not  prefer- 
red to  this  office  or  that,  in  church  or  commonwecdth :  they 
do  not  contrive  how  to  undermine  others ;  nor  to  get  above 
them  in  worldly  dignities ;  nor  to  blast  the  name  of  others, 
that  they  may  magnify  their  own.    They  disdain  not  those 
of  the  lowest  rank ;  but  the  children  of  a  lord,  will  play  fa- 
miliarly, if  they  be  not  dissuaded  by  others,  with  the-  chil- 
dren of  beggars:  in  a  word,  though  they  have  pride,  and 
shew  it  in  lower  things,  yet  do  they  not  look  after  the  great 
mtters  of  the  world,  as  ambitious  and  covetous  persons  do* 
And  this  is  the  thing  that  Christ  intendeth  to  his  disciples, 
and  to  all  Christians,  that  if  ever  they  will  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  heaven,  diey  must  lay  by  their  pride  and  vain- 
glory, and  covetousness,  and  become  as  little  children  to 
all  these  honours  and  riches  of  the  world.    So  that  it  is 
plain,  that  Christ  maketb  humility  an  essential  part  of  the 


1 


i 


92  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

work  of  conversion,  and  altogether  inseparable  from  tbe 
heirs  of  his  kingdom.     As  pride  is  thought  to  be  the  first 
sin  of  the  devil,  and  was  certainly  the  first,  or  one  of  the 
first  that  tainted  the  nature  of  man,  when  he  would  neiedi 
be  as  Ood,  knowing  good  and  evil;  so  is  it  not  the  last  or 
least  of  the  works  of  Christ  on  the  soul  in  its  recovery,  to 
take  down  this  pride,  and  humble  us,  and  make  us  little  in 
our  own  eyes.     Satan  drew  us  to  aspire  after  a  kind  of  god- 
head,'and  to  be  more  than  men ;  and  Christ  brings  us  to  be 
as  little  children,  and  almost  less  than  men.    Satan  drew  as 
to  be  like  him  in  pride,  and  Christ  draweth  us  by  doctrine 
and  example,  to  be  like  to  him  in  meekness  and  lowliness: 
.  satan  would  lift  us  up,  that  he  might  cast  us  down,  and  our 
'  fall  might  be  the  greater,  by  how  much  we  attempted  to 
mount  the  higher ;  and  Christ  casteth  us  down,  that  he  may 
lift  us  up,  and  that  our  glory  may  be  the  greater,  by  how 
much  we  are  made  the  baser  by  humility.     Satan  did  but 
unsettle  us  by  taking  us  off  our  rock  and  foundation,  when 
he  pretended  to  exalt  us ;  and  Christ  doth  settle  us  again 
by  laying  us  low ;  and*by  teaching  us  meekness,  he  causeth 
us  to  find  that  rest  to  our  souls,  which  in  pride  and  vain- 
glory could  not  be  found'.     Satan  by  sin  did  make  us  low 
and  vile  in  God's  eye,  and  high  and  excellent  in  his  own; 
and  Christ  by  converting  grace  doth  make  us  low  and  vile 
in  our  own  eyes,  and  high  and  excellent  in  God's.     By  cor- 
rupted nature,  men  are  still  inclined  to  rise  higher,  and  lift 
up  themselves ;  but  by  grace  he  is  disposed  to  think  meanly 
of  himself,  and  to  set  light  by  the  honours  and  greatness  of 
this  world.     And  why  is  this,  think  you?     Is  it  because 
grace  debaseth  men's  spirits  ?     No,  but  because  it  raiseth 
and  ennobleth  them.    The  converted  soul  doth  slight  the 
glory  and  greatness  of  the  world,  not  on  the  same  reasons 
as  children  do  ;  i.  e.  because  they  know  it  not,  or  because 
it  is  above  them ;  but  because  he  is  now  acquainted  with 
far  greater  things,  and  because  that  all  on  earth  ia  below 
them.     It  is  not  because  he  would  fain  have  greater  matters^ 
and  cannot  get  them,  but  because  he  hath  got  a  sight  of 
such  things  in  the  world  to  come,  in  comparison  of  which, 
these  things  are  as  nothing,  and  therefore  to  be  set  light  by, 
and  even  trodden  under  foot.     He  slighteth  not  crowns  and 

<  Matt.  xi.  28,  i9. 


m 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  93 

\ 

kmgdoms  as  things  above  him,  but  as  things  below  him^ 
The  very  humility  of  the  saints  hath  a  high  design :  when 
they  lie  in  the  dust,  in  self-abhorrency  and  self-condemna- 
tion, they  are  aspiring  thence  as  high  as  heaven :  their  hum- 
ble confession^  and  tears,  and  groans,  have  a  tendency  to 
that  glory,  which  is  above  the  sun.  As  a  child  that  casteth 
his  ball  to  the  ground,  that  it  may  rebound  the  higher ;  or 
as  a  man  that  means  to  make  the  highest  building,  will  dig 
deepest  to  lay  the  foundation  ;  in  the  depth  of  their  debase- 
ment they  are  seeking  to  be  as  the  angels  of  God.  It  is 
heaven  that  they  mean  in  every  duty,  in  every  prayer,  in 
every  lamentation  they  make  for  their  infirmities,  yea,  in  all 
they  do  in  the  world,  it  is  nothing  lower  than  heaven  that 
they  intend. 

Perhaps  you  will  by  this  time  turn  your  judgment  of 
them,  as  much  as  the  barbarians  did  of  Paul,  Acts  xxviii.  3. 
And  as  before  you  thought  them  too  base,  now  you  will  say, 
that  grace  doth  make  them  proud :  but  it  is  no  such  mat- 
ter.    Pride  is  the  undue  estimation  of  a  man's  self,  and  a 
desire  of  undue  estimation  from  others ;  and  it  provoketh 
a  man  to  seek  after  an  unnecessary  seeming  greatness  in 
the  world,  which  tendeth  to  lay  him  as  low  as  hell.     But 
these  high  desires,  and  attempts,  and  expectations  of  the 
saints  are  accompanied  with  a  deep  sense  of  their  own  un- 
deservings  :  they  confess  beforehand  that  they  are  worthy 
of  nothing,  when  they  live  in  hope  of  all  things  ;  they  ac- 
knowledge that  hell  is  their  desert,  when  they  aspire  afler 
heaven.     And  when  they  come  thither,  they  will  confess  it 
was  not  from  their  merit,  but  will  for,,  everlasting  glorify 
that  grace  that  did  bestow  it.    They  lean  in  all  their  endea- 
vours upon  Christ,  and  never  think  to  rise  so  high  by  any 
strength  that  is  properly  their  own.    They  will  readily  con- 
fess, that  they  have  nothing  but  what  they  received,  and 
that  it  was  Ood,  and  not  themselves,  that  made  them  to 
differ ;  and  therefore  they  dare  not  gloiy  as  if  they  received 
it  not.     When  they  have  most,  they  most  honour  the  giver : 
and  when  they  do  best,  they  magnify  him  that  quickened, 
and  strengthened  them ;  and  say,  ''  Not  to  us,  O  Lord,  not 
to  us,  but  to  thy  Namie  give  the  glory  \**    The  more  they 
have,  the  better  they  know  whence  they   had  it.     And  as 

»  Psal   cxv.  1. 


94  TREATISE   OP   CONVBRHIOR. 

their  light  increaBeth,  so  doth  it  lead  them  farther  froii 
themselves,  and  shew  them  their  natural  darkness,  and  the 
glory  of  that  sun  from  whence  all  flows.     It  is  not  impossi- 
ble for  a  low  spirit  to  have  high  designs ;  and  for  a  man  to 
lie  in  deep  self-accusations,  with  strongest  hope  of  an  an- 
gelical glory.    A  man  may  look  toward  heaven  that  lietk 
flat  on  the  earth,  so  that  his  back  be  towards  it,  and  not  hit 
face.     It  is  no  pride  to  desire  that  which  God  made  for  as ; 
nor  to  seek  after  any  greatness,  that  he  hath  promised  and 
offered,  and  commanded  us  to  seek  for.    The  sin  of  pride 
lieth  not  in  the  elevation,  and  aspiring  after  things  so  great; 
bat  in  the  undueness  and  error  of  it,  and  in  the  falsmiess  of 
the  estimation ;  unless  when  it  comes  to  desire  to  be  even 
as  God.     It  is  not  pride,  but  spiritual  wisdom,  to  desire  to 
be  like  to  God  in  holiness,  and  to  bear  his  image,  for  that 
is  our  perfection.     It  is  not  pride,  to  be  unsatisfied  witb  aA 
the  greatness  and  glory  of  this  world;  and  restlessly  to 
seek  after  a  heavenly  kingdom,  and  to  hope  to  be  like  the 
Son  in  glory,  and  to  be  equal  with  the  angels  of  God  **:  for 
God  hath  made  us  for  this,  and  set  it  before  us,  as  the  priie 
we  run  for,  and  given  us  an  infallible  promise  of  it  in  hii^ 
word  :  God  would  not  have  us  base,  when  he  forbids  us  to 
be  proud.     His  service  dignifieth  us,  if  any  thing  be  a  dig-^ 
nity.     He  would  not  have  us  to  be  such  earth-worms,  so 
poor,  so  miserable,  so  blind,  so  naked,  as  to  take  np  with 
the  trifles  and  dirt  of  the  world ;  but  would  have  us  livcf 
like  men  that  have  souls,  which  are  immortal.    Pride  is  the 
tympany  of  the  soul,  which  consumeth  the  substance,  Bxni 
is  a  mortal  disease :  he  loveth  not  our  barrenness,  nor  is  he 
against  our  substantial  growth  and  nourishment,  because  he 
would  cure  us  of  this  tympany  that  would  kill  us.     It  is 
wind  and  water,  and  not  flesh  and  substance  that  is  the 
matter  of  this  disease.     So  that,  when  Qod  takes  you  down, 
it  is  that  he  may  lift  you  up  ;  and  he  makes  you  lesser,  that 
he  may  make  you  greater.     And  if  you  should  yet  imagine 
that  humiliation  is  an  unlikely  way  to  exaltation,  the  Spirit* 
of  God  and  the  life  of  grace  have  taught  the  true  convert  the 
contrary  by  experience  :  he  knows  it  is  God's  ordinary  way 
to  bring  life  out  of  death,  and  light  out  of  darkness,  and  aU 
things  out  of  nothing,   and  to  be  glorified  by  weak  things. 

^  Luke  XX.  36. 


TREATISB   OF   CONVERSION^  95 

> 

He  knoweth  that  Christ  went  by  the  cross  unto  the  erown, 
and  was  nearest  his  glory,  when  he  was  lowest  in  his  humi- 
liation ;  and  so  must  he.  For  he  that  will  be  conformed  to 
him  in  his  glory,  must  be  conformed  to  him  iA  his  suffer- 
ings ^.  We  must  suffer  with  him,  that  we  may  reign  with 
him"^.  The  prison,  and  the  stocks,  and  scourging,  and 
scorns,  were  the  preparation  for  the  throne,  that  Paul  and 
many  another  must  undergo.  The  lark  that  soareth  highr 
est,  and  singeth  as  it  were  in  the  face  of  the  uuxx,  was  bred 
under  a  dod,  as  low  as  any  other  bird. 

Beloved  hearers,  I  beseech  you  hear  not  these  things  as 
matters  that  concern  you  not,  but  as  the  true  description  of 
the  heirs  of  heaven.    Thus  must  it  be  with  you  if  you  will 
be  saved.    While  you  are  unconverted;  O  what  stoutness 
and  stubbornness  is  in  the  heart !     How  fain  would  men  be 
somebody  in  the  world !    How  ill  do  you  take  it  to  be  light*- 
ly  esteemed !  You  would  think  it  a  gallant  thing,  if  you 
could  but  be  greatest,  and  have  all  things  done  as  you 
would  have  them,  and  all  men  beholden  to  you,  and  depend 
upon  you^  and  you  to  be  beholden  to  none,  and  to  have 
men's  knees  bow  to  you,  and  your  word  to  be  the  law,  and 
all  men  give  you  the  preeminency ;  to  have  yovyr  name  to  be 
great  and  famous^  and  to  be  honoured  "by  all.    O  what  an 
excellent  life  were  this  in  the  eyes  of  a  carnal  man !    But 
converting  grace  will  bring  you  down,  if  Qod  in  mercy 
please  to  give  it  you*    2.  It  will  make  you  call  yourselves 
less  than  the  least  of  all  his  mercies/*.    "  A  worm  and  no 
nuia^:"  a  wretched  man^.    It  will  make  you  think  your* 
sehres   unworthy  to  live  ;^   unworthy  to  com^  among  the 
sainta ;  unworthy  to  mention  the  name  of  Gt>d ;  or  taste  of 
his  favour ;   and  this  not  feignedly,  but  from  your  very 
hearts.    It  will  make  you  marvel,  that  God  should  do  •  so 
much  for  such  a  wretdi  as  you ;  and  that  he  had  not  damn* 
ed  yon  long  ago.     It  will  make  confession  of  sin,  even  na- 
tsnl  to  you,  and  make  you  lay  your  mouth  in  the  dust  K 
You  will  say  worse  of  yourselves  to  Ood  and  man,  than; 
most  oUiers  will  say  of  you,  and  you  will  the  more  easily 
bear  all    slightings  and   reproaches,  and  unworthy  usage 
from  the  world,  because  you  know  how  ill  you  deserve  of 

e  Phil.  iii.  10.  «»  Rom.  viii.  17.  «  Gt- n.  xxxii.  10. 

f  Psal.  zxil.  6.  f  Rom.  vii.  124.  '*  Lam.  iii.  29* 


96  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

God,  as  having  used  him  and  his  grace  so  ill.  Instead  of 
snuffing  at  those  that  observe  you  not,  and  honour  you  not, 
you  will  think  yourselves  unworthy  to  be  observed,  and 
think  the  dishonour  less  than  your  due.  Instead  of  snuffing 
that  any  should  go  before  you,  or  be  preferred  above  you, 
you  will  be  ready  to  stoop  to  the  feet  of  the  meanest,  for 
their  good.  You  will  esteem  others,  as  far  as  reason  will 
bear  it,  better  than  yourselves ;  and  in  honour  prefer  others 
before  yourselves  ^.  Instead  of  lording  it  over  your  bre- 
thren, you  will  think  it  your  greatness  to  be  the  servants  of 
all  *. 

It  may  be  you  will  say,  this  is  a  strange  person  whom  I 
now  describe,  and  if  there  be  no  true  converts  but  such  as 
these,  God  help  us  all !  for  they  are  but  few.     I  answer,  this 
is  the  description  that  I  find  in  the  word ;  and  be  they  few 
or  many,  it  is  these,  and  only  these,  that  are  the  disciples 
that  Christ  will  own.    **  For  thus  saith  the  Lord,  the  high 
and  lofty  one  that  inhabiteth  eternity,  whose  name  is  holy ; 
I  dwell  in  the  high  and  holy  place,  with  him  also  that  is  of 
a  contrite  and  humble  spirit,  to  revive  the  spirit  of  the 
humble,  and  to  revive  the  heart  of  the  contrite  ones^'' 
'*  To  this  man  will  I  look,  even  to  him  that  is  poor,  and  of 
a  contrite  spirit,  and  trembleth  at  my  word*.''     "  Blessed 
are  the  poor  in  spirit;  for  their's  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 
Blessed  are  they  that  mourn  ;  for  they  shall  be  comforted. 
Blessed  are  the  meek;  for  they  shall  inherit  the  earth "'.^    ; 
Read  the  text  that  Christ  preached  on  Luke  iv.  18.     Rom. 
xii.  16.  ''Mind  not  high  things,  but  condescend  to  men 
of  low  estate."    And  Job  xxii.  29.  '*  He  shall  save  the  hum- 
ble person."    ''He  that  humbleth  himself  shall  be  exalted, 
and  he  that  exalteth  himself  shall  be  brought  low ''/'     "God 
resisteth  the  proud,  but  giveth  grace  to  the  humble  V    I 
shall  but  trouble  you  to  recite  one  half  of  the  Scriptures 
that  speak  in  this  strain,  and  assure  us  that  there  is  no  troe 
grace  and   Christianity  without  true  humility.     I  confess 
there  are  several  degrees  of  it  in  the  sanctified,  according  to 
the  several  degrees  of  their  sanctification,  but  it  is  predomi- 
nant in  them  all. 

»'  Rom.  xii.  10.  »  Matt.  xx.  i7.     xxiii.  11.  ^  Isa.  Ivii.l5. 

'  Tsa.  lxvi.2.  «  Malt.  v.  3—5.  »  Luke  xiv.  11. 

0  Jamesiv.  6. 


TRKATISB   OF   CONVfiRblON.  -h&7 

O  that  Ae  ambitious  great  ones  of  the  world,  would  lay 
this  to  heart.  O  that  even  all  the  leaders  of  Christ's  flopk,  the 
preachers  of  humility,  would  lay  this  to  heart !  Then  we 
shorid  not  haye  had  the  church  so  torn  in  pieces,  by  con- 
tendii^  after  precedency  and  preeminency,  who  should  be 
lords,  bishops,  and  above  the  rest ;  especially  after  such  a 
check  from  Christ,  as  this  text  and  divers  others  do  contiain. 
When  his  disciples  strove  who  should  be  the  greatest,  this 
is  Christ's  decision  of  the  controversy.  Not  by  telling  them 
that  Rome  shaU  be  the  ruler  of  all  other  churches,  and  the 
other  four  patriarchs  shall  be  next  to  it ;  -and  the  bishop  of 
the  metropolis  or  greatest  cities,  shall  rule  those  of  the  lesser 
oitiea,  and  these  shall  rule  those  that  dwell  in  a  village.  No, 
Christ  takes  another  course  to  decide  the  controversy,  by 
setting  before  them  a  chUd,  by  telling  them  that  the  "  kings 
of.the  Gentiles  exercise  lordship  over  them,  and  they  that 
exercise  authority  are  called  benefactors :  but  ye  shall  not 
be  so ;  but  he  that  is  greatest  among  you,  let  him  be  as  the 
younger,  and  he  that  is  chief, as  he  that  doth  served"  One 
would  think  that  the  very  thoughts  of  Christ's  washing  his 
disciples' feet,  and  saying  to  them,  that  thus  they  should  do 
by  one  another,  should  shame  proud  ambition  from  among 
the  preachers  of  such  a  Gospel.  O  that  our  stubborn  peo- 
ple also  would  remember  this !  that  are  too  good  to  obey 
the  word  of  the  Lord ;  and  too  stout  to  be  admonished,  or 
come  for  instruction  to  their  ministers ;  yea,  or  patiently  to 
b^ar  a  reproof.  All  these  persons,  and  many  more  may  call 
diemselves  Christians  as  long  as  they  will,  but  Christ  that 
knows  his  sheep  will  not  own  them.  Believe  it,  sirs,  it  is 
ss  impossible  to  be  a  true  Christian  without  true  humility, 
as  for  a  house  to  be  without  a  foundation. 

I  have  shewed  you  now  what  it  is  to  become  as  little 
children,  so  far  as  is  beyond  controversy.  But  there  is 
loinevhat  more  that  nught  be  worth  our  inquiry,  whether 
they  were  not  baptized  and  purified  children,  as  such,  that 
Christ  here  intendeth ;  in  whom  even  the  root  of  pride  is 
siortified?  But  this  I  will  not  presume  to  meddle  with, 
because  on  this  subject  I  would  deliver  you  nothing,  but 
what  among  the  godly  is  commonly  agreed  on.  .  But  this  I 
may  well  say  in  general ;  that  this  text  in  part,  and  others 

P  Lake  xxU.  S5i  26. 
VOL.  VII.  H 


98  TREATISE   OF  CONVESSION. 

more  fully  do  tell  us,  that  Christ  did  not  look  upon  in- 
fants as  at  so  great  a  distance  from  him,  as  the  Anabiq>tists 
now  -do, 

in.  Having  done  with  the  work  of  Conversion  tm  the 
Judgment,  and  on  the  Heart,  the  next  thing  to  be  done,  is  to 
shew  you  the  change  that  it  makes  on  Men's  lives :  for  this 
must  be  looked  after  as  well  as  the  former*  The  same  God 
thatruleth  the  heart,  doth  rule  the  life  ;  and  he  that  reqni- 
reth  the -cleansing  of  the  heart,  doth  require  also  the  clean- 
sing of  the  hands.  The  soul  commandeth  thebody,  and  die 
heart  will  dispose  of  the  life ;  if  therefore  the  heart  be  chan- 
ged, the  life  must  needs  be  changed  too.  The  root  is  for 
the  fruit ;  and  the  life  within,  is  much  to  enable  us  to  action 
without.  When  Ood  giveth  us  the  root  and  life  of  grace 
and  holiness,  it  is  that  we  may  bring  forth  the  fruit,  and,  do 
the  works  of  grace  and  holiness.  He  makes  not  the  new 
creature  for  nothing,  or  to  be  idle,  much  less  to  go  on  in 
serving  the  devil :  but  he  makes  him  for  anew  work,  even 
\  ^  to  serve  the  living  Ood^i.  ^'  For  we  are  his  workmanship, 
\  \  x^reated  to  good  works,  which  Qod  hath  ordained  that  we 
should  walk  therein'."  TheexceUencyofhis  peculiar  people, 
is  '*  to  be  zealous  of  good  works '."  A  good  heart  and  a  good  life 
are  inseparable,  as  to  themain ;  but  the  life  may  further  outgo 
the  heart,  than  the  heart  can  outgo  the  life  :  for  there  may 
be  a  reformed  life  that  is  in  many  i*espect8  good,  while  the 
heart  is  bad:;  but  the  life  is  never  worse  than  the  heart :  for 
there  can  be  no  evil  of  sin  in  this  life,  but  what  the  heart  is 
the  proper  cause  of.  ^  For  out  of  the  heart  come  murders, 
adulteries,  theft,  false-witnessing,  blasphemy,  and  such  like 
sins,  which  defile  the  man^"  It  is  therefore  a  vain  boast 
of  those  men,  that  take  on  them  to  be  converted,  when  they 
live  as«they  did  before :  neither  God  nor  any  wise  man  will 
believe  them,  though  they  may  thus  deceive  themselves. 
Seeing  then,  there  must  be  a  new  life,  with  a  new  heart,  or 
BO  salvation,  let  us  a  little  particularly  inquire,  whereiathat 
newness  of  life  doth  consist. 
\  1.  The  first  and  principal  change  of  the  life,  consist- 
eth  in  the  covenant  which  the  converted  soul  doth  make 
with  Christ.  As  this  is  principally  in  the  heart,  and  so 
containeth  faith  and  holy  resolution,  we  have  spoken  of  it 

4  1  Tkess.  i.  9.       '  Ephes.  ii.  10.      •  Tit.  ii.  14.      <  Matt.  xv.  18—80. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  99 

before ;  but  now  I  mention  it  as  expressed  with  the  tongue ; 
for  as  with  the  heart  we  believe  to  righteousness ;  so  with 
the  mouth  is  confession  made  to  salvation  ^.     A  resolved 
heart  will  have  a  resolved  tongue ;  it  will  carry  a  man  to  ex- 
press his  resolution,  as  there  is  convenient  opportunity, 
both  to  God  and  man ;  this  covenant  might  be  verbally  en- 
tered before  in  the  face  of  the  congregation,  in  our  baptism 
by  our  parents,  who  are  authorized  by  God  in  Scripture, 
and  nature  to  enter  their  children  into  it  for  their  good ;  but 
if  the  heart  did  never  truly  own  that  covenant,  when  you 
come  to  the  use  of  reason,  you  cannot  expect  to  be  saved  by 
it.     Your  own  covenant  with  Christ,  when  you  come  to  age, 
is  then  as  necessary  to  your  salvation,  as  your  covenant  by 
your  parent  in  baptism  was  before,  to  put  you  into  that 
right  which  infants  have  by  virtue  of  the  promise ;  this  co- 
venant is  the  very  bond,  and  foundation  of  all  the  following 
obedience  of  your  lives,  when  God  hath  opened  the  eyes  of 
a  sinner  to  see  his  great  necessity  of  Christ,  and  the  glory 
and  felicity  that  he  hath  procured,  and  withal  to  see  the 
universality  and  freeness  of  the  promise  ^  and  that  God  doth 
call  to  him  to  consent  to .  his  terms,  and  accept  the  mercy 
freely  offered.    Converting  grace  doth  move  the'  heart  to 
acceptance,  and  the  tongue  and  life  to  make  expression  of 
it.     There  might  be  half-covenant,  and  false,  hypocritical 
promises  before,  which  for  want  of  sincerity  were  soon 
broken,  and  come  to  nought ;  but  conversion  ent^reth  us  into 
a  true,  and  firm,  and  durable  covenant;  when  the  poor  sin- 
ner doth  once  understand  that  it  is  not  long  of  God,  if  he 
be  shut  out,  and  that  Christ  hath  put  in  no  bar  of  exception 
against  him  more  than  any  other  in  the  promise  of  pardon 
and  salvation ;  and  when  he  understandeth  that  God  doth 
but  stay  for  his  consent,  and  all  the  stop  is  at  his  own  will, 
and  when  he  understandeth  thoroughly  what  reason  he  hath 
to  be  willing,  and  how  little  there  is  to  be  said  against  it ; 
then  he  doth  set  up  his  resolution,  and  give  up  himself  in 
covenant  unto  God.     It  may  be  before  he  misunderstood 
the  covenant,  and  thought  that  Christ  was  unwilling  to  shew 
mercy  to  such  an  one  that  had  done  him  so  much  wrong, 
and  he  doubted  whether  God  would  bid  him  welcome,  if  he 
should  come  home ;  but  when  he  is  better  informed,  he  ma- 
tt Bom.  X,  10. 


100  TRBATI8B   OF   CONVKRSIOK. 

nifesteth  his  consent.  God  saith  to  him  in  the  Go»piel| 
*  Sinner,  wilt  thou  be  mine  V  And  he  answeieth^  *  Yea, 
Lord,  with  all  my  heart ;  and  glad  that  thou  wilt  accept  of 
such  a  wretch  as  1/  God  saith  to  him  in  his  Oos|>el  and 
by  his  ministers,  '  Sinner,  thou  hast  undone  thyself,  and  art 
under  my  wrath  and  curse,  I  have  redeemed  thee  by  the 
blood  of  my  dear  Son ;  he  hath  bought  thee  and  will  save 
thee,  if  thou  wilt  be  his ;  what  sayest  [thou  ?  Wilt  diou 
heartily  give  up  thyself  to  him  to  be  saved?  ShftU  be  be 
thy  Saviour  and  thy  Lord  V  And  the  sinner  answereth, 
'  Yea  Lord,  with  all  my  heart ;  nothing  more  welcotne  to  me 
than  Christ.  It  is  Christ  that  my  wounded  soul  doth  want. 
It  is  he,  and  only  he  that  can  save  me  :  I  will  be  his,  and 
take  him  to  be  mine,  and  gladly  make  with  him  an  ever: 
lasting  covenant.'  Before,  though  Christ  were  offered  a 
thousand  times,  the  stupid  sinner  laid  it  not  to  heart,  and 
would  not  come  to  him  that  he  might  have  life  ' :  but  when 
he  is  drawn  by  the  Father,  and  secretly  iUutniniated  and 
converted  by  his  grace,  then  is  he  heartily  glad  of  die  iflatdi; 
he  takes  this  as  the  day  of  marriage  between  Christ  and 
him.  Christ  giveth  up  himself  to  the  sinner,  and  the  taa*' 
ner  giveth  up  himself  to  Christ.  I  know  that  the  ittere  tK>» 
venant  of  the  lips  alone,  will  prove  no  man  to  be  heartily 
converted ;  but  this  in  connexion  with  that  of  the  heatt  wiH 
prove  it.  Have  you  been  brought  to  this,  beloved  -faeareito? 
To  do  that  by  yourselves  at  age,  which  you  did  by  your  pia- 
rents  in  baptism  ?  Have  you  gladly  taken  Christ,  as  be  te 
offered  to  you?~  And  have  you  delivered  up  yourselves  to 
him  ?  I  tell  you,  converting  grace  Will  bring  you  into  o<h 
venant :  this. covenant  is  the  very  sum.  of  all  your  chai^  t 
all  is  contained  in  this  one  word,  '  The  making  up  'die 
match  between  Christ  and  you.'  Yea,  and  it  will  make  you 
upon  fit  opportunity,  even  manifest  this  to  others ;  and  even 
glory  in  your  Saviour,  and  be  willing  openly  to  confess  him 
before  the  world,  and  let  them  know  that  you  are  in  cove- 
nant with  him. 

(1.)  And  I  must  tell  you  in  a  word,  that  if  this  covenant  be 
sincere,  it  will  have  these  qualifications  following.  1.  It 
will  be  done  in  some  competent  measure  of  understanding 
and  judgment :  you  will  know  what  Christ  is,  and  what  h^ 

»  John  ▼.40. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  101 

hath  done^  and  what  need  you  have  of  him,  and  how  \ke  U 
offered,  and  upon  what  terms  he  is  to  be  received  and  mad^ 
yours.      For  there  can  be  no  true  covenant,  when  you  are 
utterly  ignorant  of  the  very  substance  of  the  covenant.     2. 
If  it  be  a  tme  covenant,  it  must  be  entire,  you  must  take 
that  is  offered  you,  and  not  only  a  part :  you  must  yield  to 
the  terms  of  the  covenant,  and  give  up  yourselves  wholly  to 
Christ  again.     It  is  not  to  take  Christ  to  some  uses,  and 
not  to  others,  as  to  justify  and  save  you  from  hell,  and  not 
to  sanctify  or  save  you  from  sin,     3.    You  must  do  it  re- 
solvedly and  habitually,  from  a  rooted  habit  and  resolution 
of  tlie  very  heart ;  and  not  from  a  sudden  fear,  or  flash  of 
conviction  under  a  moving  sermon,  and  as  many  will  do  in 
sickness  and  extremity,  and  then  forget  all,  or  grow  cold 
ag^,  and  return  to  their  vomit,  when  the  fit  is  over:  like 
those,  Psal.  Ixzviii.  34— 3.7.    ''  When  he  slew  them,  then 
they  sou^t  him,  and  they  returned  and  inquired  early  after 
Qod,  and  they  remembered  that  Ood  was  their  Rock,  and 
the  High  God  their  Redeemer :  nevertheless  they  did  flatter 
him  with  their  mouth,  and  lied  unto  him  with  their  tongues, 
for  their  heart  was  not  right  with  him,  neither  were  they 
stedfiist  in  his  covenant."    And  ver.  10.  ''  They  kept  not 
thecovenant  of  Ood,  and  refused  to  walk  in  his  law."    4. 
If  you  covenant  sincerely,  it  must  be  for  a  present  return, 
and  not  only  for  the  time  that  is  to  come.    It  must  be  from 
that  day  forward,  without  any  more  delay.    It  is  not  a  true 
covenant,  which  excepteth  but  a  tlay.    6.  And  if  you  truly 
covenant  wilii  Christ,  yoii  will  do  it  unreservedly :  yea,  and 
lesolve  against  all  reservation.    You  will  not  secretly  make 
txceptions,  and  say  in  your  hearts,  '  I  will  be  the  servant  of 
Christ,  if  he  would  use  me  as  I  would  have  him,  and  deal 
easily  with  my  flesh,  and  not  destroy  my  worldly  interest ; 
1  wiU. follow  him  as  fieur  as  the  way  is  fair,  and  no  further  i* 
Ne,  but  you  will  unreservedly  give  up  yourselves  to  his  dis- 
pose, and  say,  '  I  am  sure  I  cannot  have  Christ,  and  ^life 
upon  terms  too  hard.    I  am  sure  that  however  he  deal  with 
me,  I  can  have  no  better  master,  nor  can  I  take  a  better 
coTirae  ;  and  if  he  do  as  hardly  by  me  as  ever  he  did  by  any 
of  his  servants,  I  know  I  shall  be  no  loser  by  him,  nor  ever 
have  cause  to  repent  of  the  bargain.    And  therefore  I  am 
resolved  I  will  give  up  myself  to  him.     He  is  wise,  and  just. 


(I 


f 


108  TREATISE   OF   CONTERSION. 

and  merciful,  let  him  do  with  me  as  he  will/  This  is  the 
principal  effect  of  true  conversion,  to  bring  the  soul  thus  to 
close  with  God  in  Christ. 

(2.)  And  in  the  same  covenant,  as  the  converted  soul  doth 

close  with  Christ,  so  doth  it  renounce  all  other  competitors. 

1  Before  he  served  another  master,  but  now  he  understandetb 

\  I  it  must  be  so  no  more.  There  is  no  serving  Ood  and  mamr 
mon,  the  Spirit  and  the  flesh.  Christ  and  satan  are  as  un- 
reconcileable  as  light  and  darkness.  It  is  the  purpose  of 
Christ  to  bring  men  from  the  captivity  of  satan,  and  of  sin^. 
He  letteth  the  sinner  know,  that  there  is  no  hopes  of  join- 

.  ,  ing  these  together :  either  the  devil  or  Christ  must  be  for- 

\  I  saken ;  either  sin  or  mercy  must  be  renounced.  The  word, 
and  Spirit,  and  minister  say  to  him,  *  Thou  seest,  sinBer^ 
how  the  case  standeth,  God  is  resolved,  he  will  not  change. 
Never  think  of  any  other  way ;  either  let  sin  go,  or  let  hea- 
ven go ;  take  which  thou  wilt,  and  leave  which  thou  wilt; 
but  never  think  of  keeping  both.'    Hereupon  the  sinner  lets 

r  go  his  sins,  and  renounceth  the  world,  the  flesh,  the  devil ; 
and  engageth  himself  that  Christ  alone  shall  be  his  Saviour 
and  his  Lord,  and  God  alone  his  chiefest  good.  He  will 
take  the  promised  glory  for  his  portion ;  and  this  is  the 
other  part  of  the  covenant.  At  this  one  blow  the  root  of 
every  sin  is  destroyed.  But  principally,  that  which  is  the 
centre  and  sum  of  all  the  rest,  and  that  is,  self-love,  and 
self-seeking.  Every  unconverted  sinner  liveth  to  himself, 
and  is  addicted  prindpally  to  his  carnal  interest,  and  the 
main  work  that  Christ  hath  to  do  upon  the  soul,  is,  to  take 
down  this  carnal  self.  This  is  the  great  enemy  that  he 
bendeth  his  force  against.  And  the  subduing  of  this  is  his 
chiefesf  victory .  This  is  the  great  idol  of  every  unregene*^ 
rate  man,  that  must  be  taken  down,  or  there  is  no  salvation. 
The  very  nature  of  conversion,  is,  a  turning  from  carnal-self 
to  God  by  Christ.  This  therefore  is  to  be  inquired  after 
by  all  that  would  find  this  change  upon  themselves.  And  ( 
beseech  you  brethren  be  very  careful  in  this  particular.  For 
as  this  part  of  the  work  is  of  absolute  necessity,  so  the  in- 
terest of  carnal-self  is  very  strong  and  deep-rooted,  and 
exceeding  much  befriended  by  our  nature.  So  that  here  is 
the  main  dif&culty  of  all  your  work.    O,  it  is  no  easy  mat* 

y  Acts  xxvi.  18.    «  Tim.  ii.  24,  95. 


TREATISE. OF  CONVERSION.  103 

ter  for  a  man  unfeignedly  to  deny  himself :   it  is  a  subtle 
enemy  that  will  keep  much  secret  life  and  strength,  when  it 
seemeth  to  be  overcome.     And  though  you  may  think   in 
an  affliction/ or  time  of  humiliation,  that  self  is  brought  very 
low ;  yet,  when  prosperity  comes  again,  or  when  its  interest 
lieth  at  the  stake,  and  you  are  called  either  to  costly  duties 
or  sufferings,  yon  will  then  see  better  what  strength  your 
carnal-self  yet  retaineth.     Many  a  man  hath  gone  far,  and 
done  much,  and  shamefully  fallen  away  at  the  last,  because 
they  were  never  brought  thoroughly  to  self-denial.  It  is  the 
remaining  interest  of  carnal-self  that  leadeth  some  to  fleshly 
lusts,  and  some  to  proud  ambitious  ways,  and  some  to  drown 
themselves  in  the  cares  of  this  world,  and  so  prove  wretched 
hypocrites  at  the  last.     I  do  therefore  as  earnestly  advise 
every  soul  of  you  to  all  possible  care  in  this  point,  as  I 
would  do  to  any  thing  in  the  world.    Whatever  you  do,  be 
jealousof  this  sin.     Fight  neither  against  small  nor  great, 
but  against  this  enemy,  carnal-life ;  and  do  not  too  easily 
believe  that  it  is  overcome.     Conquer  this  and  conquer  all. 
This  is  the  life  and  soul  of  all  sins.    The  very  use  and  end 
of  all  sin  is  flesh-pleasing.  As  he  that  hath  right  ends,  hath 
done  more  than  half  his  work  for  his  salvation,  so  he  that 
keepeth  up  his  fleshly  ends  is  still  a  servant  of  the  flesh, 
whatever  he  may  do  that  seemeth  to  be  for  God.    He  that 
hath  got  the  victory  of  this  self,  hath  broke  the  heart  of 
every  sin.     And  in  this  fall  of  carnal-self,  there  are  three     . 
great  master  sins  ^o  down.     I.  Pride.    %  Covetousuess.     ]  f 
3.  Voluptuousness.     He  that  before  was  set  upon  the  exalt- 
ing of  himself,  is  now  set  upon  the  glorifying  of  God.  And 
he  that  lived  to  the  world,  and  was  a  drudge  for  earth,  is 
how  employed  for  higher  things,  and  he  that  must  have  his « 
sports  and  pleasures,  and  fleshly  ease,  hath  now  leanied  to 
use  his  body  as  a  servant,  and  no  longer  to  suffer  it  to  be 
the  ruler  of  his  souL    But  of  these  I  have  spoken  elsewhere, 
so  that  I  will  say  no  more  of  them  now.    Only  this,  that  the 
destroying  of  these  three  sins,  pride,  covetousuess,  and  vo- 
luptuousness, and  in  them  camaUself,  is  one  half  of  the  work 
of  true  conversion.     As  the  other  half  is  the  setting  up  of 
God,  and  the  turning  of  the  soul  by  Christ  to  him,  and 
an  unreserved  dedication  and  resignation  of  ourselves  to 
him. 


104  TREATISE   OF   COlCyERSIOH. 

2.  Wheb  the  sinner  is  thus  engaged  in  coTenant  to  God; 
the  next  thing  that  he  doth,  is,  actually  to  forsake. that  ain 
which  he  hath  renounced,  and  make  good  the  covenant  that 
even  now  he  made.  For  it  is  not  a  false  dissembling  pro- 
mise, that  converted  sinners  make  to  God.  There  is  no  hold 
to  take  of  another  man's  word.  Before  conversion^  all  pro- 
mises come  from  so  low  a  principle  that  they  quickly  vanish, . 
and  the  heart  of  such  a  man  is  as  changeable  as  the  moon : 
but  when  they  are  converted,  you  shall  see  that  they  are 
men  of  their  word,  and  did  mean  as  they  aaid,  and  were  in 
good  sadness  with  God,  and  that  they  are  indeed  fUl«i  out 
with  sin.  They  do  not  now  think  to  pat  off  the  righteous 
God  with  words,  and  keep  that  sin  which  in  their  covenant 
they  did  renounce :  no,  they  know  that  that  would  but 
bring  greater  wrath  upon  them,  and  cause  God  to  deal  with 
them  as  perjured  covenant  breakers,  besides  all  the  rest  of 
their  sins ;  and  therefore  the  same  grace  that  caused  them 
to  promise,  causeth  them  to  perform.  O  what  a  sudden 
change  doth  appear  in  the  lives  of  such  as  these,  when  God 
hath  thoroughly  done  his  work !  I  know  the  work  on  the 
heart  is  the  greatest  work,  but  that  is  not  seen  so  much  by 
men,  and  therefore  not  so  much  admired.  But  the  life  is 
seen  by  others,  and  therefore  it  is  a  wonder  in  the  eyes  of 
the  world  many  times,  to  see  the  change  of  a  converted  sin- 
ner :  when  they  see,  that  he  that  lived  in  fleshly  pleasures, 
doth  now  despise  them,  and  hath  no  such  mind  of  his  for- 
mer sports  and  delights !  They  marvel  what  aileth  the  man 
that  he  is  so  changed,  when  they  hear  him  that  was  wont  to 
curse  and  swear,  and  deride  those  that  feared  God,  to  la- 
ment now  his  wickednesses,  to  reprove  others  that  do  as  he 
was  wont  to  do,  and  warn  them  to  take  heed  of  going  that 
Wfity*  People  will  marvel  what  hath  befallen  the  mian  that 
hath  made  this  alteration.  They  do  not  see  what  he  hath 
seen,  nor  know  the  workings  of  the  Spirit  of  God  upon  his 
soul.  They  know  not  how  God  hath  been  hammering  his 
hard  heart,  and  melting  it,  and  forming  it  to  this.  They 
were  not  witnesses  of  the  strivings  and  conflict  in  his  spirit, 
which  was  between  Christ  and  the  flesh  ;  and  therefore  when 
they  see  not  the  caase  within,  the  change  without  will  seem 
the  stranger  to  them.  And  indeed  it  is  a  kind  of  miracle  to 
see  the  effects  of  the  power  of  Christ,  and  how  suddenly  oft- 


TIIK4TI9S  QP  GONVBRSiONv  tOfi 

eiitimes  the  change  is  made,  that  waald  neyer  have  been 
made  by  any  other  means.  Take  a  man  that  hath  only  some 
light  convictions*  and  a  half-repentance,  and  how  long  is  he 
in  making  a  half-reformation,  li  he  were  wont  to  swear  or 
curse*  or  frequent  alehouses  and  vain  company*  he  cannot 
suddenly  leave  it*  but  sometimes  he  restrains  it  a  little*  as 
if  he  were  reformed*  and  sometimes  he  falls  to  it  again*  be- 
cause he  is  not  truly  changed.  But  when  he  is  converted 
mdeed,  you  shall  see  him  ordinarily  leave  all  these  sins 
even  on  a  sudden.  He  that  was  wont  to  swear  or  curse* 
you  shall  never  hear  him  do  it  again.  He  will  flee  from  the 
places  that  before  he  delighted  in.  He  is  moved  by  a  more 
effectual  principle*  and  therefore  will  not  stand  trifling  in 
the  business.  Grace  makes  a  inan  krfow*  that  sin*  and  sa- 
tan*  and  the  flesh  are  his  deadly  enemies*  that  seek  the  ever«^ 
lastihg  damnation  of  his  soul*  and  therefore  it  is  the  less 
marvel*  if  he  use  them  as  enemies.  If  friends  have  weapons 
in  their  hands*  they  will  but  play  with  them*  but  deadly 
oiemies  will  seek  the  blood  of  one  another.  There  is  dif- 
ference between  fencing  and  fighting  for  life.  Though  a 
maJL  that  knoweth  nothing  of  their  meaning*  might  think  a 
fencer  is  fighting  in  good  sadness*  seeing  he  seemeth  to 
make  as  great  a  stir  as  if  it  were  so  indeed.  Yet  the  issue 
will  shew  you*  that  it  is  otherwise*  because  yon  see  that 
there  is  no  blood  shed*  nor  men  killed.  So  is  it  with  an  hy- 
pocritein  his  seeming  reformation ;  when  he  makes  the  great- 
est stir  against  his  sin  in  confessing  and  prayer*  and  odier 
means*  yet  he  will  not  resolvedly  cast  it  away*  but  he  se- 
cretly useth  it  as  his  friend*  while  he  openly  abnseth  it  as 
his  enemy ;  and  he  puts  it  into  his  bosom*  while  he  calls  it 
all  to  naught.  He  will  not  be  bronght  tinfeignedly  to  re- 
iiounce  it,  and  give  it  a  bill  of  divorce*  and  cast  it  out  as  a 
man  doth  his  vomit*  with  resolution  never  to  take  it  in  more. 
0  how  sweetly  doth  he  roll  it  in  his  thoughts  in  secret> 
when  he  frowneth  upon  it  with  the  severest  countenance  ! 
How  easily  is  he  drawn  to  it  again  and  again*  wiien  he  takes 
on  him  to  repent  of  it  and  abhor  it !  But  it  is  clean  contrary 
with  a  man  that  is  converted.  Though  the  remnants  of  sin 
wilT  remain  in  him  while  he  liveth*"yet  as  to  the  reign  of  it* 
he  presently  casteth  it  ofi**  and  biddeth  defiance  to  it.  He 
fighteth  against  it  in  good  earnest*  as  knowing  that  either 


\\ 


( 


(06  TR£AT1K£   OF  CONVERSION* 

he  or  it  must  die.  He  casteth  it  ap  as  ^a  loathsome  Tomit 
-vrhich  he  will  not  take  into  his  stomach  again ;  yoH  shaH 
quickly  see  by  the  course  of  his  life^  that  his  heart  is 
changed*  Before  true  conversion  comes,  what  a  stir  have 
we  with  wretched  sinners  to  leave  a  base  lust  ?  To  forsake 
their  drunkenness,  or  coyetousness,  or  uncleanness,  to  leave 
their  swearing  and  cursed  speaking,  and  yet  we  cannot  pre- 
vail with  them;  sometimes  they  will,  and  then  again  they 
will  not ;  sometimes  a  flash  of  conviction  flieth  in  their 
faces,  and  they  are  a  little  affrighted,  and  then  they  will 
presently  repent  and  mend ;  but  when  the  fit  is  over,  you 
shall  see  that  it  is  not  a  change  of  his  disposition  or  nature ;. 
it  was  but  a  little  falling  out  with  their  sin,  which  leaveA 
them  faster  friends  when  they  are  reconciled.  But  conver- 
sion maketh  an  unreconcileable  enmity.  Away  goes  former 
sinful  customs  and  courses ;  away  goes  covetous  practices, 
and  wicked  speeches,  and  proud  fashions,  and  courses.  As 
Sarah  thrust*  out  Hagar  and  Ishmael  out  of  her  hons%,  and 
would  receive  them  no  more.  If  you  have  deadly  enemies 
in  your  house,  you  will  thrust  out  them  and  all  that  they 
have.  If  a  man  should  sit  in  a  dark  room  among  snakes 
and  toads,  and  think  verily  that  there  were  no  such  matter, 
but  he  were  in  his  bed-chamber,  you  might  persuade  him 
long  enough  to  come  away,  and  tell  him  of  the  danger ;  but 
he  will  not  stir,  but  laugh  at  you,  because  he  doth  not  be*> 
lieve  you.  But  if  you  come  into  the  room  with  a  light,  and 
he  see  them  crawling  all  about  him,  and  making  athim,  then 
you  need  not  another  word  to  bid  him  be  gone;  he  [is 
quickly  up,  and  leaveth  them  with  abhorrency.  We  tell 
unconverted  sinners  of  the  hatefulness  of  sin,  and  the  dan- 
ger that  they  are  in,  and  pray  them  to  leave  it,  but  they  be- 
lieve us  not,  and  do  but  laugh  at  it ;  but  when  the  Spirit  of 
Ood  bringeth  in  the  light,  and  they  see  all  this  wiUi  their 
own  eyes,  that  it  is  even  worse  than  ever  we  made  it,  then 
away  goes  their  sins  without  any  more  ado.  Like  a  child 
that  hath  a  fine  yellow  crab  which  he  taketh  for  an  apple; 
he  will  not  part  with  it,  nor  let  you  take  it  from  him;  but 
when  he  hath  set  his  teeth  in  it  once,  and  tasted  it,  he  will 
throw  it  away  without  any  more  ado.  If  such  a  foolish 
child  be  playing  with  a  nettle,  while  he  taketh  it  for  a  com- 
mon herb,  he  is  bold  with  it,  but  when  he  feels  the  sting,^he 


TREATISE  OF   CONVERSION.  107 

tiilt>weth  it  away ;  or  if  he  be  playing  about  a  nest  of  wasp»    i   , 
or  bees,  while  he  takes  them  to  be  but  harmleBs  flies,  you 
cannot  call  him  away,  but  when  once  they  h'aye  stung  him,      I 
he  cries  *and  runs  away  of  himself,  without  another  word.     ^ 
Even  BO  is  it  with  a  poor  sinner  about   his    sins  before 
conversion.     We  pray  him  to   come  away,  and  tell  him 
that  sin  hath  a  sting,  and  a  deadly  sting,  and  assure  him 
from  the  word  of  Ood  that  it  will  be  bitterness  in  the  latter 
end»  and  he  makes  no  great  matter  of  our  words,  but  can 
hear  us,  as  if  we  came  into  the  pulpit  to  tell  him  a  tale,  and 
not  to  save  his  soul  from  hell.    And  therefore  he  can  go  on 
in  his  old  way  for  all  this,  and  take  his  cups,  or  follow  the 
world  and  his  -fleshly  lusts,  and  give  the  preacher  leave  to 
talk.     But  when  converting  grace  comes,  it  makes  them' 
taste  the  bitterness  and  sourness  of  sin,  and  then  they 
quickly  spit  it  out.  It  makes  them  feel  the  sting  and  smart, 
and  then  they  cry  to  God  for  help,  and  wish  they  had  never 
knpwn  it,  and  run  away  from  it  with  detestation.    Grace 
bringeth  in  that  light  from  God,  wliich  shews  them  that 
which  they  did  not  see  before.   How  that  all  this  while  they 
have  had  a  multitude  of  crawling  serpents  in  jthj^ir  bosom*  \  ^ 
and^^ey.^ye>  been  playing  even  at  the  brink  of  hell.    And 
^(fEenn^y  see  this  with  their  own  eyes,  it  is  time  for  them 
to  take  another  course. 

If  yon  doubt  all  this  that  I  say,  whether  conversion  doth 
make  a  man  thus  cast  away  his  sin,  while  the  hypocrite 
stands  dallying  with  it,  and  cannot  leave  it,  look  into  the_ 
^^9ffiplfi^f  J^Ll^ !lf .  converts.  Or  if  that  do  not  satisfy  you, 
look  into  the  infallible  word  of  God.  How  eagerly  was 
Saul  going  on  in  his  persecution,  till  the  light  from  heaven 
did  Atop  his  course,  and  the  voice  and  grace  of  Christ  did 
change  his  mind  !  Acts  ix.  But  do  you  read  ever  Paul  did 
persecute  any  more?  or  doth  he  delay  and  take  time  to  con- 
sider of  the  matter  before  he  would  leave  his  former  sin  ? 
No ;  but  he  presently  forbears,  and  betakes  himself  to  ano- 
ther course.  And  Tit.  iii.  2 — 5.  when  he  confessed  the  for- 
mer sinfril  course  of  himself  and  others,  he  telleth  you  now 
how  the  mi^tter  is  mended.  And  no  marvel ;  for  the  man 
that  liveth  in  his  former  sinful  way,  can  never  be  saved,  what- 
ever change  of  the  heart  he  may  pretend.  '*  Know  ye  not 
that  the  unrighteous  shall  not  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God  I 


108  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

Be  not  deceived,  neither  fornicators^  nor  idolaters,  nor  adul- 
terers/nor  effeminate,  nor  abusers  of  themselves  with  man- 
kind, nor  thieves,  nor  covetous,  nor  drunkards,  nor  revellem, 
nor  extortioners  shall  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God.    And 
such  were  some  of  you ;  but  ye  are  washed,  but  ye  are  sano? 
tified,  but  ye  are  justified  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus, 
and  by  the  Spirit  of  God ''."    Now  you  see  that  conversion 
makes  an  effectual  change  of  the  life.    Ye  were  such ;  but 
now  it  is  not  so,  ye  are  washed,  ye  are  sanctified  by  the  Spi- 
rit of  God.    And,  Isa.  xxx.  22.  when  God  mentionfsth  flie. 
conversion  of  these  people,  he  saith  concerning  their  former 
sins  :    *  Thou  shalt  cast  them  away  as  a  menstruous  clothe 
thou  shalt  say  to  it,  get  thee  hence.'  With  what  detestation 
will  a  converted  sinner  say  to  his  former  sin,  '  Oet  thee 
hence !     It  is  by  thee  that  I  have  suffered,  and  had  like  to 
have  been  undone  for  ever.    It  is  by  thee  that  I  have  so 
much  wronged  God,  and  therefore,  away  with  thee,  get  thee 
hence.'    So  in  Isa.  xxxi.  6,  7.  '*  Turn  ye  unto  him,  from 
whom  the  children  of  Israel  have  deeply  revolted;  for  in 
that  day  every  man  shall  cast  away  his  idols  of  silver,  and 
his  idols  of  gold,  which  your  own  hands  have  made  you  for 
a  sin."  And  the  description  of  conversion  runs  thus,  )Sz^. 
xviii.  31.  **  Cast  away  from  you  all  your  transgressions, 
^  whereby  ye  have  transgressed  against  me,  and  nuike  you  a 
new  heart,  and  a  new  spirit :  for  why  will  you  die,  O  ye 
house  of  Israel?"    And  Ezek.  xx.  7.   God  oommandeth 
them:  '^Cast  ye  away  every  man  the  ^abomination  of  his 
eyes ;"  and  ver.  8.  **  They  rebelled, .  and  did  not  cast  away 
every  man  the  abomination  of  his  eyes."   '*  Let  us  therefore 
cast  off  the  works  of  darkness,  and  let  us  put  on  the  armour 
of  light :  let  ,us  walk  honestly,  as  in  the  day ;  not  in  rioting 
and  drunkenness,  not  in  chambering  and  wantonness,  not  in 
^    strife  and  envying  ^."    "  Wash  ye,  make  ye  clean,  put  away 
'  the  evil  of  your  doings  from  before  mine  eyes ;  cease  to  do 
evil,  learn  to  do  well'."    "  Seek  the  Lord  while  he  may  be 
found,  call  upon  him  while  he  is  near.  Let  the  wicked  foraake 
his  way,  and  the  unrighteous  man  his  thoughts ;   and  let 
him  return  unto  the  Lord,  and  he  will  have  mercy  upon 
him,  and  to   our  God   for  he  will   abundantly  pardon  V 
*'  Amend  your  ways  and  your  doings,  and  obey  the  voice  of 

«  i  Cor.  vi.^— 1 1.        y  Rom.  uti.  1«,  13.        *  Isa.  i.  16, 17.        *  Isa.  Ir.  6,7. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  100 

the  Lord  your  God,  and  he  will  repent  him  of  the  evil  *"•'' 
An  hundred  more  such  passages  might  be  cited,  wherein  it 
is  most  evident,  that  there  is  no  tme  conversion  of  the  heai^> 
if  the  sin  of  the  life  be  not  also  cast  away. 

If  any  will  here  desire  to  be  curious,  and  to  know  just 
how  much  conquest  the  least  degree  of  grace  doth  make, 
and  how  much  actual  sins  may  stand  with  sincerity  of  grace  ? 
Or  if  any  will  imagine,  that  because  there  is  actual  sin  in 
the  converted,  that>  therefore,  there  is  no  discernible  differ- 
ence between  their  reformation  and  other  men^s,  I  answer 
them  as  foUoweth,     1.  A  strong  degree  of  grace  is  easily 
known  by  him  that  hath  it,  by  the  thorough  reformation 
both  of  heart  and  life.    2.  The  weakest  degree  of  grace  is 
not  ordinarily  known,  and  therefore  you  cannot  expect  that 
I  should  make  it  kno¥m.    For  he  that  hath  so  little  grace 
as  to  sin  as  much  as  will  stand  with  true  grace,  shall  scarce 
Inrer  know  that  he  hath  any  true  grace  at  all  in  that  condi- 
tion.   He  IS  not  fit  for  such  a  condition,  nor  would  it  do 
him  good  till  he  were  fitter  for  it.    3.  There  is  no  change 
of  the  life  that  will  discover  sincerity  certainly  to  others, 
Bor  to  themselves  considered  alone,  without  the  ohange  of 
the  heart,  biit  there  is  a  wickedness  of  the  life  that  will 
prove  a  wickedness  of  the  heart  even  unto  others ;  much 
more  to  men  themselves,  who  may  know  both  immediately. 
4.  By  this  one  mark  you  may  know  whether  the  sins  of 
your  lives,  be  they  great  or  small,  are  certain  proofs  of  an 
micoiiverted,  graceless  heart  or  not.   In  every  tfue  converted 
man,  the  main  bent  of  his  heart  and  life  is  against  sin,  and 
Ui  chief  desire  cufid  endeavour  is  to  destroy  it ;  but  in  others 
it  is  not  so.    Whatsoever  kind  of  sinning  therefore  will  not 
Hand  with  such  a  bent  of  heart  and  life,  with  such  a  desire 
md  endeavour,  will  prove  that  man  to  be  graceless  or  un- 
converted that  doth  commit  it.    Now  how  far  a  man's  sin  is 
.  irith,  or  against  the  main  predominant  bent  of  his  own  heart 
and  life,  he  may  discern  himself  by  diligent  observation. 

3.  I  have  hitherto  sjpoke  only  of  sins  of  commission^ 
which  are  cast  away  when  the  soul  is  changed.  ■  The  next 
part  of  the  reformation  of  the  life  is  in  point  of  duty.  A 
converted  soul  bath  pres^itly  another  work  to  do.  As  he 
hath  set  his  heart  upon  anodier  end,  and  looketh  after  ano- 

^  Jer.  xx?i.  13. 


110  TREATISB   OV  CONVERSION. 

ther  portion  and  inheritance ;  so  hath  he  other  means  to  use, 
which  are  suitable  to  the  nature  of  the  end  which  is  to  be 
obtained*  A  heavenly  felicity  is  not  gotten  by  earthly 
means.  ''  Learning  to  do  well/'  therefore  is  ever  joined  with 
^'ceasing  to  do  evil^."  "  Seeking  the  Lord  while  he  may 
be  found,  and  calling  on  him  while  he  is  near/'  is  joined 
with  "  forsaking  wicked  ways^.''  He  that  is  "  turned  from 
the  power  of  satan,  is  turned  to  God*."  Before  conversion 
the  wretched  sinner  had  no  pleasure  in  Ood,  and  therefore  no 
pleasure  in  his  service ;  and  therefore  was  seldom,  and  eM, 
and  careless  in  it ;  and  gave  God  nothing  but  the  leavings 
of  the  world  and  the  flesh,  and  what  he  could  spare ;  and 
pot  him  off  with  some  formal,  superficial^  cheap  kind  of  ser- 
vice that  would  cost  him  but  little.  But  when  converting 
grace  hath  made  a  change,  as  God  is  his  delight,  so  is  his 
work  and  worship.  He  sees  a  world  of  work  before  him, 
which  they  made  no  conscience  of  before.  As  I  told  you 
of  Paul,  Acts  ix.  11.  he  falls  a  praying  as  soon  as  he  is  con- 
verted ;  and  from  praying,  he  proceeds  to  the  preaching  of 
that  Gospel  which  he  persecuted  before.  It  made  the  peo- 
ple wonder  to  see  him  that  had  been  persecuting  all  tbt 
called  upon  the  name  of  Jesus,  but  a  litde  before,  to  preadi 
for  them  a  little  after.  Acts  ix.  20,  21.  The  text  saith,  *'  aU 
ithat  heard  him  were  amazed,  and  said.  Is  not  this  he  thtt 
destroyed  them  which  called  on  this  name  at  Jerusalem,  and 
came  hither  to  that  intent,  to  bring  them  bound  to  the  ^ef 
priests  ?"  So  is  it  to  this  day :  when  a  poor  sinner  that  wis 
wont  to  mock  at  a  holy  life,  and  never  was  used  to  call 
upon  God,  or  at  least  but  heartlessly,  and  with  the  lips  ^ 
that  made  no  conscience  of  praying  in  his  family,  or  in- 
structing them,  or  holy  spending  the  Lord's  day^  shall  now 
be  as  diligent  in  these  as  any:  when  the  Bible  is  in  his 
hands,  or  other  good  books,  that  had  rather  before  have  had 
a  pack  of  cards,  or  dice,  or  worldly  business :  when  a  man 
was  wont  to  set  light  by  these  things,  is  now  set  upon 
them,  and  cannot  live  without  them :  this  makes  tke 
world  about  him  amazed,  and  say.  Is  not  this  the  man 
that  scorned  sermons,  who  now  foUoweth  after  sermons? 
Is  not  this  he  that  was  against  these  things  as  much  as  wf, 
that  now  is  set  so  much  upon  them  ?     I  know  a  man  that  is 

c  Isa.  i.  17.  d  Isa.  I?.  ,6.  «  Acts  xxyI  18, 


• 


TREATI&B   OF   CONVERSION.  Ill 

now  unconyerted,  may  be  much  in  the  use  of  means^  but 
here  iff  the  difference :  to  a  conyerted  man,  the  obedience 
of  Gk>d  is  his  chiefest  work  and  business,  to  which  all  other 
things  are  made  to  stoop :  but  to  the  unconverted,  the  work 
of  the  flesh,  and  world  is  the  chief,  and  the  service  of  God 
most  stoop  to  that.    Sirs,  if  any  of  you  dream  that  you  are 
converted,  and  yet  will  not  be  brought  to  the  works  of  obe- 
dience, both  in  holiness  to  God,  and  righteousness  to  men, 
yon  do  but  wilfully  deceive  yourselves.     Do  you  think  a 
man  can  love  God  above  all,  as  every  true  Christian  doth, 
and  not  seek  him  above  all  ?     Or  that  a  man  can  have  a  hea- 
venly heart,  and  not  a  heavenly  life  ?     It  cannot  be.    If  you 
had  rather  sit  at  home,  when  you  should  be  attending  upon 
(Sod  in  the  public  assembly,  or  enjoying  private  helps  for 
your  souls ;  or  are  cumbered  about  many  things,  when  you 
should  be.  looking  after  the  one  thing  necessary ;  it  is .  a 
sign  that  you  have  not  chosen  the  better  part :  whenever  the 
heart  is  changed  to  God,  the  main  bent  of  the  life  will  pre- 
sently consist  in  the  seeking  of  God. 

4.  A  new  heart  will  have  a  new  tongug.  The  fruit  of  it 
will  appear  in  the  scope  of  a  man's  discourse ;  ^'  for  out  of 
the  abundance  of  the  heart  the  mouth  speaketh  ^"  I  know 
a  man  may  force  hb  words,  and  therefore  I  still  say  to  you, 
that  these  proofii  from  the  outward  actions,  are  stronger  for 
the  negative,  than  the  affirmative.  An  evil  tongue  will 
prove  an  evil  heart,  but  to  prove  a  man  sincere,  there  must 
be  both  heart  and  tongue.  But  certain  it  is,  that  though 
words  may  be  counterfeit,  yet  true  conversion  doth  al- 
ways change  the  speech,  and  make  the  tongue  also  ser- 
viceable to  those  higher  ends,  which  the  heart  is  newly  set 
upon.  He  that  before  had  no  mind  to  speak  of  any  thing 
bat  earthly  and  fleshly  matters,  is  now  inquiring  after  other 
■latters.  The  first  words  that  we  read  of  the  converted 
Jews,  Acts  ii.  37.  and  the  converted  Jailer,  Acts  ix.  and 
Paul,  when  he  was  converted.  Acts  ix.  were,  what  God 
would  have  them  do  that  they  might  be  saved.  Before,  the 
very  discourse  of  sin,  and  grace,  and  Christ,  and  the  life  to 
come,  were  a  trouble  to  them,  but  now  it  is  otherwise. 
They  know  they  have  their  tongues  for  no  greater  use,  nor 
can  they  better  employ  them,  than  in  seeking  direction  for 

r  Matt.  xii.  54. 


I 


112  ,  .TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

tlieir  everlasting  happiness.    Now,  if  you  mark  them  in  the 
company  that  they  come  into,  if  they  have  any  fit  opportur 
nity,  they  are  lamenting  their  former  sinful  life,  or  warning 
others  to  avoid  the  way  that  they  were  led  into,  or  telling 
men  of  the  evil  of  sin,  and  the  need  of  Christ  and  grace,  or 
asking  help  of  those  that  can  help  them ;  how  to  search 
their  hearts  ;  how  to  overcome  the  remnant  of  their  sins ; 
and  how  to  carry  on  the  work  of  Ood,  that  they  may  be 
ready  for  death  and  judgment,  and  get  safe  to  heaven.    You 
that  are  carnal,  do  wonder  that  men  speak  so  milch  of  these 
things,  and  you  are  weary  to  hear  them,  but  you  know  not 
the  change  that  is  made  upon  their  hearts.    Can  yon  bl&me 
a  man  to  talk  of  his  everlasting  condition,  and  of  tibat  which 
is  of  greater  moment  than  all  the  matters  of  tibewovld?  Can 
you  blame  a  man  to  talk  most  of  that  which  he  mindedi 
most,  and  which  his  very  heart  is  set  upon  ?    If  his  toilgde 
be  of  heaven,  while  his  heart  is  on  earth,  then  he  is  9Xk  hy- 
pocrite :  but  would  you  not  have  a  man's  tongoe  toVollow 
his  heart,  when  his  heart  is  right?     Yet  some  men  are  so 
perverse,  and  so  against  the  things  of  Oodf  that  they  are 
ready  to  say.  Why  cannot  they  keep  their  religion  to  tiiein- 
selves  ?    Cannot  they  be  religious  in  secret,  without  talking 
•of  it  so  much  to  others  ?    As  if  the  heart  only  were  made 
for  Ood,  and  the  tongue  for  the  world,  the  flesh  or  the  devil. 
As  if  a  man  should  talk  of  nothing  but  the  childish  toys 
and  trifles  of  the  worid,  for  fear  of  seeming  an  hypocrite,  or 
for  fear  of  troubling  these  queazy  souls.     Shall  the  Holy 
Ghost  make  sucha  change  oil  the  heart  of  a  Binner,«nd' shall 
not  the  tongue  partake  of  it,  or  express  it?    Cam  Christ  and 
his  Spirit  dwell  in  the  heart,  and  the  tongue  conceal  so 
blessed  an  inhabitant !     Can  a  man  have  a  taste  of  hea- 
ven  upon   his   heart,   and  the  kingdom   of  God   begun 
within  him,  and  yet  not  express   his   life  or  joy?     Orjs 
it  meet  for  him  that  hath   found  the  way  to  heaven,  to 
hold  his  tongue,  and  let  others  quietly  post  to  hell  ?     ShouUi 
a  man  that  hath  narrowly  escaped  damnation,  himself  be  si- 
lent, when  he  seeth  others  go  in  the  same  way  that  he  had 
liked  to  have  perished  in  ?    Who  will  not  call  to  anoth^  to 
take  heed,  that  hath  escaped  a  quicksand  himself?     Or  set 
up  a  bush,  that  those  that  follow  may  see  the  danger  ?    Is 
it  not  a  strange  conceit  of  these  men,  that  would  have  the 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  113 

converted  so  cruel  to  all  that  are  yet  unconverted ;  so  un- 
thankful to  Ood  that  hath  mercifully  delivered  them ;  so 
sensi^less  of  matters  of  the  greatest  weight,  and  so  service- 
able to  satan  the  great  deceiver^  as  to  say  nothing  of  such 
unspeakable  things  as  these?    What !  have  the  love  of  God 
shed  abroad  in  their  hearts,  and  say  nothing  of  it !     Have 
the  pardon  of  sin  in  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  say  nothing  of 
it !     What !  see  many  hundred  souls  in  danger  of  damnation, 
and  say  nothing,  but  let  them  perish !     It  cannot  be ;  it 
must  not  be ;  it  is  a  most  unreasonable  thing  to  desire  it. 
Our  tongue  is  our  glory,  it  is  the  principal  instrument  of  ma- 
nifesting our  mind,  by  which  man  differeth  from  all  other 
inferior  creatures  :  and  should  we  not  use  it  for  God  and 
the  greatest  things?    What  sottish  people  are   these  to 
think  their  worldly  matters  fit  for  their  discourse,  and  the 
matters  of  everlasting  life,  unfit!    To  think  it  no  harm  to 
jest  and  talk  foolishly,  and  tell  idle  tales,  and  such  a  man 
they-  take  for  a  pleasant  companion,  and  never  find  fault 
with  him.     But  for  the  things  that  may  honour  God,  or  tend 
to  men's  salvation,  or  to  destroy  sin  and  cross  the  devil, 
here  we  must  be  silent,  and  keep  our  religion  to  ourselves. 
Did  ever  these  wretches  believe  Jesus  Christ;  ''that  by 
their  words  they  shall  be  justified,  and  by  their  words  they 
shall  be  condemned  >?"     Did  they  ever  believe,  or  regard 
the  words  of  the  Holy  Ghost^  Eph.  v.  3,  4.?    "  But  fornica- 
tion, uncleanness  or  lasciviousness,  let  it  not  be  once  teamed 
among  you,  as  becometh  saints ;  nor  filthiness,  nor  foolish 
talking,  nor  jestings,  which  are  not  convenient,  but  rather 
pving  of  thanks.''    And  Eph.  iv.  29,  30.    "  Let  no  corrupt 
communication  proceed  out  of  your  mouth ;  but  that  which 
is  good  to  the  use  of  edifying,  that  it  may  minister  grace  to 
the  hearers,  and  grieve  not  the  Holy  Spirit  of  God/'    "  Let 
the  word  of  Christ  dwell  in  you  richly,  in  all  wisdom,  teach- 
ing and  admonishing  one  another**."    "  Exhort  one  another 
dwly  while  it  is  called  to-day,  lest  any  of  you  be  hardened 
through  the  deceitfulness  of  sin  ^"     •'  If  any  man  speak,  let 
liim  speak  as  the  oracles  of  God,  that  God  in  all  things  may 
be  glorified  ^."    Abundance  of  such  passages  are  in  Scrip- 
tare,  which  may  tell  you  what  to  think  of  the  folly  of  such 

«  BflatU  lii.  37.        ^  Col.  iiu  16.        »  Heb.  iif.  13.         ^  1  Pet.  iv.  11. 
VOL.   VII.  I 


114  TRSATI8B  OF   CONTE^RfinON. 

carnal  men ;  and  may  assure  yon  that  adonTerted/beayenly 
hearty  will  alwayis  have  a  new  and  heavenly  tongue^ 

6.  A  changed  heart  will  have  chtoge  of  companj^  if  it 
-inay  be  had.    There  is  somewhat  in  nature  that  ditposelh 
all  men  to  delight  in  that  company  which  is  most  suitable 
to  their  dispositiotu    While  their  hearts  are  isamal^  thiey 
love  the  company  of  such:  a  man  that  is  of  their  mind  and 
way,  and  will  break  a  jeist,  ahd  be  merry  with  them,  or  talk 
with  them  about  their  worldly  matters,  is  the  best  compan- 
ion for  them;  for  the  company  of  mortified  and  heavenly 
men,  they  haye  no  pleasure  in  it.    They  do  but  mar.  th^ir 
miftii  with  putting  in  words  about  the  eyilof  sin,  and  death, 
and  judgment,  and  everlasting  things  :  they  do  but  trouble 
them,  and  cast  them  into  dumps,  and  thevefoie  tbey  have 
no  mind  to  their  company.     But  when  converting  ^grace 
hath  changed  them,  their  minds  in  this  are*  changed  ako. 
O  how  sapless  and  unsavoury  then  is  it  to  thi^m  to  sit  or 
^walk  in  the  company  of  such  tiiat  have  never  a  woid  of 
'God,  or  that  may  helpthem  in  the  matters,  that  their  hearte 
are  set  Upon  !    Their  merry  talk,  abd  fine  discourse,  is  to 
him  but  as  the  cuackling  of  thorns  in  the  fire.     It  doth  but 
trouble  him,  and  move  him  to  compassionate  ivxh  Bmpty 
souls  that  have  no  God,  no  Christ,  no  heav^i  to  talk'of,  but 
^mere  unprofitable  trifles ;  but  the  company  of  those  is  sWeet 
to  him,  that  will  discourse  about  &e  matters  of  his  salva- 
tion ;  that  will  tell  him  how  he  may  get  more  grace,  and 
open  to  him  more  ihe  mysteries  of  the  Gospel,  and  speak  of 
the  riches  of  God's  love  in  Christ,  or  tell  him  of  t&e  dangers 
that  are  yet  before  him,  or  the  duties  that  he  must  per- 
foite.    These  matters  are  now  ^voury  to  him,  for  these  he 
knows  do  ind^fed  ccmcem  him,  and  are  worth  the  talking  of. 
-When  a  man  Is  in  a  strange  country  a  thousand  miles  off, 
it  doth  him  good  to  meet  with  his  own  countrymen,  and 
talk  widi'them  about  his  friends,  and  family,  and  his  es- 
tate, and  inheritance,  and  home,  which  he  must  return  to ; 
one  hour  of  this  discourse  is  sweeter  to  him,  than  an  hun* 
dred  with  the  strangers  of  the  country,  about  matters  diat 
are  little  to  him :  so  is  it  here ;  a  Christian  that  knoweth 
he  is  a  stranger  in  this  world,  and  that  his  God,  his  salva- 
tion, his  home,  his  inheritance  are  all  in  the  world  to  come ; 
had  rather  far  discourse  with  a  heavenlyminded  man  about 


TREATISE   OF   GONVERSICKlf.  115 

bis  Fatk^,  and  eirerlaftting  works  and  blessedness,  than 
Wth  wcMrldly  men  about  this  world.  Who  loveth  not  tl^e 
poiPRftny  of  ,hi8  dearest  friends  and  brethren  more  than, of 
^traagQrs  or  enemies  ?  We  know,  those  that  fear  Gpdare 
liKe  to  be  Qur.  companions  for  ever,  and  .Uierefore  we  would 
ha?e  /them  our  companions  here.  You  may  see  by  Scrip- 
ture that  it  is  thus  with  true  Christians.  "In  his  eyes  a 
¥i}p. person  is  contemned,  but  he  honoureth  them  that  {fear 
Oofi  K"  "  They  take  Bweet  counsel  together,  and  walk  to 
^ehpu$e  of  God  in  company™.'*  "They  that  feared  the 
I^d,,spake  often  one  to  another'',  8cc."  "J  am  a  compa- 
nira/'  .»^iax  Da;vid,  ".  of  all  them  that  fear  thee,  and  of  them 
tha^  keep  thy  precepts  V  And  it  ia  one  of  the  Hebrews' 
coQunendations,  that  they  "  became  companions  of  them 
^at  sufibred  for  Christ  p.'*  And  on  the  contrary  side,  it  ivas 
IMgijied  to  be  one  of  Job's  iniquities,  to  go  in  company  with 
the  ..wotkers  of  iniquily  '^.  For  men  are  supposed  to  be  such 
.as  their,  company  is  ;  and  we  are  conmianded  with  such,  no, 
OQtto  eat'.  And  "to  have  no  company  with  ihem,  that 
.tbey.may  be  ashamed*."  And  Soloioaon  saith,  "  A  cpmpa- 
moia.  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed  \" 

6.  Another  part  of  the  change  of  the  life  is  this,  true 
conversion  makes  a  man  compassionate  to  those  that  are 
jmcouyerted,  Jsad  very  desirous  of  their  conversion,  an4 
therefore  sets  men  upon  such  endeavours  as  they  can  ^se  to 
bnngitto  pass;  yea,  it  makes  men  zealous  of  good  works'*, 
Md  jrery  careful  and  :8tudious  to  do  what  good  they  can. 
It  is  the  disposition  of  wicked  men  to  draw  others  with  them 
into  wickedness,  and  to  make  oUiers  as  bad  as  themselves : 
*^  Xhey  not  only  do  that  which  is  evil,  but  have  pleasure  in 
tibein:that  do  it  '•"  They  would  have  others  as  loose  as  they, 
i^d  as  careless  of  their  own  souls  as  they,  and  to  make  as 
light  a  matter  of  sin  as  they  do.  The  drunkard  would  have 
Gompanions,  and  the  gamester  would  have  companions'; 
.every  one  that  hates  and  derides  a  godly  life,  would  have 
alL  others  do  so  too.  Men  are  loath  to  go  to  hell  alone ;  but 
like  men  that  axe  running  violently  down  a  hill,  they  draw 

1  Psalm  ZV.4.  ■"  Psalm  Iv.  14.  "  Mal.iii.  16. 

•  Psalm  cxix.  63.  p  Heb.  x,  33.  *i  Job  xxxiv.  8. 

'  1  Cor.  ▼.  11.  •  2  Thess.  iii.  14.  *  Prov.  xui.  20. 

»  Tit.  u- 19.  «  Rom.  i.  32. 


110  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

one  another  with  them.  It  somewhat  comforts  u  .in  to  see 
most  of  the  world  as  bad  as  themselyes,  because  they  think 
then  God  will  not  condemn  so  many :  as  if  the  nmnber  pf 
sinners  did  extenuate  the  wrong.  And  those  uncouTerted 
men  that  are  not  so  bad  as  to  wish  others  as  bad  as  them- 
selves, yet  have  little  zeal  for  men's  recovery :  for  how  can 
they  love  other  men  better  than  themselves? 

But  when  conversion  hath  given  a  man  a  sight  and  sense 
of  the  evil  of  sin,  it  makes  him  pity  all  that  are  misled,  and 
earnestly  desire  their  conversion  and  recovery.  O  how  fain 
would  the  gracious  soul  have  others  to  see  die  folly  of  sin, 
as  he  hath  seen  it !  How  fain  would  he  have  them  see  the 
need  of  Christ,  that  glory  above,  that  felicity  that  lieth  in 
the  favour  of  God,  as  he  hath  seen  them !  It  doth  him  good 
to  have  companions  in  good  :  he  hath  no  mind  to  be  happy 
alone.  The  number  of  partakers  he  knows  will  not  at  idl 
diminish  his  joys.  If  he  could  tell  how,  he  would  have  all 
the  world  to  be  as  happy  as  himself,  the  more  the  better. 
And  therefore  he  prayeth  heartily  for  the  conversion  of  other 
men:  he  pleadeth  withi'them,  and  persuadeth  them;  and 
fain  he  would  have  their  eyes  to  be  opened,  and  their  hearts 
to  be  softened  and  turned  to  God.  He  remembereth  that 
their  case  was  once  his  own,  and  how  foolish  and  froward 
he  was,  even  as  they  now  arei  He  remembereth  how, 
miserable  he  then  was,  though  he  knew  it  not,  and  would 
not  for  idl  the  world  be  in  the  same  case  again ;  and  there- 
fore he  cannot  choose  but  pity  those  that  he  hath  left  behind 
him,  and  long  for  their  deliverance. 

Truly,  sinners,  it  is  from  hence  that  men  fearing  God  do 
trouble  you  so  much  in  your  sins,  and  make  such  a  stir  with 
you  about  matters  of  your  souls ;  and  tell  you  of  your  dan- 
ger, and  persuade  you  to  turn,  and  take  another  course :  it 
is  because  they  are  loath  to  see  you  perish,  if  they  could 
help  it.  You  would  have  them  let  you  alone,  but  they  are 
loath  to  let  you  alone,  in  such  a  case  and  way  as  that.  If 
some  that  are  running  to  drown  themselves,  or  do  any  mis- 
chief to  themselves,  should  bid  you  let  them  alone,  and 
meddle  with  yourselves,  and  take  no  care  for  them,  you 
would  not  let  them  alone  for  all  that,  but  would  hinder  them 
if  you  <:ould  from  making  away  with  themselves.  So,  if  you 
arc  angry  with  men  that  would  keep  you  out  of  hell,  and  bid 


..        TREATISfi   OF   CONVERSION.  117 

them  let  you  alone,  and  take  no  care  for  you,  beoause  you 
shall  answer  for  yourselves,  this  will  not  satiiify  them  to 
stand  still,  and  see  you  run  into  damnation,  if  they  knew  how 
to  help  it.    Alas  !  it  is  not  because  they  love  to  be  meddling 
with  other  folks'  matters,  or  take  pleasure  in  reproving  and 
controlling  other  men.     If  it  were  not  for  your  sakes  and 
the  glory  of  God,  it  is  easier  for  us  to  let  you  alone.    We 
have  work  enough  of  our  own  to  do,  and  dangers  enough  of 
our  own  to  prevent.    It  is  small  pleasure  to  any  man  that 
is  well  in  his  wits  to  meddle  needlessly  with  other  men's 
matters,  and  to  contradict  wilful  sinners,  when  he  knows 
how  little  thanks  he  is  like  to  have  for  it.    What  do  you 
think  we  long  to  have  men  hate  us  and  fly  in  our  faces?     Is 
it  a  pleasure  to  us  to  vex  men,  and  inake  them  our  enemies? 
No.     Alas!  it  is  so  great  a  displeasure,  that  it  becomes  a 
strong  temptation  to  us  to  be  unfaithful  or  negligent  in  our 
duty.     Many  a  minister  is  so  loath  to  get  the  ill  will  of  his 
people,  that  he  lets  them  alone  in  their  sins,  or  only  telleth 
them  of  it  in  public,  or  at  the  most  but  in  an  easy,  ineffec- 
tual way,  and  so  falls  in  danger  of  perishing  with  them  for 
company.    Nothing  makes  more  negligent,  unconscionable    [  '■ 
ministers,  (next  to  the  unfaithfulness  of  their  own  hearts,)   i  \ 
than  people's  hating  their  instructions  and  reproofs,  and  im-   [  \ 
patiently  bearing  the   means  that  should  recover  them. 
Carnal  ministers  will  not  cast  themselves  upon  the  people's 
displeasure,  but  rather  let  them  alone  and  venture  them* 
They  that  dare  venture  their  own  souls  to  escape  the  ill  will 
of  men,  will  venture  other  men's  too.     And  so  it  is  also 
with  private  Christians.    The  reason  why  so  few  will  be 
brought  to  deal  plainly  and  faithfully  for  the  saving  of 
others,  is  because  it  is  commonly  so  ill  taken.    Alas !  sin- 
ners, what  ease,  what  profit,  what  good  is  it,  think  you,  to 
other  men  to  trouble  you  in  your  sins,  if  it  were  not  for  your 
good,  and  for  the  command  and  glory  of  God  ?     But  what 
man  that  is  not  a  tyger,  or  hath  not  a  heart  of  stone  within 
a  little  of  damnation,  and  let  them  alone  ?    Who  can  be  so 
cruel  as  to  hold  his  tongue,  while  he  seeth  men  in  the  high- 
way to  hell?    If  we  were  yet  in  our  unbelief,  and  did  not 
believe  that  the  word  of  God  is  true,  or  that  unconverted 
men  shall  certainly  perish,  then  we  might  well  be  silent ;  for 
who  would  go  to  make  men  sad  with  melancholy  fancies  or 


118  TKEATI8E   OF   CONVEKaiON. 

ft^rful  <k^ams  Ijiat  have  no  tratib  in  them?    But  O !  do  not 
blame  a  mian  that  hath  been  in  the  same  condition  himself^ . 
and  is  mercifully  delivered  by  converting  grace,  if  he  look 
bd:ck  to  those  he  hath  left  behind,  and  tell  them  of  their 
da!ng«r !     Do  not  blame  a  man  that  hath  his^eyes  opened  by 
faith,  and  seeth  hell-fire  a  little  before  yon,  if  he  should  call 
to  you,  and  call  again,  and  call  with  tears  and  greatest  ear- 
nestness, to  entreat  you  to  stop,  and  go  no  further.     I  dare 
say,  if  you  did  but  see  what  he  seeth,  you  would  be  of  the 
same  mind,  and  would  be  as  loath  to  go  on  in  an  unconvert- 
ed condition,  as  any  one  would  be  to  suffer  you.     When 
the  eyes  of  sinners  are  shut  that  they  see  not  their  own  con- 
dition, nor  what  a  storm  is  rising  in  heaven  against  th^m, 
they  are  content  and  quiet  at  the  gates  of  hell !     Btit  when 
either  grace  or  torments  have  opened  their  eyes,  the  case 
will  be  quite  changed  with  them.    Well,  this  is  certaiii, 
that  "Whenever  God  converteth  the  soul,  he  maketh  men  very 
desirous  of  other  men's  conversion,  and  very  compassionate 
to  theih  that  are  yet  in  darkness  and  in  bondage  by  theit 
sins.     Not  only  Paul  and  the  preachers  of  the  Gospel  sarjr, 
**  Necessity  is  laid  upon  me,  and  woe  unto  me  if  I  preach 
not  the  Gospel ;''  but  every  Christian  in  his  place  doth  find 
a  necessity  upon  him  to  endeavour  the  good  of  others ;  aisd 
he  findeth  an  earnest  desire  to  it,  and  a  delight  in  that  which 
God  hath  made  so  necessary.    And  it  is  not  in  this  liMitter 
of  conversion  only,  but  in  all  other  things  also,  that  a  trae 
Ghrisf  ian  hath  a  special  inclination  to  do  goOd.     As  he  that 
is  evil,  delighteth  to  do  evil ;  so  he  that  is  good,  delighteth 
to  do  good    Though  he  be  not  perfectly  good,  for  so  is  tkont 
till  he  come  to  heaven ;  much  less  primitively,  and  of  him- 
self good,  for  so  there  is  none  good  but  God  y.    Yet  hath  he 
u  derived,  an  imperfect  goodness,  and  in  that  measure  as  he 
is  good,  he  must  needs  be  prone  to  do  good ;  for  ev6ry  thing 
will  work  according  to  its  nature.     It  is  a  death  to  wicked 
men  to  do  that  which  is  a  godly  man's  delight.    A  man  or 
beast  cannot  fly  in  the  air,  but  a  bird  can  do  it  as  easily  as 
we  can  walk  on  the  earth.     A  good  man  is  never  in  his  own 
element,  but  when  he  is  doing  some  good.     His  mind  mn- 
I  j      neth  oh  it :  he  fitudieth  how  he  may  effect  it ;  and  he  is  not 
content  to  do  good,  unless  he  do  much  good.     He  knoWeth 


I 

!  y  Matt.  xix.  17. 


VRKATUE  OF   COKVERAION.  119 

what  Christ  hath  said  {  "  Herein  is  my  Father  glorified,  that 
ye  bring  forth  much  flfilit'/'  He  fin^eth  by  experience  that 
which  others  will  not  believe,  that  doing  good  is  either  a 
receiving  of  good,  oi;  inseparably  conjunct  with  it  The 
more  a  ijoom  giveth  to  the  poor  or  to  other  good  ujSfes,-  with 
right  ^itents>  l|he  more  he  receiveth.  Whatever  others  re- 
ceive by  hi%endei^vow?8«  he  is  sure  that  he  shall  not  lose  his 
labour  or  oostjir^  tp  tumself.  "  He  that  giveth  to  the  poor, 
lendeth  to  the  l«ord  ;'^  and  look  what  he  layeth  out,  it  shall 
be  paid  him  again.  A  carnal  man  is  ever  selfish,  and  draws 
all  to  turn,  as  if  there  were  no  one  but  himself  that  he  cared 
for :  but  a  gracious  man  ia  in  his  place  and  measure  like 
Ood^  a  communicative  good.  As  ^'  God  is  good  ajad  doth 
good  %"  so  is  he.  That  which  a  man's  nature  inclineth  him 
to,  he  cannot  forget.  A  good  man  forgets  not  in  the  maiq 
tQ  do  good,  for  he  kpoweth  that  with  such  sacrifice  God  ia 
well  pleased  ^.  Mark  this  all  you  that  profess  more  zeal  for 
Gk>d  iheok  others :  believe  it,  true  conversion  will  appear  in 
good  works.  The  true  servants  of  Christ  do  as  much  exceed 
the  world  in  a  contempt  of  earthly  things,  and  in  compassion 
to  the  miserable,  and  in  readiness  and  bounty,  according  to 
their  ability  to  tho^e  that  want,  as  they  do  exceed  them  in 
praying,  or  other  duties.  Other  men  part  with  the  world 
as  their  treasure,  and  almost  as  their  blood,  but  the  heavenly 
Christian  parteth  vrith  it  as  his  superfluity,  or  at  least  as 
thi^  which  he  can  spare.  Faith  teacheth  men  to  do  good ; 
and  good  works  are  part  of  the  riches  of  a  saint  ^.  Doing 
good  is  so  excellent  and  necessary  a  thing,  that  even  an 
enemy  must  be  made  partaker  of  it^.  And  want  of  thank- 
fulness or  requital  from  men,  is  no  excuse  to  them  that  neg- 
lect it*.  Some  works  of  piety  may  be  forbom  for  doing 
good  to  others  ^ 

So  much  for  that  part  of  the  change. 

m 

»  John  XV.  8.         »  Psal.  cxix.  68.         *•  Heb.  xiii  16.        «  1  Tiift.  ri.  18. 
A  Matt.  V.  44.       «  Luke  vU  S5.  ^  Mark  iii.  4. 


.((»\- 


120  TR£ATI8E   OF   CONYEBSIOH. 


CHAPTER  II. 

I  HAVE  spoken  of  the  work  of  conversion^  as  it  containeth 
the  change  of  the  judgment^  and  of  the  heart,  and  of  the 
life,  and  so  have  finished  the  third  particular  promised : 
which  was  to  shew  you  what  conversion  is,  and  wherein  it 
doth  consist.    By  what  is  said,  you  may  easily  see  that  it 
is  a  great  change  that  is  made  on  the  soul  and  in  the  life,  by 
this  renewing  grace  of  Christ.     Methinks  now  all  those  men 
that  know,  or  may  know,  that  never  such  a  work  was 
wrought  upon  their  hearts,  should  see  that  it  is  time  to  look 
about  them,  and  to  lay  to  heart  the  sad  conclusion,  which 
Christ  hath  here  protested  in  my  text.    What !  have  all  the 
people  of  this  congregation  found  all  this  change  upon  judg^ 
ment,  heart,  and  life,  as  I  have  here  spoken  of?    O  that  it 
were  so  well.    What  a  joy  were  that  to  us,  to  angels^  to 
Christ  himself !    And  what  everlasting  joy  would  that  be  to 
themselves!     But,  alas!  their  conversations  and  careless 
lives  do  tell  us,  that  with  too  many  of  them  it  is  far  others 
wise.     And  what  keepeth  such  guilty  souls  in  peace  ?     Can 
80  many  men  hear  such  a  text  as  this ;  that  except  they  be 
converted  they  cannot  be  saved,  and  yet  not  look  about 
them,  nor  be  awakened  from  their  security  ?    Yet  it  is  too 
evident  by  sad  experience,  that  they  that  read  this  and  know, 
or  might  know,  that  they  are  not  converted,  are  yet  as  care- 
less as  if  they  could  endure  damnation  well  enough.      And  . 
what  is  the  matter  ?     And  how  comes  this  to  pass  ?     Doubt- 
less, because  they  do  not  thoroughly  believe  the  truth  of 
what  is  said. 

IV.    I  shall  therefore  come   now  to   the  next  thing 
promised  :    briefly  to   shew  you  from  the  word  of  Ood ' 
the  certain  truth  of  what  we  have  in  hand,  that  you  may  see^ . 
it  is  a  matter  past  all  doubt  and  question. 

I.  And  first.  What  need  you  any  more  than  the  very  r 
words  of  the  text  ?  Do  you  need  further  proof,  where  you 
have  the  words  of  Christ  himself?  But  you  shall  see  yet 
more,  John  iii.  3.  He  telleth  Nicodemus,  "  That  except  a 
man  be  regenerate  and  bom  again,  he  cannot  enter  into,  the 
kingdom  of  heaven :''  that  is,  as  a  child  is  as  it  were  a  new 
creature  that  lately  received  life,  which  had  none  before,  and 
newly  entereth  into  the  world ;  so  must  every  man  that  will 


TRBATI8E  OV   CONVER8IOM.        121 

be  saved,  as  it  were  receive  a  new  spiritual  life,  and  enter 
into  the  world  of  grace,  even  into  the  church  of  God,  and 
begin  his  life  as  it  were  again ;  '*  If  any  man  be  in  Christ, 
he  is  a  new  creature,  old  things  are  passed  away,  behold, 
all  things  are  become  new/'     See  here  both  the  necessity, 
and  the^ nature  of  this  change.    It  is  not  one  or  two,  but 
every  man  that  is  in  Christ,  that  is  thus  converted.    And 
he  that  is  not  in  Christ,  is  not  a  Christian,  and  he  that  is 
not  a  Christian  cannot  be  saved.     Every  true  Christian  then 
is  a  new  creature ;  not  in  substance,  but  in  quality  and  in 
life ;  "  old  things  are  passed  away,  behold,  all  things  are  be- 
come new !''    What  are  these  '  all  things  V  but  those  that 
I  have  before  expressed  to  you  ?    A  true  t^onverted  man, 
hath  not  the  same  ends  and  intentions  that  he  had  before : 
lie  hath  a  neW  hope  and  happiness,  new  love,  new  desires, 
new  sorrow,  new  delight,  new  resolution,  and  a  new  conver- 
totidn :  all  is  become  new.     He  entereth  a  new  covenant 
\ii4th  Christ,  and  so  he  hath  a  new  master,  a  new  head,  and 
husband  and  Lord :  and  is  now  a  member  of  a  new  society, 
and  entereth  into  a  new  kingdom  and  family.      He  hath  a 
new  work  to  do,  he  hath  a  new  company  to  converse  with, 
he  hath  new  thoughts  in  his  heart,  and  speaks  a  new  lan- 
guage.   He  leadeth  his  life  by  a  new  law :  and  thus  all 
things  are  become  new.    Even  relations  are  here  included, 
as  well  as  physical  qualifications.     For  he  hath  a  new  Fa- 
ther, a  new  inheritance,  and  so  of  the  rest.    It  must  needs 
be  a  great  change  indeed,  wher^  all  things  are  become  new. 
If  it  were  but  one  or  two  of  these,  it  would  make  a  great 
alteration ;  much  more  when  it  is  in  all.    So  in  1  Pet,  ii.  2. 
The  apostle  likeneth  them  to  "  new  bom  babes,  who  must 
therefore  desire  the  sincere  milk  of  the  word,  that  they  may 
live  and  grow  by  it.''    And  in  Gal.  vi.  15.    *^  For  in  Christ 
Jesus  neither  circumcision  availeth  any  thing,  nor  uncircum- 
cision,  but  a  new  creature.    The  world  must  be  crucified  to 
us,  and  we  to  the  world,  that  we  may  live  anew  to  God." 
ver.  14.    And  I  told  you  before  out  of  Ephes.  iv.  22 — ^24. 
That  in  conversion  we  ^'  put  off  the  old  man,  which  accord- 
ing to  the  deceitful  lusts,  is  corrupt ;  and  are  renewed  in  the 
spirit  of  our  mind,  and  put  on  the  newman,  which  after  God 
is  created  in  righteousness  and  true  holiness."  And  Tit.  iii. 
5.    *'  According  to  his  mercy  he  saved  us  by  the  washing 


133  TREATISE   OF  CONVBEaSQN. 

of  regeneration,  and  the  renewing  of  the  UolyGhost» 
he  sheddeth  on  ufl,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Saviour;  ibiA 
being  justified  by  his  grace,  we  might  be  made  heirs  acooei- 
ing  to  the  hope  of  eternal  life/'    So  Col.iii.  10.    "  We  pni 
on  the  new  man  which  is  renewed  in  knowledge  after  the 
image  of  him  that  created  us."    Ezek.  xviii.  3L     He  com^ 
mandeth  them  to  *'  make  them  a  new  heart,  and  a  new  tfiii 
rit.'^    And  what  he  commandeth  all,  he  declareth  hinsetf 
resolred  to  give  to  his  elect.      Ezek.  xxzyi.  26.     "  A  nev 
heart  also  will  I  gire  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put  iato 
you,  and  I  will  take  away  the  stony  heart  out  of  your  fleab» 
and  I  will  give  you  a  heart  of  flesh-;  and  I  will  put  my  Spi* 
rit  within  you,  and  cause  yon  to  walk  in  «Ly  statutes,  and  ye 
shatlkeepmy  judgments  and  do  them*''      So  in  E^k.  xi. 
19.    ^  I  will  give  them  one  heart,  and  I  will  put  a  oew  spi« 
rit  within  them ;  and  I  will  take  the  stony  heart  out  of  ^Mtf 
flesh,  and  will  give  them  a  heart  of  flesh;  that  they  may 
walk  in  my  statutes,  and  keep  my  ordinances,  and  do  thoisu 
and  they  shall  be  my  people,  and  I  will  be  their  God.^"    Am4 
as  they  are  new  creatures,  so  they  have  a  new  conmaAd* 
ment,  or  law  to  live  by ;  and  a  new  promise,  or  coveaaotfor 
their  inheritance  K    They  have  a  **  new  name,  that  no  vnMt 
knoweth  but  he  that  hadi  it  ^ :''  or  at  least  they  shall  have. 
They  have ''new  employments,  even  serving  God  in  oiew- r 
ness  of  life,  that  as  they  were  planted  together  in  the  like- 
ness of  Christ^s  death,  Uiey  should  be  also  in  the  likeowi 
of  his  resurrection.    Knowing  this,  that  their  old  mau  is 
crucified  with  him,  that  the  body  of  sin  might  be  destroyed^ 
that  henceforth  they  should  not  serve  sin.      For  he  that  ifi 
dead  is  justified  or  freed  from  sin  ^.'^    And  thus  they  ''  serFe 
Qod  in  newness  of  spirit®."    And  so  the  whole  (^urcbis 
''  one  new  man  in  Christ ^"    And  a  ''new  lump  that  if 
purged  from  the  old  leaven,"  must  all  particular  churches  of 
Christians  be  s.     But  lest  any  doubt  should  be  left,  I  will 
reditce  the  rest  to  some  particular  arguments* 

1.  It  is  the  very  office  of  Jesus  Christ,  which  he  came 
into  the  world  to  perform,  to  bring  back  ungodly  sinners  - 
unto  God.     And  shall  we  think  that  Christ  came  on  a 
needless  errand  ?     Believe  it,  sirs«  as  his  8u£Pering,was  ne-    ' 

b  John  xHi.  34.    Luke  xxii,  20.    t  Cor.  iii.  6.    HeU  ix.  15. 

«  Rev.  ii.  17.  **  Rom.  tI  4—7.  •  Rom.  vil,  6. 

^  Ephes.  ii.  15-  ^  1  Cor.  v.  7. 


TR£ATI»B  OF   CONTBE9ION.  123 

(^ssary  fof  our  ransoikiy  so  was  his  doctrine  and  Spirit  as 
necessary  for  our  conversion,  and  we  can  no  more  be  saved 
withotit  lihe  one,  than  without  the  other.-    Think  with  your- 
seWes  whether  it  be  a  likely  thing,  that  Ood  should  send 
his  Son  on  earth  by  a  miracle,  surpassing  all  miracles,  and 
tiiis  on  purpose  to  call  home  straying  sinful  souls,  if  they 
might  be  saved  without  conversion  ?     If  it  had  been  pos- 
sible for  men  to  be  happy  without  holiness,  and  to  escape 
misery  without  escaping  sin,  what  need  Christ  have  come 
to  sanctify  them?    The  Lord  Jesus  is  the  great  Physician 
of  souls,  and  he  comes  not  to  heal  any  petty  diseases,  that 
might  as  well  have  been  healed  without  him ;  but  he  comes 
to  cure  a  killing  plague,  that  no    one   else   could   have 
cured  but  himself.   It  was  never  the  mind  of  Christ  ta  come 
down  from  heaven  to  suffer  for  our  sins,  that  we  might  be 
sated  in  them  without  a  change.    Never  did  it  enter  into 
his  holy  thoughts,,  to  bring  men  to  glory  in  their  sins ;  but 
to  destroy  their  sins  that  would  keep  them  out  of  glory. 
He  never  meant  to  bring  you  and  your  disease  to  heaven 
together ;  but  to  heal  your  disease,  that  else  would  be  your 
rfiin«    What  shcdl  we  think,  that  Christ  came  to  impute  a 
righteousness  to  the  impenitent  and  unconverted  1     And  to 
make  Ood  believe  that  they  are  just  in  him,  who  are  not  in 
him  at  all  ?     And  to  make  men  seem  to  be  what  they  are 
not?    Why,  this  were  to  fain  the  blessed  Son  of  God  to  be 
the  patron  of  iniquity,  and  to  die  for  the  upholding  of  sin ; 
tnd  not  for  the  destroying  of  it.    What  greater  blasphemy 
against  Christ  can  there  be,  than  to  imagine  that  he  be- 
friendeth  sin,  which  he  doth  so  hate  ?     And  diat  he  taketh 
part  with  satan^  and  strengtheneth  his  kingdom,  when  it 
was  his  very  business  in  the  world  to  destroy  it,  and  his 
works  ^  ?    What  must-  Christ  come,  and  so  miraculously 
condescend  and  do,  and  suffer  what  he  did,  and  all  to  heal 
diseiified  souls,  and  kill  that  sin  that  else  would  kill  them, 
and  after  all  this,  shall  he  be  made  the  patron  of  it  ?    Take 
this  home  with  thee  to  thy  heart,  unconverted  sinner,  who- 
ever thou  art.     If   men  could  have  been  saved  without 
conversion,  Christ  would  never  have  done  so  much  to  con- 
vert them  as  he  hath  done.    You  comfort  yourselves  in 
Christ,  while  you  live  in  wilful  sinning ;  and  you  think  that 
though  you  be  not  renewed,  yet  you  shall  be  pardoned  and 

I*  1  John  iiJ.  8. 


124  TREATISE   OF  CONTERSION. 

saved  by  bis  blood-shed.    Why,  I  tell  you  fifom  the  word  of  j 
Qod,  you  may  fe]tch  much  terror  from  the  thoughts  of  Christ; 
but  hope  of  salvation  without  conversion  he  will  afford  yet 
none.    You  may  rather  think  with  yourselves,  that  if  the 
changing  of  a  sinner  had  not  been  a  work  of  great  necessity; 
Christ  would  never  have  come  down  to  do  it.    I  know  tiKi. 
we  have  free  pardon  of  sin  by  his  blood,  or  else  we  had  in 
hope ;  but  it  is  none  but  the  converted  that  partake  of  that 
pardon, , as  you  may  see,  Mark  iv.  12.  "Lest  at  any  time 
they  be  converted,  and  their  sins  should  be  forgiven  them.* 
So  Acts  xxvi.  18.   iii.  9.  "  Repent  ye  therefore,  that  yoif 
sins  may  be  blotted  out.^'    If  you  had  but  that  one  chapter, 
Luke  XV.  to  tell  you  in  what  manner  Christ  doth  save  mei^ 
you  might  easily  see,  it  is  not  by  bringing  them  to  heaven 
in  their  ungodliness.    He  likenedi  himself  to  one  that  hav^ 
ing  lost  a  sheep  in  the  wilderness,  goeth  and  seeketh  after 
it,  till  he  find  it.    And  when  he  hath  found  it,  (what,'  doti 
he  leave  it  ?  no,  but)  layeth  it  on  his  shoulders,  and  brings 
eth  it  home  rejoicing ;  ver.  4,  5.    Or  like  one  that  sweepetk 
the  house  to  find  a  piece  of  silver  that  was  lost ;  ver.  8.    Or 
like  the  father  that  gladly  receiveth  the  returning  prodigal  K 
But  without  returning,  there  had  been  no  receiving  hinti  i 
nor  any  rejoicing  over  him.  j^ 

Object.  But  doth  not  Christ  tell  us  of  some  thai  needed  H 
no  repentance  ?  ver.  7.  Answ.  True,  why  is  that  ?     H^ecause  \ 
they  had  truly  repented  before.    They  needed  no  coBve^   i 
sion ;  or  such  conversion  as  the  new  converts  have^  which  i 
consists  in  a  change,  from  a  state  of  sin  to  Ood :   but  only   i 
a  proceeding  in  obedience,  and  particular  repentance  ftr   I 
their. particular  slips.    But  if  they  had  not  been  converted.  ^ 
before,  they  would  have  needed  such  a  conversion  or  re^  j 
pentance.    For  so  the  prophet  saith,  Isa.  liii.  6.  **  AUwe   jj 
like  sheep  have  gone  astray,  and  have  turned  every  one  to   [ 
his  own  way."    And  so,  1  Pet.  ii.  26.  "  For  ye  were  as    ; 
sheep  going  astray,  but  are  returned  to  the  shepherd  and 
bishop  of  your  souls.''    Or  if  there  be  any  that  were  sanctU 
fied  in  their  infancy,  as  no  doubt  there  is,  so  that  their  ac- 
tual going  astray  was  prevented ;  yet  as  they  went  astray  . . 
in  Adam  and  their  parents,  so  had  they  a  straying  disposi- 
tion in  their  corrupted  natures,  which  needeth  a  turn,  as 
well  as  the  sins,  which  appear  in  the  life.    And  thus  it 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  135 

appeareth  that  Christ  came  of  purpose  to  convert  men.  and 
not  to  pardon  any  soul  without  conversion.  *'  The  Son  of 
Man  is  come  to  seek  and  to  save  that  which  was  lost  ^'^ 
"  Who  gave  himself  for  us  (not  to  pardon  us,  and  to  save 
without  converting  us,  but)  to  redeem  us  from  all  iniquity, 
and  purify  to  himself  a  peculiar  people,  zealous  of  good 
works  ^.''  So  that  hence  you  may  see  the  absolute  neces- 
sity of  conversion  to  salvation. 

2.    It   is    the    very   drift  of   the    Gospel,  and    main 
design  of  the  whole  word  of  God,  to  convert  men  from 
sin    to    God,  and  build  them  up  when    they  are    once 
converted.      And  do    you  think  that    God  would  have 
made  it  the  scbpe  of  his  word,  if  it  had  not  been  neces- 
sary ?    If  a  man  could  be  saved  without  conversion,  what 
ne^  God  to  inspire  prophets  and  apostles  to  deliver  his 
word  to  the  world,   and  t6   seal  it  with  the  miraculous 
gifts  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  all  to  convert  men,  and  build 
up  the  converted  ?    Would  God  make  all  this  stir  with  us, 
IS  he  doth  in  the  Bible,  for  a  needless  thing?     Alas  !  if  he 
did  not  know  that  your  disease  will  kill  you  except  it  be 
cured,  he  would  never  have  prepared  so  many  remedies 
against  it.  This  is  the  very  use  and  glory  of  the  law  of  God. 
"  The  law  of  God  is  pure,  converting  the  soul  ^.'*   What  else 
doth  Scripture  call  sinners  to,  but  to  repent  and  turn  to  God 
by  Christ.    **  As  I  live,  saith  the  Lord,  I  have  no  pleasure 
in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  that  the  wicked  turn  from 
bis  way  and  live ;  turn  ye,  turn  ye  from  your  evil  ways ;  for 
why  will  ye  die,  O  house  of  Israel  °*."    "  But  if  the  wicked 
diidl  turn  from  all  his  sins  that  he  hath  committed,  and 
k^p  all  my  statutes,  and  do  that  which  is  lawful  and  right, 
he  shall  surely  live ;  he  shall  not  die.    Have  I  any  pleasure 
at  all  that  the  wicked  should  die,  saith  the  Lord  God;  and 
not  that  he  should  turn  from  his  ways  and  live?  Repent  and 
turn  yourselves  from  all  your  transgressions,  so  iniquity 
shall  not  be  your  ruin.    Cast  away  from  you  all  your  trans- 
gressions, whereby  you  have  transgressed,  and  make  you  a 
new  heart,  and  a  new  spirit ;  for  why  will  ye  die,  O  house 
of  Israel?    For  I  have  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  him  that 
dieth,  saith  the  Lord  God ;  wherefore  turn  yourselves  and 

<  Lake  six.  10.  _  kTit.w.  14.  »Psal.  xix.7. 

"■Ezek.  xxxiii.  11. 


126  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION^ 

live  ye«."  So  Ezek.  xiv.  6.  iii.  18^21.  Jsa.  xx».  6  Ipc.  80, 
21.  Jer.iii.7,  14.  xviii.  8.  xxyi.  3.  Prov.  i.  23.  "Turn 
ye  at  my  .reproofs,  aud  I  will  pour  out  my  Spirit  unto  yoii/ 
Hos.y.  4.  xii.  6.  Joel  ii.  12.  "  Tura  ye  tp  me  with  aUyonr 
hearts,  with  fasting,  and  weeping,  and  moumiug;  repd  y<H|r 
hearts,  and  not  your  garments,  and  turn  to  the  I^ord  yofur 
God ;  Jonah  iii.  8.  An  hundred  such  places,  might  be  brougbt 
in  which  it  is  apparent,  that  the  turning  of  sinA^rs  to  God, 
is  the  main  scope  of  the  holy  Scriptures. 

3.  It  is  as  certain,  that  it  is  the  very  business  that  tbe 
ministers  of  the  gospel  are  appointed  to,  to  convert  menjo 
God  by  the  faith  of  Jesus  Christ.  And  is  it  likely  .tliAt£tod 
would  send  us  to  trouble  the  world  with  fi  needless  wQil:,? 
For  my  part,  if  I  did  not  know  that  rep^^ntance  finfd  cQiuFiii> 
sion  are  absolutely  necessary  to  the  glory  of 'God's  gifipe 
and  saving  of  the  sinner,  I  should  be  loath  to  trpuble  my- 
self and  others  so  much  about  such  matters  (^  1  4o.  Wbo 
could  find  in  his  heart  to  study,  and  preach,  and  Wj^ry  Jl^m- 
self,  and  vex  the  world,  and  call  men  to  such  unw.^l^DVe 
duties,  and  preach  to  them  such  unpleasant  truths,  and  sfft 
them  upon  works  that  are  so  hard  to  flesh  and  blood,>90d 
put  them  upon  so  many  sufferings  in  the  wprld,  if  Allithis 
were  for  a  needless  thing?  John  Baptist  began  to  pi^each 
repentance  ;  Christ  followed  him  in  preaching  repentwce, 
and  tells  them,  *'  except  they  repent,  they  shall  all  perish  ^'' 
The  apostles  follow  him  in  preaching  the  same  repentance, 
as  that  without  which  there  is  no  salvation  p.  They  tell  us, 
*'  God  commandeth  all  men  everywhere  to  repent**." .Paul's 
business  was,  "  to  shew  all  men  that  they  m^ust  reipent  sftd 
turn  to  God,  and  do  wovks  meet  for  repentance  V  Aind'^t^ 
open  men's  eyes,  and  turn  them  from  darkness  to  light,  and 
the  power  of  satan  to  God,  that  they  may  receive  remissiai 
of  sins,  and  an  inheritance  among  the  sanctified  by  faith  in 
Christ'."  As  Christ  himself  came  to  *'  call  sinners  to  re- 
pentance S^'  so  doth  he  send  his  ministers  on  the  same  &' 
rand  ;  and  after  all  his  sufferings,  he  will  give  men  pardon 
on  no  other  terms.  But "  repentance  and  remission  of  sins  ^ 
must  be  preached  in  his  name  among  all  nations  "."     Mark 

»  Eflek.  xviu,  2S»  SO— 3«.  «  Luke  xiii.  3,  5.         P  Acts  ii.  SB.  viii. «. 

1  Acts  xvu.  30.  r  ^cts  xxvi.  20.  *  AcU  xxvi.  18. 

»  Matt.  ix.  13.  «  Luke  xxiv.  46, 47. 


TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION. 


127 


ihe  way  of  gospel^preaching  and  salyation :  "TSie  God  of 
our  fathers  raised  up  Jesus,  whom  ye  slew  andiianged  on  a 
•tree.     Hhn  hath  iGed  exalted  with  his  right  hand,  to  be  a 
Prince  anda  Saviour,  for  to  give  repentance  to  Israel,  andfor- 
'^▼eness  of  sittB**'    Repentance  in  order  before  forgiveness. 
When  men  turn  from  sin,  God  tumethfrom  his  punishing 
•wrath ;  but  not  before.     God  hath  **  granted  to  the  gentiles 
irepentaace  unto  life  ^''    The  sum  of  Paul's  doctrine  was, 
"  Repentance  toward  God,  and  feith  toward  our  Lord  Jesus 
"Christ  V    For  this  do  God's  ministers  ''instruct  in  meek- 
saess  tthem  that  oppose  themselves,  if  God  peradventure 
(fHU  '.give  them  repentance  to   the  acknowledging  of  the 
teudiy  SsbJL  iSk&y  may  recover  themselves  out  of  the  snare 
<df  die  devil, 'who  are  tak^i  captive  by  him  at  his  will*;" 
•Slid  2'-Pet.  iii.^9.  it  is  eaid,  that    ''  God  is  not  willing  that 
•«ny  «lu)uld  perish,  but  that  all  should  come  to  repent- 
i«Ace:;"^which  plainly  implieth,  &at  if  they  come  not  to  re- 
ip«ntailce,-tib[ey  iMmtt  parish  for  all  that*    And  therefore  re- 
-penlsEnice  is  one  of  the.  fundamentals,  and  preaching  repent- 
-MMeie  laying  the  foundation,  as  appeare th,  Heb.  vi.  1 .  And  he 
^ihaitis-fgrown  uncurable,  and  remediless  by  apostasy,  is  said 
to  be  one  that "  cannot  be  renewed  by  repentance  **.    Which 
wppesedi  diat  there  can  be  mo  other  way  of  renewing.  And 
udecpeeate-manie  one:  that  ''foideth  no  place  for  repent- 
mnee^"    And  tn  the  godly,  all  the  fruits  of  holiness  «re 
idade  the^'  fruits  of  repentance  ^J' 

4.  The  very  providence  of  God  in  mercy  and  affiction, 
ere  ipurposely  to  bring  sinners*  to  repentance.  And  there- 
fore *«i^Ettaialy,  **  Repentance  is  necesa«ry  to  salvations" 
"''Deepieestthou  tiieiiches  of  his  goodikess,  and  forbear- 
ance ^wid  loogHsufferiog*  not  knowing  that  the  goodness  of 
•God  ieadeth  thee  to  repentance  ?  But  after  thy  hardness 
and  impenitent  heart,  treasurest  up  to  thy  self  wrath  against 
Ihe  day  of  wrath,  and  revelation  of  the  righteous  jtidgment 
rfCJodV  If  conversion  were  not  necessary  to  salvation, 
Ctod  would  not  make  so  much  ado  by  affliction  and  mercy 
tobiini^usvtoit. 


«  Actsv.SO,  31. 
»2'Tim.ii.25,26. 
«»«Cor.yii.^— 11. 


T  Aets  xi.  18. 

•»  Heb.  vL  6. 

\ «  Rom.  ii.  4. 


z  Actszx.Sl. 
c  Heb.  xii.  17. 
fReF.ix.  20.  xvi.  9,11. 


128  TRfiATISB   OF   CONVERSIOK. 

m 

6.  God  makes  it  the  duty  eren  of  every  man  in  his 
place,  to  do  all  that  he  can  for  the  conversion  of  others: 
and  this  he  would  never  do,  if  there  were  another  way  to 
salvation.      **  They  that  -turn  many  to  righteousness  shall 
shine  as  the  stars  for  ever  and  ever  ^**    James  saith,  **  If  any 
of  you  do  err  from  the  truth,  and  one  convert  him,  let  him 
know,  that  he  that  converteth  a  sinner  from  the  error  of  his 
ways,  shall  save  a  soul  from  death,  and  cover  a  multitude  of 
sins  C'      And  David  promiseth,  if  God  would  pardon  and 
restore  him,  that  he  ^' will  teach  transgressors  his  way,  that 
sinners  may  be  converted  to  him  ^."      So  that,  lay  all  this 
now  together,  and  judge  whether  it  be  likely  that  God  would 
have  set  all  the  world  on  work  for  the  conversion  of  sinners, 
if  there  had  been  any  other  way  to  save  them.      Should 
Christ  himself  have  come  upon  this  errand  ?    Should  the 
word  of  God  be  written  to  this  end  ?     Should  all  the  pro- 
phets, apostles,  and  ministers  of  the  Gospel  be  sent  on  this 
message  ?    Should  all  mercies,  and  all  afflictions  be  directed 
to  this  use  ?     Should  it  be  made  the  duty  of  every  Chris- 
tian to  endeavour  it  ?    If  men  could  be  saved  without  conr 
version,  by  any  other  way  ?    Doubtless  the  case  is  plain,  it 
should  not  be. 

I  beseech  you  therefore,  let  this  be  received  by  you  as 
an  unquestionable  truth :  make  no  halt  or  doubt  in  die  bu- 
siness ;  shift  it  not  off  with  foolish  cavils ;  but  ground  it 
even  in  the  bottom  of  your  heart,  that  without  true  conver- 
sion, there  is  no  hope  of  salvation. 

You  have  aB  good  proof  of  it  as  you  can  desire  of  any 
truth  in  the  world.  Yea,  besides  all  that  I  have  said,  it 
is  a  thing  that  in  general  is  confessed  by  heathens,  and 
discerned  even  by  the  light  of  nature.  They  that  will 
not  believe  in  Christ,  will  confess  the  necessity  of  re- 
pentance and  reformation,  which  yet  cannot  be  wrought 
without  faith  in  Christ.  Though  I  know  there  is  a  great 
deal  more  necessary  to  this  work,  yet  I  should  think  I  had 
done  something  to-day,  if  you  would  but  all  go  home 
resolved  without  all  doubt  of  the  truth  of  my  text :  and 
would  never  more  think  that  there  is  any  other  way  to  sal- 
vation, besides  conversion.  For  certainly,  if  you  were 
once  well  resolved,  that  you  must  every  man  of  you  be  con- 

^  Dan.  xii.  3.  r  James  v.  19,  20.  >»  Paal.  li.  13. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  129 

yerted,  or  condemned^  you  would  look  a  little  better  about 
you  than  most  do.  At  least  this  would  destroy  your  de- 
ceiving hopes  and  presumption,  and  make  you  see  what  is. 
yet  to  be  done,  and  would  much  help  to  prepare  you  for  a 
further  work.  And  that  none  of  you  may  say  another  day, 
that  you  never  heard  or  knew  the  truth,  I  do  here  solemnly 
proclaim  it  to  you  all  in  the  name  of  Christ,  that  there  is  no 
hope  of  salvation  without  true  conversion.  And  I  have 
fully  proved  it  to  you  from  the  word  of  God..  So  that  if 
ever  a  man  or  woman  that  is  here  before  the  Lord  this  day, 
shall  yet  dare  to  live  in  an  unconverted  state,  you  are  left 
without  a  cloak  for  your  sin.  You  shall  not  be  able  to  tell 
the  Lord  at  judgment,  that  you  never  heard  or  knew  so  much. 
If  he  ask  any  of  you  at  that  day,  how  it  came  to  pass  that 
yo'a  turned  not  to  God,  nor  sought  after  converting  grace, 
and  how  you  could  ever  think  to  look  God  in  the  face  with- 
out conversion  ?  you  shall  not  be  able  to  say,  *  We  liVed 
under  a  minister  that  never  told  us  of  it ;  we  thought  we 
might  have  done  well  enough  without  it,  and  some  particu- 
lar repentance  might  have  served  the  turn.'  The  truth  hath 
shone  this  day  in  your  eyes :  you  have  heard  what  Christ 
saith,  and  what  his  apostles  say,  and  what  is  the  drift  of  all 
ihe'Scripture.  If  yet  you  will  believe  that  a  man  may  be 
saved  without  conversion,  it  is  your  wilful  obstinacy  and  un- 
belief that  maketh  you  think  it :  you  must  wink  hard,  and 
draw  the  curtains  of  carnal  security  about  "your  ears,  if  in 
the  midst  of  this  day-light  you  will  sleep  as  in  the  night  of 
former  darkness. 

Quest.  But  are  there  not  many  in  the  world  that  need  no 
conversion,  even  from  their  infancy  ?  Doth  not  God  rege- 
nerate men  by  baptism,  or  at  least  before,  which  baptism 
sealeth ;  or  at  least  by  Christian  education  in  their  infilncy  ? 
And  what  need  have  these  of  after  conversion  ? 

Jlnsw.  To  this  I  shall  answer  briefly,  but  plainly,  in 
these  propositions  following :  I.  No  doubt  but  God  doth 
pardon  original  sin  to  multitudes  of  infants  by  the  blood  of 
Christ,  through  the  covenant  of  gmce,  which  is  made  to 
the  faithful,  and  their  seed.  And  being  thus  pardoned,  they 
may  be  truly  said  to  be  new  creatures,  or  regenerate  rela- 
tively. And  this  pardon  bestowed  by  the  covenant,  is  seal- 
ed by  baptism,  which  solemnly  conferreth  it.     2.  It  is  most 

VOL.   VII.  K 


130  Tft£ATISB   OF  CONVERSION. 

probable  that  Ood  doth  ako  make  Bome  change  on  the 
hearts  of  infants,  secretly  giving  them  some  seed  of  inward 
gracQ  before,  or  in  their  baptism.  3*  It  is  certain^  that 
sometimes  before  their  death,  he  doth  give  this  Spirit  to 
elect  infants,  according  to  their  capacity,  and  thereby  fit 
them  for  glory.  I  mean  those  that  die  in  infancy.  4.  Holy 
education  of  par^ts  may  be  a.  means  through  God's  bless- 
ij^t  of  actiml  converting  those  that  were  before  but  semi- 
nally  changed,  yea,  and  of  those  that  were  not.  And  if  pa- 
rents did  their  duty  first  in  a  believing  dedication  of  their 
children  to  God  by  baptism,  and  then  in  a  careful  bringing 
tiiem  up  in  his  fear ;  it  is  most  certain,  that  this  would  be 
the  most  ordinary  age  and  season  of  regeneration  and  sane- 
tification  to  life.  For  God  would  not  be  wanting  to  his 
own  ordinsdices  used  in  faith  by  his  own  people.  He  did 
not  appoint  them  in  vain,  neither  ha,th  he  given  them^  pre- 
cept without  a  promise.  5.  If  any  one  did  receive  the  seed 
of  true  graice  in  their  infancy,  it  will  certainly  appear  im  a 
holy  life,  even  from  their  infaxLcy  upwards.  And  therefor^ 
there  is  the  same  work  dooae  in  the  hearts  of  su/ch  as  w^^ 
conyerted  in  in&ncy,  and  after  were  brought  up  vx  the  fesj 
of  Qod*  as  I  have  before  described  to  you  in  the  truly  con- 
verted. If  any  man  did  but  live  one  year,  or  month,  or 
week  of  his  childhood  after  he  had  *  the  use  of  reason^i  vfk,  a 
state  utterly  graceless,  that  man  hath  no  reason  to  take  the 
least  comfort  now  to  himself,  upon  any  conceit  that  he  was 
regenejrate  in  his  infancy.  If  he  have  from  his  childhood 
unfeignedly  loved  God  above  all,  and  been  heavenlymwdr 
ed,  and  hated  sin,  and  delighted  in  aU  hoUnesa,  and  feared 
Oodf  and  repent^  of  all  known  sin,  and  laboured  to  subdue 
it,  and  had  the  rest  of  the  marks  of  grace  in  his  heartj,  then 
he  may  be  sure  that  he  was  sanctified  betime.  But  if  any 
man  have  lived  to  the  world  or  the  flesh  but  one  month^ 
since  his  infant  state,  never  minding  the  life  to  come,  nor 
loving  the  holy  ways  of  God,  nor  hating  iniquity,  he  may 
be  sure  that  he  must  have  another  conversion,  than  any  he 
had  in  his  infancy,  or  it  will  not  serve  his  turn  for  heaven. 
An  infant-conversion  may  serve  for  an  infant  state  of  salva*- 
tion ;  but  he  that  hath  after  that  lived  to  sin,  must  have  an 
actual  conversion,  as  he  was  actually  a  sinner.  And  if  he 
had  grace  in  infancy,  he  must  have  the  same  working  of  it 


TRSATISE   OF   CONVERSION*.  131 

toward  God  and  heaven^  which  in  the  work  of  conversion  I 
descrabed  before.  So  that  I  do  not  call  you  to  judge  of 
your  Btate  by  the  time  or  manner  of  your  change^  so  much 
as  by  the  matter  or  thing  itself.  Find  all  that  work  upon, 
youjr  judgments,  heart,  and  life,  which  I  have  before  laid 
down,  and  be  sure  it  is  there,  and  then,  whensoever  you 
came  by  it,  you  are  happy.  But  if  it  be  not  now  there,  it  is 
a  silly  delusion,  to  glory  in  the  conceits  of  an  infant-bap- 
tismal change.  Yet  I  doubt  not  but  there  is  many  a  true 
ChristiajQi,  who  hath  received  this  grace  so  early,  that  they 
have  the  greater  cause  to  be  for  ever  thankful  for  it  to  God. 

So  much  for  the  confirmation  of  the  point.  That  cer- 
tainly this  work  of  conversion  is  necessary  to  all  that  will 
be  s&ved.  One  time  or  other  the  image  of  God  mu£(t  be 
imprinted  on  the  heart,  and  in  those  at  age  expressed  in 
the  life. 

IX.  I  aiu  next,  according  to  the  method  propounded,  to 
give  you  tlie  reasons  of  it.  Why  a  man  cannot  enter  into 
the  kingdom  of  heaven  except  he  be  converted.  The  case 
is  so  cleaJTf  that  we  may  easily  see  reason  for  it,  if  we  be 
willing  to  see. 

1*  If  there  were  no  other  reason  apparent  to  us  but  the 
wo^  of  God,  one  would  think  it  might  satisfy  such  as  we. 
HeaveA  is  his  own,  and  he  may  give  it  to  whom  he  will,  and 
he  hath  told  us  in  his  word,  that  he  will  give  it  to  no  other, 
amd  sl^puld  not  tha,t  suffice  us  ?  May  not  he  do  with  his 
owQL  as  he  list  ?  It  is  his  hand  that  must  set  on  the  crown ; 
and  may  not  he  set  it  on  what  head  he  please  ?  We  are 
sure  of  these  two  things  :  1.  That  God  hath  full  power  to 
dispose  of  it,  and  therefore  can  do  no  wrong  to  others  by 
denying  it.  2.  And  that  he  is  infinitely  wise,  and  good, 
and  just,  and  therefore  it  must  needs  be  the  wisest  and  best 
way  that  he  takes,  though  such  dark  sinners  as  we  could 
not  see  the  wisdom,  or  the  goodness,  or  justice  of  it.  Do 
you  grudge  at  this  doctrine,  that  none  shall  be  saved  but 
those  who  are  converted?  Why,  then  you  grudge  at  God. 
And  dp  you  think  indeed  that  he  knoweth  not  what  he 
doth  ?  Are  you  wiser  than  he  ?  or  are  you  more  righteous 
than  he  ?  What !  must  the  God  of  heaven  come  down  to 
you  to  learn  wisdom,  or  justice,  or  mercy?  Will  you  ques- 
tion him  at  the  bar  of  judgment,  and  ask  him  why  he  doth 


132  TR£ATI8£   OF   CONVERSION. 

SO?  Will  you  charge  him  with  injustice,  or  unmercifulness, 
and  say,  *  Lord,  why  art  thou  so  unmerciful  as  to  condemn 
all  the  unconverted  ?  O  poor  fools !  (for  so  I  dare  call  you 
that  dare  so  far  presume)  how  easily  will  God  answer  you, 
and  justify  his  wisdom,  his  justice,  and  his  mercy.  It  is  a 
fine  world,  when  the  Creator  must  be  judged  at  the  bar  of  a 
silly  creature !  What !  if  a  fly  or  a  flea  could  speak,  should 
it  expostulate  the  case  with  Ood,  that  he  made  him  not  a 
man  ?  or  should  a  toad,  or  a  snake,  reprove  him  of  injustice 
for  making  him  such,  that  never  had  sinned  ?  or  tell  him  that 
this  is  an  act  of  unmercifulness  ?  How  much  less  should  a 
wretched  sinner,  that  hath  done  so  much  wrong  to  the  Lord 
that  made  him,  that  hath  refused  his  grace  by  which  he 
would  have  saved  him,  presume  to  open  his  mouth  against 
God,  and  tell  him  after  all  this,  that  if  he  condemn  him,  he 
is  unmerciful.     But  more  of  this  anon. 

Sirs,  I  tell  you  my  religion,  and  my  resolution.  I  believe 
all  that  God  saith  to  be  true,  though  the  matter  were  never 
so  much  beyond  my  reach.  And  of  this  I  am  so  confident, 
that  I  will  venture  my  soul  upon  it.  I  have  looked  up  and 
down  to  see  if  there  be  any  better  and  surer  grounds  for  a 
wise  man  to  venture  his  happiness  upon,  and  I  can  find  no 
better :  nay,  I  am  sure  there  is  no  better.  If  any  man  have 
found  any  better,  let  him  take  it,  and  make  his  boast  of  the 
gain  when  he  bath  it.  For  my  part,  I  will. take  God's  word, 
and  I  will  trust  my  soul  and  hopes  on  this,  and  I  will  look 
for  satisfaction  of  all  my  doubts  and  scruples,  when  I  come 
to  possess  the  promised  felicity.  And  I  am  sure  I  can  lose 
nothing,  or  no  great  matter  by  this  resolution.  For  sure  I 
am  that  all  other  happiness  is  a  shadow  and  delusion :  and 
all  other  foundations  are  sandy,  and  will  deceive.  If  God 
tell  me  in  his  word,  that  "  no  man  shall  be  saved  except  he 
be  converted,"  I  will  take  his  word,  and  let  them  look  well 
to  their  standing  that  do  refuse  it.  I  will  set  this  word  of 
God  against  all  the  reasons  in  the  world  that  you  can  bring. 
Well,  you  say  it  is  a  hard  saying,  that  so  few  should  be 
saved  :  will  you  say  you  cannot  believe  that  God  will  deal 
so  hardly?  Against  all  these  vain  cavils  I  set  the  word  of 
God.     God  hath  said  it,  and  will  he  not  do  it  ? 

^  2.  Well,  but  if  we  must  needs  go  farther  to  reasoning 
the  case  with  you,  and  God's  word  will  not  satisfy  you,  I 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  133 

• 

will  proceed  to  shew  you  some  nearer  reasons  from  the  na- 
ture of  the  thing.  And  the  first  of  these  reasons  shall  be 
from  the  nature  of  God's  government,  and  the  state  of  men 
in  this  present  life.  We  are  set  here  as  in  the  way  to  a  fur-» 
ther  end.  God  never  intended  that  this  should  be  our  home, 
nor  that  we  should  have  the  victory  without  a  combat,  nor 
the  crown  without  the  victory.  God  never  meant  that  we 
should  have  the  wages  of  his  glory,  how  free  soever,  without 
a  faithful  performing  of  our  work ;  at  least  the  work  of  un- 
feigned repentance  and  conversion.  Would  you  have  God 
reward  men  for  serving  the  devil  ?  Or  to  laay  at  the  last  day, 
*  Come,  sinner,  thou  hast  lived  to  the  devil  all  thy  life,  and 
set  thy  heart  on  the  world,  and  abused  or  despised  me  and 
my  grace,  enter  now  into  the  promised  glory.'  Why,  sinners, 
if  self-lpve  did  not  blind  you,  and  make  fools  of  you,  you 
could  tell  that  this  were  a  sentence  unfit  for  the  most  wise 
and  righteous  God.  What !  must  he  reward  the  devil's  ser- 
vants ?  Shall  not  the  Judge  of  all  the  world  do  righteously  *  ? 
And  what  is  righteousness,  but  to  give  every  man  his  due? 
And  is  hot  punishment  naturally  due  to  the  disobedient  ? 
Especially  when  they  have  refused,  or  set  light  by  a  pardo];i. 
Sirs,  the  case  is  plain.  A  wise  and  righteous  governor,  let 
him  be  never  so  merciful,  must  make  a  difference  between  the 
righteous  and  the  wicked.  And  therefore  God  will  so  do. 
**  A  righteous  judge  must  pass  sentence  according  to  the 
law^."  Tell  me,  would  you  think  well  of  that  governor, 
that  should  let  xnen  rob  you,  or  beat  you,  or  violently  take 
possession  of  your  house  or  land,  and  never  punish  him? 
And  will  you  think  that  God  will  put  up  infinitely  greater 
injury  at  your  hands  ?  Would  you  like  such  a  law,  that 
shall  bid  all  men  steal,  and  kill,  and  spare  not,  for  the  judge 
will  not  be  so  cruel  as  to  hang  or  punish  them?  I  think  you 
would  say,  this  were  but  a  foolish  and  unmerciful  judge» 
that  pretended  thus  to  be  merciful.  Do  not  then  for  shame 
impute  this  folly  and  unrighteousness  to  God.  If  he  should 
not  have  made  righteous  laws,  which  threaten  punishment 
to  sin,  for  the  restraining  of  it,  how  should  the  world  be 
governed  ?  And  if  he  should  make  laws,  and  never  execute 
them,  how  should  he  be  wise  and  righteous  ?  He  is  not  so 
weak  as  to  be  put  to  govern  the  world  by  mere  deceit.     It 

*  Gen.  xviii.  25.  \  Mai.  iu.  18. 


134  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

belongeth  to  a  righteous  governor,  to  see  that  it  go  well 
with  the  good,  and  ill  with  the  bad ;  '  ut  bonis  bene  sit,  et 
malis  male/  And  I  think  if  God  should  deal  so  well  with 
the  worst  as  with  the  best,  your  own  reason  would  be  ready 
to  question  it.  Why,  what  can  he  do  more  to  the  best,  than 
to  save  them  in  his  glory,  for  what  more  are  they  capable 
6f?  And  should  he  do  this  also  to  the  worst?  And  sure, 
if  he  must  shut  them  out  of  glory,  they  must  need  be  in 
misery.  For  if  there  were  no  more,  but  to  look  towards  the 
happiness  which  they  so  lost,  and  see  Lazarus  in  Abraham's 
bosom,  and  the  righteous  whom  they  derided,  possessing 
that  glory  which  they  set  light  by,  it  must  needs  fill  their 
minds  with  anguish  and  vexation ;  and  their  own  consci- 
ences would  torment  them  for  ever.  Well,  you  see  then 
some  reason  why  the  unconverted  should  not  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  heaven. 

3.  But  further  consider  this.  The  holy  nature  of  God  will 
not  permit  the  unclean  and  unholy  soul  in  his  presence. 
y  There  shall  in  no  wise  enter  into  it  any  thing  that  defileth, 
or  whatsoever  worketh  abomination  ^"  "  Thou  art  of  purer 
eyes  than  to  behold  evil,  and  cahst  not  look  on  iniquity  V 
"  For  thou  art  not  a  God  that  hath  pleasure  in  wickedness, 
neither  shall  evil  dwell  with  thee.  The  foolish  shall  not 
stand  in  thy  sight,  thou  hatest  all  the  workers  of  iniquity. 
The  righteous  Lord  loveth  righteousness ;  but  the  wicked  his 
soiil  hateth  ^"  "  Therefore  the  ungodly  shall  not  stand  in 
judgment,  nor  sinners  in  the  congregation  of  the  righte- 
ous®." "  For  God  shall  judge  the  world  in  righteousness, 
and  minister  judgment  to  the  people  in  uprightness.  And 
fae  is  known  by  the  judgment  which  he  executeth,  wben  the 
wicked  is  snared  in  the  work  of  his  own  hand.  So  that  the 
wicked  shall  be  turned  into  hell,  and  all  the  nations  that  for- 
get God  1*.'  ^What  reason  would  you  have  more  ?  There  is 
a  contradiction  between  the  natute  of  God  and  the  uncon-  ' 
verted.  "  What  fellowship  hath  righteousness  with  unrigh- 
teousness, and  what  communion  hath  light  with  dark- 
ness "i?"  Therefore  it  is  that  God  also  putteth  an  "  enmity 
'  between  the  seed  of  the  woman,  and  of  the  serpent  '.*'*   And 

>  Rev.  xxi.  27.  "Hab.  i.lS.  »  Psal.  ▼.  4.    rL5. 

•  Psal.  L  5.  P  Psal.  ix.  8. 16,  17.  ^  2  C«r.  vi.  14. 

^  Gen.  Hi.  15. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  1S5 

V 

callelli  hU  eonTeited  people  to  come  out  from  the  impeni- 
tent unbeKeving  world ;  not  by  a  schismatical,  but  by  a 
godly  separation.  '*  For  what  concord  hath  Christ  with 
Belial  ?  or  what  part  hath  he  that  believeth  with  an  infidel  f 
And  what  agreement  hath  the  temple  of  God  with  idols  1 
For  ye  are  the  temple  of  the  liying  God ;  as  God  hath  said,  I 
will  dwell  in  them,  and  walk  in  them  ;  and  I  will  be  their 
God,  and  they  shall  be  my  people.  Wherefore  come  out 
from  among  them,  and  be  ye  separate,  saith  the  Lord ;  and 
touch  not  the  uncleto  thing ;  and  he  will  receive  you,  and 
be  a  father  to  you  ^,**  If  God  himself  could  endure  com* 
munion  with  the  unholy,  then  he  would  allow  his  people  to 
endmre  it.  But  because  they  are  his,  and  must  be  like  him, 
(iierefore  must  they  withdraw  from  such.  Sinners,  I  pray 
you  judge  as  you  would  be  judged  of.  Would  you  hare 
communion  yourselves  with  that  which  is  against  your  na- 
ture ?  Would  you  be  tied  to  feed  upon  toads  or  snakes,  or 
to  p«rt  them  in  your  bosom,  or  lay  diem  in  bed  with  you  ? 
or  if  a  toad  could  speak,  would  it  be  a  reasonable  argument 
to  say.  Why  art  thou  so  unmerciful  as  to  reftise  my  company 
or  thus  to  abhor  me,  and  cast  me  away  ?  Why,  the  h(^y 
nature  of  God  is  infinitely  more  against  unholy  sinners,  a« 
such,  than  your  nature  is  s^inst  t^e  mo<st  venomous  toad. 
And  therefore  he  cannot  admit  the  unconrerted  into  his 
kingdom.  Therefore  it  is,  that  he  will  redeem  and  simotiiy 
them,  and  cleanse  them  from  their  sin,  that  tiiey  may  be  pre- 
sented spodess  and  unblsmiable  to  him  by  Chiist,  before 
they  shall  come  to  glory  ^  Believe  it,  sinners,  light  and 
daricness,  holiness  and  unholiness,  God  and  ^in,  are  utterly 
unreconcilable.  If  ever  God  and  you  must  live  together  in 
glory,  you  must  become  holy  as  he  is  holy,  that  you  may 
be  such  as  he  can  dwell  withal,  and  delight  in.  Either  he 
must  turn  unholy  like  you,  or  you  must  turn  holy  like  him. 
.And  which  do  you  think  is  the  more  likely  to  be  done? 
Can  yott  expect  that  the  Sun  of  righteousness  should  turn 
dark  to  comply  with  your  darkness  ?  or  that  the  immutable 
God  should  lay  by  his  excellency, 'to  suit  himself  with  your 
vileness  ?  Why,  this  were  for  God  to  cease  to  be  God.  For 
to  be  an  unholy  God,  is  to  be  an  evil  God,  and  this  is  to  be 
no  Gk>d.    For  to  be  God,  is  to  be  the  chiefest  good.    See 

•  «  Cor.  vi.  14—16.  *  Ephes.  ▼.  «6,  «7. 


136  TREATISE   OF   C01NVERS10N. 

then  what  a  fair  issue  the  carnal  reasonings,  and  confident 
hopes  of  wicked  men  have.    They  hope  to  be  saved  without 
conversion  and  holiness.    And  the  issue  is  this,  they  hope 
that  God  will  cease  to  be  God«  lest  they  should  be  damned 
imd  shut  out  of  his  kingdom.    Do  not  say  I  make  worse  of 
your  reasoning  than  it  is.    The  case  is  plain,  it  is  no  better. 
And  I  appeal  to  thy  own  conscience,  whether  the  brains  of 
a  man  be  capable  of  greater  liiadness.    O  sirs,  what  a  be- 
fooling thing  is  sin  !     Is  it  not  more  reasonable  that  thou 
jshouldst  cease  to  be  ungodly,  than  that  God  should  cease 
his  blessed  nature  ?    There  is  some  possibility  yet  that  thou 
mayst  cease  to  be  a  wilful  impenitent  sinner.     But  thece  is 
^o  possibility  that  God  should  cease  to  be  God.    Woe  to 
ihee,  if  thou  cast  thy  soul  upon  such  hopes.    Should  God 
cease  his  goodness  and  blessed  perfection,  all  the.  world 
•would  be  confounded,  or  turn  to  nothing.    Turn,  therefore, 
for  be  sure  of  it,  he  will  not  turn  to  thee.     He  hath.com- 
jnmnded  his  servants,  that  they  come  iiot  one  jot  nearer  the 
wicked.    '*  Let  them  return  to  thee,  but  return  not  thou  to 
them  ".''    And  will  he  then  do  that  which  he  forbiddethhis 
servants  ?    Many  a  sinner  hath  thought  that  God  is  like 
;himself,  even  of  his  mind,  and  thought  as  lightly,  of  sin  as 
.they,  Psal.  h    But  they  never  found  it  so  in  the  end.     He 
did,  by  wonderful  incomprehensible  condescension,  become 
man  to  save  sinners,  but  he  will  never  become  a  sinner  to 
save  sinners;  nor  unholy  to  save  the  unholy.    He  took  our 
•flesh,  and  he  took  our  curse,  and  in  that  sense  became  sin 
for  us,  who  knew  no  sin ;  but  be  will  never  take  to  him  sin 
itself.    He  is  yet  reconcilable  to  sinners,  but  he  jnrill  never 
:be  reconcilable  to  sin.     Yet,  if  thou  wilt  turn  to  hiin,  thou 
mayst  be  welcome  ;    but  never  look  he  should  turn  like 
thee! 

4.  And  do  you  not  yet  see  reason  enough,  why  no  uncon- 
verted sinner  should  be  saved  ?  Why  come  along  with  me, 
and  I  will  shew  you  yet  more.  God  offered  them  salvation  in 
this  life,  for  the  very  taking.  I  may  well  say  upon  easy  and 
reasonable  terms,  when  it  was  no  more  but  accept  it,  and 
have  it ;  and  they  would  not.  It  was  propounded  to  their 
choice,  and  they  refused  it.  They  might  have  had  Christ, 
-and  pardon,  and  holiness,  and  happiness  if  they,  would,  and 

■  Jcr.  XV.  19. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  137 

they  would  not :  and  would  you  have  God  to  save  them, 
whether  they  will  or  no?     He  set  life  and  death  before 
them,  and  bids  them  choose  life,  that  they  might  live'. 
He  set. before  them  blessing  and  cursing,  and  denounced  to 
jkhem,  that  they  should  certainly  perish  if  their  hearts  turned 
away,  and  they  would  not  hear.    He  called  heaven  and 
jearUi  to  record  against  them  ^ :  and  he  sent  his  Son,  his 
apostles  to  them,  to  entreat  them,  and  in  his  name  to  be- 
seech them  to  turn  to  him,  and  to  be  reconciled ';  he  charg- 
ed us  to  be  **  instant  with  them,  in  season,  and  out  of  sea- 
son *;'*  and  "  to  reprove,  rebuke,  exhort  with  all  long-suffer- 
ing and  doctrine ;"  as  suitors  that  would  take  no  nay.    He 
bids  us  even  '*  compel  them  to  come  in  ^;"  and  yet  they 
would  not  come,  we  could  not  prevail.    Some  would  make 
excuses  from  one  thing,  and  some  from  another :  some  had 
their  farms,  and  some  their  trades,  and  some  their  wives, 
and  all  their  sins  to  regard  ;  they  could  not  have  while  to 
be  converted  and  fear  God  :  and  some  set  light  by  us  and 
par  message^ :  and  some  did  openly  oppose  it,  and  contra- 
dicting the  truth  and  cavilling  at  it,  as  if  they  were  wiser 
than  to  be  converted  and  saved ;  as  if  they  had  more  reason 
than  to  come  in  to  Gpd  that  called  them,  and  accept  of  his 
.salvatioa ;  and  therefore  even  scorned  the  Holy  word  and 
way  of  God,  that  should  have  saved  them.    Sirs,  to  our 
.heart's  grief  we  must  witness  it  against  the  face  of  thousands 
of  our  poor  hearers,  that  this  was  the  true  case,  and  thus 
things  .were  carried  between  God  and  them  :  Christ  called  out 
to  them  when  he  was  on  earth,  even  with  tears,  and  bids  us 
do  the  like  with  tears  now  in  his  stead.    ''  Oh,  that  thou 
hadst  known  at  least  in  this  thy  day,  the  things  that  belong 
to  thy  peac<e !"  .but  they  would  not,  till  they  were  hid  from 
.their  eyes,  and  it  was  top  late  **.    "  How  often  would  I 
have  gathered  thee,  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under 
her  wings,  and  ye  would  not^.''     Sinners,  I  beseech  you, 
let  not  sin  and  flesh  befool  you,  to  make  you  fly  in  the  face 
of  God,  instead  of  returning  to  him  at  his  c^ll.    Can  you 
.    think  that  God  is  unjust  or  unmerciful,  that  would  have 
given  you  heaven,  and  you  would  not  accept  of  it  ?     If  he 

«  Dent.  XXX.  19.  y  Deat.  xxx.  17—19.  »  «  Cor.  v.  20. 

»  2  Tim.  iv.  9.  ^  Matt.  xxii.  9.    Luke  xiv.  93. 

«  Matt.  xxii.  V.  ^  Luke  xlx.  41,  49.  «  Matt,  xxiii.  37. 


138  TREATISE  OF  CONYERSipN. 

deny  you  that  everlastingly,  which  you  would  not  aicoeptof, 
can  you  blame  him  or   yourselves  ?    I  know  what  some 
hearts  will  be  ready  to  imagine :  you  will  say,  '  I  was  wit 
ling  to  be  saved,  and  therefore  this  is  nothing  to  me/    Bit 
were  you  willing  to  take  salvation  as  it  was  offered  ?     If  not» 
you  may  as  well  say  plainly,  you  will  have  none  of  it ;  tix 
you  shall  have  none  of  it  upon  any  other  terms.    You  wooUl 
have  had  mercy  by  the  halves  and  not  in  whole.    You  would 
have  picked  out  that  part  of  salvation,  which  pleased  you, 
and  left  the  rest.    God  would  have  saved  you  from  the 
guilt  and  power  of  sin,  from  hell,  and  from  imholiness  i  and 
you  would  have  but  one  of  these,  without  the  other :  or 
would  have  been  saved  from  hell  and  all  other  punishments; 
but  you  would  not  be  sanctified  and  brought  near  to  God, 
and  taken  off  from  this  world,  and  set  your  hearts  on  lbs 
world  to  come :  and  you  knew,  or  might  know,  that  'Ood  ' 
would  not  halve  and  part  his  salvation :  you  shall!  ^la^e  all, 
or  you  shall  have  none.    If  you  will  keep  sin,  you  sihall 
keep  the  curse  with  it :  if  you  will  keep  the  serpent,  ^oa 
shall  have  the  sting  and  venom  with  it.    If  you  will  not 
take  Christ  for  your  master,  as  well  as  your  Saviour,  taLod  be   i 
ruled  by  him,  when  his  yoke  is  so  easy,  and  his  buffden  so 
light,  never  look  to  find  rest  to  your  souls  ^     If  yoawiH 
not  be  converted,  you  may  as  well  speak  out,  and  say  plain- 
ly you  will  not  be  saved :  for  it  is  all  one.     He  that  saith, 
he  will  not  eat  and  drink,  may  as  well  say  he  will  not  live : 
aild  he  that  will  not  take  the  physic,  may  as  well  say,  he 
will  not  be  cured.    Sirs,  if  Christ,  and  grace,  and  glory 
had  never  been  offered  to  you,  nor  you  had  any  means  to 
have  brought  you  to  the  knowledge  of  him,  then  you  lidl 
had  some  excuse.    As  Christ  saith,  John  xv.  22.    '^  If  I  iMid 
not  come  and  spoken  to  them,  they  had  not  had  sin,  bsi 
now  they  have  no  cloak  for  their  sin."    If  we  had  not  in 
Christ's  name  entreated  you  to  return,  and  offered  you  sd- 
vation>  you  had  some  excuse.    But  now,  what  can  you  rea- 
sonably say  ?     I  dare  challenge  the  reason  of  all  the  woiM» 
to  answer  this  one  reason,   by  which  God  will  prove^  ^that 
the  unconverted  should  be  condemned.    It  is  reason,  that 
he  that  would  not  have  heaven  upon  such  reasonable  terms 
as  Christ  did  tender  it  him,  should  for  ever  be  shut  out* 

f  Matt.  xi.  «7— S9. 


TREATISE   O^   CONVERSION.  139 

What  will  you  say  to  this,  when  God  shall  qaestion  tbee« 

and  say,  '  What  Sayst  thou,  sinner,  did  not  I  freely  offer 

ihee  my  grace  and  salvation?'    Do  you  believe  you  shall 

have  the  face  at  the  day  of  judgment,  to  tell  Christ  he  is  un- 

itiei:ciful  if  he  damn  you,  when  he  shall  tell  you,  that  he 

would  often  have  gathered  you  to  him,  as  a  hen  gathereth 

her  chickens  under  her  wings,  and  ye  would  not?    Will  not 

fliat  one  word  stop  thy  mouth  for  ever?    What  dost  thou 

complain  of,  man  ?    Is  it  for  want  of  mercy  ?    Why,  what 

tendereir  mercy  wouldst  thou  have  had ?    ''I  would  have 

gathered  thee  as  the  hen,  8cc/'    Sinners,  I  witness  to  you 

this  day,  that  God,  and  angels,  and  men  shall  judge  of  you^ 

that  if  you  be  thrust  into  hell,  it  is  because  you  would  not 

be  saved ;  and  it  is  not  because  God  was  cruel  to  you,  but 

because  you  were  cruel  and  unmerciful  to  yourselves.    I 

tell  you  tibis  will  prove  true  at  the  last. 

5.  If  all  these  reasons  do  not  satisfy  you,  I  will  shew  you 
more,  and  such  as  methinks  should  satisfy  any  man  on 
eaith,  that  the  unconverted  cannot  be  saved.  Even  because 
it  is  an  impossible  thing.  It  is  a  flat  contradiction.  Why, 
conversion  is  part  of  salvation  here,  and  the  perfection  of  it 
is  an  higher  part  hereafter*  Why,  sirs,  sin  is  the  soul's 
sickness,  and  wound,  and  death ;  and  grace  andholinessisits 
health  and  life  :  and  were  not  that  man  a  fool,  that  expeoteth 
you  should  make  him  well,  and  not  remove  his  sickness? 
And  cure  his  wounds,  and  never  heal  or  close  them  ?  Or 
make  a  dead  man  alive,  and  yet  let  him  be  dead  still  ?  Why, 
it  is  as  great  a  contradiction  and  impossibility  for  a  man  to 
be  sav^d  and  not  converted.  What  is  it  that  we  must  be 
laved  from,  but  sin  and  hell?  And  there  is  no  saving  from 
tell  hut  by  saving  from  sin.  ''He  shall  save  his  people 
from  their  sins  ^."  Do  you  know  what  the  salvation  is  that 
Ood  hath  promised  us  in  glory?  Why  it  is  this :  that  we 
should  be  perfectly  freed  from  sdl  sin,  and  have  the  image  of 
his  holiness  perfected  on  our  souls :  that  we  shall  be  per- 
fectly in  love  with  God,  and  perfectly  beloved  of  him,  and 
live  in  the  sight  of  his  majesty,  and  fill  ourselves  with  the 
view  of  his  pleased  face,  and  breathe  out  his  praise  with  the 
heavenly  host  for  ever.  Doth  such  a  heaven  as  this  is  like 
you  ?^  or  doth  it  not  ?    If  it  do  not,  you  must  have  none ;  for 

i>  Matt.  i.  91. 


140  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

there  is  no  otheo  except  you  will  call  an  alehouse  or  an 
whorehouse,  or  other  sensual  pleasures  your  heaven.  Bat 
if  you  will  have  this  heaven  which  God  doth  offer  you,  yon 
may  easily  see  that  it  cannot  be  had  without  conversion. 
Can  you  be  saved  from  sin,  and  yet  keep  it?  Can  you  be 
perfectejd  in  holiness,  and  yet  be  unholy  ?  Can  you  live  in 
the  everlasting  love  of  God,  and  have  no  true  love  to  him  at 
all?  Can  you  delight  in  him,  and  yet  have  no  delight  in 
him,  but  be  weary  of  him,  and  deligbt  in  your  worldly  vani; 
ties  more  ?  Well,  sinners !  I  think  I  need  to  say  no  more. 
The  contradiction  is  so  evident,  that  you  may  as  well  say; 
'  I  will  be  saved,  and  I  will  not,'  as  to  say, '  I  will  be  saved) 
but  not  converted.' 

But  perhaps  some  vain  caviller  will  say,  '  It  is  true»  we 
cannot  be  glorified  without  conversion  and  holiness^  bnt 
God  might  have  given  us  that  in  another  world,  though  he 
change  us  not  here.' 

Ansm.  But  do  you  not  know,  that  this  life  is  the  appoinl- 
ed  time  of  working,  and  running,  and  fighting  for  the  crown? 
The  life  to  come  is  the  time  of  reward,  and  of  your  receiving 
the  prize  that  here,  you  run  for.  Would  you  have  Godhdp 
you  in  your  race,  when  you  are  past  it,  and  your  time  if 
gipne  ?  Or  contrary  to  wisdom  and  governing  justice,  to 
confound  the  way  and  the  end,  this  life  and  that  to  come? 
You  may  with  far  more  wisdom  expect,  that  when  you  haye 
loitered  till  the  sun  be  set,  God  should  call  it  back  again, 
at  your  desire,  that  you  may  have  daylight  to  work  by.  He 
gave  thee  time,  and  gave  thee  warning  to  use  it  while  thon 
hadst  it ;  and  told  thee,  "  this  was  the  accepted  time,  this 
was  the  day  of  salvation'."  And  to  trifle  out  this  time,  and 
then  to  think  that  God  should  give  thee  both  grace  anid  A 
glory  in  that  life,  where  he  hath  resolved  only  to  perfect  '\ 
grace  in  glory,  and  crown  those  that  have  overcome  on  - 
earth.  This  is  such  folly  in  so  great  a  business,  as  I  desife  J 
no  friend  of  mine  may  be  guilty  of. 

Object.  '  But  it  is  our  ignorance  of  God  that  maketh  ns   ^ 
unholy ;  and  therefore  when  death  hath  opened  our  eyes, 
as  we  shall  know  him  better,  so  we  shall  the  more  love  hip    ; 
according  to  that  knowledge ;  and  so  we  shall  be  sanctified^  i 

*  2  Cor.  vi. !».  *  •     JJ 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  141 

And  God  cannot  but  love  those  that  love  him;  and  there- 
fore they  will  be  saved. 

Answ,  It  is  not  all  knowledge  of  God,  that  will  cause  a 
love  to  him.    If  you  know  him  as  excellent,  and  yet  as  your 
enemy^  and  one  that  standeth  resolved  everlastingly  to  pu- 
nish you,  this  will  provoke  no  love  to  him,  but  hatred.    The 
d^nity  and  worth  of  an  enemy  may  be  some  matter  of  ad- 
miration to  us,  and  of  reverence,  but  not  of  such  love  as  may 
tend  to  fruition.     It  is  inseparable  from  your  natures  to  love 
yourselves ;  and  therefore  you  will  love  that  which  you 
think  is  for  your  good,  and  hate  that  which  you  think  is 
against  you,  and  tends  to  your  destruction.    You  will  then 
find  that  your  damnation  was  part  of  God's  righteous  go- 
vernment of  the  world':  and  that  the  whole  work  of  govern- 
ment, W3S  one  inseparable  frame,  begun  by  legislation,  and 
finished  by  judgment  and  execution :  and  that  God  will  no 
more  break  the  frame  of  government,  than  he  will  the  frame 
of  nature :  nor  so  much.     For  that  he  may  do  when  he 
please^  though  he  will  do  it  rarely,  but  this  his  own  perfec- 
tion is  against.    So  that  when  you  see  God,  as  it  were 
obliged  everlastingly  to  destroy  you,  you  cannot  close  in 
love  with  him,  as  your  friend  or  chiefest  good,  as  those  do 
that  enjoy  him  in  the  promised  glory. 


CHAPTER  III. 


v.  Having  thus  cleared  the  way,  by  shewing  you  the 
ineaning,  and  the  truth  of  the  point  in  hand,  I  shall  next 
come  to  the  application  of  it  to  ourselves. 

Use  I.  And  first,  by  way  of  inference  you  see  from  hence, 
that  there  is  a  kingdom  of  heaven  to  be  obtained.  It  were  in 
Tain  to  talk  who  shall  come  thither,  and  who  shall  not,  if  there 
were  no  such  thing  to  be  had.  Doubt  not  Christian,  thou  hast 
fhe  word  of  the  God  of  heaven  for  it.  Challenge  the  tempter, 
if  he  would  draw  thee  to  doubting,  to  prove  that  ever  the  God 
of  this  word  deceived  any.  If  he  would  tempt  thee  to 
question,  whether  it  be  his  word  or  not ;  shew  him  upon  it 
Us  image  and  superscription,  with  the  seal  of  his  manifold 
uucontroled  miracles.     And  ask  him  what  better  evidence 


142  TREATISE    OF    CONVEU&ION. 

mortals  can  expect,  unless  they  would  have  God,  who  can- 
not be  seen,  to  walk  among  them,  and  speak  to  every  parti- 
cular man.    Oh !  that  thou  wouldst  be  true  to  God  andtlqf- 
self,  and  then  thou  shalt  find  God  will  be  true  to  thee.    A| 
sure  as  there  is  an  earth  for  thee  to  tread  on,  and  as  sure  a% 
there  is  a  sun  whose  'light  thou  seest;  so  sure  is  thete  n^ 
heavenly  everlasting  glory,  for  every  converted,  perseverioi 
souL    There  can  be  no  better  ground  pf  assurance  than  tbe. 
word  of  God.    I  know,  that  man,  whilst  he  is  in  this  fleshy 
is  strange  to  things  beyond  his  sense,  and  hath  a  natural  de- 
sire to  have  his  senses  themselves  to  be  the  inlets  of  hiii 
knowledge  ;  and  therefore  he  is  apt  to  think  that  either  bft 
is  uncertain  of  all  that  he  seeth  not,  (unless  he  hath  flueen  thif 
like  that  may  help  him  to  understand  it),  i  or  el^e  iift^.  )lk 
knowledge  of  it,  is  as  no  knowledge ;  but  this  is  a  weakoeii 
unworthy  of  a  man.    What  if  you  had  iiever  seep,  Ifituii^dig^ 
or  any  su^h  city^^  9^4  should  hear  the  glory  of  it  desoribe^, 
by  others ;  would  you  think  it  uncertain  that  there  is.^Q^  f^ 
place,  because  you  have  not  seen  it?      Na^,  further,  yfOjfi 
have  npt  seen  your  souls,  do  ypu  think  it  therefore  uncertei^ 
whether  you  have  a  soul  or  no  ?    A  man  that  is  born  bliii4 
did  never  see  the  sun,  and  yet  be  will  not  doubt  whethflll 
there  be  a  sun,  when  all  the  world  about  himtelleth  himjpa; 
and  shall  not  the  word  of  God  be  taken  as  soon  as  the  word 
of  a  man  ?     You  never  saw  God  himself,  and  yet  it  is  the 
grossest  error  in  the  world  to  think  that  there  is  no  God, 
when  we  see  every  hour  the  works  that  he  hath  made ;  and  k 
which  we  know  could  none  of  them  make  themselves :  yov  | 
see  that  which  assureth  you  of  the  things  tibat  are  unseeiit  jf 
You  see  the  word  of  God ;  you  see  his  workjs,  and  dfulf  i 
providences ;    you  see  a  divine  testimony,  the  sufficjeiu  i 
ground  of  your  belief.    Noah  did  not  see  ^e  flood,  wl^^  hi  '■- 
laboured  so  piai^y  years  in  making  the  ark..    But  thQugh^^  - 
unbelieving  world  might  deride  him  in  the  b^eginning,  at  ^  J 
last  the  flood  came  and  did  convince  them.    "  By  fia^tj^   . 
Noah  being  warned  of  God,  of  things  not  sfeen  as  yet,  mpy^  • 
with  fear,  prepared  an  ark,  to  the  saving  of  his  hou^e ;  by  ^ 
which  he  condemned  the  world,  and  became  heir  of  thf 
righteousness,  which  is  by  faith*."     O,  if  the  devil  couifl 
once  make  you  stagger  at  the  truth  of  the  promise,  and  . . 

a  Heb.  XI.  7. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  143 

nake  you  doubt  whether  there  be  a  heaven  and  a  hell,  be- 
mise  you  see  them  not ;  he  might  then  delude  you  with  the 
raoities  which  you  do  see.  But  when  you  beUeve  it  upon 
Sod's  word,  as  verily  as  if  you  saw  it,  then  you  will  be 
ikeiy  to  be  Christians  indeed.  Therefore  the  apostle  bring- 
lib  such  prbof  of  the  doctrine  of  the  resurrection,  and  when 
Mt  'hath  done,  he  buildeth  this  exhortation  upon  it« 
'  Wherefore  my  beloved  brethren,  be  stedfast,  unmovable, 
ihtEays  abounding  in  the  work  of  the  Lord,  forasmuch  as 
f  ou  kftow  your  labour  is  not  in  vain  in  the  Lord  ^J' 

Use  II.  Having  gone  thus  far  with  you,  and  shewed  you 
that  a  kingdom  of  heaven  there  is;  and  that  certainly  none 
bpit  the  converted  shall  enter  it :  my  next  business  is,  to 
eoane  nearer  your  hearts,  and  to  inquire  of,  and  beseech  you 
tq  mqiiire  of,  yourselves,  whether  you  are  the  converted 
heum  of  this  kingdom^  or  not  ?    Sirs,  you  hear  from  the 
aieuib  of  Christ  hio^elf,  how  the  case  standeth.    He  that 
9poke  this  will  be  your  judge,  and  according  to  this  word  it 
is  that  he  will  judge  you.    Believe  you  not  this?    I  hope 
fou.  do  hdieve  it.    Methinks  now  I  should  need  to  say  no 
9Miie  tQ  i^ea^onable  men,  to  warn  them  presently  to  enter 
WUk  their  own  consciences,,  and  try,  and  try  again  whether 
tbey  are  Qonverted.    But  because  that  this  is  so  necessary 
%.  worfc»  I  will  tell  you  some  of  those  reasons  that  should 
isove  you  presiently  to  set  upon  this  trial:  and  shew  you 
kow  di^irable  it  is  to  be  well  resolved  in  this  point.    For  I 
kaow  that  the  devil  will  be  such  an  enemy  to  it,  and  the. 
heart  so  backward  to  it,  that  all  we  can  say,  is  likely  to  be 
too  Uttlje  to  bripg  the  mpst^  but  to  a  faithful  exanunation  of 
4tiir  own  souls. 

1.  The  firs.t  reason  that  moveth  me  to  entreat  you  to  try 

yours^yes,  is,  the  weight  of  the  business  in  band.     A  wise 

am  iQay  put  a  small  thing  to  a  venture,  but  he  will  not  ven- 

.  In^  aU  hi^  estate^  or  liberty,,  or  life,  if  he  can  help  it.   How 

aach  less  should  a  wise  man  venture  his  squI  !     Great 

;  ^Ungs  and  eternal  things  should  be  made  as  sure  of  as  we 

can.    For  a  man  to  be  in  endless  happiness  or  misery,  is  a 

natter  th^t  should  not  have  one  cold,  or  dull  and  careless 

thought :  much  less  should  it  be  ordinarily,  or  wholly  made 

light  of.     I  profess  to  you  brethren,  I  wonder  how  you  can 

*>  1  Cor.  xv»  ult. 


144  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

SO  little  regard  the  assurance  of  your  conversion  and  salva«- 
tion,  as.most  of  the  world  doth!  As  if  hell  were  grown 
sufferable  :  or  heaven  grown  of  smaller  value ;  and  the  glory 
of  it  did  begin  to  fade.  For^  a  man  that  is  no  heathen,  but 
believeth  that  a  departing  soul  goes  some  whither,  either  to 
heaven  6r  hell:  methinks  he  should  be  willing  to  know 
whither  it  should  go  before  it  is  gone.  For,  when  it  is  once 
gone,  it  is  past  recalling.  Methinks,  as  long  as  you  are  in 
much  doubting  of  your  salvation,  this  one  thought  should 
often  be  running  in  your  mind :  '  What  if  I  should  not  be 
converted  or  saved  ?  What  a  case  were  I  then  everlast- 
ingly in  V  Your  hearts,  it  is  like,  do  cherish  some  hopes 
that  you  are  converted,  and  all  shall  be  well  enough  witb 
you  when  you  die  :  O,  but  what  if  it  should  prove  other- 
wise ?  Methinks  this  one  thought  should  even  amaze  you, 
whilst  you  are  in  that  estate.  For  all  my  hopes,  what  if  I 
should  perish  ?  O,  what  wise  man  would  put  his  everlasting 
salvation  or  damnation  to  the  venture,  if  he  could  possiblj 
get  it  out  of  doubt  ?  Therefore  Sirs,  I  beseech  you  for  flie 
Lord's  sake  ;  get  alone  again  and  again,  and  put  this  quesr 
tion  to  your  own  consciences,  '  How  can  I  tell  that  I  am 
truly  converted  V  And  if  you  are  ready  to  say,  '  I  hope  it 
is  so,'  when  you  have  nothing  for  these  hopes,  but  becaase 
you  would  have  it  so^;  call  to  your  consciences  for  the  proof 
of  what  they  say,  and  do  not  take  your  own  bare  words. 
It  is  proof  that  must  carry  it,  and  not  mere  saying  that  you 
are  converted.  Ask  therefore  conscience,  '  How  canst  thou 
prove  it?  What  canst  thou  shew  that  will  evidence  a  con- 
version, more  than  unsanctified  {Persons  may  shew  V  And 
I  pray  you,  see  that  you  be  not  put  off  too  easily,  and  take 
not  every  gloss  for  evidence ;  but  in  a  matter  of  such  con- 
sequence, see  that  you  deal  faithfully,  and  go  to  the  vary 
quick :  alas !  almost  all  the  comfort  of  your  lives  lieth  upon 
it:  and  your  everlasting  salvation  lieth  upon  it;  which  is 
much  more. 

2.  Another  reason,  which  makes  me  the  more  earnestly 
desire  that  you  would  try,  whether  you  are  truly  converted,  or 
not,  is,  because  all  men  by  nature  are  children  of  wrath,  and 
need  conversion,  and  the  greatest  part  of  the  world  do  live 
and  die  in  their  natural  state,  and  never  come  to  be  truly 
converted.     Seeing  therefore,  that  it  is  a  thing  that  every 


TREATISK   OF   CONVERSION.  145 

one  miuBt  have  that  will  be  saved^  and  yet  most  men  go 
without  it,  and  therefore  are  damned,  should  it  not  waken 
you  to  examine,  whether  you  are  of  the  number  of  those 
that  are  converted,  yea  or  nay  ?  If  it  were  a  needless  thing 
that  might  be  spared  without  your  undoing ;  or  if  it  were  a 
thing  that  every  body  hath,  or  that  almost  all,  or  most  have; 
you  might  be  the  more  secure ;  but  it  is  not  so.  What  need 
we  more  proof  than  God's  express  word  ?  "  The  gate  is 
strait,  and  the  way  narrow,  and  few  there  be  that  find  it  ""^ 
And  common  experience  seconding  this  word  of  God.  Do 
you  see  that  most  men  are  converted,  and  such  as  I  before 
described  to  you  ?  O.that  it  were  so  !  But  we  shall  speak 
more  of  this  towards  the  end.  Will  any  man  that  hath  not 
lost  his  senses,  now  stand  cavilling,  and  quarrelling  that  so 
few  should  be  saved,  instead  of  making  sure  of  his  own  sal- 
vation ?  The  reason  that  there  are  so  few,  is,  because  they 
will  not  be  saved  upon  God's  terms.  And  if  you  will  take 
their  course,  and  quarrel  with  the  gracious  word  and  ways 
of  God^  instead  of  submitting  to  them,  you  will  speed  as 
they,  and  be  carried  down  the  stream  for  company.  But 
those  that  care  for  their  souls,  will  take  warning  by  other 
men's  miscarriages,  and  be  awakened  to  make  sure. 

3.  Another  reason  that  should  move  you  to  examine, 
whether  you  be  indeed  converted  or  not,  is,  because  the 
want  of  diis  is  one  of  the  greatest  causes  why  so  few  come 
to  be  converted,  and  to  be  saved.  Nothing  doth  more  keep 
a  man  from  turning  back  again,  when  he  hath  lost  his  way, 
than  when  he  doth  not  know  that  he  hath  lost  it :  and  how 
can  he  know,  that  wandereth  in  the  night,  and  will  not  in- 
quire and  ask  the  way,  or  that  is  so  wilful  and  self-conceited, 
that  he  will  not  believe  any  man  that  telleth  him  he  hath 
lost  his  way?  As  long  as  he  is  of  this  mind,  he  will  never 
turn  again.  So  is  it  with  most  of  the  careless  world :  they 
are  going  into  the  way  of  worldliness  or  vainglory,  and  live 
to  the  flesh,  which  is  clean  contrary  to  the  way  to  heaven, 
and  yet  they  will  not  once  seriously  ask  a  minister,  or  ask 
any  one  that  can  inform  them,  whether  that  be  the  way  or 
not?  Or  whether  they  shall  ever  come  to  heaven  in  that 
way  ?  But  they  trudge  on  after  their  fleshly  business,  as  if 
they  had  no  tongue  in  their  heads ;    or  as  if  it  were  not 

«  Matt.  vii.  14. 
VOL.    VII.  L 


(46  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

worth  the  askings  to  know  whether  they  were  in  the  way  to 
heaven  or  hell.     Surely,  if  men  will  not  so  much  as  toqinre, 
or  consider  with  themselves,  and  examine  their  way  by  the 
word  of  God,  to  see  whether  they  are  right  or  wrong,  they 
are  never  like  to  be  saved.    If  you,  that  never  had  this  great 
cure  done  upon  your  souls,  did  but  know  so  much,  you 
would  not  rest  sure,  till  it  were  done.    You  could  not  lie 
down  quietly,  nor  rise  quietly :  you  could  not  eat  or  drink, 
.  or  sleep  quietly.  Tell  me,  ever  a  man  or  woman  of  you :  could 
you  be  quiet,  if  you  were  sure  that  you  were  yet  unconverted, 
and  in  a  state,  that  if  death  should  find  you  in,  you  must  be 
damned?    If  you  knew  this  by  yourselves,  how  could  you 
choose  but  get  presently  to  God  on  your  knees  in  secret,  and 
cry  out, '  Help  Lord,  or  I  am  everlastingly  undone !  O  forgive 
me,  and  change  my  heart  and  life,  or  else  I  am  a  lost  man  and 
woman  for  ever !'     How  could  you  choose,  if  you  knew 
yourselves  unconverted,  but  follow  God  with  your  prayers 
day  and  night  till  he  had  changed  your  hearts.     You  could 
not  sit  at  home,  but  you  would  go  to  the  ministers,  and  to 
experienced  Christians,  and  ask  them  for  some  help,  and  ad- 
vice for  your  salvation.      But,  when  men  think  all  is  well 
with  them,  who  can  expect  that  they  should  put  themselves 
to  so  much  trouble  ?     Or  seek  much  to  God  or  man  for  cure, 
or  make  any  great  matter  of  the  greatest  misery  ?     I  do  not 
fear  any  one  thing  more,  to  make  me  lose  all  this  labour, 
and  leave  many  of  you  after  all  this,  unconverted,  than  this 
conceit  that  you  are  already  converted,  when  you  are  not. 
This  is  it  that  is  most  like  to  hinder  our  work,  and  to  undo 
your  souls.     And  therefore  for  the  Lord's  sake,  sirs,  deny 
me  not  this   one  request,   to  take   a  little   pains   to  try 
whether  you  are  converted.      '*  For  if  any  man  think  he  is 
something  when  he  is  nothing,  he  deceiveth  himself." 

4.  Another  reason  that  should  make  you  never  rest  till 
you  know  that  you  are  converted,  is,  because  of  the  many 
exceeding  benefits  that  the  true  knowledge  of  this  one  thing 
would  afford  you.  For  the  truly  converted,  holding  on  to 
the  death,  shall  certainly  be  saved.  O  sirs,  if  you  had  but 
this  assurance  once,  you  might  live  quietly,  and  abound 
with  comforts !  You  might  lie  down,  and  nothing  make 
you  afraid  :  you  might  rejoice  in  the  mercies  of  the  Lord, 
as  the  tokens  of  his  love ;  and  bear  his  rod  with  greater 


TBEATI8E    OF   CONVERSION..  147 

% 

peace,  as  being  the  chastisement  of  a  father.    Had  you  but 
this  assurance  once,  you  might  hear  and  read  the  word  with 
comfort ;  and  when  you  come  to  the  promises,  say, '  These 
&re  mine  :'  you  might  secretly  and  publicly  pray  with  com- 
fort, "  and  have  access  with  boldness  to  the  Uirone  of  grac§'  :'* 
you  might  run  to  God  when  any  thing  aileth  you,  and  call 
him  your  Father  in  confidence  of  his  acceptance :  you  might 
gladly  feast  with  the  saints  in  the  holy  communion  of  the 
church :  you  might  cheerfully  sing  God's  praises,  and  glory 
in  the  thoughts  of  his  great  salvation.     And  when  you  are 
dying,  you  might  look  to  heaven  as  your  home,  "  and  long 
to  be  dissolved  and  to  be  with  Christ  ^"    And  might  joy  ful- 
ly let  go  your  departing  souls,  and  say  as  Christ,  "  Father, 
into  thy  hand  I  commend  my  spirit."     O  sirs,  what  a  blessed 
life  is  this,  when  a  man  can  look  upon  every  thing  with  com- 
fort !     If  he  look  on  the  godly,  he  can  say,  '  They  are  my 
brethren :'  if  on  the  wicked,  he  can  say, '  I  am  delivered 
from  their  sad  estate.'     If  he  look  on  any  of  the  mercies 
which  he  possesseth,  he  can  say,  '  They  are  the  fruits  of  the 
blood  of  Christ,  and  the  tokens  of  his  Father's  love.'     If  on 
his  poverty  or  want,  he  can  say, '  My  greater  wants  are  sup- 
plied, and  these  prepare  for  the  everduring  riches.'    If  he 
look  on  the  law,  he  can  pay,  '  It  hath  nothing  against  him,' 
because  he  hath  pardon  through  him  that  hath  borne  the 
curse.     If  on  the  Gospel,  he  can  rejoice  in  it,  as  the  glad 
tidings  of  his  salvation.     If  he  look  on  the  threatening,  he 
can  say,  *  It  reacheth  not  a  pardoned  sinner :'  if  on  the  pro- 
mise, he  can  say,  *  It  is  my  charter  for  heaven.'    If  he  look 
upward  to  heaven,  he  can  say,  *  It  is  my  own  inheritance, 
thither  I  am  going,  and  there  I  shall  shortly  be.'    If  he  look 
downward,  toward  the  place  of  torments,  he  can  say,  '  From 
thence  did  grace  deliver  me.'     If  there  were  any  terror  to  a 
man's  soul,  it  would  be  in  sin,  and  satan,  and  death,  and 
hell,  but  none  of  these  are  matter  of  terror  to  him.     Not  sin, 
for  it  is  pardoned,  and  mortified  in  part,  and  will  be  perfect- 
ly ere  long.     Not  satan,  for  he  is  conquered,  and  cast  out  of 
his  possession.     Not  death,  for  it  hath  lost  its  sting,  and  is 
become  the  passage  into  everlasting  life.     Not  hell,  for  it 
will  be  our  perpetual  joy,  to  see  that  we  are  delivered  from 
such  everlasting  torments.     In  a  word,  because  he  can  say, 

«  Heb.  X.  19.     Eph.  iii.  12.  ^  Phil.  i.  23. 


; 


J  48  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

'  God  is  my  Father,  Christ  is  my  Saviour  and  my  Head,  the 
Holy  Ghost  is  my  Sanctifier ;'  therefore  he  can  say;  "  All  is 
mine,  as  I  am  Christ's,  and  Christ  is  God's  *."  O  sirs,  what 
would  you  give ;  nay,  what  would  you  not  give,  to  be  pre- 
sently put  into  such  a  condition  ?  Had  you  not  as  lief  as  have 
all  the  world  now,  that  you  were  sure  that  you  are  convert- 
ed, and  in  this  state  of  life?  Sure,  if  you  were  well  in  your 
wits,  you  had.  Who  would  care  what  becomes  of  the  world, 
if  he  were  once  sure  of  heaven?  Or  what  become  of  his, 
corruptible  flesh,  if  he  were  sure  it  should  go  well  with 
his  soul,  and  that  flesh  itself  should  rise  again  to  glory.  0 
what  a  terrible  thing  it  is,  for  a  soul  to  go  out  of  the  body, 
and  not  know  whither  1  And  how  much  more  to  depart  un- 
der the  curse  of  God !  From  the  damnation  of  the  law,  to 
the  condemnation  of  the  judge.  But  how  blessed  is  it,  to 
remove  from  the  state  of  a  frail  and  sinful  man,  to  live  with 
Christ,  to  be  ^  equai  with  the  angels  ^" 

What  say  you  now,  beloved  hearers  ?  Is  there  not  weight 
enough  in  these  reasons  to  persuade  you  to  try  whether  you 
are  converted  or  not?  Dare  you  say  there  is  not?  If  you 
dare  not,  you  are  witness  yourselves  that  you  are  convinced. 
Yon  see  it  is  your  duty ;  or  see  it  is  necessary  for  your  own 
good.  Your  labour  will  be  small  in  comparison  of  the  pro- 
fit: the  loss  will  be  nothing;  the  commodity  may  be  un- 
speakable. Shall  I  then  as  your  minister  beseech  yon  pre- 
sently to  fall  to  this  work  ?  As  a  messenger  of  Christ  shall 
I  entreat  it  of  you  ?  As  a  friend  to  your  souls  shall  I  entreat 
it  of  you?  It  is  for  yourselves :  it  is  no  unreasonable  mat- 
ter, you  see,  that  I  ask  of  you.  Conscience  shall  witness 
one  day  to  the  face  of  refusers,  that  it  was  not  unreasonable. 
Neighbours,  I  pray  you  for  the  Lord's  sake,  and  for  your 
soul's  sake,  do  not  deny  it  me.  I  profess  in  the  presence  of 
the  Lord,  I  had  rather  you  would  grant  me  this  small  re- 
quest, than  give  me  all  you  have  in  the  world :  even  that  yon 
would  but  make  it  your  business  to  try,  and  thoronghly  try, 
whether  you  are  yet  converted,  or  no?  But  then,  let  me 
entreat  you  to  do  it  seriously,  and  make  somewhat  of  it,  and 
leave  it  not  till  you  have  done  your  best  to  be  resolved  whe- 
tiier  it  be  so  with  you  or  not.  You  do  not  need  to  ask  me 
wluit  aileth  me  to  be  so  earnest  with  you  for  such  a  thing. 

9  1  Cor.  Si.  fl      f  Cor.  !▼.  t5.  ^  Utkexx  36. 


TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  149 

You  have  heard  by  the  foregoing  reasons  what  aileth  me. 
You  may  see  here  in  my  text  what  aileth  me.  When  Christ 
himself  saith,  "  Except  you  be  converted,  and  become  as 
little  children,  you  cannot  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  hea- 
ven." This  is  the  thing  then  that  I  entreat  you  to  do  :  that 
you  would  betake  yourselves  at  your  next  opportunity  with- 
out delay  into  some  private  place,  and  there  bethink  your- 
selves what  you  have  heard  ;  or  at  least  what  is  said  here 
in  my  text :  and  say  thus  with  yourselves ;  '  I  see  there  is 
no  hope  of  salvation  without  conversion ;  my  heart  must  be 
turned  from  the  world,  and  flesh,  and  sin,  to  God  by  Christ, 
or  else  I  cannot  enter  into  heaven.  I  know  I  shall  shortly 
leave  this  life :  doth  it  not  concern  me  then  to  see  betimes 
that  I  be  converted?  Was  ever  such  a  change  as  this 
wrought  in  my  heart,  or  not?  There  is  no  dissembling  with 
God ;  he  will  not  be  mocked.  What  sayest  thou,  con- 
science? Have  I  ever  had  such  a  change,  or  not?  Thus 
follow  on  the  inquiry,  and  leave  it  not,  till  you  can  say  off 
or  on  whether  you  have  been  converted,  or  not.  Or  at 
least  till  you  have  some  more  light  into  the  business  than 
yon  had  before.  And  if  you  cannot  do  it  at  one  time,  as  it 
is  likely  you  cannot  fully,  go  do  it  again  and  again :  think 
on  it  as  you  lie  in  bed :  think  on  it  when  you  are  alone,  and 
say  to  yourselves,  *  Seeing  I  must  be  converted  or  condemn- 
ed, is  it  not  time  for  me  to  know  whether  it  be  so  with  spie, 
or  not?'  And  if  you  cannot  get  the  case  well  resolved,  let 
me  entreat  one  thing  more,  which  I  have  often  entreated  of 
you ;  that  you  would  come  to  one  of  us  that  are  your  teach- 
ers, or  go  to  some  judicious,  able  Christian,  and  ask  advice 
to  help  you  in  tried :  for  in  so  great  a  business,  it  is  dange- 
rous to  be  mistaken.  I  do  not  speak  all  this  to  those  Chris- 
tians that  have  lived  long  in  the  fear  of  God,  and  have  doubts 
raised  in  their  minds  by  the  temptations  of  the  enemy,  or  by 
their  own  great  care  of  the  matter  of  their  salvation,  and 
have  asked  help  of  ministers,  and  taken  pains,  and  done 
what  lieth  in  them  to  be  resolved,  and  yet  find  some  doubts 
remaining.  It  is  not  these  that  I  now  speak  to.  Though  I 
would  not  grudge  my  labour  to  these  whensoever  I  can  have 
time  for  it,  to  do  them  any  good  I  could.  Yet  I  would  ra- 
ther advise  them  to  acknowledge  the  light  of  grace  that 
shineth  in  their  eyes,  and  not  forget  their  own  experiences. 


150  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

nor  make  light  of  the  abundance  of  that  mercy,  which  hath 
translated  them  from  darkness  into  the  kingdom  of  Christ, 
and  feed  upon  that  glory  that  is  propounded  to  their  faith. 
But  I  speak  to  those  that  either  never  did  yet  set  to  the 
work  of  examination,  or  never  followed  it,  till  they  discern- 
ed their  miserable  estate,  or  at  least  not  till  they  got  out  of 
it,  but  are  still  sticking  in  the  world  and  flesh  :  and  also  to 
those  young,  unsettled  Christians  that  be  not  yet  well  re- 
solved for  a  change ;  or  at  least  those  that  never  yet  had  the 
advice  of  any  minister,  or  judicious  person,  for  the  right 
settling  of  their  spiritual  estate :  for  all  these,  but  espe- 
cially for  those  that  never  set  upon  examination  before,  I 
would  entreat  them,  if  they  find  themselves  in  the  dark,  and 
cannot  well  manage  it  themselves,  or  cannot  find  whether 
Aey  are  converted  or  not,  that  they  would  come  to  ns,  and 
seek  advice.     I  pray  you,  neighbours,  do  not  think  that  we 
are  either  so  stout,  or  so  careless  of  your  souls,  as  to  des- 
pise you,  or  to  think  it  much  to  take  this  pains  with  you. 
The  poorest  beggar  in  town  shall  be  welcome  to  us,  that 
will  come  to  us  on  this  errand.     Indeed,  ministers  are  set  in 
every  church,  as  the  physician  is  in  the  town,  for  all  that  are 
in  distress  to  resort  to  for  advice,  that  their  diseases  may 
not  prove  their  death.     It  is  not  only  to  preach  to  you  that 
we  are  made  ministers,  but  especially  to  give  ^dvice  and  di- 
rection for  their  salvation  to  all  that  have  special  need,  and 
come  to  us.     Indeed  for  small  matters  you  should  no  more 
trouble  a  minister,  than  you  should  trouble  a  physician  for 
a  cut  finger,  because  you  have  otiiers  enough  at  hand  to  give 
yoii  advice.     If  all  the  people  of  England  would  use  their 
ministers  to  this  kind  of  employment,  it  would  be  happier 
for  their  souls,  and  happy  for  the  nation,  and  would  make 
men  know  better  the  nature  and  need  of  the  office  of  the 
ministry.    We  do  not  desire  you  to  come  to  us,  ad  the  Pa- 
pist priests  make  all  their  people  do,  to  confess  every  secret 
sin  that  they  have  committed  in  Lent,  before  th^y  receive 
the  sacrament  at  Easter.     But  when  you  hear  out  of  tbe 
word  of  God,  that  no  man  can  be  saved  except  he  be  con- 
verted, and  you  set  yourselves  to  try  whether  you  are  con- 
verted or  not,  and  cannot  find  it  out:  here  your  salvation 
lieth  much  on  the  business,  and  therefore  common  reason 
telleth  you,  that  you  should  take  the  best  advice  you  can. 


TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  151 

and  diat  presently,  without  delay.  And  so,  you  may  be 
much  better  resolved,  and  your  minds  more  quieted,  and 
you  may  go  upon  surer  grounds  for  your  salvation,  than 
perhaps  you  would  otherwise  do.  There  is  never  an  honest 
minister  in  England,  but  would  be  willing  to  forbear  his 
meat,  or  sleep,  as  far  as  nature  would  bear,  to  help  his  peo- 
ple in  such  straits  as  these ;  when  they  come  to  us,  and  tell 
us,  *  I  have  taken  some  pains  to  try  whether  I  €mi  converted 
truly,  or  not,  and  I  am  not  able  to  discern ;  I  know  it  is 
your  office  to  help  me ;  I  pray  you  help  to  resolve  my  doubt, 
for  I  am  resolved  I  will  not  venture  my  soul  so  carelessly 
as  I  have  done  till  now.'  You  do  not  know  what  good  you 
might  get,  if  you  would  but  take  this  course  to  be  resolved. 
For  God  will  bless  his  own  ordinances.  I  pray  you,  there- 
fore, let  no  carelessness,  or  bashfulness  hinder  you  ;  for  mat- 
ters of  salvation  are  not  such  things  that  you  should  either 
be  careless,  or  ashamed  of.  However,  say  not  but  we  offered 
you  our  help. 

fiut  perhaps  you  will  ask  me.  When  I  am  examining  my 
conscience,  how  shall  you  know  whether  I  am  converted  or 
not?  By  what  marks  may  it  be  discerned?  To  this  I  an- 
swer, J[  have  so  often  given  you  divers  mariLS  already,  in  the 
sermons  I  have  preached,  and  the  books  that  I  have  written 
for  your  use,  that  I  am  loath  to  do  die  same  thing  over  too 
often.  But  for  this  time  it  may  suffice,  if  you  will  but  re- 
member that  description  of  the  woric  of  conversion,  which 
I  gave  you  before.  For  in  that  are  all  .the  marks  that  are 
necessary. 

When  you  are  examining  your  own  hearts  inquire  then : 

(1.)  Whether  you  ever  found  that  change  upon  your 
mind  that  I  before  mentioned.  Are  you  soundly  persuaded 
of  the  truth  of  the  word  of  Ood,  and  the  life  to  come  ?  And 
do  you  know  and  believe  how  vile  a  thing  sin  is  ?  And 
what  need  you  have  of  Christ?  and  what  he  hath  done  for 
you,  and  offereth  to  do  ?  And  do  you  esteem  of  the  love  of 
Ood,  and  the  hopes  of  salvation  above  all  things  in  this  world, 
and  account  of  all  but  as  dung,  that  you  may  win  Christ  ? 
Are  you  fully  persuaded  of  the  riches  of  free  grace,  and  of 
the  necessity  of  a  holy  life,  how  much  soever  you  may  have 
slighted  them  heretofore  ? 

(2.)  And  have  your  hearts  been  so  far  changed  hereupon. 


152  TRATISE   OF    CONVERSION. 

as  that  you  have  laid  up  your  treasure  and  hopes  in  the  life 
to  come ;  and  that  is  it  that  you  take  for  your  felicity  :   so 
that  you  can  truly  say,  that  the  main  bent  and  drift  of  your 
life  is,  not  for  the  pleasure  or  profits  of  the  world,    but 
how  to  please  God,  and  be  happy  for  ever  ?    Though  you 
may  step  out  of  the  way  by  human  infirmity,  yet  this  is  the 
bent  and  scope  of  your  life  :  this  is  your  chief  care,  and  this 
hath  your  most  serious  thoughts  and  business.     Can  you 
truly  say,  you  use  the  world  for  God  and  for  heaven,  and 
do  not  serve  God  for  the  world  ?    And  that  you  take  all 
these  outward  things,  but  as  necessaries  in  your  journey, 
but  look  at  heaven  as  your  home  and  happiness  ?-  And  that 
God  hath  the  highest  room  in  your  hearts,  and  the  world 
and  flesh  stand  under  him ;   and  that  you  do  not  prefer 
these  things  before  him  ?     And  that  you  are  resolved,  what- 
soever it  cost  you,  to  stick  to  God  though  you  lose  the 
world ;  and  not  stick  to  the  world,  when  it  loses  you  the  fa- 
vour of  God  ?     And  that  God  shall  be  first  served,  and  that 
the  world  shall  have  his  leavings ;  and  not  the  world  first 
served,  and  God  have  its  leavings  ?   Have  you  tasted  of  the 
infinite  love,  which  he  hath  manifested  for  your  salvation  in 
the  blood  of  his  Son,  and  admired  that  free  grace,  that  hath 
thus  purchased  your  redemption  ?     And  fled  to  Christ,  as 
the  only  refuge  of  a  guilty  soul,  from  the  curse  of  die  law, 
and  the  wrath  of  God ;  renouncing  all  conceits  of  any  me- 
rits, or  legal  righteousness  of  your  own,  taking  Christ  and 
his  merits  for  your  righteousness  ?     Do  you  find  that  yod 
hate  the  former  sins  that  you  loved,  and  take  pleasure  in 
those  holy  ways  that  you  had  no  pleasure  in  before  ?     And 
are  you  resolved  thus  to  hold  on  to  the  death? 

(3.)  Is  all  this  to  be  seen  in  your  life  ?  Have  you  in 
good  sadness  changed  your  former  courses,  and  resolved  to 
turn  to  them  no  more  ?  Have  you  left  your  own  ungodly 
company  further  than  your  calling,  or  necessity,  or  chari^ 
requireth  you  to  be  with  them  ?  And  have  you  betaken 
yourselves  into  the  company  of  those  that  fear  God,  and 
take  pleasure  in  their  holy  communion,  and  in  their  help, 
and  company  in  the  way  to  heaven  ?  Especially  do  you 
avoid  those  great  transgressions,  by  which  you  were  carried 
away  in  your  ignorance !  And  are  you  willing  to  destroy 
the  remains  of  your  sin,  whatsoever  it  cost  you,  and  not  to 


TREATISE   OF    CONVERSION.  153 

spare,  or  cherish,  or  befriend  it  ?  So  that  there  is  no  known 
sin,  that  you  wilfully  live  in ;  nor  known  duty  that  you  wil- 
fully cast  off.  But  you  would  fain  be  what  God  would 
have  you  be;  and  your  greatest  sorrow  is,  that  you  can  be  no 
bett^.  And  if  you  fall  by  any  temptation,  you  rise  again 
with  shame  and  grief,  and  free  confession,  and  renew  your 
resolution  by  the  grace  of  God,  to  take  better  heed  for  the 
time  to  come. 

This  is  the  sum  of  the  work  of  conversion,  and  this  is 
the  state  of  a  gracious  soul.  I  have  left  out  divers  particu- 
lars, lest  I  should  be  too  long,  because  you  may  see  them 
together  before  you ;  but  the  rest  are  implied  in  these. 

When  you  go  then  to  examine  your  hearts,  set  these 
few  questions  before  you,  and  put  them  to  your  hearts,  or 
else  peruse  those  marks  that  I  have  given  you  in  my ''  Direc- 
tions of  Peace  of  Conscience,''  or  those  in  my  "  Treatise  of 
Judgment,''  or  those  in  my  "  Book  of  Rest.''  You  do  not  need 
to  be  at  a  loss  for  marks  to  try  by.  Books  will  help  you, 
ur  ministers  will  help  you,  or  friends  will  help  you.  But  all 
the  dilficulty  is  in  two  things.  1.  To  get  your  heart  to  the 
work.  '  2.  To  be  able  to  know  your  own  hearts.  For  they 
are  so  dark  and  deceitful^  that  without  a  special  light  and 
dilig^ice,  you  may  easily  be  mistaken  in  yourselves.. 

Well,  brethren,  I  again  renew  my  request  to  you,  that  see- 
ing you  must  be  converted,  or  condemned,  will  you  set  your- 
selves to  try  whether  you  are  converted  or  not  ?  I  hope  you 
be  not  willing  to  be  deceived ;  and  I  hope  you  do  not  think 
that  salvation  is  not  worth  this  much  labour.  I  should  hope 
that  I  might  request  as  much  as  this  from  you,  if  it  were/or 
myself,  or  a  friend ;  how  much  more,  when  it  id  for  your  sal- 
vation.  Tell  me,  therefore,  will  you  do  this  much  at  my  re- 
quest, at  Christ's  request,  yea,  and  at  his  command,  or  will 
you  not?  Will  you  bestow  now  and  then  a  secret  hour  about 
it,  and  follow  it  on  till  you  get  resolution,  and  know  whether 
you  are  converted  or  not  ?  Truly,  neighbours,  I  do  not  speak 
these  words  to  you  carelessly  or  customarily,  as  matters  that 
I  shall  never  look  after  when  I  am  out  of  the  pulpit ;  or  as 
if  I  cared  not  whether  you  ever  more  minded  them,  or  not. 
Bat  it  is  the  matter  of  practice  that  I  regard :  whether 
you  will  do  the  thing  that  I  am  desiring  of  you.  I  am  loath 
you  should  spend  another  day  in  a  state  of  condemnation. 


154  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

and  not  know  it.     I  am  loath  you  should  spend  another  day 
in  negligent  uncertainty  of  your  everlasting  state.     If  you 
are  converted,  I  would  fain  have  you  know  it ;  if  I  could 
procure  it,  I  would  have  you  sure  to  go  to  heaven  when  you 
die,  before  you  pass  another  week,  or  before  you  go.  this 
night  to  bed.     And  if  you  are  not  yet  converted,  I  would 
fain  have  you  know  it,  that  you  may  lay  to  heart  your  con- 
dition, and  without  any  more  delay,  may  make  out  for  the 
grace  of  Christ,  that  must  recover  you.     1  pray  you  do  not 
think  that  it  is  utter  despair  that  I  am  driving  you  to.    If 
you  should  upon  trial  find  that  you  are  unconverted,  you 
need  not  despair,  and  say, '  there  is  no  hope.'     No,  but  you 
must  know,  that  there  is  mercy  before  you.     Christ  hath 
prepared  it  for  you,  and  offereth  it  to  you,  and  is  willing  you 
should  have  part  in  it  if  you  be  willing.     Only  you  must 
consent  to  be  changed  now  at  last,  and  resolve  to  go  no 
further  in  the  old  way.     It  is  conversion^  and  not  despera- 
tion, that  Ood  requireth.     And  I  hope  a  man  may  seek  after 
his  error  to  amend  it,  rather  than  to  despair  of  the  amend* 
ment.     What,  if  upon  examination,  you  should  perceive 
that  till  this  hour,  you  have  been  in  a  state  of  death  ?    It 
doth  hot  follow,  that  you  must  live  and  die  so ;  but  that 
you  mustmake  haste  to  get  out  of  it,  which  you  will  hardly 
ever  do,  till  you  find  that  you  are  in  it.     It  were  a  foolish 
traveller  that  will  say,  '  I  will  not  ask  the  way,  lest  I  find 
that  I  have  missed  it,  and  then  I  have  no  hope  of  getting 
home.'     But  rather  he  should  ask  the  way,  that  if  he  have 
missed  it,  he  may  know  it,  and  get  in  the  right  way  before 
it  be  night.     And  because  it  is  my  present  business,  rather 
to  convince  the  unconverted  for  their  recovery,  than  die 
converted  for  their  comfort,  I  shall  here  tell  you  for  the  ae- 
gative,  who  they  be  that  are  yet  unconverted,  and  must  be 
changed,  if  ever  they  will  be  saved. 

(1 .)  That  man  or  woman,  that  never  yet  perceived  and  felt 
that  sin  is  a  great  and  detestable  evil,  deserving  the  wrath 
of  God,  and  that  never  felt  what  need  they  stand  in  of  the 
pardon  of  sin,  by  the  blood  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  nor  was  ever 
humbled  in  the  apprehension  of  his  unworthy  dealing  with 
God,  but  can  bear  his  sin  as  a  tolerable  burthen,  is  yet  un- 
converted; and  without  conversion  cannot  be  saved  '. 

*  Matt.  xi.  28.  Luke  xiii.  S,51.   Psal.  li.  17.   Isa.  Ivii.  15.   Lake  xiv.  11.  xviii.  14. 


TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  155 

(2.)  That  man  or  woman  that  was  never  driven  to 
Christ  for  deliverance,  nor  beaten  out  of  the  conceits  of 
merit,  or  sufficiency  in  himself;  nor  brought  to  admire  the 
glorious  design  of  God  in  the  great  work  of  redemption; 
nor  savoured  the  sweetness  of  the  glad  tidings  of  salvation, 
which  are  brought  to  distressed  sinners  in  the  Gospel.  So 
that  his  heart  was  never  warmed  with  the  sense  of  the  Re- 
deemer's love  and  blood ;  but  heareth  and  readeththe  Gos- 
pel as  a  common  story.  Or,  as  if  it  were  not  he  that  was  thus 
redeemed,  is  yet  unconverted,  whatsoever  he  may  seem  ^. 

(3.)  That  person  that  hath  not  his  heart  and  hopes  in 
heaven,  and  looketh  not  at  that  as  his  only  happiness,  and 
doth  not  make  it  the  business  of  his  life  to  attain  it;  but 
settetii  his  hei^rt  more  upon  the  things  of  this  life,  is  cer- 
tainly unconverted,  whatever  he  may  pretend  ^ 

(4.)  That  person  that  is  not  weary  of  all  known  sin,  and 
hateth  it  not,  and  would  not  be  rid  of  it  with  all  his  heart, 
and  is  not  willing  to  be  at  the  labour  or  cost  of  duty,  in  the 
use  of  those  means  which  God  hath  required  for  the  ob- 
taining of  a  conquest ;  but  will  venture  his  soul  upon  a 
careless  life,  rather  than  he  will  be  brought  to  diligent  god- 
liness ;  and  taketh  up  godliness  in  part  upon  mere  neces- 
sity, having  rather  let  it  alone  if  he  durst,  and  taketh  it  for 
a  grievous  thing  to  be  hindred  from  his  sin  :  that  person  is 
not  as  yet  converted,  but  must  have  a  further  change  before 
he  can  be  brought  into  a  state  of  life  "". 

(6.)  That  person  that  doth  not  set  himself  to  the  duties 
of  holiness  to  God  and  righteousness,  and  mercy  toward 
nan,  that  hath  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ  within  him,  and  the 
image  of  God  upon  him,  and  doth  n9t  express  it  in  his  wor- 
ship and  obedience,  and  is  not  loving,  compassionate,  and 
mercifol  to  others,  nor  humble  arid  low  in  his  own  eyes,  nor 
delighteth  in  doing  good,  nor  is  willing  to  do  as  he  would 
be  done  by  ;  I  say,  that  person  is  not  yet  truly  converted, 
whatsoever  seemings  of  conversion  he  may  have ;  but  must 
yet  be  otherwise  converted,  or  be  condemned  ". 

k  Phil.  ill.  8,  9.  Eph.  iii.  18, 19.  Luke  vii.  47, 48.   Rora.  x.  15.   Acts  xiii.  SjT. 

>Pha.  iii.  21.  Matt,  vl  21.  Rom.  v.  2.  Tit.  i.  2.  Heb.  ri.  1  Cor-  xv.  19.  Col. 
L  5.  23. 

»  Luke  xviii.  23,  24.  Rom.  vi.  14.  16,  17.  21.    vii.  13.  22.  24.  Psal.  cxix.  5. 

«  Matt.  V.  Heb.  xii.  14.  1  Pet.  i.  15,  16.  ii.  5.  2  Pet.  iii.  11.  Heb;  iii.  1. 
Psal.  i.  2. 


150  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

(6.)  That  man  or  woman  that  hath  any  thing  in  this, 
world,  that  is  so  dear  to  them  that  they  cannot  spare  it, 
and  part  with  it  for  Christ,  and  obedience  to  his  commandi 
bat  will  rather  venture  their  souls  upon  his  threatenings,  and 
will  only  take  up  so  much  of  religion  as  may  stand  witk 
their  worldly  prosperity  or  seeming  felicity,  and  are  not  re« 

.  solved  by  strength  of  grace,  rather  to  let  go  all  than  Christ: 
I  say,  that  person  is  yet  unconverted,  and  must  have  a  far- 
ther change,  or  be  condemned  ®. 

Now,  the  Lord  have  mercy'  on  poor  sinners !  What  a 
world  of  them  are  yet  in  the  state  of  death !  And  how  litde 
do  they  believe  it,  or  lay  it  to  heart !  I  wonder  what  men 
think  of  such  words  in  Scripture,  when  they  meet  with  them. 
Sure  they  cannot  choose  but  consider  that  diey  concern  them 
as  well  as  others.  And  if  no  man  can  be  saved  without  con- 
version, they  must  needs  know  they  cannot.    What  then 

"do  these  men  think  of  themselves  ?  Do  they  think  that 
they  are  converted,  or  that  they  are  not  ?     If  they  think 

'they  are  not,  then  surely  they  durst  not  rest  till  they  are. 
For  I  do  not  think  they  are  willing  to  be  damned.  It  mast 
needs  be,  therefore,  that  they  think  they  are  converted,  when 
they  are  not;  and  that  is  the  thing  that  deceiveth  and 
quieteth  them  in  their  misery.  But  it  is  worth  inquiry  to 
find  out  what  it  is  that  so  deceiveth  men,  that  the  grossest 
worldling,  or  the  vilest  sensualist,  are  yet  persuaded  that 
they  are  converted,  gracious  men ;  and  I  find  among  othen 
these  three  things  are  the  cause.  1.  They  do  not  know 
what  conversion  is,  but  take  that  to  be  true  conversion, 
which  is  no  such  thing.  2.  They  do  not  know  themselves, 
but  take  themselves  to  have  what  they  have  not,  and  do 
what  they  do  not,  and  be  what  they  be  not  And  3.  They 
are  resolved  to  believe  what  they  would  have  to  be  true,  be 
it  never  so  false ;  and  therefore  will  rather  think  they  are  well 
already,  than  they  will  be  at  the  trouble  to  know  that  it  is 
otherwise,  and  to  use  the  means  for  a  thorough  discovery. 

Use  III.  By  the  foregoing  inquiry,  we  have  certainly 
found,  that  conversion  is  too  strange  a  thing  in  the  world ; 
and  that  the  greatest  part  of  the  world,  yea,  of  those  that 
are  called  by  the  preaching  of  the  Gospel,  are  yet  uncon- 
verted.   The  consideration  of  this  must  needs  be  a  grief  to 

o  Matt.  xvi.  S4.    X.37,  38.   Luke  xiv.  35.   Phil.  iii.  19.  Matt.  ziii.  6.  20, 21. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVRRSION.  l67 

the  heart  of  every  faithful  minister,  that  knoweth  the  misery 
of  an  unconverted  man,  and  foreseeth  his  latter  end.  It  will 
be  a  grief  to  any  honest  physician,  if  he  have  a  whole  hos- 
pital of  sick  persons  under  cure,  to  see  that  the  most  of 
their  diseases  are  mortal,  and  to  find  but  few  recovered  by 
the  greatest  skill  and  care  that  he  can  use;  how  much 
more  must  the  everlasting  danger  of  men's  souls  be  grievous 
to  those  that  are  appointed  to  watch  over  them  ?  Would 
the  I«ord  but  cause  you  to  know  your  own  misery,  as  we 
know  it,  and  to  compassionate  yourselves,  as  we  must  com- 
passionate you,  we  should  have  the  more  hope  of  your  re- 
covery. Will  you  now  join  with  us  in  lamenting  your  own 
condition,  and  lay  to  heart  what  a  case  it  is  to  be  uncon- 
verted? Truly  humanity,  and  much  more  Christianity, 
doth  bind  us  to  think  on  your  condition  with  lamentation. 
Should  we  see  an  enemy;  should  we  see  a  very  dog  in  tor- 
menty  and  have  no  compassion  ?  How  much  less,  so  many 
men  and  women  that  are  so  near  us,  and  so  dear  to  us  in 
the  flesh  ?  Alas,  that  there  is  such  a  glory,  and  most  men 
will  miss  of  it !  That  there  is  such  a  fire  prepared  for  the 
devil  and  his  angels,  and  the  most  will  run  themselves  wil- 
fully into  it !  Why,  faith  maketh  things  absent  as  if  they 
were  present.  That  which  will  be  so  one  of  these  days,  I 
look  on  it  as  if  it  were  even  so  already.  Oh !  methinks  I 
see  the  thousands  of  the  unconverted,  departing  from  the 
face  of  an  angry  Judge  ;  who  hath  newly  shut  them  up  un- 
der his  final  sentence,  **  Depart  ye  cursed  into  everlasting 
fire  P.**  If  you  ask  me,  why  I  tell  you  of  such  sad  things  ? 
Truly,  brelliren  it  is,  because  they  are  much  more  sad  to  suf- 
fer, than  to  hear  of;  and  because  you  are  yet  alive  in  a  pos- 
sibility of  preventing  them.  If  you  marvel  that  I  should 
believe  such  things,  when  no  man  seeth  them :  it  is  because 
I  am  a  Christian.  And  if  you  believe  them  not  as  well  as 
I,  ybu  would  do  well  to  say  so  plainly,  and  do  not  dissem- 
ble any  longer,  and  take  on  you  to  be  Christians,  when -you 
are  not ;  and  to  believe  God's  word,  when  you  do  not.  I 
profess  to  you,  I  should  take  it  but  for  a  paltry  profession, 
to  ride  up  and  down  to  preach  the  Gospel,  and  trouble  the 
minds  of  men  in  vain,  and  get  the  ill  will  of  most  of  our 
neighbours,  and  tire  and  spend  ourselves  in  this  work,  if  it 

P  Matt.  XXV.  41. 


158  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

were  not  certainly  true,  which  we  must  tell  them ;  and  if  the 
Gospel  were  a  fable  or  human  device-  If  the  word  of  God 
were  not  true,  ministers  have  the  most  unworthy  employ** 
ment  upon  earth.  But  if  it  be  true  (as  nothing  is  more 
certain),  O  Lord,  what  hard  hearts  then  have  we,  that  we 
are  no  more  affected  with  your  condition!  And  what 
hearts  have  you,  that  are  no  more  affected  with  your  own! 
The  Lord  knows,  if  I  were  not  confident  that  this  word  ii 
true,,  that  telleth  us  of  the  danger  of  all  that  are  unconverted^ 
I  would  not  have  been  here  to-day ;  nay,  I  would  shut  up 
my  books,  and  take  another  trade  in  hand,  and  never  preadi 
more.  But  shall  a  man  that  knows  the  unconverted  wiU  be 
condemned,  forbear  to  tell  them  of  the  misery  that  is  neai 
them?  Then  were  our  case  more  sinful  than  yours,  for  you 
know  it  not,  and  therefore  love  not  to  hear  of  it,  I  believe 
it,  and  know  it,  and  yet  should  I  silence  it?  I  know  it  it 
unpleasant  doctrine,  but  it  is  necessary,  and  it  is  mosttmeJ 
God  never  yet  did  prove  a  liar ;  if  he  were  not  true,  he  were 
not  God.  You  will  believe  yourselves  the  things  that  you 
see  not,  upon  common  experience ;  and  why  should  not  I 
believe  that  which  I  see  not,  upon  a  better  ground  ?  You 
see  not  the  sun  at  midnight,  and  yet  you  believe  that  it  will 
rise  the  next  morning,  because  it  useth  to  do  so«  You  see 
no  fjowers  or  fruits  on  the  earth  in  winter,  and  yet  you  be- 
lieve that  you  shall  see  them  the  next  year,  because  they 
use  to  come  in  their  seasons.  You  are  now  all  alive,  and 
see  not  your  graves  digged,  nor  your  friends  about  you, 
there  laying  you,  and  leaving  you  in  darkness  to  the  worms, 
and  yet  you  know  that  such  a  day  will  come,  though  now 
you  see  it  not ;  as  truly  do  I  know,  that  there  is  endless 
woe  to  every  sinner  that  dieth  unconverted.  I  see  not  the 
flames,  nor  do  I  hear  the  cries  of  damned  souls,  but .  yet  I 
know  that  there  they  are,  while  we  sit  here,  and  there  they 
will  be  to  all  eternity.  It  is  like,  the  man  in  Luke  xvi^  was 
a  gentleman  of  quality,  that  had  so  bountiful  a  table,  and 
was  clothed  so  gorgeously  every  day.  Alas,  his  poor  bre^ 
thren  it  is  like,  did  little  think  what  was  become  of  his 
soul,  when  they  had  laid  his  body  in  the  earth.  If  a  preacher 
should  have  told  them  he  was  afraid  he  was  in  hell,  do  you 
think  they  would  not  have  been  ready  to  fly  in  his  face,  oi 
account  him  intolerably  self-conceited,  or  precise  ;  and  yet 


TRKATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  159 

the  Lord  Jesos  brings  us  news  that  he  wa^  in  hell-torment, 
wishing  that  one  might  be  sent  from  the  dead,  to  warn  those 
his  poor  brethren  that  he  had  left  behind  him  on  the  earth. 
No  doubt,  he  knew  that  they  were  all  of  the  same  mind  as 
he. was,  when  he  was  alive;  and  as  fleshly,  and  worldly, 
and  careless  of  their  salvation,  and  therefore  were  in  the 
road-way  to  the  same    condemnation ;  or   else  if  he  had 
known  them  to  be  godly,  heavenlyminded  men,  he  would 
never  have  thought  them  in  such  danger,  as  it  seems  he  did- 
But  we  read  not  that  they  had  any  such  fears  of  themselves 
as  he  had.     If  one  had  come  to  them  from  the  dead,  and 
told  them,  that  their  late  worshipful  brother  was  in  hell  for 
his  sin,  and  knowing  them  to  be  all  in  the  way  to  the  same 
Biisery,  had  sent  to  them  to  beseech  them  presently  to  be 
conv^ted,  lest  they  also  come  to  that  place  of  torment : 
what  welcome  do  you   think  such  a  messenger  would  have 
had  ?  I  know  not  well  what  fear  of  a  dead  man  appearing  to 
them,  might  have  done ;  but  I  partly  imagine  what  enter- 
tainment a  minister  should  have  had,  that  had  said  the  like. 
Verily,  sirs,  the  case  of  careless  sinners  is  never  the  safer, 
because  they  see  not,  and  fear  not  the  danger.     A  man  in  a 
consumption   or  dropsy,  is  never  the  further  from  death, 
though  he  be  never  so  confident  that  he  shall  not  die.     If  a 
thief  at  the  gallows  have  a  conceit  that  he  shall  escape, 
that  will  not  save  his  life.     What  if  you  should  have  an 
hundred  men  that  you  had  known  on  earth,  sent  to  you 
from  the  dead  one  after  another,  and  all  of  them  should  tell 
you  this  one  sentence  in  my  text.  That  there  is  none  enter 
into  heaven  but  converted  souls  ;  would  you  not  begin  to 
look  about  you,  and  say  to  yourselves.  Am  I  converted  or 
not?     What  a  case  am  I  in  then,  that  am  yet  in  the  flesh? 
It  may  be  if  one  appeared  to  you  in  your  chamber  in  the 
night,  and  told  you  this  news,  it  would  only  affright  you  a 
little,  and  you  would  forget  it.     Perhaps  if  two  or  three  on- 
ly should  appear  to  you,  and  tell  you  it,  you  might  forget  it 
again  ;  but  if  twenty  should  tell  it  you,  methinks  it  should 
awaken  you.     Why,  sirs,  the  words  of  the  Lord  are  of  more 
weight,  than  the  words  of  a  thousand  dead  men  are.     "  If 
you  will    not  believe  him,  neither  will  you  be  persuaded 
though  one  rise  from  the  dead*^."     Seeing  these  things  are 

1  Luke  xvi.  31. 


IfK)  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

SO,  I  do  not  blame  ministers,  if  they  be  plain  and  earnest  with 
you,  though  some  may  think  them  precise,  and  besides 
themselyes.    Paul   was   put  to  make  this  answer;  ''For 
whether  we  be  besides  ourselves,  it  is  to  God ;  or  whether 
we  be  sober,  it  is,  for  your  cause '."    Truly,  we  are  like  a 
physician,  that  seeth  a  foolish  man  eating  arsenic,  or  mer- 
cury, and  telleth  him,  O  what  are  you  doing  ?  it  is  deadly 
poison,  you  must  presently  take  a  vomit,  or  it  will  kill  you. 
But  because  it  is  sweet,  derides  the  physicism,  and  bids  him 
look  to  himself,  he  hopes  he  shall  do  as  well  as  he,  till  he 
feel  the  griping  and  burning  at  his  heart,  and  then  he  will 
believe  it.     Oh  !  the  gripes  of  a  damned  man's  conscience, 
when  he  reflects  on  the  day  of  grace  which  he  lost  on  earth! 
We  tell  you  not  of  this  to  drive  you  to  despair,  but  to  per* 
suade  you  to  take  the  vomit  of  repentance,  and  to  cast  up 
your  sins  before  you  are  past  hope.     Do  not  think  we  wrong 
you,  to  foretel  you  what  will  come  of  it,  if  you  die  uncon- 
verted.    If  there  were  any  wrong  in  it,  it  must  be  laid  on 
God  that  can  do  no  wrong.     If  he  have  not  bid  us  tell  you 
of  them^  then  take  us  for  your  enemies  and  spare  not:  call 
us  liars,  if  we  shew  you  not  his  word  for  it.     But  alas,  when 
God  hath  revealed  your  danger,  must  we  hide  it?  And  that 
when  he  hath  foretold  us,  that  if  we  tell  you  not  of  it,  your 
blood  shall  be  required  at  our  hands,  Ezek.  iii.  18.     Read 
that  text  well,  and  tell  me  then,  whether  you  would  have  us 
such  cruel  enemies  ;  I  had  almost  said  such  devils  to  you 
and  to  ourselves,  as  to  hide  a  matter  of  such  inconceivable 
moment  from  your  eyes  ?     What  good  would  it  do  you  to 
be  thus  flattered  into  hell  ?     What  good  would  it  do  you  to 
have  us  to  be  damned  with  you,  for  being  unfaithful  for  the 
preventing  of  your  damnation  ?    Who  will  laugh  at  this  but 
satan,  the'great  enemy  both  of  us  and  you  ?     Alas,  you  may 
easily  think  with  yourselves  that  it  is  no  pleasure  to  a  mi- 
nister to  tell  you  so  sad  a  story  of  your  misery.     But  if  a 
Balaam  must  say,  ^'  If  Balak  would  give  me  the  house  fuUof 
gold  and  silver,  I  cannot  go  beyond  the  word  of  the  Lord, 
to  do  less  or  more';"  must   not  Christ's  ministers  be  as 
faithful  ?     I  say  again,  if  this  Gospel  were  not  true,  I  would 
be  a  sweeper  of  channels,  rather  than  a  preacher;  and  I 
would  join  in  a  petition  to  have  all  ministers  banished  the 

^  2  Cor.  y.  13.  •  Numb.  xxii.  18» 


TREATISig    OF   CONVERSION.  161 

land:  but  seeing  it  is  otherwise,  I  appeal  ito  your  con- 
sciences, who  it  is  that  wrongeth  you:  whether  Christ  and 
his  ministers  to  tell  you  of  your  danger,  or  yourselves  to 
make  light  of  it,  and  to  refuse  the  cure  ? 


CHAPTER  IV. 


Thus  much  I  have  spoken  to  you,  to  make  you  willing  to 
hear  and  know  the  truth  of  your  condition ;  my  next  desire 
is,  that  you  will  lay  it  well  to  heart.  You  will  never  make 
out  aright  for  the  remedy,  till  you  feel  your  misery.  Alas, 
what  abundance  of  people  are  there  in  the  world  that  never 
were  converted,  and  yet  live  as  carelessly  as  if  all  were  well 
with  them !  Come  among  twenty  that  are  as  merry  as  the 
best,  and  ask  them  one  by  one,  whether  they  are  converted 
or  not?  And  some  will  tell  you,  they  hope  so,  they  cannot 
tell ;  and  some  will  deride  you ;  and  most  of  them  perhaps 
know  not  what  conversion  is,  nor  ever  much  minded  any 
such  thing ;  and  yet  these  very  men  do  read,  or  hear  the 
word  of  God,  that  telleth  them  so  plainly,  that,  **  Except 
they  be  converted,  they  shall  not  enter  into  the  kingdom  of 
heaven/'  What  do  you  think,  sirs,  of  such  words,  when 
you  hear  them,  or  read  them  ?  Are  you  never  touched  at 
the  heart  with  them,  and  doth  conscience  never  make  you 
cry  out,  Alas,  then,  what  will  become  of  me?  Well,  be- 
cause I  would  have  you  sensible  of  your  condition,  lest  you 
should  rest  in  it  to  your  undoing,  I  will  tell  you  a  little  fur- 
ther, what  it  is  in  some  particulars :  and  the  Lord  awake 
you  to  lay  them  to  heart ! 

1.  As  long  as  you  are  unconverted,  you  are  no  true 
chilaren  of  God,  nor  members  of  Jesus  Christ.  And  there- 
fore you  have  no  part  in  that  fatherly,  special  love,  but  still 
stand  before  his  eyes  as  enemies.  For  your  hearts  are  not 
towards  him,  but  toward  the  things  below,  as  you  know,  or 
might  know  if  you  would.  The  world  is  divided  into  two 
'sorts,  the  children  of  God,  and  the  children  of  the  devil :  the 
converted,  and  they  only,  are  the  children  of  God,  as  yon 
may  see,  John  i.  10,  11.  Rom.  viii.  9.  All  the  unconvert- 
ed are  the  children  of  the  devil,  as  Christ  himself  calls  some 
of  them,  John  viii.  44.    And  so  1  John  iii.  10.  it  is  said  of 

VOL.    VII.  M 


162  TREATISE   OF   CONVBRSIOK. 

them  all ;  and  long  ago  they  were  csdled  the  seed  of  the  ser- 
pent. Gen.  iii.  16.    It  is  by  fidth  in  Christ  Jesus  that  we  are 
made  Ae  sons  of  Qod  *;  and  the  unconverted  have  not  trae 
faith.    When  you  go  to  God  in  prayer,  if  you  cannot  caU 
him  your  Father,  what  comfort  can  you  expect?     If  you 
look  up  for  a  blessing  on  your  labours,  and  for  supply  of 
your  wants,  if  it  be  not  to  a  father's  hand  that  you  look, 
how  cold  will  the  comfort  of  them  be !     Why,  it  is  conver- 
sion that  turaeth  the  heart  to  God,  and  if  he  have  not  your 
hearts,  you  are  not  his  children,  and  therefore  none  of  the 
unconverted  are  his  children.    You  are ''  all  by  nature  the 
children  of  wrath  ^ ;"  and  therefore  not  the  children  of  God. 
And  by  regeneration  you  are  new-rbom  children  of  Gk>d: 
and  it  is  conversion  that  is  this  regeneration.    Yoo  may 
call  him  Father  as  long  as  you  will*  but  he  will  n^ever  isall 
you  children   till  you  are  converted.      You  may  think 
you  have  as   good  right  in  him  as  another*   Init  fas  will 
never   own  you,  till  you   are  coavcarted.    Yim    may  .  call 
him.  Lord,  Lord,  even  to' the  last,  but  he  will  tell  yeu^.^ht 
kapweth  you  not^."    It  is  not  nature,  but  renewing  gmee, 
that  putteth  upon  you  his  image,  and  puttelih  within  yoaiiis 
Spirit  and  holy  aature,  and  if  you  have  not  that  image,  that 
Spirit,  that  holy  nature,  whatsoever  you  may  think  youv* 
selves,  he  wiU  never  take  you  for  his  children '^^    All  the 
children  of  God  are  somewhat  like  him :  "  tbey  are  haly,  as 
he  is  holy  ^.''    And  it  is  conversion  that  makethmen  in  their 
places  and  measure  like  to  God.    It  is  plain  therefore,  dutit 
the  unconverted  are  none  of  his  duldren ;  and  then  how  caa 
thciy  expect  his  fatherly  love,  or  his  fatherly  care  oTthem  ia 
the  time  of  their  necessity  ?    The  goodness  of  Ckid  is  the 
foimdation  of  aU  the  creature's  hopes,  but  if  you  will  .keep 
o^tofthe  way  of  his  goodness^  and  yet  expect  the  benefit 
of  it,  y<>u  are  Hke  to  be  deceived  ;  for  an  enemy  or  a  stom- 
ger  cannot  look  for  the  portion  of  a  child. 

And  as  you  are  no  children  of  God,  so  y^ou  aoe  no  ment- 
bers  of  Christ  without  conversion ;  for  we  are  adopted  ealy 
in  Christ ;  and  therefore  children  of  God,  because  memben 
of  Christ,  who  is  his  natural  son.  It  is  conversion  tiMt 
makes  us  members  of  Christ.     I  suppose  you  will  confoss, 

•  Gal.  ill.  26.    Eph.1u.  17.  »»  Eph. Ti.  ».  c  Matt.  vii.  «. 

A  Hal  h.S.     Rora.  yiii.  9.     1  Pet.l.  14.  •  l^t.  i.  W. 


TREiinfiE   OF   CONVBKlftlON.  16S 

tbat  if  yotk  were  not  Christiant,  you  were  miserable :  and  if 
yom  be  not  converted/  you  are  not  true  Christians.     You 
may  kave  the  name,  but  you  have  not  the  nature.     You  may 
keep  a  room  among  those  that  profess  themselves  tlhris- 
tians  ;    but  God  that  knoweth  the  heart  will   ask   you, 
''  Friend,  how  oamest  thou  in  hither,  not  having  on  a  wed- 
ding garment^?''    And  then  you  will  be  speechiess.     That 
man  th&t  hath  no  part  in  Christ,  how  sad  and  miserable  a 
conditiott  i»  he  in !    It  was  the  terrible  description  of  the 
case  of  Simon  Mag«s,  ^'  Thou  hast  no  part  nor  lot  in  this 
matter ;  thou  art  yet  in  the  gall  of  bitterness,  and  the  bond 
ofioiquity'.'^    And  the  proof  was,  "  because  his  heart  was 
not  right  in  the  sight  of  Qod^/'    He  was  baptized,  and  had 
a  kind  of  belief^  but  yet  he  was  not  converted,  and  therefore 
bad  no  part  in  Christ.    All  the  hopes  and  life  of  the  world, 
is  laid  up  in  Jesus  Christ,  1  John  v.  11,  12.  ~  He  therefore 
that  hath  no  part  in  him,  hath  no  hope«  no  life,  no  ground 
of  peace,  or  comfort.    Without  a  Saviour,  how  dare  you 
draw  near  to  God  in  prayer?    How  dare  you  think  of  death 
or  judgment  ?    What  a  sad  appearance  are  you  there  like  to 
make  1    Oh !  woe,  and  ten  thousand  woes  to  that  man,  that 
must  stand  at  the  bar  of  God,  without  a  part  in  the  blood  of 
Clirist,  and  must  answer  there  without  that  advocate.    Nay, 
hs  will  be  ju^e  himself,  and  will  justify  none  but  those  that 
are  his  men^bers.    You  will  sure  confess  yourselves,  thM*  if 
you  have  no  part  in  Christ,  yoi;  are  in  a  most  miserable 
ease.    Why  birethren,  the  case  is  as  plain  in  Scripture  a$ 
tbe  b^b  way,  *  That  if  you  ar^  yet  unconverted,  you  are  no 
true  Christians,  and  have  no  part  in  Christ,  as  to  iBiny  saving 
interest.    Yon  ace  by  nature  in  another  stock,  and  it  is  con- 
verting gmce  that  m;ust  cut  you  out,  and  plant  you  into 
Chriat,  the  living  vine.    This  is  the  very  nature  of  true  c6n- 
version  :  dierefbre  must  men  be  humbled,  and  mortified,  and 
broken  off  feom  themselves  and  all  creatures,  that  they  may 
be  removed  and  planted  into  Jesus  Christ ;  and  may  abide 
in  him,  and  he  in  them,  and  that  in  him  they  may  bring 
Ibirtfa  fruit ;  for  out  of  him  you  are  nothing,  and  can  do  no- 
thing.     And  whatsoever  you  may  profess,  you  are  but 
widiered  bi^anches,  and  must  be  gathered  up,  and  cast  away, 
and  bumt  in  the  fire  ^    It  is  all  one  to  be  a  man,  and  not  to 

'  Matt.  xx?r.  1«.        9  Acts  tiii.  ^S.        ^  Act»  viii.  «1.        *  John  xv,  1*  4—6* 


164  TREATISE   OF   CONVEKSION. 

< 

be  born ;  as  to  be  a  true  Christian,  and  not  to  be  new-bom: 
for  as  ouF  conception  and  birth  is  the  passage  into  the  life 
and  world  of  nature,  so  our  conversion  or  new-birth  is  the 
passage  into  the  life  of  grace.  We  that  know  not  your 
hearts,  do  call  you  all  Christians  that  seem  to  be  so ;  but  if 
we  certainly  knew  who  they  be  that  are  yet  unconverted,  we 
should  tell  these  men  to  their  faces,  they  are  no  Christians. 
Their  souls  are  not  yet  washed  with  the  blood  of  Christ,  nor 
are  they  sanctified  by  his  Spirit,  and  therefore  having  not 
his  Spirit,  they  are  none  of  his  ^.  O  therefore  in  the  name 
of  God  look  about  you  sirs,  and  you  that  have  lived  so 
long  unconverted,  remember  you  have  lived  so  long  without 
a  part  in  Christ.  And  therefore  lament  that  you  have  taken 
on  you  to  be  Christians  so  long,  when  it  is  not  so,  and  now 
be  such  as  you  have  seemed  to  be.  The  union  between 
Christ  and  true  Christians,  is  internal,  in  the  heart :  mere 
Words  and  ceremonies  unite  not  men  to  Christ. 

2.  Consider  further,  I  beseech  you ;  there  is  no  hope  of 
the  salvation  of  any  unconverted  man,  that  so  liveth  and 
dieth.  This  is  true,  whether  you  like  it  or  not.  '  If  you  are 
offended  at  this  saying,  you  are  offended  with  the  saying  of 
Christ  that  redeemed  you :  and  it  were  better  for  you  to  be 
offended  with  your  sins,  than  with  Christ  that  condemheth 
them.  If  you  say,  it  is  a  hard  saying,  I  am  sure  it  is  a  true 
saying,  for  God  cannot  lie.  I  gave  you  the  proofs  of  it 
before  at  large  :  if  you  forget  them,  remember  my  text,  and 
you  need  no  more.  What  hypocrites  then  are  those 
wretches,  that  say  they  will  not  believe  it,  and  yet  for  all 
that,  will  take  on  them  to  be  Christians,  and  to  believe  ike 
word  of  God.  You  read  here  that  Christ  protesteth,  *' Ve- 
rily, that  except  ye  be  converted  ye  shall  not  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  heaven."  And  when  you  read  it,  yet  you  say*, 
you  will  not  believe  it.  And  yet  you  will  say,  that  yon  are 
Christians  and  believe  Christ.  What  contradictions  are 
these !  What !  wilt  thou  worship  a  God,  whom  thou  takest 
to  be  a  liar?  This  cannot  be  :  no  man  can  heartily  trust 
him,  especially  in  so  great  a  matter  as  his  salvation,  whom 
he  takes  for  a  liar.  Thou  wouldst  not  give  God  the  lie? 
If  he  be  not  perfectly  good,  he  is  not  God  :  and  wilt  thou 
then  feign  a  God  that  is  like  to  liars,  or  wicked  men  ?     No 

•*  Rom.  viii.  9. 


TRKATISE   OF   GONVSJ18ION.  165 

marvel  then  if  you  be  liars  yourselves,  if  you  think  God  be 
one ;  for  no  man  is  bound  to  be  better  than  God.  And 
therefore  I  will  never  marvel  to  see  any  man  do  that  evil 
which  he  conceits  tbatOod  liimself  will  do. 

But  what  will  sinners  get  by  this  unbelief?  It  is  but  the. 
way  of  their  own.  self-delusion,  and  undoing.  He  that  will 
not  believe  God,  I  cannot  expect  he  should  believe  me,  or 
any  man  :  nor  can  he  rationally  expect  to  be  believed  him- 
self.   Yet  I  will  ask  him  the  question. 

You  that  see  what  Christ  saith,  and  yet  say  you  will  not 
believe  it,  but  that  unconverted  men  may  be  saved ;  what 
say  you?  Do  you  know  any  man  in  the  world  that  you  will 
believe,  if  he  speak  to  you  with  such  protestation  as  Christ 
here  doth?  If  you  do  not,  it  seems  you  measure  other  men 
by  yourselves.  If  you  do,  I  would  fain  know  of  you,  ^e^. 
ther  you  think  that  any  man  is  better  than  God  ?  I  had 
rather  believe  that  God  is  true,  and  every  man  a  liar»  than 
that  men  are  true>  and  God  is  a  liar,  Rom.  iii.  4.  And  I  would 
farther  ask  you ;  would  you  have  any  man  believe  you,  or 
take  your  words  ?  If  you  say  no,  he  is  not  wise  that  will 
have  any  thing  to  do  with  you,  if  he  can  choose :  and  then 
you  openly  proclaim  what  you  are,  even  such  liars  that  you 
would  not  wish  men  to  believe  you:  but  if  you  say  aye,  then 
I  would  further  ask  you,  whether  you  dare  take  on  you  to 
be  better  than  God?  Why,  thou  sinful  lump  of  clay,  thou 
fiail,  imperfect,  mutable  wretch,  wouldst  thou  be  believed 
thyself,  and  wilt  thou  not  believe  God  ?  Darest  thou  say 
that  thou  art  truer  and  better  than  God,  and  that  thy  word 
is  to  be  taken  before  his  word  ?  If  thou  dare,  do  not  blame 
hunif  he  shortly  stop  that  presumptuous  mouth  of  thine^ 
with  his  confounding  indignation ;  and  if  he  make  that  blas- 
pheming tongue  to  be  speechless,  when  he  shall  say,  "  Take 
him,  bind  him  hand  and  foot,  and  cast^  him  into  utter  dark- 
ness ^"  And  then  thou  wilt  have  weeping  and  gnashing 
of  teeth. 

Well  then,  if  God  be  not  to  be  believed,  no  one  is ;  and 
if  God  be  to  be  believed,  then  no  unconveited  man  shall 
enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  And  is  it  not  time  for, 
you  then  to  consider  of  your  condition,  and  look  about, 
whether  you  be  converted  or  not?     I  pray  you  be  not  so 

I  Matt,  xul  1%,  13. 


100  TRKATI8S   OF   CONVfiRSlOM. 

silly,  as  to  take  these  words  as  mine,  and  so  to  think  that  it 
is  I  that  Biake  the  matter  so  terrible.  If  I  had  not  found 
them  in  the  Bible,  I  had  never  preached  them  to  you ;  and 
we  have  nothing  to  preach,  but  what  we  here  find,  and  to 
open  this  to  you,  that  you  may  understand  it.  It  wiU  be 
nevertheless  true,  if  neither  I,  nor  any  preacher  in  Exlgland 
should  tell  you  of  it ;  or  if  none  of  ns  did  believe  it«  For 
our  unbelief  xnaketh  not  the  word  of  Ood  of  none  effect. 
I  do  therefore  entreat  you  all,  as  you  are  men  of  reason,  see 
that  you  be  truly  converted,  because  no  unconverted  man 
shall  be  saved ;  it  is  Ood  that  saith  it,  it  ift  the  devil  that 
d^eth  it,  and  will  you  believe  the  devil  before  God  )  This 
was  it  that  brought  destruction  first  upon  the  world,  whett 
Qod  told  our  .first  parents,  that  if  they  sinned  they  should 
die ;  and  the  devil  told  them,  they  should  not  die,  and  fhaf 
believed  the  devil  rather  than  God.  And  haVe  yon  thb 
warding,  and  will  you  do  so  too  ?  Is  that  a  Cliristianj  jea, 
is  that  a  man,  or  worthy  thename  of  a  man,  that  will  consi- 
derately believe  the  devil  before  God  ?  And  believe  hisown 
flesh  and  carnal  reason  before  God  ?  Whether  is  Qod  ai 
the  devil  think  you,  the  better,  and  the  more  to  be  b^eved, 
and  the  better  fHend  to  your  souls,  and  more  to  be  trusted 
and  regarded?  O  horrible  wickedness!  that  ever  men 
should  put  us  on  such  a  question,  or  make  any  comparison  I 
And  what  are  you,  that  you  should  presume  to  set  yottr  rea- 
son against  Christ  ?  God  saith,  '  Verily  the  unconrveited 
shall  not  be  saved,'  and  you  say,  for  all  this  you  hope  they 
shall :  and  what  are  you,  that  you  should  be  believed  be- 
fore God?  What,  do  you  know  more  than  he?  Why, 
where  had  you  that  knowledge  ?  Is  there  any  knowledge 
in  the  world,  that  comes  not  from  God  ?  And  doth  h^  gtt« 
you  more  than  he  hath  himself?  Is  a  dungeon  lighter  dm 
the  sun  ?  Or  is  there  any  light  here  below,  but  what  comtfs 
from  the  sun  mediately  or  immediately  ?  Why,  a  dungeon 
may  better  compare  with  the  sun,  and  say,  '  I  have  more 
light  than  thou  -^  than  thou  catist  compare  with  God>  and 
say,  '  I  have  more  knowledge  than  thou  :'  Oh !  that  ever 
dust  and  ashes  should  be  so  blind,  as  iiot  to  know  this !  < 
And  that  ever  they  should  prefer  their  blindness;  to  the  in- 
finite knowledge  of  him  that  made  them !  If  you  do  not, 
how  dare  you  say,  you  hope  that  will  prove  false  which  God 


TIM&ATI9S   OF  i^ONVBiUIION.  467 

hath  spoken?  But  do  you  thiok  that  this  unbelief  will 
make  your  danger  ever  the  less?  No,  it  is  this  that  in- 
creaseth  your  danger.  What  if  a  man  in  the  midst  of  evil, 
will  wink,  or  put  his  eyes  out,  is  he  therefore  safe,  because 
he  seeth  not  his  danger?  Again,  therefbre,*!  beseech  you^ 
if  yo«i  be  men  of  reason,  if  you  be  not  resolved  to  be  your 
own  enemies,  and  to  do  the  worst  you  can  against  yourselvei^, 
if  you  do  not  long  for  damnation ;  O,  then  believe  God,  and 
take  time  while  you  have  it,  and  make  out  for  conyersioa 
without  delay.  And  instead  of  hoping  to  be  saved  against 
the  word  of  God,  and  as  it  were  in  despite  of  him,  and  whe- 
ther he  will  or  no ;  see  that  you  presently  yield  to  the  word, 
by  which*  he  would  convert  yon,  if  you  do  not  resist  it  Be- 
lieve your  present  mis^,  and  look  out  presently  to  Christ 
for  the  remedy,  and  thank  God  that  you  may,  and  thait  the 
day  of  his  patience  is  not  past.  And  if  the  devil  and  sin  do 
still  80  harden  your  hearts,  that  you  will  not  believe,  nor 
take  this  counsel,  remember  that  thou  wast  told,  that  the 
unconverted  shall  not  enter  into  heaven.  Remember  that 
diis  veas  preached  to  thee  from  the  word  of  God,  and  thou 
Wodldst  not  believe  it.  Yea,  thou  shalt  remember  it  whe- 
ther thou  wilt  or  no^ 

3.  I  beseech  you  consider  further ;  that  while  a  man  is 
unconverted,  he  hath  no  sin  pardoned  ;  all  the  sin  that  ever 
he  committed,  is  yet  upon  his  own  score,  and  he  shall  an- 
swer for  it  before  God,  and  suffer  for  it  for  ever,  if  he  thus 
continue.  I  do  not  speak  this  either  of  my  own  head  :  I 
will  now  give  you  but  three  texts  of  Scripture  to  prove  it, 
wluch  is  as  good  as  three  hundred.  Mark  iv.  12.  When 
Ohfist  speaks  of  those  that  were  judicially  hardened,  be- 
canie  they  had  wilfully  resisted  grace,  he  addeth,  *'  Lest  at 
any  time  they  should  be  converted,  and  their  sin  should  be 
foi^ven  thein/^  By  which  you  see,  that  till  men  are  con- 
verted, their  sin  is  not  forgiven  them.  And  Acts  xxvi.  18. 
"  I  send  thee  to  open  their  eyes,  and  turn  them  from  dark- 
ness to  light,  and  from  the  power  of  satan  unto  God,  that 
they  may  receive  forgiveness  of  sins,  and  an  inheritance,'' 
8us.  You  see  then,  that  men  receive  not  forgiveness  of  sins, 
till  they  are- turned  from  the  power  of  sin  to  God.  Ronu  viii. 
30.  lliis  is  the  order  of  God's  saving  grace.  "  Whom  he 
calleth,  (that  is,  converteth)  them  he  justifieth;  and  whom 


166  TREATISE  OF   CONTERSIOM. 

he  jttstifieth/them  he  giorifieth/'    So  that  no  man  is  justi- 
fied, before  he  be  called. 

Consider  then,  what  a  fearful  case  it  is  to  have  a  load  of 
unpardoned  sin  upon  your  souls.  One  unpardoned  sin 
would  as  sure  condemn  a  man  for  ever,  as  one  stab  at  the 
heart  would  kill  a-  man.  What  then  will  so  many  thousands 
do  ?  Poor  sinner,  if  Christianity,  and  humanity  did  not 
bind  me  to  compassionate  thy  soul,  I  would  not  tell  thee 
these  things  to  trouble  thee.  But  I  cannot  forbear,  unless 
I  would  be  cruel  to  thee.  It  seemeth  an  easy  matter  to  a 
felon  to  think  of  his  crime,  while  he  is  not  apprehended, 
because  he  lives  in  hope  to  escape,  and  therefore  he  can 
laugh  when  he  talks  of  the  gallows ;  but  when  he  comes  to' 
it,  the  case  is  altered :  offenders  may  escape  the  justice  of 
men,  but  no  man  can  so  escape  the  hand  of  God.  It  may. 
now  seem  a  small  and  easy  matter  to  you,  to  think  and  talk 
of  unpardoned  sin;  but  the  day  is  coming  when  you  would 
give  all  the  world  if  you  had  it,  for  a  pardon,  as  light  as  yon 
do  now  make  of  it :  all  are  sinners,  but  all  are  not  unpar- 
doned sinners :  it  is  not  all  sinners  that  shall  perish ;  for 
then  we  should  all  perish  ;  but  all  unpardoned  sinners  shall 
perish  ;  and  all  unconverted  sinners  are  unpardoned.  When 
sin  is  pardoned,  the  terror  of  it  is  gone  ;  then  a  man  hath  a 
sure  refuge  against  the  accusation :  he  can  say  at  judgment, 
if  he  be -accused  of  his  sin,  that  he  hath  a  pardon  of  all 
through  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  then  there  is  no  more  to  be 
done  against  him :  but  so  cannot  the  unpardoned.  O,  heavy 
case  for  a  poor  trembling  sinner  to  hear,  *  At  such  a  time 
thou  didst  abuse  God's  creatures,  and  his  name,  and  his 
word,  and  his  ordinances  ;  at  such  a  time  thou  didst  n^lect 
duty,  and  misspend  thy  time,  even  the  Lord's  day,'  and  to 
have  nothing  to  say  against  the  accusation.  What  a  sight 
will  it  be  for  him,  to  have  all  his  sins  set  in  order  before 
him  ^ !  All  the  sins  of  his  youth,  and  his  riper  age ;  of 
ignorance,  and  of  knowledge,  and  have  no  remedy  against 
the  justice  and  the  wrath  of  God !  Once  there  was  a  re- 
medy offered  them,  but  being  finally  neglected,  there  re- 
maineth  no  more  sacrifice  for  sin,  ''  but  a  certain  looking  for 
of  judgment,  and  fiery  indignation  that  shall  devour  the  ad- 
versary °*."    Tell  me,  I  beseech  you,  sirs,  what  do  you  think 

1  Psftl.  I.  21.  »  Heb.  x«  96. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  169 

to  do  by  the  sins  that  yon  are  guilty  of?    Do  you  believe 
that  you  shall  come  to  judgment  for  them,  or  not  ?     If  not ; 
what  do  you  here  among  Christians  ?     If  you  dO|  will  you 
tell  me  what  you  mean  to  say,  or  how  do  you  think  to  come 
off,  and  to  escape  ?    Either  you  must  have  a  pardon,  or 
not :  if  you  have  not  pardon,  what  do  you  think  will  become 
of  you?      There  is  no  question  of  it,  but  an  unpardoned 
sinner  must  be  damned,  as  sure  as  the  devils  themselves  are 
damsTed :  for  Christ  telleth  you  this  will  be  the  sentence, 
"  Depart  ye  cursed  into  everlasting  fire,  prepared  for  the 
devil  and  his  angels  "."  O,  woe  to  that  man  that  ever  he  was 
bom,  that  shall  stand  at  God's  bar  with  unpardoned  sin.    It 
will  be  heavier  upon  thy  soul,  than  a  mountain  upon  thy 
body,  and  press  thee  down  to  everlasting  misery.    Unpar- 
doned sin  is  the  very  fuel  of  hell.    If  angels  and  men  should 
all  join  together  to  save  an  unpardoned  sinner  at  judgment, 
they  could  not  do  it.    What  hope  have  you  then  to  escape, 
or  to  see  the  face  of  God  with  comfort?      I  beseech  you, 
bethink  you  what  you  mean  to  say,  or  how  you  think  to 
come  off?    Should  a  wise  man  be  going  to  such  a  judgment, 
and  never  once  think  what  to  say  for  himself,  or  how  to  es- 
cape when  he  comes  thither?     Will  you  then  plead,  th&t 
*  you  hope  you  are  pardoned  by  the  blood  of  Christ  V    Why, 
alas !  tlmt  will  be  utterly  vain ;  for  there  is  no  hope  that  God 
will  be  false  to  his  word ;  and  God  hath  assured  you,  that 
the  blood  of  Christ  and  the  mercy  of  God  shall  never  par- 
don any  sinner,  but  he  that  repenteth  and  is  converted  of 
his  sin.    Will  you  say,  '  Though  I  am  not  pardoned  now, 
yet  I  hope  I  may  beg  pardon  then.'    And  do  you  think  to 
cry  aloud,  and  persuade  the  Judge  ?    Oh !  if  that  would  do, 
what  a  cry  would  there  then  be  !    How  many  thousand  and 
thousand  souls  would  cry,  '  Mercy,  mercy.  Lord,  on  a  poor 
miserable  wretch !     O  pity  a  loat  sinner !     O  do  not  con- 
demn thy  creature ;  do  not  deliver  me  up  to  the  tormentor ; 
do  not  send  me  away  from  thy  presence  into  those  flames  ! 
0,  as  ever  thou  hadst  pity  on  a  sinner,  have  pity  on  me.' 
If  crying,  and  praying  would  then  serve  the  turn,  how  would 
they  ring  in  the  ears  of  Christ!     Oh!  but  it  is  then  too 
late !  too  late,  sinners !  you  should  have  done  this  sooner. 
The  day  of  grace  is  now  past,  and  there  is  no  retnedy.    Now 

B  Matt.  MT.  4t. 


170  TJtfiATISE   OF   CONTERSUW. 

prayer  might  do  good  (with  forsaking  sin  through  the  blood 
of  Christ)  and  men  ^ill  not  use  it,  but  then  it  will  da  no 
good  at  all. 

Do  not  say  that  I  make  this  terrible  docirine  xxf  layself ; 
the  Scripture  is  full  of  it.  Christ  hath  told  you  ores  and 
over  of  it ;  that  if  you  are  then  found  without  ihe  oil  of  sar- 
inggraoe  in  your  lamps^  you  shall  in  vain  cry  'Lord,  Lordt 
open  to  us  ;'  and  long  enough  may  you  knock,  before  you 
can  have  any  hearing ;  but  Christ  will  say,  "  Verily^  Iknew 
you  not^^'  It  is  not  they  that  will  cry  **  Lord,  Lord,  Aat 
shall  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  but  they  that  do  the 
will  of  our  Father  which  is  in  heaven.''  For  many  in  Aaft 
day  will  plead  acquaintance  with  Gihrist,  to  whom  he  wili 
profess,  "  I  never  knew  you,  depart  from  me  all  ye  diet 
work  iniquity/'  They  are  his  own  words  in  Matt,  vil 
21 — 23.  I  tell  you  again,  if  all  the  ai^ls  in  heaTen-  dbould 
fiedl  down  before  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  beg.  for  jciUf 
(which  they  will  never  do)  and  beseech  him  to  pardcm  yonv 
sins,  he  will  not  do  it*  For  it  is  in  this  life  that  pudoi 
must  be  gotten,  or  never.  We  have  no  hope  to  be  whc^ 
free  from  sin,  but  we  may  procure  the  pardon  oC  it  throu^ 
Christy  and  if  it  be  not  done  now,  it  will  never  be  doot. 
Now  must  the  pardon  be  procured,  and  sued  out,  nxkd  then 
it  must  be  brought  forth  that  you  may  not  be  condemned. 

Now,  as  ever  you  would  stand  with  boldnaus  in  judg- 
ment ;  sinners,  repent  and  be  converted,  that  you  all  nmff 
have  the  pardon  of  all  your  sins.  As  ever  you  would  stand 
then  at  Christ's  right  hand,  and  not  be  sent  into  everlasting 
torment,  look  about  you  now  for  the  pardon  of  y<>ur  sins; 
for  there  was  never  man  that  got  a  pardon  after  he  was 
dead,  who*  died  unpardoned.  I  give  you  but  the  same  cran« 
sel  which  Peter  gave  the  Jews.  "  Repent  ye,  therefore,  and 
be  converted,  that  your  sins  may  be  blotted  out,  when  the 
times  of  refreshing  shall  come  from  the  presence  of  the 
Lord  P."  I  pray  you  mai*k  these  words;  you  see  there  no 
man's  sins  will  then  be  blotted  out,  but  those  that  now  re- 
pent and  are  converted. 

4.  The  next  thing  that  I  would  entreat  you  to  consideri 
is  this  ;  that  as  long  as  you  are  unconverted,  you  are  the 
servants  and  slaves  of  satan,  and  under  his  power,  and  kd 

o  Matt.  XXV.  11,  t«.  P  Acts  iii.  19. 


TR£ATIS£   OF   CONVERSION.  171 

>put  'as  bis  captives  at  his  will.    It  may  be  you  do  not 
link  so  much,  oor  believe  this,  but  perhaps  would  take  it 
I  to  be  told  so.    But  God  bath  told  us  that  so  it  is.    There 
re  but  two  sorts  of  men  in  the  world,  the  slaves  of  sin,  and 
le  servants  of  Christ.     All  the  world  is  in  two  armies :  sa- 
in is  the  general  of  one,  and  Christ  of  the  other,  and  these 
wq  are  in  continual  conflict  with  one  another.    In  his  first 
ssault  with  Adam  our  first  father,  satan  overcame  him  by 
rawing  him  to  sin,  and  thereby  got  him  and  his  posterity 
ito  his  power.    The  Lord  Jesus  comes  of  purpose  to  res- 
oe  us   out  of  his  hands,  and  this  he  doth  by  converting 
jBce,  and  justification  thereupon.    So  that,  till  a  man  be 
^averted,  he  remaineth  in  the  bondage  and  slavery  of  the 
lisvjil ;  and  when  he  is  converted,  he  is  entered  among  the 
'neemeuand  sons  of  God. 

.  "Wbat  think  you  of  this  ?    Is  it  not  a  miserable  state  to 
)e  ihe  devil's  bond-slaves  ?    Why,  if  you  will  believe  God, 
J^  is  the  case  of  all  that  are  unconverted :  nay,  you  may 
ImI  it  in  yourselves.    Do  you  not  feel  that  your  wills  are 
x>.  do  evil  ?    That  he  leadetb  you  to  worldliness,  to  drunk- 
miess,  or  wickedness  at  his  will?    If  he  bid  you  rail  or 
twear,  you  do  it.  .  If  he  bid  you  neglect  everlasting  life,  you 
lo  it,  and  you  have  no  heart  to  God  and  the  life  to  come. 
Why,  these  are  the  marks  of  satan's  bondage.    Hear  whe- 
ther the  Sripture  speaks  it  not  plainly :  '^  Know  ye  not  that 
(0.  whom  ye  yield  yourselves  .servants  to  obey,  his  servants 
jfe  are  to  whom  ye  obey,  whether  of  sin  unto  death,  or  of 
(»)»^ence  unto  righteousness **.''    *'  He  that  committeth  sin 
IB  pf  the  devil.    In  this  the  children  of  God  are  manifest, 
sod  the  children  of  the  devil :  whosoever  doth  not  righteous- 
n^s,  is  not  of  God  '.'*    The  meaning  of  both  is,  that  he 
that  hath  the  main  bent  of  his  heart  and  life  for  sin,  that 
i^y  for  the  flesh  and  the  world,  is  of  the  devil  :  and  he  that 
Itath  the  maia  bent  of  his  heart  and  life  for  God,  that  is,  for 
righteousness,  is  a  converted  child  of  God.    So,  2  Pet.  ii. 
19.  *'  For  of  ^hom  a  man  is  overcome,  of  the  same  is  he 
brought  in  bondage."    And  in  2  Tim.  ii.  26.  they  are  said 
to  be  in  the  "  snare  of  the  devil,  taken  captive  of  him  at  his 
wiU."    And  in  Acts  xxvi.  18.  it  is  expressly  said,  that  con- 
version '*  turneth  men  from  the  power  of  satan  unto  God.''  So 

4  Bom.  ▼].  16.  >^  1  John  Hi.  8. 10. 


172  TREATUB   OF   CONVERBIOM. 

that  you  see  the  case  is  plain  in  Scripture :  that,  till  men 
are  converted^  they  are  in  the  power  of  satan. 

It  may  be  you  perceive  not  the  misery  of  your  condition ; 
and  no  marvel,  for  satan's  servants  are  all  volunteers,  and  he 
useth  to  keep  his  possession  in  peace,  till  a  stronger  than 
he  shall  come  upon  him/  and  cast  him  out ;  Luke  xL  21. 
O  that  the  eyes  of  poor  sinners  were  but  opened  to  see 
who  it  is  that  leadeth  them  about !     Poor  soul !  didst  thou 
but  see  that  the  devil  is  thy  ruler^  that  he  standeth  by  thee, 
and  puts  thee  on  in  all  thy  wickedness,  it  would  sure  make 
thee  desire  to  change  thy  master.     You  are  afraid  of  seeing 
him  appear  to  you  in  any  shape,  and  if  you  should  but.see 
him,  it  would  make  your  joints  to  tremble.    O !  why  are 
you  not  afraid  to  be  ruled  by  him,  and  to  follow  him  to  jfour 
destruction  ?    Why  are  you  not  more  afraid,  lest  you  should 
dwell  with  him  for  ever?     A  man  that  is  in  the  favour  of 
God,  were  not  much  the  worse  if  he  should  see  all  the  de- 
vils in  hell,  no  more  than  a  soldier  to  see   the  enemies, 
when  they  are  conquered ;  but  a  man  that  is  unconverted,  I 
whether  he  see  them  or  not,  should  tremble  to  think  that  be  ^ 
is  yet  in  their  snares.     O  that  you  did  but  know,  and  well   || 
consider,  that  it  is  the  devil  himself  within  you  that  cavil-   y 
leth  against  the  word  of  God,  and  contradicteth  the  frutb,   i 
and  draweth  you  to  doubt,  and  enticeth  you  to  sin.     If  yon   i 
did  hear  the  devil  say  to  you  with  a  voice,  *  Come,  follow  me   . 
to  the  alehouse,'  it  would  sure  frighten  you  from  going.    ^ 
Or  if  you  heard  him  speak  out,  and  say  against  the  Gospel,    . 
'  It  is  not  true,  do  not  you  believe  it,'  how  would  this  affect, 
you?-  Why,  it  is  he  that  speaks  this  in  you,  whenever  you 
have  these  thoughts  in  your  hearts.    Your  own   corrupt 
hearts  are  the  mother,  but  he  is  the  father  of  them  alL 
When  you  feel  such  thoughts  as  these  within  you,  that  sin 
is  a  small  matter,  and  that  God  doth  not  hate  it  so  much' as 
preachers  talk  of,  and  that  God  will  not  condemn  all  the 
unconverted,  that  so  live  and  die,  and  that  men  may  be 
saved  without  a  holy  life,  and  that  this  is  but  preciseness, 
and  more  ado  than  needs,  all  this  is  as  truly  the  very  in- 
ward persuasions  and  motions  of  the  dovi^  as  if  you  heard 
him  speak  it  openly  in  a  voice.     It  is  he  that  bids  you  '  go 
on  in  sin  and  fear  not,  and  yet  at  least  take  a  little  more  of 
your  fleshly  pleasure,  and  if  you  must  turn,  let  it  not  be 


^ 


TREATISE   OP   CONVERblON.  173 

yet.'     It  is  he  that  bids  you  hate  them  that  endeavour  your 
conversion,  and  make  a  scorn  of  those  that  fear  God.    It  is 
he  that  bids  you  lose  your  time,  especially  on  the  Lord's 
day,  and  talk  of  filthiness  or  vanity,  and  rail,  or  lie,  or  back- 
bite, or  hate  your  brother ;  as  truly  as  if  you  saw  and  heard 
Um,  this  is  he.    The  Scripture  telleth  us  so,  that  this  is  his 
work,  which  Christ  did  come  into  the  world  to  destroy*. 
We  can  certainly  know  the  workman  by  his  work.    So  bad 
a  work  hath  no  better  an  author.     I  beseech  you,  therefore, 
in  the  name  of  God,  bethink  you  where  you  are,  and  what  a 
case  you  are  in.     Have  you  known  all  this  while,  that  you 
were  in  the  power  and  captivity  of  the  devil?    What,  and 
yet  be  so  merry  or  careless  as  you  have  been?    What, sleep 
quietly,  and  live  quietly,  and  yet  be  in  such  a  case  ?    Why, 
if  a  man  be  taken  prisoner  by  the  Turks,  and  laid  in  a  dun- 
geon, or  put  into  their  gallies,  how  sadly  doth  he  take  it  ? 
How  many  a  sigh  and  groan  comes  from  him,  to  think  where 
he  is,  and  what  a  case  he  is  in,  in  comparison  of  other  men ! 
And  many  a  time  he  cries,  *  O  that  I  were  free  !'    And  yet 
an  the  servants  of  satan  are  willing  of  their  bondage.   This 
it  it  that  makes  you  deserve  the  less  pity,  because  it  is  your 
own  doing,  and  you  will  not  be  delivered.     A  Turkish  slave 
would  be  delivered  if  he  could,  and  would  give  a  thousand 
thanks  to  him  that  would  deliver  him :  but  you  might  be 
deUvered  and  will  not.    Christ  hath  provided  a  remedy  in 
his  blood,  he  offereth  it  to  you,  and  entreateth  you  to  ac- 
cept it,  and  yet  you  will  not.     He  hath  commanded  us  to 
entreat  you,  and  you  will  not  be  entreated.    "  God  would 
Iiave  all  men  saved,  and  come  to  the  knowledge  of  his  truth,'' 
and  many  will  not  be  saved.     Christ  **  would  gather  them 
as  a  hen  gatherieih  her  chickens  under  her  wing,  and  they 
will  not  ^"    When  God  offers  you  help,  and  ministers  offer 
.  jou  help,  and  godly  friends  offer  you  help,  and  fain  they 
would  have  you  delivered,  and  you  will  not ;  what  pity  do 
you  deserve,  if  you  perish  everlastingly  ?    It  is  a  strange 
thing  to  see  how  people  hate  the  devil,  and  yet  love  his 
Service !     How  they  speak  ill  of  him  and  yet  obey  him ! 
Bow  they  even  spit  at  his  name,  as  men  that  abhor  him, 
and  yet  will  not  be  persuaded  by  any  means  that  we  can 
use,  to  come  out  of  this  captivity,  when  the  doors  are  set 

*  1  John  ill.  8.  *  1  rim.  ii.  4.  Matt.  xxui.  37. 


174  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

open  by  Christ  that  bought  them*  Not  that  I  suspect  that 
any  of  you  do  really  love  him ;  for  I  know  that  God  hath 
put  an  enmity  in  the  beginning,  even  between  the  nature  of 
satan  and  of  man  "•  I  know  you  hate  him,  even  while  you 
wilfully  senre  him.  But  the  matter  Iteth  here  ;  though  yott 
hate  him,  you  love  the  sin,  because  it  is  pleasant  to  flesh 
and  blood,  and  you  do  not  know,  or  will  not  consider  that  it  I 
is  he  indeed  that  leadeth  you  to  it ;  or  else. yon  duntiifll  : 
continue  in  that  case.  Well  sirs,  lay  this  to  heart,  and  be- 
Uere  that  all  men  are  slaves  to  satan  till  they  be  con¥eited; 
and  if  you  are  not  willing  to  live  and  die  his  slaves^  md  to 
be  used  for  ever  afr  hig  slaves,  delay  not  your  conversion; 

5.  Moreover,  the  misery  of  the  unconverted  doth  further 
appear  in  this;  that  while  men  are  unconverted,  npdullg 
that  they  do  cto  truly  please  God.  There  are  many  woffcs  j 
which,  for  the  matter  of  them,  are  commanded,  whi^sh  «nck  j 
men  may  do,  bat  yet  there  are  so  many  defects,  and  s4  ' 
much  of  the  venom  of  their  corruption  miKt  tft  them,  that  ! 
God  hath  no  delight  in  them,  Init  doth  abhor  them.  I  I 
would  not  be  misunderstood  in  this,  as  if  I  said  or  thought,  i 
that  therefore,  all  that  the  unconverted  can  do,  is  to  no  fm*  i 
pose,  in  order  to  their  salvation  :  and  that,  therefoM,  it  ii  i 
as  good  for  them  to  let  all  alone,  and  sit  still  and  be  care-  P 
less  till  God  shall  convert  them ;  or  as  if  it  were  betteri  or  ^ 
as  good  for  th^oi  not  to  pray^  as  to  pray,  and  not  to  hear  or  W 
read,  or  ask  advice,  as  to  do  it,  because  that  all  is  displestf*  ^ 
ing  to  Giod.  But  I  mean,  and  say,  that  there  is  more  k  I- 
their  best  duties  to  displease  God,  than  to  please  him,  and  H 
that  they  are  such  as  he  hath  made  them  no  promise  of  «^  N 
cepting,  so  far  as  to  give  them  any  special  grace,  or  tesntA  ^ 
tbeneupon.  Or  if  this  please  not  any,  y-et  this  much  is'oift  i 
of  controversy,  that  the  duties  of  no  unconverted  'man  are  ' 
pleasing  to  God,  so  as  to  prove  their  persons  plea^nglo  I 
him,  as  his  own  servants  are ;  and  that  God  takes  no  d^  f 
light  in  their  duties,  as  he  doth  in  those  that  are  performed  > 
fay  the  righteous.  And  thus  at  least  you  may  take  it  as  bs-  I 
yofid  all  question,  that  God  is  comparatively  displeased  : 
with,  and  abhors  even  the  best  works  that  are  performed  ^ 
by  the  unconverted.  The  works  of  wicked  men  are  of  (omi 
sorts.    (1.)  Some  are  such  as  have  no  tendency  to  their  con- 

■<5en.  iii.  lo. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  175 

nioB  and  recovery,  nor  to  the  good  of  any  others,  but  are 
cber  plainly  wicked  for  the  tiabstance,  or  but  indifferent  for 
e  matter,  and  wicked  in  the  ends  and  manner.    These  Ood 
iluNTs  in  thehighest  degree*    (2.)  And  there  are  some  that 
»  coottDon  civil  actions,  in  themselves  neither  good  or 
liJL    But  yet,  because  the  common  ends  of  such  ave  wrong, 
id  die  manner  sinful,  these  therefore  are  said  to  beabomi- 
Itioii  to  the  Lord.  (3.)  And  then  there  are  their  best  works 
hich  are  done  by  them  with  evil  intents,  to  settle  them  in 
Mir  i^resent  state,  without  any  thoughts  of  turning  from  it, 
I  Uuifar  ahns-deeds  which  are  done  to  merit,  or  to  quiet  their 
itecienees  in  a  sinful  state,  or  the  like.    These  also  God 
ihdftetli,  for  all  the  good  that  is  in  them.    For  these  tiiey 
iJMi  widked  men,  wickedly,  for  all  the  goodness  that  is  in 
10  actioii^    (4.)  But  l^en,  there  are  some  actions  of  the  un- 
Mtvetted,  that  are  in  order  to  their  conversion,  and  these 
oi  fteoepteth  not,  so  as  to  accept  their  persons,  as  of  one 
iconciled  to  him  ia  Christ,  nor  as  he  accepteth  the  works 
Pkis  people,  nor  so  as  to  be  engaged  by  promise  for  their 
ipifld*   But  yet  he  so  far  accepteth  them,  that  they  are  or- 
iMHRly  the  way  in  which  he  will  be  found ;  and  in  which 
•^nll  give  dicDtti  grea/ter  things.    They  are  means  of  his 
ppibiitiiig  for  the  coinverBion  of  their  souls,  which  he  hath 
ot  appointed  theat  to  vse  in  vain.    ^So  that  by  this  time 
DEB  any  see  my  meaning  here  in  this  partici:dar.    The  three 
rat  sorts  of  the  works  of  wicked  men,  Qod  doth  plainly  ab- 
OT,  ev'en  tiheir  works  that  are  both  such  for  matter  and  end ; 
mi  their  civil  and  aatmral  works,  that  are  wicked  for  the 
•d;  »nd  dieir  religious  works,  that  are  wicked  for  ihe  end. 
iBlibe  fourth  sort,  which  are  works  that  are  done  in  order 
0^  their  conv^sion,  though  liiey  please  not  €bd  as  the 
nbIs  of  the  regenerate  do,  yet  he  abhorreth  them  not  as  he 
loth  the  rest:    for  e«  l^ey  come  from  a  common  failii, 
hesgii  not  from  a  special  fliith,  so  they  may  please  Ood  in 
i  oemmon  manner,  thmigh  not  in  a  special.    And  as  they 
lave  <eA  ead  Aat  is  good  in  its  place  ;  that  is,  the  saving  of 
teir  aomls  by  turning  from  tiieir  sins,  though  they  have  not 
Iht  true  ritimate  end  of  the  eaiats  ;  that  is,  the  glory  and 
ploaaing  of  God  everlastingly,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him 
therein,  so  are  they  proportionably  acceptable  to  God.     So 
that  it  is  the  first  three  sorts  of  action  that  I  mean  in  this 


176  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

application.    And  in  regard  of  them,  I  say  it  if&  a  matter  of 

great  terror  to  the  unconverted,  that  God  abhorreth  all  that 

they  do. 

«  I  will  first  prove  it  to  you,  and  then  shew  you  the  terror 
of  it.  As  for  their  wicked  works,  there  is  no  question,  they 
are  abominable  to  God,  and  he  hateth  them.    See  Jer.  bdv. 

4.    Psal.  liii.  1. 14.    Ezek.  xvi.  52.     Tit.  i.  16.    Pror.  viii. 

16.  xi.  1.  20.  xii.  22.    And  the  "very  thoughts  of  the  widi-  , 
ed  are  abominable  to  him,''  as  Prov.  xv.  26.    But  the  ques- 
tion is  of  their  better  works.     And  we  find  in  S^criptiire, 
that  their  very  trades,  and  works  of  their  callings,  are  sin. 
The  '*  ploughing  of  the  wicked  is  sin* ;"  or  if  perhaps  the 
sense  of  that  text  may  be  that  their  preparations  and  con- 
trivances are  sinful,  which  are  metaphorically  called  plough- 
ing, yet  of  their  best  works  the  Scripture  is  plain.    The 
^*  sacrifice  of  the  wicked  is  an  abomination  to  the  Lord,  but 
the  prayer  of  the  upright  is  his  delight  ^.'^    Note,  that  he 
saith  not,  the  humiliation  or  the  repentance,  or  thoughts  of 
conversion  that  may  be  in  a  wicked  man,  but  his  sacrifice, 
which  is  somewhat  that  he  thinketh  God  should  accept,  as 
a  matter  of  worth.    And  therefore  it  was  that  Cain's  sacri- 
fice was  abhorred,  when  Abel's  was  accepted.     And  that 
you  may  see  that  it  is  not  only  because  of  the  wicked  de- 
signs that  they  may  have  in  it,  the  Spirit  of  God  speaketb 
of  both.     "  The  sacrifice  of  the  wicked  is  an  abomination, 
how  much  more  when  he  bringeth  it  with  a  wicked  mind'." 
Yea,  the  very  prayer  of  wicked  men  is  abominable.     Yet  do 
not  say  that  God  is  a  respecter  of  persons,  and  will  take 
that  well  from  one,  which  he  hateth  from  another  withoat 
any  just  cause.     For  there  is  just  cause.     If  you  will  not  do 
the  main  tbings  that  God  requireth,  he  careth  not  for  the 
re^t.    "  He  that  turneth  away  his  ear  from  hearing^the  law, 
even  his  prayer  shall  be  an  abomination  *."    The  law  of  God 
9ommandeth  you  to  take  another  course,  and  condemned  " 
your  wicked  life,  and  if  you  will  turn  away  yoiir  ear.  from 
this  law,  that  would  turn  away  your  heart  from  sin,  God  will 
not  accept  your  prayer.    '*  If  I  regard  iniquity  in  my  heart 
God  will  not  hear  my  prayer  ^."    "  He  that  calleth  on  the 
name  of  the  Lord,  must  depart  from  iniquity  *'." .  Yea,  the 

«  Prov,  xxi.  4.  y  Prov.  xv.  18.  »  Prov.  xxi.  tT, 

»  ProT,  xxviil  9.  •»  Psal.  Ixvi.  18.  <=  f  Tim.  li.  19, 


TREATISE    OF   CONVJBRSION.  177 

fasting  and  self-afflicting  of  the  wicked,  is  disregarded'. 
Little  doth  a  poor  blind  sinner  think  when  he  is  boasting  of 
his  praying  and  religious  duties^  that  God  abhorreth  them ; 
but  if  they  be  unconverted,  they  will  find  it  so.    "  Ye  are 
they  that -justify  yourselves  before  men,  but  God  knoweth 
your  hearts  ^."    For  that  which  is  highly  esteemed  among 
men,  is  abomination  in  the  sight  of  God.     And  one  reason 
is,  because  that  the  person  himself  is  such  as  God  doth  hate ; 
and  therefore  no  wonder  if  he  hate  his  works.     For  a  fig- 
tree  beareth  not  thorns  and  thistles,  nor  the  bramble  grapes, 
but  as  the  tree  is,  so  is  the  fruit.    "  Thou  hatest  all  the 
workers  of  iniquity.    The  wicked  is  made  for  the  day  of 
evil,  and  every  one  that  is  proud  in  heart,  is  an  abomination 
to  the  Lord*."    Though  men  bless,  yet  the  Lord  abhorreth 
them^    When  be  seeth  their  wickedness,  he  abhors,  even 
.  those  that  profess  themselves  his  people^.    Yea,  and  his  own 
sanctuary,  and  the  very  pUce  of  his  worship  ^.    Especially 
when  they  often  deal  falsely  with  him  '•    And  no  wonder 
when  wicked  men  do  loathe  the  Lord  and  his  service,  if  he 
do.  also  loathe  them.    '*  My  soul  loatheth  them,  and  their 
soul  also  abhorreth  me  ^.'^     Sinners,  the  case  in  a  word  is 
ihis :  God  is  a  Spirit,  and  will  be  worshipped  in  spirit  and 
in  .truth,  and  such  worshippers  only  doth  he  choose ;  and 
wicked  men  can  give  him  but  the  shell,  and  the  shadow  of 
his  service.    God  made  all  things  for  himself,  and  will  ac- 
cept of  nothing  but  what  is  intended  for  himself.     But 
wicked  men  are  turned  firom  God,  and  do  all  for  their  carnal 
selves,  even  when  they  pretend  to  do  it  for  God.     It  is  your 
hearts  that  God  hath  lost,  and  your  hearts  that  he  regardeth, 
tod  your  hearts  he  will  have  again,  or  he  will  have  nothing; 
but  you  may  vCven  keep  all  to  yourselves  if  you  will,  except 
you  will  give  him  this.    What  need  hath  God  of  your 
prayers,  or  other  services,  or!  what  good  can  you  do  him  by 
all  ?     It  is  yourselves  that  he  desireth,  and  then  he  will  ac- 
cept your  service,  though  he  need  it  not,  and  will  make  it 
good  to. you,  though  it  can  do  no  good  to  him.    Therefore 
diis  is  his  first  demand :  *'  My  son,  give  me  thine  heart ' ;" 
and  if  you  deny  him  this,  you  deny  him  all.    He  careth  not 

« Isa.  Iviii;  J,  3.  *  Luke  xvi.  15.  •  Psal.  ▼.  5.  Pro  v.  i  v.  5. 

f  Ptti.  X.  3.  V  Deat.  Hi.  19.  **  Lament,  ii.  7. 

>  PaaL  IxxvUi.  59.  ^  Zech.  xl  8.  >  Prov.  xxiii.  126. 

VOL.    VH.  N 


178  TREATISE   OF  CONTERSIOK. 

for  your  lips,  nor  yoar  religious  duties,  without  it.     If  you 
will  kiot  first  give  him  yourselves,  he  will  not  accept  of  any 
thing  that  you  offer  him.    And,  indeed,  when  it  is  not  in  a 
returning  way,  but  in  an  offering  way  that  wicked  men  will 
iserve  him,  he  plainly  telleth  thetn  it  is  in  Tain,  and  tellelh 
them  he  hateth  it,  and  bids  them  keep  it  with  them ;  for  he 
will  have  none  of  it  till  they  leave  their  sins^  and  give  up 
themselves  to  him.    **  To  What  purpose  is  the  multitude  of 
your  sacrifices  to  me  ?  saith  the  Lord  :     I  am  full  of  your 
burnt-offerings.    When  you  come  to  appear  before  me,  who 
Required  this  at  your  hands,  to  tread  in  my  courts  ?     Bring 
tio   more  vain  oblations ;    inbense  is   an  abominatioti  to 
me ;  the  hew  modns  and  sabbaths,  the  calling  of  assemblies, 
I  cannot  away  with,  it  is  iniquity^  even  the  soiismn  me^ 
ings  :  your  new  moons,  and  your  appointed  feasts,  my  sold 
hateth,  they  are  a  trouble  to  tne ;  I  am  weari^  to  bidar  fterid. 
And  when  ye  spread  forth  your  hands,  I  will  hide  mine  eyes 
from  you ;  yea,  when  yoU  ¥aake  l^ahy  prayers,  I  Will  Heft 
hear ;  your  hands  are  fuil  of  blood.  Wash  ye,  ihake  y6u  ohto, 
put  away  the  evil  of  your  doings  from  befdt^  inihe  eyeH ; 
c)ease  to  db  evil ;   learn  to  do  well.     Come  new,  abd  let  ire 
treason  together,  saith  the  Lord  °*.''    If  a  ]prince  have  Sub- 
jects, that  ate  in  rebellion,  he  will  hot  take  any  gift  M  their 
hands,  till  they  come  in  theinselves  :  no  ih'ot^  wiil  Oed  at 
your  hands.    Iliere  ij^  no  true  minister  of  the  GKyspely  but 
feeleth  some  exposition  of  this  in  hift  own  heSart;    If  tlie  )pecy- 
ple  would  send  us  any  tokens  of  t&eir  love  tod  expr^sioiois 
of  kindness,  if  it  were  hot  fot  exasperating  them>  who  woidd 
not  return  it  them  with  contempt,  as  long  as  they  inefilse  to 
be  reformied,  and  will  not  yield  to  the  word  of  l^e  Gospel? 
To  let  go  theit  goods,  if  it  were  all  they  have>  for  usji  is  la 
matter  that  we  regard  not,  if  they  will  not  let  go  their  sins; 
because  we  l^ek  not  theirs,  but  them  :  and  mhch  more  is  it 
so  with  Jesus  Ohrist.    If  you  should  be  as  punetufal  in  his 
worship  as  any^  and  give  him  never  so  much  of  yemr  knees 
or  tongues,  yea,  or  yoitfr  goods,  and  all  you  h&ve,  he  ilirillnot 
take  it  as  a  thing  that  pteaseth  him,  unless  withal  you  ^¥e 
him  yourselves.    *'  If  I  suffer  my  body  to  be  burnt/*  Misth 
Paul,  ''  and  have  not  love,  it  availeth  nothing  ^*^     Many  a 
poor  unconverted  wretch  considereth  not  this,  that  comes 

°» I$a.  L  11—14.  n  1  Cor.  xiil.  3. 


TRBATISB   OF   CONV£RSION.  170 

constantly  to  churchj  and  receiveth  the  s^ranient,  and  useth 
^ome  kind  of  praying  every  day,  and  thinks,  that  if  God 
should  not  aci^pt  qf  such  as  them,  there  should  almost  npr 
body  be  saved ;  and  therefore  he  makes  no  question  of  his 
acceptance.  O  but  on^  thing  is  necessary,  and  that  is  yet 
wantii^  If  (rod  had  your  hearts  first,  then  he  would  take 
tbe  rest  in  good  part :  but  when  the  world  hath  your  he^ts, 
sn4  though  you  sit  and  hear  with  some  delight,  as  if  you 
were  bis  people,  yet  your  "  heart  goetb  after  your  covetousr 
ne»B  P."  When  your  fleshly  pleasure  and  profit  have  ypur 
beartffiu  Qpd  will  not  regard  your  service,  were  it  much  mpre. 
'  TKcw  it  is  the  work  of  conversion  to  bring  the  heart  to 
Qod,  that  was  never  brought  to  him,  and  set '  upon  him  ber 
fore :  therefore  till  this  work  be  done,  all  is  but  abominable. 
''  For  without  &ith  it  is  impossible  to  please  God  \**  You 
think  tp  live  to  the  flesh,  and  then  to  please  God  by  your 
good  praying  and  meanings,  or  by  being  of  the  right  relir 
gjypn,  pr  by  some  good  works ;  but  remember  what  God  hizn- 
s^If  hftth  told  you,  who  be^t  knoweth  what  it  is  that  pleafr 
stb  bim ;  "  They  that  are  in  the  flesh  cannot  please  God ' ;'' 
and  all  that  are  unconverted,  are  said  to  be  in  the  flesh,  be- 
^usie  tjiey  "  mind  the  things  of  the  flesh,''  and  live  accord- 
ing jto  th^iir  carnal  inclinations,  and  for  carnal  ends.  O  what 
a  ba4  consideration  would  this  he  to  your  hearts,  if  you  did 
Jlnat  ippd^rpibind  and  feel  your  .own  condition!  You  talk 
i^;fifi^  tbi^  man  and  that  man  for  being  of  a  wrong  religion, 
fipd  ypn  think  you  are  better  than  this  party  or  t^ajt,  wh^i^ 
US  you  are  miserable,  whatsoever  your  religion  be,  because 
yon  are  hes^ly  of  no  religion.  You  think  God  wili  be 
plteased  with  your  service,  and  it  doth  but  add  to  ihe  load  of 
yoor  sin.  You  ire^d  the  word,  and  think  you  do  God  service 
by  it,  when  you  do  but  read  your  own  condemnation,  ber 
canse  you  have  your  hearts  against  the  doctrine  that  yo^ 
read*  Yon  think  you  serve  God  by  coming  to  church,  but 
if  yoiii  refiofse  4;o  let  the  word  convert  you>  how  should  God 
be  pleased  with  such  a  se^ice  a»  this  ?  It  i«»  as  if  you  should 
toU  your  servant  what  you  have  for  him  to  do,  and  beca^8e 
he  haf^gjven  you  the  hearing,  he  thinks  he  should  have  \fiu 
wages,  4;hough  he  do  nothing  of  that  which  you  set  him  to 
do.    Were  not  this  an  unreasonable  servant  ?  Or  would  yoi) 

P  Eaek.  xxziil  31.  4  Heb.  xi.  7.  '  Bora.  viii.  8. 


180  TREATISE   OF    CONVERSION. 

give  him  according  to  his  expectation  ?  It  is  a  strange 
thing  that  men  should  think  that  God  will  save  them  for 
dissembling  with  him ;  and  save  them  for  abusing  his  name 
and  ordinances.  Every  time  you  hear,  or  pray,  or  praise 
God,  or  receive  the  sacrament,  while  you  deny  God  your 
heart,  and  remain  unconverted,  you  do  but  despise  him,  and 
shew  more  of  your  rebellion  than  your  obedience.  Would 
you  take  him  for  a  good  tenant,  that  at  every  rent-day  would 
duly  wait  on  you,  and  put  off  his  hat  to  you,  but  bring  you 
never  a  penny  of  rent?  Or  would  you  take  him  for  a  good 
debtor,  that  brings  you  nothing  but  an  empty  purse,  and  ex- 
pects you  should  take  that  for  payment?  God  biddeth  you 
come  to  church,  and  hear  the  word ;  and  so  you  do,  and  so 
far  you  do  well :  but  withal,  he  chargeth  you  to  suffer  the 
word  to  work  upon  your  hearts,  and  to  take  it  home  and. 
consider  of  it,  and  obey  it,  and  cast  away  your  former  cour- 
ses, and  "give  up  your  hearts  and  lives  to  him ;  and  this 
you  will  not  do.  And  yet  you  think  that  he  will  accept 
of  your  service.  Dare  you  plead  such  services  with  Gk>d 
for  a  reward,  and  say,  *  Lord,  though  we  shut  thee  out  of  our 
hearts,  yet  we  gave  thee  the  hearing.* 

Sirs,  I  beseech  you  lay  this  well  to  heart.  What  y^ill  you 
do  in  a  day  of  affliction  ?  What  will  you  do  at  an  hour  of 
death?  Will  you  not  fall  a  praying?  Will  you  not  call  to 
God  for  mercy,  when  you  see  that  nothing  but  his  mercy  can 
relieve  you?  Why,  if  yoU:  be  unconverted,  God  will  not 
hear  your  prayers ;  he  abhorreth  them,  because  he  hath  not 
your  hearts.  O  sad  case  for  a  man  in  misery  to  look  about 
him,  and  see  no  hope  in  heaven  or  earth  but  God  alone,  and 
when  he  begins  to  cry  for  help  to  him,  he  will  loathe  their 
prayers,  and  turn  away  his  ears,  and  will  not  hear !  -  Hear 
his  own  word,  Prov.4.  26—29.  "  Because  I  have  called,  and 
ye  refused,  I  have  stretched  forth  my  hands,  and  no  man  re- 
garded,'* &c.  to  the  end  of  that  chapter.  For  toy  part,  I 
foresee  the  day  is  coming,  when  I  would  not  take  stll  the 
world  to  be  without  a  (Jod  to  pray  to.  O  then,  to  have  a 
man's  pra!yers  themselves  thought  but  iniquity,  and  charged 
on  him  as  his  sin,  when  he  must  have  present  help  or  perish^ 
what  sadder  case  can  there  be?  For  a  man  that  is  going  into 
another  world,  and  calls  to  God  to  receive  his  soul,  to  have 
prayers  and  soul  cast  out  together,  how  sad  a  case  is  it  ? 


TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  181 

Sirs,  do  not  mistake  me,  as  if  I  took  you  off  from  prayers  or 
other  holy  duties  by  this ;  but  I  tell  you,  that  if  you  go  on 
in  any  kind  of  duty,  and  remain  unconverted,  you  cannot 
look  that  God  should  take  any  kind  of  pleasure  in  them  or 
in  you.  If  you  say  then, '  It  is  as  good  never  a  whit,  as  ne- 
ver the  better :'  I  answer,  do  your  great  duty  first,  and  then 
all  Uie  rest  will  be  accepted ;  yield  to  the  word  and  Spirit, 
resist  not  the  grace  of  God  any  longer;  give  him  your 
hearts,  and  give  them  no  longer  to  this  deceitful  world  ;  afid 
then  come  and  welcome.  And  for  the  duties  that  tend  to 
conversion,  as,  hearing  the  word,  and  begging  true  grace  of 
God,  which  may  convert  you,  and  considering  of  those  truths 
that  must  be  the  instruments  to  do  it;  these  are  the  very 
beginnings  of  the  work,  and  therefore  it  is  not  these  that  we 
discourage  you  from :  it  is  time  for  you  to  use  these,  that  the 
rest  may  be  accepted. 

6.  Another  sad  consideration,  concerning  the  state  of  an 
unconverted  man,  is  this,  as  long  as  they  remain  in  that  con- 
dition. They  live  in  continual  danger  of  damnation.  They 
are  under  Uie  wrath  of  God ;  and  though  patience  have^long 
forborne  them,  to  try  whether  they  will  repent,  yet  ar«  they 
not  sure  whether  it  will  stay  for  them  one  day  longer :  they 
are  under  the  curse  of  the  law,  and  when  it  will  be  executed 
they  cannot  tell.  I  have  told  you  already  from  the  word  of 
God,  that  an  unconverted  man  cannot  be  saved,  and  I  need 
not  tell  you  sure,  that  he  is  uncertain  how  long  he  shall  con- 
tinue in  this  world  And  methiuks  a  man  that  is  sure  to  go 
to  hell  if  he  dieth,  and  knoweth  not  whether  it  may  not  be 
this  day,  should  have  little  comfort  in  his  life  till  he  were 
changed.  Now  the  Lord  have  mercy  on  poor,  hard-hearted 
sinners,  what  do  they  mean  then  that  they  look  no  more 
about  them?  Why  will  not  the  word  of  the  living  God  awa- 
ken them,  which  telleth  them  how  near  they  are  to  perdi- 
tion ?  I  do  here  make  known  to  youfrom  the  word  of  truth, 
that  if  there  be  any  unconverted  souls  in  this  assembly,  they 
are  not  certain  to  be  out  of  hell  an  hour.  God  knows,  sirs, 
I  would  not  tell  you  of  this  if  it  were  needless.  But  alas ! 
what  do  you  mean  to  continue  in  such  a  case  as  this  ?  As 
sore  as  the  word  of  God  is  true,  every  soul  that  goeth  uncon- 
verted out  of  the  body,  is  shut  out  of  all  hope  of  mercy  for 
ever,  and  entereth  into  a  remediless  misery.  Remember  then. 


182  TREATISE    OF    CONVEKSION. 

lliaii>  ill  the  name  of  God,  eyery  morning  thou  ariaest^aud  every 
night  thou  liest  down,  that  thou  art  uncertain  to  be  out  of 
hdl  till  the  next  day.    Alas !  it  is  enough  to  amase  a  (Mor 
Christian,  that  is  indeed  converted,  when  he  doth  but  find 
himself  in  doubt  of  it ;  how  much  more  should  it  awaken  them 
that  are  yet  in  the  flesh?    Many  a  one  that  truly  feared 
Gk>d,  having  wanted  assurance  tt  the  time  of  death,  O  how 
terrible  hath  it  made  death  to  them !  To  look  before  them  and 
think  they  must  be  gone,  and  they  know  not  whither ;  to  think 
that  it  is  but  one  day  or  two  more,  and  my  soul  will  be  Bxnabg 
angels  or  devils,  and  I  know  not  which  of  the  two  it  will  be ! 
O  what  a  dreadful  thought  is  this,  even  to  many  that  are  eon- 
verted,  for  want  of  assurance  at  the  time  of  death !     But 
alas !  this  is  but  a  small  matter  in  comparison  of  the  ease  of 
the  unconverted :  for  as  soon  as  the  soul  is  out  of  the  flesh, 
all  the  fears  of  the  godly  are  at  end,  and  they  ahall  bever 
more  have  a  doubting  thought ;  but  for  the  rest,  if  you  should 
die  with  never  so  great  confident^,  death  would  ^pel  itaU; 
and  as  soon  as  you  were  out  of  the  body,  your  eyes  wt>told 
be  opened  to  see  that  which  would  never  let  you  have  a 
thyyught  of  hope  or  comfort  more.     I  speak  none  of  Uiis  ef 
myself.    "  When  a  wicked  man  dieth,  his  expectation  shall 
perish ;  and  the  hope  of  the  unjust  man  perisheth '."    *'  For 
what  is  the  hope  of  the  wicked,  though  he  have  g^ned, 
when  God  taketh  away  his  soul?    Will  God  hear  his  cry, 
when  trouble  cometh  upon  him*?*'    **  So  are  the  paths  of  dl 
that  forget  God,  and  the  hypocrite's  hope  shall  perish; 
whbse  hope  shall  be  cut  off,  and  whose  trust  shall  be  a  spi- 
der's web.     He  shall  lean  upon  his  house,  but  it  shall  not 
stand ;  he  shall  hold  it  fast,  but  it  shall  not  endure  *.*'  **Tlw 
eyes  of  the  wicked  shall  fail,  and  they  shall  not  escapl^yand 
their  hope  shall  be  as  the  giving  up  of  the  ghost '.''    Take 
this  home  with  you  then,  and  let  it  cause  you  to  have  no 
rest  till  you  are  truly  converted,  that  till  theta  you  are  niever 
certain  to  be  one  day  or  hour  more  in  safety. 

7.  From  all  this  you  may  see  another  sad  consideration, 
which  is.  That  as  long  as  a  man  is  unconverted,  he  hatii  no 
ground  for  one  hour's  true  peace  or  comfort, but  hath  reasob 
to  live  in  continual  terror,  and  to  be  the  grief  of  all  that  know 
his  misery.     For  should  a  man  be  meny  that  is  in  sudi  a 

•  Prov.  xi.  7.         *  Job  xxvii.  8.         "  Job  viii,  13.  18.        «  Job  xu  90. 


Til£ATISE    OF    CONVERSION.  183 

• 

case  as  tUs?  O  |io,  if  his  eyes  were  opened,  it  would  p^r- 
tainly  afiHght  him*  either  out  of  his  sins,  or  out  of  his  wit^. 
Many  worldly  vanities  and  sensual  delights  such  men  fnt^y 
have,  to  delight  th^ir  thoughts ;  but  this  is  their  weakness, 
and  not  tbeir  happiaess.  Some  malefactors  when  they  are 
tp  be  }wiged»  will  make  themselves  drunk  befQrehc^d,  that 
death  may  not  be  terrible  to  tbeip  ;  but  this  is  but  a  me^i- 
mw  agaiiVBt  repentance,  and  not  against  hell.  So  do  tbou- 
sands  of  poor  sinners  make  themselves  flri^nk  lyith  merry 
company,  and  itemise  Qonceits,  and  worldly  businesses,  and 
fleshly  pleasures;  but  though  this  do  ease  their  beart^ 
awhile,  and  keep  away  the  feeling  of  their  misery,  it  will  not 
4o  80  long,  but  only  till  (he  hppe  of  cure  be  past.  Brethren, 
the  de(§ire  of  my  soul  is  to  advance  the  consolation  of  the 
paints,  and  to  take  frppi  you  no  peace  or  hope,  but  what 
death  wiU  tak^  from  you,  if  it  be  not  done  before ;  and  if  I 
kad  any  hopes  that  your  merry  days  would  last  after  death, 
and  would  npt  end  in  everlasting  sorrow,  I  wpuld  not  be  one 
that  should  injberrupt  your  mirth.  Truly  you  should  hold 
on  in  your  careless,  drowsy  course  for  me,  if  I  did  not  sej^ 
the  after-reckoning ;  but  seeing  the  case  is  such  as  I  h^v^ 
proved,  with  all  that  are  unconverted,  I  must  say  to  all  ifx 
that  condition,  that  mirth  is  very  unsuitable  to  your  state, 
and  laughter  doth  ill  become  you.  And  if  ever  a  man  might 
9ay  of  it,  as  Solomon, '  Thou  art  mad,'  it  is  when  it  appear- 
^  in  the  face  of  such  a  man  that  stands  all  the  while  on 
the  very  bri^k  of  hell.  What !  be  merry  in  the  power  of 
satan,  under  the  wrath  of  God,  before  you  are  pardoned, 
and  before  you  know  whether  ever  you  shall  be  saved,  or 
esioape  the  everlasting  pains  of  hell  ?  O  doleful  mirth ! 
What  wise  man  would  be  partner  with  you  in  such  plea* 
siife  ?  Now  sirs,  I  beseech  you  that  are  in  this  case,  for 
your  poor  souls*  sake,  when  you  are  next  among  your  merry 
companions,  let  this  thought  come  intp  your  mind,  '  O,  but 
I  am  not  yet  converted.'  -  When  you  are  next  in  your  world- 
ly cares  and  businesses,  or  caress  of  your  souls,  bethink 
you  then,  *  O,  but  I  am  not  yet  converted.*  And  every 
day  and  night  wherever  you  are,  whatever  you  do,  O  think 
still, '  I  am  yet  unconverted ;'  that  so  you  may  look  about 
you,  and  come  to  yourselves,  and  get  into  that  condition, 
wherein  you  may  have  cause  indeed  to  be  merry.    Methinks 


184  TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

• 

every  time  you  hear  the  bell  toU^  it  should  frighten  you ; 
every  time  you  go  among  the  sick^  or  see  any  brought  to  the 
grave,  it  should  frighten  you :  yea,  every  thing  that  you 
look  on,  should  be  matter  of  terror  to  you  till  you  are  out 
of  this  condition.  Sure  there  is  no  believing  friend  that 
you  have  that  knows  your  case,  but  must  needs  pity  you. 
They  are  bound  to  lament  you.  Only  this  comfort  doth  yet 
remain,  that  a  sufficient  remedy  is  provided  in  the  blood  of 
Christ,  which  will  recover  you,  if  you  do  not  proceed  to 
make  light  of  it.  This  is  all  your  comfort,  that  your  case  is 
not  remediless,  as  long  as  you  are  undier  the  calls  of  grace. 
Take  heed,  in  the  name  of  God  take  heed,  of  going  on  any 
longer  in  that  condition,  lest  you  make  it  remediless ;  there 
is  yet  a  possibility  of  your  salvation,  but  not  without  your 
conversion ;  you  haye  to  do  with  a  merciful  Ood,  and  that 
you  find  by  experience,  or  else  you  had  not  been  here  now. 
But  O  go  not  out  of  the  reach  of  mercy :  never  did  God's 
mercy  save  one  unconverted  soul,  any  other  way  than  Iby 
converting  them.  And  the  greater  are  your  possibilities 
now,  and  the  more  freely  the  blood  of  Christ  is  offered  you, 
the  greater  will  be  your  sorrow  if  you  lose  all  this,  and  by 
neglecting  it,  do  make  your  case  remediless. 

8.  Consider  further.  The  warnings  that  the  unconvertecl 
have  of  their  danger,  are  so  many,  and  so  great,  that  if  they 
be  neglected,  they  will  multiply  their  misery.  To  be  an 
unconverted  man  among  the  Turks  or  heathens,  is  no  won- 
der, any  more  than  to  be  in  the  dark  at  midnight.  To  be 
^unconverted  among  Papists,  is  not  so  much  wonder,  any 
more  than  to  miss  your  way  by  moonshine :  but  to  be  un- 
•converted  in  the  midst  of  Gospel-light,  this  is  a  sin  that 
hath  no  excuse,  and  a  misery  that  liveth  in  despite  of  the 
remedy.  All  the  preachers  that  have  told  you  of  your  mi- 
sery, and  persuaded  you  to  return,  shall  be  witnesses  against 
you :  yea,  all  the  examples  of  the  wicked  that  have  gone  before 
you,  that  were  set  forth  for  your  bettering,  shall  be  witnesses 
against  you.  The  way  to  hell  is  abeaten  road,  and  most  of  the 
world  do  tread  it  continually ;  and  therefore  you  might  have 
known  and  avoided  it,  when  God  had  told  you  how  to  know 
it.  God  hath  not  left  you  in  darkness,  but  you  shut  your 
eyes  ;  the  light  shines  round  about  you,  and  you  will  not 
see ;  you  have  Bibles,  and  you  have  other  good  books,  and 


TREAHSB   OF   CONTEHSION.  185 

^ou  have  teachers,  and  you  may  hare  neighbours  that  are 
ible  and  willing  to  help  you,  but  you  will  not  make  use  of 
liem.     O  sirs,  consider  I  beseech  you,  to  get  well  to  hea- 
ren,  is  a  business  and  not  a  play.     It  is  a  matter  to  be  in- 
]aired  after,  and  prayed  for,  and  learned  with  all  diligence 
md  care,  and  not  to  be  put  off  with  heartless  shews.     Hear 
then,  O  hear  the  call  of  God  that  soundeth  in  thine  ears,  to 
i>ring  thee  to  conversion :  wilt  thou  run  on  when  God  is 
calling  after  thee  ?     He  calleth  by  his  word  ;  he  calleth  by 
his  ministers  ;  he  calleth  by  his  judgments,  and  by  his  mer- 
cies, by  conscience,  and  by  his  Spirit ;  and  will  "you  stop 
your  ears,  and  slight  them  all  ?     Many  an  one  hath  come 
in  at  the  first  call  that  ever  they  had  by  the  preaching  of 
the  Gospel,  and  you  have  had  an  hundred  and  an  hundred, 
and  yet  will  not  return !     Believe  it,  sirs,  the  calb  of  God 
will  convert  you,  or  confound  you :  his  word  will  not  re- 
turn in  vain :  you  cannot  resist  his  grace  after  all  this  war- 
ning, at  such  easy  and  cheap  rates  as  many  others  in  the 
world  may  do.     Your  impenitency  and  wilftiiness  hath  the 
more  obstinacy  in  it,  by  how  much  the  greater  light  you  do 
resist.     If  the  Gospel  do  not  convert  you,  you  will  wish  you 
had  never  heard  or  read  it.     Hear  what  Christ  himself  saith 
of  those  that  were  not  converted  by  his  word.    "Whoso- 
ever shall  not  receive  you,  nor  hear  your  word,  when  you 
depart  out  of  that  hou6e  or  city,  shake  off  the  dust  of  ypur 
feet ;  verily  I  say  unto  you,  it  shall  be  more  tolerable  for 
Sodom  and  Gomorrah  in  the  day  of  judgment  than  for  that 
dty  y.'*     Christ  did  upbraid  the  cities  where  his,  works  were 
done,  because  they  repented  not :  **  Woe  to  thee  Chorazin, 
Woe  to  thee  Bethsaida,  for  if  the  mighty  works,  which  have 
been  done  in  thee,  had  been  done  in  Tyre  and  Sidon,  they 
bad  repented  long  ago,  in  sackcloth  and  ashes  ;  but  I  say 
Unto  you,  it  shall  be  more  tolerable  for  Tyre  and  Sidon  in 
the  day  of  judgment  than  for  you.    And  thou  Capernaum, 
irhich  art  exalted  to  heaven,  shalt  be  brought  down  to  hell ; 
for  if  the  mighty  works  which  have  been  done  in  thee',  &c.^ 
^e  Lord  grant  that  I  may  never  hear  Christ  upbraiding  any 
of  this  congregation  with  the  warnings  that  they  did  neg- 
lect.    It  is  a  heavy  case,  that  when  Christ  sendeth  to  men 
the  Gospel  of  salvation,  they  must  be  upbraided  with  it,  be- 

1  Matt.  X.  14,  15.  *  Matt.  xi.  «0— «3. 


186  TREATISE   OF   COMVKllSiaK. 

cause  they  would  not  be  saved  by  it.  And  that  Sodom  and 
Oomorrah,  those  places  of  abomination  that  bore  the 
most  remarkable  plagues  of  Qod,  being  consumed  with 
fire  and  brimstone  from  the  Lord,  should  yet  speed  better  in 
the  day  of  judgment,  than  many  of  our  poor  people  that  sit  ' 
under  our  teaching  from  day  to  day.  In  a  word,  airs,  r»* 
member  this,  all  unconverted  sinners  that  so  lived  and  died* 
shall  be  condemned,  but  those  that  had  the  greatest  means 
and  warnings,  shall  have  the  greatest  condemnation. 

9.  Consider  further.  That  the  further  men  go  on  in  an  unr 
converted  state,  the  deeper  is  their  sin,  the  harder  isiheir 
cure,  and  the  greater  will  be  their  punishment.  It  is  not  a 
state  wherein  you  may  safely  abide,  no,  not  a  day*  if  yoa 
were  sure  to  have  time  for  repentance.  Is  it  a  smidl  tUag 
to  go  on  in  sin,  and  to  add  to  that  heap  thiufc  is  no  gmt  alp 
ready,  and  to  increase  that  mountain  which  is  so  insoppoR' 
table  ?  As  long  as  you  are  unconverted,  you  live  in  tlM 
continual  abuse  of  God,  and  all  his  mercies :  you  abuse hia 
most  unworthily,  for  you  prefer  the  unworthy  creature  be-  ^ 
fore  him,  as  if  he  and  his  glory  were  no  better  than  thii  y 
earth,  nor  so  good  neither :  you  abuse  him  by  denying  hna  ^ 
that  which  is  his  own ;  you  deny  him  your  hearts;  you  d^  ^ 
ny  him  your  service ;  that  which  he  hath  made  and  redseiii»  ^ 
ed ;  you  deny  him  that  which  none  can  lay  claim  to  but  him-  ^ 
self.  You  abuse  his  word  by  rejecting  it ;  you  abuse  Us  ^ 
sabbaths  by  profaning  them ;  you  abuse  his  image  in  hii  ^ 
servants  by  contemning  it ;  you  abuse  his  name  by  taking 
it  in  vain ;  you  abuse  his  mercy,  and  all  bis  creatures  t^be^  ^^ 
holding  them  in  vain,  and  receiving  them  in  vain;  and  by  ^ 
advancing  them  into  the  throne,  and  giving  them  that  which  -j 
is  not  their  due :  though  you  worship  not  sun  and  moon,  yat  ^ 
you  worship  meat,  and  drink,  and  ease,  and  money :  and  thai  :, 
you  live  in  the  abuse  of  all  things,  and  besides  the  rest,  yon  | 
abuse  your  own  souls.  They  were  made  for  the  High  God,  | 
and  fitted  to  love  him  and  honour,  him,  and  live  to  him  hers, 
and  to  see  his  face  in- glory  hereafter ;  and  aU  unconVertsd 
men  do  abuse  them  to  the  basest  drudgery  of  the  devil: 
they  make  them  sinks  of  sin,  and  dunghills  to  receive  the 
excrements  of  the  earth.  God  hath  advanced  you  above  the 
beasts  that  perish,  and  made  you  for  a  life  with  aagels  ia 
his  glory,  if  you  would  but  believe  it,  and  set  your  hearts 


I 


TBBATI8E   OF   CONVERSION.  187 

Upon  it :  2aiA  yon  debase  your  own  souls,  and  make  them 

tvttlish,  as  if  they  had  no  better  a  happiness  than  a  swine ! 

ttras  if  you  were  worms  that  live  in  the  earth;  or  rather 

beetles  Uiat  live  in  dung.    Who  can  marvel,  if  a  carnal  man 

sbose  Grod,  and  the  godly,  and  all  things  else,  when  he  wil* 

Adly  and  delightfully  doth  so  abuse  himself?    It  may  turn 

ike  passion  of  those  diey  abuse  into  compassion,  when  they 

eonftider,  whatsoever  they  do  against  others,  they  do  an 

Imndred  times  more  against  themselves :  they  scorn  us,  and 

diey  wound  themselves  :  they  tempt  others  to  sin,  but  they 

Cist  themselves  into  it :  they  wrong  our  names,  or  estates, 

or  bodies,  and  they  damn  their  own  souls.    Alas,  poor 

vfetches,  who  would  have  thoughts  of  revenge  on  such  men 

.  Ihat-are  the  most  cruel  persecutors  and  destroyers  of  them- 

MlveB  ?    O  what  a  base  indignity  do  they  put  upon  a  noble 

mA  immortal  soul,  to  make  it  like  the  body,  inclining  unto 

Hirth,  as  if  it  had  been  taken  hence  as  the  body  was,  to  take 

it  <dfcown  firom  living  upon  Ood,  and  engage  it  in  a  life  of 

mere  vanity ! 

Moreover  consider,  that  all  the  while  you  continue  an<- 
oenverted,  you  grow  hardened  in  your  sin ;  and  as  you  for- 
Mke  Ghod  more,  so  doth  his  Spirit  withdraw  from  you  :  end 
etstom  will  still  make  you  worse  and  worse.  Your  recovery 
wUl  be  harder  the  next  week  than  this,  and  therefore  it  is 
not  a  state  to  be  continued  in :  but  of  this  we  shall  speak, 
when  we  come  to  the  particular  exhortation. 

10.  As  long  as  you  remain  in  an  unconverted  state,  yon 
Deprive  yourselves  of  a  world  of  happiness,  that  God  doth 
.offer  you,  and  you  might  possess.  You  might  have  God 
instead  of  the  .creature ;  and  Christ  instead  of  a  carnal  self; 
and  the  Spirit  instead  of  the  devil  that  doth  deceive  you : 
you  might  have  holiness  instead  of  the  filth  of  wickedness ; 
and  justification  for  condemnation ;  cmd  a  blessing  for  the 
curse ;  and  the  state  of  reconciledness,  instead  of  the  enmity 
4mt  yott  are  in  to  God :  you  might  have  peace  of  conscience 
aiBtrad  of  terrors  or  groundless  security  :  you  might  serve 
a  better  master  now  and  in  better  company ;  and  have  better 
wages  both  here  and  hereafter.  You  do  not  know  what  you 
leae  every  day  that  you  remain  unconverted,  more  than  all 
the  pleasures  of  sin  can  afford  you.  Ask  any  of  them  that 
liave  escaped  out  of  that  condition  that  you  are  in,  whether 


188  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

they  are  willing  to  return  ?    You  see  not  perhaps  that  they 
have  got  any  thing  by  th^  change,  and  therefore  yon  think 
you  lose  nothing  by  continuing  as  you  are ;  but  their  gaias 
are  out  of  sight :  it  is  almost  out  of  their  own  sight,  and 
therefore  it  may  well  be  out  of  yours.      But  if  theoiselvei 
should  deny  it,  it  is  not  therefore  an  uncertain  or  contempt 
tible  thing ;  for  the  foundation  of  God  standeth  sure ;  he 
knoweth  who  are  his.     If  it  were  but  to  be  employed  upon 
higher  things,  and  to  escape  the  deadly  wounds  of  c(mi- 
science  which  you  give  yourselves,  or  else  prepare  for,  it  ii 
no  small  gain  to  be  a  true  believer ;  and  if  they  found  them- 
selves in  no  better  a  case  than  they  were  before,  they  would 
be  tempted  to  return  to  their  former  state ;   but  that  they 
will  not  do  for  a  world.     I  dare  say,  if  you  did  know  but  the 
danger  and  horrible  misery  of  the  life  that  you  now  live,  yoa 
would  make  as  much  haste  out  of  it,  as  a  man  would  do  oal 
of  a  house  that  was  on  fire  over  his  head ;  or  as  a  man  that 
was  at  sea  in  a  leaking  vessel,  that  if  he  did  not  bestir  hinh 
self  as  for  his  life  to  get  it  to  the  shore,  would  sink  and 
drown  him.     And  if  you  knew  but  the  case  of  a  converted  j|. 
soul,  even  of  those  that  walk  most  heavily,  and  most  bewail  || 
their  own  condition,  you  would  not  be  out  of  it  one  day  '^ 
longer,  if  you  could  possibly  help  it.    Well,  I  have  shewed 
you  what  it  is  to  be  unconverted :  if  any  of  you  dare  yet  go 
on  in  such  a  case,  and  unbelievingly  cavil  at  the  word  ol. 
God,  or  carelessly  trample  it  under  your  feet ;  if  God  do  tor*  |q 
sake  you  and  leave  you  to  ypurselves,  and  if  death  do  find  ^ 
you  in  that  sad  estate,  you  may  thank  yourselves.  ^ 


t 


CHAPTER  V. 


Having  said  thus  much  to  you  by  way  of  terror,  if  it  may 
be  to  drive  you  from  an  unconverted  state,  I  shall  not  so 
leave  you ;  but  shall  next  say  somewhat  also  by  way  of  al- 
lurement to  draw  you  to  a  better  state.  For  as  there  is 
enough  in  your  misery  to  drive  a  sober  man  from  it,  so  is 
there  enough  in  the  hope  that  is  set  before  you,  to  draw  any 
believing  heart  to  embrace  it.  The  Gospel  is  a  joyful  mes- 
sage, and  bringeth  glad  tidings  of  salvation  to  all  that  enter- 
tain it ;  if  you  will  not  shut  your  eyes  by  unbelief,  orincon- 


i 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  189 

lideratenesB^  you  shall  see  that  God  calls  you  not  to  your 
hurt  or  loss.     If  there  be  not  more  to  be  had  in  his  service 
than  in  the  service  of  the  worlds  the  flesh,  or  the  devil,  take 
your  course,  and  never  regard  me  more.      If  I  do  not  give 
you  sufficient  reason  to  prove  U>  you  that  you  may  make  a 
better  bargain  by  speedy  conversion,  than  by  continuing  in 
your  c4mal,  unconverted  state,  I  am  contented  that  you  ne- 
ver more  give  me  the  hearing :  for  my  part,  I  would  not  perr 
loade  you  to  your  hurt  or  loss,  nor  make  such  a  stir  about 
m  uncertain  gain ;  nor  about  a  small  matter,  were  it  never 
10  certain:  but  my  principal  arguments  are  yet  behind. 
Fear  is  not  the  principal  affection  of  a  true  convert ;    and 
therefore  terrifying  arguments  are  not  the  principal  mefans ; 
yet  these  must  be  used,  or  else  God  had  never  put  such  an 
■fiection  into  man's  heart ;  nor  such  terrifying  passages  into 
hki  word:  and  we  all  feel  the  need  and  usefulness  of  it;  for 
in  reason' he  that  is  in  danger  should  know  it.     But  yet,  it 
is  loye  that  must  be  the  predominant  affection,  and  therefore 
it  is  the  discovery  of  the  amiableness  of  God,  and  the  won- 
derful g&in  that  comes  by  godliness  that  must  be  the  princi- 
pal; argument  that  we  must  use  with  you.      For  we  know 
diat  men  will  not  be  directly  affirighted  into  love,  though 
ihey  must  he  afirighted  from  the  contrary  that  hindereth  it : 
do  not  think  that  God  hath  no  better  argument  to  use  with 
you,  than  to  take  you  by  the  throat,  and  say,  '  Love  me  or 
I  will  damn  thee.'    Thus  he  will  use  to  wean  you  from  the 
contrary  love,  and  to  let  you  know  the  fruit  of  your  folly, 
that  he  may  equally  carry  on  his  work  upon  all  the  affec- 
tions of  your  souls  together.      But  he  that  principally  re- 
quireth  your  love,  doth  give  you  undeniable  reason,  why  you 
should. love  him:  and  he  that  calls  for  your  hearts,  doth 
shew  you  that  which  might  take  with  your  hearts,  and  effec- 
tually vnn  them,  if  your  eyes  were  opened  to  see  what  he 
iheweih  you.     He  draweth  them  as  the  loadstone  doth  the 
iron,  by  tiie  force  of  his  attractive  love.     If  there  be  not  more 
in  Ood  that  is  worth  your  love  than  in  all  the  world,  if  all 
were  yours,  then  hold  on  your  present  course  and  spare  not. 
But  why  make  I  any  comparison  in  such  a  case  ?     It  were 
a  dangerous  irreverence  in  me,  but  that  your  necessity  re- 
quireth  it ;  because  wicked  men  do  not  only  make  a  com- 
parison first,  but  also  prefer  the  world  before  God,  though 


190  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

not  in  their  tongues^  yet  in  their  hearts  and  lives :  if  I 
hut  able  to  make  you  thoroughly  know  what  that 
ia  that  I  persuade  yon  to»  I  would  desire  no  Jbetter  argumsat 
to  prevail  with  you ;  were  it  in  my  power  but  to  open  yoir 
eyes  to  make  you  know  what  conversion  is,  and  what  it  doth 
for  those  that  have  it,  I  should  make  no  doubt  of  yoor  spee^  \ 
conversion:  for  none  withdraw  their  hearts  from  God,  bit  ] 
for  want  of  knowing  him ;  and  none  are  against  a  holy  lift,  ^ 
but  those  that  understand  not  sufficiently  what  it  is :  aad 
none  do  prefer  this  world,  and  the  pleasures  and  profits  «f 
it  before  the  glorious  things  that  God  doth  offer  them,  bit 
only  they  that  are  cheated  and  bewitched  by  it,  and 
not  what  it  is  that  they  dote  upon.    If  I  were  but  able,  ts 
give  you  such  a  sight  as  Stephen  had,  (Actsvii,  66«)»  whsa 
he  saw  the  heavens  opened^  and  Christ  standing  at  the  ffigii 
hand  of  God,  I  should  have  no  need  to  call  jam  from  jmi 
fleshly  vanities.    O  how  contemptuously  would  yo«  iixm 
away  your  former  pleasure,  and  run  to  see  and  be  posoessoa 
of  that  glory !    If  I  could  but  bring  you  vrith  Paul  into  thi 
third  heaven,  to  see  Uie  unutterable  things  that  every  tnt  k 
believer  shall  possess,  I  would  give  you  no  thanks  to  cs^.U 
off  this  world,  and  presently  to  turn  to  God.    Nay,  if  ym  k 
had  but  the  light  about  you  Uiat  Paul  had  at  his  conversies^  fu 
it  would  do  much :   but  what  talk  I  of  these  eztraordiaaijf  f 
things  ?     If  you  did  but  know  by  a  sound  belief  audi  as  si  || 
the  converted  have,  what  a  blessed  life  it  is  that  we  invite  ^ 
you  to,  away  you  would  come  without  delay ;  a«  Ate  wpm^  ]k 
ties  when  Christ  called  them  from  their  trades  and  fii^idi^ 
and  bid  them  follow  him,  they  presently  left  all,  though  diif 
saw  notiung  in  the  world  to  draw  them  on ;  so  would  jtm 
if  you  were  but  well  illuminated.      And  because  all  thatl  ^ 
can  do  in  this  work,  is  to  propound  to  your  understandtags  | 
the  excellency  of  thaA  condition  which  I  persuade  youio^^I  | 
shall  next  fall  upon  that,  and  leave  the  issue  to  God,  ^<»M**ng  1 
him  to  open  your  eyes,  to  see  what  shall  be  propounded.    - .  ^ 
1.  When  a  sinner  is  converted,  he  is  delivered  fromths  ] 
power  of  satan,  ActB  xxvi.  1<8.    The  bonds  of  your  captivity 
will  all  be  broken  in  your  return  to  Christ,  as  P^eter's  chaias 
fell  off  him,  and  the  prison  doors  were  set  open,  wthen  tibs 
angel  raised^himup^  (Acts  xii.  7.) ;  so  will  itbe  with  thy  soul 
when  God   converteth  thee.      Ignorance  and  wiUulaess  ifi 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  191 

fleshly  pleaBures,  and  the  love  of  this  world,  these  are  the 
dbaiiui  that  satan  holds  men  in ;  and  conversion  will  hring 
tbee  "from  darluiess  to  light/'  Acts  x^vi.  18.     Even  from 
tte  **  power  of  darkness  into  the  kingdom  of  Christ/'  Col.  i. 
IS*  It  will  bring  such  a  marvellous  light  into  thy  mind,  as 
Am  never  hadst  before,  which  will  make  thee  marvel  at  the 
richen  of  grace  and  glory,  and  marvel  at  the  wonderful  love 
of  God,  and  wonder  at  that  thy  former  folly  that  couldst  neg- 
bet  it.     Thus  will  God  bring  thee  ^*  out  of  darkness  into  his 
ItalveUouS  light,"  1  Pet.  ii.9.  Telling  you  what  this  light  is, 
«iU  not  be  sufficient  to  make  you  know  it,  till  you  see  it  your- 
isivsB.     You  shall  then  have  other  apprehensions  of  things 
Nmui  now  you  have,  even  of  the  same  things  which  you  see 
ttd  «e6m  to  kl»ow.      You  will  have  another  knowledge  of 
te  world, -and  of  Christ,  and  grace,  and  duty,  and  all  spi- 
litiiAl  thing*,  even  of  good  and  evil  than  now  you  have.    As 
Iht  fiotBt  sin  did  open  Adam's  eyes  to  know  good  and  evil  by 
Md  estpertefltce,  as  having  lost  the  good  and  felt  the  evil, 
«tod  also  to  km^  Aem  in  a  separated  sense,  as  distinct  and 
Wpafated  fal  his  thoughts  from  God ;  so  true  conversion  will 
Vjpsn  yoM  e]fss  to  know  good  and  evil  by  a  blessed  expe- 
ttettMy  even  t6  see  GhMl  the  chiefest  good,  as  recovered  to 
Yoa  fer  ytMttr  feli^ty ;  and  sin  and  hell  the  greatest  evils 
iKIm  >fi4ich  yon  ate  delivered ;  and  to  see  God  in  all  the 
Weatiili(e8>  1^  the  tei^ect  alMl  tendency  they  have  all  to 
him.     I  caanc^by  bare  tilling  you  make  you  conceive  what 
a  warveUoas  ^ange  will  be  in  your  understanding ;  what  an 
MBeUneut  and  <aarvellout»  light  you  will  see,  when  once  con- 
hath  opened  jbxA  eyes.    Let  me  endeavour  by  a  fk- 
bompaftisoli  V}  Mquaint  you  with  somewhat  of  it  in 
fMilflal,  though  I  caiinot  give  you  the  thing  itself.     You 
kMw  lihat  a  dog  <^t  liveth  in  tlie  house  with  you  doth  .see 
ItelMiiAi^  tlrings^  and  pla^,  Imd  persons  in  the  house  as  you 
46 ;  Ike  kinoweth  ^rvfery  room,  and  every  person  in  the  house : 
iiippotfe  «(0W  that'Gbd  she«hl  turn  this  dog  suddenly  into  a 
sum ;  do  you  think  i;hete  would  not  be  a  meirvellous  change 
mkoA  apprehension ?    Would  he  not  see  something  in  every 
Uting,  and  filaee,  "and  person  to  marvel  at?    Would  he  not 
faioW  ttll  these  things  in  another  manner  than  before  he  did? 
1  do  mt  say,  that  the  change  which  conversion  makes  is 
just  of  such  a  kind  as  this  ;   but  it  is  very  marvellous,  and 


192  TREATISE   OP   CONVEHSION. 

we  may  by  such  a  similitude  help  our  apprehensions  of  it. 
When  some  of  the  poor  naked  Indians  have  been  brought 
into  this  land,  how  strange  did  every  thing  seem  to  them^ 
When  they  came  into  London,  with  what  wondering  would 
they  gaze  about  them,  as  if  they  had  been  in  another  world? 
And  will  not  a  poor  converted  soul  do  so,  when  God  hath 
newly  opened  his  eyes,  and  made  him  see  that  which  he 
never  saw  before  ?      O  th)en  he  sees  that  evil  in  sin  that 
maketh  him  wonder!      That  ravishing  love  in  Christ  that 
maketh  him  w;onder !     That  amiable  glory  in  the  &ce  of 
God,  and  that  truth  in  the  promises  of  eternal  blessednessi 
that  makes  him  wonder !    When  before  he  Qould  see  no- 
thing to  wonder  at  in  any  of  them.     Oh !  sirs,  i^  you  knev 
but  the  pleasure  of  this  marvellous  light  that  Ood  by  con? 
version  would  let  into  your  souls,  you  would  never  rest  .till 
you  found  yourselves  converted.    Every  man  hath  a  natural 
desire  of  knowledge,  and  in  a  natural  way  they  are  seeking 
after  it ;  and  many  do  even  in  the  use  of  these  m^ems,  which 
should  be  spiritual,  employ  themselves  but  in  natural  seek- 
ing.    One  man  thinks  that  common  leamihgcan  help  him 
to  this  light,  and  therefore  he  readeth  and  studieth  day  and 
.night ;  and  I  deny  not  but  in  its  place  it  is  good.    .  Anotbitf 
thinks  that  among  this  or  that  party  it  is  to  be  found,  and  in 
the  discovery  of  this  or  that  low  opinion  it  doth  consist ;  bat  j 
when  all  is  done,  it  is  the  great  and  common  truths  that  are 
most  wonderful,  and  converting  grace  that  must  shew. men 
the  glory  of  them.      It  is  not  in  rarities  of  new  discoveries, 
nor  strange  principles  that  were  never  heard  of  till  now,  that 
this  light  is  to  be  fomid.      But  it  is  in  the  substance  of 
Christian  verity.     I  tell  you,  sirs,  you  that  now  use  to  mul* 
ter  over  your  creed  for  a  prayer,  and  hear  the  cateclusm 
without  understanding  it,  if  your  eyes  were  opened  by  con- 
verting grace,  you  would  marvel  at  the  very  doctrine  of  the 
creed  and  catechism.     You  would  see  that  excellency,  and 
feel  that  weight  in  common  truths,  that  would  exceedingly 
take  up  your  very  hearts.     You  now  know  not  what  it  is  to 
believe  in  God  the  Father,  the  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost ;  hot 
then  these  three  words  would  seem  to  you  of  greater  gloiyi 
than  the  sun  at  noon-day ;   they  would  find  you  both  work 
and  wonder,  and  yet  delight,  if  you  had  no  more  than  these 
to  think  of. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION..  193 

And  do  you  love  the  darkness  rather  than  such  light  ? 
Have  you  been  so  long  in  the  dungeon^  that  you  are  fallen  in 
love  with  it,  and  are  loath  to  come  out?  Is  all  this  light 
so  small  a  matter  in  your  eyes  ?  Are  you  like  an  owl  or  bat 
that  cannot  endure  the  light  of  the  sun  ?  Or  rather  like  a 
thief  that  hates  the  daylight,  because  he  is  afraid  of  being 
made  known  ?  Oh !  sinners,  I  beseech  you  come  away  and 
leave  your  dungeon  state  of  darkness,  and  live  in  the  light 
of  the  countenance  of  Ood.  "  It  is  a  pleasant  thing  for  the 
eyes  to  see  the  sun^."  Deprive  not  yourselves  of  the  plea- 
sure which  is  offered  you. 

And  it  is  not  only  your  chains  of  darkness,  but  also  your 
wilfulness  and  blind  affections  that  converting  grace  wiU 
turn  you  from :  these  bonds  of  worldly  profits  and  pleasure 
that  seem  so  strong  to  others  that  they  cannot  overcome 
them^  you  will  shake  them  off  as  Samson  did  his  bonds, 
and  they  "viill  not  be  able  to  separate  you  from  the  love  of 
Qod :  the  same  tempter  that  so  easily  prevails  with  others, 
will  not  be  able  to  prevail  against  you ;  **  The  Qod  of  peace 
will  tread  him  under  your  feet**."  In  the  work  of  conver- 
sion Christ  layeth  siege  to  the  heart  of  a  sinner,  which  na- 
turally is  Satan's  garrison,  and  he  battereth  it,  and  starveth 
ity  and  forceth  it  to  yield,  *'  and  bindeth  that  strong  man 
that  possesseth  it  in  peace  ^."  So  he  is  cast  out  of  his  pos- 
session by  converting  grace  ;  he  hath  not  the  same  power 
there  that  he  had  before  ;  once  he  could  have  commanded 
the  man  to  swear,  or  be  drunk,  or  neglect  his  soul,  and  he 
would  have  done  it ;  but  now  he  hath  no  such  power :  once 
he  could  have  turned  their  thoughts  against  Christ,  and  their 
tongues  to  cavil  against  his  word,  but  now  he  cannot ;  they 
are  now  under  another  government.  They  have  now  that  re- 
pentance to  the  acknowledgment  of  the  truth,  by  which  they 
are  recovered  out  of  the  snares  of  the  devil,  who  formerly 
led  them  captive  at  his  will  ^.  The  very  first  day  that  you 
are  converted,  you  are  the  freemen  of  Christ,  who  were  the 
bond-slaves  of  the  devil  all  your  lives  before.  As  ever  then 
you  would  partake  of  this  blessed  privilege,  resist  no  longer, 
but  yidd  to  the  call  of  grace,  that  you  may  be  converted. 

2.  Another  excellent  privilege  of  a  converted  soul,  is  this ; 
As  soon  as  ever  a  man  is  converted,  he  is  united  or  joined 

»  Ecclet.  xu  7.        *>  Rom.  xti.  «0.        «  Luke  xi.  21.        *  t  Tim.  ii.  95, 
VOL.   VII  O 


194  TKKATISfi   OF   CORVSRSION. 

to  Jesus  Christ.    This  is  the  very  root  of  all  the  rest.    Con- 
version tumeth  men  from  satan  to  Ood ;  it  breaketh  them 
off  from  their  former  lovers,  and  uniteth  them  to  Christ  as 
the  husband  of  their  souls.     He  is  '*  the  vine,  and  we  are  the 
branches,  and  into  him  we  must  be  grafted,  if  we  will  have 
life  ^J'    He  is  the  Head,  and  conversion  is  it  that  makes  us 
his  members  ;  giving  us  that  faith,  by  which  we  receive  him 
to  dwell  in  our  hearts  ^ :  so  that  as  the  sovereign  and  subject 
make  one  commonwealth ;  as  the  head  and  the  body  make 
one  man,  so  Christ  and  his  church  are  one.    Whether  or  no 
the  union  be  any  more  than  relative,  taking  union  in  the 
strictest  sense ;  yet  it  is  wonderful  and  glorious,  and  a'  com- 
munication of  holy  qualifications  doth  follow  it.     We  are 
one  in  relation,  and  one  in  judgment,  as  being  of  the  same 
mind;  and  one  in  affection,  and  one  in  regard  of  the  simili- 
tude of  nature,  and  many  ways  one  in  a  larger  sense.    Here 
is  the  root  of  the  saints'  felicity.    If  you  were  one  with  the 
prince,  you  would  not  fear  the  want  of  honour  or  riches* 
you  would  not  fear  any  thing  that  he  could  save  you  from^ 
When  Jonathan  loved  David  as  his  own  soul,  he  ventured 
his  life  to  save  him'  from  his  father's  indignation:  when  Ia* 
zarus,  whom  Christ  loved,  was  sick,  he  raised  him  from  the 
dead.     If  you  be  once  so  near  to  Christ  as  to  be. one  with 
him,  what  will  he  not  do  for  you  ?    Will  he  neglect  hia  own 
members  ?    Will  he  hurt  himself?    The  apostle  could  ase 
this  argument  with  husbands  to  love  their  wives,  because 
they  are  as  their  own  body  ;  and  *'  whoever  hated  his  owa 
flesh  ?     But  nourisheth  it  and  cherisheth  it,  even  as  Chiisl 
doth  the  church."     From  hence  doth  the  apostle  fetch  the 
example  of  conjugal  love ;  "  husbands,  love  your  wives, 
even  as  Christ  loved  the  church:"  yea,  from  this  union; 
"  for  w6  are  members  of  his  body,  of  his  flesh,  and  of  his 
bones  «."    "  This  is  a  mystery,"  saith  the  apostle,  speaking 
of  Christ  and  the  church  ^ ;"  and  a  mystery  of  unspeakable 
consolation  to  the  saints.     O  therefore  resist  not  that  grace 
that  should  convert  you.     If  you  would  be  united  to  Christ; 
come  to  him,  and  yield  to  the  drawings  of  his  love  that  yoa 
may  be  one  with  him,  who  is  one  with  the  Father,  according 
to  your  capacity,  for  that  is  his  will,  concerning  all  that  are 
truly  converted.     Judge  now,  whether  it  be  not  a  most  ho- 

•  John  XT.  f  Eph.  iii.  17.         9  Eph.  v.  25.  S!8— SO.         •»  Ver.  ^ 


TRRATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  195 

nonrable  and  inconceivable  felicity^  that  conversion  dotii 
advance  tlie  soul  into.  It  was  the  greatest  miracle  of  all 
God's  works^  that  ever  he  revealed  to  the  sons  of  men,  to  take 
the  human  nature  into  union  with  the  divine ;  that  Christ, 
who  was  God,  should  condescend  to  be  made  man :  and  the 
next  is,  that  he  will  take  his  church  into  union  with  himself, 
and  will  magnify  his  love,  in  such  a  wonderful  advancement 
of  poor  sinners,  that  without  his  grace  they  could  not  well 
believe  it. 

3.  Another  benefit  that  foUoweth  conversion,  is  this;  As 
soon  as  ever  a  man  is  truly  converted,  he  is  made  a  member 
of  the  true  church  of  Christ :  for  he  is  at  once  united  to  the 
head  and  to  the  body.     A  man  may  be  a  member  of  the  vi- 
sible church,  or  rather,  be  visibly  made  a  member  of  the . 
church  before  conversion :  but  that  is  but  as  a  wooden  leg 
to  the  body ;  or,  as  Bellarmine  himself  acknowledgeth,  they 
are  not  living  but  dead  members :  and  as  many  of  his  friends 
i^om  he  mentioneth,  confess,  they  are  but  as  the  hair,  or 
the  nails,  which  are  not  properly  members  of  the  body, 
though  they  are  in  the  body.    Or,  as  Austin  saith,  like  the 
cha£P  among  the  com,  which  is  so  a  part  of  the  field,  as  to 
be  an  appurtenance  of  the  corn.     So  that  till  conversion, 
even  the  baptized  and  the  most  understanding  men,  are  but 
as  the  straw  and  chaff  in  God's  bam,  and  as  the  tares  in  his 
field,  as  Christ  himself  compareth  them.    But  conversion 
doth  effectually  ingraft  them  into  the  body,  and  make  them 
living  members  ;  and  so  "  by  one  Spirit  we  are  all  baptized 
into  one  body' ;"  and  so,  **  we  are  the  body  of  Christ  and 
members  in  particular''.''    **  All  are  not  Israel  that  are  of 
Israel,''  saith  the  apostle  to  the  Romans.     And  "  in  Christ 
Jesus  neither  circumcision  availeth  any  thing,  nor  uncircum- 
cisien,  but  a  new  creature,  and  faith  that  worketh  by  love  V 
**  For  circumcision  is  that  of  the  heart,  in  the  spirit,  not  in  the 
letter'*.*'    "  They  are  the  circumcision  that  worship  God  in 
the  spirit''."     And  it  is  not  the  mere  baptism  of  water,  but 
the  baptisnr  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  which  is  given  in  conversion 
that  maketh  you  living  members  of  the  body. 

4.  As  soon  as  ever  a  sinner  is  tmly  converted,  he  hath  a 
pardon  of  all  the  sins  that  ever  he  committed,  be  they  never 

»  1  Cor.  xii.  IS.  ^  Ver.  27.  '  Gal.  vi.  5.  15.    Col.  iii.  11. 

*  RoiD.  n.  «9.  "  F!>il.  iu.  3. 


T96  TREATISE 'of   CONVERSION. 

80  many,  and  never  so  great.    Though  with  Paul  he  hare 
been  a  persecutor  of  the  church  of  God ;  though  he  have 
with  Manasseh,  been  a  very  sorcerer ;  though  he  have  hated 
godliness,  and  made  a  mock  at  it ;  though  his  very  heiprt 
hath  been  against  Christ  all  his  days  ;  yet  when  he  is  once 
truly  converted,  he  is  pardoned.    Though  he  have  spent  the 
flower  of  his  youth  in  vanity ;  though  he  have  been  a  drudge 
for  this  world,  and  forgotten  his  soul,  and  the  world  to  come; 
though  he  have  hindered  others  from  conversion  and  salva- 
tion ;  yet  when  he  is  once  truly  converted,  he  is  forgiven. 
Though  he  have  long  resisted  grace,  and  strove  against  his 
own  salvation ;  though  he  have  stifled  many  convictions  of 
conscience,  and  broke  many  purposes  and  promises,  and 
much  abused  the  patience  of  God  ;  yet,  if  the  work  of  con- 
version be  true,  all  this  shall  be  pardoned  and  done  away. 
For  the  Lord  Jesus  hath  made  satisfaction  for  all ;  and  there- 
upon hath  made  a  conditional  promise,  that  all  that  truly  re- 
pent and  believe,  shall  be  pardoned  :  and  as  soon  as  -ever 
they  perform  the  condition  through  his  grace,  the  promise 
becomes  effectual  to  them,  and  their  iniquities  are  therein 
forgiven  them. 

O  what  news  is  this  to  a  weary,  heavy-laden  sinner ;  to 
them  that  are  bruised  and  broken  under  the  sense  of  sin  and 
wrath,  that  would  give  a  world  if  they  had  it,  for  a  pardon ! 
Why,  come  to  Chiist,  sinner,  and  take  it  freely.  He  hath 
purchased  it,  and  he  freely  offereth  it ;  but  only  to  them  that 
take  himself:  for  God  hath  made  these  benefits  appurtenances 
to  himself;  take  Christ  himself,  and  all  is  thine«  O  what 
comfort  is  it  to  such  a  sinner  as  Mary,  that  lay  wiping  Christ's 
feet  with  the  hairs  of  her  head,  and  washed  them  with  her 
tears,  to  hear  him  say,  "  Thy  sins  are  forgiven  thee.**  Those 
sins  that  do  so  terrify  the  conscience,  and  those  that  lie 
asleep  till  conscience  be  enlightened ;  thy  secret  sins,  which 
the  world  knoweth  not  of,  and  thy  open  sins  that  have  been 
thy  shame,  at  the  very  hour  of  true  conversion  will  be  par- 
doned. All  thy  sinful  thoughts,  words,  and  actions;  sins 
against  knowledge,  conscience,  consideration  ;  sins  of  igno- 
rance, and  presumptuous  sins,  all  shall  be  cTone  away^ 
"  Whom  he  calleth,  them  he  justifieth  p."  ''  Christ  is  exalt- 
ed to  be  a  Prince  and  a  Saviour,  to  give  repentance  and  for- 

•  Actsxxvi.  18.     Mark  iv.  12.     '  p  Rom.  viil  SO. 


TR£ATIS£   OF   CONVKRSiON.  Id7 

giveness  of  sins  ^."  And  thus  doth  '*  he  bless  them^  in  ^m- 
ing  them  from  their  iniquities'^;"  and  in  turning  away  from 
them  the  punishment  of  that  iniquity.  He  that  sent  John 
Baptist  first  to  preach  '*  repentance,  for  the  remission  of 
sins' ;"  and  hath  shed  **  his  own  blood  for  the  remission  of 
sins  *  'y*  and  calleth  men  to  repent  for  that  end  " ;"  hath  pro- 
mised to  give  it  to  all  that  thus  repent  and  believe  in  him, 
and  are  converted  to  him  "^ ;  and  commanded  his  ministers  to 
join  these  together,  and  ''.that  repentance  and  remission  of 
sin  be  preached  in  his  name  ^**  And  may  we  not  say  with 
David,  and  after  him  with  Paul,  that  they  "  are  blessed 
whose  iniquities  are  forgiven,  whose  sins  are  covered,  and  to 
whom  the  Lord  will  not  impute  sin'  ?"  O  therefore  receive 
converting  grace,  that  you  may  be  made  partakers  of  this 
blessedness.  Take  the  counsel  of  Peter  to  Simon  Magus, 
"  Repent  of  thy  wickedness,  and  pray  God,  if  perhaps  the 
thoughts  of  thy  heart  may  be  forgiven  thee ''."  Or  as  the 
same  Peter  to  the  Jews,  "  Repent  ye,  therefore,  and  be  con- 
verted, that  your  sins  may  be  blotted  out  *"."  O  blessed  hour 
that  freeth  the  soul  from  such  a  load,  that  else  would  have 
sunk  it  as  low  as  hell !  A  day  and  a  mercy  that  must  never 
be  forgotten  by  us. 

5.  Another  benefit  is  this ;  As  Boon  as  a  sinjier  is  con- 
verted, he  is  reconciled  to  God :  the  former  enmity  is  done 
away :  though  this  be  in  substance  the  same  with  the  former, 
yet  doth  it  shew  us  our  happiness  in  another  consideration. 
A  future  reconciliation  was  purchased  before  by  the  blood 
of  Christ,  and  a  conditional  reconciliation  given  out  in  the 
Gospel ;  but  the  soul  was  never  actually  reconciled  till  the  - 
time  of  conversion.  Before,  a  sinner  did  either  presump- 
tuously intrude  into  the  presence  of  God  to  his  own  danger, 
or  else  fled  back  through  the  terrors  of  his  conscience.  Oh ! 
the  frowns  of  the  face  of  God,  were  enough  to  deter  a  guilty 
soul !  What  comfort  could  that  man  have  to  think  of  God, 
that  lay  under  his  continual  curse  and  wrath  ?  Birt  when 
once  they  are  converted,  the  face  of  God  then  smileth  on 
them,  and  his  arms  are  open  to  embrace  them,  as  the  father's 
were  to  the  returning  prodigal.    God  cannot  shew  himself 

4  Acts  V.  32.  r  Acts  iu.  $6.  >  Mark  i.  4.     Luke  iii.  3. 

^  Malt.  xxvi.  «8.      «  Acts  ii.  38.  ^  Acls  x.  43.         J  Lake  xxiv.  47. 

•       >  Psal.  xxxii.  1.     Rom.  W.7.  ^  Acts  Tiii.  92.      >>  Acts  iii.  19. 


198  TRBATIHE   OF   CONVSR6ION; 

pleased  with  a  graceless^  carnal  soul ;  nor  can  he  choose  bat 
be  reconciled  to  the  soul  that  is  once  possessed  of  his  image, 
and  reconciled  unto  him.  As  you  iire,  so  will  he  be  to  youv 
He  did  but  stay  for  the  turning  of  your  hearts,  that  you 
might  be  fit  to  receive  that  kindness  from  him,  which  yon 
are  not  fit  for 'in  the  bondage  of  your  sins.  This  is  the  hap- 
piness of  a  converted  soul,  that  he  hath  the  love  and  iavour 
of  Almighty  God.  Therefore  doth  Christ  call  them  his 
friends^.  And  what  is  it  that  he  will  not  do  for  his  friends, 
that  did.  so  much  for  us  while  we  were  enemies  \  O  there- 
fore yield  to  the  calls  of  God.  The  word  of  conversion  is  a 
word  of  reconciliation ;  and  this  it  is  that  he  hath  commit- 
ted to  us,  that  we  might ''  beseech  men  in  his  name  and  stead 
to  be  reconciled  to  God  *."  Which  is  only  by  being  con- 
verted to  God.  Did  you  know  the  worth  of  peace  with  God 
you  would  quickly  yield  to  return  unto  him. 

6.  Another  precious  benefit  to  the  converted,  is,  Tbsat  tfa^ey 
are  the  adopted  sons  of  God ;  which  is  a  step  higher,  than 
to  be  barely  reconciled  and  his  friends.  When  they^M 
planted  into  Christ  the  natural  Son,  they  become  adopted 
sons.  For  '*  God  sent  his  own  Son  made  of  a  womtem,  ma^ 
under  the  law,  to  redeem  them  that  wepe  under  the  law,  tliat 
we  might  receive  the  adoption  of  sons;  wherefore  we  are  no 
more  servants  only  but  sons  ^"  This  is  a  benefit  not  com- 
mon to  all.  It  is  as  ''  many  as  are  led  by  the  Spirit  of  QoA 
that  are  his  sons  <."  And  they  that  are  in  their  measure 
*'  blameless  and  harmless,  without  rebuke,  in  the  midst  of  a 
crooked  and  perverse  nation^  among  whom  they  shine  as 
lights  in  the  world  **."  Christians,  know  your  own  felicity, 
.  that  you  may  rejoice  in  it,  and  give  glory  to  God.  You  aatay 
boldly  draw  nedr  him,  and  call  him  your  Father,  and  look  for 
the  love  and  bounty  of  a  Father,  at  his  hands.  O  wretdhed 
world,  to  despise  so  great  a  mercy  as  this  is  i  Doth  it  seem 
a  small  thing  to  them  to  be  the  sons  of  God  ?  It  raisdd  the 
blessed  apostles  into  an  admiration :  ''  Behold  what  manne)r 
of  love  the  Father  hath  bestowed  upon  us,  that  we  shotild 
be  called  the  sons  of  God  ^J'  And  as  a  Father  tend^^th  a 
son  that  he  delights  in,  so  doth  the  Lord  the  poorest  of  his 

c  John  XV.  15—15-  James  ii.  23.     ^  Rom.  v.  10.  «  2  Cor.  v.  1&— «0. 

f  Gal.  iv.  4,  5. 7.  f  Rom.  vuu  14.         »>  PliU.  H.  15. 

^  1  John  iii.  1. 


TBEATlfiE    OF   CONVERSION.  1&9 

people.  The  wofld,  I  told  you,  is  divided  into  the  childreii 
of  Qod»  and  the  children  of  the  devil.  And  it  i^  by  conve^r^ 
sion  from  sin  to  God,  that  men  are  known  to  be  the  childrea 
of  God.  If>  theirefof e,  you  value  this  wonderful  privilege, 
yield  then  to  the  grace  of  God,  which  would  convert  you. 

7.  Another  benefit  of  the  converted,  is,  TbaA  they  bftv^ 
the  Spixik  of  CShrist  within  them.  By  it  doth  Christ  po^seani 
snd  govern  them ;  by  it  doth  he  make  them  like  to  huniBlf* 
and  work  out  all  that  is  contrary  to  his  holiness.  For  ii,  is 
a  cleansing  Spirit,  and  a  Spirit  of  holiness  K  By  this  lie 
be^eth  them  against  the  flesh,  and  effectually  mortifieth  it  \ 
By  this  doth  he  quicken  them  to.  newness.  g|  life ;  for  it  ia 
a  "  quickening  spirit  ™."  By  this  it  is  that  "  he  helpetb  tiieir 
infimuties,  and  teacheth  them  to  pray ''."  By  this  he  ''  teach- 
etb  tfaem  bis  law,  and  writeth  it  in  their  hearts  ^."  By  this 
he  pe«ses^th  them  with  filial  affectioc^  and  causeth  them 
to  '*  cry  toi  him,  Abba,  Father  p."  By  this  one  Spirit,  all  hi^ 
people  have  aoceas  to  him  *>.  And  by  this  they  are  made  h^ 
habitation '.  And  in  the  unity  of  this  Spirit,  they  are  on^ 
with  the  Lord,  and  among  themselves  \  This  Spirit  is  the 
eiarnest  of  their  future  glory  ^  And  where  this  Spirit  is, 
there  is  liberty  from  former  slavery  ".  So  that  you  see  how 
great  a  mercy  it  is  to  have  the  Spirit  of  Jesus  Christ  within 
us ;  and  this  is  the  case  of  all  that  are  converted,  and  .none 
but  thenu  '*  For  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ, 
the  same  is  none  of  his  "^J'  If  you  did  but  know  what  it  is 
to  be  possessed  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  when  ungodly  n^enhave 
the  spirit  of  uncleanness,  you  would  not  rest  without  this 
blessedness. 

8*  Another  part  of  the  happiness  of  the  converted,  is. 
That  all  the  promises  of  grace  are  theirs.  They  are  the  chil- 
dren of  the  promise,  and  God  is,  as  it  were,  obliged  to  them, 
and  hath  engaged  his  word  for  their  security  y.  All  the  pro- 
mises are  in  Christ,  yea,  and  amen  ^.  They,  therefore,  that 
ue  in  Christ,  must  needs  have  part  in  them.  O  how  full  is 
the  book  of  God,  of  free  and  precious  promises  to  his  peo- 

^  Ron.  u  4.  '  Gal.  v.  16, 17.  RpQ.  viii.  1,  fi.  14.        »  Rom.  viii.  11, 

» Roio.  viii.  26.   Eph.  vi.  18.  <>  2  Cor.  iu.  S.  P  Gal.  iv.  6, 

1  Eph.  ii.  18.  '  Eph.  ii.  «2.  •  1  Cor.  vi.  17.  xii.  1«,  IS. 

»2Cor.i22.v.5  «  2  Cor.  iii.  17.  «  Rom.  viii.  9. 

'  Gal.  iv.  28.  iii.  22.     Eph.  iU.  6.  >  2  Cor.  i.  20. 


200  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSIOMit 

pie !  and  all  belong  to  thee  that  art  converted.  There  hast 
thou  promises  for  remission  ;  and  promises  for  assistance 
against  temptation ;  and  promises  for  acceptance  of  thy  per- 
son, and  duties;  and  promises  for  protectionjand deliverance 
from  evil ;  and  when  thou  readest  them,  thou  mayst  say  '  all 
those  are  mine/  He  that  knoweth  that  Qod  is  true,  will  not 
take  a  promise  as  an  inconsiderable  mercy.  If  men  account 
it  such  a  matter  to  have  a  lease,  or  deed  of  gift  of  land,  and 
worldly  riches,  how  should  we  value  that  covenant  and  tes- 
tament of  our  Lord  ?  In  a  word,  *'  Qodliness  is  profitable 
to  all  things  ;  having  the  promise  of  the  life  that  now  is,  and 
of  that  which  is  to  come*".  And  what  can  any  man  desire 
more  ? 

Yield  therefore  to  the  voice  of  grace,  that  you  maj  be 
converted,  and  all  the  promises  of  grace  will  be  yours :  and 
then  it  will  be  an  unspeakable  comfort  to  you,  that  wfaiutso- 
ever  condition  you  are  in,  you  have  a  promise  of  Ood  that 
you  shall  be  better.  If  you  be  in  poverty,  if  in  sickness,  if 
at  the  hour  of  death,  yet  you  have  a  promise,  which  is 
enough  to  support  a  believing  soul.  As  one  saith,  '  I  had 
rather  be  at  the  bottom  of  the  sea  with  a  promise,  than  in 
paradise  without  it."  For  there  is  no  miseiy  so  deep,  but 
we  shall  certainly  be  delivered  from  it,  if  we  have  but  a  pro- 
mise.    But  without  it,  Adam  was  not  safe  in  innocency. 

9«  Another  benefit  of  the  converted,  is.  That  all  their 
duties  are  pleasing  to  Qod.  I  mean  not  their  sins,  nor  the 
failings  of  their  duties  ;  for  God  will  never  be  reconciled  to 
these,  when  he  is  reconciled  to  the  sinner.  But  the  failings 
of  all  their  duties  are  forgiven  them,  through  the  blood  of 
Christ;  and  the  failing  being  forgiven,  the  duty  is  accepted 
€ind  well-pleasing  to  God.  '*  By  faith  Abel  offered  a  more 
excellent  sacrifice  than  Cain,  by  which  he  obtained  witness 
that  he  was  righteous,  God  testifying  of  his  gifts.  By  £uth 
Enoch  had  this  testimony  that  he  pleased  Ood  ^.  The 
sacrifice  of  their  good  works  is  pleasing  to  him  **/'  Their 
prayer  and  alms-deeds  come  up  before  him ;  for  in  every 
nation  he  that  feareth  God  and  worketh  righteousness,  is  ac- 
cepted of  him '."  And  it  is  their  study  and  work  to  do  those 
things  that  please  him,  and  walking  in  all  pleasingness  is 

b  1  Tim.  iv.  8.  «  Heb.  xl  4, 5.  d  Heb.  urn.  16. 

«  Acts  X.  4.  35. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  201 

accepted  of  him  ^  'And  all  this  is  through  Christ  in  whom 
the  Father  was  first  well  pleased  *.    O  how  great  a  consola- 
tion is  this  to  the  saints  !     See  that  you  be  truly  converted, 
and  go  to  God^  and  fear  not  lest  he  reject  you  further  than 
is  necessary  to  reverence  and  caution.    When  he  abhorreth 
the  gilded  sacrifice  of  the  hypocrite,  he  will  accept  that 
which  seemeth  weaker  from  thee.     He  will  hear  thy  very 
groans  and  tears,  and  broken  expressions.     Lament  over  thy 
weaknesses,  and  see  that  thou  disown  them,  and  then  thou 
sfaalt  find,  that  God  will  not  disown  thy  services  for  them. 
0  what  a  comfort  is  this  in  a  time  of  extremity,  in  trouble 
of  conscience,  in  sickness,  and  at  death,  to  have  God  to  be 
well  pleased  with  all  our  duties,  and  to  know  that  he  will 
not  abhor  our  prayers.    The  time  is  near.  Christian,  when 
thou  wilt  find  this  privilege  more  worth  to  thee  than  a  thou- 
sand worlds,  that  God  will  let  thee  come  near  him  with  ac- 
ceptance, and  bid  thee  welcome,  and  hear  thy  prayers ;  and 
the  time  is  coming  when  unconverted  sinners  would  give  a 
world  if  they  had  it,  for  such  a  privilege,  and  say,  O  that  I 
could  go  to  God,  and  have  a  gracious  hearing  as  well  as 
they !     But  it  will  not  be,  because  they  knew  not  the  day  of 
their  visitation. 

10,  Another  benefit  of  the  converted,  is  this ;  The  angels 
of  God  have  a  special  order  and  commission  to  attend  them. 
They  are  all  ministering  spirits  sent  forth  to  minister  for 
them  who  shall  be  heirs  of  salvation  ^.  Note  here,  that  an- 
gels are  servants,  not  to  us,  but  to  God  for  us ;  and  that  it 
is  in  a  special  manner  for  the  heirs  of  salvation  :  and  that  it 
seems  it  is  all  the  angels  that  are  designed  to  this  office.  I 
say  not,  all  the  glorious  spirits  that  are  before  the  throne  of 
God.  For,  I  presume  not  to  determine  whether  there  be 
not  other  spirits  besides  the  angels ;  for  the  word  angel 
signifieth  a  messenger,  and  therefore  it  is  only  these  that  are 
employed  as  God's  messengers,  that  are  called  by  that  name ; 
and  those  that  believe  in  Christ,  are  said  to  have  their  own 
angels  always  beholding  the  face  of  God  \  These  doth  he 
send  to  deliver  his  servants  in  distress,  as  they  did,  Dan.  iii. 
21.  v\.  22.  And  Peter,  Acts  xii.  For,  ''  he  giveth  his  an- 
gels charge  over  them  to  keep  them  in  all  their  ways,  they 

'  Heb.  iii.^].  PhiUiv.  18.  t  John  iu.  2S.  Col.  i.  10.     9  Matt.  iii.  17.  xvil  5. 
i>  Ueb.  i.  14r  *  Matt,  zviii.  10. 


20S  mSATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

gball  bear  them  up  in  their  hands,  lest  they  dash  their  foot 
against  a  stone  ^."  Yea,  they  have  their  office  also  for  the 
good  of  soals*  An  angel  appeared  to  Christ  himself,  and 
strengthened  him  in  his  agony  K  And  as  evil  spirits  caa 
hurt  the  souls  of  the  wicked,  so  no  doubt  but  the  good  can 
help  the  souls  of  the  righteous ;  and,  therefore,  when  satin 
comes  to  deceive,  he  is  said  to  be  transformed  into  an  angel 
of  light  ""^  Yea,  when  the  soul  goeth  out  of  the  body,  these 
angels  are  the  conductors  of  it  into  the  presence  of  Qod*, 
where  we  shall  be  made  equal  to  the  angels  themselves*. 
O,  if  the  eyes  of  true  Christians  were  but  opened  to  see 
their  glorious  attendance,  they  would  be  more  sensible  of 
this  privilege,  and  thankful  for  it,  than  now  they  be.  God 
could  do  all  things  for  us  without  instruments  if  he  pleasedi 
but  as  he  rather  chooseth  to  work  by  instruments  and  second 
causes  for  our  bodies,  so  also  by  these  invisible  instmmeiili 
both  for  body  and  soul.  When  Saul  had  sinned  agaiut 
God,  and  was  forsaken  by  him,  the  good  Spirit  was  taken 
from  him,  and  an  evil  spirit  given  him.  Some  common  be- 
nefits even  common  men  may  have  by  these  angels  while 
they  forfeit  not  their  helps,  but  not  that  special  benefit  as 
the  saints.  The  world  cannot  distinguish  the  righteous 
from  the  wicked,  but  the  angels  of  Grod  can ;  for  they  must 
needs  know  their  own  charge,  and  who  it  is  that  Christ  hath 
especially  committed  to  their  trust. 

11.  Another  excellent  benefit  of  the  converted,  is  this. 
As  they  are  true  members  of  the  catholic  church,  (whatso-^ 
ever  any  schismatics  may  say  to  the  contrary,  that  would 
confine  the  catholic  church  to  their  own  party,)  so  have  they 
communion  with  the  whole  church,  and  many  spiritual  ad- 
vantages by  that  communion.  Besides  that  external  com- 
munion in  church  order  and  ordinances,  which  the  ungodly 
may  have  as  well  as  they,  there  is  a  spiritual  internal  com- 
munion, which  is  proper  to  the  living,  converted  members. 
All  the  saints  have  one  Spirit  of  holiness,  to  animate  them'. 
And  they  all  intend  the  same  end,  and  conspire  in  the  same 
way  for  the  accomplishment.  Ood  is  their  common  end,  as 
he  is  their  common  original  *».    They  have  all  **  one  Gh>d, 

•'  Psal.  xci.  11, 12.  '  Luke  xxii.  43.  "J  Cor.  xi.  14. 

"  Luke  xvi.  S2.  <>  Lake  xx.  36.  p  Rom.  viiL  9.  1  Cor.  xil 

1  Rom.  xi.  36.  1  Cor.  viii.  6.  11, 12. 


TRISATISK   OF  CONVERSION.  203 

one  Christy  one  faith/'  though  they  may  diifer  in  many 
mailer  opinions^  and  to  ''  every  one  of  them  is  given  grace, 
iccording  to  the  measure  of  the  gift  of  Christ'.'^  And  so 
Aey  "  are  all  one  body  and  one  Spirit,"  and  must  endeavour 
to  "keep  the  unity  of  the  Spirit  in  the  bond  of  peace*/' 
They  are  members  of  one  heavenly  city,  *'  even  Jerusalem, 
which  is  above,  the  mother  of  us  all,"  where  they  shall  be 
perfected  *.  And  of  the  militant  church,  the  city  of  Ood, 
while  they  are  here  on  earth.  It  is  the  design  of  God  in  the 
lUness  of  time,  to  gather  them  all  into  one,  in  Christ,  yea, 
to  make  them  and  the  angels  in  heaven  to  be  one  body  "^^ 
Th^  have  here  the  same  officers  and  means,  even  apostles, 
ud  prophets,  and  their  holy  writings,  pastors  and  teachers^ 
and  the  use  of  ordinances,  and  this  for  the  edifying  and  per- 
fection of  the  body,  *'  till  they  all  come  in  the  unity  of  the 
fcith,  and  of  the  knowledge  of  the  Son  of  (rod,  to  a  perfect 
nan,  to  the  measure  of  the  stature  of  the  fulness  of  Christ. 
That  speaking  the  truth  in  love,  they  may  grow  up  into  him 
ia  aU  things  which  is  the  head,  Christ :  from  whom  the  whole 
body  fitly  joined  together  and  compacted  by  that  which 
every  joint  supplieth,  according  to  the  effectual  working  in 
the  measure  of  every  part,  maketh  increase  of  the  body,  to 
Ae  edifying  of  itself  in  love  *." 

Moreover,  all  the  whole  church  doth  constantly  pray  for 
every  member ;  not  only  as  for  those  thatareyet  unconvert- 
ed, diat  they  may  have  grace,  because  they  have  no  absolute 
promise  to  be  heard  in  that ;  and  that  they  shall  not  be 
tesrd  for  all  men  in  general,  they  are  certain,  and  therefore 
nay  not  so  ask  it.  But  when  they  pray  for  the  godly,  it  is 
fti  for  those  for  whom  they  have  a  promise.  As  they  live  in 
the  constant  love  of  one  another,  which  is  the  mark  by 
which  the  world  must  know  them,  and  an  effect  of  the  Spi- 
rit which  doth  animate  the  whole  body  y,  so  doth  this  love 
express  itself  in  the  breathings  forth  of  constant  desires  for 
the  prosperity  of  the  whole,  and  each  part.  O  Christians, 
iriiat  an  excellent  privilege  is  this,  that  the  poorest  man  or 
woman  of  you  that  is  converted,  hath  thousands  and  thou- 
sands of  the  prayers  of  the  saints  going  for  you  to  God  from 

'  Eph.  iv.  S—7.  •  Eph.  iv.  3,  4. '  '  Heb.  xii.  22,  23. 

■  Eph.i.  10.  "^  Epli.  W.  12,jl3. 15, 16.  ^  1  Pet.  i.  92.     1  Johu  ir. 
7.8.    Johnzuu34,36. 

I 


204  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

day  to  day.  Which  way  ever  you  are  goings  or  whatsoever 
you  are  doing,  thiu  stock  is  improving  for  you,  this  work  if 
going  on.  When  you  are  about  other  matters  and  think  not 
of  it,  there  are  thousands  of  holy  people  praying  for  y<Mi 
When  you  grow  cold  and  faint  in  prayer,  there  are  thos- 
sands  of  fervent  Christians  at  prayer  for  you.  When  y«t 
have  caught  a  fall,  and  consoience  is  troubled,  and  you  dan 
scarce  go  to  Qod  again,  there  are  thousands  of  Christiaiii 
that  are  at  prayer  for  you,  tliat  have  clesirer  consciences  aod 
boldness  with  God.  Is  not  this  a  comfort  when  your  gracai 
are  weak,  when  temptations  are  strong,  and  troubles,  ani 
fears,  and  doubts  are  many,  to  remember  you  have  thousandi 
of  the  people  of  Qod  at  prayer  for  you  ?  Is  not  this  a  grett 
comfort  in  the  greatest  dangers,  when  you  are  afraid  of  yov 
salvation,  to  remember  how  many  thousands  are  at  pray«r 
for  your  salvation  ?  Nay,  it  is  even  all  the  whole  church  of 
Qod.  And  you  may  well  think  that  Qod  will  not  easily  de- 
ny the  prayer  of  his  whple  church.  He  that  hath  promised 
to  hear  two  or  three,  yea,  every  single  person,  that  asketk 
any  thing  in  the  name  of  Christ  according  to  his  will,  is  un- 
likely to  deny  his  whole  church,  when  they  join  together  for 
any  such  thing.  And  this  is  a  matter  that  is  according  to  • 
his  will,  that  his  truly  converted  people  should  persevere, 
and  be  preserved  in  his  love,  and  safely  brought  on  to  his  ' 
heavenly  kingdom '.  O  remember  this  in  your  doubts  and 
troubles,  that  all  the  church  of  Christ  is  daily  at  prayer  wid^ 
Qod  for  your  salvation.  And  is  not  this  a  great  comfort  to 
you ;  in  time  of  sickness,  or  at  the  hour  of  death,  to  remem* 
ber,  that  now  the  whole  church  of  Qod  is  at  prayer  for  yo«t 
You  send  to  this  friend  and  that  friend  which  you  think  have 
interest  in  Qod,  and  you  are  glad  if  you  can  but  get  them  to 
pray  for  you.  How  glad  then  should  you  be,  that  all  the 
church  prayeth  for  you,  who  most  certainly  have  so  great  an' 
interest  in  him  ?  The  spirit  of  prayer,  which  teacheth  the 
people  of  Qod  to  pray,  will  not  forget  you,  nor  suffer  then 
to  forget  you,  but  will  make  them  pray  for  all  the  body,  and 
every  member  of  it;  as  the  very  tenor  of  the- Lord's  prayer 
sheweth  you :  and  Col.  i.  3.  Eph.  vi.  18.  Col.  iv.  3.  1  Tim. 
ii.  1.  Rom.  i.  9.  xv.  30.  O  then,  sirs,  if  you  be  wise,  yield 
to  that  grace  of  .Christ  that  would  convert  you,  that  you  may 

'STim.  iv.18. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVRRSIOK.  206 

be  members  of  this  body,  and  live  in  the  spiritual  commu- 
uon  of  it.  For,  alas !  to  join  externally  in  the  commanion 
df  the  church,  when  you  have  not  communion  with  them  in 
die  Spirit,  will  bat  increase  your  condemnation  at  the  Ifust. 
Ton  are  every  day  among  the  saints  of  God,  but  you  know 
ihem  not,  nor  the  Spirit  by  which  they  live,  nor  the  spiritual 
part  of  the  work  which  they  do.  Such  a  communion  as  the 
dead  corps  have  together  which  you  tread  upon  (whose  bones 
and  dust  lie  mingled  in  the  earUi)  in  comparison  of  our  com- 
muiionthat  are  here  together  in  the  presence  of  God  among 
the  living ;  even  such  a  communion  have  the  unconverted  in 
llie  visible  church,  in  comparison  of  that  spiritual  commu- 
nion with  the  people  that  are  converted. 

12.  Another  excellent  benefit  to  the  converted,  is.  That 
ihey  have  the  constant  intercession  of  Jesus  Christ,  God  and 
man,  in  his  heavenly  priesthood,  at  his  Father's  right  hand 
in  the  heavenly  glory.    Their  head  is  not  insensible  of  their 
wants,  nor  doth  he  disregard  them ;  the  wrong  that  is  done 
you,  he  takes  as  done  to  himself.    "  Saul,  Saul,  why  perse- 
eatest  thou  me?"  said  he  to  one  that  trod  upon  his  foot^ 
And  the  good  that  is  done  to  you,  or  denied  to  you  by  others, 
he  takes  as  done  or  denied  to  himself,  as  may  be  seen  in 
Matt.  XXV.  40.  45.     Surely  then  he  doth  not  forget  us, 
though  he  be  exalted  to  his  glory.    He  is  not  like  the  poor 
lilly  creatures,  that  cannot  bear  exaltation  without  being 
puffed  up,  and  forgetting  themselves ;  yea,  their  friends  and 
fheir  God.    No ;  his  exaltation  is  spiritual  and  heavenly, 
perfecting  his  human  nature  to  the  greatest  height  that  it  is 
eapable  of:  he  liyeth  in  the  face  of  God  who  is  love ;  nay, 
into  the  personal  union  with  the  Godhead  which  is  love, 
liath  he  assumed  our  nature  long  ago  ;  he  was  never  more 
tender  of  Jerusalem,  when  he  wept  over  them**;  or  of  his 
people  when  he  wept,  and  bled,  and  died  for  them,  than  he 
is  now  of  them  in  his  glory.    Though  he  cannot  weep  or 
grieve  now  as  he  did  on  earth,  yet  he  can  love  now  as  much 
•s  ever  he  loved ;  and  therefore  his  eye  is  still  upon  our 
wants,  his  heart  is  set  upon  us  for  our  good,  he  looks  down 
from  heaven  upon  every  particular  member ;  he  seeth  that 
,    this  man  wants  this  grace,  and  that  man  wants  that,  and  the 
other  is  in  danger  of  this  or  that  corruption  or  temptation ; 

^  Acts  ix.  4.  ^  Luke  xix.  41. 


SOB  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

and  he  is  daily  carrying  on  the  care.     It  is  he  that  sends  this 
minister  and  the  other  minister  as  his  apothecaries^  with  hi« 
medicines,  and  persuadeth  you  to  take  them  for  your  good; 
it  is  he  thatdirecteth  this  or  that  affliction  to  be  a  purge  for 
some  dangerous  disease,  when  he  seeth  that  easier  meani 
prevail  not.    You  see  not  your  chief  Physician,  he  standeth 
out  of  your  sight  ;  but  he  seeth  you.  and  it  is  he  that  dotk 
all  for  you  that  is  done  :  as  he  prepared  a  medicine  of  hii 
own  blood  to  cure  sick  souls,  while  he  was  here  upon  earth, 
so  he  is  now  continually  applying  it  to  them  for  their  cure. 
Do  not  think  that  all  his  love  was  shewed  upon  the  cross, 
or  that  all  that  he  doth  for  you  by  his  blood  was  then  done; 
no :  he  is  still  pleading  as  it  were  that  blood  on  your  be^ 
half  unto  his  Father,  and  offering  the  sacrifice  for  you  again 
in  the  holiest,  which  he  once  offered  for  you  on  the  cross; 
and  is  there  a  priest  for  ever  after  the  order  of  Melchizedek*. 
And  '*  because  he  continueth  ever,  he  hath  an  unchangeable 
priesthood ;  wherefore  he  is  able  also  to  save  them  to  the 
uttermost  that  come  ,unto  God  by  him,  seeing  he  ever  liveth 
to  make  intercession  for  them  ^/'    **  For  as  by  his  own  blood 
he  entered  once  into  the  holy  place,  having  obtained  eter- 
nal redemption  :  so  shall  this  blood  of  Christ,  who  throu^ 
the  Eternal  Spirit  offered  himself  without  spot  to  God,  purge  . 
our  consciences  from  dead  works  to  serve  the  living  God^** 
For  Christ  **  is  not  entered  into  the  holy  place  made  with 
hands,  which  is  the  figure  of  the  true,  but  into  heaven  itselfj 
now  to  appear  in  the  presence  of  God,  for  us  ^''    For  **  after 
he  had  offered  one  sacrifice  for  sins,  for  ever,  he  is  sat  down 
on  the  right  hand  of  God,  from  henceforth  expecting  till  his 
(and  our)  enemies  be  made  his  footstool ;  for  by  one  offer? 
ing  he  hath  perfected  for  ever  them  that  are  sanctified*.^. 
So  that  we  have  a  perfect  high-priest  that  perfectly  loveth 
us,  who  is  representing  our  case  before  his  Father,  and 
pleading  a  perfect  sacrifice  for  us ;  and  through  him  it  is 
that  we  ourselves  have  *'  boldness  to  enter  into  the  holiest, 
even  by  his  blood,  by  the  new  and  living  way  which  he  hath 
consecrated  for  us,  through  the  veil,  even  his  flesh:  for, 
*'  having  such  an  high-priest  over  the  house  of  God,  we  may 
draw  near  in  full  assurance  of  faith,"  if  we  have  a  '*  true  heart 

«  Heb.  viii.  1—4.     vii.  3.  11. 15.  •»  Hcb.  tiu  24,  «5. 

•  Heb.  ix.  11.  14.  ^  Heb.  ix.  24.  r  Heb.  x.  12—14. 


TKBATI8B   OF   CONYERSJON.  S07 

•prinkled  from  an  e^il  conscience^  as  our  bodies  are  washed 
with  his  baptismal  water  ^"    O  what  an  unspeakable  com- 
fort is  this,  to  every  truly  converted  soul  1.    The  Son  T>f  God 
is  at  prayer  for  thee.  Christian.    If  thou  think  that  God  will 
not  hear  thy  own  prayers ;  no,  nor  hear  die  whole  church's 
prayers  ;  dost  thou  think  he  will  hear  his  Son's  prayers,  or 
not?     The  poor  man  that  was  bom  blind,  could  tell  that 
'*  God  heareth  not  sinners,"  that  is,  unconverted  sinners ;  but 
''if  any  man  be  a  worshipper  of  God,  and  doth  his  will,  him  he 
heareth '."     How  then  can  he  choose  but  hear  him  that  had 
no  sin  ?  and  hear  him    that  taketh  away  the  sins  of  the 
world?  He  that  said, "  This  is  my  beloved  Son,  in  whom  I  am 
well-pleased,  hear  him ;"  will  sure  hear  him  himself,  because 
.  be  is  80.     He  telleth  his  Father,  *'  I  know  that  thou  hearest 
ae  always^;"  and  it  is  not  only  his  common  interoession  for 
lug  common  salvation,  which  he  giveth  to  the  worlds  for  so^ 
when  **  he  poured  out  his  soul  to  death,  and  was  numbered 
tmong  the  transgressors,  and  bare  the  sins  of  many,  he  made 
intercession  for  the  transgressors  ^^    And  said,  "  Father, 
fargive  them^  for  they  know  not  what  they  do/'    And  so  he 
procureth  them  a  conditional  pardon  and  salvation,  with  the 
neans  and  mercies  that  have  a  tendency  thereto.     But  it  is 
ibe  special  intercession  for  that  special  grace  which  be  com- 
annicateth  to  none  but  his  living  members.     Read  that  ex- 
cellent prayer,  John  xvii.  which  he  putteth  up  to  the  Father 
fur  his  own,  and  remember  that  these  requests  are  for  you, 
ind  that  it  is  for  all  that  shall  believe  in  him  through  the 
world  that  he  thus  intercedeth,  verse  20.    O  what  a  com- 
bft  is  it  to  a  poor  Christian,  that  in  his  greatest  infirmities, 
ind  deepest  sense  of  unworthiness,  he  hath  the  beloved  of 
Ae  Father  to  take  his  prayers  and  present  them  to  God, 
ind  to  plead  his  cause  more  effectually  than  he  can  do  his 
own.    What  say  you  then  to  this,  you  that  are  yet  in  the 
ftish,  and  unacquainted  with  the  life  of  grace ;  would  you 
Ittve  a  Saviour  to  speak  for  you  to  the  Father?    Yea,  one 
who  hath  all  power  in  heaven  and  earth  committed  to  him, 
and  ''is  able  to  save  to  the  uttermost,  all  those  that  come 
to  God  by  him."    O   yield  then  speedily  to   converting 
grace,  and  rest  not  till  this  work  be  wrought  upon  your 

^  Heb.  X.  19— ««.  *  John  ix.  31.  k  John  xl  42. 

I  IsB.  Iiii.  1«. 


20ft  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

souls :  this   blessed  state  may  be  yours  as  well  as  other 
men's,  if  you  do  not  now  neglect  it  and  refuse  it. 

13.  Another  excellent  benefit  to  the  converted,  is.  That 
God  hath  assured  them  that  all  thin|;s  are  theirs,  and  shall 
work  to  their  good.  The  promise  is  expressed,  2  Cor.  iy«16. 
1  Cor.  iii.  21.  Rom.  viii.  28.  Not  that  they  have  a  pro- 
priety in  other  men's  possessions  in  civil  respects ;  bat 
finally,  other  men,  and  their  possessions,  and  all  the  world 
are  for  their  good.  As  the  world  at  first  was  made  for  Adam 
and  his  offspring,  so  is  it  redeemed  from  ruin  for  the' second 
Adam  and  his  offspring,  in  a  special  manner;  the  earihlj 
proprietors  shall  have  it  in  possession,  and  many  of  them 
not  have  a  thousandth  part  of  the  benefit  by  it  as  othen 
that  possess  it  not :  the  physician  hath  his  skill,  in 
his  own  profession :  but  the  patient  that  is  recovered-  by  it, 
may  have  more  benefit  by  it  than  he  that  possesseth  it:  the 
whole  frame  of  heaven  and  earth  are  in  perpetual  motion  tot 
the  glory  of  the  saints ;  are  all  conjoined  by  the  overroling 
Providence,  and  are  c^urrying  on  die  same  design  of  Qod, 
when  they  seem  at  the  greatest  odds  among  themselves. 
When  the  instruments  themselves  are  unacquainted  with 
their  own  employment,  and  know  not  what  it  is  that  tiiey 
are  doing,  yet  God  knoweth,  who  seeth  and  ruleih  them  all 
The  business  that  God  hath  in  hand  is  to  build  the  heavenly 
Jerusalem,  to  gather  to  himself  the  whole  number  of  hii 
elect  that  are  scattered  through  the  world  °^.  And  to  make 
them  a  city  for  his  own  habitation,  and  a  people  for  his  eve^ 
lasting  praise :  and  the  very  persecutors  of  the  ohurch  an  k 
but  now  hewing  them  and  squaring  them,  and  fitting  them  | 
for  the  building :  when  God  seeth  us  sick  of  a  pleurisy,  he  I 
often  useth  the  sword  of  an  enemy  to  let  us  bloody  which  | 
shall  as  -certainly  do  the  cure  as  the  tenderest  hand.  The  j 
medicine  knoweth  not  that  it  is  healing  a  man's  disease; 
the  lancet  knoweth  not  that  it  is  saving  a  man's  life  by  tak- 
ing away  his  blood,  but  he  that  useth  them  knoweth  what 
he  is  doing.  Herod  and  Pilate,  and  the  people  of  the  Jews  | 
thought  they  had  been  securing  their  own  seats,  and  the 
liberty  of  their  nation^by  crucifying  one  that  called  himself 
King  ojf  the  Jews  :  they  little  knew  that  they  were  shedding 
that  blood  that  was  to  be  a  sacrifice  for  the  sins  of  the  world, 

"*  Matt.  xxiv.  SI.    John  zi.  52. 


TRfiATISB   OF   CONVBRSIOK.  209 

and  crucifying  that  flesh  that  was  given  for  the  life  of  the 
world  "  :  but  God  knew  what  he  was  doing  by  them:  for, 
ihey  did  nothing  but  what  his  counsel  had  determined  should 
come  to  pass  ®.    Pharaoh  thought  he  was  securing  his  in- 
terest ;  but  Ood  knew  he  was  getting  himself  glory,  and  his 
people  a  wonderful  deliverance  by  his  obstinacy.    And  even 
latan  himself  is  as  much  overreached  in  his  devices  and  en- 
terprises against  the  saints  as  their  earthly  enemies  are^    He 
is  but  exercising  their  graces,  and  driving  them  to  Christ, 
tnd  honouring  the  power  of  his  blood  and  Spirit  eventually, 
when  he  seeketh  to  devour  them :  his  temptations  do  but 
make  them  the  more  watchful :  or  if  they  fall,  they  rise  with 
die  greater  hatred  of  sin,  and  love  to  Christ,  and  thankful- 
ness for  his  blood  and  pardoning  grace,  and  renewed  reso- 
ktioQ  to  walk  more  carefully  for  the  time  to  come  :  O  bles- 
sed state,  where  all  the  world,  both  good  and  bad,  both 
friends  and  foes,  both  angels  and  devils  are  all  carrying  on 
die. work  of  our  salvation,  some  with  delight,  and  some  un- 
willingly, some  with  understanding,  and  some  not  knowing 
what  they  do !     What  a  state  of  comfort  hath  that  man, 
that   may    be    assured    that,  whatsoever   befalleth    him, 
Jdiall  be  for  his  good,  and  that  all  things  do  work  together 
tor  the  best !     I  confess  I  have  had  myself  so  much  comfort 
from  that  one  promise,  Rom.  viii.  28.  that  I  would  not  have 
been  without  it  for  a  world.     When  I  have  had  no  particular 
discovery  of  the  tendency  of  a  providence,  and  under  afflic- 
tion, and  the  appearance  of  death,  have  had  nothing  from 
below  to  support  me,  that  one  promise  hath  appeared  so  full, 
that  I  thought  if  there  were  no  more,  it  might  abundantly 
•npply  my  soul  with  consolation :  what  fear  should  we  have 
tif  want,  or  enemies,  of  sickness,  or  death,  or  any  thing  that 
isay  be  terrible  to  the  flesh,  as  long  as  we  know  that  all 
things  do  but  conspire  to  our  salvation  ?  And  though  none  of 
ike  wheels  in  the  chariot  of  providence  should  know  which 
way  or  whither  they  are  moving  themselves,  yet  do  they  all 
serve  to  convey  us  to  our  glory :  it  is  a  matter  that  is  past 
the  belief  of  the  carnal  world,  but  it  is  a  certain,  sealed 
truth,  that  when  the  persecutor  is  treading  down  and  tor- 
menting the  poor,  despised  saints,  it  is  the  saint  that  is  the 
gainer,  and  all  this  is  for  his  good,  and  his  ignorant  enemy 

«  John  vi.  51.  °  Acts  iv.  28. 

VOL.    VII.  F 


2i0  TREATISE.  OF   C.ONV£ltSXON. 

■ 

18  scouring  off  his  rust^  ^nd  prepaf  ing  him  for  his  master's 
U3e»  and  for  his  glory,  and  is  himself  the  loser,  and  the  mi- 
serable wretch,  when  he  is  highest  in  bis  honour,  and  deep- 
est in  his  cruelty,  and  proudest  in  his  triumphs.  Why  poor 
sinners,  do  not  your  hearts  within  you  long  to  be  partaken 
of  this  blessed  state  ?  Is  it  not  worth  all  that  you  can  do 
or  suffer,  yea,  worth  ten  thousand  worlds,  to  be  such  an  Qpe 
as  I  have  now  described  to  you  ?  Why,  you  may  be  such 
if  your  own  folly  and  neglect  exclude  you  not,  God  hath  not 
shut  you  out  of  the  promise ;  O  do  not  shut  out  yourselyes 
by  refusing  his  converting. grace* 

14.  Another  most  excellent  benefit  to  the  converted^  is. 
That  they  are  past  their  greatest  danger,  and  have  done  the 
greatest  business  of  their  lives,  and  now  are  ready  for  deal^ 
and  judgment,  whensoever  it  shall  come.     Not  that  all  ds^ 
ger  is  over,  or  all  enemies  yet  overcome,  or  all  thoir  work 
done,  nor  that  they  are  yet  perfectly  ready  tp  die ;  but  the 
main  work  is  done,  and  the  main  conquest,  of  th^  enf»ay  if 
over,  and  the  main  danger  is  past*  and  in  the  main,  they  ains 
prepared  for  their  change.    What  had  we  to  do  heir^  bu,i(.tp 
prepare  for  glory,  and  in  this  short  and  troublesome  li£^  to 
get  interest  in  a  better,  that  shall  never  end  ?     And  wi^  f41 
that  are  truly  converted  this  is  done :  at  the  very  hoiiir  that 
God  converted  them,  he  made  them  his  sons,  he  pardpued    j 
their  sins,  and  gave  them  right  to  everlasting  glory :  Yfhgfi   j 
he  gives  you  Christ,  he  gives  you  all  things,  or  puts  79111   j 
into  a  condition  wherein  you  may  well  think  he  will  give   ^ 
you  all  things,  Rom.  viii.  32.  O,  happy  day  !  may  that  ism    \ 
or  woman  say,  as  long  as  they  live,  when  God  did  translate    , 
them  out  of  <the  kingdom  of  darkness  into  the  kingdom  of   | 
his  dear  Son !     Many  keep  their  birth-days  as  a  day  of  t^    j 
joicing  or  feasting  while  they  live,  when  Solomon  saitiilk   j 
"  the  day  of  death  is  better  than  the  day  of  birth  p."    Bat   j 
they  that  know  the  day  of  their  new  birth  may  well  make    j 
that  a  day  of  rejoicing  while  they  live.     Oh !  sirs,  what.a 
blessed  change  doth  that  one  day  or  hour  make,  when  God 
shall  presently  bring  up  the  heart  of  a  sinner  to  himself,  apd 
join  them  truly  to  Jesus  Christ,  and  forgive  all  the  sins  that 
ever  they  did,  and  give  them  right  to  everlasting  glory! 
You  are  like  a  man  that  is  pursued  by  his  enemies,  and  as 

P  Eccles.  vii.  1. 


TR£ATIfiHB   OF   CONVERSION.  211 

soon  as  ever  he  oan  but  get  into  soeh  &  castle  or  gaRison, 
lie  IS  safe :  so,  when  you  first  get  into  Christ  by  a  liying,  efi- 
feotual  faith,  that  very  hour  were  yon  out  of  the  reach  of  the 
preTailing,  commanding  power  of  hell ;  then  was  the  strong 
man  cast  out  of  your  souls ;  then  were  you  brought  from 
onder  the  curse  of  the  law,  and  the  wrath  of  Ood.    If  death 
had  found  you  one  hour  before  that  change,  you  had  been 
damned  wretches  in  hell  for  ever :  and  if  death  should  .come 
but  one  hour  after  that  change,  you  will  certainly  be  glori* 
fled  saints  with  Christ.     This  is  true,  sirs,  how  strange  so- 
ever it  may  seem  .to  you :  and  the  reason  is  at  hand,  because 
tiiat  the  hour  before  your  conversion,  you  were  the  members 
of  satan,  you  were  in  the  flesh,  and  bad  no  saving  interest 
in  Christ  or  in  the  promise  :  and  the  hour  after  true  conver- 
sion, you. ane  members  of  CJturist  wd  children  of  the  promise, 
sad  Imve  part  in  him  who  is  Lord  of  all.    I  deny  not  but 
yon  must  stUl  '^  watch  and  pray,  that  you  enter  not  into 
temptation;"  and  for  all  the  '' promise  that  is  left  you  of 
entering  into  xest,''  you  must  '^  fear  lest  you  should  seem  to 
oome  short  of  ifi."    And  you  must  stiU  stand  on  your  guard 
in  all  the  spiritual  armour,  and  work  and  fight  out  your  sal- 
vation, and  quit  yourselves  like  men  to  the  end  :  but  yet  I 
maqr  well  say  that  the  main,  brunt  is  over ;  the  eneiny  is  dis- 
posaiesaed  of  ihis  chiefest  hold ;  he  that  ruled  you  is  now  oast 
omJt,  and  .though  he  be  not  quite  under  your  feet,  yet  he 
siuyetLy  will  .be.:  and  your  greatest  business  npw  is  tQ  keep 
hiasiout  and  to  stand  on  your  defence,  and  'Vkeep  that  J9n 
hmre,  that  noneimay  take  your  crown  from  you ;''  ^jind  to  folr 
low  on  the  conquered  enemy,  in  the  pursuitf  :t^  nm^  re-. 
main :  and  to  *'  grow  in  grace,  and  perfect  jyou^  )ioliness  i^ 
tho  fear  of  Ood/'  and  cast  out  the  remnant^  of  your  former 
fiMhiness  '•  Hearken,  therefoce,  poor  sinners,  and  as  ever  you 
aie.firiends  to  your  own  souls,  neglect  not  that  grace  that 
woidd  bring  you  into  this  condition.    Would  you  not  think 
younielves  happy,  if  it  were  thus  with  you  ? 

16.  Another  most  .excellent  benefit  of  the  converted,  is, 
"QMt  thqf.are  the  laghtful  heirs  of  everlasting  glory,  and  as 
soon  as  ithe  soul  is  gone  out  of  the  body,  they  shall  have  . 
possession  of  it :  and  at  the  day  of  judgment  they  shall  have 
a  blessed  resurrection,  and  shall  themselves  be  justified  in 

4  Heb.  vr.  I  >"  2  Pet.  iii.  oh.    S  Cor.  vii.  1.    xiii.  9,    Hcb.  vl  1. 


212  TRBATIBS   OF   CONV£lt8IOH. 

% 

m 

jndgment,  and   also  with  Christ  shall  judge .  the  world, 
and  so  shall  be  fully  possessed  of  that  glory  in  soul  and 
body,  and  shall  live  in  the  everlasting  praise  of  their  Re- 
deemer.    Here  are  many  particular  benefits,  which  for  bre- 
vity I  join  together.    (1.)  They  are  now  the  heirs  of  glory, 
for  being  the  sons  of  Gk)d,  they  are  co-heirs  with  Christ, 
though  they  must  follow  him  in  sufferings,  before  they  come 
to  the  possession  of  their  inheritance.      "  The  Spirit  wi^ 
niesseth  with  our  spirits  that  we  are  the  children  of  God ;  and 
if  children,  then  heirs,  heirs  of  God,  and  joint  heirs  with 
Christ,  if  so  be  that  we  suffer  with  him,  that  we  may  also  be 
glorified  together '."    Though  now  in  our  minority  we  differ 
not  from  servants,  yet  "being  sons  we  are  heirs  of  all  V 
When  moved  with  holy  fear  we  prepare  the  ark,  anid  hide 
ourselves  in  Christ  by  faith,  and  become  the  heirs  of  the 
righteousness  of  faith,  even  then  also  do  we  become  heirs  of 
the  end  of  that  righteousness  **.    When  we  receive  our  in- 
terest in  the  promise,  that  promise  makes  us  heirs  \     0, 
brethren,  that  you  could  but  coisceive  the  greatness  of  this 
blessedness,  which  even  the  poorest  beggar  in  the  world  miqr 
have  that  is  rich  in  faith  ;  for  even  they  "  are  heirs  of  ihat 
kingdom  which  God  hath  promised  to  them  that  love  him  V 
How  certainly  shall  these  be  partakers  of  that  glory,  when 
they  "have  finished  their  course,  and  fought  the  good 
fight '."    For  God  hath  "  laid  up  a  crown  of  salvation,  for 
all  such  as  love  his  appearing."    And  it  is  conversion  tliat 
briAgeth  us  into  this  blessed  state,  and  the  unconverted 
have  no  part  or  fellowship  in  it.    See  Tit.  iii.  4 — 7.    **  Bat 
after  that  the  kindness  and  love  of  God  our  Saviour  toward 
man  appeared,  not  by  works  of  righteousness  which  we  have 
done,  but  according  to  his  mercy  he  saved  us,  by  the  wash- 
ing of  regeneration,  and  renewing  of  the  Holy  Ghost;  which 
he  shed  on  us  abundantly  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Saviour: 
that  being  justified  by  his  grace,  we  should  be  made  heirs 
according  to  the  hope  of  eternal  life."    So  that  it  is  conve^ 
sion  that  bringeth  us  into  this  happy  condition :  Oy  ther^re, 
bless  God  if  you  find  he  hath  wrought  this  work  upon  your 
souls.     Yet  be  not  careless  for  the  time  to  come,  hat  '*  let 
every  one  of  you  shew  the  same  diligence  to  the  full  assu- 

•  Rom.  rUi.  16«  17.  *  GaUiv.  1.7.  •  Heb.  xi.  7. 

>  Gal.  ill.  99.  y  James  ii.  5.  '  S  Tim.  hr.  7,  8. 


TREATISE    OF    CON  VERSION.  213 

mnce  of  hope  unto  the  end :  that  ye  be  not  slothful,  but 
followers  of  them  that  through  faith  and  patience  inherit  the 
promise."  And  then  doubt  not,  for  God  hath  confirmed 
your  salvation  by  his  oath.  **  For  God  being  willing  abun- 
dantly to  shew  to  the  heirs  of  promise  the  immutability  of 
his  counsel,  confirmed  it  by  an  oath ;"  saith  the  apostle, 
**  that  by  two  immutable  things,  in  which  it  was  impossible 
for  God  to  lie,  we  might  have  a  strong  consolation,  who 
have  fled  for  refuge,  to  lay  hold  on  the  hope  set  before  us, 
which  hope  we  have  as  an  anchor  of  the  soul  both  sure  and 
stedfast,  and  which  entereth  into  that  which  is  within  the 
vail ;  whither  Jesus  Christ  the  forerunner,  is  for  us  entered  *." 
(2.)  Hereupon  it  follows  that  whensoever  the  righteous 
die,  their  souls  are  conveyed  by  angels  into  that  glory  \ 
And  when  they  ''  depart,  they  are  with  Christ  *^."  And  when 
they  are  '^  absent  from  the  body,  they  are  present  with  the 

Lord  **."  Of  which  they  may  "  be  confident  as  walking  by 
faith,  and  not  by  sight,  and  knowing  that  if  our  earthly  house 
of  this  tabernacle  were  dissolved,  we  have  a  building  of 
Ood,  an  house  not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens;" 
and  therefore  may  *'  groan  earnestly,  desiring  to  be  clothed 
upon  with  our  house  which  is  from  heaven  *."  And  when 
we  die,  we  may  say  with  Stephen,  **  Lord  Jesus  receive  my 
ftpirit  ^"  And  were  our  death  as  ignominious  as  the  thieves 
on  the  cross,  yet  that  day  should  we  be  with  Christ  in  para- 
dise, Luke  xxiii.  43.  O  blessed  people  that  live  in  such  a 
case,  so  near  the  door  of  a  more  blessed  life !  How  can 
you  endure  to  be  out  of  this  condition  of  hope  and  peace, 
one  day  or  hour  ?  Oh !  that  you  did  but  know  the  blessed- 
ness that  you  neglect. 

(3.)  But  yet,  this  is  not  all,  but  the  greatest  part  of  the 
blessedness  remains  till  the  day  of  judgment,  and  then  there 
are  these  four  benefits  to  be  received.  1.  The  righteous 
shall  have  a  blessed  resurrection :  not  the  resurrection  of 
damnation,  which  will  be  the  lot  of  all  the  rest ;  but  the  re- 
surrection of  life,  as  Christ  distinguisheth  them,  John  v.  28, 
29.  The  graves  shall  be  no  longer  able  to  detain  them,  but 
he  that  conquered  death  by  his  own  resurrection,  will  by  the 
same  divine  power  again  overcome  it  by  the  resurrection  of 

»  Heb.  vi.  11,  12.  17— ieO.        ^  Luke  xvi.  ft.  ^  Phil.  i.  23. 

*  2  Ck>r.  V.  8.  •  «  Cor.  ▼.  1—3. 6,  7.      ^  Acts  vU.  59. 


314  THBATISfi   OF   CONVERSION. 

bis  people.     And  as  bis  natural  body  bath  akeady  triumphed 
over  it,  so  shall  his  mystical  body  at  that  day :    be  that 
made  heaven  and  earth  of  nothing,  will  by  the  same  il- 
mightiness  accomplish  this:  read  1  Cor.  xv.  threugbooi 
2.  And  being  raised  and  brought  to  judgment,  the  next  be- 
nefit will  be  their  final  justification.     They  have  now  the 
justification  and  pardon  of  the  Oospel,  and  then  they  shall 
have  the  final  justification  of  the  Judge.    For  he  will  give  to 
every  man  according  to  right,  and  his  promise  made  this 
their  right  through  the  blood  of  Christ    For,  "  there  is  no 
condemnation  to  them  that  are  in  Christ  Jesus,  who  walk 
not  after  the  flesh,  but  after  the  Spirits."    Whatsoever  sii 
can  then  be  charged  on  them,  they  can  answer  all  by  shew- 
ing the  Gospel  pardon  in  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  if  their 
title  be  questioned,  they  can  prove  it  by  their  faith  and  sin- 
cere obedience.     So  all  that  repent  an^  are  converted,  w31 
then  ''  have  their  sins  blotted  out,  when  that  time  of  refreshr 
ing  shall  come  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord  ^.'^    It  is  net 
possible  that  Christ  should  condemn  his  own  body  and  con- 
demn those  that  have  believed  in  him,  and  sincerely  loved 
him :  so  dear  a  friend,  so  tender-hearted  a  Saviour,  thai 
hath  bought  us  so  dearly,  and  sanctified  us  and  cleansed  u% 
and  given  us  aright  to  that  justification  by  his  promise,  can- 
not possibly  condemn  us  after  all  this.    As  certainly  as 
Christ  himself  is  justified,  and  his  promise  true,  and  his  love 
unchangeable,  so  certainly  shall  all  the  converted  be  then 
absolved.    3.  And  not  only  so,  but  also  with  Christ  they 
shall  judge  the  world :  for  so  is  the  plain  word  of  promise^ 
1  Cor.  vi.  2.  Yea,  they  shall  judge  the  angels  themselves^ 

(4.)  And  lastly,  they  shall  take  possession  of  their  glory; 
and  enter  into  the  joy  of  their  Lord^  **  Then  shall  die 
righteous  shine  forth  as  the  sun  in  the  kingdom  of  their  Fti* 
ther,  when  the  wicked  are  cast  into  that  furnace  of  firei 
where  shall  be  wailing  and  gnashing  of  teeth  ^".^  *'  He  thai 
hath  ears  to  hear  let  him  hear,"  saith  Christ,  when  he  had 
spoken  these  words  :  and  he  that  will  not  bear  such  things 
as  these,  and  regard  them,  will  one  day  wish  that  he  neviff 
had  ears,^  and  never  had  a  heart  in  his  breast,  or  else  that  it 
had  been  better. 

Oh !   dear  friends  !    that  I  were  but  able  to  make  you 

K  Rom.  viii.  1.        ^  Acts  Bi.  19.        *  Matt  xxv.  21.  23.        )^att.  xiii.  4S,  4S. 


TREATISE    OF    CONVERSION/  9^15 

k&ow  the  difference  between  the  righteous  and  the  wicked 
at  that  day.    Surely  I  should  not  need  then  to  say  any  more 
to  y<m  to  make  you  apprehensive  of  the  necessity  of  conver- 
sion, and  to  make  haste  to  entertain  that  grace  that  is  of- 
fered you.      If  the  crown  of  glory  be  worth  seeking,  then 
must  converting  grace  be  sought :  if  an  everlasting  blessed- 
ness with  Christ  and  his  holy  angels  be  worth  the  having, 
renewing  grace  is  worth  the  having.      Lift  up  your  heads 
then  Christians,  and  rejoice  in  the  hope  that  is  set  before 
you.     O  bless  the  Lord  that  ever  he  brought  you  into  the 
kingdom  of  grace,  which  is  but  the  beginning  of  the  kingdom 
of  glory.     As  sure  as  your  natural  birth  was  your  entrance 
into  this  natural  world,  so  sure  was  your  new  birth  the  en- 
trance into  a  better  world.    For  your  life  eternal  was  begun 
when  yon  began  to  have  the  saving  knowledge  of  God,  and 
his  Son  Jesus  Christ.    He  that  hath  given  you  the  earnest 
of  his  Spirit,  and  who  **  hath  sealed  us  with  the  holy  Spirit 
of  promise,  which  is  the  earnest  of  our  inheritance,  till  the 
redemption  of  the  purchased  possession  ^''  will  doubtles5 
give  us  the  inheritance  itself.    Fear  not.  Christian,  the  Lord 
that  hatk  promised  will  not  deceive  thee,  for  he  never  yet 
cteceived  any.    But  as  sure  as  the  Etiin  doth  shine  in  the  fir- 
niament,  so  sure  shalt  thou  live  in  the  heavenly  Jerusalem, 
and  be  joined  with  the  holy  angels  of  God  in  his  everlasting 
praises,  and  then  thou  wilt  better  know  than  now  thou  canst 
do,  what  God  did  for  thee  that  day  that  he  did  convert  thee, 
(know  it  is  the  busitiess  of  the  enemy  of  thy  salvation,  if  it 
sttg&t  be,  to  draw  thee  back  into  thy  former  state  of  death 
and  datknes»;   and  when  he  cannot  do  that,  to  rob  thee  at 
least  of  the  comfort  of  thy  felicity,  that  thou  mightest  doubt, 
fltfd'  fear,  and  live  in  perplexity,  as  if  thou  wert  not  the  heir 
of  glory.    Because  as  he  is  loath  to  be  tormented  before  the 
time,  SO'  is  he  loath  that  thou  shouldst  be  comforted  before 
thetitne;  but  do  not  thou  believe  him;  suffer  him  not  to 
lud«  thy  bledsedness  from  thine  eyes  ;  O,  remember  it  can- 
not beloved,  if  it  be  not  believed ;  thou  wilt  lose  thy  joy 
and  God  his  praise,  if  the  tempter  prevail  with  thee  to  deny 
thy  mercy.      Believe  then,  and  give  God  the  glory  by 
believing. 

16.  Another  of  the  blessings  of  a  converted  man,  is.  That 

I  2  Cor.  i.  SS.     ▼.  5. 


216  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

new  life  which  he  hath  begun»  is  a  life  of  healthy  and  peace, 
and  comfort,  and  the  very  beginning  of  his  everlasting  peace 
and  life ;  and  the  more  he  hath  of  it,  the  more  happy  will  his 
life  be.  It  is  not  only  our  suffering  that  is  the  way  to  reign- 
ing, and  our  tribulation  by  which  we  must  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  Ood ;  but  we  have  also  peace  the  way  to  peace, 
and  life  the  way  to  life,  and  joy  the  way  to  joy  and  glory. 
Our  tribulation  and  sufferings  are  but  some  accidental  atten- 
dants of  this  our  militant  state;  but  the  life  itself  consists  of 
other  kind  of  matter.  How  blessed  a  life  is  it  to  live^  in  so 
near  a  relation  to  Ood,  as  is  above  mentioned !  And  how 
pleasant  a  thing  is  the  believing  exercise  of  his  graces !  0 
how  sweet  is  it  to  live  here  in  any  lively  beginnings  of  the 
love  of  God !  How  pleasant  is  it  to  know  that  we  are  be- 
loved of  him !  How  sweet  is  it  to  draw  near  to  him,  and 
plead  our  cause  with  him  in  faith,  and  to  call  him  Father  in 
confidence  through  Christ !  How  sweet  is  it  to  live  under 
the  power  of  his  ordinances,  when  by  his  Spirit  he  blesseth 
them  to  our  souls !  What  a  joy  is  it  believingly  to  think 
beforehand  of  their  eternal  blessedness  !  And  what  comfort- 
able communion  have  the  people  of  Ood  together,  and  what 
good  doth  it  do  them  to  hear  and  speak  of  the  glory  that 
they  shall  possess !  O  poor  deceived  sinners,  that  think  the 
way  of  the  Lord  to  be  so  grievous,  and  fly  from  it,  as  if  it 
were  an  insufferable  toil.  Did  you  but  know  the  safety  and 
the  comfort  which  the  life  of  godliness  doth  afford,  you 
would  be  of  another  mind,  and  take  another  course  than  you 
do.  I  do  profess  to  you  all  in  the  name  of  the  Lord,  that 
you  will  never  have  a  safe,  nor  truly  peaceable  and  comfort- 
able life,  till  you  are  converted,  and  live  a  spiritual  and  hear 
venly  life.  The  joy  of  the  world  is  sorrow  in  comparison  of 
that  which  you  might  have  from  Christ.  The  laughter  of  a 
fool  doth  not  so  much  differ  from  the  highest  content  of  the 
greatest  prince  on  earth,  as  your  carnal  mirth  and  peace  doth 
differ  from  that  which  is  fetched  by  true  faith  from  the  face 
of  Ood,  and  the  life  to  come.  You  fly  from  godliness  for 
fear  of  Sorrow  and  trouble,  and  I  tell  you  it  is  joy  and  peace 
that  you  fly  from,  and  sorrow  and  trouble  that  you  continue 
V  in,  and  that  you  are  preparing  for.  Believe  the  Lprd  Jesus 
himself,  if  you  will  not  believe  those  that  have  tried.  "  Come 
unto  me  all  you  that  are  weary  and  heavy-laden,  and  I  will 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERblOK.  217 

give  you  rest;  take  my  yoke  upon  you,  and  leajm  of  me,  for 
I  am  meek  and  lowly  in  heart,  and  ye  shall  find  rest  to  your 
Boalcu  For  my  yoke  is  easy,  and  my  burden  is  light  °*." 
"For  this  is  the  love  of  God,  that  we  keep  his  command- 
ments, and  his  commandments  are  not  grievous  ^''  "  Being 
justified  by  faith  we  have  peace  with  God,  through  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ.  By  whom  also  we  have  access  by  faith  unto 
this  grace,  wherein  we  stand,  and  rejoice  in  the  hope  of  the 
glory  of  God  :  and  not  only  so,  but  we  glory  in  tribulation^/' 
"Whom  not  having  seen,  ye  love ;  though  now  you  see  him 
not,  yet  believing  ye  rejoice  with  joy  unspeakable  and  full 
of  glory,  receiving  the  end  of  your  faith,  even  the  salvation 
of  your  souls  P."  "We  are  tiie  circumcision  that  worship 
God  in  the  spirit,  and  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no 
eonfidence  in  the  flesh  ^Z'  "  Rejoice  evermore '/'  "  Rejoice 
ia  the  Lord  always,  and  again  I  say,  rejoice  *"  "  Rejoice  in 
the  Lord,  ye  righteous,  for  praise  is  comely  for  the  upright ^'^ 
**  Ye  that  love  the  Lord,  hate  evil ;  he  preserveth  the  souls 
of  his  saints,  he  delivereth  them  out  of  the  hand  of  the  wick- 
ed. Light  is  sown  for  the  righteous,  and  gladness  for  the 
iqiright  in  heart.  Rejoice  in  the  Lord,  O  ye  righteous,  and 
shout  for  joy  all  ye  that  are  upright  in  heart  *^." 

What  say  you  to  all  this  now  ?  Is  it  a  life  of  trouble  and 
misery  that  God  hath  prescribed  for  his  people  to  live  in? 
Is  this  a  burdensome,  grievous  life  ?  Will  ydu  not  believe 
hun,  concerning  his  own  way  ?  I  tell  you  again,  and  declare 
io  you  from  the  Lord,  that  you  shall  never  have  any  true 
peace  and  comfort  till  you  are  converted,  and  lead  a  holy 
life.  And  you  that  say  you  shall  never  have  a  merry  day 
more,  if  you  leave  your  sins,  and  give  up  yourselves  to  a  life 
of  holiness,  I  do  profess  and  proclaim  to  you,  that  you  shall 
never  have  a  merry  life  indeed  till  you  do  it :  I  mean,  you 
ahall  never  have  that  solid  and  lasting  joy,  which  beseemeth 
a  man  of  wisdom  to  regard.  Believe  the  Lord  himself  that 
hath  told  you  it  twice  over;  Isa  xlviii.  32.,  **  There  is  no 
peace  saith  the  Lord  to  the  wicked ;"  Isa.  li.  21.,  "  There  is 
no  peace  saith  my  God  to  the  wicked."  '*  The  way  of  peace 
they  know  not,  there  is  no  judgment  in  their  goings ;  they 

■  Matt.  xi.  rr,  «8.  "  1  John  y.  3.  »  Rom.  ▼.  1—3. 

P  1  Pet.  t  8,9.  1  Phil.iu.3.  ^  1  TheM.  v.  16. 

•  Phil.  ir.  4.  ^  Psal.  xxziii.  1.  "  Paal.  Izxix.  10—12. 


21B  TREATISE   OF   CONVEHSIOlff. 

hare  made  them  crooked  paths ;  whoMoever  goeth  therein, 
dhall  not  kno#  peace  '/'  I  confess,  a  carnal  peace  yon  tnaiy 
awhile  maintain^  and  for  a  time  may  have  a  meity  dreara^  Wt 
the  day  iti  near,  when  you  will  haire  a  terrible  awakening.  AtA 
you  may  think  that  the  godly  have  no  such  joy^  because  yon 
see  it  not,  or  because  you  see  them  sad  andheayy :  btit  their 
''  joy  is  stich  as  strangers  meddle  not  with/'  I  know  die  righ'^ 
teous  have  many  troubles,  and  are  oftener  in  tears  and  gt^ans 
than  6thets ;  but  that  is  from  the  reifiuants  of  their  isiins,  whidi 
asit  consisteth  with  prevailing  grace,  so  doth  that  sorrowwith 
prevailing  j  oy,  or  may  do  at  least.  A  dead  itMi  gixMuieth  not^ 
when  ^s^ickknan  doth:  and  yet  that  is  no  disparagement  to  Ufei 
What  ifi  sweeter  than  life  ?  anad  yet  sickness  mtiy  make  it 
gvierotis ;  but  we  do  not  therefore  prefer  death  before  life, 
because  some  are  sick :  so  what  is  sweeter  than  tite  lifb  df 
gVace  ?  and  yet  spiritual  sickness  mtily  make  us  walk  heavily, 
and  yet  we  do  not  therefore  prefer  a  death  in  sin  before  it 
O  come  and  try,  sinners,  the  pleasureiit  that  be  in  the  walys 
of  Gk)d,  and  do  Mt  for  shame  speak  against  them,  till  you 
hfkve  thoroughly  tried  them.  The  Lord  himself  doth  testify 
of  them,  Prov.  iii.  13.  xxi.  20.  "  HAppy  is  the  rmA  that  find-  \ 
eth  wisdom,  and  the  man  that  getteth'  underistaxidihg ;  fSwr  i 
the  merchandise  of  it  is  better  than  the  tnerchahdise  of  silver,  : 
and  the  gain  thereof  than  fine  gold.  She  is  ihore  preciom^  i 
than  rubies  :  all  the  things  thou  canst  desire  are  not  to  be  a 
compared  to  her.  Length  of  days  is  in  her  right  hand,  and  ] 
in  her  left  hand  riches  and  honour.  Re'r  wayd  are*  Ways  of  i 
pleasantness,  and  all  her  paths  are  peace.  She  is  tf  tree' of  ' 
liffe  to  them  that  lay  hold  upon  her,  and  happy  is  every  oW 
that  retaineth  her.''  You  see  then  that  conversion  is  the  be*^ 
ginning  of  consolation. 

17.  Another  of  the  priviteges  of  the  converted,  is  this; 
As  be  hath  cause  of  continual  joy,  s=o  no  evil  that  can^  beM 
him,  is  a  Sufficient  reasoti  to  lay  by  these  joys,  as  to  the  ha* 
bit  at  least,  and  the  prisvailing  decree.  I  know  that  da*  ht 
as  we  have  sin,  we  may,  we  shall,  wfi^must  have  sorrow :  btt 
then,  so  far  as  We  have  th»t  sin  pardoned  and  mortified,  we* 
may,  we  should  have  greater  joy.  And  because  a  converted 
man  hath  no  unmortified,  unpardoned  sin,  therefore  his  cause 
of  joy  is  greater  than  his  cause  of  sorrow.    Though  yet 

'  Isa.  liz.  8. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  919 

[  must  say.  that  there  are  seasons    when  s6rrow  mnst 
ht  most  expressed,  as  in  days  of  humttiation,  and  in  great 
UiM,  and   in   some  afflictions;    yet   habitually  tben  oar 
joy  should  be  the  greater,  though  it  be  hot  the  season- to 
jtipresB  it.      But  my  special  meaning  here  is  aboi:d;  the 
«ril  of  affliction,  which  is  sanctified  to  the  godly,  and  hath 
lost  its  sting,  and  is  turned  by  a  hand  of  grace  to  their  ad* 
vantage.    Should  not  that  man  live  in  continual  joy,  that  is 
fhe  heir  of  heaven,  and  a  friend  of  God,  and  a  member  of 
Christ,  wd  do&k  but  wait  for  the  hour  of  death  to  be  pos* 
trnsed  of  that  unspeakable,  endless  glory  ?    What  should 
trouble  the  heart  of  him  that  is  escaped  out  of  the  power  of 
inlaii,  and  the  greatest  trouble,  which  is  the  wrath  of  Qt>d, 
wA  the  danger  of  everlasting  misery?    That  which  may 
tormettt  the  heart  of  another  day  and  night,  even  the  tbotights 
sf  the  endless  flames  of  hel(;  this  is  not  only  taken  ont  of 
his  way,  but  turned  into  the  matter  of  his  joy  and  praise,  to 
flink  but  of  the  fearful  misery  that  he  hath  escaped.    O 
wbtkt  heart  that  hadi  received  a  pardon  of  all  sins,  and  is  saved 
tereby  from  the  everlasting  torments,  caiP  dioose  bcrt  daily 
leyoice  in  that  salvation  ?    Would  not  a  Judas  htlVe  been 
gjhd,  while  he  was  hanging  himself  in  despair,  if  any  Me 
woald  have  given  him  assurance,  yea,  ov  but  hope  of  that 
silvmtion?    Oo^  to  any  despairing  sinner,  or  liny  one  tinder 
the  terrors  of  the  Lord,  and  ask  them  whether  or  no  they 
would  be  glad  if  they  could  but  be  assured  that  they  shotdd 
•IKsape  that  nysery  which  they  fear  ?    Yo«  need  not  dovA>t 
what  answer  they  would  give  you.    They  Woald'  be  glad, 
tmA  a  thousand  times  glad;  muc^  more  if  you  ciotfld  assure 
dmn  of  an  everlasting  glory,  instead  of  that  desefvefd  ndsery. 
0  then,  wlmt  a  blessed  state  are  all  those  in  that  are  truty 
convert^ !    How  many  times  doth  the  mo«th>  of  Chfrist  pro* 
MUBce  them  blessed !    "  Blessed  are  ike  poof  in  spirit,  for 
ftair'a  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven.    Blessed  are  the  pure  in 
hsatft,  for  they  shall  see  Ood.    Blessed!  are  they  that  hunger 
Am!  thirst  after  righteoiitfless,  fbr  tbey  shall  be  filled .    Mess^ 
Hi  aj^  thty  that  are  persecuted  for  righteousness'  sake,  for 
dMii^s  is  the  kingdom  of  Ood  K"^    What  case  soever  that 
tarn  be  in  that  is  the  h^ir  of  hearven,  he  cannot  choose  hut 
be  a  Messed  man.    if  any  thing  might  make  him  seem  mi- 
serable, it  would  be  to  be  pereecuted  and  hated,  and  made 

y  Matt  ▼•  3.  6  8.  10. 


220  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSIOH. 

« 

the  scorn  of  the  world ;  and  yet  Christ  saith,  that  even  then 
he  is  blessed ;  and  biddeth  them  even  then  **  rejoice  and  be 
exceeding  glad,  for  great  is  your  reward  in  heaven ;  for  to 
persecuted  they  the  prophets  that  were  before  you/*  That 
man  that  hath  a  reward  in  heaven,  may  be  exceeding  glad, 
whatsoever  befal  him  here  on  earth.  Will  a  prince  be  trou- 
bled for  the  loss  of  a  farthing,  or  the  barking  of  a  dog  ?  That 
man  that  hath  not  clothes  to  his  back,  nor  a  house  to  put  his 
head  in,  nor  a  good  word  from  any  about  him,  and  yet  hath 
assurance  of  living  in  glory  with  God  and  his  holy  angels,  as 
soon  as  ever  he  is  gone  out  of  the  flesh,  I  think  is  a  happy 
man  in  the  eye  of  reason  itself.  And  he  that  professeth  to 
have  assurance  of  such  a  glory,  and  yetliveth  not  comforta- 
bly in  every  condition,  I  will  not  believe  him,  whatsoever 
he  profess.  Sure  I  am  the  great  monarchs  and  princes  of 
the  world,  when  they  are  parting  with  their  crowns,  would 
be  glad  to  have  assurance  of  the  everlasting  crown,  on  ccm- 
dition  they  had  lived  as  poor  as  the  vilest  beggar  on  the 
earth.  There  is  not  the  stoutest  gallant  and  proudest  sinner 
but  would  be  glad  to  change  states  with  the  poorest  saint, 
when  he  seeth  the  end,  O,  but  they  must  be  wise  in  time, 
that  will  be  ever  the  better  for  their  wisdom.  Balaam  could 
say,  ''  O  that  I  may  die  the  death  of  the  righteous,  and  that 
my  last  end  may  be  like  his '."  All  the  world  would  say  at 
last  as  the  foolish  virgins,  if  it  would  do  any  good,  ''  Give 
us  of  your  oil,  for  our  lamps  are  out  •."  Who  would  not  be 
a  saint,  when  he  is  past  the  pleasure  of  his  sin,  and  cast  off 
by  the  world,  which  deceived  him  in  his  prosperity  ? 

Methinks  the  greatest  men  on  earth  should  tremble  in 
the  midst  of  all  their  glory,  to  remember  the  everlasting 
misery  that  they  are  near,  if  they  be  not  living  members  of 
Christ,  as  Belshazzar  did  in  the  midst  of  his  joviality  ^ 
And  methinks  the  poorest  true  believer  should  have  his 
heart  abound  with  joy,  to  remember  the  things  that  God 
hath  promised  him,  and  which  hf  must  certainly  ere  long 
possess.  O  think  not  what  you  ^felt  Christians,  but  what 
you  shall  be.  Yet  a  little  while,  and  you  shall  groan,  and 
weep,  and  complain  no  more  :  you  shall  not  know  what  po- 
verty, or  trouble,  or  any  other  sufferings  do  mean.  You  are 
almost  past  all  your  sorrow,  as  the  unconverted  are  almost 

>  Numb.  xxUi.  tO.  *  Matt.  rxv.S.  ^  Dao.  v.  6. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  221 

past  their  joy.  O  what  difference  is  between  their  part  and 
yonrs;  between  the  good  things  which  they  have  here,  and 
the  portion  which  you  have  there !  Is  it  not  better  go  by 
ibe  dunghill  to  the  everlasting  crown,  than  by  a  fading  crown 
to  everlasting  torments  ?  They  will  forget  their  honour  and 
delicious  fare,  when  they  want  a  drop  of  water  to  cool  their 
tongues ;  and  you  will  forget  your  present  sorrow,  when 
you  are  in  Abraham's  bosom,  or  in  the  presence  of  the  Lamb. 
If  one  day  in  the  courts  of  God  on  earth  seemed  better  to 
David  than  a  thousand  elsewhere,  what  will  an  endless  life 
in  glory  seem  to  a  believing  soul  ?  O  sirs,  we  want  nothing 
but  soundness  of  faith,  and  spiritual  life  and  seriousness  to 
aiake  our  hearts  to  leap  within  us,  and  to  make  our  lives  a 
foretaste  of  heaven,  and  to  make  us  pity  poor  worldlings  in 
tht  height  of  their  vain-glory.  What  should  be  a  terror  to 
that  man  that  hath  overcome  the  prince  of  terrors  ?  That 
hath  God  on  his  side,  that  hath  a  promise  of  everlasting  life, 
and  that  hath  evidence  to  shew  for  his  interest  in  the  pro- 
mise, and  a  lively  faith  to  improve  it,  and  live  upon  it  ?  Me- 
tbinks  if  the  devils  should  appear  to  him  in  his  way ;  if  they 
should  walk  before  him  in  the  ugliest  shape,  he  should  but 
look  upon  them  as  conquered  miscreants.  Methinks  if  he 
Ifere  passing  by  death  from  this  world,  it  would  be  a  joyful 
hour  to  him,  that  is  presently  to  step  into  a  world  of  glory. 
And  now,  dearly  beloved  neighbours  and  friends,  I  beseech 
you  for  the  Lord's  sake,  hear  these  things,  as  men  that  be- 
lieve the  word  of  Ood.  Is  it  not  a  thousand  pities,  that 
God  should  offer  you  such  consolations  as  these,  and  you 
refuse  them  ?  Is  it  not  a  thousand  follies  that  you  should 
tteglect  such  a  blessed  state  as  this,  when  it  is  set  before 
y6u?  God  hath  made  you  for  high  and  excellent  things, 
e? en  to  live  with  angels  in  the  heavens  in  glory.  Yield  but 
to  the  work  of  converting  grace,  and  see  that  Christ  be  form- 
ed in  you  once,  and  all  is  yours.  These  things  are  far  off 
you,  and  out  of  sight,  anH  therefore  seem  strange  to  flesh 
and  blood,  and  camalj||birts  will  not  believe  them ;  but  they 
are  true  as  the  living  Ood  is  true.  The  souls  of  all  the  con- 
verted that  are  dead  in  Christ  from  the  beginning  to  this 
day,  are  now  in  the  possession  of  that  glory  that  I  am  speak- 
ing of.  They  see  it,  though  we  do  not ;  and  we  shall  see  it, 
if  unbelief  and  neglect  do  not  hinder  us:  believing  is  the 


232  TREATISE   OF   COjNVERSION. 

only  way  to  seeing  and  possessing*  I  told  yon  before  wkfA 
a  miserable  case  it  is  .that  every  unconverted  sinner  is^ 
that  he  is  not  sure  to  be  safe  an  hour ;  and  would  you  not 
be  out  of  that  state  ?  Would  it  not  be  a  blessed  state  for 
you  to  be  sure  that  you  shall  live  ¥rith  Christ  an  endlepi 
life  ?  Then  you  may  challenge  death  with  Paul, ""  0  deatli 
where  is  thy  sting?  O  grave,  where  is  thy  victory  •I* 
Then  you  may  challenge  all  the  world,  even  oarth  and  hell^ 
as  he  did.  *'  If  Ood  be  for  us,  who  shall  be  against  us  1  It 
is  God  thfit  justifieth,  who  shall  condemn  ?  Who  shall  se^ 
parate  us  from  the  love  of  God  ?  Shall  life  or  death,  ^  T'  &0< 
I  do  here  proclaim  to  you  in  the  name  of  the  Lord*  tbatyoi 
may  have  this  blessedness  if  you  will  be  converted,  and  thot 
witliout  conversion  it  will  never  be  had.  Gret-  oiioe  ii^ 
this  statei  and  you  may  have  cause  to  joy  as  long  vm  yM 
live,  and  &r  greater  cause  when  your  present  life  is  9n4<ri« 
I  tell  you,  a  true  converted  man  is  never  in  so  sad  or  low  a 
case,  but  still  he  hath  more  matter  for  his  joy  than  for  lui 
sorrow.  O  therefore  do  not  set  light,  by  such  a  bappiness^ 
and  choose  not  to  yourselves  a  life  of  terror,  when  you  may 
have  better  if  you  will. 

18.  Another  great  benefit  of  the  converted,  is  this ;  Xhe 
longer  they  go  on,  and  the  further  they  .proceed,  the  greater 
will  be  their  felicity  :  the  case  of  the  wicked,  is,  the  longer 
the  worse ;  but  the  case  of  the  converted,  is,  the  longer  the 
better :  when  a  wicked  man  hath  had  the  sweetness,  it  may 
kill  his  heart  to  think  what  a  bitter  cup  is  kept  for  the  last^ 
but  when  the  godly  have  had  the  bitterest  Jiere,  it  msjir 
sweeten  all  to  think  of  what  remaineth.  If  a.  wicked  dsmui. 
should  have  never  so  much  trouble  in  the  flesh,  there  i$ 
another  kind  of  trouble  to  be  endured  hereafter :  the  won! 
of  their  condition  is  still  behind ;  but  the  best  is  still  behind 
with  the  converted :  you  shall  have  what  is  good. /or  yoa 
here ;  you  shall  have  pardon  of  sin,  and  peace  with  Gqd 
through  Jesus  Christ,  and  access  to  him  in  peace,  when 
other  men  are  shut  out;  and  help.;in  your  distress^  and. 
strength  in  your  temptation  :  but  all  this  is  a3  nothing  in 
comparison  of  that  which  is  yet  to  come.  You  know  partly 
what  you  have,  but  you  know  not  what  you  shall  be,  but 
only  in  general,  that  when  Christ  appeareth,  you  shall  be 

<:  1  Cor.  XV.  55.  d  Rom.  Tiii.  S1.35. 38. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  223 

like  him^    Your  glory  is  not  within  the  sight  of  flesh  and 
l|lotul.    You  walk  here  as  other  men  in  the  same  frail  flesh, 
Vk4  compassed  with  infiimitiesy  and  as  men  of  sorrows ;  and 
tlie  world  knpweth  not  that  you  are  the  children  of  the  God 
of  heaven,  and  that  you  shall  reign  with  him  in  glory :  for 
^e  heir  in  his  minority  diflereth  not  to  outward  appearance 
from  a  servant';  but  yet  by  right  he  is  lord  of  all :  no  won- 
d^  if  it  be  thus  with  you«  for  so  it  was  with  your  head  the 
Lord  of  aU :  he  was  found  in  shape  as  a  man,  and  there  ap-» 
peared  no  worldly  glory  or  comeliness  in  him,  for  which  he 
flhoold  be  desired,  but  was  despised,  and  became  a  man  of 
sorrows,  bearing  our  iniquity,  and  the  chastisement  of  our 
p^aoe  K    But  he  that  wac|,  among  men,  of  no  reputation, 
ms  worshipped  by  angels,  and  dearly  beloved  by  the  Father^ 
IPI^pr  hifi  humiliation  is  highly  exalted,  and  hath  a  name 
givem  him  above  every  name,  and  hath  seen  of  the  travail  of 
ioB  sool^  and  been  (satisfied  *".    And  so  it  is  also  in  dieir 
mfatsure  with  his  members ;  for  if  you  sufier  with  him,  you 
shall  also  reign  wi^  him ;  and  if  you  be  made  conformable 
to  him  in  his  death,  so  shall  you  also  be  in  his  r^urrection 
ai\4  glorification '.    Though  your  way  to  heaven  may  seem 
u^yen  and  troublesome,  yet  still  the  further-  you  go,  the 
nearer  you  are  to  it ;  and  though  sometimes  you  must  pass 
through  the  valley  of  the  shadow  of  death,  where  the  plaQ§ 
of  your  happiness  may  seem  out  of  sight,  yet  still  you  ar^ 
gP^ig  on  towards  it ;  and  the  foul  way  as  well  as  the  fair,  is 
the  w^y  to  heaven,  and  the  waves  and  storms  shall  help  you 
tf>  the  rharbour.    Though  you  be  delivered  to  death  for 
JfAgs'  sake,  it  is  that  the  life  of  Jesus  might  be  manifested 
in, you*    And  though  you,always  bear  about  in  the  body, 
thfi  dying  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  it  is  that  his  life  may  be  mani- 
fiaptted  in  your  bodies^.    ''For  we  know  that  he   which 
nMsed  up  the  Lord  Jesus,  will  also  raise  us  up  by  Jesus ;  for 
which  cause  we  faint  not;  for  though  our  outward  man  pe* 
rish,  yet  our  inward  JKian  \^  renewed  day  by  day :  for  our 
light  afflictiop  which  i^.hmt  for  a  moment,  worketh  for  us  a 
far  more  exceeding  and  eternal  weight  of  glory ;  while  we 
look  not  at  the  things  that  are  seen,  but  at  the  things  that 

•  John  iii.  S.  <  Gal.  iv.  1.  ir  PhU.  il  7,  8.    Isa.  Urn  S— 4. 

^  PbU.  U.  7. 9, 10.     laa.  liU*  11,  IS. 

>  Rom.  Tiii.  17.    vi.  5.    Phil,  iii,  10,11.      ^  2  Cor.  10,  11. 


224  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

are  not  seen ;  for  the  things  which  are  seen  are  temporal, 
but  the  things  which  are  not  seen  are  eternal  ^'^  Great 
cause  therefore  have  we  to  *'  groan  eamestlyy  desiring  to  be 
clothed  with  our  house,  which  is  from  heaven,  that  immor- 
tality may  be  swallowed  up  of  life  °^.'*  As  Christ  was  nearer 
his  glory  on  the  cross,  and  in  the  grave  than  before,  when 
no  man  laid  hands  on  him ;  so  are  his  members  in  the  last  of 
their  afflictions  :  for  though  the  last  enemy,  death,  most  yet 
be  encountered  with,  yet  he  also  shall  be  overcome  throngli 
the  strength  of  him  that  hath  conquered  him  for  us  ;  and 
who  through  death  destroyed  him  that  had  the  power  of 
death  °. 

O  sirs,  if  there  were  but  this  one  thing  to  shew  you  the 
difference  between  a  converted  and  an  unconverted  statei 
methinks  it  should  sink  down  into  your  hearts,  that  theint 
day  of  the  ungodly  is  still  the  worst,  because  that  all  endeih 
in  their  eternal  misery ;  and  the  last  state  of  converted  sonb 
is  still  the  best,  because  all  will  end  in  everlasting  glory. 
Careless  sinners  do  seem  to  have  some  merry  days  for 
awhile ;  but  O,  how  will  they  answer  that  question  of  Peter's, 
**  Judgment  mu^t  begin  at  Uie  house  of  God :  and  if  it  first 
begin  at  us,  what  shall  the  end  be  of  them  that  obey  not  the 
Gospel  of  God  ?  And  if  the  righteous  scarcely  be  saved, 
where  shall  the  ungodly  and  the  sinners  appear  ^  V*  **  Their 
ways  do  now  seem  right  in  their  own  eyes,  but  the  end 
thereof  are  the  ways  of  death  p/'  "  O  that  they  were  wise 
to  consider  this,  and  that  they  would  remember  their  latter  1 
end*i.''  The  not  considering  of  their  end,  is  the  cause  that  ''\ 
it  proveth  so  miserable  **.  But  the  end  of  a  believing,  holy 
life  is  another  kind  of  end.  ''  Mark  the  upright  man,  and 
behold  the  just,  for  the  end  of  that  man  is  peace.  But 
transgressors  shall  be  destroyed  together ;  the  end  of  the  - 
wicked  shall  be  cut  off'."  "  For  eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  car 
heard,  nor  hath  it  entered  into  the  heart  of  man,  what  God 
hath  prepared  for  them  that  love  him^''  And  this  end  is 
not  far  off:  we  have  but  a  little  while  to  wait,  and  we  shall 
see  the  Lord  upon  the  throne  of  his  glory,  and  see  the  ac^ 
complishment  of  his  promise  to  his  saints.    *'  For  yet  alit- 

»  «  Cor.  iv.  14.  16—18.  «  «  Cor.  t.  2.  4.  7.  »  Heb.  ii.  14. 

«»  1  Pet.  iv.  17,  18.  P  Prov.  xiv.  12.  xvi.  «5.     •»  Deut.  xxxK.  t9. 

"  Isa.  xWii.  7.    Lam.  i.  9.         *  Psal.  vu.  S7,  S8.  *  1  Con  Ii.  9. 


TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION.        2S5 

tie  while^  and  he  that  cometh  will  come^  and  will  not  tarry  "." 
It  is  many  ages  since  the  apostle  said, "  the  end  of  all  things 
is  at  hand ''.''  ''  Seeing  therefore  all  things  shall  be  dissol- 
fed,  what  manner  of  persons  ought  you  to  be  in  all  holy 
conversation  and  godliness^/'  O  therefore  yield  to  that 
gface  that  would  convert  you.  Conversion  is  the  first  gate, 
and  an  holy  life  the  way  to  heaven.  Though  this  gate  be 
itrait,  and  this  way  be  narrow,  and  few  find  it,  yet  die  end 
is  it  that  will  pay  for  all :  as  ever  you  would  have  this  bles- 
sed end,  see  that  you  make  this  happy  beginning.  ' 

19.  Yet  this  is  not  all ;  but  besides  all  these  benefits  to 
yourselves.  Conversion  will  make  you  useful  to  others  :  it 
will  make  you  become  a  blessing  to  the  place  where  you 
live :  as  a  wicked  man  hath  a  curse  upon  him,  so  usually  he 
is  &  curse  to  others ;  and  judgments  many  times  follow  him, 
and  those  about  him  may  fare  the  worse  for  his  sake.    And 
as  a  true  Christian  hath  a  heart  full  of  the  blessing  of  God's 
right  hand;  and  is  himself  a  blessed  man,  so  is  he  usually  a 
blessing  to  others,  and  many  fare  the  better  for  his  sake. 
As  you  may  see  in  the  case  of  Joseph,  Oen.  zxziz.  3.  5. 
While  you  i^  ignorant  and  ungodly,  what  are  you  but  hin- 
derers  of  other  men's  salyation ;  and  temptations  to  those 
about  you?    Bc^t  when  God  hath  illuminated  you,  and 
changed  your  hearts,  you  will  be  forward  to  do  good  to 
others,  and  to  help  them  to  that  life  and  hope,  which  you 
have  received.    If  they  want  instruction,  you  will  be  more 
able  to  instruct  them :  if  they  are  ignorant  or  careless,  you 
will  have  some  words  to  say  to  them  for  the  awakening  of 
ikeir  souls :  if  they  be  in  danger,  you  can  tell  them  of  it ; 
and  you  can  go  to  God,  and  pray  for  them  in  their  distress : 
you  have  a  spirit  of  prayer  which  you  had  not  before ;  and 
you  have  interest  in  God,  which  you  had  not  before,  and 
therefore  you  may  speed  better  for  others,  though  not  so 
certainly  as  for  yourselves.     I  tell  you,  sinners,  the  stoutest 
of  you  all  may  be  glad  of  the  fellowship  of  a  godly  man,  if 
it.be  but  for  the  benefit  of  his  prayers.    Jeroboam  that  did 
stretch  forth  his  hand  against  the  prophet,  was  glad  to  beg 
his  prayers,  for  the  restoring  of  that  hand '.    And  Simon 
Magus  was  glad  to  crave  the  prayer  of  Peter  *•    A  few  more 

■  Heb.  X.  ar^  »  1  Pet.  !▼.  7.  i  «  Pet.  iii.  11. 

'  1  Kings  xiiL  6.  *  Acts  Tiii.  t4. 

VOL.    VII.  Q 


226  TREATI8B   OF  CONV&RftlOH. 

such  as  Lot  was^  might  have  saved  Sodom  from  the  flames, 
when  his  ungodly  neighbours  were  the  cause  of  thai  heavy 
judgment.    You  are  made  the  fitter  for  to  do  God's  service, 
when  you  are  converted^  for  that  is  it  that  makelih  you  hi^ 
servants ;  this  is  it  that  bendeth  your  heatts  and.  thoughts 
to  God,  and  causeth  you  to  devote  yourselves,  and  all  that 
you  have  to  him,  and  therefore  you  can  never  do  him  aocefih 
table  service  till  this  work  be  wrought.    That  is  the  most 
happy  and  honourable  nation,  that  hath  most  of  thesd  con- 
verted people  in  it.     Let  the  world  think  of  them  as.  basely 
as  they  please,  it  is  these  that  are  the  honour  and  safety  of 
your  country,  and  of  your  towns  and  parishes*  andiof  the 
families  where  they  live.     If  England  be  any  better  than  the 
nations  of  infidels,  it  is  by  the  godly.    If  the.  JLokL.  would 
make  this  town  to  abound  more  with  true  converts  and  godr 
liness  than  any  other,  I  dare  say,  it  would  be  a.  happier 
town  than  any  other.    I  tell  you^that  is  the  best  place  iwhere 
there  is  most  of  the  fear  of  God ;  that  is  the  best  family  in 
ihe  town  that  hath  most  true  converted'perBonsiinit;.  or 
where  those  that  are,  are  the  most  eminentin  holiness. ,  W^re 
there  but  such  hearts  within. you,  that.  yoii.,wouldidl  ag^cee 
together  to  yield  to  the  saving  work  of  the  Gospel^  an4t9^ 
yourselves  in  good  earnest  to  the  work  of  your  8alvati4Nii» 
this  would  make  you  the  happiest,  the  most  honourable 
place  in  the  world.     Every  good  man .  is  a  common  good4 
their  light  shines  abroad  to  others,  and  such  light  will  not 
be  hid  :  the  heat  of  their  graces  doth  help  to  warm  otheniy 
and  happy  are  they  that  live  near  them,  and  have  but  the 
opportunity  of  conversing  with  them,   so  they    have  brit 
hearts  to  improve  such  opportunities. 

20.  If  all  this  be  not  enough  to  shew  you  the  blessedness 
of  the  truly  converted ;  consider  in  the  last  place.  That  U  is 
not  only  to  themselves,  nor  only  to  the  world  about  them^ 
that  the  comfort  doth  redound,  but  the  heavenly  host  of  God 
do  in  some  sort  partake  of  it.  For  the  Lord  Jesus  telleth 
us,  *'  there  is  joy  in  heaven  at  the  conversion  of  a  sinner  that 
repenteth**.  Hearken  to  this  all  you  that  live  a  worldly, 
fleshly  life;  it  would  be  the  very  joy  of  angels  to  see  your 
true  conversion ;  and  will  you  rob  them  of  their  joy  ?  They 
know  what  good  this  change  would  do  you,  when  you  do 

^  Lukie  XV.  10, 


TRSATI8B   OP  CONVERSION.  227 

not  know  it ;  and  thetefore  they  have  compa&iston  of  yoa  in 
yo«r  misery,  and  it  would  rejoice  them  to  see  your  recovery. 
(>  tiiat  yon  did  believe  this,  and  that  you  did  consider  it. 
CSan  you  find  in  your  hearts  to  stand  out  any  lodger,  when 
yoQ  consider  how  many  would  be  glad  of  your  conversion? 
Tom  theHi  O  turn  to  Christ  poor  sinners,  and  make  glad  the 
viMpy  angels  of  God  by  your  returning. 

Yea,  more  than  so.  2.  The  Son  of  God  himself  would 
rejoice  at  your  conversion.  For  the  recovery  of  sinners  is 
the  fruit  of  his  blood  ;  and  when  he  ''  seeth  the  travail  of  his  ' 
soul,  he  Will  be  satisfied."  He  that  came  into  the  wilderness  ' 
ofthb/woiid  to  seek  such  lost  and  scattered  sheep,  doth 
bring  them  home  with  joy,  when  he  findeth  tibem^.-  ''He 
came  to  seek,  and  save  that  which  is  lost^/'  "  He  came  not 
to  condemn  the  world,  but  that  the  world  through  him  might 
be  saved^."  Though  he  must  and  will  condemn  them,  if  they 
reject  his  salvation.  Nothing  please th  him  better  than  the 
co&yer8ion:and  salvation  of  straying  souls  :  or  else  he  would 
noFer  have  done  so  much  to  accomplish  it  as  he  hath  done. 
He  would  never  have  sent  abroad  the  doctrine  of  salvation, 
andi  established  a  ministry  in  the  church  to  that  end,  if  a 
rcioniing  sinner  were  not  his  delight.  O  that  yod  knew^ 
rirs>  bow  welcome  you  would  be  to  Christ  after  all  the  wrong 
Aat  you  have  dohe>  Uim,  if  you  would  but  speedily  and 
heartily  return.  Those  arms  that  were  isailed  open  upon  the 
oross^  are  still  ready  to  embrace  a  returning  soul.  H^'  that 
hsd  tears- to  weep  over  his  enemies  in  their  obstinacy^,  hath 
jqiy  for  them  that^  return  from  their  impenitelicy.  He  tfa^t 
would  have  gathered  Jerusalemi  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chick'^ 
ens  under  her  wing,  if  they  would  have  been  gathered  *,  doth 
skew  what  kind  and  tender  welcome  repenting  sinners  should 
find  with  him.  If  you  had  but  hearts  to  repent,  you  would 
find  that  Christ  hath  a  heart  to  receive  you.  I  have  for- 
merly told  you  how  tenderly  he  would  meet  apoor  sinner 
haif  way,  and  fall  upon  his  neck,  and  comfort  his  broken 
hearty  and  forget  his  miscarriages,  and  never  hit  him  in  the 
teeth  with  his  sin  ;  as  the  father  did  by  the  returning  prodi* 
gal  ^.  If  you  did  but  know  the  worth  of  Christ's  embrace- 
ments,  and  tender  love  that  he  hath  to  shew  toward  you,  you 

'  «  Lake  xv.  ^  Luke  xix.  10.  «  John  iu.  \7. 

'Lukexix.41.  f  Matt.  xxiU.  37.  »•  Luke  xv. 


228  TRBATI8B   OF   CONTBRIION. 

could  not  find  in  your  heart  to  stand  out  so  long.  You 
would  rather  be  in  your  Saviour's  arms,  than  among  the 
swine  where  you  have  nothing  but  the  husks.  Can  you  find 
in  yQj(.x  hearts  to  delay  your  return,  and  to  despise  this  love? 
In  the  name  of  God  take  heed  what  you  do ;  for  I  must  tdl 
you,  if  you  are  so  barbarous,  and  will  so  abuse  that  grace 
that  would  save  you,  you  will  find  that  he  hath  wrath  as  well 
as  grace ;  and  the  Lamb  of  God  is  a  lion  to  his  enemies,  and 
will  slay  those  ¥rithout  mercy,  that  would  not  have  him  rule 
•  over  them,  nor  accept  of  his  mercy  K  Abuse  not  mercy  too 
much,  lest  it  turn  to  unavoidable  indignation.  For  *'  oar 
God  is  also  a  consuming  fire  ^.**  And  "  if  his  wrath  be  kin- 
dled, yea,  but  a  little,  then  blessed  are  they  that  put  their 
trust  in  him/'  Then  blessed  are  they  that  were  cQnverted.by 
his  grace,  for  only  they  shall  be  saved  firom  his  burning  in-^ 
dignation,  and  be  made  partakers  of  the  kingdom  of  bis 
glory.  ... 

By  this  time  you  may  see,  if  you  be  not  mlfuUy  blinded, 
that  when  we  persuade  you  to  be  converted,  we  are  not 
drawing  you  into  a  miserable  life ;  and  that  it  is  no  ill  bar- 
gain, which  we  offer  you  from  the  Lord.  If  I  had  nothing 
to  plead  with  you,  but  the  danger  of  damnation,  I  mi^t 
justly  expect  you  should  believe  and  tremble,  and  yield  such 
obedience  as  fear  alone  can  cause.  But  I  could  not  expect 
that  you  should  receive  it  with  love,  nor  yield  the  delightfid 
obedience  of  the  saints.  But  now  you  may  see  that  we 
move  you,  not  to  your  loss.  I  dare  say  I  have  shewn  you 
enough  to  win  the  heart  of  any  man  that  is  not  obstinately 
bliud  and  wicked.  If  you  would  be  rich,  I  have  shewed 
you  the  only  riches ;  if  you  would  be  honourable,  it  is  only 
conversion  that  can  make  you  so ;  if  you  would  have  plea- 
sure, I  have  shewed  you  the  way  to  plea8ure,and  how  you  may 
be  possessed  even  of  your  Master's  joy.  In  a  word,  if  you 
would  be  happy,  I  have  shewed  you  the  only  way  to  happi- 
ness ;  a  life  of  peace  and  safety  hath  been  offered  you ;  a 
life  of  honour  and  pleasure  hath  been  offered  you;  and  re- 
member that  it  was  offered  you.  If  you  refuse  it,  remember 
you  might  have  been  happy  if  you  would.  You  might  have 
lived  with  the  image  of  God  upon  your  souls,  and  the  Holy 
GhoBt  within  you,  and  the  everlasting  kingdom  a  little  be- 

» Luke  XIX.  Vt .  ^  UeVi-  ia\.  ^- 


TRKATISB   OF   CONVBRSION.  8Jt9 

fore  you^  and  with  the  eye  of  faith  upon  the  promise  of  it  in 
the  word,  and  the  eye  of  hope  upon  the  glory  that  is  pro- 
mised.   With  the  love  of  God  in  your  hearts,  now  breathing 
after  l^m  in  holy  desires,  which,  when  you  have  reached 
fiim,  and  are  come  to  him,  will  turn  into  those  endless  and 
inconceivable  enjoyments.    You  might  have  lived  here  in 
die  spiritual  communion  of  the  saints,  in  the  spiritual  and 
fruitful  use  of  God's  ordinjeinces,  the  chariots  to  convey  your 
souls  to  life,  and  that  glass  in  which  you  may  see  the  Lord ; 
you  might  have  been  much  freed  from  the  terrible  gripes  of* 
conscience  which  the  guilty  feel,  or  certainly  shall  feel ;  and 
secured  from  that  sin  that  **  lieth  at  the  door  ^''  and  from  all 
die  everlasting  misery  that  now  waitethfor  you.  .  In  a  word, 
instead. of  a  life  of  brutish  sensuality  and  folly,  and  slavery 
to  satan,  and  preparation  to  eternal  torment,  you  were  offer- 
ed that  life  which  consisteth  in  **  righteousness,  and  peace, 
a&d  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost  °^.    Beloved  hearers,  I  now  be- 
seech you,  in  the  name  of  the  Lord,  that  you  would  not  wil- 
fully refuse  to  be  happy ;  and  that  you  would  not  neglect 
80  great  salvation.    Our  office  obligeth  us  to  invite  you,  and 
to  be  earnest  with  you ;  and  O  that  we  were  able  even  to 
compel  you  to  come  in  °.    The  nature  of  Christian  charity 
Qbligeth  us  to  desire  that  you  might  partake  of  that  felicity' 
that  is  offered  you.    We  know  that  you  may  live  everlast- 
ingly in  glory,  if  you  prefer  not  the  world  and  your  flesh 
before  it.    Through  the  great  mercy  of  God,  we  have  tasted 
somewhat  of  this  felicity  ourselves,  and  cannot  choose  but 
wish  that  you  might  be  companions  of  our  joy.     Methinks 
I  should  be  of  so  much  credit  with  you  myself,  as  that  you 
should  take  my  word  in  a  matter  that  I  have  tried.    Why,  if 
you  will  take  my  word,  sirs,  I  do  profess  to  you  before  the 
Searcher  of  hearts,  that  the  safety  and  peace,  and  comfort  of 
a  converted  state,  is  such,  that  I  would  not  be  without  it  for 
all  the  world.    Shall  I  say,  I  would  not  change  it  for  a  life 
of  drunkenness,  or  filthiness,  or  fleshly  pleasure,  or  for  all 
the^gains  of  a  covetous  worldling?     I  am  ashamed  of  the 
comparison.    As  bad  as  we  know  our  own  hearts  to  be,  I 
will  confidently  say,  through  the  grace  of  God,  if  the  king- 
doms of  the  world  were  offered  us  in  exchange,  we  should 
Bcom  them,  and  tread  jthem  under  foot.    I  give  you.  my  viotd 

'  Gen.  itm  f,  ■  JRoin.  xir.  IT.  •  liiaike  xw%  **% 


S80  TREATISE   OF   CONVER8IOM. 

fM^d  ep[perieiioe,  bat  to  persuade  you  to  come  near  and  try. 
But»  alas  I  if  you  will  not  believe  God,  how  can  I  expect  my 
words  should  b^  believed.  O  that  you  would  but  come  and 
try,  and  when  you  have  tried  the  way  of  holiness,  but  a 
quarter  as  much  as  you  have  done  the  ways  of  the  world  and 
theflesh,  then  if  you  like  it  not,  take  your  course.  If  you 
find  by  experience  that  the  way  of  sin  is  «afer  and  better, 
when  you  have  tried  both,  then  turn  back  again  and  spare 
not ;  I  would  trouble  you  no  more,  would  you  but  come  and 
try ;  it  is  all  that  I  now  desire  of  you.  But  to  think  hardly 
of  a  state  that  you  never  tried  ;  to  draw  back  from  a  life  dntt 
you  never  tried;  this  is  not  equal  dealing  with  Grod,  nor  imr 
partial  faithful  dealing  for  your  souls.  I  know  some  that 
have  forborne  some  outward  sins  awhile,  and  stepped  into 
an  foutward  profession,  and  into  the  company  of  Uie  godly, 
have  fallen  back  again.  But  if  you  will  but  try  the  inward 
nature,  and  spiritual  life  of  a  saint;  the  love;  Uie  trust,  the 
zeal,  the  joy,  the  endeavours,  and  the  hopes  of  a  saint,  then 
judge  and  spare  not,  as  experience  shall  direct  you,  and  for- 
sake God  if  you  really  find  that  the  flesh  and  the  world  are 
better.  Remember  what  I  say  to  you.  It  will  leave  you 
unexcusable,  and  be  the  confusion  of  your  faces,  when  you 
shall  answer  this  another  day,  that  when  your  everlasting 
joy  or  torment  did  lie  upon  it,  you  would  not  be  persuaded 
by  all  that  we  could  say,  so  much  as  to  leave  your  sikis 
awhile,  and  come  and  make  trial  of  a  godly  life.  O  wretches ! 
you  will  one  day  be  ready  to  eat  your  own  hearts,  to  think 
that  you  refused,  and  wilfully  refused,  and  impenitently  and 
obstinately  refused,  so  fair,  so  necessary,  so  good  a  motion. 


CHAPTER  VI. 


Use  of  Exhortation^ 

Beloved  hearers,  I  am' not  come  hither  to-day  of  my  owo 
head,  nor  in  my  own  name,  nor  on  my  own  business ;  but  in 
the  name  of  Christ,  and  on  the  business  of  your  sidvation. 
I  know  this  great  assembly  will  be  all  very  shortly  in  ano- 
ther world,  and  we  shall  meet  ere  long  in  a  far  greater  as- 
sembly at  the  day  of  Christ's  judgment,  which  will  be  upon 


TRSATI8B   OF   CONYBRftlOlf.  331 

usfor  ail  the  seemiog  delay,  before  ihe  careless  world  is 
aware.  ^That  you  may  be  ready  for  that  day,  and  stand  with 
boldneas  before  the  Judge,  when  the  unconyerted  world 
stands  trembling  and  amazed,  as  overwhelmed  with  the  un- 
expected terrors  of  the  Lord,  this  is  the  business  that  I  come 
hidier  about  to  day ;  no  less,  no  lower  business  than  this. 
That  I  hav6  not  trifled  with  you,  and  filled  your  ears  with 
witty  toys  and  strange  matters,  I  hope  you  will  easily  par- 
don me,  when  you  have  considered  your  condition,  and  the 
business  of  our  office.  I  hate  that  preaching  that  passeth 
orer  the  one  thing  necessary,  and  only  tickleth  the  ears  of 
miserable  men,  when  it  should  endeavour  their  relief.  If 
the  town  were  on  fire,  it  were  no  commendable  matter  to  be 
fiddling  and  dancing,  when  you  should  quench  it.  If  I  saw 
you  but  sinking  in  a  broken  vessel,  and  ready  to  drown,  if 
you  had  not  help,  it  would  seem  no  part  of  wisdom  to  me  to 
make  aleamed  oration  to  you,  when  I  should  be  helping  you 
oatrof  present  danger.  I  must  tell  you,  therefore,  that  I 
came  not  hither  only  to  talk  to  you,  that  you  might  go  home 
and  say,  you  had  heard  a  fine  or  a  learned  sermon  ;  but  I 
come  to  help  you  out  of  the  misery  of  an  unconverted  state. 
I  see  the  gulf  of  remediless  destruction  is  a  little  before  you, 
and  I  come  to  require  you  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  to  make 
a  stand,  and  go  no  further  in  the  way  of  wickedness:  but 
look  about  you  and  consider  your  way,  and  presently  re- 
turn. .Have  you  been  ignorant,  inconsiderate  worldlings, 
and  forgotten  that  God  that  should  have  had  your  hearts, 
and  forgotten  the  life  where  you  must  live  for  ever  ?  Be 
awakened  .then,  and  look  before  you;  lift  up  the  eye  of 
faith,  and  see  that  joy  or  torment  that  is  even  at  hand.  Have 
you  lived  to  the  flesh,  as  if  you  had  nothing  but  it  to  care 
for?  and  thought  it  more  ado  than  needs  to  provide  forever- 
lastingness?  In  a  word,  have  your  hearts  been  set  more  on 
this  life,  than  on  that  to  come?  and  on  the  things  below,  than 
on  God  above  ?  If  this  be  so,  flatter  not  yourselves  in  vain 
hopes.  Delay  not  a  day  longer,  but  presently  return  from 
that  condition.  Believe  the  word  of  God,  it  will  else  be 
thy  undoing.  "  For  if  you  live  after  the  flesh,  ye  shall 
die*."  "  For  they  that  are  far  from  thee  shall  perish  ;  but 
it  is  good  for  me  to  draw  nigh  to  God  **."    "  Where  your 

.  \Koin.  yf'm,  13.  ^  Psal.  IkxiiL  tt. 


2S2  TRBATIBV   OF   CONTBttSIQll* 

treasure  is,  there  will  your  hearts  be  also ""/'    What  say  yoii| 
airs,  will  you  return  to  God  from  the  lusts  of  the  flesh,  and 
the  love  of  this  world,  and  a  lazy,  careless,  ungodly  life,  or 
will  you  not?    Will  you  justify  yourselves  no  longer  in  a 
state  of  death,  nor  excuse,  nor  befriend  the  sins  that  have 
endangered  you,  but  yield  to  the  converting  work  of  the 
Spirit,  and  strive  not  against  that  grace  that  would  recover 
you  ?     I  pray  you  give  me  not  the  bare  hearing,  but  let 
your  hearts  msJce  answer,  aye  or  no.    Will  you  return  and 
be  converted,  or  will  you  not?    Dare  any  of  you  say,  no  ? 
^  hope  you  dare  not.     But  it  is  next  to  saying  no,  if  yoor 
hearts  say  nothing.    Tell  me  not  of  your  cold  wishes  and 
purposes,  and  you  hope  you  shall.    A  thousand  such  i^t 
and  heartless  meanings  have  4eft  souls  to  perish  in  endless 
misery.    It  is  resolution,  strong  resolution,  and  present  re« 
Efolution  that  you  must  have,,  and  that  God  expects.    What 
say  you?     Are  you  resolved  to  return,  or  are  you  not! 
Take  heed  what  you  say,  for  God  is  here  present  and  seeth 
your  hearts.     Do  not  halt  between  two  opinions;  but  if 
Baal  be  God  follow  him ;  if  the  flesh  and  the  world  be  Go4> 
and  will  make  you  happy,  follow  them;  but  if  the  Lord  be  God, 
follow  him**.     Do  not  put  me  o£F  with  to-morrow,  or  some- 
time hereafter,  as  if  it  were  not  yet  time,  or  you  could  not 
spare  your  sin,  as  yet.    No  resolution  is  sincere,  but  present 
resolution  :  he  that  would  keep  his  sins  a  day  longer,  would 
keep  them  a  year,  and  seven  years,  and  for  ever  if  he  might. 
He  that  would  not  close  with  Christ  to-day,  would  never  do 
it  by  his  good  will.     No  man  loveth  God,  that  longeth  not 
presently  to  be  such  as  God  would  have  him  be.  Again,  there- 
fore, I  ask  you,  are  you  resolved  presently  to  return,  or  not? 
This  is  the  business  I  come  hither  upon,  and  I  do  not  mean 
to  go  away  thus,  till  I  have  my  errand,  unless  you  say  me 
shameful  nay  ;  I  am  resolved  to  leave  you  better  or  worse, 
either  converted,  or  more  inexcusable  than  you  were  before, 
and  to  say  that  which  shall  be  a  witnessagainstyou,if  it  con- 
vert you  not.    And  here,  first,  if  you  be  not  yet  resolved,  I 
shall  desire  that  you  will  soberly  answer  me  these  few  ques- 
tions following : 

Quest,  u  What  do  you  think  had  come  of  you,  if  God 
had  cut  you  off  by  death  all  this  while  before  you  were  con- 

«  Matt.Vi.  21.  *1  Kings  xviii.  21. 


TRKATira   OF  QONTimSIOlf;  233: 

vetted?    Where  do  you  think  you  should  hftre been  this 
yefy  hour,  if  death  had  found  you  in  an  unconverted  state?. 
Do  yoii  not  know  ?    Why,  doth  not  my  text  tell  you  ?    Will 
not  you  believe  Jesus  Christ?    I  know,  if  you  do  not,  you 
had  been  as  sure  in  hell,  as  you  are  now  on  earth.    .  Oh ! 
-sirs,  how  many  a  fair  advantage  hath  God-had  against  you ! 
He  could  have  killed  you  with  one  frown ;  ¥rith  a  bit  of  breads 
with  a  draught  of  drink,  by  the  turning  of  a  hand/  by  the 
slipping  of  a  foot,  by  the  stumbling  of  a  horse ;  besides 
many  hundred  diseases  that  would  have  opened  the  door, 
or  rather  have  broken  down  your  dusty  cottages,  and  let  out 
yoar  guilty^  unprepared  souls  into  another  world.  *  Oh !  ^ou 
cannot  now  apprehend  what  a  dreadful  thing  it  is  for  an  un- 
changed soul  to  appear  before  the  Holy  Ood !     Doth  it  not 
sometimes  amaze  the  best  to  think  what  a  change  it  is  tha£ 
death  makes?    And  what  it  is  for  a  man  that  hath  liyed 
among  mortals  on  earth,  to  find  himself  in  a  moment  among 
angels  and  other  spirits?    How  much  more  should  Uie 
thoughts  of  a  more  lamentable  change  amaze  the  uncon- 
verted?    It  is  only,  or  chiefly  some  doubts,  and  some 
strangeness  to  that  heavenly  place,  that  amazeth  the  godly ; 
which  will  all  be  dispelled  at  the  twink  of  an  eye,  by  that 
joy  and  glory  that  they  shall  find  themselves  possessed  of. 
But  it  is  another  kind  of  matter,  even  the  everlasting  misery 
that  should  amaze  the  wicked.    O,  dear  friends,  what  it  oase 
had  you  been  in,  if  you  had  died  before  conversion  ?    Your 
hearts  are  notable  to  conceive  of  the  thousandth  part  of  the 
misery  that  you  would  have  been  in.     And  have  you  lived 
all  this  while  in  so  much  danger,  and  ¥rill  you  live  in  it  still  ? 
Ood  forbid.    I^ath  a  wonder  of  mercy  kept  you  out  of  hell 
so  long,  and  will  you  Loiter  yetlonger  in  the  old  condition  ? 
Hethinks  I  look  upon  you  as  imitating  Lot,  when  he  was 
called  out  of  Sodom  ^ ;  diat  after  he  had  been  warned  by  the 
angel  to  get  away  out  of  Sodom  with  all  that  he  had*  ais  he 
bved  his  life ;  yet  sons  and  daughters,  or  one  thing  or  other 
so  long  detain  him,  that  helingereth  away  the  time,  till  God 
heing  merciful  unto  him,  the  angels  did  even  carry  him 
forth',  and  said,  '^  Escape  now  for  thy  life,  look  not  behind 
thee,  and  make  no  stay  ^Z'     So  God  hath  mercifully  called 
you  out  of  the  Sodom  of  your  sins,  and  you  have  lingered 

•  Gen;  xix.  ^  Vcr.  16.  s  Ver.  IT, 


334  TREATISE  OF  CONTBRilOM. 

tin  now.  Oki  that  the  Lord  would  be  so  meiciful  to  yon 
as  to  lay  hands  as  it  were  upon  those  hearts,  aiid  take  them 
off  the  world  and  your  lusts,  and  bring  you  aWay !    This 

^  warning  however  I  am  bound  to  give  you :  '  Escape  now  for 
your  lives,  look  not  behind  you,  stay  not  any  longer,  lest 
you  perish  in  your  negligence/  So  much  for  my  first  ques- 
tion, '  What  had  become  of  you,  if  you  had  died  before 
conversioh  V 

Quest.  2.  My  next  question  is  this ;  Are  you  sure,  if  you 
delay  returning  another  day,  that  you  shall  be  that  day  out 
of  hell  ?  If  you  refuse  this  offer  that  God  maketh  you  now, 
are  you  sure  you  shall  ever  have  another  ?  Can  you  say, 
that  your  bodies  shall  not  lie  in  the  churchyard,  and  your 
souls  past  hope  and  help  in  misery,  before  the  next  meeting 
in  this  place,  if  you  so  long  delay  and  harden  your  hearts? 
You  are  not  sure  of  it ;  if  you  are,  let  us  see  your  evidence 
of  security.  Hath  God  any  where  promised  you  anolilier 
day's  time  ?  Why,  can  you  live  a  day  whether  God  will  or 
not?  You  know  you  cannot ;  I  dare  say  you  know  it*  Yon 
know  that  many  an  one  as  strong  as  you,  and  that  feared 
death  as  little,  hath  been  quickly  gone ;  and  go  yon  must, 
however,  at  the  last.  Well,  brethren,  do  I  need  to  ask  you 
such  a  question  now,  whether  it  be  wisdom,  or  madness  ra- 
ther, for  any  man  wilfully  or  negligently  to  live  one  day  or 
night  longer  in  such  a  condition,  as  if  you  should  die  in  it, 
you  were  undone  for  ever  ?  Will  you  venture  to  live  another 
day  in  such  a  case  in  which  you  cannot  be  sure  that  one  day 
to  be  out  of  hell  ?  O,  methinks,  while  you  are  unconverted, 
this  saying  of  Christ  should  be  still  ringing  in  your  ears.; 
"  Verily,  I  say  unto  you,  except  ye  be  converted,  and  be- 
come as  little  children,  you  cannot  enter  into  the  kingdom 
of  heaven."  And  methinks  every  night  when  you  lie  down 
in  bed,  you  should  think  with  yourselves,  '  What  if  I  should 
die  in  an  unconverted  state  before  the  next  morning?'  Me- 
thinks the  very  dreams  of  this  should  awake  you  with  terror. 
Methinks  when  you  rise  in  the  morning,  you  should  think 
with  yourselves,  *  What  if  I  should  die  in  an  unconverted 
state  before  night  V  Methinks  the  daily  thoughts  of  this 
should  mar  your  mirth,  and  sour  to  you  all  the  sweetness  of 
the  world.     How  can  you  {oTV>ea\  m  ^>\ch  a  danger  to  think 

of  it,  in   your  shops,  and  «ii  ^oui  >^\o\x^\  ^X.  Vwafc  «sA 


TEMlTISS  of  €0NV£B«0M.  8S6 

abroad,  which  way  soever  you  go,  or  whtfttDerer  you'  are 
doii^  ?  If  you  say,  *  Though  I  am  not  aure  to  liye  a  iday» 
yet  I  am  likdy,  for  I  have  many  an. one  already,  wfaenXhad 
no  assurance  of  it.  I  answer,  but  who  would  leave  jsuoh  a 
matter  as  his  everlasting  salvation  upon  such  hazard?  I 
warn  thee  therefore  from  God,  in  the  words  of 'Ood,  **  Boast 
not  thyself  of  to-morrow,  for  who  knoweth  what  a4ay  may 
bring  forth  **  ? 

Qiiest.  3.  My  third  question  to  you  is  this;  Which 
dost  thou  really  think  is  better,  God  or  the  creature,  heaven 
or  earth,  a  life  in  glory,  or  the  present  pleasure  of  sin  ?  Is 
it  indeed  thy  settled  judgment,  that  it  is  better  be  dnink 
than  sober,  a^d  better  take  the  delight  of  thy  fle8h,.and  fol- 
low this  world,  than  live  to  God  here,  and  with  God  here- 
after ?  Is  this  thy  settled  judgment,  or  is  it  not?  If  it  be, 
thou  art  an  infidel,  or  an  atheist,  and  not  a  Christian.  Nay 
wortie  than  most  infidels  or  heathens  in  the  world.  If  it  be 
not  thy  judgment,  how  darest  thou  do  it?  Wilt  thou  go 
against  thy  own  knowledge  ?  Wilt  thou  not  do  that  which 
thou  knowest  is  both  pleasing  to  God,  and  best  for  thyself? 
Shall  God  shew  thee  thy  misery,  and  wilt  them  wilfully  nui 
into  it?  And  shall  he  shew  diee  thy  happiness,  and /  wilt 
thou  wilfully  forsake  it  ?  Dost  thou  think  that  it  is  better 
to  be  converted,  or  not  ?  If  thou  think  it  to  be  a  better  state, 
how  darest  thou  neglect  it,  or  refuse  it  as  thou  dost  ?  Who 
can  help  thee,  if  thou  know  that  thou  dost  evil,  and  yet  wilt 
do  it?  If  thou  know  that  thy  way  is  the.  way  of  death,  and 
yet  wilt  go  on  in  it  ?  And  who  shall  pity  thee,  if  knowingly 
thou  wilt  damn  thyself? 

Quest.  4.  My  fourth  question  to  thee  is  this ;  Dost. thou 
believe  that  man  is  made  for  this  world  only,  or  for  a  better  ? 
If  heaven  were  never  so  desirable,  if  it  be  not  attainable,  it 
is  in  vain  to  seek  it :  but  if  it  may  be  had,  what  hearts  have 
they  that  will  neglect  it,  or  prefer  any  other  thing  before  it? 
Do  you  think  that  man  was  only  made  to  take  a  life  of  plea- 
sure on  this  earth,  and  go  no  further,  and  there  is  an  end  of 
him?  If  you  think  so,  you  are  Iplinder  ^than  most  heathens 
in  the  world.  Three  sorts  of  creatures  did  God  create ;  one 
sort  are  pure  spirits  without  fiesh ;  and  these,  were  placed  in 
their  happiness  at  the  first  to  be  nearest  to  God,  and  em- 

^  Frov*  xxvii.  1. 


386  TR£ATI8E  OF  CONVBRBMM. 

ployed  by  him  hi  his  noblest  works ;  only  being  not  at  finl 
confirmed^  some  of  them  fell  away,  and  are  become  derib : 
another  sort  of  creatures  have  flesh  without  immortal  souls, 
baring  no  other  life  than  what  is  fitted  to  their  earthly  state; 
I  mean  beasts  and  birds  and  all  other  unreasonable  crea- 
tures :  these  are  not  capable  of  any  higher  felicity  than  they 
here  enjoy  :  they  were  never  intended  for  it^  and  therefore 
their  natures  are  not  fitted  tp  it.  But  man  is  of  a  middle 
sort,  partaking  somewhat  of  both  these ;  be  hath  flesh  like 
the  beasts^  because  he  must  live  on  earth  as  they,  and  so 
must  eat,  and  drinks  and  sleep^  and  die,  and  his  flesh  most 
perish  as  well  as  theirs :  but  with  this  flesh  he  hath  a  soul 
that  is  akin  to  angels,  and  therefore  is  capable  of.an  endless 
life,  and  fitted  for  it :  so  that  so  far  as  he  is  fleshly,  so  fiur 
he  is  earthly,  and  is  like  the  beasts  that  perish ;  but  as  heii 
a  living  soul,  he  is-disposed  to  an  endless  life,  and  may  there 
be  like  to  the  angels  of  God,  Luke  xx.  36.  You  may  see 
this  difierence  between  brutes  and  men,  in  their  very  natnite 
here.  They  know  not  that  there  is  another  life,  and  we  do: 
they  live  not  in  hopes  and  fears  of  another  life,  but  we  do. 
Experience  certainly  discovers  this,  they  fear  but  one  death, 
and  we  fear  two,  in  fearing  a  misery  after  death.  We  go- 
vern them  only  by  present  objects ;  but  God  ruleth  us  by 
promises  and  Uireatenings  of  unseen  things,  and  by  the  hopes 
and  fears  of  another  life :  it  is  our  nature  to  be  thus  go- 
verned, and  theirs  to  be  ruled  by  sensual  objects.    . 

Well  then,  if  man  was  made  for  higher  tilings,  should  he 
not  seek  them,  and  live  for  them?  Remember  then,  I  be- 
seech you,  that  the  work  of  conversion  is  but  to  set  your 
hearts  on  the  things  that  you  were  made  for:  it  is  to  make 
you  know  that  you  are  men  and  not  beasts,  and  to  bring  you 
to  live  the  life  of  men.  Sin  doth  unman  us,  and  in  a  sort 
even  brutify  us ;  and  conversion  restoreth  us,  in  our  presebt 
measure  to  the  ends  that  we  were  created  for,  and  to  the 
image  of  God  that  we  were  created  in,  which  disposeth  us 
to  tho^e  ends :  if  you  believe  then  that  man  is  not  a  beast, 
but  made  for  an  everlasting  life  with  God,  away  with  fleshly, 
worldly  vanities,  and  live  as  strangers  here,  and  as  those 
that  are  heirs  of  that  everlasting  life. 

.    QMest.  6.  My  next  question  to  you  is ;  Have  you  ever- 
soberly  and  considerately  compared  the  gain  and  the  loss 


TRBATI9B   OF   CONVERSION.  23t 

that  conversion  will  bring  you  ?  Did  you  ever  on  the  one 
tide  consider  of  all  the  present  peace  and  safety^  and  that 
everlasting  glory,  which  is  the  portion  of  them  diat  cleave 
to  Qod,  and  of  the  misery  of  all  others,  as  I  have  before 
discovered  it  to  you  ?  And  on  the  other  side,  have  you  con- 
sidered how  sinall  a  matter  it  is  that  you  can  lose,  if  yon 
yield  to  that  grace  that  would  prepare  you  for  this  glory  ? 
Sore  if  you  had  ever  considered  both  of  the  winning  and  the 
losing,  and  laid  one  in  the  one  end  of  the  scales,  and  the 
other  in  the  other,  the  case  might  have  been  resolved  with 
you  long  before  now.  Sinners,  when  God  and  his  ministers 
make  such  a  stir  with  you  to  persuade  you  to  be  converted, 
and  all  will  not  serve,  but  year  after  year  you  are  still  the 
Btnie,  there  is  somewhat  sure  that  is  the  cause.  If  some- 
what  did  not  stick  with  you,  you  would  have  yielded  before 
this  time.  Somewhat  there  is  sure  that  you  are  afraid  of 
losing  by  the  change,  or  else  what  should  be  the  matter  that 
you  refuse,  or  delay  ?  Well,  let  us  hear  what  it  is  that  you 
are  afraid  it  will  deprive  you  of.  Is  it  any  thing  that  is 
better  than  God,  than  heaven,  than  the  saving  of  your  souls  ? 
This  is  the  benefit  that  conversion  bringeth,  and  if  it  would 
take  from  you  any  thing  that  is  better,  refuse  it  then^  and 
spare  not.  I  tell  you,  sinners,  God  hath  no  need  of  you ;  it 
is  for  your  own  good,  and  that  honour  and  pleasure  that  he 
lakes  in  doing  good,  that  he  is  so  earnest  ¥rith  you  to  come 
in.  And  if  any  of  you  dare  charge  the  God  of  heaven  with 
dissembling,  as  if  he  meant  your  hurt,  while  he  thus  pre-, 
tendeih  your  good,  and  would  take  from  you  more  than  he 
oflfereth  you,  or  would  give  you ;  make  good  thy  charge  if 
thou  canst,  or  rather  take  heed,  if  thou  love  thyself^  of  such 
blasphemous  imaginations.  O  poor  soul,  if  God  would  do 
thee  harm,  who  dost  thou  think  will  do  thee  good  ?  If  the 
chief  good  be  not  good,  where  wilt  thou  find  good  ?  Dost 
ihou  fear  lest  the  sun  should  deprive  thee  of  thy  light,  when 
thou  canst  have  none  but  what  it  affordeth  thee  ?  Dost  thou 
ran  away  from  the  fire,  lest  it  should  make  thee  cold  ?  What, 
fear  lest  God  should  do  thee  harm,  when  there  is  no  good 
but  what  doth  stream  from  him  ?  Who  wilt  thou  go  to  for 
any  good,  if  thou  flee  from  him?  Hath  any  creature  the 
least  relief  for  thee«  except  they  receive  it  from  God,  and  he 
send  it  thee  by  their  hands  ?    They  have  nothing  but  what 


TRBATI8B   OP  CONYEKStON. 

he  lendeth  tbem^.nor  can  they  give  thee  any  suocoiir,  but  by 
his  consent.  What- is  it  then  that  thou  art  afraid  of  losings 
by  being  converted  ?  Is  it  any  thing  that  is  worth  the  heef* 
ing?  It  is  incredible  that  God  should  envy  thee  thy  hap* 
piness ;  that  is  the  work  of  the  devil,  which  moved  him  to 
tempt  us  from  it.  And  dare  you  make  God  like  him,  or. 
father  on  God  his  nature,  or  his  works?  It  is  incredibk 
wrong  that  men  do  to  Qod  while  they  question  his  goodneaii 
and  dislike  his  holy  laws  and  ways,  and  quarrel  with  him, 
as  if  he  were  their  enemy :  and  when  he  would  draw  thmi 
out  of  the  prison  of  the  devil,  and  the  power  of  sin>  they  diaw 
back,  as  if  he  would  draw  them  into  bondage.  O  base^  u** 
thankful  wretches !  must  salvation  be  so  dearly  bought,  aai 
so  kindly  offered  you^  and  do  you  thus  reject  iti?  OU 
foolish  self-^destroying  wretches,  are  you  so  far.  deliveiii. 
from  all  your  enemies,  that  your  happiness  is  brought  tb 
your  own.choieey  and  you  may  freely  have  it  if  you  will^ani 
now  will  you  not  have  it?  And  will  you;  be  the  last  airf 
deadly: enemy  to  yourselves  ?  Why,  what  iait  that ybm tts 
so  leathito  leave?  Is  ityour  sins  ?  Is  it  your  fle^y  plea* 
sutes?  Or  your  woridly  profits,. or  your  ease,  or  credit;  or 
which  of  these?'  Is  it  not  a  sad  case  that  reasonable  umd 
should  come  to  such  a  pass,  that  they  are  afraid  of  retumr 
ing  to  the  favoijir  of.  God,  and  of  coming  from  the  thraldom 
of  the  devil,  into  his  service^  lest  they  should  lose  their  plesr 
sure  ?  As  if  there  were  less  delight  in  the  love  of  God,  than 
in  fleshpleasing  filthiness ;  or  as  if  the  joys  of  heaven  woe 
less  than  the  mirth  of  an  alehouse.  Issit  not  a  sad  case  thst 
ever  men  should  be  afraid  of  being  losers  by  God?,  or  of 
missing  their  money,  o«  their  houses,  or  lands,  when  they 
come  to  heav^i  ?  Ae-^if  there  were  any  want  there  where  all 
are  glorious  kings :  and  as  if  Lazarus  had  not  changed  his 
state.  And  is  it  not  a  shameful  thing,  that  men  should  ibe 
ashamed  to  be  the  servants  of  the  God  of  heaven,  and  think 
it  a  discredit  to  be  the  heirs  of  gloi*y  ?  Is  it  to  any  purpose 
to  talk  to  such  men  as  these  ?  Will  they  ever  hear  reason 
that  are  so  unreasonable  ?  If  preaching  were  not  the  ordi- 
nance of  God,which  he  hath  commanded  us  to  use,  and  there* 
fore  may  set  it  in  with  his  blessing,  when  he  pleaseth,  we 
should  even  throw  by  all,  and  look  on  such  as  diese  as  mad- 
men^ and  think,  till  God  shall  bring  them  to  their  wits,  there 


OF   CONVERSION.  280 

!•  no  good  to  be  done  by  speaking  to  them.  If  a  man  will  fly 
from  God»  to  an  alehouse,  or  gaming-house  for  pleasure,  or 
from  God  to  the  world  fori  profit  or  honour,  what  shall  we 
Bay  to  such  a  man,  but  eren  take  him  in  this  as  besides  him^ 
self?     For  who  will  think  better  of  him  that  will  run  into  a 
prison,,  or  to  his  enemies,  for  his  liberty?  or  that  will  tumble 
IB-  the  chanel,  or  lie  down  in  the  sink,  and  will  not  come  out 
for  fisar  of  being  befouled  ?    I  would  ask  the  drunkard,  or 
fornicator,  or  worldling,  or  whosoever  he  be  that  hath  the 
Oiost  that  sin  can  do  for  him ;  dost  thou  think  that  thou 
hast  a  more  comfortable  life  than  those  that  are  furthest  from 
diy  sin  ?    Dost  thou'  think  that  they  that  abhor  thy  drunk- 
enness, whoredom,  or  worldly  courses  of  life,  have  not  a 
More  comfDrtable  life  than  thou  ?     Besides  that  which  they 
ghallhare  in  heaven,  when  sin  hath  brought  thee  into  tor^ 
ment  (if  true  conversion  do  not  prevent  it),  even  in  this  life, 
which,  think  you,  have  the  more  peaceable  and  comfortable 
life  ?   ^  I  am  even  ashamed  to  make  the  comparison.     A  wise 
and  godly  man  doth  abhor  these  things  that  are  the  felicity 
of  migodly  men.    Yourfilthy  liv'es,  which  you  are  loath  to 
leave,  would- make  the  heart  of  a  sober  man  to  rise  to  think 
of  diem.    What  wise  man  wovdd  not  think  it  a  misery,  if  he 
were  condemned  to  live  your  lives  but  a  few  dayci.     A  swine 
takes  pleasure  to  tumble  in  the  mire,  but  a  man  in  his  wits 
will  take  no  pleasure  to  bear  him  company.     And  is  this  all 
that  you  are  like  to  lose  by  it,  if  you  be  converted,  and  yet 

will  you  stand  off?  Well,  I  say  no  more  of  itnowbut  this  : 
Ifj  after  all  this,  you  take  the  world  to  be:  better  than  God, 
and- the  pleasures  of  sin  to  be  greater  than  the  pleasures  of 
aholy  life,  and  the  joythat  God.would  give  you  with  himself. 
jjLod  if  you  are  afraid  of  turning  to  God  lestyou  be  losers  by 
himi  you  may  take  your  course,  and  stay  till  the  end  shall 
make,  you  wiser  to  your  cost; 

Qu^t»  6.  My  next  (question  to  you,  is  this  :  Have  you 
now  any  reason  to  give  against  your  speedy  effectual  con- 
version, which  you  will  undertake  to  stand  to,  and  justify  at 
the  bar:  of  God  ?  Do  you  know  any  harm  by  that  state  and 
life  that  God  by  converting  grace  would  bring  you  to? 
You  have  heard  much  that  may  be  said  for  it;  what  now 
have  you  to  say  against  it  ?  I  know  that  a  great  many  of 
senseless  words  are  poured  out  by  foolish  siimers  against 


240  TREATISE  OF   CONYlCHSION. 

the' holy  ways  of  God.    But  they  are  such  as  shew  their 
folly  and  malice,  and  proceed  from  wilfulness  and  not  from 
reason.    Not  one  of  all  these  that  you  hear  in  a  comer 
scorning  at  godliness,  or  reasoning  against  it,  dare  stand  to 
these  reasons  when  God  shall  deal  with  him.    For  my  part, 
sirs,  I  would  persuade  you  to  nothing  unreasonable  and  un- 
fit.   I  have  told  you  my  reasons  for  the  necessity  of  conver- 
sion :  if  you  are  against  it  now,  either  you  have  reason  to 
be  against  it,  or  you  have  not ;  if  you  have  no  reason  for  it, 
how  dare  you,  howcan  you  do  it  ?    What !  will  you  renounce 
your  reason  in  the  greatest  matters,  where  you  have  the 
greatest  use  for  it  ?  or,  will  you  be  wilfully  brutes  ?    Or  will 
you  set  yourselves  knowingly  against  God  and  your  own 
souls  ?    In  the  name  of  God  consider  first  what  you  do.    It 
must  be  either  deluded  rtoson  or  mere  wiUulness  that  causi 
you  now  to  refuse  or  delay  to  be  converted.    I  beseech  yoa 
let  me  have  the  answer  of  your  hearts  here  before  the  Lord. 
Deal  truly,  have  you  any  reason  why  you  should  not  be  con- 
verted and  turn  to  God  before  to-morrow  ?    I  pray,  you  do 
not  pass  it  over  carelessly,  but  givei  me  youn  anwer :     Have 
you  any  reason  for  it,  or  have  you  hot  ?     If  you  have  not, 
your  conscience  is  then  witness  that  you*  are  wilful  in  your 
neglect.    You  turn  not  to  Qodrbeoause  you  will  not  turn. 
You  go  on  in  sin,  because  yon  will  go  on.    You  do  then  in 
your  hearts,  as  it  were,  set  God   at  defiance,  and  say, 'I 
confess  I  have' no  reason  to  sin,  but  yet  I  will  do  it:  I  have 
no  reason  to  delay  my  return  to' God  an  hour,  but  yet  I  will 
do  it.    And  I  will  do  it,  though  reason  as  well  as  the  word 
of  God  cry  out  against  it'    Who  can  you  blame  then,  if 
the  plagues  of  God  shall  reach  suchX  rebel,  and  if  he  deal 
with  you  as  wilful  sinners  should  be  dealt  with  ?     If  you  had 
doiie  it  ignorantly,  you  had  some  excuse,  or  you  might  have 
been  beaten  with  the  few^r  stripes  :■  but  wiliiil  sini  hath  no 
excuse,  and  as  such  the  Lord  will  pour  out  his  wrath.    If 
your  own  reason  tell  you,  you  should  present^  return  to 
God,  and  you  will  not,  how  can  you  expect  in  reabbn  to  find 
mercy  with  the  Lord  ?     O  that  you  knew  what  a  heinous 
thing  it  is  to  sii^-wilftilly  after  the  knowledge -of  the  truth : 
it  would  make  every  joint  of  ybU' to  trembfe^^lest  if  you  go 
a  little  further,  ther^  should  be  no"  more  sacrifice  for  sin, 
"•hot  a  certain*  Iodising  for  of  judgment, ^&nd  fire  which  de- 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  241 

Youreth  ihe  adversary  K"  Well,  sirs,  let  me  again  put  the 
•question  to  you :  What  say  you?  Will  you  presently  re- 
turn to  God,  or  will  you  not?  Halt  not  between  both,  but 
resolve  off,  or  on.  Say  plainly,  you  will,  or  you  will  not : 
if  you  will  not,  tell  me  then,  why  will  you  not?  Have  you 
any  reason  for  it,  or  have  you  none  ?  If  none,  how  dare  you 
be  wilful  ?  but  if  you  have  any  reason,  I  pray  you  answer 
my  next  question.  Is  your  reason  such  as  you  will  under- 
tdLe  to  stand  to  at  the  bar  of  God  ?  It  is  an  easy  matter  to 
deceive  yourselves  and  6thers,  and  to  daub  over  a  cause 
that  is  apparently  naught,  and  to  bring  fair  pretences  for  the 
most  foul  actions.  Something  men  will  have  to  say,  to 
stop  the  mouth  of  those  that  would  convince  them,  be  their 
cojurse  never  so  ungodly  :  but  the  question  is,  whether  you 
have  any  reasons  for  your  sin,  and  against  your  speedy  and 
effectual  return,  which  you  will  undertake  to  stand  to  before 
the  Lord.  I  pray  you  bethink  yourse^lves  soberly  of  an  an- 
swer, before  you  hold  on  your  course  any  longer ;  lest  you 
be  at  the  bar  before  you  are  aware.  One  man*s  reason  is, 
his  sin  is  sweet,  and  he  hopes  he  may  safely  keep  it  a  little 
longer,  and  then  he  means  to  let  it  go.  It  seemeth,  then, 
you  had  rather  sin  than  not;  and  that  shews  that  at  present . 
thou  art  a  graceless  wretch.  But  is  the  sweetness  of  thy 
sin  a  suflGlcient  reason  for  thee  to  refuse  the  sweetness  of  a 
pardon,  and  the  sweetness  of  the  reconciled  face  of  God, 
and  the  sweetness  of  everlasting  glory  ?  Dare  you  stand  to 
such  a  reason  as  this  is  before  God?  I  know  you  dare  not. 
How  then  dare  you  delay  your  conversion  upon  such  rea« 
sons?  Is  sin  sweet  to  thee,  and  is  not  holiness  sweeter? 
is  not  pardon,  and  life,  and  grace,  and  Christ,  and  God,  and 
glory  sweeter  ?  O  what  kind  of  reasons  be  these  for  a  rea- 
sonable man  to  venture  his  salvation  upon?  I  shall  not 
stand  to  try  the  rest  of  them,  because  they  will  fall  under  a 
more  particular  consideration  hereafter.  Only  in  general  I 
charge  and  require  you,  plead  not  such  reasons  as  you  dare 
not  stand  to  at  the  bar  of  God. 

Quest.  7.  My  next  question  to  you,  is  this ;  Have  you 
ever  well  considered  who  they  be  that  sure  for  your  conver- 
sion, and  who  they  be  that  are  against  it?  You  may 
easily  conjecture  by  this,  whether  it  be  good  or  bad.    You 

>Hcb.  X.  26. 
VOL.    VII.  R 


242  TRUATISE   OF   CONYERtfKlK* 

have  heard  already  who  they,  be  that  are  for  it :  Ood  is  for 
it>  Christ  is  for  it«  the  Holy  Ghost  is  for  it«  the  angels  of 
he«ven  are  for  it,  the  ministers  of  the  Ooepel  are  for  it»  and 
every  wise  and  godly  man  is  for  it.    God  is  so  ranch  for  it, 
that  he  sent  his  Son  to  purchase  it,  and  his  word  to  com- 
mand and  call  you  to  it,  and  to  give  you  directiona  how  it 
must  be  done^  and  his  ministers  to  persuade  you  to  hear  and 
submit.     He  is  so  much  for  it,  that  he  hath  sworn  that  he 
bath  **  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  rather  that 
he  return  and  live  ;''  and  pleadeth  the  case  with  you,  and 
asketh  yon,  "  Why  you  will  die ''/'    Christ  is  so  much  for  it, 
that  he  bath  made  it  his  office ;  he  took  the  nature  of  man 
on  him  to  that  end,  that  he  might  seek  and  save  that  which 
was  lost ;  and  for  that  end  he  submitted  to  the  cursed  death 
of  the  cross,  and  for  that  end  hath  he  made  the  promises  of 
his  Gospel,  and  sent  abroad  bis  ministers  to  proelaim»  them. 
He  is  so  much  for  it,  that  he  is  purposely  become  the  ^  Cap- 
tain of  our  salvation ;"  and  having  first  given  us  his-  own 
example,  doth  lead  us  on  in  all  encounters,  and  calleth  us  to 
follow  him,  that  we  may  conquer  as  he  hath  done.     He  is  so 
much  for  it,  that  upon  this  very  ground  will  he  condemnf  at 
last  the  impenitent  world,  because  they  would  not  be  con- 
verted by  him.     The  Holy  Ghost  is  so  much  for  it,  that  he 
moveth  and  importuneth  sinners  thereunto,  and  effiectually 
worketh  it  .in  all  the  elect.     The  angels  of  heaven,  as  you 
have  heard,  are  so  much  for  it,  that  it  is  their  joy  when  a 
sinner  is  converted.     The  ministers  of  Christ  are  so  mudk 
for  it,  that  they  make  it  their  business  and  study,  and  preacb 
and  pray,  and  suffer,  and  think  nothing  too  much  if  they 
might  but  accomplish  it.    '*  They  are  willing  to  spend  and 
be  spent  for  thns  end  ^"    ''  They  account  not  their  lives  dear 
to  them,  so  they  may  but  finish  their  course  with  joy,  and 
tha  ministry  which  they  have  received  of  the  Lord  in  preach- 
ing the  Gospel  of  the  grace  of  God  "*•'*    They  are  content  to 
**  instruct  those  in  meekness  that  oppose  themselves,  if  God 
peradventure  will  give  them  repentance  to  the  acknowledg- 
ing of  the  truth,  tha!t  they  may  escape  out  of  the  snares  of 
satan^."     All  the  godly  are  so  much  for  it,  that  it  is  their 
daily  prayer  and  earnest  desire :  and  they  would  do  any 
thing  they  could  to  accomplish  it.    O  how  heartily  dy>  they 
pray  for  your  conversion,  that  the  kingdom  of  God  may 

*  Ezck,  jrxxiii.  11.         *  ^Cor.nli.  15,        •"  Acts  xx,  «4,        "  2  Tim.  ii,  25. 


! 


TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  243 

teme  into  y<mr  hearts ! ,  How  glad  are  they  when  they  hear 
of  the  oonTersion  of  a  sinner !  Well«  sinners,  methinks  you 
-dionld  consider  with  yourselves,  '  For  what  reason  do  all 
these  desire  my  conversion?  Who  is  it  that  shall  be  the 
gainer  by  it?  What  doth  God  get  by  it?  What  doth 
Ckrist  the  Redeemer  get  by  it?  What  doth  the  Spirit  that 
moveth  me  get  by  it?  What  profit  is  it  to  the  ministers  of 
the  Oospet?  Might  they  not  as  easily  let  me  alone,  and 
please  me  in  my  sins,  and  tell  me  of  no  danger  ?  What  pro- 
fit 18  it  to  all  my  godly  friends,  that  they  should  so  earnestly 
desire  it,  and  pray  for  it  ?  Is  it  not  I  that  am  like  to  have 
the  gain  ?  And  should  I  set  against  all  the  friends  I  have 
that  endeavour  my  own  good,  even  my  everlasting  good  ? 

You  see  who  they  be  that  are  for  your  conversion :  will 
you  now  consider  who  they  be  that  are  against  it  ?  Are 
they  better  than  God?  Are  they  truer  friends  to  you  than 
Oiriat  and  his  ministers,  and  those  that  persuade  you  to  re- 
pent and  live  ?  Are  they  such  as  love  you  better  than  all 
these  do  ?  Why,  who  are  they?  First,  the  chiefest  enemy 
to  your  conversion  is  the  devil  himself.  It  is  he  that  dis- 
suadeth  you ;  that  raiseth  doubts  and  temptations  in  your 
mind,  and  casteth  so  many  rubs  in  your  way.  He  would  not 
have  you  converted  if  hecould  hinder  it.  If  all  his  subtlety 
can  hinder  it ;  if  all  his  power  and  malice  can  hinder  it ; 
if  all  the  instruments  that  he  can  raise  up  against  it,  can 
hinder  it,  you  shall  never  be  converted.  He  knows  he  shall 
lose  a  servant  and  subject  of  his  kingdom ;  he  shall  be  cast 
oirt  of  that  possession  which  he  hath  kept  in  peace.  If  he 
do  not  rule  you,  he  shall  not  torment  ybu,  which  is  plea- 
flsnt  to  his  malice.  No  one  in  all  the  world  is  so  much 
against  your  conversion  as  the  devil.  When  you  say,  you 
will  never  be  so  pure,  nor  so  godly,  nor  live  so  holy  and  hea- 
venly a  life,  O  how  you  please  him  !  You  could  not  haye 
said  a  word  that  he  more  delighteth  to  hear ;  for  it  is  as 
if  you  had  said,  *  I  will  never  leave  my  master,  the  devil,  to 
serve  Christ.'  Nay,  it  is  all  one  as  if  you  said,  *  I  am  re- 
solved, I  will  never  be  saved,  seeing  there  is  no  salvation 
without  conversion.'  When  you  say  you  will  do  as  your 
forefathers  have  done  ;  and  you  will  take  your  pleasure  and 
foBow  the  world  ;  and  not  be  so  precise,  nor  trouble  your 
minds  so  much  about  the  case  of  your  souls,  or  the  matters 


244  TRSATISS   OF   CONVERSION. 

of  eternal  life ;  O  how  you  please  the  devil  by  this  !  Thig 
is  that  he  would  have.  You  speak  even  as  he  would  have 
you  speak ;  for  indeed  it  is  he  that  tempteth  you  to  speak  it 
But  for  God's  sake,  and  your  soul's  sake,  sinners,  will  you 
consider  whether  God  or  the  devil  is  your  better  friend? 
You  are  the  cause  that  I  am  put  upon  such  a  strange  ques- 
tion to  you :  whether  that  be  liker  to  be  for  your  good, 
which  God  would  have,  and  Christ  would  have,  and  the  holy 
Ghost  would  have,  and  ministers  would  have,  and  all  godly 
people  would  have ;  or  that  which  the  devil  himself  would 
have  ?  Do  I  need  to  bid  you  consider  of  this  ?  A  little 
consideration  sure  may  resolve  it.  Can  you  think  that  all 
these  forementioned  are  against  you«  and  satan  for  you? 
That  all  these  are  your  enemies,  and  satan  is  for  your  friend? 
If  you  will  indeed  take  God,  and  Christ,  and  his  Spirit,  and 
people,  and  all  for  your  enemies,  and  him  that  is  your  great- 
est enemy,  for  your  friend,  and  that  after  such  warnings^  as 
you  have  had  ;  you  may  reap  those  fruits  of  his  friendship 
which  you  little  think  of. 

But  there  are  some  other  besides  the  devil  against  your 
conversion.  True ;  but  who  be  they  ?  None,  but  his  agents, 
and  those  that  are  deceived  by  him  themselves.  Perhaps 
you  will  hardly  think  so  ;  for  one  may  be  your  father,  ano- 
ther your  mother,  another  your  husband  or  wife^  or  those 
that  profess  themselves  your  friends,  and  some  perhaps  may 
be  thought  wise  and  learned  in  the  world.  But  what  dodk 
God  say  of  them,  who  is  most  to  be  believed?  He  teUeth 
you,  they  are  foolish,  and  wicked,  and  enemies  to  the  cross 
of  Christ.  You  call  them  friends,  but  God  tells  you  they 
are  your  enemies.  If  you  think  I  speak  too  hardly  of  thenii 
in  telling  you  they  are  ignorant,  blinded  sinners,  believe  God 
that  saith  the  same.  I  hope  you  will  not  accuse  him  of 
wronging  them,  or  any  one.  Never  man  spake  against  con- 
version that  knew  what  he  said,  and  was  converted  himself 
It  is  only  those  that  never  knew  or  tried  the  ways  of  God, 
that  persuade  you  from  them.  Will  you  go  to  the  blind  for 
direction?  or  to  the  slaves  of  satan  for  counsel  whether  you 
should  return  to  God  ?  If  they  were  wise  men  they  would 
return  themselves ;  and  if  they  be  not  wise  they  are  unfit  to 
give  you  counsel.  And  methinks  your  own  reasoni  might 
tell  you,  that  that  man  caimot  V^e  m^e  \\v%X^Q>^kd  dxaw  the 


TR£ATISK  OF  CONVERSION.         245 

hearts  of  others  from  Qod,  and  would  have  them  venture 
upon  the  drawn  sword  of  his  vengeance ;  and  do  that  which 
he  hath  threatened  everlasting  destruction  to.  Can  that  be 
a  wise  man  that  doth  himself  prefer  this  dunghill  worlds  and 
the  swinish  mirth  of  a  sinner  before  all  the  holy  joy  and 
glory  of  the  saints,  even  before  the  present  life  of  grace,  and 
the  future  life  of  glory  ?  Ask  your  reason  whether  this  can 
be  a  wise  man?  I  may  boldly  say,  then,  that  there  is  none 
bat  the  devil  and  wicked  fools  that  are  against  your  conver- 
sion. Tell  them  how  I  call  them,  and  spare  not ;  for  God 
calls  them  more,  and  their  own  consciences  will  call  them  so 
for  ever,  if  they  do  not  do  that  themselves  which  they  would 
dissuade  you  from  doing.  I  say  it  again,  there  is  not  one 
in  the  world,  but  the  devil  and  wicked  fools  that  are  against 
your  conversion.  And  if  these  shall  be  your  counsellors, 
tnd  ye  will  be  ruled  more  by  them  than  God,  and  all  the 
truest  friends  you  have  in  the  world,  let  your  own  con- 
sciences judge  whether  you  have  dealt  well  with  God,  or 
with  yourselves  ? 

QuesL  8.  Yet  I  have  some  more  questions  to  ask  you, 
and  my  next  is  this ;  Had  you  rather  die  in  a  converted,  or 
onconverted  state  ?  And  in  which  of  these  had  you  rather 
appear  before  the  Lord  ?  I  pray  you  put  this  question  to 
your  own  hearts,  and  soberly  answer  it.  I  say,  which  of 
diese  two  conditions  had  you  rather  be  in  at  death  and 
judgment  ?  Had  you  rather  die  the  death  of  the  righteous, 
or  of  the  wicked  ?  And  had  you  rather  stand  among  the 
onconverted,  or  the  converted,  at  the  bar  of  God  ?  Had  you 
rather  that  death  should  find  you  with  clean  hands,  an  in- 
nocent life,  and  an  heavenly  mind,  delighting  in  God,  and 
hoping  for  Christ's  appearing ;  or  that  it  should  find  you 
either  in  your  ignorance,  or  worldliness,  or  fornication,  or 
drunkenness,  or  with  the  guilt  of  any  of  these  upon  your 
souls,  and  with  an  heart  that  is  not  unfeignedly  turned  from^ 
them  unto  God  ?  I  do  not  think  there  is  the  most  blockish 
or  stout-hearted  sinners  among  you  ;  no,  not  they  that  make 
a  mock  at  godliness,  and  discourage  others  from  it,  but  they 
had  rather  be  among  the  godly,  than  the  ungodly,  at  the 
last.  And  is  it  not  a  strange  thing,  that  men  should  set  against 
that  course)  which  they  would  wish  to  be  {ound  ml  ^^^ 
should  live  contrary  to  it,  when  yet  at  the  same  Ivmfc  VSftfc'^ 


24(1  TR£Atl8E   OF   CONVERSION. 

had  rather  die  in  it,  than  as  they  are  ?  Sinners,  should  yon 
not  be  now  such  as  you  would  be  found  then?  And  should 
you  not  live  in  that  state  as  you  would  die  in  ?  Will  it  be 
best  then,  and  is  it  worst  now  ?  bow  can  that  be  ?  Believe 
it,  sirs,  you  have  neither  your  lives,  nor  the  grace  of  God  at 
your  will.  If  you  would  be  found  among  the  converted  at 
the  last,  become  such  quickly,  lest  the  last  should  come  be- 
fore you  are  aware.  If  life  forsake  you  not,  you  cannot  tell 
whether  the  Spirit  of  God  may  forsake  you.  If  grace  must 
be  had,  or  else  you  are  undone,  take  it  while  you  may  have 
it,  lest  you  be  given  over  to  the  hardness  of  your  hearts. 

Quest.  9.  My  next  question  is  this  ;  If  God  should  send 
an  angel  from  heaven  to  you,  to  plead  against  your  sinfbl 
course,  and  to  persuade  you  to  be  converted,  would  you 
hearken  to  him  and  obey  him ;  or  would  you  not  ?  If  he 
should  appear  to  you  in  your  careless  and  worldly  course  of 
life,  or  if  he  should  come  to  you  in  the  very  act  of  your  mn, 
and  tell  yoii  how  the  Lord  abhorreth  your  iniquity,  and  how 
his  vengeance  hangs  over  your  head,  and  will  fall  upon  you, 
if  you  speedily  repent  not ;  and  should  persuade  and  entreat 
you  to  lament  your  folly,  and  turn  to  God  with  all  your 
heart,  without  delay,  what  would  you  do?  and  what  answer 
would  you  give  ?  Would  you  tell  him  to  his  face,  *  I  will 
not  be  converted  ;  I  will  take  my  pleasure,  and  follow  the 
world,  and  venture  my  soul  rather  than  live  so  strict  a  life  ? 
Would  you  say  thus  to  him?  You  would  not,  sure  you 
durst  not  do  it!  Would  you  not  tell  him, '  I  am  sorry  for 
my  sins,  and  resolve  to  turn  without  delay ;'  but  if  you 
should  so  tell  him,  if  you  did  not  do  it,  your  promise  would 
but  prove  you  hypocrites,  and  rise  up  against  you  to  your 
condemnation.  O,  you  do  not  know  how  such  a  sight  would 
amaze  you,  and  awaken  you  from  security.  An  hand  that 
appeared  writing  upon  a  wall,  did  make  the  knees  of  a  sen- 
sual king  to  tremble  ;  it  loosed  his  very  loins,  it  changed 
bis  countenance,  it  troubled  his  thoughts,  Dan.  v.  6.  The 
appearance  of  an  angel,  at  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  did 
make  the  keepers  of  the  grave  to  shake,  and  become  as  dead 
men.  Matt,  xxviii.  4.  How  an  angel's  appearance  affected 
Cornelius ;  and  an  earthquake  with  the  effects  did  move  the 
jailor,  may  be  seen  in  Acts  x.  and  xvi.  and  many  the  like 
examples  we  might  give  yo\x.    ^\\^\,  *\^  ^w  ^dx^^  ^S.  Q^^ 


TKEATISE.  OF   CONVFRSION.  247 

fthould  but  come  aad  speak  over  this  text  to  you,  that  I  am 
preaehing :  **  Verily^  except  you  be  converted^  you  shall  not 
enter  into  the.  kingdom  of  heaven,"  would  you  yield,  or  ^ 
would  you  not  ?  -If  you  would  not,  you  are  hardened  with 
a  witness.  If  you  would,  let  me  foUow  my  question  a  little 
further  with  you.  Should  not  the  written  word  of  Chrifft 
himself^  and  the  voice  of  his  messengers  that  speak  in 
his  name,  and  all  the  judgments  and  mercies  that  second 
these  ;  I  say,  should  not  all  these  prevail  with  you  as  much^ 
and  more  than  an  angel's  voice  ?  You  have  here  the  pro* 
testation,  >or  vehement  asseveration  of  the  Lord  himself,, 
and  should  not  that  be  of  greatest  authority  with  us  ?  An* 
gels  are  but  servants  of  Christ  and  ministering  spirits  for 
the  good  of  his  elect :  would  you  hear  them,  and  will  you 
not  hear  their  master?  Would  you  hear  an  unusual  mes- 
senger, and  will  you  not  learn  in  Christ's  appointed  way  ? 
If  it  be  a  doctrine  to  be  received  from  angels,  tell  9ie,  if  you 
can,  why  it  should  not  be  received  now  from  the  word  of 
God,  and  from  his  ministers  ? 

Quest.  10.  The  last  question  that  I  shall  now  trouble  you 
with,  is  this ;  Do  you  think  that  man  who  after  all  this  shall 
refuse  to  turn  to  God,  and  after  all  this  shall  remain  uncon« 
verted,  will  have  any  just  excuse  before  the  Lord  ?  Or  will 
he  not  be  left  speechless,  and  under  the  condemnation  of  his 
own  conscience  for  ever?  Is  it  any  pity  to  cast  away  that 
man,  that  will  without  all  pity  cast  away  himself,  and  no 
saying  will  serve  him,  and  no  reason  will  satisfy  him  ?  Or 
when  he  is  convinced  and  silenced,  yet  for  all  that  will  not 
he  converted  ?  When  it  is  their  own  doing,  and  they  were 
their  own  undoing ;  and  when  God  did  not  spare  for  cost 
and  persuasion  to  have  done  them  good  ;  and  when  he  shall 
say  after  all,  as  in  Isa.  v.  4.  "  What  6ould  have  been  done 
more  to  my  vineyard,  that  I  have  not  done  in  it?"  What 
should  I  have  said  more  to  this  sinner,  than  I  have  said  ? 
What  plea  is  left  for  such  a  sinner  ?  Or  what  can  he  say  - 
why  he  should  not  be  sentenced  to  perdition  ?  Will  you  say 
you  did  it  ignorantly,  or  you  had  no  warning  ?  You  cannot 
say  it.  Lidians  may  say  it,  and  many  barbarous  nations  of 
the  world  may  say  it ;  but  England  cannot  say  it,  nor  you 
that  hear  me  cannot  say  it.  You  have  warning  after  warn- 
ing, and  all  said  to  you  that  we  knew  how  to  say,  that  was 


248  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

likely  to  move  the  heart  of  a  Binner.  Will  you  say  that  you 
were  not  able«  because  it  was  a  work  above  your  pow»] 
Why«  you  cannot  thus  excuse  your  sin :  for  if  you  had  heea 
but  truly  willing,  you  might  have  done  it  ?  Your  disability  . 
lay  in  your  obstinate  unwillingness.  Are  you  willing  this 
day,  unfeignedly  willing,  to  turn  to  God,  or  are  you  not?  If 
you  be,  you  will  return  without  delay.  For  if  you  are  will- 
ing, who  can  hinder  you  ?  But  if  you  be  not  truly  willing, 
how  can  you  say,  that  you  would  have  done  it  if  you  could? 
.  Or  how  can  you  excuse  yourselves  by  your  disability  ?  Un- 
willingness is  a  disability  which  excuseth  no  men,  but  ag- 
gravateth  their  sin.  If  you  could  have  said  that  you  would 
have  returned  with  all  your  hearts,  but  were  not  able  for  all 
that  you  were  willing,  then  you  had  some  excuse;  but  now 
you  have  nothing  to  say  for  yourselves. 

Object.  We  know  there  is  no  pleading  for  ourselves^  nor 
any  excuse  to  be  made  with  God,  but  yet  we  hope  we  may  be 
saved  for  all  that  ? 

Answ.  How  can  you  have  any  hope,  if  you  have  no  ground 
of  hope  to  shew  ?  If  you  have  no  reason  to  give  against  the 
sentence  of  your  condemnation,  how  can  you  think  to  es- 
cape it  ?  God  is  just,  and  will  judge  in  righteousness  ac- 
cording to  his  word ;  and  they  that  have  not  now  a  title  in 
the  word  for  their  justification  at  judgment,  shall  never  be 
there  justified,  whatsoever  they  may  dream. 

Beloved  hearers,  I  have  been  all  this  while  pleading  with 
you  by  the  reasons  of  the  word  of  God,  to  see  if  it  were  pos- 
sible for  me  to  persuade  you  to  yield  to  the  light,  and  be  con- 
verted, that  you  may  live.  I  have  meant  you  no  harm«  un- 
less salvation  be  your  harm.  The  threatening  of  the  Scrip- 
ture, and  the  miserable  state  of  unconverted  souls  were  all 
this  while  before  me,  which  moved  ifie  to  use  so  maqy  per- 
suasions with  you.  Have  I  prevailed  with  you,  or  have  I 
not?  Are  you  resolved  for  conversion,  fully  resolved,  or  are 
you  not  ?  God  hath  all  this  while  stood  by  and  heard  what 
I  have  said  to  you,  and  seeth  now  what  answer  is  in  your 
hearts,  and  what  effect  these  words  have  had.  Shall  all  this 
be  lost  ?  And  when  we  have  said  all  that  we  can,  must  we 
sit  down  in  sorrow,  and  say,  who  hath  believed  our  reports? 
Is  there  one  man  or  woman  of  you  that  dare  go  on  in  an  un< 
converted  state,  and  draw  back  £iomGodL,^xA\Q;\\a\Q>x\.^Q\jjc 


YMftATISB   OF   CONVBBSION.  349 

time,  and  still  return  to  your  former  siiui  after  all  that  I  have 
said?     If  you  do  so,  do  it  at  your  peril ;  and  when  you  find 
yourselTes  in  hell,  remember  the  sermons  Uiat  have  been 
preached  to  you  on  this  text,  and  blame  not  me,  but  your 
wilful  negligence.    Think  not  much  that  I  bid  you  remem-< 
ber  these  sermons  when  you  find  yourselves  in  hell,  for  you 
ihall  do  it  then,  whether  you  will  or  not.    There  is  not  a 
soul  of  you  that  shall  liye  or  die  in  an  unconverted  state,  but 
shall  remember  the  warnings  that  I  have  now  and  formerly 
given  you.    Sermons  will  be  remembered  in  hell,  that  are 
forgotten  on  earth ;  and  they  that  were  weary  to  hear  them 
here,  and  would  not  be  at  the  small  labour  to  repeat  them, 
or  hear  them  repeated,  or  else  ponder  in  secret  of  what  they 
beard,  shall  there  think  of  it,  and  think  again  to  their  sor- 
row.    As  Abraham  said  to  the  condemned  worldling,  '*  Re- 
member that  thou  in  thy  life  receivedst  thy  good  things,  and 
Lazarus  his  evil  things  ;  but  now  he  is  comforted  and  thou 
art  tormented^."     So  shall  you  remember  the  time,  and 
means,  and  warnings  that  you  once  had.    If  you  ask  me  how 
I  know  that?    Why  because  the  word  of  God  doth  tell  me, 
that  the  consciences  of  wicked  men  will  be  their  accusers  p. 
And  that  they  shall  mourn  at  the  last,  and  say,  "  How  have 
I  hated  instruction,  and  my  heart  despised  reproof,  and 
have  not  obeyed  the  voice  of  my  teachers,  nor  inclined  mine 
ear  to  them  that  instructed  me^?"    And  many  other  Scrip- 
tures assure  me  of  the  same.    O  how  much  better  were  it  now 
to  believe  the  Lord,  and  foresee  this  evil,  and  think  of  your  way 
while  you  have  opportunity  to  escape  ?   How  much  safer  were 
this  for  you !     And  how  much  more  pleasing  would  it  be  to 
God  and  us  ?     O  do  not  cast  away  your  souls,  and  displease 
God,  and  all  the  true  friends  you  have,  only  to  please  the  devil 
and  your  flesh!   Let  me  urge  you  a  little  further  in  the  words 
of  your  Maker,  and  I  charge  you  to  regard  them,  as  you 
will  answer  the  contempt  of  them  at  your  peril.     Did  you 
never  observe  how  God  doth  pity  the  stir  that  poor  sinners 
make  in  the  world  for  nothing,  and  the  unprofitable  trade  of 
sinning  that  they  drive  on,  and  how  he  inviteth  them  to 
himself,  as  the  true  gain  and  felicity  ?    **  Wherefore  do  you 
spend  money  for  that  which  is  not  bread,  and  your  la- 
bour for  that  which  satisfieth  not  ?     Hearken  d\l\gewV\^  wtlXa 

*  Lute  xrL  S5.  P  Rom.  ii,  15.  q  Prov.  v.  VV— \^ 


TREATISB   OF   CONVSRBIOll. 

me,  and  eat  ye  that  which  is  good,  and  let  your  aoul  delight 
itself  in  fatness.  Incline  your  ear,  and  come  unto  me ;  hear 
and  your  soul  shall  live  ^"  ''  Wash  you,  make  you  clean; 
put  away  the  evil  of  your  doings  from  before  mine  eyes: 
cease  to  do  evil ;  learn  to  do  well.  Oome  now,  and  let  ui 
reason  together,  saith  the  Lord ;  though  your  sins  be  ts 
scarlet,  they  shall  be  as  white  as  snow '.''  *'  How  long  ye 
simple  ones  will  ye  love  simplicity)^  And  ye  scomers  de- 
light in  scorning  ?  And  fools  hate  knowledge  ?  Turn  ye  at 
my  reproof;  behold,  I  will  pour  out  my  Spirit  unto  you.  I  wiH 
make  known  my  words  unto  you  ^"  *'  Turn  ye  even  to  me  with 
all  your  hearts ;  with  fasting,  and  weeping,  and  mourning : 
rend  your  hearts,  and  not  your  garments,  and  turn  to  the 
Lord  your  God ;  for  he  is  gracious  and  merciful  to  them  that 
turn,  but  not  to  them  that  go  on  in  their  iniquity  ".''  **  When 
a  wicked  man  tumeth  away  from  his  wickedness,  which  he 
hath  committed,  and  doth  Uiat  which  is  lawful  and  right»  he 
shall  save  his  soul  alive.  Repent,  and  turn  yourselves  from 
all  your  transgressions,  so  iniquity  shall  not  be  your  ruin* 
For  I  have  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  him  that  dieth ;  where- 
fore turn  yourselves  and  live  ye  *.'*  The  like  I  recited  to  yon 
from  Ezek.  xxxiii.  11. 

These  are  the  calls  of  the  God  of  mercy,  mviting  yon 
into  the  way  wherein  his  saving  mercy  is  only  to  be  foundi. 
O  how  glad  would  many  thousands  be  tliat  are  now  past 
hope,  if  they  had  but  the  call  of  God  to  repent,  as  you  have 
this  day  !  How  glad  should  you  be  that  you  have  such  an 
offer,  and  that  it  is  not  yet  too  late  ?  And  therefore  how 
cheerfully  should  you  yield  to  be  converted  ?  I  shall  in  con- 
clusion say  but  this ;  If  ever  a  man  or  woman  of  you  all  shall 
appear  before  the  Lord  in  judgment,  in  a  carnal, unconv^- 
ed  state,  after  all  the  warnings  you  have  received,  I  hope 
God  will  not  charge  it  upon  me,  who  faithfully,  though 
weakly,  endeavoured  to  prevent  it. 

■f  isa.  Iv.  1—3.  •  Isa.  i.  16.  »  Prov.  i.  a«,  23. 

"  Josh.  ii.  12.  X  Ezek.  xviii.  S3. 30—32. 


TKSAS'ISE   OF   CONVBSSION.  241 


CHAPTER  VII. 

By  this  time  I  hope  many  of  you  are  willing  to  be  converted, 
and  are  ready  to  inquire  what  you  should  do  to  that  end  ? 
and'whether  there  be  any  thing  on  your  parts  to  be  done 
Uiat  may  further  it?  And  in  hope  diat  you  are  willing,  I 
•hall  next  proceed  to  give  you  my  best  advice  herein.  And 
if  it  were  so  that  you  could  do  nothing  to  further  it,  because 
Lam  sure  you  may  do  much  to  hinder  it,  and  have  done  all 
this  while,  or  else  it  had  been  better  with  you  than  it  is; 
therefore  I  shall  shew  you  what  are  the  common  hindrances 
of  conversion,  which  you  must  carefully  endeavour  to  remove 
or  conquer;  and  with  them  I  shall  adjoin  the  contrary  di? 
rections,  which  concern  your  necessary  duty  to  this  end. 
And  though  some  of  their  contraries  are  real  parts  of  con- 
version, yet  the  reason  that  I  mention  them  here  is,  because 
the  not  yielding  to  the  initial  acts  in  the  understanding,  is 
the  hindrance  of  the  completive  acts  on  the  heart  and  life. 

Hindrance  1.  The  first  hindrance  of  conversion  that  I 
shall  warn  you  of,  is.  The  wilful  neglect  of  those  ordinary 
means  which  God  hath  appointed  for  the  work  of  conversion. 
When  God  will  give  any  man  saving  grace,  ordinarily  he 
will  do  it  by  the  means  of  grace.     He  that  hath  appointed 
his  ordinances  to  that  end,  will  so  far  stand  to  his  own  ap- 
pointment, and  honour  his  own  ordinances,  as  to  work  by 
them,  and  not  ordinarily  without  them.     If  men  therefore 
will  not  use  God's  means,  no  wonder  if  they  go  without  his 
grace.     For,  1.  Such  are  out  of  the  way  of  grace,  and 
when  they  avoid  the  causes,  they  cannot  in  reason  look  for 
the  effects.    2.  And  moreover,  they  do  provoke  God  to 
withhold  and  deny  his  grace  when  they  set  so  light  by  it,  as 
that  they  will  not  so  much  as  use  the  means  to  get  it.     A 
man  by  die  help  of  common  grace  may  see  the  absence  and 
the  necessity  of  special  grace,  and  may  do  something  in  the 
use  of  means  to  obtain  it  if  he  will ;  and  when  men  will  not 
80  far  use  their  common  grace,  it  is  just  with  God  to  deny 
them  special  grace.  •  For  example : 

(1.)  One  particular  means  of  conversion,  is,  TVie  V\fe%x\xi^ 
of  the  word  preached  by  the  ministers  of  CVitiat  m  V);\^  ^vijS- 


352  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

lie  assembly.  "  How  shall  they  believe  in  him  of  whom 
they  have  not  heard  ?  And  how  shall  they  hear  mthout  a 
preacher  ?  So  then,  faith  cometh  by  hearing,  and  hearing 
by  the  word  of  God  *."  God  sent  Paul  "  to  open  men's  eyes 
and  convert  them  •*."  God  would  so  far  favour  Comeliiis, 
as  to  send  an  angel  to  him,  but  not  to  preach  the  Gosnel, 
but  only  to  bid  him  send  for  a  preacher,  because  he  wOald 
keep  to  his  standing  ordinance,  and  make  use  of  his  ministen 
and  appointed  means.  So  he  would  stop  Paul  by  a  vision  in 
his  way,  and  do  more  for  him  in  acquainting  him  extraordi- 
narily with  his  name,  than  he  doth  with  others ;  and  yet  he 
sendeth  him  to  Ananias  for  instruction  ^.  It  was  by  hearinf; 
Peter  preach  that  the  Jews  were  pricked  at  the  heart,  and 
converted,  and  three  thousand  were  added  to  the  church  at 
once  ^«  It  was  God  that  must  open  the  heart  of  Lydia ;  but 
what  did  he  open  it  for,  but  to  attend  the  things  that  were 
spoken  by  Paul,  that  thereby  she  might  be  converted  •?  God 
would  vouchsafe  an  earthquake  to  prepare  the  heart  of  the 
jailor  for  conversion,  but  he  would  not  convert  him  without 
the  preaching  of  Paul  and  Silas  ^  It  was  those  that  had 
earsr  and  heard  not,  and  hearts  that  were  hardened  against 
the  word,  that  were  not  converted,  healed  or  forgiven*.  By 
teaching  sinners  the  way  to  God,  David  assured  himself, 
they  shall  be  converted  to  him  **.  The  word  of  God  is  the 
seed  of  life,  which  is  sown  and  takes  root  in  the  hearts  of 
them  that  God  will  save*.  It  is  the  word  of  God  which 
"  abideth  for  ever,"  which  is  "  the  incorruptible  seed  bywhicli 
we  are  born  again  ^."  God  hath  made  those  promises  of  a 
blessing  on  his  word,  which  should  draw  us  to  attend  it: 
**  Incline  your  ears,  come  unto  me,  hear  and  your  souls  shall 
live^"  And  he  hath  threatened  those  that  will  not  hear 
and  obey,  severely.  Matt.  x.  14.  If  a  people  will  not  hear 
the  ministers  of  Christ,  they  must  *'  shake  o£P  the  dust  of 
their  feet  in  witness  against  them."  And  Christ  hath  attest- 
ed that  it  **  shall  be  more  tolerable  for  Sodom  and  Gomor- 
rha  in  the  day  of  judgment  than  for  that  people."  It  is  by 
his  ministers  that  Christ  doth  teach  his  church,  and  every 

»  Rom  X.  14.  17.         *»  Acts  xxvi.  17, 18.     x.  3.  5.  «  Acts  ix.  6. 10. 

«*  Acts  ii,  37.  41.  «  Acts  xvi.  14.  '  Acts  xvi.  St. 

f  Mark  iv.  12.  John  xii.  40.  Acts  xxviii.  «7.  *»  Psal.  IL  13. 

»  Matt.  xiii.  8. 19.  23.   Luke  viii,  11.  k  1  Pet.  i.  23. 25. 
'  Proy.  I,  23.     Isa.  Iv.  3. 


TREATISE   QF   CONVERSION.  263 

loiil  that  heareth  not  him,  shall  be  cut  off  from  his  people  "". 
If  you  will  be  at  home  when  the  message  of  God  is  delivered 
to  the  congregation,  you  cannot  expect  the  blessing  and  be- 
nefit of  it.  If  you  can  find  something  else  to  do  when  you 
flhpold  hear  the  word  of  God,  God  will  find  something  else 
to  do  when  he  should  give  you  his  saving  grace. 

Object.  '  But  the  minister  is  but  a  weak  man,  and  I  can- 
not profit  by  him.' 

Answ.  Doth  he  not  deliver  the  profitable  word  of  God  ? 
Doth  he  not  preach  the  doctrine  of  faith,  and  repentance, 
and  justification  by  Christ,  and  shew  you  the  way  of  life  ? 
If  you  can  hear  the  doctrine  of  everlasting  life,  and  not  pro- 
fit by  it,  because  the  minister  is  not  so  able  as  others,  blame 
your  own  hearts,  and  give  more  attendance  and  regard  to 
what  you  hear ;  and  lament  that  ignorance  or  carelessness 
of  your  own  that  hindereth  you  from  profiting. 

Object.  '  But  I  have  more  temptations  in  the  congrega- 
tion, than  I  have  when  I  sit  at  home.  Satan  is  troubling  me 
withvain  thoughts,  and  I  cannot  attend.' 

Anno.  Is  that  a  reason  against  duty,  and  so  necessary  a 
duty  ?  Will  you  think  to  overcome  the  devil's  temptations 
by  yielding  to  them  ?  That  is  it  that  he  would  have.  If  he 
ooidd  drive  you  from  God's  ordinances,  he  hath  his  will. 
Will  you  make  your  own  sin  a  pretence  against  your  neces- 
sary duty  ?  That  is  to  make  one  sin  a  pretence  for  another; 
yea,  a  lesser  sin  a  pretence  for  a  greater :  it  is  your  sin  to 
hear  with  a  careless,  wandering  mind,  but  it  is  a  greater  sin 
not  to  hear  at  all. 

Object.  *  I  can  profit  as  much  by  staying  at  home,  and 
reading  the  Scripture,  or  some  good  book :  it  is  the  word  of 
God  which  they  preach,  and  it  is  that  which  I  read  at  home.^ 
The  books  that  are  written  by  learned  men,  are  better  than 
the  sermons  that  are  preached  by  our  ministers.' 

Amuw.  1.  What  foolish  pretences  are  these  against  the 
plain  command  of  God,  and  our  own  necessary  duty?  When 
God  hath  appointed  you  your  duty,  will  he  allow  you  to  for- 
sake it  upon  your  own  reason,  as  if  you  were  wiser  than  God, 
and  knew  what  will  profit  you  better  than  he  ?  If  your  phy- 
sician give  you  a  medicine/  and  bid  you  take  it  for  the  cure 
of  your  disease,  will  you  be  wiser  than  he,  and&ay » Yili^  tCA.^ 

"  ActB  iii.  86. 


254  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSI0K. 

not  such  and  such  a  thing  serve  turn  as  well,  or  better  ?  If 
you  will  needs  be  your  own  physician,  and  forsake  Ood's  di- 
rection,  and  cure  yourselves,  do  it  as  well  as  yoa  can,  and 
what  will  become  of  it.  It  is  a  strange  thing  that  a  tottisli 
sinner  should  think  himself  wiser  than  Ood,  and  take  upon 
him  to  mend  his  word,  and  find  out  a  better  way  to  heaven 
than  he  hath  prescribed  him. 

2.  Can  you  have  grace  think  you  without  the  gift  of  God? 
If  you  cannot,  do  you  think  God  will  give  it  you  in  away  of 
disobedience,  when  you  run  from  his  appointed  means ;  or 
rather  in  a  way  of  duty  and  obedMnee,  when  you  wait  on 
him  in  that  which  he  bath  promised  to  bless  ?  Find  yoi 
such  promises  to  those  that  turn  their  back  on  God*s  pub- 
lic ordinances,  as  we  can  shew  you  to  them  that  diligently 
use  them,  if  you  can. 

3.  Is  it  not  horrible  pride  in  you  to  think  that  yon  9H 
able  to  understand  the  word  of  God  as  well  without  a 
teacher,  as  with  one  ?  The  eunuch  said  to  Philip,  when  lie 
asked  him  whether  he  understood  what  he  read ;  ''  How  can 
I  except  some  man  should  guide  me°  ?"  And  yet  yon  think 
yon  can  read  the  word  at  home  as  profitably  without  a  guide : 
as  if  your  children  that  go  to  school  should  say,  '  We  hare 
the  same  books  at  home,  and  therefore  we  will  not  go  to 
fichool,  our  master  doth  but  teach  us  our  grammar,  and  other 
books,  and  these  we  can  read  at  home.'  You  are  wise  men 
that  while,  that  know  no  more  of  your  own  ignorance ;  and 
humble  mien,  that  think  you  have  no  need  of  teaching ;  as  if 
God  had  appointed  his  ministers  and  ordinances  in  vain. 

4.  It  is  a  certain  mark  that  you  never  heard  or  read  as 
you  should ;   or  else  your  hearing  or  reading  would  have 

'  taught  you,  that  both  must  go  together,  and  not  one  shut 
oat  the  other ;  and  that  the  greatest,  which  is  God's  public 
work,  must  be  preferred.  It  is^  a  mark  of  a  graceless  heart 
«nd  worse ;  even  of  one  that  hath  much  blinded  common 
reason  itself,  when  wretched  sinners  do  know  na  more  of 
their  own  necessity,  but  think  they  can  live  as  well  without 
God's  public  means  as  with  it.  If  ever  sermon  or  book  had 
done  you  saving  good,  and  you  had  the  least  spark  o#  grace, 
and  had  felt  the  power  of  divine  truth  upon  your  soul,  you 
would  have  been  far  from  these  conceits ;  you  would  feel 

>  Acts  Tiii.  so,  51. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  255 

the  necessity  of  the  preaching  of  the  word,  as  an  hungry 
man  feeleth  the  need  of  his  food.^  Your  own  necessity  would 
cbriye  you,  and  the  good  which  you  feel  by  the  word  would 
Anew  you,  and  your  love  to  it  would  not  suffer  you  to  for- 
bear. If  you  were  necessarily  kept  away  by  any  business, 
you  would  take  it  for  your  loss^  when  it  is  not  your  sin,  and 
would  lament  that  you  were  deprived  of  that  which  you  find 
so  sweet  and  profitable.  To  find  no  profit  by  the  preaching 
of  the  word  of  God,  nor  any  great  need  of  it,  is  a  mark  of  a 
dead  and  graceless  soul. 

5.  Look  through  the  Scripture,  and  see  whether  the 
common  way  of  conversion  were  not  by  the  hearing  the 
word  of  Gk>d  preached. 

6.  If  you  may  thus  forbear  it,  then  why  may  not  all 
ethers  ?  And  then  all  Christian  assemblies  should  be  dis- 
solved, and  forbom;  and  then  what  churches  should  we 
have  T  And  do  you  think  that  this  is  the  will  of  God  ?  All 
sorts  of  Christians  in  the  world  would  have  assemblies. 
Papists  hare  their  meetings,  and  Anabaptists  have  theirs ; 
flnd  even  the  Separatists  have  theirs ;  and  would  you  have 
none  ?  Doth  not  God  expressly  chaise  you,  that  **  you  for- 
salte  not  the  assembling  of  yourselves  together,  as  the  man- 
ner of  some  is  ^.^'  And  to  what  end  else  hath  he  appointed 
ministers  in  his  church  ? 

7.  So  you  think  that  there  should  be.  any  ministers,  or 
not?  If  not,  then  no  church,  no  baptism,  and  then  no 
Christ,  and  no  salvation.  If  there  should,  what  should  they 
do,  if  not  preach  the  Gospel?  Paul  so  far  preferred  it  be- 
fore ether  ordinances,  that  he  thaaketh  God  that  he  bap- 
tised not  any  himself  save,  some  &w  among  them,  because 
of  an  inconveniency  that  might,  have  followed.  **  For  God 
sent  me  nert "  saith  he,  *'  to^  baptise,  but  to  preach  the  Gos- 
pel p.*'  If  you  would  have  no  pceaching,  you  should  have 
11^  nuRisters.  And  if  you  would  have  uS'preach,  who  should 
we  preach  to  ?  to  walls,  or  to  men  ?.  If  to  men,^  why  not  to 
yon  as  well  as  to  others  ?  Are  others  bound  to  hear  any 
more  than  you?  And  how  can  we  preach  without  hearers? 
Paul  saith,  and  so  aaust  we,  *'  Necessity  is  laid  upon  me,  and 
woe  to  me  if  I  preach  not  the  Gospel."  And  may  we  not 
then  say,  necessity  is  laid  on  yoi\r  and  woe  to  you  if  you 

•  Heb.  X.  «5.  P  1  Cor.  i.  17. 


25tf  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

hear  not  the  Gospel  ?  The  Scripture  saith,  "  How  beaati- 
fal  are  the  very  feet  of  them  that  bring  the.  glad  tidings  of 
peace !"  And  you  can  profit  as  well  without  them  at  home. 
Is  not  your  spirit  then  contrary  to  God's  Spirit,  which  thns 
speaks  ^ :  and  what  spirit  is  it  that  is  contrary  to  God's  Spi- 
rit but  the  deVirs  ? 

8.  It  was  never  God's  end  in  writing  the  Scripture,  nor 
j  the  end  of  ministers  in  writing  good  books  to  keep  you  from 
I  the  public  hearing  of  the  word.    Each  duty  must  know  ita 
:   place.     I  had  rather  the  books  that  I  have  written  were  all 
I   burnt,  than  that  men  should  by  them  be  kept  from  the  pub- 
I  lie  and  greater  ordinances.     Do  not  these  very  books  which 
you  say  you  read,  command  you  to  hear,  and  condemn  those 
that  do  not  hear  ?     Do  they  not  shew  you  that  your  wordii 
are  the  words  of  wickedness ;  and  say,  as  much  for  hearing 
as  now  I  do  ?    What  an  hypocritical  trick  of  you  is  this, 
when  the  Bible  and  other  good  books  do  command  you  to 
be  constant  hearers,  and  condemn  you  if  you  will  not,  that 
you  will  say  you  can  profit  more  by  reading  these  boolu 
than  by  hearing?    What,  can  you  profit  more  by  reading 
your  duty,  when  you  refuse  to  do  it,  than  by  obedient  doing 
it?     Can  you  profit  most  by  reading  your  own  condemna- 
tion?   You  read  in  Scripture  that  "  he  that  tumeth  away 
his  ear  from  hearing  the  law,  even  his  prayer  shall  be  abomi- 
nation'."   The  truth  is,  you  shew  by  this,  that  you  do  bat 
make  reading  a  pretence  against  hearing,  when  indeed  you 
never  did  either  of  them  with  understanding  and  grace  in 
your  hearts. 

9.  What  do  you  by  withdrawing  from  the  public  assem- 
blies, but  excommunicate  yourselves  ?  And  is  it  not  our 
duty  then  to  excommunicate  or  avoid  you  if  you  continiie 
obstinate  after  admonition  ?  Do  you  believe  the  comimi- 
nion  of  saints,  and  yet  do  you  avoid  it  ?  Well,  if  you  had 
any  grace  in  your  hearts,  you  would  make  the  assembly  and 
public  worship  of  God,  the  delight  of  your  souls,  and  it 
would  do  you  so  much  good  to  call  on  God,  and  praise  him 
with  his  people,  and  hear  his  instruction,  that  you  could  not 
be  without  it.  You  would  do  as  David,  when  he  was  ba- 
nished from  the  temple  and  worship  of  God,  he  crieth  out, 
**  As  the  hart  panteth  after  the  water  brooks,  so  panteth  my 

1  Rom.  X.  15.  ^  \*w«.xvi^.<i. 


TR£AT18E    OF   CONV£RflION.  357 

soul  after  ihee,  O  God.  My  soul  tbirsteth  ifor  God,  for  the 
living  God  :  when  shall  I  come  and  appear  before  God?  My 
tears  have  been'  my  meat  day  and  night,  while  they  conti- 
nually say  to  me.  Where  is  thy  God  ?  When  I  remember 
these  things,  I  pour  out  my  soul  in  me ;  for  I  had  gone 
with  the  multitude,  I  went  with  them  to  the  house  of  God ; 
with  the  voice  of  joy  and  praise,  with  a  multitude  that 
kept  holy-day  •." 

.  The  sixth  council  at  Constantinople  decreed,  that  who- 
soever was  absent  from  the  congregation  three  Lord's  days 
together  without  necessity ;  if  he  were  a  minister,  should  be 
put  from  the  ministry,  and  if  he  were  a  private  man,  he 
should  be  cast  from  die  communion  of  the  church.  If  you 
cast  out  yourselves,  blame  not  us  if  we  cast  you  out. 

Qbfect.  *  But,  say  some  (that  the  Quakers  have  taught,) 
when  a  minister  preacheth  a  month,  or  two,  or  three,  or  a 
year  upon  one  text,  how  can  he  choose  but  add  to  the  word 
.of  God,  and  therefore  why  should  we  hear  them  V 

Amw.  A  foolish  cavil.  What !  is  expounding  and  ap- 
plying the  word  of  God,  adding  to  it  ?  Do  we  tell  you  that 
any  thing  is  the  word  of  God  that  is  not?  Why  doth  not 
one  of  these  ignorant  objectors  come  and  tell  us  in  any  one 
particular,  what  it  is  that  we  have  added  to  the  word  of  God  ? 
lam  now  persuading  you  to  hear  the  word  of  God,  is  this 
adding  to  it?  Doth  not  the  word  do  the  like?  And  doth 
not  God  in  the  word  bid  us  acquaint  you  with  it,  and  make 
it  plain  to  you,  and  press  it  upon  you  ?  What  if  a  lawyer 
bestow  a  day,  or  twenty  days  in  pleading  your  cause  before 
the  judge,  that  he  may  save  your  estate,  or  your  life  from  the 
maiice  of  an  adversary  ?  Will  you  say,  that  this  lawyer  doth 
.add  to  the  law  of  the  land  by  his  plea.ding  ?  What  if  the 
judge  pass  sentence  according  to  law,  and  give  the  reason 
:of  it  ?  Or  what  if  he  make  a  charge  of  many  hours  long 
wherever  he  comes ;  doth  he  add  to,  or  diminish  from  the 
law  by  so  doing?  I  must  crave  pardon  of  the  hearers  that 
are  of  common  reason,  that  I  have  spent  so  much  time  in 
answering  sudi  senseless,  sottish  cavils  as  these.  But  they 
must  consider  that  such  people  we  have  to  deal  with,  and 
the  more  unreasonable  and  blockish  they  are,  the  greater 
need  they  have  to  be  taught. 

«  PsfU.  iHl 
VOL.   VII.  S 


258  TRBATIfiE  OF   CONVKB8IOH. 

(2»)  Another  meaim  that  God  hath  appointed  for  con- 
yer8ion>  is ;  The  reading  of  hisword,  and  of  auch  good  books 
as  aia  wntten  for  the  opening  and  applying  of  it.  Though 
this  mnst  not  thrast  oat  hearing,  yetisitanexqellentmBans 
in  its  ovRi  time  and  place,  or  else  Ood  would  not  have  ap- 
pointed it  as  he  hath  done  K  Many  a  soul  hath  had  happy 
experience  of  the  success  of  reading.  The  word  read  is  the 
word,  and  therefore  may  convert,  for  *'  the  law  of  the  Lord 
is  perfect,  converting  tiie  soul  ^"  It  is  a  very  greftt  privi- 
lege to  have  the  truths  of  God  before  our  eyes,  where  we 
may  view  them  over  and  over  at  our  leisure^  till  they  be  fesr 
tened  in  our  hearts.  •  ., 

(3.)  Another  means  that  God  hath  appointed  us  to  use 
for  the  obtainment  of  his  grace,  is^  A  serious  inquiry  of 
those  that  should  and  can  instruct  us.    In  common,  easy 
matters,  you  may  go  either  to  ministers  or  private  ChristianB 
as  you  see  fit;  but  in  matters  of  great  difficulty^  where,  pri^ 
vate  men  are  in  danger  of  mistaking,  or  are  notable  to  do  it 
as  your  case  requires,  tb^re  it  is  your  duty  especially  to  re- 
pair to  your  teachers  ;  or  the  most  a.ble,  faiUiful  ministers 
that  you  can  well  get,  and  make  known  your  case  to  them, 
and  desire  their  direction  for  your  effectucd  recovery^    Ni- 
codemus  came  to  Jesus  by  night  for  counsel,  because  he 
perceived  that  he  was  a  teacher  sent  from  God  :  and  Christ 
thereupon  did  give  him  advice  in  the  matter  of  the  new  byrth. 
So  Matt.  xix.  16.    Another  inquireth  what  he  shall  do  tiiat 
he  may  have  eternal  life:    The  eunuch  desires  in^tructi^m  oC 
Philip  ^ ;  and  Paul  of  Ananias,  lEind  Cornelius  of  Peter,  as 
was  said  before.    The  Jews  that  were  pricked  at  the  heart, 
ask  Peter  and  the  rest  of  the  apostles  what  they  shall  do'. 
And' the  jailor  asks  Paul  and  Silas,  what  he  shall  do  to  be 
saved  ?    See  further,  Mai.  ii.  7.  ^^  The  priest^s  lips  shoiil4 
keep  knowledge,  and  they  should  seek  the  law  at  his  mouth*; 
for  he  is  the  messenger  of  the  Lord  of  Hosts.''     Luke  xii.42. 
Col.  i.  28.    If  poor  unconverted  sinners  would  but  take  this 
course,  and  go  to  their  teachers  for  direction  for  their  salva- 
tion, and  resolve  to  practise  it  when  it  is  given  them,  con- 

*■  Exod.  xxiv.  7.  Josh.  viii.  34,  35.  2  Chron.  xixiv.  30.  Neh.  ▼iii.  3.  8. 18. 
is.  3.  Matt.  xii.  3.  5.  xxu  t6.  xxii.  31.  Acta  xiii.  27.  xv.  21.  Dent.  xxxi. 
11,    Acta  fiii.  30.    Col.  iv.  16.    Rev.  i.  3.     1  Tirn.  iv.  13. 

"  Psai.  xix.  7.  »  \ct«'«\\\.  ^  KK.\3k^S7« 


\ 


TJtBATISE   OF  CONVERSION.  ^9 

Tersioa  would  not  be  so  rare,  nor  so  many  miscarry  as  now 
do ;  but  most  are  so  careless  that  they  feel  no  need  of  it,  and 
ihmk  it  were  but  to  trouble  themselves  and  their  teachers 
to  no  purpose;  and  others  are  so  stout  that  they  will  not 
itoop  to  it ;  bnt  if  we  send  for  them  to  come  and  speak  with 
us,  that  we  may  afford  them  the  best  advice  we  can,  they 
9aik  Q8  by  what  authority  we  do  it ;  and  think  it  too  much 
to  come  near  us,  and  speak  to  us :  others  are  so  sinfully 
bashful,  that  they  cannot  open  their  mouths,  when  their  sal- 
vation is  concerned  in  the  matter;  and  others  are  conceited 
beforehand  that  ministers  will  but  slight  them,  and  are  too 
rtout  to  speak  to  them,  at  least  with  any  seriousness  and 
tenderness  of  their  case.  And  thus  satan  keeps  men  from 
grace,  by  keeping  them  from  the  i^eans  of  grace. 

(4.)  Another  means  of  conversion,  is.  The  frequent  com- 
pany of  those  that  fear  (3od,  and  would  afford  us  their  help 
in  the  way  to  heaven,  and  conference  with  them  about  these 
things.  Company  hath  a  transforming  power,  and  the 
speeches  and  examples  of  heavenly  Christians,  will  do  much 
to  bring  others  to  a  consideration  of  their  ways.  Commonl]^ 
men  are,  or  seem  to  be,  such  as  their  familiar  company  is. 

(6.)  Another  means  for  conversion,  is.  Frequent  and  ear- 
nest prayers  to  God.    When  we  know  we  want  grace,  and 
that  God  is  the  giver  of  it,  what  should  we  do  but  betake  our- 
^Ives  to  him,  and  ask  saving  grace  and  "  wisdom  of  him, 
who  giveth  to  all  men  liberally,  and  upbraideth  not*?**    I 
know  some  would  persuade  us  that  we  may  not  exhort  un- 
%o4veHed  men  to  pray ;  because  their  prayer  is  an  abomina- 
tion to  God;  and  without  faith  they  cannot  please  God.    To 
whom  I  answer  briefly.     1.  Nature  itself  tieacheth  a  man  in 
mise^  to  cry  to  him,  that  is  able  to  relieve  him,  and  to  beg 
pardon  of  him  whom  he  hath  offended,  and  especially  when 
he  knoweth  that  he  is  of  a  merciful  nature :  and  may  we  not 
persuade  men  to  that  which  the  very  light  of  nature  doth 
direct  them  to,  and  the  law  of  nature  oblige  them  to  ?     Oir 
will  these  men  go  against  the  light  and  law  of  nature?    2. 
Scripture  commandeth  these  to  pray,  and  seek  God,  "  'Seek 
the  Lord  while  he  may  be  found,  call  upon  him  while  he  is 
near.     Let  the  wicked  forsake  his  ways ;  and  the  unrigh- 
teous man  his  thoughts  •.**    Peter  exhorts  Simon  'Nl^<ga%  \» 

'JametiS,  *  Isa.  h.  6,  7.    SoHos.x.  12.    u\.  5.     Kbkw^.6* 


260  TREATISE   OF   CONVEESIOM. 

*'  pray,  if  perhaps  the  thoughts  of  his  heart  may  be  forgiven  . 

him,''  when  he  pronounced  him  **  in  the  gall  of  bitterness, 

and  bond  of  iniquity  ^."    3.  We  do  not  exhort  men  to  pray,  ^ 

while  they  continue  wicked,  but  to  return  with  prayer  in 

their  mouths  from  their  wickedness.   .  Our  exhortation  is  as 

those  before  mentioned,  "  Let  the  wicked  forsake  his  way  f 

and  thus  seek  the  Lord«    "  Repent  of  this  thy  wickedness/' 

and  so  pray  for  pardon  as  P^ter  exhorteth.    When  we  bid 

them  pray,  we  bid  them  desire,  for  desire  is  the  soul  of 

prayer,  and  words  are  but  the  body  ;  and  when  we  exhort 

them  to  desire  grace,  we  exhort  them  to  the  beginning  of 

grace.    Prayer  is  a  returning  act,  and  when  we  exhort  tbetai 

to  pray,  we  exhort  them  to  return,  and  by  prayer  to  begin 

the  work,  and  so  this  beginning  may  be  a  means  of  the  rest 

of  the  change  thait  is  yet  behind. 

Direct.  1.    Having  shewed  yon  the  first  hindrance  of 

conversion,  I  come  to  give  you  the  first  direction,  which  ii 
contrary  thereto ;  and  that  is«  That  you  would  presently  M 
upon  the  use  of  these  means,  that  God  hath  appointed  yon 
to  use  for  your  conversion.  Are  you  sensible  of  the  neces- 
sity of  it  ?  and  are  you  truly  wiUing  to  be  converted,  or  are 
you  not  ?  If  you  would,  let  us  see  your  willingness  in  the 
use  of  the  means  without  delay.  Particularly,  let  me  en- 
treat of  you  these  following  things. 

(1.)  See  that  you  be  constant  hearers  of  the  word 
preached,  and  take  delight  in  the  public  assembly*  of  die 
church,  and  let  nothing  but  necessity  keep  you  at  home. 
Live  under  the  ablest  ministry  that  you  can :  and  neglect 
not  one  such  opportunity  for  your  souls.  If  you  be  absent 
without  necessity  but  from  one  sermon,  God  may  justly  de- 
ny you  the  blessing  of  the  rest :  and  you  know  not  which  it 
is  ihdit  is  most  suitable  to  your  condition,  and  therefore  miss 
not  any.  The  devil  is  aware  what  a  minister  is  studying 
about  all  the  week,  and  when  he  seeth  that  we  have  pro- 
i^ed  that  which  is  likeliest  to  do  you  good,  he  will  do  all 
that  he  can  to  keep  you  away  that  day.  He  will  $nd  one 
business  or  other,  or  tempt  you  to  be  negligent ;  because 
he  is  afraid,  lest  if  you  come,  you  should  be  converted. 
Miss  not  one  sermon,  therefore,  lest  you  miss  that  one  that 
should  have  done  you  good.    And  as  you  hear,  so  take  heed 

*>  Acts  V\\\.  4^. 


TRSATISB    OF   CONTBRSION.  261 

how  you  hear,  and  attend  fa  it  as  to  a  message  sent  from 
God»  concerning  your  salvation ;  and  "  set  your  hearts  to  ail 
the  words  that  you  hear,  for  it  is  not  a  vain  thing,  but  it  is 
for  your  life  *'•"  *'  He  that  hath  ears  to  hear,  let  him  hear/' 
i^th  Christ  often  in  cases  of  greatest  moment!  And  he 
that  will. not  hear,  and  diligently  heav  a  message  from  free 
grace  for  the  saving  of  his  soul,  is  unworthy  to  have  ears. 

(2.)  If  you  would  be  converted  by  the  woid,  do  not  let 
it  slip  as  soon  as  you  have  heard  it ;.  but  call  it  to  remem- 
brance again,  and  bring  it  home  to  your  hearts :  ponder  of 
what  you  have  heard,and  speak  of  it  to  those  about  you.  And 
if  you  be  not  able  to  remember  it,  through  the  weakness  of 
your  memories,  go  to  some  of  your  neighbours'  houses  that 
do  repeat  it,  that  you  may  have  the  benefit  of  their  assist- 
ance. Have  not  you  as  much  need  a»  they  ?  and  should  not 
you  be  at  as  much  pains  as  they  ?  Make  the  word  your 
own  before  you  leave  it. 

(3.)  Be  much  in  reading  the  word  of  God,  and  such  prac- 
tical books  as  will  help  you  to  apply  it  ?  And  Ii^  to  heart 
the  truths,  you  shall  read. 

(4.)  Especially  do  all  this  on  the  Lord's  day,  which  is 
purposely  set  apart  for  such  holy  works.  Lose  none  of  diat 
precious  season  of  grace :  but  when  the  public  worship  ia 
over,  betake  yourselves  with  your  families,  and  in  secret  to 
the  improvement  of  it ;  and  take  as  much  pains  that  day  for 
]fOur  souls,  aa  you  do  on  the  rest  of  the  days  of  the  week  for 
ycmr  bodies.  You  cannot  then  pretend  that  you  have  jio 
leisure,  when  it  is  at  a  time  that  is  wholly  to  be  employed 
in  such  things.  O  make  the  best  of  that  day,  and  seek  after 
the  knowledge  of  God  therein,  if  you  would  be  partakers  of 
his  grace. 

(5.)  Will  you  go,  in  case  you  want  direction,  to  those 
that  are  able  to  direct  you  ?  Especially  to  your  teachers, 
and  ask  them  what  course  you  must  take  for  conversion, 
and  tell  them  your  case,  and  the  hindrances  that  you  meet 
with,  and  resolve  to  obey  the  counsel  that  they  shall  give 
you  ? 

(6.)  Will  you  betake  yourselves  daily  to  God  in  hearty 
prayer,  and  beg  of  him  that  he  would  give  you  converting 
grace  ?     Beseech  him  to  open  your  eyes,  ana  shew  you  the 

«  DeaU  zxxn.  46,  47. 


f 


202  TRBATiaS   OF   CONVEiMIOM. 

greatness  of  your  sin  and  misery,  till  yon*  be  unfeignedly 
humbled ;  and  that  he  would  shew  you  tiate  need  of  his  gnce 
in.  Christ,  till  you  can  thirstafterhim  and  his  righteousness ; 
and  that  he  would  shew  you  the  certainty  and  excellency  of 
his  glory,  till  your  hearts  be  set  upon  it  abore  all  ?  O  b^- 
hardof  God  that  he  would  not  let  you  live  uncbnyerted  any; 
longer,  lest  death  should  find  you  in  that  miserable  state. 
Beseech  him  to  pardon  all  your  former  rebellions  and  resist- 
ance of  his  Spirit,  and  now  at  last  to  gif«  you  thai'gprace  that: 
you  have  set  so  lightly>^y ;  and  bring  yx>u  into  tJie  hatred  of 
those  ways  of  sinful  pleasure  or  profit,  which  had  your 
hearts  before. 

These  are  the  means  that  God  hath  appointed' to  bring 
you  into  a  state  of  saving  grace.      What  say  you^?     .Are^ 
you  willing  ?     Are  you  resolved  to  use  these  means>  or  are 
you  not  ?     If  you  think  that  this  is  too  much*  adoy  and  that 
your  salvation  is  not  worth  it,  you  may  take  your  ease  and 
go  without  it.    But  if  God  have  not.  given- you  ^p^  to  so 
much  unreasonableness,  but  that  you  had  rather  be  at  the 
sweet  and  comfortable  pains  of  duty,  than  endure- the  into- 
lerable pains  of  hell :  if  you  do  not  set  more  by  the  ease  of 
your  flesh  for  a  fewdays,  than  the  ease  and  peace  of  soul 
and  body  for  ever,  then  take  my  counsel,  and' set  upon  these 
means  without  delay.     Look  who  doth  most  for  Qod,  and 
their  salvation,  of  all  that  you  know,  and  strive- to  do  as 
much  as  they.    You  have  the  same  God,  and  the  same  law, 
and  the  same,  and  greater  necessity,  than  they:   yoti^are 
farther  behind  hand  :  you  have  more  work  undone  vdiich 
must  be  done :  your  danger  is  greater,  and  your  souls  should 
be  as  precious  to  you,  as  theirs  to  them.    O,  therefore,  take 
time  while  you  have  it,  and  set  yourselves  to  the  work.. 

Hindrance,  2.  The  second  hindrance  of  conversion, 
which  I  shall  mention,  is  bad  company.  It  is  a  dangerool 
thing  to  be  wilfully  a  companion  of  ignorant,careless,ungod- 
ly  men.  If  they  will  say  nothing  directly  against  that  which 
is  good,  yet  will  they  do  much  to  hinder  your  salvatioiiv  by 
keeping  your  thoughts,  and  talk,  and  delight  upon  other 
things,  and  by  giving  you  an  evil  example,  as  if  tiiese  mat- 
ters were  not  necessary.  Vain  talk,  and  vain  practices^  set- 
tle the  minds  of  men  in  vanity,  and  in  a  forgetfnlness  and 
reglect  of  heavenly  thiuga.    '&e«i\dL!&^,  VXv^^  ^WV  \i^  ^\^ticiug 


TH£ATISE   OF   GONVBRSION.  263 

you  to  0UGb  kind  of  basiness  and  delight,  as  atrengtlien  the 
fieah,  and  contradict  the  Spirit,  and  fasten  you  in  sin,  and 
are  the  common  causes  of  the  perdition  of  the  world.  The 
noise  of  their  foolish  laughter  and  giddy  discourse,  will 
drown  the  voice  of  conscience,  and  of  the  Spirit  of  God.  It 
is  hard  keeping  the  heart  in  a  sense  of  duty,  or  the  evil  of 
sin,{  in  the  midst  of  sin.  As  it  is  certainly  a  vain  and 
graceless  heart  that  delighteth  most  in  vain  company,  so 
such  will-  make  the  heart  more  vain.  When  men  sit  over 
their  pots,  cherishing  their  flesh,  (which  they  once  vowed  to 
fight  against  as  their  enemies,)  pouring  outa  d^al  of  foolish, 
senseless  discourse  ;  the  sense  of  the  evil  of  sin  and  of  the 
love  of.  Christ,  and  of  the  worth  of  glory,  is  then  far  from  the 
heart :  and  if  they  do  make  any  mention  of  God  or  holy 
things,  it  is  commonly  irreverenUy  and  most  abusively,  tak« 
ing  the  name  of  God  in  vain,  and  sinning  more  by  their 
Scriptute  discourse,  than  by  any  other.  And  it  is  a  wonder 
if  the  devil  and  their  fleshly  reason  do  not  lead  them  to  plead 
against  God,  and  to  take  part  with  the  flesh,  and  perhaps  to 
make  a  scorn  of  godliness.  O  what  a  dangerous  thing  it  is 
to  live  among  such  company  as  will  be  still  hindering,  but 
never  helping,  in  the  way  to  heaven !  Especially  among 
those  who  are  worldly  or  sensual,  or  that  are  enemies  to 
godliness,  and  set  themselves  against  it  to  their  power.  In 
away  that  is  up  hill,  and  all  against  the  interest  and  inclina- 
tion of  our  flesh,  and  in  which  we  are  so  weak  and  back- 
ward ourselves,  we  had  need  of  all  the  help  that  we  can  get, 
and  a  little  hindrance  may  be  our  undoing.  But  when  popr 
tinners  shall  live  among  such,  where  they  shall  hear  almost 
no  discourse,  but  vain,  and  almost  no  talk  of  religion,  but 
in  distaste  and  contempt  of  it,  despising  the  way  to  heaven, 
whidi  is  in  efiect,  to  despise  heaven  itself;  how  can  it  be 
expected  that  such  should  be  brought  to  the  knowledge  of 
the  truth,  and  the  love  of  those  ways  that  they  hear  so  much 
reproached  ?  I  know  God  can  do  it,  and  sometimes  doth, 
where  people  are  unavoidably  cast  into  such  company ;  but 
if  men  will  choose  such,  wjhen  they  may  avoid  it,  the  case 
is  dangerous  indeed.  ^'  He  that  walketh  with  wise  men 
ahall  be  yet  wiser,  but  a  companion  of  fools  shall  be  de- 
stroyed." Some  of  these  ungodly  wretches  are  so  cunning 
in  their  discourse,  that  weak,  silly  people  be  not  ^\^  Va  d[\^- 


264  TRBATISB   OF   CONV&R8IOM. 

cern  their  folly.  Sonie  of  them  also  have  some  worldly  in- 
terest in  them,  and  therefore  are  the  liker  to  do  them  hurt 
When  those  that  they  dwell  with,  and  those  that  they  de- 
pend upon,  and  those  that  seem  to  love  them  are  ungodly, 
and  speak  against  the  way  of  salvation,  it  commonly  takes 
so  much  wit^b  the  ignorant,  that  they  either  say  as  they  say, 
and  are  of  their  minds,  or  at  least  it  hindereth  them  fnm 
thorough  conversion,  and  setting  themselves  diligently  to 
the  saving  of  their  souls.  Thousands  have  been  everlastingly 
undone  by  evil  company* 

Direct.  2.  The  second  direction,  therefore,  that  I  shall 
give  you  is  this ;  Do  all  that  you  can  ta  avoid  the  company 
of  those  that  would  hinder  you,  and  to  live  in  the  company 
of  those  that  would  help  you,  in  the  matters  of  your  salva- 
tion. I  do  not  mean,  that  a  servant  that  is  bound  should  go 
from  his  master  before  he  hath  served  according  to  their 
agreement ;  nor  that  a  child  should  forsake  his  parents  thai 
are  ungodly ;  nor  that  a  woman  should  forsake  her  husband^ 
or  a  man  his  wife  on  this  account ;  for  here  they  are  not  at 
their  own  choice,  but  are  fixed  to  their  relations,  which  tie 
them  to  duty  and  faithfulness  to  their  places ;  but  I  mean, 
that  no  man  shall  willingly  cast  himself  into  evil  company, 
that  can  avoid  it.  Particularly.  1.  If  a  master  be  to  take  a 
servant,  take  not  such  as  are  ungodly,  if  you  can  have  better. 
If  a  servant  be  to  choose  a  master,  come  not  into  an  ungod- 
ly family,  if  you  can  help  it.  If  young  people  be  intended 
to  marry,  take  heed  of  being  yoked  unequally,  and 
joining  yourselves  with  the  members  of  the  devil,  and 
the  enemies  of  Christ,  and  those  that  are  likely  to  be  hin- 
derers  of  your  salvation,  and  so  to  prove  the  damnation  of 
your  souls.  You  will  be  backward  enough  and  bad  enough 
in  the  best  company  that  you  get ;  what  then  will  you  be  in 
the  worst  ?  Especially  when  it  is  so  near  you,  and  continn- 
ally  with  you,  and  that  of  your  own  choice.  I  confess  a 
minister  or  other  Christian  when  he  hath  a  call  to  endeavour 
the  good  of  such,  and  to  reprove  their  sin,  may  go  among 
them  as  a  physician  among  the  siok ;  and  so  did  Christ  him- 
self when  he  was  on  earth.  But  to  make  them  our  compa- 
nions willingly,  we  may  not.  Grace  is  hardly  got,  and 
hardly  kept,  and  more  hardly  increased  in  such  company  as 
this. 


TREATISE   OF  CONVERSION.  265 

'     On  the  other  side,  get  into  the  company  of  such  an  will 
fbrther  you. ,  ''  The  tongue  of  the  just  is  as  choice  BiWfT  9 
the  heart  of  the  wicked  is  little  worth  ;  the  lips  of  the  righ- 
teous feed  many^  but  fools  die  for  want  of  wisdom.    The  lips 
of  the  righteous  know  what  is  acceptable,  but  the  mouth  of 
Ae  wicked  speaketh  frowardness*    Go  from  the  presence  of 
a  foolish  man,  when  thou  perceivest  not  in  him  the  lips  of 
knowledge  ^/'    If  you  wene  children  of  Ood  yourselves,  you 
would  delight  in  those  that  are  such.    For,  ''  by  this  we 
know  that  we  are  translated  from  death  to  life,  because  we 
lore  the  brethren."    And  David  saith,  "  the  saints  on  the 
earth,  and  the  excellent  are  all  his  delight  *"    Get  there- 
fore, if  it  be  possible,  into  the  company  of  such ;  with  them 
'  you  shall  hear  that  which  may  humble  you  for  sin,  and  you 
shall  hear  that  of  Christ  which  may  tend  to  kindle  the  love 
of  him  in  your  breasts  ;  and  you  shall  hear  that  of  the  good- 
ness of  God,  and  his  way,  ajid  the  privilege  of  the  saints ; 
the  precious  promises  of  the  Gospel,  the  life  of  grace,  and 
the  hopes  of  everlasting  glory  which  may  make  your  hearts 
to  bum  within  you.    When  you  live  with  those  that  by  their 
example  disgrace  sin  to  you,  and  draw  you  from  it,  and 
watch  over  you  against  it,  and  that  will  be  still  minding  you 
of  those  truths  that  should  sanctify  your  hearts,  O  what  an 
advantage  is  this  to  your  salvation !     If  you  be  ignorant, 
they  will  teach  you ;  if  you  are  unskilful  in  prayer,  or  other 
holy  duties,  they  will  help  you  by  their  instruction  and  ex- 
ample.   Choose,  therefore,  the  best  company  you  can  get, 
if  you  be  free,  and  all  little  enough.    Live  among  that  com- 
pany on  earth,  that  you  must  live  with  in  heaven,  if  ever  you 
come  thither. 

Hindrance  3.  The  next  hindrance  of  conversion,  is, 
A  gross  ignorance  of  those  truths  which  should  be  the  in- 
struments of  their  conversion.  He  that  tumeth  to  God, 
must  needs  know  God ;  and  he  that  tumeth  from  sin,  must 
needs  know  the  evil  and  danger  of  sin.  No  man  will  make 
BO  great  a  change,  and  not  know  why.  No  man  will  part 
with  his  present  contents,  and  set  upon  a  course  that  his 
nature  is  against ;  nor  forsake  all  the  world,  even  that  which 
is  dearest  to  him,  till  be  know  that  there  is  a  flat  necessity 
of  80  doing,  or  know  of  something  better  to  be  had  b^  tVi<^ 

rf  Prow,  X.  to,  fl .  39.     xiv.  7.  « Psal.  xVu  V 


206  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSlOBi. 

change.  When  we  find  that  even  men  of  knowledge  are  too 
often  ungodly,  and  they  will  not  leave  sin  when  they  know 
the  evil  of  it,  and  know  that  everlasting  damnation  is  threat- 
ened against  it.  How  then  can  they  forsake  it  that  know 
not  this  ?  When  many  that  can  speak  of  the  vanity  of  this 
world,  and  the  glory  of  the  saints  in  the  life  to  come,  and 
the  amiableness  of  God,  and  his  all-sufficiency  to  make  them 
happy,  do  yet  cleave  to  this  world,  and  neglect  God  and 
the  glory  which  they  so  extol,  how  then  can  we  expect  that 
they  should  turn  to  God,  and  set  their  minds  to  seek  his 
kingdom  that  do  not  know  him  ?  All  the  wickedness,  in  tlie. 
world  is  cherished  by  ignorance,  total  or  partial.  Even 
those  that  say  they  know  these  things^  and  yet  live  ungodly,, 
do  not  soundly  know  them,  but  hold  them  as  an  opinion, 
and  not  as  a  point  of  saving  ftEdth.  O,  if  poor  sinners,  that 
set  so  light  by  the  everlasting  kingdom,  did  but  thoroughly 
know  what  they  slight,  they  would  quickly  change  th^ 
mind  and  courses.  If  you  knew  heaven  as  well  as  you  knew 
your  own  houses  and  lands,  and  if  you  saw  what  the  souli 
do  now  enjoy  that  depart  in  the  faith,  as^  you  see  what  is 
done  in  the  houses  where  you  dwell,  I  would  not  thank  the 
worst  of  you  all  to  become  far  more  devout  and  diligent  than 
the  best  in  the  town  or  country  is  now.  I  would  not  thank 
the  vilest  worldling  to  become  heavenly ;  or  the  vilest 
drunkard  to  become  sober;  or  the  scomer  of  godliness  to 
be  the  most  godly  in  the  country.  If  you  knew  heaven  as 
well  as  you  know  earth,  it  were  no  thanks  to  you  if  every&r 
mily  of  you  were  a  society  of  saints,  but  this  cannot  be  ex- 
pected. God  will  not  have  us  live  by  sight  and  sense,  bat 
by  faith.  But  yet  a  knowledge  of  divine  revelation  we  may 
and  must  have.  No  man  loveth  sin  but  for  want  of  know- 
ing what  he  loveth.  No  man  doteth  upon  this  deceitful 
world,  but  for  want  of  knowing  the  worthlessness  of  it^  no 
man  makes  light  of  eternal  glory,  but  for  want  of  knowing 
what  he  makes  light  of-;  and  no  man  is  against  a  holy  life» 
but  he  that  knoweth  not  what  it  is,  nor  what  will  be  the  end 
of  it.  O,  sirs,  if  you  knew  God,  your  hearts  would  be  in- 
flamed in  love  to  him.  There  are  some  of  you  now  stand' 
wondering  at  the  diligence  of  the  godly,  and  some  of  you 
are  secretly  reproaching  them,  and  casting  forth  your  igno- 
rant scorns  against  them*,  Wt*\{  ^o\x^\dL  W\.VjCk!cyw  what  it 


TRKATISE    OF   CONVERblON.  207 

is  that^  they  at«  doings  and  who  it  is  that  setteth  them  on 
work,  and  what  it'  h  that  they  make 'all  this  ado  for,  you 
would  wonder  more  at  your  own  folly,  and  would  be  as  for- 
ward as  they,  and  would  presently  take  that  course  which 
ybu  now  reproach.    Alas  !  poor  sinners  durst  not  sport  with 
sin  if  they4new  what  they  did  ;  they  durst  not  run  in  crowds 
to  damnation  if  they  kn^w  what  they  did.    The  kingdom  of 
satan  is  a  kingdom  of  darkness  ;  and  his  works  are  the  works 
of  darkness  I -and  himself  the  ruler  of.  the  darkness  of  this 
world,  and  under  chains  of  darkneiss  is  he  ueserFied  to  the 
jadgment  of  the  great  day;  and  the  mist  and  blackness  of 
darkness  is  reserved  to  him  and  his  servants  for  ever.    **  If 
the  Gospel'be  hid,  it  i^  hid  to  them  that  are  lostf  an  whom 
the  god  of  this'  world  hath  blinded  the  minds  of  them  which 
bdieve  not, 'lest  the  glorious  Gospel  of  Christ  who  is  the 
image  of  God  should  shine  unto  them.     He  that  walketh 
ia  darkness  khowdth  not  whither  he  goeth^."    They  that 
are  converted  can  truly  say,  f*  we  were  sometimes  darkness, 
but  now  we  are  light  in  the  Lord  ^''     For  they  are  '^  trans- 
lated from  the  {iower  of  darkness." 

Direct,  3.  If  ever  you  would  be  .con vertedy  labour  for 
true  knowledge  :  come  into' the  light  that. your  deeds  may 
be  manifested ;  and  that  your  own  hearts  jnay- be  manifest 
to  yourselves.  Nothing  but  light  will  expel  your;  darkness, 
the  devil  haunteth  men  in  the  night  of  ignorance,  and  sel- 
dom appeareth  in  the  open  daylight :  bring  in  but  the  saving 
light  of  knowledge,  and  he  will  vanish  and  be  gone  :.  the  first 
part  of  saving  grace  is  illumination.  The  opening  of  the  eye 
canseth  the  opening  of  the  heart ':  Oh  if  you  had  but  a  little 
of  the.heavetily  light  of  tite  saints,  it  would  shew  you  that 
which  would  turn  your  hearts ;  you  could,  not  be  of  the 
same  mind  as  you  are,  if  you  had  but  saving  light :  now  you 
diink  highly  of  the  wdrld,  and  meanly  of  the  world  to  come ; 
jou  now  think  nothing  too  much  for  your  flesh,  and  all  too 
much  that  is  done  for  heaven ;  you  could  not  be  of  this 
mind  if  you  had  the  light  of  the  Spirit :  you  labour  now  for 
that  which  profiteth  not,  and  neglect  that  which  would  pay 

•lAikexiii.53.  John i. 5.  in.  19.  Horn. xiu.  12.  l^ Cor.  <'i.  14.  Eph.  tL 
12.  Cd.  i.  13.  2Pet.  ii.  4. 17.  Jude  6.  13.  Matt.  xxn.  13-  txv..  20.  John 
xU,  35. 


268  TRBATI8B   OF   CONYERBIOH* 

you  for  your  labour:  you  vilify  Christy  and  grace,  and  holi- 
ness^ while  you  magnify  the  dreams  and  dung  of  the  world; 
you  could  not  do  thus  if  you  were  savingly  iUominated.  I 
beseech  you,  therefore,  if  ever  you  would  be  converted  and 
saved,  labour  presently  to  know  the  Lord,  and  hi»  will  and 
ways ;  lament  your  former  ignorance  and  negligence  which 
did  maintain  it.  It  is  not  so  great  a  shame  for  you  to  be 
ignorant  how  to  do  your  work  in  the  world  ;  no,  nor  how 
to  eat  or  drink,  or  how  to  dress  yourselves,  as  it  is  to  be  ig^ 
norant  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  and  the  way  thereto  :  yon 
will  never  hit  the  way  to  heaven  if  you  do  not  know  it :  he 
that  knoweth  most,  knoweth  too  little ;  what  then  will  they 
do  that  know  almost  nothing  at  all  ?  O  think  not  know^ 
ledge  a  needless  thing,  but  make  out  after  it,  and  rest  not 
till  you  do  obtain  it;  to  which  end  you  must  use  these 
means  following. 

(1.)  Be  much  in  hearing  and  reading  the  word  of  Oodi 
as  was  before  directed ;  for  that  is  it  that  ''  giveth  light  to 
the  simple <;''  this  ''will  make  you  wise  unto  salvation ^'* 
(2.)  Read  good  books  that  are  written  for  the  expounding 
and  applying  of  the  Scripture.  Many  have  received  much 
information  by  these.  (3.)  Converse  with  wise  and  godly 
men :  these  are  the  means  of  knowledge  that  were  before 
made  mention  of. 

Object.  *  We  are  not  learned,  and  therefore  God  will  not 
require  much  knowledge  at  our  hands.' 

Answ,  You  may  say,  *  Therefore  God  will  not  require 
learning  at  your  hands,  further  than  you  are  without  it 
through  your  own  neglect.'  But  first,  every  man  that  hath 
a  reasonable  soul  should  know  God  that  made  him ;  and 
the  end  for  which^he  should  live ;  and  know  the  way  to  his 
eternal  happiness  as  well  as  the  learned  :  have  not  you  souls 
to' save  or  lose  as  well  as  the  learned  have  ?  2.  God  hath 
made  plain  his  will  to  you  in  his  word;  he  hath  given  you 
teachers  and  many  other  helps ;  so  that  you  have  no  excuse 
if  you  are  ignorant ;  you  must  know  how  to  be  Christians  if 
you  are  no  scholars.  You  may  hit  the  way  to  heaven  in 
English,  though  you  have  no  skill  in  Hebrew  or  Greek:  but 
in  the  darkness  of  ignorance  you  can  never  hit  it.  3.  Will 
not  God  judge  you  as  well  as  the  learned  ?    And  will  not 

s  P8altxlx.105.i30.  ^  «ITvisv/\\\,V5k 


TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION.        309 

le  require  an  account  of  the  talents  which  you  possess  ?  He 
lath  set  you  on  his  work  as  well  as  others^  and  therefore 
f ou  must  know  how  to  do  his  work.  If  you  think  there- 
fore that  you  may  be  excused  irpm  knowledge,  you  may  as 
irdl  think  that  you  may  be  excused  from  love  and  from  all  obe- 
dience ;  for  there  can  be  none  of  this  without  knowledge.  [ 
Object.  'But  I  am  not  of  so  quick  an.  apprehension  as 
others;,  and  therefore  I  cannot  learn  so  well.  And  I  have 
been  brought  up  in  ignorance,  and  thehffore  it  cannot  be 
expected  from  me.'  " 

Amw.  Can  any  man  have  excuse  for  ignorance  that  liveth 
among  such  teaching,  and  books,  and  Christian  company 
as  we  now  do  ?    You  may  as  well  shut  your  eyes  at  noon- 
day, and  say  you  cannot  do  your  work  for  want  of  light. 
Were  you  but  as  willing  to  get  the  knowledge  of  God  and 
heavenly  things  as  you  are  to  know  how  to  work  ij^iyour 
trade,  you  would  have  set  yourselves  to  it  before  this  day, 
and  you  would  have  spared  no  cost  or  pains  till  you  had  got 
it    But  you  account  seven  years  little  enough  to  learn  your 
trade,  and  will  not  bestow  one  day  in  seven  in  diligent  learn- 
ing the  matters  of  your  salvation.     Is  there  not  many  an 
oppprtunity  of  getting  knowledge,  which  you  miss  of  through 
your  own  neglect?    You  are  at  home  or  upon  other  busi- 
ness, when  you  might  have  been  hearing  the  word  of  Gpd; 
and  in  the  company  of  diligent  Christians,  that  are  inqui- 
ring and  learning  these  necessary  things ;  and  whei 
n^lect  the  means,  you  think  to  be  excused  for  yoi 
lance.     The  way  that  God  commandeth  you  for  gSSbig 
knowledge,  is,  that  you  receive  the  word  of  God,  and  hide 
Us  commandments  with  you;  and  incline  your  ears  to  wis- 
dom, and  apply  your  hearts  to  understand,  and  that  you  cry 
after  knowledge  :  and  lift  up  your  voice  for  understandings, 
and  seek  it  as  silver,  and  search  for  it  as  hid  treasures. 
*  And  if  you  would  do  thus,  the  Lord  hath  promised  that  you 
ahall  understand  the  fear  of  the  Lord,^and  find  the  know- 
ledge of  God '.     Methinks  light  itself;8hould  be  pleasant  to 
you.     Did  Adam  so  desire  unnecessfiry  knowledge  as  to 
undo  himself  and  his  posterity,,  tp  prp9|ire  it?  and  will  not 
you  so  desire  that  knowledge  ;.w]ii$hj  is  necessary  to  your 
salvation,  and  by  which  you  may  be  recovered  from  thaX 
miserable  estate  ^  ?    Howms^y  yep^^.study  w\\\  tafexv  a^etidi 

'  Pro^' "'  i— 5.  ;  k  Acts  xxy\.  Ifk. 


270  TREATISE   OF   CONVElUlliON. 

to  know  a  little  of  the  creature,  and  will  you  not  take  pains 
to  know  the  Maker  and  End  of  the  whole  creation? 

Object.  *  But  we  hope  we  may  be  saved  without  so  much 
knowledge/ 

Answ*  Not  without  knowing  the  necessary,  fundamental 
points  of  Christianity ;  and  a  desire  to  know  more.  Doll 
Christ  say,  "  It  is  life  eternal  to  know  Qod  and  Jesus 
Christ  ^^'  and  do  you  think  to  have  life  eternal  without  it? 
Ood  saith  of  people  that  have  no  understanding.  ''  lliat  lie 
that  made  them  will  not  save  them,  and  he  that  formed 
them  will  shew  them  no  favour °^ :"  and  that  ''Christ  shall 
come  in  flaming  fire  to  render  vengeance  to  them  that  know 
not  Ood,  and  obey  not  the  Gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ*.'' 
And  that  they  shall  be  "  punished  with  everlasting  destmc- 
tion  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord." 

Hindrance  4.  The  next  hindrance  of  conversion,  u^ 
Unbelief:  when  men  will  not  be  persuaded  that  the  worded 
Ood  is.  true,  but  doubt  of  the  things  which  he  hath  revealed 
to  them,  concerning  the  everlasting  state  of  iiien.  Men  hare 
but  a  slight  opinion  of  the  truUi  of  the  word  of  God,  whicli 
will  not  serve  turn  to  prevail  against  their  fleshly  inclination. 

Three  great  enemies  of  the  Christian  faith  we  have  to 
deal  with,  which  if  we  overcome  not,  we  lose  all.  I.  The 
one  is  our  own  unbelieving  hearts,  and  our  carnal  inclina- 
tions and  interests ;  flesh  and  blood  cannot  reveal  Jthe  things 
of  God  to  us,  nor  discern  them  when  they  are  revealed  ^ 
A  sound  belief  of  the  life  to  come,  and  of  tiie  whole  Chris- 
tian faith,  would  oertainly  turn  the  heart  to  Ood,  and  torn 
the  course  of  all  your  lives.  It  is  this  faith  that  purifieth 
the  heart  p  ;  and  without  it  no  wonder  if  the  word  be  unpro-  * 
fitable  *i,  as  to  the  producing  of  any  further  work  of  sancti- 
fication,  for  it  must  first  beget  faith  before  it  can  do  the 
rest.  2.  Another  enemy  to  the  Christian  faith,  is  the  devil; 
^  who  believeth  and  trembleth  himself,  but  laboureth  to  keep 
others  unbelieving  and  secure.  So  great  is  his  malice 
against  Christ  and  our  souls,  that  when  he  seeth  that  he 
caonot  make  a  poor  sinner  forget  Ood,  and  make  light  of 
his  word  any  longer,  he  flieth  openly  in  the  very  face  of 
God,  and  disturbeth  the  soul  with  blasphemous  suggestions, 

'  John  xvii.  3.  ■*  lsa.MviL  11.        »  2  Thess.  18, 9. 

*»  Matt.  xvU  17.    iCor.W.!^        P  kcV&vj*^*  *vAa,,^Ax,^, 


TRFATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  271 

and  temptoth  them  to  doubt  whether  there  be  a  God^  or  not, 
6r  whether  Scripttire  be  his  word,  or  whether  it  be  true.    It 
wa8  his  first  way  of  deceiving,  to  make  the  woman  doubt  of 
the  truth  of  God's  word,  which  had  told  her,  that  if  she 
viiiiled,  she  should  die.     And  experience  teacheth  him  to 
IbHow  on 'this  courae,  which  he  hath  found  to  be  so  suc- 
cessful; most  of  the  world  are  destroyed  by  this  unbelief. 
H6w  sensible'  is  many  a  poor  Christian  of  the  incessant  ma- 
lice of  satan  in  this  point ;  when  he  foUoweth  thenr  from 
day  to  day  with  such  violence,  that  their  hearts  are  ready  to' 
be  overwhelmed  with  the  horror  of  the  temptation.     But 
tihe  ungodly  do  yield  to  them  without  so  much  reluctance. 
3/  Anbther  sort  of  enemies  of  the  Christian  faith,  are,  noto- 
noms  ungodly  men ;  such  as  either  by  the  power  of  their 
own  unbelieving  hearts,  have  prevailed  against  the  light 
^t  should  have  drawn  them  to  believe,  or  such  as  have  by 
ihe  reasonings  of  infidels,  been  made  infidels  themselves, 
mdare  desirous  to  make  others  such  as  they  are  :  these  are 
tte  devil's  instruments  to  draw  men  to  unbelief. 

Direct.  A.  If  ever  you  would  be  savingly  converted,  see 
that  you  soundly  believe  the  word  of  God :  believe  soundly 
lliat  there  is  an  everlasting  happiness,  which  is  the  reward 
of  a  holy  life,  and  an  everlasting  torment,  which  is  the  pu- 
nisiiment  of  -ungodliness  ;  and  you  cannot  choose  but  for- 
Mike  your  "ungodliness,  and  become  holy.    To  this  end  ob- 
iisrve  these  few  things  following.     1.  Watch  over  your  car- 
nal heiffts  with  jealousy :  do  not  take  your  hearts  to  be 
dear  and  impartial ;  and  therefore  commit  not  the  matter  to 
tfaei^-ttirst :  they  are  naturally  enemies  to  the  word  of  God, 
tend  tiietefore  no  wonder  if  they  hardly  believe  it.    2.  Do 
Mt  think  too  highly  of  your  own  understandings,  as  if  you 
were  able  to  comprehend  the  depths  of  God  ;  or  were  com- 
petent judges  of  each  passage  in  his  word,  before  you  have 
had  time  and  means  to  understand  them,  or  before  you  have 
improved  your  time  and  means  by  diligent  study  and  prayer 
to  God ;  search  the  Scripture,  as  a  learner,  and  not  as  a 
foolish  caviller.    3.  Abhor  the  very  first  temptation  of  satan 
that  tends  to  draw  your  souls  to  unbelief,  and  sufier  not  his 
malice  to  make  too  deep  impressions  in  your  fancies  :  cast 
out  such  horrid  thoughts  with  detestation,  and  ^v^  V)ck<£t£L 
not  the  least  countenance  or  willing  entertaiumexit.    ^»  "S^^- 


272  TREATISE   OF    CONVERSION. 

teat  the  company  of  atheistical  men«  or  any  infidels  .that  dare 
open  their  mouths  to  speak  against  the  word  of  God.  Yea, 
though  they  pretend  to  do  it  but  by  way  of  question*  Hear 
every  word  against  the  Scripture  from  such  deceivers,  as  if 
you  heard  it  from  the  devil  himself^  or  as  if  you  saw  him  be^ 
hind  them,  prompting  them  what  to  say,  and  putting  thsfli 
on :  for  it  is  he  that  doth  it  by  their  mouth.  As  it  was 
satan  that  caused  Judas  to  betray  Christ,  and  filled  the 
heart  of  Ananias  and  Sapphira  to  lie  against  the  Holy  Ghosts 
so  is  it  satan  that  fiUeth  the  hearts  of  these  unbelievers  to 
speak  against  Christ,  and  to  contradict  the  word,  which  tlie 
Holy  Ghost  hath  delivered.  6.  Labour  to  understand  tlie 
sense  of  Scripture,  and  the  great  evidence  of  its  truth,  and 
of  the  Christian  faith  ;*  and  have  recourse  to  those  for  yov 
confirmation  that  are  of  better  understandings  herein  thsii 
yourselves,  and  read  those  books,  that  are  written  to  that 
end,  to  manifest  the  divine  authority  of  Scripture.  6.  Sub- 
mit to  the  truth,  which  you  know,  and  strive  not  againat 
the  light,  but  let  it  have  its  due  impress  upon  your  soak, 
that  you  may  have  the  experience  of  its  power  and  excetten- 
cy  to  confirm  you  :  by  these  means  you  may  do.  much  to 
overcome  your  unbelief;  and  if  that  were  once  done^  the 
rest  of  the  work  would  go  on  apace. 

Hindrance  5.  The  next  hindrance,  is,  Inconsiderateness: 
of  which  I  spoke  in  the  beginning,  but  shall  add  somewhat 
in  this  place.  When  truths  are  not  considered  of,  they  are 
but  as  medicines  that  lie  in  a  box,  and  therefore  are  not  like 
to  work ;  it  is  the  work  of  consideration  to  bring  down 
truths  from  the  understanding  to  the  heart,  and  to  hold  them 
there  till  they  do  work.  We  cannot  get  poor  sinners  so 
much  as  soberly  to  bethink  them  of  their  ways,  and  to  call 
to  ^mind  the  things  we  speak  to  them,  and  consider  of  them 
for  their  good.  Because  I  intend,  if  the  Lord  will,  to  speak 
hereafter  more  fully  of  this  subject,  I  shall  pass  it  over  now 
thus  briefly. 

Direct.  6.  If  ever  you  would  be  converted,  use  to  consi- 
der frequently  and  seriously  of  those  truths  of  God  that 
must  do  the  work.  The  word  of  God  is  pure  and  powerfiil 
to  convert  the  soul,  but  can  you  look  it  should  convert  you, 
if  you  will  not  so  much  as  soberly  think  upon  it  ?    How  can 


TRBAT18B  OF   CONV&R8ION.  273 

that  woiIl  upon  your  hearts,  which  is  out  of  your  minds  ? 
It  is  you  that  must  join  with  us  for  your  own  conversion, 
and  do  the  rest  of  the  work,  when  you  come  home,  and  not 
think  that  a  sermon  can  do  it,  when  you  forget  it,  and  never 
mind  it  more.  If  you  seek  to  the  ablest  physician  for  your 
body,  he  can  but  give  you  physic,  it  is  you  that  must  take 
it  and  keep  it,  and  observe  directions  till  it  work.  If  you  will 
presently  cast  it  up  again,  how  can  it  do  you  good  ?  We  tell 
you  of  those  truths  that  are  most  useful  to  your  conversion, 
and  if  you  will  take  them  home,  and  keep  them,  and  ponder  of 
ihem  when  you  are  alone,  till  they  sink  into  your  hearts, 
and  take  rooting,  you  may  be  happy  men ;  but  if  you  will 
cast  them  all  up  again,  and  will  not  be  persuaded  to  bestow 
now  and  then  a  few  of  your  deepest  serious  thoughts  for  the 
farther  entertainment  of  them,  how  should  they  do  you  sa- 
fing  good  ?  If  I  could  prevail  with  this  congregation  to  be 
but  considerate,  and  now  and  then  to  bestow  some  time  to 
get  the  truth  to  their  hearts,  I  should  have  great  hopes  of 
the  conversion  of  you  all ;  for  light  is  stronger  than  dark- 
ness :  if  yoa  would  but  open  the  window  by  consideration, 
and  let  it  in,  you  should  find  the  darkness  presently  dispel - 
led,  and  it  would  be  day  with  you  that  have  sat  in  the  ^ha-  ^ 
dow  of  death.  The  Spirit  of  Qod  is  able  to  overcome  the 
flesh,  and  Christ  is  able  to  conquer  satan,  and  bind  him,  and 
cast  him  out  of  your  souls.  And  if  you  would  but  ^t  in, 
and  take  his  part,  and  open  him  the  door  by  sober  conside- 
ration, when  he  knocks  and  seeks  admittance,  and  not  dis- 
courage him  by  your  wilful  neglect,  you  would  feel  the 
working  of  his  power  to  your  salvation.  There  have  now 
been  many  sermons  preached  to  you  on  this  text ;  have  you 
considered  of  them  when  you  came  home  ?  Have  you  taken 
yourselves  alone,  and  asked  your  own  hearts,  whether  you 
are  converted  or  not?  And  have  you  bethought  you  of  the 
blessedness  of  the  converted,  and  the  misery  of  tiie  uncon- 
verted, which  you  have  heard  ?  Have  you  dwelt  upon  these 
thoughts,  till  they  have  sunk  down  into  yout  hearts  ?  If 
you  have,  I  dare  say  this  doctrine  hath  done  you  good ;  but 
if  you  have  not,  what  wonder  if  you  be  unconverted  still, 
and  if  you  live  and  die  so,  and  if  you  be  damned  among  the 
unconverted,  when  you  will  not  be  persuaded  so  much  aa 
fieriouslj  to  consider  of  the  matter?     If  \t  be  xiol ^.  \sv^VX«t 

VOL*    YIl,  T 


274  TKEATI8B   OF   CON^VEHStOll. 

worthy  tbe  thinking  of,  it  is  not  worlli  the  hearing,  and  if 
this  be  not  to  be  thought  on,  I  know  not  what  is«  We  do 
not  go  home  with  you  from  church  into  your  homet,  nor 
«ee  what  you  think  of  there  in  secfiet,  nor  ,wfcether  yon  fiiU 
down  there  before  the  Lord,  and  pray  over  the  Benaons  that 
you  hear ;  nor  do  we  hear  what  you  say  of  it  to  others  ?  b*t 
Ood  foHoweth  you  home,  and  he  seetb  and  hearefth  all ;  md 
he  that  is  here  ready  with  his  grace  to  enter  into  yoar  beavli» 
if  you  do  not  resist  or  slight  him,  is  there  iJso  ready  to  beljp 
you  to  make  use  of  what  you  bare  heard,  if  yo«  do  not  wil* 
ftiUy  throw  it  off  yourseltes.  O,  did  you  but  eameaCiy  coa- 
nder  what  Ood  is,  and  what  yoar  duty  ia>  Mid  wbal  yM 
were  made  for,  and  whither  yon  am  going,  and  wb«(ma«d 
the  world  are,  and  what  grace  is,  and  what  Christ  inh  ^ 
hath  done  for  you,  and  what  death  is,  and  what  jffdgmei^  w, 
and  what  heaven  is,  and  what  hell  is,  how  is  tt  posffible  yew 
should  continue  unconverted  ?  How  is  it  posaifble  but  yw 
shonld  presently  run  out  of  your  present  eftttial,  wwllttf 
state,  as  you  shoiitd  do  cnost  of  a  house  that  i»  fUl  on  ftre-oiw 
yoar  head ;  and  should  become  most  seakms^  and  diligaat 
Christians  ?  Certainty  consideration  wotfld  do  very  Atnii 
to  your  conversion.  ''I  thought  on  my  waya,  and  lanMd 
my  feet  to  thy  testimonies,  I  made  haste  and  delayed!  not  to 
keep  thy  commandments  *." 

Hindrance  6.  The  next  great  impediment  U$  yo«v  CM* 
version,  i».  Hardness  of  heart,  and  searedness  of  consmenee. 
Though  every  man  have  some  of  this  in  his  original  coitfi^ 
tion,  yet  resisting  of  light  and  motions  of  grace  dotbtttmlttf 
bring  men  to  a  far  greater  measure  of  it ;  both  by  thensMM 
of  the  thing,  and  by  the  just  judgment  of  Ood.  Whan  msfl 
have  sinned  ofBen  or  long  against  knowledge  and  ccHMttieae^ 
^nd  receive  not  the  truth  in  the  love  of  it  that  they  may  b< 
saved,  but  suppress  the  light,  and  live  not  up  to  the  eonvii^ 
tions  that  are  upon  their  consciences,  it  is  usual  for*  such  to 
grow  blockish  and  senseless,  and  for  the  brutish  part  av  ht 
to  prevail,thatthey  are  in  a  sort''  unreasonable  men  ^'^  Mm 
are  naturally  dead  in  sin,  but  when  they  have  sinned  wil- 
fully, they  grow  more;  dead  ;  that  is,  they  are  more  inseisi- 
ble,  and  have  more  of  death  upon  them.  And  when  they 
fall^  especially  from  former  conviction  and  profession,  thtj 

•  Psal.  cxix.  59.  ^  *TWs»,*v«i.  V 


Il 


TRBATI^E   OF    CONVBRSIONi.  276 

^*  become  tmce  dead,  and  plaeked  up  by  the  rootp  V'  and  then 
the  wofk  of  conversion  is  hard  indeed.    When-  the  heart  ie 
thos  hiUrdened^  no  words  are  much  regarded  by  theoL :  no       | 
saying.  wiU  a^rve ;  you  speak  as  to  a  post.    We  shoot  oisr       ) 
arrows  as  at  a  wall  of  flint,  where  they  will  not  enter :  the        { 
diNv  of  holy  instructions  doth  fall  upon  a  intone  where  no        \ 
fimit  can  be  expected.     You  cannot  deirise  what  to  say  that    ' 
Will  touch  them,,  because  they  are  stupid,  ajod  will  not  lay 
it  to  heart :  you  cannot  tell  how  to  sharpen  your  words  to 
make  them  enter.  The  Lord  have  mercy  upon  poor  wretches, 
tot  theif  case  is  lamentable.    It  would  make  a  man  of  con- 
aideration  wonden  to  see  what  piercing,  weighty  truths  a 
baiid  beart  witt  make  light  of.    Speak  to  them  as  from  the 
God  that  made  them,  and  they  regard  you  not:  speak  to 
them  of  their  everlasting  state,  and  they  regard  you  not  9 
tell  them  of  the  heinous  evil  of  sin,  and  all  its  aggravations^ 
and  they  take  it  all  but  as  words  of  course ;  and  will  say, 
'  Cknl'.  help  us,  we  are  all  sinners,'  and  there  ia  an  end.    Tell 
them::  of  th^' infinite  love  of  God,  and  the  precious  blood  of 
Qhrist  that  was  died  for  them,  and  the  free  pardon  that  ia 
sfferod,  and  the  rich  abundant  grace,  which  they  might  have, 
snd  it  will  increase  their  presumption  and  security,  but  it 
wHi  not  raise;  their  estimation  of  it,  nor  quicken  their  d^r 
me  aflter  it,  nor  make  themt  forsake  all  and  follow  Christ. 
Idl  them  of  aar  everlasting  state  of  glory,  which,  they  may 
ebtiin  in  the  presence  of  the  Lord,  and  they  make  light  of 
ii^  and  hear  H  as  they  do  a  story  of  the  fortunate  islands,;  or 
ItoElysian  fieMs  :  tell  them  of  the  endless  tooments  of  the 
jkmned  that  despised  gxacein  the  day  of  their  visitation, 
and  either  they  feel  not,  and  fear  not  what  you  say ;  or  if 
they  fear  a  little,  it  is  not  so  much  as  to  move  them  from 
their  courses,  nor  bring  them  to  a  change  of  heart  sm^d  Ufe. 
0  what,  a  sad  work  it  is  to  have  to  deal  with  a  hardened 
heart !     It  is  to»  hew  at  a  stone ;  and  to  cleave  a  knotty 
l^oek  that  willi  not  receive  the  wedge ;  to  plough  and  sow 
on  a  rock>  whefe  you  cannot  make  the  plough/  to  enter. 
This  is  t&e  trouble  of  a  preacher's  life ;   this  duUeth  bis 
hopes,  this  wearieth  and  tireth  him  ;  this  maketh  him  say, 
'  I  have  laboured  in  vain,  and  spent  my  strength  for  nougth:' 
and  thib  hath  broken  many  of  their  hearts.    Alas  !  to  see 

«  Jude  1«. 


376  TRBATISE   OF    CONVERSION. 

our  poor  people  within  a  few  days  or  years  of  eternal  fire, 
which  they  might  prevent  if  they  would  look  about  them  in 
time,  and  we  cannot  get  them  to  lay  it  to  heart!    Alas !  to 
hear  what  a  feeling  they  must  have  for  ever,  and  yet  we  can- 
not get  them  to  feel  or  fear,  and  prevent  it  now.    Oh !  thinks 
a  poor  minister,  if  I  could  but  awaken  him,  and  make  him 
regard  the  case  of  his  soul,  I  should  have  hope  yet  to  pre- 
vent his  damnation :  for  no  man  can  destroy  him  against  his 
will ;  and  the  light  is  so  clear,  that  methinks  he  diould  see 
it,  if  he  would  not  wilfully  shut  his  eyes.    But  alas !  we 
cannot  get  them  to  regard  it.    How  sad  a  case  is  it  to  think 
of  an  everlasting  glory,  which  they  might  have,  and  how 
freely  Christ  hath  purchased  it,  and  how  freely  he  doth  offer 
it  to  them,  and  they  might  have  it  if  they  would,  and  if  they 
did  not  wilfully  slight  it  and  reject  it.    And  yet  that  we  can-' 
not  awaken  them  to  consideration,  nor  bring  such  matters 
as  these  to  Uieir  hearts ;  I  have  formerly  said  it,  and  I  will 
say  it  again,  that  I  profess  that  I  often  marvel  that  the  weight 
of  everlasting  matters  doth  not  rather  overmatch  your  spi- 
rits, and  overwhelm  them.    I  have  wondered  that  it  dodi 
not  even  amaze  and  astonish  you  to  think  how  great  a  change 
you  are  near,  and  what  a  thing  it  is  to  be  everlastingly  in 
heaven  or  in  hell :  and  yet  we  cannot  get  our  people  to  feel 
or  lay  to  heart  these  things.    O,  what  lamentable  hearts  are 
these !    What  will  they  regard  and  feel  if  they  will  not  feel 
everlasting  matters  ?     What  words  will  ever  pierce  their 
hearts  if  the  words  of  the  living  Ood  will  not  do  it,  and  the 
words  by  which  they  know  they  shall  be  judged  ?     Do  but 
call  one  of  them  by  some  disgraceful  name,  and  he  will 
quickly  feel :  threaten  him  with  death ;  promise  him  bat 
a  hundred  pounds,  and  he  will  regard  it :  but  let  God  de- 
clare his  sin  and  misery  to  him,  and  he  will  not  feel  it :  let 
God  threaten  him  with  hell,  and  promise  him  everUwting 
life,  if  he  will  return,  and  he  will  not  regard  it.     O,  what  a 
happy  life  might  a  minister  have  if  it  were  not  for  hard- 
hearted ^men !     If  we  could  deal  with  them,  but  on  such 
terms  for  their  souls  as  we  do  for  their  bodies,  how  cer- 
tainly should  we  prevail,  and  then  how  comfortable  would 
our  employments  be.    If  a  lawyer  tell  them  their  evidence, 
or  cause  is  nought,  they  will  hear  and  regard  him  :  if  a  phy- 
Bician  tell  them  they  must  \;9ke  \\v^%\e.  ot  dX.^,  X^v^*^  nviU  lay 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  277 

it  to  heart.  If  their  landlord  tell  them  they  most  pay  their 
rent,  or  be  turned  out  of  their  houses,  they  can  feel  what  he 
saitfa ;  but  if  we  tell  them  that  they  must  repent  and  becon- 
Terted,  or  be  condemned  for  ever,  and  miss  of  salvation,  we 
cannot  be  regarded;  their  hearts  are  blocked  up  from  us,  by 
the  world,  and  pride,  and  lust,  and  sin,  and  we  cannot  get 
into  their  bosom :  we  know  not  how  to  come  at  their  hearts. 
Alas !  if  it  were  not  for  their  own  sakes  this  trouble  were 
small  to  us  ;  for  what  good  else  should  it  do  us  to  trouble 
Ihem,  and  break  their  hearts  and  change  them  ?  But  when 
we  consider,  if  we  could  but  convert  them  we  should  save 
them ;  and  if  we  could  help  them  to  grace,  we  might  meet 
them  in  everlasting  glory,  this  maketh  us  long  for  better 
success.  Fain  then  would  we  get  them  to  hear,  and  regard, 
and  feel  what  we  say,  that  it  might  go  well  with  them  for 
ever ;  but  we  cannot.  Alas !  to  the  grief  of  our  hearts  we 
cannot.  It  is  a  tiring  life  to  have  none  but  hard-hearted 
sinners  to  persuade ;  we  lose  our  study  for  them ;  we  lose 
our  breath  upon  them.  Some  of  them  can  think  of  other 
things  while  we  are  speaking  to  them  of  the  greatest  matters 
in  all  the  world ;  and  some  of  them  can  drop  asleep  under 
it,  and  some  of  them  sit  as  dull  as  blocks ;  and  some  of  them 
will  look  upon  us  as  if  they  were  affected,  and  yet  it  never 
goes  to  the  quick ;  and  some  of  them  that  seem  to  be  some- 
what sensible,  do  shake  off  all  again  in  a  few  days  time,  and 
when  they  have  been  awhile  among  their  old  ^companions, 
and  about  their  old  business,  they  shew  us  that  they  are 
the  old  men,  and  that  it  is  one  thing  to  be  a  little  affrighted 
for  a  few  days,  and  another  thing  to  have  a  changed,  softened 
heart.  Were  it  not  for  this  sin  of  hardness  of  heart,  it  were 
not  possible  that  so  many  sermons  should  be  lost ;  nor  that 
80  many  ministers  in  England  should  see  so  little  fruit  of 
their  labours.  Why,  alas  I  sinners,  what  else  can  be  the 
matter  ?  We  come  on  as  reasonable  an  errand  as  any  men 
in  the  world  can  come  on ;  it  is  but  that  men  would  accept 
salvation  that  is  freely  purchased  and  offered  them,  and  that 
they  would  be  content  to  change  a  life  of  sin  and  misery,  for 
a  life  of  grace  and  everlasting  glory.  One  would  think  that 
such  a  message  as  this  should  take  with  every  man  and  wo- 
man in  the  congregation ;  especially  when  it  \a  ^^tvV.  itota. 
Gad  himself,  and  brought  to  them  witbi  sucYi  ev'\^^^c»  ^^ 


278  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

certain  truth,  and  diemselves  profess  to  believe  wbal  we  say. 
One  would  think  a  message  so  reasonable  as  this  should 
prevail  with  every  man  in  a  whole  country  or  kingdom  where 
it  comes :  and  yet  it  doth  not.  Nay,  alas !  how  few  are  th^y 
with  whom  it  doth  prevail !  If  we' came  hither  to  oflFer  every 
man  in  this  congregation  that  he  should  live  in  a  palace  as 
a  prince,  on  condition  he  would  leave  his  cottage  aad  ac- 
cept it,  who  would  make  any  question  of  the  success  ?  I 
should  not  doubt  but  every  man  and  woman  of  you  would 
yield  :  and  yet  when  we  come  in  the  naoae  of  God  to  offer 
them  grace  and  glory  on  free  cost,  if  they  will  but  let  gosm 
and  the  world,  they  will  not  be  persuaded ; — say  what  we  can, 
though  they  will  not  tell  us  so,  yet  they  will  not  be  pex- 
suaded :  and  whence  can  this  come  but  from  ^  hardened 
heart  ?  Did  we  not  speak  to  men  that  have  lost  their  s^ise 
and  reason,  and  are  past  feeling,  it  could  not  be  :  when  every 
man  naturally  desireth  his  own  happiness,  and  yet  men  ^oll 
not  be  happy  when  it  is  offered  them. 

Yea,  this  is  not  fill ;  but  when  the  heart  is  thu9  h^dened, 
some  of  them  are  given  over  to  such  a  desperate  case  that 
they  heai*  the  word  with  a  malicious  mind ;  and  instead  pf 
receiving  it  in  power  to  their  salvation,  they  do  but  cavil  at 
it,  and  pick  quarrels  with  it,  to  their  condemnation ;  and 
prate  among  their  companions  against  that  which  they  un- 
derstand not,  nor  ever  laid  to  heart.  If  a  physician  would 
heal  them  for  nothing,  and  they  should  maliciously  reproach 
him  or  quarrel  with  all  that  he  doth  for  them,  did  they  not 
desjerve  to  be  left  to  perish  by  the  disease  ?  If  they  had  for- 
feited their  lives  and  a  free  pardon  were  offered  them,  what 
would  you  think  of  him,  that  instead  of  a  thankful  accepting 
of  the  pardon,  would  pick  quarrels  with  it,  and  prpve  it  non- 
sense, or  scorn  the  messenger  ?  This  is  the  case  of  many  of 
Qur  hearers.  Poor  souls,  their  ^iyes  declare  their  misery, 
and  God  sendeth  us  to  them  with  the  offers  of  a  remedy,  and 
one  goes  home  and  makes  a  jest  of  it ;  and  another  foolishly 
cavilleth  against  it,  and  another  thinks  it  a  needless  thing ; 
and  this  is  our  success  with  hard-hearted  men.  Now  the 
Lord  have  mercy  upon  you  that  hear  me  in  this  congrega- 
tion, and  grant  that  this  may  be  none  of  your  case,  or  if  it 
be,  that  he  would  powerfully  and  quickly  cure  it:  for  it  is 
one.ofthe  saddest  case&  Vn  t\us  yioxV^l-.  ^\i<^  cA  ^  \^\\&  ^^ 


TBXAT18E   OF   CONVERSION.  979 

men,  there  ace  few  or  none  that  we  have  eo  little  hope  of  aa 
hard-hearted  men.    If  a  man  were  never  bo  much  mistaken 
and  never  to  fiEu:  oat  of  the  way,  yet  if  he  had  but  any  re- 
gard or  fteling  with  him,  we  might  hope  by  the  force  of 
reason. and  the  light  of  the  word  of  God,  to  bring  him  to 
himself,  and  set  him  in  the  way:  but  when  men  are.  past 
fiaeling,  what  shall  we  say  to  them,  or  what  can  we  do  for 
them  ?     Nay,  it  is  not  only  words  but  even  the  works  of 
Gkid  that  are  -lost  upon  such  men  :  mercies  do  but  harden 
them,  and  judgments  themselves  do  but  harden  them,  which 
one  would  think,  should  humble  and  soften  them,  if  any  out- 
ward means  could  do  it.    When  the  Jews  had  sinhed,  God 
punished  them  with  war,  and  let  loose  plundering,  robbing 
soldiersfupon  their  estates,  and  destroyers  upon  their  bodies ; 
tad  yet  they  were  so  far  from  being  humbled  and  softened 
by  i^  that.Uiey  did  not  so  much  as  regard  the  cause,  nor  the 
hioid  that  did  it.    "  Who  gave  Jacob  for  a  spoil,  and  Israel 
to  the  robbers?     Did  not  the  Lord,  he  against  whom  we 
h«?e  sinned  ?    For  they  would  not  walk  in  his  way,  neither 
were  they  obedient  to  his  law.    Therefore  he  hath  poured 
upon  him  the  fury  of  his  anger,  and  the  strength  of  battle, 
and  it  hath  set  him  on  fire  round  about,  yet  he  kpew  not, 
and  it  busned  him,  yet  he  laid  it  not  to  heart. "" ".   And  hath 
not  this  been  our  own  case  in  England  ?    Who  would  have 
thought,  if  people  had  but  had  life,  and  sense,  and  reason  in 
them,  but  that  so  many  years'  war  should  have  humbled 
them  for  itheir  sins,  and  made  them  willing  to  learn  and  to 
be  reformed?    Who  would  have  thought  but  they  would 
have  searched  and  tried  their  ways,  and  turned  to  the  lU>rd 
that  did  afflict  them ;  and  have  loved  his  word^  and  have 
given  up  themselves  to  bis  will,  and  even  in  the  open  as- 
■emfalies  have  voluntarily  acknowledged  and  bewailed  their 
kiiquities  ?    And  yet  w6  see  how  many  are  the  same»    As 
the  sword  found  them,  so  it  hath  left  tJiem,  if  not  worse : 
and  if  the  fury  of  God's  anger  cannot  be  felt,  no  wonder  if 
they  cannot  feel  our  preaching :  and  if  they  lay  not  to  heart 
the  fire  that  burneth  them  up,  what  wonder  if  they  lay  not 
to  heart  the  message  we  deliver?     If  Peter  and  Paul,  yea, 
or  Christ  himself,  had  preached  to  one  of  these  hardened 
sinners,  they  would  have  made  light  of  it ;  or  gone  home 

^  Isa.  xJii.  Z4,  Sd. 


280  TREATISE   OF  CONVERSION. 

and  ignomntly  cavilled  against  them  as  they  do  against  the 
ministers  now«  unless  the  powerful  arm  of  God  had  inwardly 
concurred  to  the  softening  of  their  ^hearts  :  for  indeed  they 
did  thus  by  Christ  and  his  apostles  while  jkhey  were  upon 
earth  :  and  by  all  the  prophets  that  went  before  them ;  Eiek. 
iii.  7.  saith  the  Lord,  ver.  4.  **  Son  of  man,  get  thee  to  the 
house  of  Israel,  and  speak  with  my  words  to  them.    Not  to 
mecny  people  of  a  strange  speech  and  a  hard  language,  whose 
words  thou  canst  not  understand.    Surely  had  I  sent  thee 
to  them,  they  would  have  hearkened  to  thee,  but  the  bouM 
of  Israel  will  not  hearken' to  thee,  for  they  will  not  hearken 
to  me,  for  all  the  house  of  Israel  are  impudent  and  haxd- 
hearted/'    And  Christ  himself  when  he  had  wrought  evon 
'miracles  to  confirm  his  doctrine,  was  put  to  grieve  for  the 
hardness  of  their  hearts  ^    And  when  ^e  aposUes  preached 
the  Oospel  of  salvation,  **  divers  were  hardened  and  believed 
not,  but  spoke  evil  of  the  way  of  God  before  the  people,** 
till  the  apostles  resolved  to  leave  them  to  themselves  \    So 
that,  hardness  of  heart  is  the  great  impediment  of  conversion* 
Direct.  6.  The  advice  therefore  that  I  would  give  you 
for  this  work  of  conversion,  is.  That  you  especially  teke 
heed  of  this  dangerous  case  of  an  hardened  heart.     In  the 
name  of  God  see  that  you  run  not  into  this  miserable  state; 
or  if  you  be  in  it,  O  that  I  could  awaken  you,  that  you  might 
speedily  be  brought  out  of  it.    Haye  you  yet  time  of  repen- 
tance?    And  are  your  souls  and  bodies  yet  together?    Yet 
hath  God's  patience  kept  you  out  of  hell?    .0  harden  not 
your  hearts,  lest  time  be  gone,  and  death  and  darkness  be 
upon  you  before  you  are  aware.     "  Behold,  now  is  the  ac- 
cepted time,  behold  now  is  the  day  of  salvation,"  saith  the 
Holy  Ghost  \    Doth  God  give  you  warning  once  again  be- 
fore he  smiteth  you  into  everlasting  vengeance,  and  doth  he 
once  more  call  you  to  repent  before  he  summon  you  to  judg- 
ment ?     O  take  the  counsel  of  the  Holy  Ghost ;  "  To-day  if 
ye  will  hear  his  voice,  harden  not  your  hearts  ^.'^    I  say,  to- 
day, lest  he  bear  not  with  thee  till  to-morrow,  **  Boast  not 
of  to-morrow,  for  thou  knowest  not  what  a  day  may  bring 
forth  ^."     And  if  God  do  call  thine  impenitent  soul  out  of 
this  world  before  our  next  meeting  in  this  place,  or  at  least, 

y  Mark  iii.  5.  »  Acts  ix.  9.  »  2  Cor.  vi.  2. 

*  Heb.  iii.  7,  8.  1 5.     PsaV .  xcv .  a.  *  '^ t\iM » ixVvi,  v 


l^RBATISE  OF  CONVERSIOK.  281 

ere  long,  remember  then  that  thou  hadst  time  to  have  pre* 
▼ented  the  misery  which  thou  must  feel  to  all  eternity. 

There  is  not  a  more  fearful  plague  on  earth  than  a  har- 
dened heart ;  none  is  more  like  to  be  sealed  up  to  damna- 
tion than  such  an  one.    Dost  thou  hear  of  the  greatness  of 
thy  sin,  and  hear  of  judgment  and  eternal  life,  and  hear  of 
the  love  and  severity  of  the  Lord,  and  yet  dost  thou  not  feel 
it  ?     O  sad. case,  and  sadly  to  be  lamented  by  all  that  under- 
stand it  1    For  from  thyself  it  cannot  be  expected.    Believe    f  . 
it,  sinner,  Ood  hath  a  voice  that  will  be  heard  and  regarded,    j  | 
If  the  voice  of  mercy  be  made  light  of,  the  voice  of  judg-    ^ 
ment  shall  not  be  made  light  of.    When  we  have  told  thee 
of  thy  danger,  and  of  the  remedy  by  Christ,  thou  canst  go 
home  and  cast  it  out  of  thy  mind.    But  when  God  hath  said, 
"Gk>  ye  cursed  to  everlasting  fire,  prepared  for  the  devil  and 
his  angels,''  then  make  light  of  that  if  thou  canst.    When 
he  hath  newly  said,  ^f  Take  him  and  bind  him  hand  and 
foot,  and  cast  him  into  utter  darkness,  where  shall  be  weep- 
ing and  gnashing  of  teeth ;"  then  forget  this,  and  cast  this 
o«t  of  thy  mind  if  thou  canst.    O  poor  wretch,  if  thou  hadst 
to  do  but  with  such  an  one  as  I,  or  any  one  of  the  sons  of  men, 
perhaps  thou  mightest  think  to  escape  well  enough :  but 
thou  hast  to  do  widi  the  eternal  Majesty,  and  how  then  wilt 
thou  escape?     Canst  thou   grapple   with  his    Almighty 
stirength?     Or  canst  thou  make  good  thy  part  against  him? 
When  we  call  on  thee  to  repent  and  reform,  thou  wilt  not ; 
when  we  call  on  thee  to  a  holy  and  heavenly  life,^thou  wilt 
not;  but  when  he  shall  say, '  Depart  from  me,  thou  cursed 
wretch,'  wilt  thou  then  say,  thou  wilt  not  ?    When  he  shall 
deliver  thee  to  the  devils  to  be  tormented  by  them  for  ever, 
who  deceived  thee  in  thy  lifetime,  and  bid  them  take  thee  to 
everlasting  flames,  wilt  thou  then  say,  thou  wilt  not  go? 
Alas,  poor  wretch !    What  power  hast  thou  to  resist?    It  is 
the  same  Almighty  Ood  that  made  all  the  world  of  nothing, 
and  beareth  it  up  in  his  hand,  and  disposeth  of  it  at  his  will, 
which  then  will  command  thee  to  remediless  perdition.     If 
he  bid  the  sun  in  the  firmament  move,  it  moveth ;  and  once 
when  he  bad  it  stand  still,  it  did  stand  still,  and  nothing  is 
able  to  resist  his  power;  and  canst  thou  resist  it?    Why, if 
he  send  but  a  disease  upon  thee,  thou  art  uuab\e  to  iq^\^  \\.\ 
If  be  bid  tbee  die,  wilt  thou  say,  I  will  not  d\e1     N\^^\  Ai 


382  TREATISE   OF   CO^VBBftlOK. 

sinners  could  have  resisted  Ood^  and  saved  themBeLrat  firom 
the  stroke  of  justice,  the  church-yard  would  not  have  beoi 
so  full  of  graves,  nor  hell  so  full  of  damned  soals  as  it  is  st 
this  day.  "  But  who  hath  hardened  himself  against  hioip 
and  hath  prospered"^?''  Name  me  the  man,  and  tell  me 
where  he  dwells,  that  hardened  his  heart  agunstthe  Lord^ 
and  sped  well  by  it  in  the  latter  end  ?  I  tell  yon  again,  if 
sermons  cannot  make  you  feel;  if  mercies  and  warning,  if 
threatening  and  affliction  cannot  make  yon  feel,  judgment 
and  hell  shall  make  you  feel.  Say  not,  but  thou  wast  toU 
so,  and  remember  this  when  thou  seest  not  me.  Remember 
that  I  foretold  thee  that  God  will  not  be  always  jested  with, 
or  abused,  and  that  thou  canst  not  make  so  Ught  of  hell,  u 
thou  didst  of  the  warnings  of  God  and  man.  If  thou  be 
turned  into  a  rock,  God  hath  a  hammer  that  can  batter  and 
dash  in  pieces  that  rock. 

Object.  '  But  if  God  will  harden  my  heart,  how  can  Ihe^ 
it?  It  is  he  that  hardened  Pharaoh's  heart,  and  so  he  did 
the  Jews  *•    And  if  he  will  do  it,  what  remedy  V 

Amw.  1.  Dost  thou  think  to  hare  any  excuse  or  oomfbit 
by  accusing  the  righteous  and  holy  God  ?  O  what  a  fooliih 
thing  is  sin,  and  how  it  bereaveth  poor  sinners  of  their  un- 
derstanding !  Thou  mightest  better  have  laid  the  blame 
upon  any  one  in  the  world,  than  upon  the  righteous  and 
most  holy  God.  For  never  sin  came  from  him,  nor  wai 
jpaused  by  him.  Dost  thou  think  he  will  not  be  justified  in 
his  j  udging  ?  God's  hardening  men  is  but  his  leaving  then 
to  themselves,  to  go  on  in  that  hardness  that  he  found  them 
in,  and  denying  them  that  grace  which  he  no  way  owetli 
them.  2.  And  God  doth  not  this  neither,  till  thou  abnsest 
his  grace,  and  strivest  against  the  light,  and  castest  away  thy 
own  mercy ;  and  is  it  not  just  then  that  he  should  take  his 
mercy  from  thee?  If  children  will  play  with  their  meat,  or 
cast  it  to  the  dogs,  and  tread  it  under  feet,  it  is  time  to  take 
it  away.  This  is  God's  hardening  of  the  hearts  of  sinners ; 
he  leaveth  them  as  he  found  them,  after  they  have  abused 
and  refused  his  grace.  And  withal,  he  letteth  loose  tbe 
tempter  upon  them,  that  seeing  they  will  be  wicked,  they 
tuay  be  taken  in  their  own  wickedness,  and  destroy  them- 
Belves  by  it;  as  you  will  lay  a  purse  in  the  way  to  catch  a 

^  Job  Ix.  4.  *  ^^le^LV  AH, 


TREATISE  OF   CONVERSION.  283 

thief  by,  wben  you  do  not  make  him  thievish  ;  bo  Qod  will 
try  and  catch  a  sinper  when  yet  he  never  gives  him  any  in- 
dioation  to  the  ^ia.  But  when  he  Beeth  that  they  are  and 
iriU  be  such,  it  is  just  with  him  to  let  them  take  their  course, 
and  smart  by  their  folly.  And  .as,  if  you  see  a  thief  that  is 
mimmg  into  a  pit,  you  are  not  bound  to  keep  him  out ;  no 
Bore  is  God  to  keep  a  sinner  from  destroying  of  himself,  es- 
pecially when  he  hath  so  often  refused  his  assistance^ 

Qmest.  *  But  what  can  I  do  for  the  softening  of  my  own 


Answ.  O  that  thou  wert  but  willing  to  do  what  thou 
sliLOuldst  andmightestdo.     If  thou  be  willing;  1.  Get  alone 
and  consider  of  the  misery  of  thy  condition ;  and  of  the 
time  when  thou  sh^lt  feel  whether  thou  wilt  or  no.    2.  Keep 
nader  the  most  powerful  preaching  of  the  word,  which  is 
Qod's  ordiyiary  means  for  the  melting  of  the  heart.    3.  Keep 
in  the  copnpany  of  those  that  will  remember  thee  of  those 
holy  truths  which  have  a  softening  nature,  and  Vfiil  bring 
everlasting  things  into  thy  inind.    4.  Keep  out  of  the  com- 
pany of  foolish  and  ungodly  men,  who  by  their  words  and 
practices  will  harden  thee  more.    5.  Resolve  that  thou  go 
not  on  in  the  practice  of  thy  known  sin ;  no,  not  once  more. 
For  sinning  against  knowledge  doth  harden  the  heart,  and 
tempt  the  Lord  to  leave  thee  to  thyself.     If  thpn  wilt  be 
drunk  when  thou  knowest  it  to  be  a  sin ;  and  wilt  be  world- 
ly, and  wilt  be  fleshly,  when  God  apd  conscience  speak 
agaii3Lst  it ;  this  will  desperately  harden  thy  heart.     6.  Beg 
daily  of  God  that  h^  would  soften  thy  heart.    Beseech  him 
upon  thy  knees  to  pardon  those  sins  by  which  thou  hast 
hardened  it,  and  to  give  thee  his  Spirit  which  must  deliver 
Ibee  from  this  misery  :  and  follow  him  hard  with  these  re- 
quests from  day  to  day ;  for  if  thou  prevail  not,  thou  art  un- 
done and  lost  for  ever.     For,  saith  the  Holy  Ghost,  "  he  that 
covereth  his  sips  ^hall  not  prosper,  but  he  that  confesseth 
and  forsakQth  them,  shall  have  mercy.    Happy  is  the  man 
that  feareth  always,  but  he  that  hardeneth  his  heart  shall  fall 
into  mischief  ^"    "  He  that  being  often  reproved,  hardeneth 
his  neic^k,  shall  suddenly  be  destroyed,  and  that  without  re- 
medy s." 

Hindrance  7.  Another  hindrance  of  conveisvow,  \%^^\tft 

^  Pwv.xxviU,  13,  U.  %  PT«»y.  xiVx.  \. 


284  TREATISE   OF  CONVER8IOK. 

too  great  esteem  that  men  have  of  this  woild,  and  the  great 
interest  that  it  hath  gotten  in  their  hearts.    By  this  it  is  thai 
God  is  shut  out,  that  Christ  is  so  neglected,  that  heavenlj 
things  are  so  much  undervalued ;  because  men  have  that  i 
their  hands  already,  or  at  least  in  their  eyes,  which  they 
better.    Qod  and  mammon  cannot  be  loved;  these  tiro 
masters  cannot  be  both  served.    While  the  world  is  1 
to,  Christ  will  be  made  light  of.    The  glory  to  come  can  ne- 
ver be  obtained,  but  by  the  hearty  forsaking  of  this  present! 
world.    It  is  this  that  stole  the  heart  from  Qod ;  and  it  is  thb 
that  possesseth  it,  till  grace  recovereth  it  to  Ood  i^ain  :  and 
therefore  it  is  the  work  of  grace  to  cast  out  the  world,  ani 
to  set  up  Ood ;  to  dethrone  this  usurper,  and  to  give  (ki 
again  the  possession  of  his  own.    As  truly  as  darkness  goetk 
out  of  the  room  when  light  comes  in,  so  truly  doth  thelovt 
of  the.  world  depart  where  the  love  of  God  doth  enter  into 
the  soul.    For  **  if  any  man  (predominantly)  love  the  woiU* 
the  love  of  the  Father  is  not  in  him  ^.**    Men  cannot  make 
God  their  end,  and  the  world  their  end  too.    They  cannot 
love  God  above  all,  and  the  world  above  all  too*    They  can: 
not  set  their  hearts  on  heaven,  nor  make  it  their  treasure  and 
their  chiefest  good,  while  they  set  their  hearts  on  earth,  and 
make  it  their  treasure,  "  For  where  their  treasure  is,  their 
hearts  will  be  ^''    When  men  are  drowned  in  worldly  cares, 
and  taken  up  so  much  with  worldly  contrivances  and  biui- 
nesses,  there  is  then  no  room  for  the  matters  of  their  salva- 
tion.    If  they  would  go  to  consider  of  their  sin  and  miseiy, 
and  think  of  these  things  thieit  might  further  their  convert 
sion,  their  worldly  matters  step  in,  and  turn  away  their 
thoughts  ;  so  that,  when  they  are  alone,  and  have  opporto- 
nity  for  such  considerations,  yet  they  have  no  hearts  to  such 
a  work.    When  they  are  considering,  and  begin  to  perceive 
that  they  must  either  change  or  perish,  and  that  this  life  will 
not  serve  the  turn,  presently  the  world  doth  turn  their  minds, 
and  telleth  them  of  other  matters  to  be  minded,  and  so  all 
is  forgotten  again.     If  their  hearts  be  a  little  wakened  and 
troubled  for  sin,  the  pleasure  or  business  of  the  world  doth 
quiet  them,  and  while  it  maketh  them  forget  their  miseiy, 
they  live  as  if  it  were  cured,  and  all  their  trouble  vanishedi 
away.     If  they  are  moved  to  %ei  u^  Ih^  worship  of  God  in 

h  1  John  V\.  15 .  ^  ^«XX*  nV  1\* 


I 


TR&ATISB   OF   CONVERSION.  385 

their  families,  to  read,  and  pray,  and  instruct  those  that  are 
vnder  them,  the  world  will  not  give  them  leave,  they  have 
somewhat  else  to  mind,  which  it  seemeth  they  think  of 
jpeater  necessity.  And  thus  the  world  is  an  enemy  to  Ood, 
"tnd  the  love  of  it  keepeth  out  the  love  of  God,  and  the  serv- 
'^ig  of  it  excludeth  his  service,  and  they  that  are  friends  of 
^  are  certainly  his  enemies  ^.**  And  this  is  a  grievous  hin- 
|«ance  of  conversion. 

Direct.  1.   Let  go  the  world  then,  if  ever  you  would  be 

inverted.    You  renounced  it  in  your  baptism,  see  that  your 
now  unfeignedly  renounce  it,  unless  you  will  renounce 

^ur  part  in  Christ  and  the  world  to  come.  Think  not  to 
kp  both,  and  make  up  a  felicity  to  yourselves  between 
It  is  now  become  your  enemy,  and  as  an  enemy  it 
^^  jt  be  affected  and  used,  or  else  as  an  enemy  it  will  effec- 
iially  destroy  you.  It  is. a  killing,  conquering  enemy,  to 
Itliose  that  take  it  not  heartily  for  their  enemy.  But  it  is 
liiftly  a  troubling,  but  a  conquered  enemy  to  them  that  take 
ii  and  use  it  as  an  enemy.  O  that  poor  worldlings  did  but 
Ibiow  what  a  feather,  what  a  shadow,  what  an  empty  un 

Kfitable  thing  they  do  pursue.    You  run  after  it  eagerly, 
;  when  you  overtake  it,  you  will  befool  yourselves,  and 
Hmj,  *  What  have  I  gotten  ?    Is  this  all  that.  I  have  cared  and 
Ijoiled  for?     Is  this  all  that  I  forsook  Ood  and  my  salvation 
§0ffV    For  your  souls'  sake,  sinners,  forsake  not  God  till 
yon  know  for  what.    Neglect  not  heaven  till  you  have 
flomewhat  better  to  regard.    Renounce  not  your  salvation 
iHl  you  know  such  reason  for  it  as  you  dare  own,  and  stand 
to  ttt  death  and  judgment.    Is  a  little  plenty  of  wealth  and 
vmidly  trifles  a  matter  for  a  man  to  sell  his  soul  for  ?    You 
dunk,  I  know,  that  you  do  not  sell  your  salvation  for  it,  be- 
caose  you  hope  that  you  may  have  both :  but  this  is  but 
your  wilful  delusion.    If  yon  will  not  believe  God  now  that 
tdeth  you  you  cannot  .have  two  portions,  two  treasures,  two 
tads,  or  two  masters,  you  will  find  it  true  when  your  deceit 
hath  undone  you.    Doth  God  tell  you  that  you  cannot  love 
both,  and  that  the  world  and  he  cannot  both  have  your 
liearts,  and  will  you  not  believe  him?    If  the  world  be  bet- 
ter than  God,  then  take  it,  and  let  him  go.     If  it  be  more 
durable  than  heaven,  then  follow  it  and  spare  not.    But, 

k  James  ir.  8.1 


286  TR£ATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

alas !  what  a  dream,  what  a  shadow  is  iU-  How  soon  will  it 
be  gone !  Will  you  always  dwell  in  these  houses  ?  or  will 
your  friends  and  riches  stay  with  you  for  ever  ?  Will. yon 
carry  your  lands  and  wealth,  and  fleshly  proyifliiMi  to  «iO^ 
ther  world  ?  Alas,  thai  men  should  wilfalty  xndo  thwDr 
selves  !  There  is  not  a  worldling,  but  will  cOBfeeui'  all  this 
to  be  true  that  I  say,  and  yet  their  hearts  are  still  the  mioe, 
and  the  world  hath  their  love,  and  care,  and  pteamirey  aad 
worldlings  they  will  be  still.  O  what  a  self-condeoung 
sinner  is  a  worldling,  and  how  much  against  his  knowledge 
doth  he  sin !  He  knows  that  he  mis-placeth  his  a£Eectioas^ 
and  yet  be  will  do  it.  He  foreseeth  that  the  world  will  de- 
ceive him  at  the  last,  and  yet  he  will  follow  it,  to  the  neglect 
of  his  salvation^  Christ  hath  made  but  "  one  thing  neoa*- 
sary  ^"  Do  that  and  do  all :  get  that  and  get  all.  But  thej 
needlessly  incumber  themselves  about  many  tfeiag»»and  mtkt 
themselves  more  work  than  God  hath  made  themi ;.  and  wiH 
not  see  that  they  have  lost  their  laboaf ,  tilL  they  find  tkit 
they  have  lost  their  souls.  Opoor  foolisksinnera,  thaii  now 
are  so  busy  for  you  know  not  wh^,  and  rejoicing  in  yoor 
possessions  as>  if  you  were  happy,  when  **  your  souli'sbill 
be  required  of  you,  whose  then  shall  these  things  be  "^  I" 
When  death  and  j  udgment  shall  awaken  you  to  yomr  MoouBft, 
and  help  you  better  to  understand  your  reckoning,  then 
make  your  boast  of  the  world,  and  boast  of  your  gain,  if  yoa 
find  it  worth  your  boasting  of.  Then  tell  us  who  was  the 
wiser  merchant,  he  that  sold  all  for  the  pearl  of  gsaiee  and 
glory,  or  he  that  let  go  that  treasure  for  the  world.  Thet 
tell  us  whether  a  heavenly  or  an  earthly  conversation  wsi 
the  wiser  course;  and  who  it  was  that  choose'  the  bettor 
part. 

Hindrance  8.  Another  great  impediment  to  conver- 
sion, is,.  When  custom  in  sinning  hath  given  it  the  mastery, 
and  made  the  flesh  the  ruler  of  your  reason,  and  madcuaai 
think  that  they  have  a  kind  of  necessity  to  sin.  NalNire  as 
corrupted,  doth  bring  forth  sin  in  to<)  great  strength-;  hoi 
custom  doth  make  it  stronger,  and  blotteth  out  the  renmuiti 
of  moral  wisdom  and  honesty  from  the  soul.  When  mca 
have  long  taken  a  custom  of  sinning,  they  grow  hardened 
nd  senseless,  as  the  hign  way  doth  by  being  often  trod 

1  Luke  X.  4'2.  "  Luke  xH.  10. 


TRBATISE   OF   CONVHRSIONi  287 

upoiij  or  as  a  labourer's  hand  grows  hard  by  constant  \tr 
hour.  -And  so  sin  beeometh  familiar  to  tbem,  and  they  b^ 
CMoe  •'  pastfeeUng/'and  are '^  given  np  to  work  oncleanness 
with  greediness  °/'  A  custom  of  sinning  against  reason 
4oth  make  meat  in  a  sort  unreasonable,  by  giving  their  sen- 
MMdity  the  rale  of  their  reason.  We  see  by  sad  experience, 
when  mett  grow  old  in  ignorance,  iM>w  hardly  they  are 
bffongltt  to  knowledge,  yea,  or  to  be  willing  to  leam.^  And 
when  men  ar«  often  drunk,  or  commit  any  other  heinous  siil, 
horn  it  proBtitutetk  their  souls  to  the  next  temptation,  and 
■udwib  siJt  as  femiiiar  to  them  as  water  to  the  fisb^  It  must 
bs  by  a  HBrackir  or  next  to  a  miracle,  diat  an  old>  ignorant, 
wdHdly  or  sensual  sinner  must  be  converted.  By  often  sin* 
nittg  they  hate  lost  their  understandings,  and  hardened  their 
hearts,  and  thijik  the  greatest  good  to  be  evil,  and  think  they 
oumot  Hwe  without  their  sin*  But  as  a  man»  in  a  fever  calls 
km  coU  wdteVi  sa  do  they  for  the  pleasure  of  their  fledb. 
They  must  have  Hy  they  cannot  forbear  it,  their  flesh  will 
have  no  nay.  ''  If  the  blackmore  can  change  his  skin,  or 
the  leo^pard  his  spots,  then  may  they  that  are  accustomed  to 
dtoievil,  lieai n  to  do  well  ^."  We  see  in  public  cases,  what  a 
poiwer  GUs4on>hatfa^  Hssenbe  but  used  to  any  thingin  God's 
wonAip,  that  is  unmeet  or  contrary  to  the  word  of  Qod,  therf 
wiH  nol  hearken  to  tike  Scripture,  but  ccy  out„ '  Custom, 
cmUMBt/  against  that  plain  word  that  must  judge  tbem,  alid 
should  direct  them ;.  as  if  the  custom  of  their  forefathers 
werd  of  more  authority  thaa  the  word  of  Qod.  No  wonder 
then  if  a  custom  of  swearing,  or  drunkenness.  Or  worldliness, 
ar  wickedness^  or  eontempt  of  &  religious,  godly  life,  dk)  pre- 
vail with  thousancis  to  havden  them  ta  perdition ;  and  this 
be  a  grievous  hindrance  to  their  conversion. 

Direct.  8.  You  that  9xe  yet  young,  take  heed  of  a  custom 
im  sitti,  and^  you:  that  are  hardened  in  it  already,  in  the  fear 
tf  Qod  make' a  stand  and  go  no  further^  It  is  sad  that  you 
have  gone  so  far.  But  if  you  wilfidly  go  on  but  one  day 
More,  yo0  know  not  but  God  m^y  leave  you  to  yourselves; 
and  if  you  wilfully  add  but  one  sin  more  to  the  heap,  it  mray 
•eaL  you  to  perdition,  it  may  break  your  backs,  and  sink  you 
mko  hell.  O  what  a  folly  is  it  then  for  mien  to  delay  their 
PSpentance  to  the  last,  when  dustom  in  sinking  dothmakA  ' 

'  Eph,  If.  19,  fO.  .  «  Jet.  x\Yi.  tS. 


288  TRBATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

the  work  of  their  conversion  to  be  more  difficult.  Remem- 
hev,  I  beseech  you»  that  your  custom  is  the  aggravation  of 
your  sin,  and  not  any  just  excuse.  What !  if  you  had  taken 
a  custom  of  spitting  in  the  face  of  your  own  father  or  dear- 
est friend^  or  any  way  abusing  him,  would  you  think  it  good 
excuse  for  you  to  continue  it,  because  you  are  accustomed 
to  it?  Why,  the  oftenefyou  have  sinned,  the  oftener  you 
have  wronged  Ood;  and  the  oftener  you  have  wronged  him, 
the  more  should  you  now  bewail  it,  and  not  therefore  go  on 
to  wrong  him  more.  If  you  had  oftentimes  hurt  yourselves 
by  falls,  or  cut  your  fingers  by  negligence  or  carelessness, 
will  you  do  so  still  to  keep  a  custom  ?  What  greater  mad- 
ness can  there  be  than  to  plead  custom  for  sinning  against 
the  living  Ood,  and  hastening  your  own  souls  to  everlasting 
perdition  ?  You  shall  have  custom  for  suffering  then,  as 
you  have  for  sinning  now,  and  see  whether  you  will  there- 
fore love  your  suffering.  If  you  will  love  sin,  because  yoo 
are  accustomed  to  it,  you  shall  try  whether  you  can  love 
hell,  because  you  are  accustomed  to  it. 

Hindrance  9.  Another  hindrance  of  conversion,  is, 
Foolish  self-love,  that  makes  men  unwilling  to  know  the 
worst  of  themselves,  and  so  keepeth  them  from  believing 
their  sinfulness  and  misery ;  and  causeth  them  to  presume 
and  keep  up  false  deceiving  hopes,  that  they  may  be  saved 
whether  they  are  converted  or  not ;  or  that  they  are  convert- 
ed,  when  indeed  they  are  not.  They  think  it  is  every  one's 
duty  to  hope  well  of  themselves,  and  therefore  they  will  de 
so ;  and  so  while  they  hope  they  are  converted  already,  or 
may  be  saved  without  conversion,  no  wonder  if  they  look 
not  seriously  after  it.  Like  many  a  sick  man  that  I  have 
known  in  the  beginning  of  a  consumption,  or  some  grievous 
disease,  they  hope  there  is  no  danger  in  it;  or  they  hope  it  | 
will  go  away  of  itself,  and  it  is  but  some  cold ;  or  fiiey  hope 
that  such  or  such  an  easy  medicine  may  cure  it,  till  they  are^ 
past  hope,  and  then  they  must  give  up  these  hopes,  and 
their  lives  together,  whether  they  will  or  no. ,  Just  so  do 
poor  wretches  by  their  souls.  They  know  that  all  is  not 
well  with  them,  but  they  hope  Ood  is  so  merciful,  that  he 
will  not  damn  them,  or  they  hope  to  be  converted  sometime 
hereafter,  or  they  hope  that  less  ado  may  serve  turn,  and 
that  their  good  wishes  and  i^t^^et^tna^]  ^%n^>X\^\\  ^ouls^and 


TRBATI8E   OF   CONVERSION.  280 

that  in  these  hopes  they  hold  on,  till  they  find  themselTes  to 
be  past  remedy,  and  their  hopes  and  they  be  dead  together; 
I  speak  not  this  without  the  Scripture;  Prov.  xi.  17.  "When 
a  wicked  man  dieth,  his  expectation  shall  perish,  and  the 
hope  of  the  unjust  man  perisheth/'    Job  xxvii.  8, 9.  "  What 
is  the  hope  of  the  hypocrite,  though  he  have  gained,  when 
God  taketh  away  his  soul  ?  Will  God  hear  his  cry  when  trou- 
ble cometh  upon  him?"    Job  xi.  20.  "  And  the  eyes  of  the 
wicked  shall  fail,  and  they  shall  not  escape ;  and  their  hope 
shall  be  as  the  giving  up  of  the  ghost."    There  is  scarce  a 
greater  hindrance  of  conyersion,  than  these  false,  deceiving 
hopes  of  sinners ;  that  think  they  are  converted  When  they 
are  not ;  or  hope  to  be  saved,  when  they  have  no  ground 
for  their  hopes.    Were  it  not  for  this,  men  would  look  about 
diem  and  return. 

Direct.  9.  I  have  formerly  spoke  and  wrote  to  yoM  of 
tlus  point,  and  I  have  told  you  that  it  is  none  of  my  desire 
diat  any  man  should  despair.  But  despair  you  must  of  ever 
beii^  saved  without  conversion,  or  finding  heaven  in  the 
way  to  hell.  Till  that  kind  of  despair  possess  your  hearts, 
wis  cannot  expect  a  saving  change.  For  men  will  not  let  go 
all  their  pleasure,  and  cast  themselves  upon  these  difficulties, 
whjch  flesh  and  blood  apprehendeth  to  be  in  the  way  of  God, . 
as -long  as  they  hope  to  do  well  enough  without  it.  No 
wonder  if  men  be  unholy,  that  hope  to  be  saved,  whether 
tiiey  be  holy  or  not.  It  is  hope  that  keepeth  your  hearts 
from  breaking,  which  must  be  broken  for  your  former  sins. 
It  is  hope  of  doing  well  enough  in  your  present  case,  that 
keeps  you  from  seeking  out  for  a  better :  if  you  knew  that 
you  must  be  converted  or  condemned,  and  had  no  hopes  of 
being  saved,  unless  you  were  bom  again,  then  you  would 
look  about  you,  and  run  to  God  by  prayer  for  his  grace,  and 
nm  to  the  word  by  reading  for  instruction,  and  run  to  the 
minister  with  inquiry  for  direction,  and  be  glad  of  that  com- 
pany which  would  help  you  to  heaven.  I  tell  you,  it  is  these 
carnal  hopes  that  deceive  the  world,  and  hinder  them  from 
leeking  Christ  and  life.  The  thing,  therefore,  that  I  request 
of  you  for  the  sake  ot  your  own  souls,  is  but  this.  That  you 
would  but  try  your  hopes  by  the  word  of  God,  and  prove 
them  sound  before  you  trust  them ;  and  content  not  ^oTn- 
idres  to  say,  I  hope  I  shall  be  saved,  but  ptove  «ixA  trj « 

VOL,  VJJ,  Xj 


280  TBBATISB  OF   CONVBiyiON, 

whether  yon  are  such  as  Grod  hath  promised  salvation  to, 
or  not :  for  there  are  hopes  that  will  never  deceive  men; 
that  is,  those  that  are  well  grounded  on  the  word  of  God : 
and  there  are  hopes,  as  you  have  heard,  that  will  die  with 
men,  and  undo  them ;  that  is,  those  that  had  no  ground  but 
their  own  self-love ;  when  men  hope  they  shall  be  savedv  be- 
cause they  would  have  it  so,  and  hope  to  come  to  heaven* 
when  they  will  not  go  the  way  to  heaven.    Is  it  not  one  of 
the  dreadfullest  sights  in  the  world,  to  see  a  man  ready  to 
leave  this  world,  and  have  no  hopes  but  what  will  die  when 
he  dieth  ?    O,  if  you  did  but  know  what  a  terrible  thing  it 
will  be  for  a  man  in  his  lifetime  to  hope  for  salvation,  and 
as  soon  as  he  is  dead  to  find  himself  in  damnation,  and  all 
his  hopes  to  vo^nish  like  a  dream,  you  would  sure  be  per* 
suaded  to  try  your  hopes.    Prove  once  by  the  marks  of 
grace  in  your  souls,  diat  thou  art  one  of  those  that  Oodhath 
promised  salvation  to ;  that  is,  one  of  the  regenerate,  the 
heavenly,  and  the  holy,  and  then  hope  for  salvation  and 
spare  not,  and  the  Lord  confirm  and  maintain  thy  hopesi 
For  these  hopes  are  grounded  on  the  word  of  Qod,  wUcb 
never  yet  deceived  any.    But  if  you  hope  well,  and  know 
not  why,  and  you  have  nothing  to  shew  for  your  hopes  of 
heaven,  but  what  an  ungodly  man  can  shew,  or  the  most  of 
the  world  may  shew  that  shall  perish,  and  cannot  prove  that 
you  are  new  creatures,  and  holy,  and  heavenly,  these  hopes 
do  but  hinder  your  conversion  and  salvation. 

Hindrance  10.  The  next  hindrance  of  conversion,  is. 
Those  counterfeit  graces,  or  half-conversion,  which  are  like 
to  true  graces,  but  are  not  them,  and  so  do  not  bring  over 
the  soul  to  Ood,  but  strengthen  the  false  hopes,  which  we 
mentioned  before.  There  is  somewhat  in  the  heart  of  an 
unconverted  man,  which  is  like  in  his  eyes  to  true  conver- 
sion. Some  fears  and  accusation  of  conscience  he  may  have, 
and  some  change  thereupon :  he  may  be  convinced  of  his 
sin  and  misery,  and  see  die  necessity  of  another  course,  and 
hereupon  may  change  his  company,  and  betake  himself  to 
many  duties,  and  break  ofi'many  of  his  former  sins,  and  seem 
to  himself  to  be  truly  converted,  and  glory  in  this  as  long 
as  he  liveth,  and  think  verily  that  he  is  indeed  a  converted 
man.  He  may  know  the  very  time,  the  book,  the  sermon, 
Jtbe  words  that  were  tVve  xneaxi^  o^  dLO\\v^^\%N«^'^^^^XLkia 


TKEATIBC   OF   C0NVBR8I0N.  291 

soul,  and  therefore  think  that  it  is  truly  done.  He  may  re- 
member 80  great  change  that  was  made  on  him,  that  he  may 
confidently  conclude  that  it  was  a  saving  change,  and  yet  it 
may  be  but  common  preparation,  or  mere  terrors  or  convic- 
tions, or  some  common  works,  which  many  that  perish,  par- 
take of.  He  may  have  hereupon  somewhat  that  in  his  eye 
is  like  to  evety  grace  of  the  Spirit,  and  therefore  think  that 
these  are  they  indeed ;  and  this  is  a  fearful,  deceiving  state, 
and  mightily  quieteth  men  in  a  miserable  condition ;  when 
these  common  gifts  should  be  otherwise  used. 

Direct.  10.  Take  heed,  therefore,  of  trusting  to  counterfeit 
graces,  or  superficial  works  that  do  not  effectually  convert 
the  soul.  Labour  to  discern  by  the  light  of  the  word  of 
Ood,  whether  the  work  be  savingly  done  or  not ;  how  you 
may  diseem  it,  I  have  told  you  before.  If  Qod  be  set  up 
highest  in  your  souls,  and  brought  nearest  to  your  hearts/ 
and  your  hopes  are  set  upon  the  life  to  come,  and  all  things 
in  this  world  seem  vain  to  you  in  comparison  of  it ;  if  sin 
be  bitter  to  you,  and  Christ,  and  grace,  and  holiness  be 
sweet,  ihen  you  may  conclude  that  it  is  a  saving  work,  but 
otherwise  not.    And  therefore  rest  not  in  common  works. 

Hindremce  11.  Another  hindrance,  is.  When  men  live 
among  strong  temptations,  and  occasions  of  sin ;  as  when 
they  depend  upon  some  great  men,  or  parents,  or  other 
friends  that  are  enemies  to  godliness,  and  would  undo  them 
if  they  should  follow  it;  or  when  they  are  so  engaged  in  a 
course  of  sin,  that  they  cannot  break  it  off  without  their 
worldly  undoing  or  suffering ;  when  their  credit  or  their 
gain  depends  upon  it.  As  the  oppressor  liveth  by  oppres- 
sion, and  the  ale-seller  liveth  by  the  sins  of  drunkards,  or 
tippling,  idle  companions,  and  because  they  think  this  gain  is 
sweet,  therefore  they  will  not  leave  the  sin.  As  Acts  xix. 
24,  25.  because  Demetrius  and  the  rest  of  the  craftsmen  had 
their  wealth  and  living  by  making  shrines  for  the  idol  Diana, 
therefore  they  stirred  up  the  people  against  the  Gospel  and 
the  preachers  of  it,  that  would  take  down  the  idol  that 
caused  their  commodity.  In  like  manner,  when  mei^  that 
are  addicted  to  drunkenness  will  live  among  such  company, 
or  temptations,  as  will  draw  them  to  it :  when  lustful  per- 
sons will  live  Among  those  that  do  provoke  ot  tem^l  ^kcrssk  % 
when  ignorant,  unresolved  persons  live  ataonig  \^Qift  ^%X 


293  TRBATI8E   OF   CONVBRSION.  - 

speak  ill  of  godliness,  it  is  a  hard  thing  to  be  conTerted  un- 
der these  temptations ;  especially  if  men  wilfully  cast  them- 
selves upon  them. 

Direct.  1 L  Fly  therefore  the  occasions  and  appearances 
of  evil.  If  you  would  not  be  drowned,  what  do  you  so  near 
the  water-side  ?  If  you  would  not  be  wounded,  why  do  you 
thrust  yourselves  among  your  enemies  ?  If  you  would  es- 
cape the  hook,  meddle  not  with  the  bait :  walk  not  among 
the  lime-twigs  if  you  would  not  be  entangled.  You  may  fly 
from  temptation,  and  yet  resist  the  devil,  and  make  him  fly. 
Be  not  too  confident  of  your  own  strength ;  consider  whe- 
ther it  be  safe  to  die  in  your  sin  and  ungodliness  ?  If  not, 
why  should  you  live  in  it?  And  if  you  may  not  live  in  it, 
why  should  you  commit  it  ?  If  you  cannot  digest  it  when  it 
is  down,  but  it  must  up  again  by  repentance,  or  you  perish, 
why  then  should  you  let  it  down  ?  If  you  may  not  let  it  down, 
what  reason  have  you  to  be  tasting  it  ?  And  if  yoii  may  not 
take  it,  why  should  you  once  look  upon  it,  to  entice  your 
taste?  And  if  you  may  not  look  on,  why  should  you 
think  on  it,  and  make  your  own  fancy  to  be  your  tempter. 
Present  and  strong  temptations  have  shaken  those  that 
seemed  to  be  cedars ;  therefore  take  heed  of  them ;  for  they 
may  much  more  hinder  the  conversion  of  the  impenitent,  and 
such  difficulties  may  easily  block  up  the  way  of  life  to  you. 

Hindrance  12.  Another  common  hindrance  of  conversion, 
is.  The  scandalous  lives  of  the  professors  of  religion ;  when 
those  that  seem  godly,  or  indeed  are  so,  shall  fall  into  divi- 
sion among  themselves,  and  withdraw  from  each  other,  and 
censure  one  another,  and  cry  out  against  one  another  as  de- 
ceived ;  when  the  common  people  see  so  many  religions,  as 
they  think,  and  so  many  several  minds  and  ways,  they 
think  it  is  as  good  to  be  of  none,  as  to  venture  among  so 
many,  where  they  are  not  sure  to  hit  on  the  right ;  and  it 
maketh  them  question  all,  when  they  see  so  many  that  they 
know  not  which  to  own.  When  they  see  men  change  their 
opinions,  which  awhile  ago  they  seemed  so  zealous  for,  this 
makes  them  think  that  the  rest  may  be  as  uncertain  as  these. 
And  thus  we  have  seen  by  sad  experience  in  these  times, 
that  many  have  been  kept  off  from  the  approving,  and  prac- 
^ce  of  a  godly  life,  because  oC  lli^  unha^^y  differences  that 
4r^  among  us.     And,  aVaa\  ^Yveiti  V^verj  ^^^  QTi^^%x.^itft«cfiK& 


TR£ATISB   OF   CONVKR8ION.  203 

religious  to  be  worldly,  and  another  to  fall  into  this  or  that 
sin,  this  makes  them  think  that  religion  is  but  hypocrisy, 
and  themselves  are  already  in  as  good  a  condition  as  the 
godly  are. 

Direci.  12.  I  will  not  excuse  the  sins  of  any.  Offence 
must  come,  but  woe  to  him  by  whom  it  comes.  If  they  be 
godly,  their  profession  doth  aggravate  it,  and  therefore  I  do 
not  intend  to  extenuate  it«  But  yet,  as  I  must  needs  say, 
that  the  malice  of  the  ungodly  doth  frequently  make  even 
holiness  to  be  a  crime,  and  virtue  itself  to  be  the  greatest 
vice,  and  those  to  be  faults  that  are  really  none,  and  those 
to  be  common  that  are  seldom,  and  but  the  case  of  very  few ; 
and  those  to  be  great  that  are  not  so.  So  I  must  needs  tell 
you^  that  there  is  no  sufficient  reason  in  the  faults,  and  divi- 
sions of  those  that  are  religious  to  dissuade  any  from  reli- 
gion, or  excuse  them  in  their  sin,  or  sinful  neglect  of  their 
own  salvation.    For  consider  these  things  following. 

(1.)  It  is  not  men's  lives  that  are  any  disgrace  to  the  word 
of  God,  any  more  than  it  is  a  dishonour  to  the  sun  that  some 
mea  are  blind,  or  others  wilfully  abuse  his  light.  Will  you 
fall  a  railing  at  the  sun,  because  a  thief  may  ste&l  by  the 
light  of  it,  or  a  murderer  may  kill  men  by  the  light  of  it  ? 
or  some  men  may  miss  their  way?  This  is  not  long  of  it, 
but  of  themselves.  (2.)  Yea,  consider  that  it  is  for  want  of 
being  more  religious  that  men  are  so  bad,  and  not  because 
they  are  religious.  Can  you  prove  that  ever  religion  did 
teach  men  to  be  bad  ?  Doth  the  word  of  Ood  teach  men  to 
be  worldly,  to  be  proud,  to  divide  the  church,  and  abuse  one 
another  ?  You  know.it  doth  not :  nay,  you  know  that  it  for- 
biddeth  and  condemneth  all  this ;  and  that  no  one  in  the 
world  hath  said  and  done  so  much  against  these  sins  as  God 
hath  done.  And  no  religion  is  so  much  against  them  as 
the  Christian  religion.  And  is  it  not  an  abuse  beyond  all 
modesty  then,'  to  think  ill  of  the  word  of  God,  or  of  his 
way,  because  men  offend  against  it,  and  forsake  it?  To 
accuse  the  law,  because  men  break  it  ?  To  wrong  God  be- 
cause others  have  wronged  him  ?  (3.)  Consider,  that  the  sins 
of  others  will  be  no  excuse  to  you.  Their  fall  should  be 
your  warnings,  and  not  your  hardening.  Will  God  pardon  - 
or  save  without  repentance  and  faith,  because  ^qtcl^  V!K!^\. 
seemed  religious  have  miscarried  ?   .  If  ihey  axe  mcVed  ^\i&^ 


304  TRKATISfi   OF   CONVERSION. 

they  seem  religious,  tbey  and  you,  if  you  so  continue,  shall 
be  damned  together.  But  if  they  rise  by  repentance,  and 
hate  and  forsake  the  sins  which  they  did  fall  into,  and  yoa 
stumble  i^pon  them,  and  will  not  rise  with  them,  but  quar- 
rel with  religion,  because  of  their  falls,  they  jshall  be  par- 
doned, and  you  shall  perish.  I  tell  thee,  man,  if  all  the  world 
should  fall  from  God,  he  will  not  therefore  change  his  law, 
nor  admit  one  unconverted  sinner  into  heaven.  Do  you 
think  to  be  saved  without  holiness,  because  some  men  coun"* 
terfeit  holiness  that  have  it  not?  Methinks  Uiis  should 
cast  you  into  greater  terrors,  and  make  you  think  with  your- 
selves how  much  you  have  yet  to  do,  that  must  go  further, 
and  be  better  than  any  hypocrite  was,  before  you  can  have 
any  durable  hopes  of  salvation.  If  you  will  luatve  any  part 
in  God,  you  must  stick  to  him,  though  all  men  else  diould 
forsake  him,  and  not  forsake  him,  because  you  think  that 
others  do  so  that  seemed  to  stick  to  him.  (4.)  Consider  also, 
that  as  to  the  divisions  that  offend  you,  it  is  not  every  dif- 
ference in  judgment  or  practice  that  makes  a  new  reli^on. 
While  we  are  here  we  shall  know  but  in  part,  and  therefore 
shall  differ  in  part,  but  as  long  as  we  all  agree  in  tbe  funda- 
mentals, and  live  to  God,  we  are  of  one  religion,  for  all  our 
differences.  (5.)  And  can  you  think  that  it  will  excuse  yoa 
to  be  of  no  religion,  because  that  other  men  are  of  a  wrong 
religion  ?  Will  you  sit  still  and  let  heaven  go,  because  some 
men  have  missed  the  way  to  it?  Do  you  think  that  this  is 
a  reasonable  conclusion  ?  Surely  tliey  that  would  fain  know 
the  way  if  they  could,  and  are  diligent  to  seek  it,  are  likelier 
to  be  accepted,  though  they  fall  into  many  errors,  than  those 
that  mind  it  not,  but  prefer  the  things  of  the  world  before 
it.  (6.)  The  more  bye  ways  there  be,  the  more  need  have 
you  to  look  about  you,  .and  see  that  you  miss  not  the  way 
yourselves.  Salvation  is  not  a  matter  that  we  can  spare, 
and  therefore  the  difficulty  must  make  us  more  diligent,  and 
not  more  negligent.  7.  Among  all  the  religions  and  opi- 
nions in  the  world,  God  hath  not  left  you  at  a  loss,  he  hath 
given  you  his  word  to  tell  you  which  is  the  right,  and  many 
means  to  understand  it.  So  that  if  proud  and  careless  men 
will  err,  it  foUoweth  not  that  therefore  the  humble  and  dili- 
gent may  not  be  certain,  which  way  is  die  right.  Go  you 
to  itbe  Scripture  with  an  \ium\Ac^  t^N^x^w:A>  ^*ii!&^%  V>  kuQW 


TR&ATIS£   OF   CONVERSION.  ^9S 

the  will  of  Qod,  that  you  may  do  it,  and  take  the  helps  that 
you  may  have  from  ministers  and  private  Christians,  and 
shew  not  by  your  neglect,  that  you  despise  the  word  of  God^ 
and  your  salvation,  and  then  you  shall  have  no  cause  to 
complain  that  you  cannot  find  the  right  religion,  and  not 
hit  Uie  way  to  heaven,  because  there  are  so  many  opinions. 
(8.)  I  pray  you  consider  of  that  which  I  have  often  answered 
you  to  this  objection.  Will  you  but  faithfully  practise  that 
which  aU,  or  almost  all  these  different  parties  are  agreed  in? 
If  not,  then  make  not  their  differences  any  more  a  pretence 
for  your  ungodliness.  If  you  will,  then  consider,  whether 
they  be  not  all  agreed  of  the  necessity  of  conversion  and  a 
holy  life.  Will  they  n6t  all  acknowledge  that  there  is  no 
salvation  without  sanctification  and  newness  of  life  ?  feet ' 
their  i^eement  then  move  you,  and  do  not  for  shame  neg- 
lect so  great  and  necessary  a  thing,  which  is  owned  by  them 
all,  who  differ  much  in  other  things. 

Hindrance  13.  The  next  hindrance  of  conversion,  is. 
The  ill  education  of  children :  when  they  are  trained  up  in 
ignorance,  or  kept  unacquainted  with  the  truths  of  Qod  till 
they  are  grown  hardened  in  their  evil  way  ;  especially  when 
they  are  taught  from  their  childhood  to  think  hardly  of  god- 
liness, and  speak  reproachfully  of  it,  and  hear  nothing  of 
the  godly,  but  by  slander  or  contempt.  That  which  people 
receive  in  their  youth,  doth  usually  possess  them  all  their 
days:  they  receive  it  with  more  advantage,  when  they  are 
most  teachable  and  tractable :  and  when  they  receive  it 
from  parents,  and  those  that  have  the  greatest  interest  in 
their  affections,  and  the  most  absolute  rule  over  them.  And 
therefore  we  see  that  most  of  the  world  are  such  as  they 
were  taught  in  their  childhood  to  be :  and  it  is  hard  to 
change  them  from  the  way  that  they  were  brought  up  in. 

Dir^t.  13.  O,  you  that  have  children,  remember  they 
are  Christ's.  (1.)  If  you  are  Christians,  both  you  and 
youra  are  devoted  to  Ood :  will  you  be  so  forV^ard  to  devote 
them  to  Ood  in  baptism,  and  will  you  rob  him  afterwards  6f 
his  own ;  and  break  these  covenants,  and,  contrary  to  your  own 
promises,  will  you  hinder  them  from  the  knowledge  and  fear 
of  God?  O  what  desperate  hypocrisy  and  wickedness  is 
this  ?  Will  you  come  here  in  the  face  of  the  cotk^%^>iAOtL» 
aad  consecrate  and  offer  your  children  to  GYitiat,  tciA^V^xiL 


286  TRBATI8B  OF  CONYERSIOll. 

you  kare  dona,  will  you  keep  them  from  the  way  of  Christ, 
and  make  them  believe  that  godliness  is  more  ado  than 
needs,  and  that  holiness  is  but  foolish  preciseness  ?  Will 
you  here  undertake  to  bring  them  up  in  the  nurture  and 
admonition  of  the  Lord,  and  when  you  have  done,  never 
once  instruct  them  in  his  fear,  nor  persuade  them  to  a  holy 
life,  nor  restrain  them  from  sin,  but  rather  teach  them  to 
rail,  and  curse,  and  swear,  and  be  carnal  ?  O  cruel  wretches 
that  dare  thus  murder  your  children's  souls !  To  murder 
the  body  is  an  heinous  sin,  yea,  though  it  were  the  body  of 
an  enemy;  but  to  murder  the  soul,  yea,  and  the  soul  of  a 
child,  and  so  to  be  guilty  of  their  eternal  damnation ;  what 
greater  sin  can  you  commit?  O  what  a  horror  it  will  be  to 
you  to  see  your  own  children  in  eternal  flames  by  your  pro- 
curement ;  and  to  hear  them  there  cry  out  against  you,  and 
say,  you  hardened  them  in  evil,  you  discouraged  them  from 
good.  You  gave  them  ill  examples,  you  used  to  rail,  curse 
and  swear  before  them :  you  took  no  pains  to  convince  them 
of  their  natural  sin  and  misery ;  and  to  get  them  to  Christ 
that  they  might  be  healed  by  him.  O  pity  your  poor  chil- 
dren, and  do  not  hinder  them  from  that  glory  that  is  offered 
them :  if  the  devil  be  against  their  salvation,  be  not  you  so 
too.  It  is  more  excusable  in  the  devil  himself  to  seek  to 
destroy  the  souls  of  your  children,  than  it  is  in  their  own 
parents  to  do  it :  for  nature  and  Qhristianity  doth  bind  them 
to  do  otherwise.  If  you  settle  them  in  an  ignorant,  carnal 
course,  they  will  remember  it  as  long  as  they  live  ;  and  if 
you  possess  them  with  hard  thoughts  of  the  holy  ways  of 
Ood,  they  will  make  this  an  argument  against  us,  whenever 
we  would  seek  to  reform  and  convert  them.  Do  we  not 
hear  it  from  them  daily?  Our  fathers,  say  they,  taught  us 
otherwise,  and  we  hope  they  are  saved,  and  therefore  we 
will  venture  to  do  as  they  did  :  so  that  it  is  the  false  con- 
ceits that  you  put  into  their  minds  in  childhood,  which  mi- 
nisters have  to  encounter  with  all  their  days  after.  The  de- 
vil hath  instruments  etnough  to  seek  your  children's  dampa- 
tion  besides  you  :  be  not  you  his  instruments  as  ever  you 
would  not  lie  with  them  in  everlasting  misery  ;  take  some 
more  pity  on  yourselves  and  them.  You  could  not  find  in 
your  hearts  to  dash  your  cbvldreu  ougtaiinHt  the  stones,  or  cut 
tfieir  throats,  and  if  you  a\ko\]\d,  iSi^  ^wVdi  ^ws\.^  Tvxk%  ^\ 


TR£ATira  OF   CONVERSION.  297 

your  wickedness,  and  the  law  of  the  land  would  deservedly 
pat  you  toa  painful  death ;  and  will  you  do  them  a  greater 
mischief?  Will  you  blind  them,  and  keep  them  off  from 
Christ  and  godliness  ?  And  will  you  embolden  them  in  the 
way  of  sin,  and  help  them  to  damnation?  Ood  forbid.  But 
alas !  they  that  have  no  more  pity  on  their  own  souls,  but 
to  use  them  thus,  what  wonder  if  they  have  no  more  pity  of 
others, 

(2.)  The  next  part  of  my  Direction,  therefore,  is  to  you 
that  have  been  brought  up  in  ignorance  and  ungodliness 
from  your  youth.  O  look  about  you  while  you  have  time 
and  means.  If  your,  parents  have  been  false  to  you,  be  not 
felse  to  God  and  your  souls.  If  your  parents  have  betrayed 
your  souls,  do  not  you  betray  your  own.  They  kept  you  in 
ignorance  because  they  were  ignorant  themselves ;  they 
bred  you  up  in  worldliness  and .  ungodliness,  because  they 
were  worldly  aud  ungodly  themselves  ;  they  spoke  agaiust 
holiness,  because  they  knew  it  not,  but  were  themselves  un- 
holy :  but  you  have  one  that  hath  more  interest  in  you  than 
your  parents,  that  calls  to  you  for  your  conversion.  Hear- 
ken to  him  if  all  the  world  should  gainsay  it :  do  not  care 
as  little  for  your  own  souls  as  your  parents  cared  for  them : 
do  not  take  on  you,  even  to  love  your  parents  so  well  as  to 
foUow  them  to  damnation  ;  their  company  will  not  .make 
hell  any  easier  to  you.  Should  not  the  love  of  your  heaven- 
ly. Father  do  more  to  draw  you  to  heaven,  than  the  love  of 
your,  parents  to  draw  you  to  hell  ?  0  hearken  then  to  God 
aad  to  his  word,  though  all  the  world  should  say  s^ainst  it. 

Hindrance  14.  Another  hindrance  of  conversion,  is.  Stri- 
ving against  the  Spirit  of  grace.  When  God  would  illumi- 
nate a  sinner,  and  he  is  unwilling  to  see,  when  God  would 
take  off  a  sinner  from  his  lusts  and  evil  ways«  and  he  is  loath 
to  be  taken  off;  God  sheweth  him  his  sin  to  humble  him, 
and  he  is  unwilling  to  be  humbled,  but  striveth  against  the 
Spirit,  and  runneth  into  worldly  businesses,  or  merry  com- 
pany, or  tumeth  his  thoughts  to  other  things.  As  Christ 
said  to  the  Jews,  "  How  oft  would  I  have  gathered  you,  but 
you  would  not  p  ;**  so  he  may  say  to  many  a  sinner.  How  oft 
did  I  shew  thee  a  better  way,  and  thou  wouldst  not  walk  in 
it;  how  oft  did  I  shew  thee  the  sinfulness  andmiaet^  o^\}gcj 

P  Matr.  xxiii.  37. 


298  TREATISE   OF   CON¥£BftIOM. 

estate^  and  thou  wouldst  not  come  off  from  it.  When  men 
fi^t  against  ChiiBt,  and  purposely  wink  because  they  hate 
the  light  that  would  reform  them,  and  when  they  atriYe 
against  the  Spirit  that  would  convert  them,  what  wonder  if 
they  be  unconverted ! 

Direct.  14.  If  ever  you  would  be  converted,  yidld  to  the 
Spirit  of  God  that  would  convert  you.  It  is  his  office  to 
sanctify  all  that  shall  be  saved  :  be  not  you  unwilling  to  be 
sanctified  by  him.  If  you  refuse  help  when  it  is  offered  you, 
you  may  justly  be  left  helpless  and  perish  for  want  of  that 
which  you  did  despise.  You  are  baptized  into  the  name  of 
the  Holy  Ohost,  by  which  you  have  professed  to  take  him 
for.your  Sanctifier,  and  are  you  now  unwilling  to  be  sancti- 
fied by  him  ?  And  will  you  now  strive  against  him  when 
you  are  so  solemnly  engaged  to  him?  You  cannot  be  saved 
unless  you  be  sanctified,  and  you  cannot  be  sanctified  unless 
it  be  done  by  the  Holy  Ohost,  whom  you  now  resist.  0 
how  easily  and  prosperously  doth  the  work  gosm,  when  the 
Spirit  of  God  assisteth,  and  how  impossible  is  it  to  be  done 
without  him !  They  that  would  have  a  prosperous  voyage 
will  take  wind  and  tide,  and  not  be  so  foolish  as  to  set 
against  them  when  they  stand  to  their  advantage  :  he  that 
would  have  health  will  not  abuse  the  physician,  and  drive 
him  away  from  him.  O  take  heed  how  you' use  the  Spirit 
of  God  if  ever  you  would  be  converted ! 

Hindrance  15.  Another  hindrance  of  conversion,  is,  Un- 
resolvedness  and  half-purposes ;  when  men  will  hang  wa- 
vering  between  God  and  the  world ;  and  though  the  light  be 
never  so  clear  to  convince  them,  yet  they  will  not  be  per- 
suaded to  resolve.  "  A  double-minded  man,"  saith  James, 
"  is  unstable  in  all  his  ways  *»."  O  how  many  shall  perish  for 
want  of  resolution !  They  have  been  convinced  that  they 
must  be  changed  or  else  they  arc  undone,  and  yet  they  would 
not  resolve:  they  have  long  been  inclining  to  a  better 
course,  and  had  some  thoughts  of  it,  but  the  world  hinder- 
eth,  or  friends  hinder,  or  the  flesh  hindereth,  and  they  will 
not  resolve ;  and  thus  they  hang  loose  from  God,  and  never 
unfeignedly  resign  up  themselves  to  him,  till  either  God  in 
judgment  leave  them  to  themselves,  or  death  and  hell  do 
find  them  unresolved. 

<i  James  i.  8. 


tr«;ati^e  of  conversion.  299 

Direct.  15.  If  you  would  be  converted  and  sayed,  do  not 
stand  waverings  but  resolve,  and  presently  turn  to  God.  •  If 
it  were  a  doubtful  business,  I  would  not  persuade  you  to  do 
it  rashly,  or  if  there  were  any  danger  to  your  souls  in  resolv- 
ing, then  I  would  say  no  more.     But  when  it  is  a  case  that 
should  be  beyond  all  dispute  with  men  of  reason,  why  should 
you  stand  staggering,  as  if  it  were  a  doubtful  case  ?    What 
a  horrible  shame  is  it  to  be  unresolved  whether  God  or  the 
world  should  have  your  hearts?    Were  it  not  a  disgrace  to 
that  man's  understanding  that  were  unresolved  whether 
gold  or  dung  were  better?  or  whether  a  bed  of  thorns,  or  a 
feather-bed  were  the  easier?  or  whether  the  sun  or  a  clod 
of  earth  were  the  more  light  and  glorious  ?    It  is  a  far  greater 
shame  for  a  man  to  be  unresolved,  whether  it  be  God  or  the 
world  that  must  make  him  happy,  and  that  should  have  his 
heart,  and  whether  ia  life  of  sin  or  holiness  be  the  better. 
What !  «have  you  read  Scripture,  and  heard  sermons  so  long, 
and  yet  are  you  unresolved  of  this  ?   Nay,  have  you  commoni 
reason,  and  do  you  believe  that  there  is  a  God,  and  a  world 
to  come,  and  yet  are  you  unresolved  whether  you  must  be 
godly  or  not  ?     I  say  to  you,  as  Elias  did  to  Israel,  "  How 
long  halt  ye  between  two  opinions  ?    If  God  be  God  follow 
Um,  if  Baal  be  God  follow  him  ^"    If  it  be  better  to  be 
damned  than  leave  your  sins,  then  keep  them,  and  the  curse 
of  God  with  them.     But  if  it  be  better  to  deny  your  flesh, 
than  to  suffer  everlastingly  the  wrath  of  God,  then  away 
with  your  iniquities,  and  meddle  with  them  no  more ;  if  it  be 
better  to  live  in  an  alehouse  awhile,  than  in  heaven  for  ever, 
then  drink  on  and  spare  not ;  but  if  it  be  not,  why  do  you  not 
consider  and  come  away.    If  God  and  godliness  be  not  bet- 
ter than  the  world  and  wickedness,  then  take  your  course ; 
but  if  they  be,  why  do  you  stand  wavering,  and  do  not  re- 
solve to  be  the  people  of  God  with  all  your  hearts  ?  O  what 
a  blind  and  miserable  creature  is  a  wicked  man,  that  such 
matters  as  these  should  seem  doubtful  to  him !  or  that  he 
should  yet  be  unresolved  of  them  !    What,  unresolved  whe- 
ther it  be  best  to  go  to  heaven,^  or  not !  and  whether  it  be 
best  to  be  damned,  or  not !     And  all  this  for  the  love  of  a 
stinking  utiprofitable  lust !     If  this  be  wisdom,  what  then  is 
foUy  ? 

''  1  Kiugs  xvjii.  21. 


300  TREATISE   OF   CONyERSlON. 

Hindrance   16.   Another  hindrance  of   conyersioni  is, 
Delay.    When  men  are  resolved  that  they  must  be  con- 
verted or  condemned,  and  purpose  to  let  go  sin,  and  to 
take  another  course,  yet  they  delay  and  put  off  the  time. 
They  would  yet  have  a  little  more  of  the  pleasure  of  their 
sin  before  they  part  with  it.     Yet  they  cannot  spare  it,  but 
shortly  they  will  do  it.    They  are  yet  young,  and  they  hope 
they  have  daylight,  and  time  enough  before  thenu    They 
are  yet  in  headth,  and  therefore  they  hope  there  is  no  such 
haste,  but  they  may  have  time  to  think  on  it.     Because 
God  will  receive  a  sinner  whensoever  he  retumeth,  they 
think  they  may  stay  a  little  longer.     And  thus  some  grow 
hardened  by  custom  in  their  sin,  and  others  are  cut  off  while 
they  are  purposing  to  return ;  and  many  thousand  souls  are 
lost  for  ever  that  once  were  purposed  to  have  turned  to  God, 
and  all  because  they  delayed  their  return ;  as  the  sluggard 
saith, '' Yet  a  little  sleep,  a  little  slumber';  "  so  saith  the 
sinner,  yet  I  may  sin  a  little  while,  till  they  have  siimed 
themselves  into  a  reprobate  sense,  or  provoked  God  to  leave 
them  to  themselves,  and  so  they  must  perish  everlastingly 
by  their  delay. 

Direct,  1 6.  O  consider,  therefore,  sinners,  that  conversion 
is  not  a  work  to  be  delayed.  Would  a  man  lie  under  the  wrath 
and  curse  of  God  one  day,  that  knew  what  it  is  ?     Methinks 
he  should  not.     Are  you  loath  to  come  out  of  the  bondage 
of  tbe  devil  ?    Why,  your  delay  doth  shew  that  your  heart 
is  false,  and  that  you  be  not  willing  truly  to  be  converted. 
He  that  is  loath  to  leave  his  sin  this  day  or  hour,  would  ne- 
ver leave  it,  if  he  knew  how  to  keep  it :  if  he  did  not  love  it, 
he  would  be  willing  to  be  rid  of  it  without  delay.     He  that 
loveth  God,  had  rather  return  and  be  reconciled  to  him,  and 
partake  of  the  joy  of  his  Spirit  to-day,  than  to-morrow.  •  Did 
you  but  know  what  God  is,  you  would  not  delay  your  con- 
version to  him.     Did  you  but  know  what  the  glory  is  that 
he  offereth  you,  you  would  not  delay  to  make  sure  of  it  any 
longer.     Did  you  but  see  the  nature  of  sin,  and  know  the 
miserable  effects  of  it,  O  how  hastily  would  you  endeavour 
to  be  rid  of  it !     If  you  had  so  many  serpents  or  toads  in  your 
bosoms,  you  would  not  say,  I  will  cast  them  out  to-morrow, 
but  how  quickly  would  you  shake  them  from  you  ?     If  you 


TREATI8E   OF   CONYERSION.  301 

bad  but  felt  the  sting  of  sin,  it  would  appear  another  matter 
to  you  than  now  it  doth.    It  is  one  kind  of  face  that  sin  hath 
in  an  alehouse,  or  in  the  height  of  your  filthy  lust,  or  in  the 
seeming  gain  of  your  covetous  practices ;  and  it  is  another 
kind  of  face  that  it  hath  when  God  will  reckon  for  it  with 
the  guilty  soul.    Shoruld  a  man  trifle  in  such  a  course,  where- 
in, if  he  die,  he  is  lost  for  ever?    Why,  poor,  wretched  sin- 
ner, how  long  wilt  thou  delay  ?    And  why  wilt  thou  delay  ? 
Wilt  thou  delay  till  death  shall  seize  upon  thee,  and  thou  drop 
into  hell  before  thou  art  aware  ?     Dost  thou  not  know  that 
sin  gets  advantage  by  thy  delay  ?    God  hath  not  promised 
thee  that  ever  his  Spirit  shall  be  offered  to  thee  more ;  if  thou 
refuse  his  assistance,  and  delay  thy  conversion  but  one  day 
longer^    And  woe  be  to  thee  if  he  depart  from  thee  * !  When 
people  will  have  none  of  God,  nor  will  hearken  to  his  voice, 
he  pften  giveth  them  up  to  their  own  heart's  lusts,  to  walk  in 
their  own  counsels".''    O  unworthy  wretch!  if  thou  hadst 
any  of  the  ingenuity  of  a  Christian  within  thy  breast,  thou 
wouldst  say,  '  I  have  abused  Christ  and  his  grace  so  long, 
that.  I  am  utterly  ashamed  of  it,  and  will  abuse  him  no  more ; 
I  have  too  long  slighted  Christ  already,  and  too  long  hear- 
kened to.  his  enemy's  voice.     If  thy  dead  heart  were  but 
well  awakened  to  consider  and  feel  thy  own  condition,  thou 
wouldst  be  quickly  affrighted  out  of  thy  delay,  and  run  as 
hastily  from  thy  state  of  sin,  as  thou  wouldst  out  of  a  house 
diat  were  all  on  fire  over  thy  head,  or  out  of  a  boat  that  were 
sinking  under  thee.    What,  hast  thou  not  yet  served  the 
devil  long  enough?    Hast  Uiou  not  yet  sufficiently  abused 
Christ,  not  oft  enough  rejected  the  grace  of  God  ?    Hast 
thou  not  yet  wallowed  long  enough  in  the  filth  of  sin  ?     But 
must  thou  needs  have  more  of  it?    Hast  thou  not  yet  done 
enough  to  the  destruction  of  thy  soul  ?    Nor  drunk  in  enough 
of  that  deadly  poison,  nor  stabbed  thyself  sufficiently  by 
thy  wickedness,  but  thou  must  needs  have  more  ?    Will  sin 
come  up  easier,  when  it  is  deeper  rooted  ?     And  canst  thou 
more  easily  be  converted,  when  thou  hast  driven  away  the 
Spirit  of  God  that  should  convert  thee  ?    Wilt  thou  travel 
out  of  thy  way  till.night,  before  thou  wilt  turn  back  again? 
And  wilt  thou  drive  the  nail  yet  faster  to  the  head,  which 
thou  knowest  must  be  drawn  out  again  ?    O  be  xvol  WA^viJ^'^ 

'  Hos.  MX.  19,    Jer.  fi.  8.  «  Psa\.  \xxw,  t\ ,  1%. 


302  TRBATISE   OF   CONTERSION. 

befooled  by  sin.  Wilt  thou  be  converted,  or  wilt  thou  not? 
If  not,  thou  art  a  lost  mam  If  thou  know  thou  must^  why 
not  to-day  rather  than  to-morrow  ?  What  reason  have  yon 
for  any  longer  delay?  Is  a  state  of  sin«  or  a  state  of  grace 
better?  If  sin  be  better,  keep  it,  and  make  the  best  of  it: 
but  if  grace,  and  holiness,  and  happiness  be  better,  why 
then  should  you  delay  ?  If  you  were  sick  you  would  not 
care  how  soon  you  were  well :  and  if  you  had  a  bone  bro- 
ken, you  care  not  how  soon  it  were  set ;  and  when  your  souk 
are  in  a  state  of  sin  and  misery,  are  you  aftaid  of  being  safe 
and  happy  too  soon  ?  Remember  another  day,  that  a  day, 
and  many  a  day  of  grace  thou  hadst ;  and  if  thou  lose  this 
day,  thou  mayst  thank  thyself,  if  thou  lose  thy  soul,  and  if 
thou  never  have  another  day  like  this.  '*  To-day,  whilst  it 
is  called  to-day,  therefore,  hear  his  voice,  and  harden  not 
your  hearts  *.'*  When  David  thought  of  his  ways,  he  madti 
haste  and  delayed  not  to  turn  to  God,  and  keep  his  precepts, 
Psal.  cxix.  60.  as  was  aforesaid. 

Hindrance  17.  Another  great  hindrance  of  convtersios, 
is.  When  good  beginnings  are  not  followed  on,  but  suffered 
to  die  and  come  to  nothing  before  they  bring  men  over  to 
God.  Commonly  preparing  works  of  grace  go  before  tho- 
rough sanctifying  works ;  and  men  have  many  convictions, 
and  half-reformations,  and  troubles  of  mind,  before  they 
come  to  close  with  Christ  upon  the  terms  that  he  is  offered. 
These  common  preparatory  works  are  the  way  to  more :  if 
.men  would  but  cherish  these,  and  follow  them  on,  and  im- 
prove the  light  and  motions  which  they  have,  they  know  not 
what  a  blessed  issue  they  might  see :  but  when  they  will 
forget  the  truth  that  once  did  move  them,  and  lose  the  pur- 
poses that  once  they  had,  and  turn  back  again  to  the  sins 
they  were  in  before ;  no  wonder  if  these  be  left  in  their  ini- 
quities. Is  not  this  the  cas^  of  you  that  hear  me  this  day? 
You  have  been  convinced  that  God  and  your  souls  must  be 
regarded,  whatsoever  else  be  neglected ;  and  did  you  not 
thereupon  begin  to  pray,  and  to  use  means,  ^nd  take  the 
helps  in  public  and  private  that  are  necessary  for  your  sal- 
vation? And  have  not  some  of  you  fallen  into  company 
that  have  taken  you  off  by  foolish  cavils  or  vain  objections, 
and  evil  examples,  and  enticing  you  to  sin?     And  have  not 

»  Heb.  ill.  7,  8. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  303 

oihers  of  you  grown  cold,  and  lost  yoor  feeling,  as  if  you 
were  n^t  Uie  same  men,  and  had  never  heard  or  felt  such 
things  ?  And  others  of  you  turned  to  this  presooit  world, 
and  choked  the  word  with  the  cares  of  this  life  ?  And  so 
the  hopeful  beginnings-  that  you  once  had,  are  turned  to  a 
rdapse  into  yovir  oid  condition. 

Directs  17.  If  there  be  any  such  sinners  that  hear  me  this 
day,  (as  I  fear  there  be  too  many,)  consider  whence  you  are 
fidlen,  and  be  zealous  and  amende.     Are  you  turned  with 
*'  the  dog  to  his  vomit,  and  with  the  sow  that  was  washed, 
to  her  wallowing  in  the  mire  *  V*    What !  Do  you  ''  look 
back  when  you  had  put  your  hand  to  the  plough  of  God  *?" 
Did  Christ  give  you  any  cause  to  repent  of  his  service,  or  to 
forsake  him  ?     Have  you  found  indeed  that  the  devil  is  the 
better  master,  and  that  the  way  of  sin  is  the  better  way,  and 
fte  wagea  of  sin  die  better  wages  ?    What !  did  the  thoughts 
of  everlasting  life  once  move  you,  and  will  they  not  move  you 
now  ?     Is  heaven  become  as  no  heaven  to  you,  and  God  as 
ho  God,  and  Christ  as  no  Christ,  and  the  promises  as  no  pro- 
mises ?    And  are  you  grown  abler  to  resist  the  terrors  of  the 
Lord  1     O  poor  souls,  that  you  did  but  know  the  misery  of 
apostates !    The  Lord  hath  professed,  that  "  if  any  draw 
back,  his  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure  in  him  *"."    And  they 
that  draw  back,  shall  find  tiiey  do  it  to  their  own  perdition ; 
when  they  should  have  ''believed  and  persevered  to  the 
saving  of  their  souls  ^.*'    There  are  none  of  all  the  damned 
more  miseYable  than  they  that  were  sometimes  fair  for  hea- 
yen,[and  did  once  begin  to  look  after  godliness ;  for  the  "  lat- 
ter end  of  these  men  is  worse  than  their  beginning  ^."  Alas ! 
how  sad  ¥rill  it  be  to  see  the  faces  of  such  among  the  wicked 
and  condemned  at  the  last,  and  to  think  that  once  we  saw 
the  faces  of  these  men  among  the  godly,  and  once  they 
seemed  to  set  themselves  for  heaven,  and  are  they  fallen  off 
to  this !     And  is  this  the  end  of  them  ?     In  the  name  of  God, 
sirs,  I  warn  and  charge  every  one  of  you  that  ever  had  a 
thought  of  returning  to  God,  and  giving  up  yourselves  to  a 
holy  life,  that  you  presently  bethink  you,  what  is  gone  with 
these  thoughts  and  purposes,  and  why  did  you  turn  from 
these  beginnings  ?    What  reason  had  you  for  it  ?    And  what 

y  Rfiv.  ui.  19.  «  2  Pet  ii.  22.  a  Luke  ix.  62, 

»>  Hbb.  ».  58.  «  Ver.  59.  «*  2  Pet.  ii,  20,  2i. 


304  TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION. 

cause  hath  Christ  giyen  you  ?  What !  will  the  world  now  be 
a  faster  friend  to  you  than  before  ?  And  will  you  n^w  coih  . 
tinue  with  it«  and  never  die  ?  Or  can'  you  better  be  without 
God  and  his  grace  than  before?  O  be  awakened  from  this 
desperate  folly,  and  once  again  renew  your  former  resolu- 
tions, and  consider  whether  you  are  not  nearer  eternity  than 
you  were ;  and  have  not  as  much  need  of  Christ  as  ever? 
And  sleep  not  on  till  hell  awake  you. 

Hindrance  18.  The  next  hindrance  of  conversion  to  be 
mentioned,  is,  A  misunderstanding  of  Scripture,  and  erro- 
neous thoughts  of  the  ways  of  God.  If  error  possess  the 
mind,  it  will  keep  out  grace  from  possessing  the  heart,  bo 
far  as  the  error  prevaileth.  I  shall  instance  in  some  few 
particulars. 

(1.)  Some  men  know  not  what  true  grace  or  conversion  is, 
and  therefore  think  they  have  it  when  they  have  none,  and 
do  not  set  themselves  to  look  after  it.  They  think  that  it  is 
but  to  forsake  some  gross  sins,  and  to  use  some  outward  ser- 
vice of  God,  and  do  no  one  any  wrong,  and  then  they  think 
they  have  true  conversion ;  because  they  have  turned  from 
many  sins  that  once  they  lived  in.  But  these  must  know, 
that  conversion  is  the  withdrawing  of  the  soul  from  the 
world,  and  from  carnal  self,  and  the  devoting  of  ourselves, 
and  all  that  we  have  to  God.  If  you  should  be  never  so 
zealous  in  forms,  and  take  up  never  so  strict  principles,  and 
stick  to  the  strictest  party ;  this  is  no  proof  of  true  conver- 
sion, if  your  souls  do  not  cleave  to  God,  as  your  portion,  and 
to  Christ  as  the  only  way  to  God. 

(2.)  Some  there  be  that  do  not  think  there  is  any  such 
thing  as  saving  grace,  or  true  conversion  in  the  world ;  be- 
cause they  have  none  themselves,  they  do  not  think  that  any 
one  el^e  hath.  When  they  hear  of  a  hope  and  heart  in 
heaven,  and  of  loving  God  above  all  creatures,  they  do  not 
think  that  any  one  doth  reach  to  it,  but  that  men  merely 
talk  of  such  things,  which  they  never  had  experience  of. 
But  these  men  must  know,  that  it  is  an  arrogant  madness  to 
contradict  the  scope  of  the  word  of  God,  and  the  common 
experience  of  the  best  men  in  the  world ;  and  all  because 
they  are  so  bad  themselves.  Doth  God  talk  so  much  of  sanc- 
tifying his  people,  and  putting  the  Spirit  of  Jesus  into  their 
hearts,  and  ruling  them,  and  ds^e'Oxu^K^xXJftftm^^sA^x^^^^ 


TREATISE   OP   CONVERSION.  305 

ing  the  world  to  them,  and ''  purifying  a  peculiar  people  to 
himself,  that  are  zealous  of  good  works  * ;  and  now  dare  they 
say  there  is  no  such  thing  ?  Whether  is  God  or  they  to  be 
believed?  What !  hath  Christ  died  to  procure  it/  and  is  it 
the  office  of  the  Holy  Ghost  to  work  it,  and  now  is  there  no 
such  thing  ?  Are  the  word,  and  ministers,  and  all  the  ordi- 
nances to  that  end,  and  now  is  there  no  such  thing?  God 
will  make  them  know  that  such  a  thing  was  offered  once  to 
them,  and  such  a  thing  as  grace  and  a  heavenly  life  were  ne- 
cessary to  their  salvation.  And  if  they  will  not  believe  the 
experience  of  the  saints,  nor  will  see  tiie  graces  of  God,  as 
they  shine  in  the  conversation  of  his  people,  they  shall  be 
forced  one  day  to  see,  and  be  ashamed. 

(3.)  Others  there  be  that  think  holiness  is  but  needless 
preciseness ;  and  that  to  meditate  on  God  and  heaven,  and 
make  it  our  main  business,  is  but  more  ado  than  needs ;  and 
that  this  is  but  to  be  godly  overmuch,  and  God  will  accept 
less ;  and  this  is  the  way  even  to  drive  men  beside  them- 
selves. 

Afisw.  Though  I  have  formerly  answered  this  objection, 
yet  because  it  here  again  falls  in  my  way,  I  shall  distinctly 
answer  it  in  these  particulars. 

Qtiest.  1.  Tell  me  truly,  do  you  think  that  God  or  you 
are  fitter  to  be  judges  of  what  is  necessary  to  the  salvation 
of  a  sinner?  Doth  God  command  it?  and  dare  you  say  it 
is  more  ado  than  needs  ?  Why,  what  is  this,  but  plainly  to 
say,  that  God  hath  set  us  upon  a  needless  work  ?  Yea,  what 
is  it  but  to  say,  you  are  wiser  than  he  ?  There  is  no  master 
so  foolish  and  unmerciful,  as  will  set  his  servant  to  pick 
straws,  and  labour  to  no  purpose :  and  will  you  impute  such 
unmerciful  folly  to  God  ?  Dare  you  say  he  makes  you  more 
ado  than  needs  ? 

Quest.  2.  And  then  I  ask.  Is  it  more  ado  than  Scripture 
doth  'require  ?  Doth  not  the  word  of  God  make  it  necessary, 
which  you  call  unnecessary  ?  Read  and  judge. — "  Lay  not 
up  for  yourselves  treasures  on  earth :  but  lay  up  for  your- 
selves treasures  in  heaven.  Seek  first  the  kingdom  of  God 
aud  his  righteousness  V*  "  The  kingdom  of  heaven  suffer- 
eth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it  by  force  «."  "  Strive  to 
enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  ;  for  many,  I  say  unto  you«  shall 

•  Tit  ii.  14.  '  Matt.  vi.  19,  20.  23.  <  'MlttXX.xi.  \*t» 

VOL,    VIJ.  X 


806  TRBATI&E   OF   CONVKKSION^ 

seek  to  enlMNT  in.  and  shall  not  be  able^."  ''  Lilwur  not  for 
tiie  food  which  perisheth,  but  for  that  whidi  endureth  to 
everlasting  lifo'/'  *'  See  then  that  ye  walk  circumspectly, 
redeeming  die  time  **."  **  What  manner  of  persons  ought 
ye  to  be  in  all  holy  conversation  and  godliness^  ?*'  And  an 
hundred  more  such  places  may  be  mentioned.  So  that  if  it 
be  an  error  to  require  so  much  ado  for  our  salvation^  it  is  God 
hims^  that  is  the  cause  of  it.  And  who  is  most  likely  to 
be  in  the  right  ?  The  Lord  that  made  you,  or  such  silly^  ig- 
norant worms  as  you  ?  You  scarce  know  good  from  bad ; 
and  will  you  take  on  you  to  be  wiser  than  Ood^  and  to  con- 
trol his  law  ? 

Quest.  3.  Do  you  think  indeed  in  your  consciences^  that 
a  man  can  do  too  much  for  heaven,  (as  long  as  he  doth  but 
what  God  bids  him,)  and  that  he  can  be  at  more  cost  and 
labour  for  it,  than  it  is  worth  ?  Is  that  man  worthy  or  meet 
to  see  the  face  of  God  in  glory,  that  thinks  it  not  worth  bis 
utmost  diligence  ?  Do  you  set  so  much  by  your  labour,  or 
do  you  set  so  light  by  God  and  glory,  as  to  think  the  ever- 
lasting enjoyment  of  it  to  be  unworthy  of  your  pains? 

Quest.  4.  Do  you  think  there  ever  was  a  man  that  got 
well  to  heaven,  that  repented  of  coming  thidier  at  so  dear  a 
rate  ;  or  that  was  there  of  your  mind,  that  this  godliness  is 
more  ado  than  needs  ?  If  we  could  but  speak  with  one  of 
the  glorified  saiiiits  that  see  the  face  of  God  and  put  the  case 
to  him,  which  is  the  wiser  man,  he  that  doth  all  that  he  can 
to  be  saved,  or  he  that  saith  what  needs  all  this  ado  ?  whidi 
side  do  you  think  he  would  be  on  ?  Cannot  you  easily,  con- 
jecture ? 

Qu^t.  6.  Is  Christ,  or  the  apostles,  or  any  of  the  servants 
of  God  of  your  mind?  Judge  by  their  conversations  wher 
ther  they  thought  it  more  ado  than  needs.  The  best  of  his 
saints  never  had  so  much  grace  but  they  longed  for  more ; 
they  never  were  so  holy,  but  they  longed  to  be  better;  and 
dc  vQu  think  that  you  are  wiser  than  all  they,  and  that  nei- 
tL  ;' prophets,  apostles,  nor  any  saints  of  God  did  know 
wi  >t  they  did  ? 

Quest.  6.  What  is  it  that  you  think  is  so  painful  a  life  as 
to  be  too  much  for  God  and  heaven  ?  Do  you  know  what 
you  talk  of?    Why,  it  is  the  only.joyful  life  on  earth.     Itis 

"«  Luke  xiii.  j(4.  *  John  vl.  if.  k  Eph.  t.  15.         »  «  Pet.  iii.  11. 


TKfBATISE   OF  CONVBKSIOK.  .907 

more  a  receiving  from  God,  than  a  giving  to  him.  It  is  an 
employment  that  is  suited  both  to  the  new  nstare  of  the 
saints,  and  to  their  necessity  and  good.  What  is  holiness 
but  a  living  in  the  love  of  God  and  joy  of  the  Holy  GHiost, 
and  hope  of  the  life  to  come,  and  a  daily  communion  with 
God  in  the  Spirit,  in  the  use  of  his  holy  ordinances?  To 
hear  of  his  love,  and  the  promise  of  his  glory,  and  the  par- 
don of  our  sins,  and  to  beg  of  him  what  we  want,  and  thank 
and  praise  him  for  what  we  have  received  ?  And  do  you 
think  this  is  so  tedious  a  life?  Is  it  a  toil  to  you  to  eat  and 
drink  of  the  best,  when  your  bodies  do  require  it?  Or  td 
rest  when  you  are  weary?  Or  to  love  your  dearest  friend, 
and  to  be  in  his  company?  If  not,  why  should  we  think  it 
a  toil  to  live  in  the  love  of  God,  and  in  holy  communion 
with  him  in  his  service  ? 

Quest,  7.  And  is  it  not  a  certain  mark  of  a  graceless 
heart  to  think  that  this  is  such  a  grievous  work  ?  Sure  that 
soul  is  void  of  the  love  of  God,  that  thinks  it  a  grievous 
tiling  to  love  him.  A  man  that  hates  his  wife,  and  loveth 
harlots,  will  say,  '  I  cannot  love  her,  nor  abide  to  dwell  with 
her ;'  but  if  he  loved  her  he  would  think  otherwise.  If  you 
did  not  hate  God  you  would  not  think  it  so  grievous  to  live 
in  the  love  of  him,  and  to  be  much  in  his  holy  worship. 

Quest.  8.  Do  you  desire  to  come  to  heaven,  or  not  ?  If 
not,  then  remember,  if  you  are  shut  out,  it  is  by  your  own 
consent.  If  you  would  come  thither,  then  do  you  not  know 
that  all  your  employment  there  must  be  such  as.  this,  and 
much  more  holy  and  perfect  than  this  ?  Will  you  account 
heaven  itself  grievous  ?  And  the  praises  of  God  there,  to 
be  more  ado  than  needs  ?  If  not,  how  dare  you  say  so  of  a 
hx  lower  degree  which  we  have  in  this  life  ?  If  you  are 
weary  of  this  little,  how  weary  would  you  be  of  heaven  ? 

Quest.  9.  I  pray  you  tell  me,  do  you  think  indeed  that 
any  man  on  earth  is  as  good  as  he  should  be  ?  Do  you  not 
know,  that  he  that  is  best  is  too  bad  ;  and  he  that  doth  i^^t 
comes  unspeakably  too  short  of  what  he  should  do  ?  Mid 
dare  you  say  then,  that  this  is  more  ado  than  needs  ?  \f4iy 
if  you  had  spoken  to  Peter  or  Paul,  or  the  holiest  man  that 
ever  lived,  he  would  have  rather  complained  that  he  could 
be  no  better,  and  cried  out,  '  O  that  I  were  more  holy,  and 
could  be  more  taken  up  in  the  love  of  God,  alas  !  I  fall  ex- 


30e  TREATISE   OF    CONVERSION. 

ceedrngly  short  of  what  is  my  duty/  And  shall  such  sin- 
ners as  we  Wfe,  yea,  some  of  the  vilest  sinners,  say, that  this 
is  more  ado  than  needs?  Why,  thou  proud,  insensible 
Wretch,  dost  thou  no  better  know  thy  own  needs  than  soT 
Doth  not  thy  soul  need  this^  and  more  than  this?  What, 
darest  thou  justify  thyself  in  thy  ungodliness,  and  judge  of 
godliness  as  a  needless  thing  ? 

Quest.  10.  Canst  thou  tell  me  how  long  thou  wilt  be  of 
that  mind  ?  When  thou  liest  a  dying  wilt  thou  then  think 
that  holiness  was  more  ado  than  needs  ?  When  thou  seest 
that  the  world  hath  left  thee,  and  that  thou  art  presently  to 
appear  before  the  Lord,  speak  as  thou  thinkest,  man,  hadst 
tfaoii  not  rather  then  be  found  in  the  case  of  the  holiest  and 
most  diligent  saints  on  earth,  than  in  the  case  of  the  care- 
less, proud,  or  carnal  ?  Will  holy  duty,  or  the  neglect  and 
deriding  of  it,  be  then  more  comfortable  ?  Wouldst  thou 
not  theii  change  stales  with  one  of  those  that  did  the  most 
for  God,  and  for  their  souls,  and  wouldst  thou  not  say  with 
Balaam,  "  Let  me  die  the  death  of  the  righteous,  and  let  my 
last  end  be  as  his™  ?" 

Quest  11.  What  is  it,  do  you  think  that  is  worth  a  man's 
pains  and  car^,  if  God  and  everlasting  glory  be  not  ?  Is 
there  any  thing  of  greater  worth  ?  Man  was  not  made  for 
nothing,  and  idleness  is  no  delight  to  him.  Something  he 
would  be  doing  and  looking  after,  and  something  he  expects 
to  make  him  happy,  and  that  which  he  takes  for  his  happi- 
ness,  he  cannot  choose  but  think  it  worth  all  his  pains. 
And  have  you  found  out  any  thing  that  is  better  than  heaven  ? 
Will  this  world  last  longer  ?  Or  stand  you  in  greater  stead 
at  last  ?  Alas,  that  we  should  be  put  to  ask  or  answer  such 
questions  as  these  !  Why,  sirs,  either  heaven  or  earth  must 
have  your  love,  and  care  and  labour,  and  which  do  you  think 
doth  more  deserve  it?  You  can  talk  of  the  world  from  day 
to  day,  and  you  can  work  and  toil  for  the  world  all  the  year 
long,  and  yet  you  never  say  it  is  more  ado  than  needs.  If 
your  servant  labour  harder  for  you  one  day  than  God's 
servants  do  for  him  in  a  week,  you  will  not  tell  him  that 
he  doth  more  than  needs.  Foolish  worldlings,  let  me  deal 
plainly  with  you,  and  tell  you  to  your  faces,  it  is  you  th^ 
make  more  adp  than  needs.     Is  the  world  worth  all  this  care 

Nqrab.  xxiii.  10. 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  309 

end  stir  that  you  make  about  it?     Is  it  worth  your  thoughts 
and  unwearied  diligences,  and  is  it  worth  the  venturing  of 
your  salvation  to  obtain  it?     I  tell  you  it  is  not,  and  you 
partly  know  yourselves  it  is  not.    Why,  where  are  your  wits, 
to  toil  yourselves,  all  your  lives  for  these  trifles ;  and  to  tell 
them  that  labour  for  salvation,  that  they  make  more  ado  than 
needs  ?     Well,  hearken  of  the  end,   and  then  you  shall  see 
whether  it  be  labour  for  heaven  or  for  earth,  that  will  be  re* 
peuted  of.     If  you  know  not  now,  you  shall  shortly  know  it. 
Quest.  12.  One  question  more  I  shall  yet  put  to  you. 
Do  you  think  the  pains  of  duty  to  be  greater  than  the  pains 
of  hell  ?     If  you  do  not,  should  not  we  choose  the  lesser  to 
escape  the  greater  ?     If  you  had  not  the  love  of  God  to 
make  you  delight  in  his  service,  methinks  you  should  have 
that  love  of  yourselves  to  make  you  fear  his  everlasting 
wrath.     Never  flatter  yourselves  with  other  thoughts.     Be- 
lieve it,  if  you  will  needs  take  it  for  a  pain  which  should  be 
your  pleasure,  you  must  undergo  the  pain  of  an  unfeignedly 
holy  life,  or  the  pain  of  hell,  choose  you  whether. 

(4.)  Another  of  their  errors  that  hindereth  conversion, 
is.  That  their  own  good  meanings,  and  praying,  and  good 
works  will  make  God  amends  for  their  sins,  and  after  all 
will  procure  their  acceptance  with  God;    And  if  these  will 
not  do,  they  think  the  case  is  hard,  for  there  is  nothing  else 
for  us  to  do.     And  so  they  see  not  the  evil  of  their  own 
meanings  and  good  works,  and  how  much  sin  is  in  them  to 
be  wailed ;  nor  do  they  see  the  need  of  a  Christ  in  all,  nor 
the  need  of  a  thorough  change  of  their  condition,  that  they 
may  be  made  the  justified  sons  of  God,  and  have  new  hearts 
and  new  conversations.     But  they  think  while  they  live  to 
the  world  and  the  flesh,  to  make  up  all  and  procure  accep- 
tance by  good  meaning,  and  good  praying,  and  good  works. 
I  would  not  be  misunderstood,  as  if  I  were  speaking  against 
that  which  is  truly  good  in  any.     But  I  would  desire  these 
people  well  to  consider ;    1.  That  the  meanings  and  works 
of  unconverted  men  are  not  truly  and  properly  good  ;  but  it 
is  the  end  that  denominateth  the  work  ;  and  seeing  no  un- 
converted man  doth  make  God  his  ultimate  end,  therefore 
he  hath  properly  no  good  meaning,  nor  work ;  for  he  mean- 
eth  all  ultimately  for  his  carnal  self,  for  the  flesh,  and  for 
the  world,  and  for  these  are  hisk  works.    As  the  true  Chris- 


810  .     TREATISE  OF   QONVEK$ia)f. 

iiati  dod)t  make  his  worldly  labour  to  be  ultimately  for  God, 
$o7doth  the  ungodly  make  his  seeming  serrice  of  God  to  b^ 
ultimately  for  his  flesh.  2.  You  should  consider  that  all 
your  good  works  must  have  a  j>ardon  themselves,  and  there ; 
fore  cannot  satisfy  for  your  sins.  3.  That  if  your  works 
were  perfectly  good  without  any  blemish,  yet  could  they  not 
satisfy  for  that  sin  which  is  past,  but  that  must  be  expected 
only  from  the  blood  of  Christ.  It  is,  therefore,  a  lamentable 
case  to  hear  many  of  the  grossly  ignorant  people  to  talk  of 
all  their  good  meanings  and  praying,  as  if  their  confidence 
were  all  in  these,  while  they  make  no  mention  of  the  blood 
of  a  Redeemer ;  or  feel  not  the  need  of  it ;  nor  what  it  is 
that  Christ  hath  done  for  them,  nor  how  much  they  are  be- 
holden to  him.  4.  It  is  no  patching  up  of  your  old  unre- 
generate  state,  that  will  serve  turn  for  your  salvation,  but 
you  must  be  wholly  made  new.  "  He  that  is  in  Christ  is  a 
new  creature ;  old  things  are  passed  away,  behold  all  things 
have  become  new  \''  It  is  not  forsaking  this  or  that  sin,  or 
falling  to  your  prayers,  that  will  serve  turn;  but  you  must 
have  new  hearts,  and  new  ends,  and  a  new  conversation,  and 
the  main  business  and  drift  of  your  lives  must  be  new.  Those 
hearts  that  were  set  on  the  world  before  must  be  set  on  God  \ 
and  those  desires  that  run  to  the  pleasures  of  the  flesh,  must 
run  out  after  the  pleasing  of  God.  I  say,  it  is  not  patch- 
ing up  the  old  condition,  but  all  must  be  new. 

(5.)  Another  error  that  hindereth  conversion,  is.  The 
misunderstanding  of  those  Scriptures  that  promise  salvation 
to  some  particular  graces  or  duties.  As  because  the  Scrip- 
ture saiUi,  **  whosoever  believeth  in  him  shall  not  perish,'^ 
therefore  they  say  that  they  truly  believe ;  and,  therefore, 
though  they  have  not  such  holiness  of  life,  yet  God  hath 
promised  them  salvation.  So,  also,  where  it  is  said,  that 
**  whosoever  shall  call  on  the  name  of  the  Lord,  shall  be 
saved,''  therefore  they  say,  we  call  on  the  name  of  the  Lord, 
and  so  shall  be  saved,  though  we  be  not  conyerted,  nor  so 
holy  as  you  require.^ 

To  these  men  I  have  these  several  things  to  say  for  the 
cure  of  this  dangerous  error. 

1.  Poor  ignorant  souls,  they  talk  of  they  know  not 
what :  and  sufier  themselves  to  be  deceived  by  words  which 

««Cor.  V.  17. 


TR£AT18£    OF    CONVftlU^10N«  Sit 

they  understand  not  If  they  did  but  knoit  well  what  faith 
is,  and  what  calling  upon  God  is,  they  would  never  be 
troubled  with  this  objection.  To  believe  in  Christ,  is 
to  believe  him  to  be  the  Saviour  of  the  church,  to  save 
them  from  their  sins,  and  heartily  to  consent  that  he.  shall 
be  so  to  us,  to  save  us  from  our  sins ;  and  can  you  believe 
in  him  as  a  Saviour;  and  yet  be  unwilling  to  be  saved  by 
him?  Sin  is  the  mischief  from  which  he  saveth  you,  and 
conversion  is  one  half  of  his  saving  work ;  and  can  you  then 
say  you  believe,  and  therefore  need  not  be  converted?  Why 
you  may  as  well  say, '  I  take  such  a  man  for  my  physician, 
and  I  trust  in  him  for  a  cure,  and  therefore  I  need  not  be 
cured/  Is  not  this  nonsense,  or  a  contradiction?  And 
what  is  it  better,  to  say, '  I  believe  in  Christ  as  my  Saviour, 
that  is,  to  save  me  from  my  sins,  and  therefore  I  may  be 
saved,  though  I  be  not  saved  from  my  sins/  These  are  the 
wise  reasonings  that  many  of  our  self^>conceited  bearenr 
make  use  of  to  delude  themselves  and  other  men.  And  the 
very  nature  of  faith  is  to  take  Christ  as  Christ,  and  as  he  is 
offered  in  the  Gospel.  As  our  teacher  to  guide  us  in  the 
way  of  holiness,  and  as  our  king  to  rule  us,  as  well  at  a  aaf 
crifice  for  our  sins.  And  how  can  he  do  this  for  U^  if  we 
will  not  be  converted  ? 

2.  Moreover,  faith  in  Jesus  Christ  is  always  annexed  to 
a  belief  in  God  the  Father.  "  If  you  believe  in  God,  believfl 
also  in  me°.''  '*  This  is  life  eternal  to  know  thee  the  only 
true  God,  and  Jesus  Christ  whom  thou  hast  sent  p."  Now 
to  believe  in  God,  is  to  take  him  for  our  Maker,  vhat  hath 
absolute  right  in  us,  and  absolute  power  over  MS,  whom  we 
laust  obey  before  all,  and  our  happiness  and  ch^ef  good, 
whom  we  must  love  and  desire  above  all.  And  can  tins  be 
done  without  conversion  ? 

3.  To  believe  in  Christ  is  ever  accompanied  with  be-: 
Ueving  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  which  is  the  receiving  him  to  be 
our  sanctifier ;  and  can  you  do  this,  and  yet  be  unconverted  ? 

4.  By  this  much  that  hath  been  said,  you  may  perceive 
that  conversion  and  faith  is  in  a  sort  one  and  die  sami^ 
thing  ;  to  be  a  true  believer,  and  to  be  converted,  is  all  one ; 
for  conversion  is  to  make  you  true  believers.  And  is  it  not 
then  a  wise  kind  of  cavil  to  say,  that  if  you  believe,  you 

.  «  John  xif  •  1.  P  Jf^hn  xiii.  3.  . 


312  TKfiATISfi   OF   CONVERlhON. 

may  be  saved  without  conrersion  ?  As  much  as  to  say^  if  I 
have  the  sunshine  I  may  see  without  light ;  or  if  I  have  a 
soul,  I  need  not  life  or  understanding.  I  tell  you  there  is 
no  such  thing  as  true  faith  without  conversion. 

5.  Moreover,  where  true  faith  is,  all  other  saving  graces 
do  accompany  it;  there  is  ever  repentance,  hope,  love,  hu- 
mility, and  a  heavenly  mind.  So  that  it  is  no  true  faith 
which  is  separated  from  these,  and  which  the  ungodly,  de- 
ceive themselves  with,  but  an  opinion,  and  a  mere  unground- 
c^d  presumption. 

(6.)  Another  error  which  hindereth  men's  conversion,  iS| 
Some  false  apprehensions  of  the  doctrine  of  God's  eternal 
decree  of  election  or  predestination ;  from  which  many  des- 
perate consequences  are  raised  by  them,  to  the  deceiving  of 
their  own  souls :  and  this  I  find  abundance  among  us  in  this 
country  deluded  by  ;  how  the  devil  hath  brought  it  to  pass, 
I  know  not.  They  have  many  of  them  learned  this  foolish 
pretence ;  if  God  hath  chosen  us  we  shall  be  saved,  and  if  he 
hath  not,  we  shall  not,  whatsoever  we  do  :  no  diligence  will 
save  a  man  that  is  not  elected,  and  ''  it  is  not  in  him  that 
willeth,  nor  in  him  that  runneth,  but  in  God  that  sheweth 
mercy."  Those  that  God  will  save,  shall  be  saved,  what- 
soever they  be;  and  those  that  he  will  damn,  shall  be 
damned  ;  and  no  man  can  have  grace  except  God  give  it 
him ;  for  we  can  do  nothing  of  ourselves :  and  upon  these 
grounds  they  think  they  may  be  secure,  and  cast  all  upon 
God,  as  a  matter  that  they  have  little  to  do  with ;  and  think 
that  their  endeavours  are  to  little  purpose,  if  they  should 
make  never  so  much  ado. 

Answ.  One  would  think  common  reason  should  teach 
men  to  answer  such  silly  cavils  as  these ;  but  because  I  find 
so  many  ignorant  souls  do  stick  at  them,  I  shall  give  you  a 
full  answer  in  these  particulars. 

1.  God  electeth  no  man  to  the  end  without  means,  but 
to  the  end  and  means  together.  All  that  he  electeth  to  sal- 
vation, he  electeth  to  conversion  and  sanctification,  and  all 
that  he  denieth  conversion  to,  he  denieth  salvation  to  also. 

2.  If  therefore  you  care  whether  you  are  saved  or 
damned,  it  concemeth  you  to  make  both  your  calling  and 
election  sure,  2  Pet.  i.  10.  Make  but  your  calling  sure,  and 
you  need  not  make  any  question  of  your  election.     Make 


TRKAflSB  OF  CONVERSION.         313 

sure  that  you  are  conyerted^  and  hold  fast  what  you  have^ 
and  then  you  may  be  certain  you  shall  be  saved.     You  be- 
gin at  the  wrong  end^  if  you  would  first  iask  whether  you  are 
elected^  that  you  may  know  whether  you  shall  be  saved ;  but 
you  must  first  try  whether  you  are  converted  and  saved  from 
the  power  of  sin^  and  then  you  may  certainly  gather  that 
you  are  elected  and  shall  be  saved  from  hell.    Will  you  be- 
gin at  the  top  of  the  ladder^  and  not  the  bottom  ?     Did  God 
ever  damn  any  man  that  was  truly  converted  and  sanctified, 
because  he  was  not  elected  ?     No  such  matter  :  prove  any 
such  thing  if  you  can :  nay,  we  can  fully  prove  the  contrary, 
for  he  hath  promised  salvation  to  all  that  are  truly  converted 
and  sanctified,  *'  Blessed  are  the  pure  in  heart,  for  they  shall 
see  God  **."    With  abundance   the  like  which  have  been 
named  frequently  to  you.     And  can  you  prove  that  ever  God 
saved  any  man  that  was  not  converted,  because  he  was 
elected  ?    No  such  matter ;  for  he  electeth  all  that  are  con- 
verted.    And  he  hath  resolved  to  save  none  but  the  conver- 
ted, as  is  plain,  John  iii.  3.     Heb.  xii.  14.  and  many  other 
places  formerly  quoted. 

3.  These  reasonings  therefore  of  yours,  if  they  keep 
you  from  conversion  and  a  heavenly  life,  are  a  certain  mark 
that  you  are  without  the  evidence  of  your  election;  and  if 
you  so  live  and  die,  that  you  are  none  of  the  elect.  And, 
therefore,  by  such  reasonings  you  do  but  shew  your  own  mi- 
sery, like  a  man  that  hath  the  plague  that  will  glory  in  his 
botch  :  it  should  make  your  hearts  to  tremble  to  find  so  sad 
a  mark  as  this  upon  your  souls,  that  you  have  a  heart  that 
dares  hold  off  from  conversion,  and  fetch  vain  pretences  from 
the  decree  of  God. 

4.  Consider  also,  that  God's  decrees  are  not  the  cause 
of  your  impenitency  or  any  sin;  though  his  grace  be  the 
cause  of  men's  conversion ;  he  is  the  beginner  of  our  good, 
but  we  are  the  causes  of  our  own  evil :  all  our  grace  is  from 
him,  but  all  our  sin  is  from  ourselves  :  he  giveth  us  grace 
before  we  so  much  as  willed  it,  and  accordingly  he  decreed 
to  give  it  before  the  foresight  of  our  own  willing  it ;  but  he. 
causeth  not  our  sin,  but  only  permitteth  us  to  cause  it,  and 
accordingly  he  decreed  not  the  event  of  sin  before  he  did 
foresee  that  we  would  be  sinners,  and  our  wills  of  themselves 

<i  Matt.  V.  8. 


314  TRBATISE   OF   C0NV|^lt910N> 

would  turn  from  Ood^  and  so  proceed  till  grace  recover  luu 
You  have  no  more  ground  therefore  of  excusing  yourseWeSi 
because  of  the  decree  of  Ood^  than  if  he  had  made  do  suck 
decree  at  all.  What  if  I  could  foretell  from  the  obstinate 
wickedness  of  such  a  thief^  or  such  a  drunkard,  that  he  will 
never  be  cured ;  is  it  long  of  me  because  I  foreknew  itl 
What  if  the  prophet  foretel  Hazael,  what  cruelty  he  shall 
commit  on  the  children  of  Israel,  is  the  prophet  iberefon 
the  cause  of  it  ? 

5.  Consider  also,  that  if  you  knew  not  how  to  answer 
any  objection  of  this  nature,  yet  you  have  the  very  princi-r 
pies  of  reason  and  all  religion  to  assure  you  that  God  is 
most  wise,  and  good,  and  just,  and  holy.  And,  therefwe, 
that  he  cannot  be  the  author  of  your  sin,  nor  ^hall  you  ever 
be  able  to  fetch  any  just  excuse  from  him.  You  might  be^ 
ter  have  looked  about  you  any  where  in  the  world  for  one 
to  bear  the  blame  of  your  miscarriages  than  the  most  wise 
and  holy  God.  For  nothing  is  more  certain,  than  that  tli« 
Infinite  Good  cannot  be  the  author  of  evil ;  and  whosoever 
it  comes  from,  it  cannot  come  from  him.  O  how  easily  will 
God  stop  their  mouths  that  excuse  themselves  by  accusing 
him  in  so  foul  a  cause  ! 

6.  And  why  do  you  not  consider  what  madness  it 
would  be  to  argue  about  your  bodies  as  you  do  about  your 
souls.  It  is  as  true  that  God  hath  decreed  how  many  years 
and  days  you  shall  live,  as  that  he  hath  decreed  whether  yoa 
shall  be  saved.  And  I  will  refer  it  to  your  own  reason,  what 
you  would  think  of  the  wit  of  that  man  that  would  give 
over  eating  and  drinking,  and  say,  '  God  hath  decreed  how 
long  I  shall  live,  and  if  he  have  decreed  that  I  shall  live  any 
longer,  I  shall,  whether  I  eat  and  drink  or  not.  And  if  he 
have  not  decreed  that  I  shall  live,  it  is  not  eating  nor  drink- 
ing  that  will  keep  me  alive?'  What  would  you  say  to  suck 
a  man  but  this,  that  God  decreeth  no  man  to  live,  but  by 
the  ordinary  means  of  living.  And  therefore  ordinarily  if 
you  will  give  over  eating  and  drinking,  it  is  certain  thatyoa 
will  give  over  living :  and  that  God  hath  made  no  decree  to 
save  you  alive  whether  you  eat  and  drink,  or  not?  So  if  a 
man  should  have  a  journey  to  go  on  life  or  death,  what 
would  you  think  of  that  man  that  will  say,  'If  God  have  de- 
creed that  I  shall  come  to  my  journey's  end,  I  shall  do  it. 


TRBATISE   OF   C0NV£RS10N#  3'lc> 

Khether  I  go  or  not ;  and  if  he  have  not  decreed  it^  I  shall 
lerer  come  thither,  though  I  travel  never  so  hard  V    This  is 
rae  ;  but  if  you  hence  infer,  that  therefore  it  is  as  good  to 
iH  atill  as  go,  you  will  shew  your  own  folly,  and  not  procure 
\Mk  excuse  for  your  neglect.     Why  even  so  it  is  in  our  pre- 
vent case.    If  you  will  say, '  If  God  have  elected  me,  I  shall 
be  saved  ;  and  if  he  have  not,  I  shall  not,  whatsoever  I  do, 
lad  therefore  I  may  qpare  my  pains,'  it  is  no  wiser  than  to 
pve  over  eating  and  drinking,  because  God  hath  decreed 
|kOW  long  you  shall  live ;  or  to  give  over  travelling  because 
God  hath  decreed  whether  you  shall  come  to  your  journey's 
cad.     Will  you  be  thus  mad  about  the  matters  of  your 
trades  and  callings  in  the  world  ?    Why  do  not  all  the  wea- 
vers in  this  town  then  give  over  their  trades,  and  say,  '  If 
Ood  have  decreed  that  I  shall  live  well  and  be  rich,  I  shall 
be  so  whether  I  labour  or  not ;  and  if  he  have  not,  my  la- 
bour will  not  serve?'    Why  do  you  not  give  over  ploughing 
ind  sowing,  and  say, '  If  God  have  decreed  that  I  shall  have 
a  crop,  I  shall  have  one,  whether  I  plough  and  sow  or  not ; 
md  if  he  have  not,  I  shall  not,  whatsoever  I  do  V     If  you 
will  needs  be  fools,  let  it  be  about  these  worldly  things, 
vhich  you  may  better  spare.    Try  your  own  opiniop  awhile, 
wid  give  over  eating  and  drinking  and  working ;  but  do  not 
befool  yourselves  about  the  one  thing  necessary,  and  play 
not  the  madman  about  the  flames  of  hell ;  and  do  not  in  such 
jest  throw  away  your  salvation.    It  were  an  hundred  times 
I  wiser  course  for  a  man  to  set  his  house  on  fire,  and  say, 
'  If  God  have  decreed  the  saving  of  it,  the  fire  shall  not  bum 
it }  if  he  have  not,  it  will  perish  whatsoever  I  do.'    I  tell 
joa  s^ain,  God  hath  not  ordinarily  decreed  the  end  without 
tbe  means ;  and  if  you  will  neglect  the  means  of  salvation, 
it  is  a  certain  mark  that  God  hath  not  decreed  you  to  sal- 
vation.    But  you  shall  find  that  he  hath  left  you  no  excuse, 
because  he  hath  not  thus  predestinated  you. 

(7.)  But  you  say.  We  cannot  convert  ourselves ;  what 
caa  man  do  without  the  grace  of  God  ?  And,  therefore,  if 
Qod  give  us  not  grace  we  are  excusable. 

jimw.  Do  your  consciences  justify  you,  that  you  have 
done  all  that  you  can  1  Can  you  not  go  to  church  when 
you  stay  at  home  ?  Can  you  not  go  among  the  servants  of 
God  when  you  go  to  your  worldly  businesses,  or  to  an  ale- 


316  TREATISE   OF   CON  VERSION. 

house  ?    Cannot  you  keep  out  of  eyil  company  ?  or  cannot 
you  so  much  as  consider  of  your  ways,  or  bethink  you  of 
the  things  of  the  life  to  come  ?     I  say,  cannot  you  do  then 
things  if  you  will  ?  and  have  you  done  these,  or  have  yot 
not?     Have    you    avoided  temptations  and  occasions  of 
evil,  and  used  the  means  of  grace,  and  attended  God  in  the 
use  of  his  ordinances,  and  marked  diligently  what  is  said  to 
you,  and  considered,  it  when  you  came  home?     Have  yoi 
not  sinned  and  neglected  the  means  of  grace,  both  knoir^ 
ingly  and  wilfully  ?     Conscience  may  tell  you  that  you  have, 
and  God  shall  make  you  know  that  you  have  ;  and  shortly 
you  shall  be  convinced  past  denial,  that  you  did  not  allthn 
you  could,  nor  forbore  the  evil  that  you  might  have  forbone. 
And  if  you  will  refuse  and  abuse  the  help  of  God^  can  yoi 
expect  that  he  should  follow  y^u  still  with  his  assistance! 
God  will  make  you  know  oqie  day,  that  nobody  carried  yoi 
into  an  alehouse,  nor  openea  your  mouth,  nor  poured  dowi 
the  drink  !  and  nobody  forced  you  to  swear,  or  to  rail,  «. 
hate  religion,  or  quarrel  with  the  word  that  should  han 
saved  you,  but  it  was  the  malicious  wickedness  of  yov 
naughty  hearts.  , 

And  for  the  power  of  conversion  and  believing  itself 
you  must  know  that  there  is  a  two-fold  power,  the  one  na- 
tural, the  other  moral.    The  natural  faculty  of  understand- 
ing and  willingness  every  man  hath ;  and  if  they  have  the 
use  of  reason,  they  have  no  physical  impediment  but  they  \ 
may  use  them,  and  if  they  hear  the  word,  they  have  nosnch  ' 
absence  of  the  necessary  object,  as  may  make  the  word  im- 
possible to  them.     The  moral  power  is  nothing  but  a  dispo- 
sition or  habit  of  the  soul  to  believe  or  repent,  &c.  or  a  free: 
dom  of  contrary  habits.     And  this  it  is  acknowledged  that 
none  have,  but  those  that  have  proportionably  received  that 
grace  that  doth  affect  it :  or,  to  speak  as  plain  as  I  can  to 
you,  there  is  a  power  which  lieth  in  being  able  to  believe 
and  repent  if  you  will,  or  to  do  whatsoever  we  will,  that 
concerneth  us  to  do  ;  and  there  is  a  willingness  itself  to  ex- 
ecute this  power,  and  that  both  actual  and  habitual.    The 
former  every  one  hath,  the  latter  none  but  the  godly  have  in 
sincerity,  and  those  that  make  so  great  a  stir  about  this  in 
the  church,  do  seem  to  be  agreed  in  it  for  the  main,  and  do 
not  know  it.    For  every  man   on  both  parties  confesseth 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  317 

that  all  men  have  the  natural  faculty  of  understanding  and 
will,^  and  that  they  have  so  much  power  that  they  can  be- 
Beye  and  love  God  above  all  if  they  will,  and  on  the  other 
ftde»  I  hope  we  are  all  agreed  that  wicked,  unregenerate  men 
tte  not  truly  willing  to  repent  and  believe,  and  that  they 
luive  not  the  habit  and  disposition  thereto,  but  have  the 
eontrary  habits.     Experience  telleth  us  this,  without  any 
ttore  ado.    The  latter  sort  of  power  then,  about  which  all 
the  controversy  lieth,  is  nothing  but  the  very  willingness  or 
grace  itself,  actual  or  habitual,  or  the  absence  of  the  con- 
trary. .   And,  therefore,  it  is  all  one  to  ask  whether  a  wicked 
vian  have  power  to  believe ;  and  to  ask  whether  he  be  a  be- 
liever actually  or  habitually,  or  not  an  unbeliever ;  so  that 
when  we  are  all  agreed  that  the  natural  power  or  faculty  is 
present,  and  the  moral,  which  is  but  the  willingness,  is  ab- 
ient,  you  can  ground  none  of  your  excuses  on  the  differences 
6f  the. churches  in  this  point.     And  as  I  have  formerly  said 
to  you,  if  you  will  but  reduce  this  last  kind  of  power  and 
hnpotency  to  its  most  proper  expression,  you  will  open  the 
diiune  of  your  excuses.     For  morally  to  be  unable  to  believe, 
is  no  more  than  to  be  unwilling  to  believe.     And  if  you 
should  say, '  I  will  not  believe  or  repent,  and  therefore  I  am 
excusable,'  what  would  your  own  conscience  say  to  such  an 
excuse  ?  .  Natural  impotency  excuseth  faults.    He  that  can 
•ay, '  I  would  believe,  but  cannot,  is  excusable  ;'  but  never 
a  one  of  you  all  shall  ever  be  able  to  say  this ;  but  moral 
impotency  aggravateth  faults  :  the  more  will,  the  more  sin. 
All  the  government  and  justice  in  the  world  is  grounded 
upon  this  principle,  and  therefore  all  rewards  and  punish- 
ments are  founded  in  the  will  of  man,  and  all  moral  virtue 
imd.vice  is  resolved  into  that.     And  if  you  can  but  prove 
th^t  a  man  offended  willingly,  you  have  proved  him  cul- 
pable :  for  nature  hath  taught  all  the  world  to  bring  the 
&alt  to  the  will,  and  there  to  leave  it,  and  look  no  further 
for  the  cause  :  unless,  as  seducers  may  be  made  accessary 
by  their  persuasions,  which  yet  is  no  excuse  to  the  offender. 
(8.)  And  whereas  you  allege  that  of  the  apostle,  "  It  is 
not  in  him  that  willeth,  or  in  him  that  runneth,  but  in  God 
ihat  sheweth  mercy." 

I  answer,  that  the  meaning  is  not,  that  our  salvation  is 
not  in  him  that  willeth,  or  in  him  that  runneth.    The  apos- 


318  TREATISE   OF  CONVE1l»IOK. 

tie  talketh  of  no  sach  thing.     But  it  is  about  the  giving  of 
the  gospel  to  them  that  had  it  not,  and  taking  it  from  Ijiem 
that  had  forfeited  it  by  their  sin  ;  or  the  giving  of  the  fint 
special  grace  to  them  that  had  it  not,  and  the  denying  it 
them  that  had  forfeited  it  by  their  neglects ;  and  the  meanf* 
ing  is  no  more  than  this,  that  the  reason  why  Grod  giveth 
one  man  or  nation  the  preaching  of  the  Gospel,  when  othen 
for  their  sins  are  left  in  darkness,  is  not  from  any  merit  or 
precedent  willing  or  running  of  their  own,  but  from  his  mot 
mercy.     And  the  reason  why  he  blesseth  the  Gospel  to  the 
conversion  of  some,  when  he  leaveth  others  to  despise  it  by 
their  wilful  obstinacy,  is  not  from  the  merits  of  any  of  thoM 
unregenerate  men,  or  from  any  willing  or  running  of  thein, 
but  from  God  that  sheweth  mercy.     So  that  you  must  note 
that  it  is,  1.  One  thing  to  ask  the  cause  of  man's  damnalioa 
in  himself  considered,  and  this  is  not  said  to  be  because  Ood 
will  damn  him,  but  because  he  hath  deserved  it  by  his  sin : 
and  so  the  cause  of  his  preterition  in  the  matter  of  speciel 
grace,  is  not  barely  because  God  will  pass  him  by,  but  be- 
cause he  hath  deserved  it ;  for  God  denieth  the  Gospel,  aad 
faith  by  the  Gospel,  or  his  grace  to  effect  it,  to  no  man  that 
hath  not  first  deserved  that  denial.    2.  It  is  another  thing  to 
ask  the  reason  of  men's  salvation,  wliich  is  not  given  in 
Scripture  barely  from  the  will  of  God,  but  from  the  faith  and 
obedience  of  men,  for  it  is  an  act  of  rewarding  justice  as 
well  as  of  paternal  love  and  mercy.    3.  And  it  is  yet  another  . 
thing  to  ask  the  reason  why  God  giveth  any  man  the  first 
special  grace  to  repent  and  believe  considering  him  simply    j 
in  himself,  and  this  is  because  that  God  is  gracious,  and  no   j 
reason  can  be  given  but  his  own  mercy ;  and  thus  far  mo8t   I 
of  us  are  agreed.    4.  And  it  is  yet  another  thing  to  ask  the  | 
reason  why  God  giveth  the  special  grace  to  this  man,  rather  || 
than  that,  comparatively  considered,  when  he  might  justly  j| 
have  denied  it  to  them  both,  and  neither  of  them  could  plead  ^ 
their  desert  of  it  ?    And  to  this  it  is  that  the  apostle's  an* 
swer  doth  most  square,  or  at  least  is  fitly  applied :  ''  It  ii 
not  in  him  that  willeth  or  runneth,  but  of  God  that  sheweth 
mercy  :"  so  that,  though  no  man  can  give  any  turning  reason  \  ] 
besides  the  mere  will  of  God,  why  God  should  give  this 
grace  to  Peter,  rather  than  to  Judas,  yet  we  well  know  that 
he  denieth  it  not  to  Judas  without  his  own  desert;  though 
he  gives  it  to  Peter  contrary  to  his  desert. 


TREATISE   OP   GONVERhlON.  319 

(9.)  And  whereas  it  is  further  objected,  that  "  whom  he 
will  he  hardeneth/'  and  if  God  will  harden  us,  how  can  we 
repent  V 

An9w.  1.  That  he  hardeneth  no  man  without  his  own  de- 
sert ;  it  is  not  till  you  have  forfeited  his  softening  grace  by 
jOur  resisting  and  abuse  of  it.  2.  That  his  hardening  is 
bat  his  leaving  you  to  yourselves,  and  taking  away  or  de- 
nying you  that  Spirit  which  you  have  quenched  ;  or  his  car- 
rying the  just  course  of  his  providence  so,  as  he  knoweth 
your  corrupt  natures  will  be  hardened  thereby  ;  but  he  doth 
not  put  any  hardness  into  your  hearts,  and  therefore  these 
iflRord  you  no  excuse. 

(10.)  Another  error  that  hindereth  conversion,  is.  The 
placing  of  holiness  in  holding  of  certain  opinions,  and  so 
taming  from  the  life  of  faith  and  love,  to  speculation  and 
tain  janglings.     If  once  men  place  their  religion  in  their 
Opinions,  they  may  as  well  be  hypocrites  and  self-deceivers 
Iha  true  opinion,  as  in  a  false.     This  is  a  habit  by  which 
the  devil  hath  caught  multitudes  of  souls  in  all  ages  of  the 
titerch,  and  especially  of  late  :  when  he  cannot  keep  men 
ill  open  profaneness,  then  he  will  tempt  them  to  think  that 
nch  a  party  and  such  a  sect  are  the  only  right  and  holy 
people  ;  and  therefore  if  thou  get  but  among  them,  and  be 
one  of  that  opinion  and  party,  then  thou  shalt  be  saved. 
And  hence  it  is  that  we  see  that  men  who  are  so  zealous  for 
tieir  parties,  and  glory  so  much  in  several  opinions,  do  yet 
many,  and  very  many  of  them,  live  so  unacquaintedly  with 
Sod  and  heaven,  and  are  such  strangers  to  Christian  cha- 
lity,  and  can  freely  reproach  both  common  Christians  and 
aumsters,  and  speak  evil  of  the  things  they  understand  not, 
Md  take  their  railing  accusations  for  their  piety,  and  walk 
Jb-diBcord,  and  hatred,  and  disunion  from  the  church  of  God, 
ted  be  glad  when  they  can  bear  down  the  reputation  of  their 
brethren  whose  labours  are  necessary  for  the  good  of  souls. 
And  it  is  a  conmion  mark  of  an  opinionative  hypocrite,  that 
lie  preferret^  the  interest  of  his  opinion  and  party,  before 
tlie  interest  of  these  common  truths  which  salvation  is  clear- 
hf  laid  upon,  and  all  Christians  are  agreed  in.    And  he  car- 
€th  not  to  hinder  ministers  from  propagating  these  common 
"traths  for  the  conversion  of  souls,  so  he  might  Yf\0\^V  W\. 
liinder  them  from  propagating  that  opinion  vi\ue\v  \%  cow- 


320  TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION. 

trary  to  his.  And  withal' he  layeth  out  more  of  his  Zealand 
diligence  for  these  opinions,  than  for  the  mortification  of 
his  lusts,  and  the  maintaining  of  the  union  and  communion 
of  the  saints,  and  walking  holily  with  God,  and  uprighdy 
with  men. 

I  shall  now  say  no  more  to  these,  but  that  **  the  king- 
dom of  God  consisteth  not  in  meats  and  in  drink,  but  in 
righteousness,  and  peace,  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost':** 
and  '*  that  circumcision  availeth  nothing,  nor  uncircumci- 
sion,  but  faith  that  worketh  by  love  *,"  "  and  the  new  crea- 
ture *."    "  For  in  Christ  Jesus  there  is  neither  Jew  nor  Gen- 
tile, bond  nor  free,  male  nor  female ;"  and  why  may  I  not 
say  on  the  same  ground,  young  nor  old,  "  but  Christ  is  all, 
and  in  all  "•"    And  that  we  have  many  promises  of  life  and 
salvation  to  as  many  as  repent  and  believe,  and  love  God, 
and  hope  for  the  coming  of  Christ ;  but  we  have  none  to 
those  that  are  of  this  or  that  party  or  opinion  without  these 
graces.    And  withal  we  know  how  tender  God  is  of  the 
unity  of  his  church  and  people,  and  how  much  he  hath  spo- 
ken against  division :  and  they  that  know  not  this,  when 
they  pretend  to  know  things  that  are  not  half  so  clearly  re- 
vealed, may  be  ashamed  of  their  ignorance.     I  do  not  know 
where  God  hath  commanded  men  to  avoid  them  that  hold 
this  or  that  tolerable  different  opinion,  or  that  follow  this 
or  that  tolerable  different  practice;  but  I  know  where  he 
hath  commanded  us  to  '*  mark  them  that  cause  division,  and 
avoid  them*." 

(11.)  Another  error  that  hindereth  conversion,  is.  When' 
men  have  gotten  false  conceits  against  the  lawfulness  or  ne- 
cessity of  those  holy  ordinances,  that  are  used  by  the  peo- 
ple of  God.  For  the  life  of  religion  lieth  so  much  in  the 
use  of  ordinances,  that  if  people  be  brought  out  of  conceit 
with  these,  they  will  not  know  what  it  is  to  be  religious,  nor 
what  necessity  there  is  of  it.  To  give  you  an  instance  in 
some  particulars. 

1.  Some  grow  into  doubt  of  the  necessity  of  family  duty, 
and  ask,  where  hath  God  commanded  us  to  pray  in  our  fa- 
milies?    And  that  so  oft?     To  which  I  answer.  That  it  is  - 
sufficient  that  he  hath  bid  us  ''  pray  always,  and  in  all  - 

'  Rom.  xiv.  17.  •  Gal.  v.  6.  »Gal.  Ti.  15.     ^ 

«  Colli.  11.    Gal.m.^a.        »^ow.v»\.VI. 


1 
I 
I 
1 
4 


TREATISE   OF   CONVERSION.  321 

things  make  our  requests  known  to  God  with  prayers^  sup- 
plication, and  thanksgiving  y."  "  All  things  are  sanctified 
by  the  word  and  prayer  "*/'  And  therefore  our  families  and 
callings  are  so.  What  have  we  common  reason  for,  but  to 
circumstantiate  these  duties,  that  God  hath  commanded  to  us 
for  the  substance.  And  common  reason  telleth  us,  that  as 
we  daily  need  God,  we  must  daily  seek  supply  of  our  heeds; 
and  so  not  only  our  persons,  but  our  families  as  families,  do 
need  this  mercy,  and  receive  his  mercy,  and  are  related  to 
him  as  the  Head :  so  our  families  as  families  must  call  on 
him,  and  praise  him,  and  love  his  headship.  Besides  the 
example  of  Daniel,  that  prayed  three  times  a  day  in  his 
house,  so  openly  that  his  enemies  had  matter  of  accusation 
from  the  matter  of  his  prayer.  But  I  have  had  occasion  to 
write  more  largely  of  this,  and  therefore  will  not  now  stand 
on  it. 

2.  Others  are  brought  to  question  the  lawfulness  of 
joining  with  our  solemn  assemblies,  in  hearing,  or  praying. 
Or  other  public  worship  of  God.  The  reasons  are  such  as  I 
am  ashamed  to  stand  to  mention  and  confute  them,  and 
ghall  be  weary  to  go  over  them,  they  are  so  vain  and  super- 
ficial, and  answered  at  large  by  many.  Some  of  their  rea- 
sons are,  because  we  are  so  bad,  when  many  of  the  accusers 
are  sueh  themselves,  that  they  deserve  to  be  severely  cen- 
sured by  the  church  ;  and  because  the  church  will  not  deal 
with  them,  they  will  judge  the  church,  and  take  themselves 
too  good  to  have  communion  with  it,  and  the  church  unwor- 
thy to  have  communion  with  them.  In  a  word,  they  would 
have  not  one  but  many  cast  out,  whom  they  never  dealt 
with  in  Christ's  way,  by  admonition ;  and  because  it  is  not 
done  out  of  Christ's  way,  to  save  a  labour,  they  will  turn 
schismatics. 

And  others  of  them  withdraw  on  the  pretence  that  we 
have  no  ministry.  And  how  prove  they  that?  You  may 
wait  long  enough  till  you  can  have  a  word  of  Scripture  or 
reason  for  the  proof,  or  before  they  can  answer  that  suffi- 
cient proof  that  is  brought  to  the  contrary.  And  if  you  do  but 
put  them  to  tell  you  which  is  the  true  church  and  ministers, 
and  where  it  hath  been  ?  you  shall  see  what  work  they  will 
make  in  the  end. 

yPhU.j9\,6,    i  TTreas.  r.  17.  *  lT\m,Vi.4>^. 

VOL.   VJJ.  Y 


33ft  TmSATISE   OF   CONVVR4ION. 

Otfaer$  wjthdiaw  on  pretaice  that  we  are  unhaptized,  to 

#Iuch  end  they  must  coin  a  new  baptisnd,  or  else  they  are  af 

a  loss.    And  their  arguing  with  us,  will  be  much  like  the 

Papists  in  the  point  of  transubstantiation,  which  ref|ai£eth 

that  men  renounce  their  sense,  and  say,  that  they  aee  not 

that  which  they  ste,  and  feel  not  or  taste  not  that  which  in^ 

deed  they  feel  and  taste,  ^nd  then  they  may  come  to  be  in 

the  right.     And  so  we  must  believe  that  we  see  none  bs^ 

tized  in  ous  churches,  nor  hear  it,  nor  know  of  any  such 

thing,  and  then  we  may  come  to  be  a  church.     If  these  bre* 

thren  had  half  so  much  humility,  or  Christian  love,  and  sense 

of  the  unity  of  the  church  of  Christ  ^a  they  should^  haTe^ 

they  would  think  on  it,  and  think  again,  before  they  would 

either  say  of  the  universal  church  of  Christ  fbv  oiie  age^ 

much  more  so  for  many  ages,  that  it^was  no  churdi,  oi^  net 

to  be  joined  with.     For  he  that  dares  renounce  conmiunion 

with  the  whole,  doth  make  it  bard  tp,  be  discernedi  that  he  is 

a  part :  and  he  that  is  not  a  member  of  the  body,  yeiU  not 

find  another  body  of  Christ,  whose  communion  is  desixabkk 

For  my  part,  I  believe  the  church  hath  had  many  errors  ia 

many  ages,  but  I  know  no  age  since  the  creation,  in  wHic^ 

if  I  had  lived,  I  durst  have  disclaimed  communion  with  her. 

Much  lesa  dare  I  think  of  running  out  of  the  way  to  heaven, 

which  almost  ail  they  went  in  that  are^  there ;  or  of  separatiag 

from  all  the  church  of  Christ,  from  Adam  till  widiiii  Ibis 

two  hundred  years,  or  thereabout:  for  if  there  were  no 

church  till  then,  there  was  no  Head,  no  Christ,  and  so  no 

Christianity.     Yea,  if  there  were  none  but  for  any  onetime. 

O !  if  it  were  the  will  of  Qod  that  we  could  have  as  clear 

light  in  some  other  weighty  points,  as  we  have  in  Scriptuie 

for  the  baptism  of  the  children  of  believers;  how  much 

would  it  do  to  quiet  the  understandings  of  many  that  aie 

-  willing  to  know. 

3^  Others  there  be  that  despise  the  solemn  praises  of 
the  congregations,  because  some  psalms  are  such  as  all 
cannot  truly,  they  think,  recite. 

1.  As  if  no  recital  were  lawful,  but  that  which  pe^ 
sonally  owneth  the  words,  which  can  never  be  proved. 

2.  And  do  they  not  know  that  God  himself  had 
prevented  their  objection?     And  that  it  flieth  in  his  <Am 

Ace  ?     Who  knowetia  not  tVi^t  \\\%%^  ^%^iGCk&,  ^^  ^\e^sx^^T^ 


TREATISE    OF  CONVERSIOJ^.  323 

many  of  them/ were  appointed  for  the  soleau^  iM*aise  of'Ood 
in  the  temple  and  congregations  of  the  Jews  in  thos6  times  1 
And  if  those  could  lawfully  use  them,  whose  hearts  were 
generally  no  more  fitted  to  them  than  ours,  may  not  we  do 
so  too  ? 

3.  And  do  they  not  know  that  their  scruple  doth 
make  not  only  against  psalms,  but  all  public  prayer  also  to 
be  unlawful?  For  you  cannot  so  speak  in  any  such  public 
prayers  or  praises,  but  there  will  be  somewhat  which  will  not 
suit  with  the  particular  dispositions  of  many  in  the  congre- 
gation personally  to  own,  or  else  your  duty  will  be  very  de- 
fectire.  If  you  express  rejoicing,  must  sill  drooping  spirits 
separate  from  the  assembly  that  cannot  rejoice  ?  But  I  mil 
trouble  you  no  more  with  this.  If  any  are  unsatisfied,  1^ 
fheioi  read  but  Mr.  Cotton's  book  on  this  question,  and  Mr. 
Ford's,  and  they  may  receive  satisfaction.  And  if  they  will 
in  this,  and  the  aforesaid  cases  of  baptism,  separation,  and 
the  rest,  divide  from  the  church,  and  venture  on  damnation 
to  save  themselves  the  labour  of  reading  that  which  is  writ* 
tien  to  give  them  information,  they  must  take  what  they  get 
by  it.    Who  can  help  it  ? 

Hindrance  19.  Another  hindrance  of  conversion,  is,  A 
prond,  unteachable  frame  of  spirit :  when  people  are  sd  wise 
m  Iheir  own  eyes,  they  think  they  know  enough  already ; 
ajftd  they  scorn  to  be  taught.  If  the  wisest  minister  in  En- 
glafliflr  should:  live  with  ^uch,  they  would  but  despise  his 
counisel  in  every  thinig  almost  that  crosseth  their  conceits. 
A»  l<mg  as  he  will  humour  them,  and  say  as  they  say,  he 
shall  be  a  good  man,  and  well  spoken  of  by  all ;  but  if  he 
will  trouble  them,  and  cross  them,  and  tell  them  that  which 
is  against  their  present  opinion,  they  think  themselves  wiser 
in  this  than  he,  and  if  they  do  not  bid  him  look  to  himself, 
and  let  them  alone,  at  least  they  will  give  him  little  thanks^ 
and  shew  it  by  their  small  regard.  Some  of  them  will  not 
come  near  us,  nor  give  us  the  hearing,  when  we  would  teach 
them ;  and  others,  though  they  hear,  do  think  themselves 
too  wise  to  believe  or  obey.  And  thus  they  are  fixed  in  a 
state  of  misery. 

'     Direct.  19.  If  ever  you  will  be  converted,  humbly  sul>- 
ttttC  to  the  word  of  Ood,  and  the  instrnctiona  q£  \\vi:^ii^^  ^\^\sl 
ie  hf^  appomied  to  inform  yoo..    Whai  ume&aoxSdkSSft  V'^v^^ 


3*24  TKEATISE    OF    CONVERSION. 

18  it  in  you  th^^are  ignorant,  unlearned  men,  to  despise  the 
counsel  of  the  most  able,  godly  ministers,  and  that  in  points 
wherein  the  godly  through  all  the  world  are  agreed  ?     Yea, 
where  God  himself  doth  lead  them  by  his  word?     Are  not 
they  likely  to  know  more  than  you  that  have  studied  it  all 
their  days  ?     Discourse  with  them,  and  try  whether  they  or 
you  have  more  knowledge.     Consider  what  you  do  when 
you  proudly  reason  against  the  necessity  of  conversion  and 
a  holy  life.     What,  are  you  wiser  than  your  teachers,  and 
than  the  ablest  teachers  in  the  land  ?     Yea,  than  all  the  mi- 
nisters in  the  world,  and  than  all  the  godly  people  in  the 
world?     Silly  souls,  that  scarce  know  any  of  the  principles 
of  religion.,  are  yet  so  proud  as  to  despise  the  instruction 
from   the  wisest  whoever.     But  if  you  think  yourselves 
wiser  than  all  the  ministers  in  the  world,  will  you  also  think 
yourselves  wiser  than  God  ?     I  tell  you,  either  illuminating 
grace,  or  the  conviction  of  God's  judgment,  shall  take  down 
your  lofty  hearts  ere  long,  and  make  you  wish  you  had 
-stoops*  to  instruction.     The  day  is  coming  that  will  abate 
your  pride,  and  make  you  talk  a  little  more  submissively. 
Hearken  therefore  in  time,  lest  that  befal  you  that  is  men- 
tioned, Prov.  V.  11—13,     "  Lest  thou  mourn  at  last  when 
thy  flesh  and  body  are  consumed  ;  and  say,  how   have  I 
hated  instruction,  and  my  heart  despised  reproof?     And 
have  not  obeyed  the  voice  of  my  teachers,  nor  inclined  mine 
ear  to  them  that  instructed  me  ?"     If  you  are  too  wifce  to 
learn,  you  will  prove  in  the  end  too  foolish  to  be  saved. 

Hindrance  20  The  last  hindrance  of  conversion  that  I 
shall  mention,  is,  Wilful  obstinacy.  When  men  have  long  re- 
sisted grace,  they  are  given  over  oftentimes  to  themselves, 
and  then  they  grow  wilful :  and  when  they  have  nothing  else 
to  say,  why  they  should  not  be  converted  and  become  the 
people  of  God,  they  can  say,  they  will  not :  they  will  never 
be  so  holy,  nor  deny  their  flesh,  nor  forsake  the  world,  nor 
set  themselves  to  a  heavenly  life :  they  will  not  believe  that 
.  this  is  so  necessary  :  nor  will  they  ever  yield  to  such  a 
course  :  come  on  it  what  will,  they  are  resolved  against  it ; 
before  they  will  do  it  they  will  venture  their  souls,  and  let 
God  do  with  them  what  he  will :  and  this  desperate  wilful- 
ness is  the  devil's  last  hold.  ..  ,  ^ 
Direct  20.  What  direction  should  I  give  you  against 


TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  325 

this  hindrance  ?  When  the  will  is  so  corrupt  and  obstinateji 
whatsoever  I  give  it  will  be  rejected.  If  yOii  were  but  will- 
ing I  should  make  no  doubt  but  the  work  might  prosper ; 
or  if  you  were  but  reasonable,  and  teachable,  and  persuad- 
able, I  should  make  no  doubt,  through  the  blessing  of  God, 
but  the  former  means  might  make  you  yield  ;  but  if  men  be 
wilful  and  resolved  to  perish,  what  remedy  ?  If  men  could 
give  us  any  reason  against  conversion  and  a  holy  life,  and 
did  err  through  the  mere  mistake  of  their  understandings, 
I  should  make  no  doubt,  through  the  blessing  of  God>  but 
by  bare  reason  they  might  be  rectified.  But  when  their  will 
is  their  reason,  and  they  are  resolved  whatsoever  comes  of 
it,  to  hold  on,  and  stop  their  ears  against  advice,  what  can 
we  say  to  these  men  ?  All  that  I  can  do,  is,  to  commend  to 
them  the  former  -considerations,  and  to  desire  them  to  think 
of  those  motives  before  delivered,  which  may  chai^ge  their 
wills.  But  I  have  but  little  hope  to  prevail  with  them  so 
much  as  soberly  to  think  of  it.  And  because  so  many  of 
our  poor  people  are  of  this  strain,  I  am  forced  here  to  end 
this  subject  with  lamentation. 

I  have  preached  now  many  sermons  to  you  of  conversion,, 
and  whether  any  souls  be  converted  by  it,  the  Lord  knows, 
I  know  not.  But  the  sad  observation  of  the  state  of 
the  world, 'and  the  uneflPectualness  of  such  endeavours, 
doth  justly  make  me  fear  the  issue.  I  know  that  both  I  and 
this  congregation  shall  shortly  appear  before  our  Judge,  to 
give  a  strict  account  of  our  lives,  and  if  I  have  not  preach- 
ed these  sermons  in  sincerity,  with  a  true  desire  after  the 
saving  of  your  souls,  then  how  shall  I  stand  before  the  Lord, 
if  the  blood  of  Christ  through  faith  and  repentance  prevail 
not  for  remission?  And  if  any  man  or  woman  in  this  town 
or  parish  shall  there  appear  in  an  unconverted  state,  what 
will  they  be  able  to  say  for  themselves  ?  Or  how  will  they 
escape  the  threatened  damnation  ?  I  am  not  out  of  hope 
that  I  shall  meet  some  souls  there,  though  yet  I  know  not  of 
them,  that  will  be  able  to  say,  they  were  converted  by  these 
sermons ;  but  I  am  so  much  afraid  lest  I  shall  meet  abun- 
dance of  you  in  an  unconverted  state,  that  I  could  even  find 
in  my  heart  to  sit  down  and  weep  over  these  sermons  now 
I. have  preached  them.  Alas!  that  you  should  be  con- 
demned by  that  which  was  intended  to  further  your  salva- 


3S6  TRSATI8E   OF  CONVERSIOK. 

lion.    Have  I  studied  and  preached  all  this  to  be  a  wifticte 
against  ycm  ?    I  know^  sis  true  as  you  sit  in  these  eeats,  that 
every  soul  of  you  shall  be  for  ever  in  hell,  that  passeth  out 
of  the  body  in  an  unconverted  state.     And  I  know  when 
you  have  heard  so  much  of  it^  and  been  so  often  warned,  and 
now  are  left  without  excuse,  you  will  have  a  double  con- 
demnation.    For  now  it  is  your  mere  wilfulness  that  must 
keep  you  unconverted.     If  you  say,  you  cannot  convert 
yourselves,  I  ask  in  a  word,  will  you  do  what  you  can?  Tell 
me,  will  you,  or  will  you  not?     If  you  will  not,  what  re- 
medy ?     If  you  will,  look  over  the  directions  I  have  given 
you,  and  set  upon  the  faithful  practice  of  them.     Particu- 
larly, see  that  you  presently  search  the  Scriptures,  and  read 
good  books,  and  forsake  your  evil  company,  and  come  not 
near  them,  but  get  among  those  that  fear  the  Loi'd,  and  tak6 
all  opportunities  public  and  private,  and  inquire  of  your 
teachers  and  neighbours  that  can  help  you,  what  you  shall  do 
to  be  saved  ?     And  sin  no  more  wilfully,  butiavoid  the  very 
temptations  and  appearances  of  evil,  and  be  much  vnth  God 
in  secret  and  open  prayer :  and  dwell  in  the  consideration  of 
your  own  estate,  of  your  own  sin  and  danger,  of  Christ  and 
duty,  of  grace  and  glory,  and  think  not  any  pains  too  much 
for  your  salvation.    What  say  you  ?    Will  you  do  but  thus 
much,  or  will  you  not  ?     If  you  will>  you  shall  find  no  cause 
to  repent  of  it,  and  God  will  not  be  wanting  to  that  soul 
that^oth  not  wilfully  forsake  him,  but  is  willing  to  be  con- 
formed to  the  image  of  his  Son  ;  and  to  be  what  God  would 
have  him  be.     But,  alas !  it  is  this  wilfulness,  and  obsti- 
nacy that  undoes  men :  that  is,  that  which  shuts  up  the 
heart  of  God  and  man  from  compassionating  the  wicked  in 
their  everlasting  misery.     They  did  it  wilfully  ;  they  would 
take  no  warning  ^  they  would  hear  no  counsel ;  no  saying 
would  serve  them ;  they  chose  their  own  destruction ;  it  was 
their  own  doing ;  they  were  told  of  it  a  hundred  times  ;  they 
were  entreated  to  consider,  but  they  would  not  be  entreated. 
What  could  have  been  said  more  to  them  ?    What  could  we 
do  more  for  them?    O  that  any  one  of  you  could  tell  me 
what  I  should  say  more,  or  what  I  should  do  now  to  save  th^ 
souls  of  ignorant,  fleshly,  worldly  sinners  from  damnation ! 
And  to  convert  the  unconverted,  and  turn  the  hearts  of  men 
to  God !    O  that  you  could  but  tell  me  how  I  mi^t  aceom* 


TREATISE    OF   CONVERSION.  327 

plish  it !    Would  I  not  do  it  ?    The  Lord  knows,  if  any 
lawful  and  honest  means  would  accomplish  it  I  would  do  it, 
if  I  know  my  own  heart.     But  if  Christ  could  not  be  heard, 
why  should  I  wonder  if  many  will  make  light  of  what  is 
said  by  such  an  one  as  I.     If  they  Will  not  hear  the  Lord 
that  made  them  speaking  in  his  word,  why  should  I  wonder 
if  they  will  not  hear  him  speaking  by  such  a  worm  as  I  ? 
Sinners,  what  shall  I  say  more  to  you  ?     I  have  told  you  of 
an  everlasting  glory  which  you  might  have;  if  you  will  set 
light  by  it,  and  prefer  your  worldly  things  before  it,  who  can 
help  it?     I  have  told  you  of  eternal  misery  that  you  are  in 
danger  of;  if  you  will  venture  on  it,  and  not  believe  it  till 
you  feel  it,  and  are  past  remedy,  who  can  help  it  ?     I  have 
proved  to  you  from  the  word  of  God,  that  without  conver- 
sion there  is  no  salvation :  if  you  dare  go  on  in  an  uncon- 
verted state,  and  keep  your  sin,  and  follow  your  fleshly  de- 
sires and  delights,  and  your  worldly  vanities  and  wicked 
company,  if  you  will  not  be  drawn  to  the  ways  of  God,  what 
remedy  ?  I  have  delivered  my  message,  and  I  hope  God  will 
not  require  your  blood  at  my  hands.     You  shall  all  be  forced 
to  bear  me  witness  that  I  told  you  there  was  no  salvation 
without  conversion ;  and  that  I  manifested  to  you  the  rea- 
sonableness of  the  offers  of  God  :  and  if  you  be  not  convert- 
ed, it  is  because  you  would  not :  and  what  a  torment  it  will 
be  everlastingly  to  your  consciences  to  think  that  you  wil- 
fully damned  yourselves,  and  to  think  that  you  wilfully  re- 
fused your  salvation ;  and  that  you  might  have  been  in  hea- 
ven as  well  as  others,  if  you  had  not  wilfully  and  obstinately 
rejected  it.      I  say,  what  tormenting  thoughts  these  will 
prove  tp  you  everlastingly,  you  cannot  possibly  now  con- 
ceive, but  then  you  shall  know  and  feel  it,  if  true  conversion 
do  not  prevent  it.      Which  that  it  may  do,  as  it  hath  been 
the  end  of  all  these  sermons,  so  shall  it  now,  and  as  long  as 
I  have  life  and  strength,  be  the  matter  of  my  prayers  for  you. 


THE  END  OF  THE  TREATISE  OF  CONVERSION. 


A  CALL 


TO  THE 


UNCONVERTED 


TO 


TURN  AND  LIVE, 

AND  ACCEPT  OF  MERCY  WHILE  MER€Y  MAY  BE  HAD,  AS  EVER 
THEY  WOULD  FIND  MERCY  IN  THEDAY  OF  THEIR  EXTREMHT  : 


FROM  THE  LIVING  GOD. 


TO    WHICH    ABB   ADDED^ 

FORMS  OF  PRAYER  FOR  MORNING  AND  EVENING  FOR  A  FAMILY, 
FOR  A  PENITENT  SINNER,  AND  FOR  THE  LORD'S  DAY. 


\ 


PREFACE. 


In  that  short  acquaintance  I  had  with  that  reverend  learned 
servant  of  Christy  Bishop  Usher,  he  was  oft,  from  first  to 
last,  importuning  me  to  write  a  Directory  for  the  several 
ranks  of  professed  Christians,  which  might  distinctly  give 
each  one  ^their  portion ;  beginning  with  the  unconverted-^ 
and  then  proceeding  to  the  babes  in  Christ,  and  then  to  the 
strong ;  and  mixing  some  special  helps  against  the  several 
sins  that  they  are  addicted  to.     By  the  suddenness  of  hi^ 
motion  at  our  first  congress,  I  perceived  it  was  in  his  mind 
l)efore ;  and  I  told  him,  both  that  it  was  abundantly  done 
l)y  many  already;     and  that  his  unacquaintedness   with 
my  weakness,  might  make  him  think  me  fitter  f9r  it  than  I 
was.     But  this  did  not  satisfy  him,  but  still  he  made  it  his 
lequest.     I  confess  I  was  not  moved  by  hisreaspnsj  nor  did 
I  apprehend  any  great  need  of  doing  more  tiian  is  done  ia 
that  way  :  nor  that  I  was  likely  to  do  more.    And,  there* 
fore,  I  parted  from  him  without  the  least  purpose  to  answer 
his  desire.     But  since  his  death,  his  words  often  came  into 
my  mind ;  and  the  great  reverence  I  bore  to  him>  did  the 
more  incline  me  to  think  with  some  complacency  of  bis  mo- 
tion.    And  having  of  late  intended  to  write  a  "  Family  Di- 
rectory," I  began  to  apprehend  how  congruously  the  f<Hre- 
mentioned  work  should  lead  the  way;  and  the  several  coA-^ 
ditions  of  men's  souls  be  spoken  of,  before  we  come  to  the 
several  relations.    Hereupon  I  resolved,  by  God's  assistance, 
to  proceed  in  t'he  order  following.     Firsts  to  speak  to  the 
impenitent,  unconverted  sinners,  who  are  not  yet  so  much 
as  purposing  to  turn ;  or  at  least  are  not  setting  about  the 
Mrork.     And  with  these,  I  thought,  a  wakening  persuasive 
vras  a  more  necessary  means  than  mere  directions  \  fot  dv- 
itectioas  suppose  men  willing  to  obey  tViem.    'BxslX.  XJsv^  ^«t- 


CCCXXXii  PREFACE. 

sons  that  we  have  first  to  deal  with,  are  wilful  and  asleep  in 
sin,  and  as  men  that  are  past  feeling,  having  given  them- 
selves over  to  sin  with  greediness.  My  next  work  must  be 
for  those  that  have  some  purposes  to  turn,  and  are  about 
the  work,  to  direct  them  for  a  thorough  and  a  true  conver- 
sion, that  they  miscarry  not  in  the  birth.  The  third  part 
must  be  directions  for  the  younger  and  weaker  sort  of 
Christians,  that  they  may  be  established,  built  up,  ^nd 
persevere.  The  fourth  part,  directions  for  lapsed  and  back- 
sliding Christians,  for  their  safe  recovery.  Besides  these, 
there  is  intended  some  short  persuasions  and  directions 
against  some  special  errors  of  the  times,  and  against  some 
common,  killing  sins.  As  for  directions  to  doubting,  trou- 
bled consciences,  that  is  done  already.  And  the  strong  I 
shall  not  write  directions  for,  because  they  are  so  much 
taught  of  Ood  already.  And  then  the  last  part  is  intended 
more  especially  for  families,  as  such,  directing  the  several 
relations  in  their  duties.  Some  of  these  are  already  written. 
Whether  I  shall  have  life  and  leisure  for  the  rest,  God  only 
knoweth ;  and  therefore  I  shall  publish  the  seveial  parts  by 
themselves,  as  I  write  them.  And  the  rather  because  they 
are  intended  for  men  of  different  states,  and  because  I  would 
not  deter  them  by  the  bulk  or  price,  from  reading  what  is 
written  for  their  benefit.  The  use  that  this  part  is  publish- 
ed for,  is,  1.  For  masters  and  parents  to  read  often  in  their 
families,  if  they  have  servants  or  children  that  are  yet  un- 
converted. 2.  For  all  such  unconverted  persons  to  read  and 
consider  of  themselves.  3.  For  the  richer  sort,  that  have 
any  pity  on  such  miserable  souls,  to  give  to  the  unsanctified 
that  need  them,  (if  they  have  not  fitter  at  hand  to  use  and 
give).  The  Lord  awake  us  to  work  while  it  is  day,  for  the 
saving  of  our  own  and  others'  souls,  in  subserviency  to  the 
blessed  God,  the  Maker,  the  Redeemer,  and  the  Sanctifier 
of  souls. 

RICHARD  BAXTER. 

December  10,  1657. 


PREFACE.  CCCXXXU 


To  all  Unsanctified  Persons  that  shall  read  this  Book,  especially 
my  Hearers  in  the  Parish  of  Kidderminster. 


Men  and  Brethren, 

'he  eternal  God  that  made  you  for  life  everlasting,  and 
ath  redeemed  you  by  his  only  Son,  when  you  had  lost  it, 
ad  yourselves  ;  being  mindful  of  you  in  your  sin  and  mi- 
sry,  hath  indited  the  Gospel,  and  sealed  it  by  his  Spirit, 
ad  commanded  his  ministers  to  preach  it  to  the  world,  that 
Mcdon  being  freely  offered  you,  and  heaven  being  set  before 
on,  he  might  call  you  off  from  your  fleshly  pleasures,  and 
x>m  following  after  this  deceitful  world,  and  acquaint  you 
ith  the  life  you  were  creiated  and  redeemed  for,  before  you 
r0;  dead  and  past  remedy.  He  sendeth  you  not  prophets  or 
pestles,  that  receive  their  message  by  immediate  revelation, 
at  yet  he  calleth  you  by  his  ordinary  ministers,  who  are 
otnmissioned  by  him  to  preach  the  same  Gospel,  which 
fhrist  and  his  apostles  first  delivered.  The  Lord  standeth 
ver  you,  and  seeth  how  you  forget  him  and  your  latter 
ad,  and  how  light  you  make  of  everlasting  things,  as  men 
l^t  understand  not  what  they  have  to  do  or  suffer.  He 
Beth  how  bold  you  are  in  sin,  and  how  fearless  of  his  threat- 
aings,  and  how  careless  of  your  souls,  and  how  the  works  of 
ifidels  are  in  your  lives,  while  the  belief  of  Christians  is  in 
our  mouths.  He  seeth  the  dreadful  day  at  hand,  when 
our  sorrows  will  begin,  and  you  must  lament  all  this  with 
ruitless  cries  in  torment  and  desperation ;  and  then  the  re- 
Qembrance  of  your  folly  will  tear  your  hearts,  if  true  con- 
ersion  now  prevent  it  not.  In  compassion  of  your  sinful, 
aiserable  souls,  the  Lord  that  better  knows  your  case 
ban  you  can  know  it,  hath  made  it  our  duty  to  speak  to 
rou  in  his  name  %  and  to  tell  you  plainly  ot  yowt  ^\tv  ^\A 

•  i  Cor.  V.  19. 


CCCXXXIT  PREFACIS. 

misery,  and  what  will  be  your  end,  and  how  sad  a  change 
you  will  shortly  see,  if  yet  you  go  on  a  little  longer. 
Having  bought  you  at  so  dear  a  rate  as  the  blood  of  his  Son 
Jesus  Christ,  and  made  you  so  free  and  general  a  promise  of 
pardon,  and  grace,  and  everlasting  glory,  he  conmiandeth  ai 
to  tender  all  this  to  you,  as  the  gift  of  Qod,  and  to  entreat 
you  to  consider  of  the  necessity  and  worth  of  what  he  offer- 
eth.  He  seeth  and  pitieth  you,  while  you  are  drowned  in 
worldly  cares  and  pleasures,  and  eagerly  following  chUdish 
toys,  and  wasting  that  short  and  precious  time  for  a  thii^  of 
naught,  in  which  you  should  make  ready  for  aa  evedasting 
life,  and  therefore  he  hath  commanded  us  to  call  after  yon, 
and  to  tell  you  how  you  lose  your  labour,  and  are  aboni  to 
lose  your  souls,  and  to  tell  you  what  greaterand  better  tfaiagt 
you  might  certainly  have.  If  you  would  heiurken  t^  his  cdllK 
We  believe  and  obey  the  voice  of  Ood ;  and  come  iojoh  daily 
on  his  message,  who  hath  charged  us  to  preach  aad  beiDp 
staot  with  you  in  season,  and  out  oi  season,  and  to  liftqp 
our  voice  like  a  trumpet,  and  shew  you.  your  toansgressions 
and  your  sins  ^  But  woe  and  alas  !  'to  the  gri^of  our  sonb 
and  your  own  undoing,  you  stop  your  ears,  you  stiffen  year 
necks,  you  harden  your  hearts,  and  break  our  hearts,  and 
send  us  back  to  God  with  groans,  to  tell  him  that  we  have 
done  his  message,  but  can  do  no  good,  nor  scarcely  get  a 
sober  hearing.  O  that  our  eyes  were  as  a  fountain  of  tears, 
that  we  might  lament  our  ignorant,  careless  people  that  have 
Christ  before  them,  and  pardon,  and  life,  and  heavea  before 
them,  and  have  not  hearts  to  know  and  value  them  [  That 
ought  have  Christ,  and  grace,  and  glory,  as  well  as  otbefSi 
if  it  were  not  for  their  wilful  negligence  and  contempt.  0 
that  the  Lord  would  fill  our  hearts  with  more  compassion  to 
these  miserable  souls,  that  we>  might  cast  ourselves  even  at 
their  feet,  and  follow  them  to  their  houses,  and  speak  to 
them  with  our  bitter  tears.  For  long  have  we  preached  to 
many  of  them,  as  in  vain :  we  study  plainness  to  make  them 
understand,  and  many  of  them  will  not  understand  ns :  we 
study  piercing  words  to  make  them  feel,  but  they  will  not 
feel.  If  the  greatest  matters  would  work  with  them,  we 
should  awake  them.  If  the  sweetest  things  would  work,  we 
cHiould  entice  them,  aad  Nvm  \k%Yc  V^j^'axts.     If  the  moft 

*»  I«a.  Iv.  1— 3.  *  \wiAvVi\.\>*i«    %'VvRvA^;w 


PREFACE.  CCCXXXV 

ihejidful  thiagfi  would  work,  we  sKould  Skt  least  oilrigKt  them 
ttouBt  thiBir  wickedness.    If  truth  and  sincerity  would  take 
With  them,  we  should  soon  convince  them.    If  the  God  that 
HoLde  them»  an4  the  Christ  that  bought  them  might  be  heard, 
Ae  case  would  soon  be  altered  with  thenv*    If  Scripture 
Kight  be  heard,  we  should  soon  prevail.    If  reason,  even  the 
lest  and  strongest  reason  might  be  heard>  we  should  not 
doubt  but  we  should  speedily  convince  them.    If  experience 
iiight  be  heard,  and  even  their  own  experience,  and  the  ex* 
perienoe  of  all  the  world,  the  matter  might  be  mended.    Yea^ 
if  t^e  conscience  within  them  might  be  heard,  the  cas^e  wQuld 
be  better  with  them  than  it  is.    But  if  nothing  can  be  heard, 
Miittt  then  shall  we  do  fur  them  ?    If  the  dreadful  God  of 
hfittven  be  slighted,  who  then  shaU  be  regarded  ?    If  thQ  in- 
estimable love  and  blood  of  a  Redeemer  be  made  light  of, 
trtuit  then  shall  be  valued?    If  heaven  have  no  desirable 
^l)6fy  wiiih  them,  and  everlasting  joys  be  worth  nothing  ;  if 
Ikmy  €^an  jest  at  hell,  and  dance  about  a  bottomless-pit,  and 
play  with  the  consuming  fire,  and  that  when  God  and  man 
da  warn  them  of  it :  what  shall  we  do  for  such  souls  as  these  ? 
.   Once  more  in  the  name  of  the  God  of  heaven,  I  shall  do 
Ihe  message  to  you  which  he  hath  commanded  us,  and  leave 
it  in  these  standing  lines  to  convert  you  or  condemn  you ; 
ta  change  you,  or  rise  up  in  judgm<ent  against  you,  and  to  be 
a  witoess  to  youv  faces,  that  once  you  had  a  serious  call  to 
tiitn.    Hear,  all  you  that  are  the  drudges  of  the  world,  and  the 
•fucvants  of  flesh  and  satan ;  that  spend  your  days  in  look- 
ing after  proaperit^  on  earth*  and  drown  your  consciences 
in  drinking,  and  gluttony,  and  idleness,  and  foolish  sports, 
tad  knaw  you  sin,  and  yet  will  sin„  as  if  you  set  God  at  de- 
fiancie,  and  bid  himi  do. his  worsts  and  spare  not*    Hearken 
all  you  that  mind  not  God,  and  have  no  heart  to  holy  things^ 
sad  feel  no  savour  in  the  word  or  worship  of  the  Lord,  or  in 
the  thoughts  or  mention  of  eternal  life ;  that  are  careless  of 
fom  immortal  souls,  and  never  bestowed  one  hour  in  in- 
quiring what  case  they  are  in,  whether  sanctified  or  unsanc- 
tified,  and  whether  you  are  ready  to  appear  before  the  Lord ! 
Hearken  all  you  that  by  sinning  in  the  light,  have  sinned 
|ouiselves  into  atheism;  and  infidelity,  and  do  not  believe 
ihe  word  of  God.    "  He  that  hath  an  eat  to  \vbax>  \!eX.\k\xsv 
bear''  the  gracious  and  yet  dreadful  caU  of  God\    ^\^  «^^ 


CCCXXXVl  PREFACE. 

is  all  this  while  upon  you^  your  sins  are  registered^  and  you 
shall  surely  hear  of  them  again  ;  Ood  keepeth  the  book 
now  ;  and  he  will  write  it  upon  your  consciences  with  his 
terrors ;    and  then  you  also  shall  keep  it  yourselves.    0 
sinners  !  that  you  knew  but  what  you  are  doing !     And  who 
you  are  all  this  while  offending !     The  sun  itself  is  darkness 
before  the  glory  of  that  Majesty  which  you  daily  abuse  and 
carelessly  provoke.     The  sinning  angels  were  not  able  to 
stand  before  him,  but  were  cast  down  to  be  tormented  with 
devils.     And  dare  such  silly  worms  as  you  so  carelessly  of- 
fend, and  set  yourselves  against  your  Maker !     O  that  you 
did  but  a  little  know  what  a  case  that  wretched  soul  is  in, 
that  hath  engaged  the  living  God  against  him !     The  word 
of  his  mouth  that  made  thee  can  unmake  thee ;  a  frown  of 
his  face  will  cut  thee  off,  and  cast  thee  out  into  utter  dark- 
ness :  how  eager  are  the  devils  to  be  doing  with  thee  that 
have  tempted  thee,  and  do  but  wait  for  the  word  from  God 
to  take  and  use  thee  as  their  own  !     And  then  in  a  moment 
thou  wilt  be  in  hell.     If  God  be  against  thee,  all  things  are 
against  thee.    This  world  is  but  thy  prison  for  all  thatthon 
so  lovest  it :  thou  art  but  reserved  in  it  to  the  day  of  wrath  ^. 
The  Judge  is  coming,  thy  soul  is  even  going :  yea,  a  little 
while  and  thy  friends  shall  say  of  thee,  '  He  is  dead  ;'  and 
thou  shalt  see  the  things  that  thou  dost  now  despise,  and  . 
feel  what  now  tii.ou  wilt  jj^dt  believe.     Death  will  bring  sach 
an  argument  as  thou  canst  not  answer:  an  argument  that 
shall  effectually  confute  thy  cavils  against  the  word  and  ways 
of  God,  and  all  thy  self-conceited  dotages:  and;  then  how 
soon  will  thy  mind  <b6  changed !    Then  be  an  unbeliever  if 
thou  canst !      Stand  then  to  all  thy  former  words  which 
thou  wast  wont  to  utter  against  the  Scriptures,  or  against  a 
holy  and  heavenly  life !     Make  good  that  cause  then  before 
the   Lord,  which  thou  wast  wont  to  plead  against  thy 
teachers,  and  against  the  people  that  feared  God.      Then 
stand  to  thy  old  opinions,  isoid  contemptuous  thoughts  of  the 
diligence  of  the  saints.     Mak^  ready  now  thy  strongest  rea- 
sons, aiid  stand  up  then  before  Aie  Judge,  and  plead  like  a 
man,  for  thy  fleshly,  thy  worldly,  and  ungodly  life ;  but 
know  that  thou  must  have  one  to  plead  with  thee,  that  will 
nik  be  outfaced  by  thee,  uoi  ao  i^^l^  r^Mt  off  as  we  thy  fel- 


PREFACE.  CCCXXXVll 

low  creatures.  O  poor  deceived,  wretched  soul !  there  is 
nothing  but  a  slender  veil  of  flesh  betwixt  thee  and  that 
amazing  sight,  which  will  quickly  silence  thee  and  turn  thy 
tune,  and  make  thee  of  another  mind  !  As  soon  as  death 
has  drawn  this  curtain,  thou  shalt  see  that  which  will  quickly 
leave  thee  speechless.  And  how  quickly  will  that  day  and 
hour  come !  When  thou  hast  had  but  a  few  more  merry 
hours,  and  but  a  few  more  pleasant  draughts  and  morsels, 
and  a  little  more  of  the  honours  and  riches  of  the  world,  thy 
portion  will  be  spent,  and  thy  pleasures  ended,  and  all  is 
then  gone  that  thou  settest  thy  heart  upon,  of  all  that  dioa 
Boldest  thy  Saviour  and  salvation  for,  there  is  nothing  left 
but  the  heavy  reckoning.  As  a  thief  that  sits  merrily  spend- 
ing the  money  in  an  alehouse  which  he  hath  stolen,  when 
men  are  riding  in  post  haste  to  apprehend  him :  so  it  is  with 
you ;  while  you  are  drowned  in  cares  or  fleshly  pleasures, 
and  making  merry  with  your  own  shame,  death  is  coming 
in  post  haste  to  seize  upon  you  and  caiTy  your  souls  to  such 
a  place  and  state,  as  now  you  little  know  or  think  of.  Sup- 
pose when  you  are  bold  and  busy  in  your  sin,  that  a  mes- 
senger were  but  coming  post  from  London  to  apprehend  you, 
and  take  away  your  life,  though  you  saw  him  not :  yet  if  you 
knew  of  his  coming  it  would  mar  your  mirth,  and  you  would 
be  thinking  of  the  haste  he  makes,  and  hearkening  when  he 
knocketh  at  your  door.  O  that  ye  could  but  see  what  haste 
death  makes,  though  yet  it  hath  not  overtaken  you!  No 
post  so  swifb !  No  messenger  more  sure !  As  sure  as  the 
sun  will  be  with  you  in  the  morning,  though  it  hath  many 
thousand,  and  hundred  thousand  miles  to  go  in  the  night: 
so  sure  will  death  be  quickly  with  you,  and  then  where  is 
your  sport  and  pleasure  ?  Then  will  you  jest  and  brave  it 
out?  Then  will  you  jeer  at  them  that  warned  you?  Then 
is  it  better  to  be  a  believing  saint,  or  a  sensual  worldling  ? 
And  then  whose  shall  all  those  things  be  that  you  have  ga- 
thered^? Do  you  not  observe  that  days  and  weeks  are 
quickly  gone,  and  nights  and  mornings  come  apace,  and 
speedily  succeed  each  other?  You  sleep,  but  "your  dam- 
nation slumbereth  not ;"  you  linger,  "  but  your  judgment 
this  long  time  lingereth  not  ^ ;"  to  which  you  are  reserved 
for  punishment  s.    "  O  that  you  were  wise  to  understand  this, 

•  Luke  xii.  19—21.  ^  «  Pet.  ii.  3-r^5.  «  2  Pet.  8, 9. 

VOL.    VII.  Z 


CCCXXXVm  PREFACE. 

and  that  you  did  consider  your'  latter  end  **."  "  He  that 
hath  an  car  to  hear,  kt  him  hear"  the  call  of  God  in  this  day 
of  his  salvation. 

O  careless  sinners,  that  you  did  but  know  the  love  that 
you  unthankiblly  neglect,  and  the  preciousness  of  the  blood 
of  Christ  which  you  despise !  O  that  you  did  but  know  the 
riches  of  the  Gospel !  O  that  you  did  but  know  a  little  the 
certainty,  and  the  glory,  and  blessedness  of  that  everlastr 
ing'life,  which  now  you  will  not  set  your  hearts  upon^  nor 
be  persuaded  fitst  and  diligently  to  seek*.  Did  you  but 
know  the  endless  life  with  God  which  you  now  neglect,  bow 
quickly  would  you  cast  away  your  sin !  How  quickly  would 
you  change  your  mind  and  life,  your  course  and  company, 
and  turn  the  streams  of  your  affections,  and  lay  out  your 
care  another  way !  How  resolutely  would  you  scorn  to  yield 
to  such  temptations  as  now  deceive  y€fu,  and  carry{y.(m  away ! 
How  zealously  would  you  bestir  yourselves  for  Uifitt  most 
blessed  li£e !  How  earnest  would  yott  be  with  God  in  prayei! 
How  >diligent  in  hearing,  learning,  and  inquiring !  How 
serious  in  meditating  on  the  laws  of  God*" !  How  feavful  of 
sinning  in  thought,  word,  or  deed!  And  how  careftd^te 
please  God  and  grow  in  holiness  !  Oi  what  a  changed  peo- 
ple would  yott  be  !  And  why  should  not  the  certain  word 
of  God  be  believed,- and  prevail  with  you,  which  openeth  i6 
you  these  gl6rious  and  eternal  things  ?  Yea>  let  me  tell  yoQ» 
that  even  here  upon  earth,  you  little  know  the  differends  be* 
tween  the  life  you  refuse  and  the  life  you  choose.  The 
sanctified  are  conversing  with  God,  when  you  seeuf^ce  dare 
think  of  him,  and  when  you  are  conversing  but  with  earth 
and  flesh,  their  conversation  is  in  heaven,  when  you  are  niter 
strangers  to  it,  and  your  belly  is  your  god,  and  you  are  mind- 
ing earthly  things  K  They  are  Seeking  after  the  face  of  God 
wh«n  you  seek  for  nothing  higher  than  this  world,:  They 
are  busily  laying  out  for  an  endless  life,  where  they  shall  be 
equal  with  the  angels  °*,  when  you  are  taken  up  with  a  sha* 
dow>  and  a  transitory  thing  of  naught.  How  low  and  base 
is  your  earthly,  fleshly,  sinful  life,  in  comparison  of  the  noble, 
spiritual  life  of  true  believers?  Many  a  time  have  I  looked 
on  such  men  with  grief  and  pity  to  see  them  trudge  ib««t 

^  Deut.  xxxii.  20.  M\iiVj.iC\.6,     iC\\.  1^.    "^VdXl.  vv.Vci, 


PHBFACB.  CCCXXXIX 

the  worlds  and  spend  their  lives,  care,  and  labour  for  nothing 
but  a  littk  food  and  raiment,  or  a  little  fading  pelf,  or  fleshly 
pleaisures,  or  empty  honours,  as  if  they  had  no  higher  thing 
to  mind.  What  difference  is  there  between  the  live^of  these 
men,  and  of  the  beasts  that  perish,  that  spend  their  time  in 
working,  and  eating,  and  living,  but  that  they  may  live) 
They  taste  not  of  the  inward  heavenly  pleasures  Mrhich  be* 
Uer^rs  taste  and  live  upon.  I  had  rather  have  a  little  of  theiv 
comfort,  which  the  forethoughts  of  their  heavenly  inheri^- 
tance  doth  afford  them,  though  I  had  all  their  scorn,  and 
sufferings  with  them,  than  to  have  all  your  pleasures  and 
treacherous  prosperities ;  I  would  not  have  one  of  your  se- 
er6t  gripes  and  pangs  of  conscience,  dark  and  dreadftd 
dioughts  of  death  and  the  life  to  come,  for  all  that  ever  the 
world  hath  done  for  you  or  all  that  you  should  reasonlibly 
hope  that  it  should  do.  If  I  were  in  your  unconverted,  ear* 
aal  state,  and  knew  but  what  I  know,  believed  but  what  I 
now  believe,  methinks  my  life  would  be  a  foretaste  of  hell. 
How  oft  should  I  be  thinking  of  the  terrors  of  the  Lord^ 
ttid  of  the  dismal  day  that  is  hasting  on !  Sure  death  and 
hell  would  be  still  before  me.  I  should  think  of  them  by 
day,  and  dream  of  them  by  night ;  I  should  lie  down  iufear, 
and  rise  in  fear,  and  live  in  fear,  lest  death  should  come  be- 
f<KPe  I  were  converted  :  I  should  have  small  felicity  in  any 
Ijftii^'Chait  I  p<>ssessed,  and  little  pleasure  in  any  company, 
iarid  little  joy  in  any  thing  in  the  world,  as  long  as  I  knew 
n^elf  to  be  under  the  curse  and  wrath  of  God:  I  should 
slill  be  afraid  of  hearing  that  voice,  ''  Thou  fool,  this  night 
shall  thy  soul  be  required  of  thee  ^J'  And  that  fearful  seat- 
tence  would  be  written  upon  my  conacience ;  '*  There  is  no 
peace,  saith  my  God,  to  the  Wick^°."  O  poor  sinner!  it 
is  a  more  joyful  life  than  this  that  you  niight'  live,  if  you 
were  but  willing,  but  truly  willing  to  hearken  to  Christ,  and 
to  come  home  to  Gt)d.  You  might  then  draw  near  to  God 
mtk  boldn^ers,  and  call  him  your  Fatiier,  and  comfortably 
tmst  him  with  your  souls  and  bodies.  If  you  look  upon  pro*- 
mises,  you  may  say,  '  They  are  all  mine  ;'  if  upon  the  cursa, 
you  may  say,  *  From  this  I  am  delivered.*  When  you  read 
tile  law,  you  may  see  what  you  are  saved  from :  when  you 
reibd  the  Gospel,  you  may  see  him  that  tedeeta^A.  '^om,  %sA 

»  Luke  xiL  SO.  o  ig^.  xltiu.  %%,    Wu.  ^V. 


CCCXl  PREFACE. 

see  the  course  of  his  love,  and  holy  life,  and  sufferings,  and 
trace  him  in  his  temptations,  tears,  and  blood,  in  the  work 
of  your  salvation.     You  may  see  deaUi  conquered,  and  hea- 
ven opened,  and  your  resurrection  and  glorification  prpvided 
for,  in  the  resurrection  and  glorification  of  your  Lord.    If 
you  look  on  the  saints,  you  may  say, '  They  are  my  brethren 
and  companions.'     If  on  the  unsanctified,  you  may  rejoice 
to  Uiink  that  you  are  saved  from  Uiat  state.     If  you  look 
upon  the  heavens,  the  sun,  and  moon,  and  stars  innumera- 
ble, you  may  think  and  say,  *  My  Father's  face  is  infinitely 
more  glorious ;   it  is  higher  matters  that  he  hath  prepared 
for  his  saints.    Yonder  is  but  the  outward  court  of  heaven. 
The  blessedness  that  he  hath  promised  me,  is  so  much 
higher,  that  flesh  and  blood  cannot  behold  it/    If  you  think 
of  the  grave  you  may  remember  that  the  glorified  spirit,  a 
living  Head,  and  a  loving  Father,  have  all  so  near  relation 
to  your  dust,  that  it  cannot  be  forgotten  or  neglected ;  but 
will  more  certainly  revive  than  the  plants  and  flowers  in  the 
spring ;  because  the  soul  is  still  alive,  that  is  the  root  of  the 
body,  and  Christ  is  alive,  that  is  the  root  of  boUi.     Even 
death,  which  is  the  king  of  fears,  may  be  remembered  and 
entertained  with  joy,  as  being  the  day  of  your  deliverance 
from  the  remnants  of  sin  and  sorrow,  and  the  day  which  you 
believed,  and  hoped,  and  waited  for,  when  you  shall  see  the 
blessed  things  which  you  have  heard  of,  and  shall  find  by 
present  joyful  experience,  what  it  was  to  choose  the  better 
part,  and  be  a  sincere  believing  saint.    What  say  you  sirs  ? 
is  not  this  a  more  delightinl  life,  to  be  assured  of  salvation, 
and  ready  to  die,  than  to  live  as  the  ungodly,  that  have  their 
hearts  **  overcharged  with  surfeiting  and  drunkenness,  and 
Uie  cares  of  this  life,  and  so  that  day  comes  upon  them  un- 
awares p.''    Might  you  :> not  live  a  comfortable  life,  if  once 
you  were  made  the  heirs  of  heaven,  and  sure  to  be  saved 
when  you  leave  the  world  ?      O  look  about  you  then,  and 
think  what  you  do,  and  cast  not  away  such  hopes  as  these 
for  very  nothing.    The  flesh  and  world  can  give  you  no 
AXkch  hopes  or  comforts. 

And  besides  all  the  misery  that  you  bring  upon  your- 
seWes,  you  are  the  troublers  of  others  as  long  as  you  are  un- 
coBverted,     You  ttou\Ae  Tavi^\^T^t&%»  ia  rule  you  by  their 

V  iAxV<;  xiv.  *i^.  oCk. 


PREFACE.  ecCXli 

laws.  You  trouble  ministers,  by  resisting  the  light  and 
guidance  which  they  offer  you  :  your  sin  and  misery  is  the 
greatest  grief  and  trouble  to  them  in  the  world.  You  trou- 
ble the  commonwealth,  and  draw  the  judgments  of  God  upon 
us :  it  is  you  that  most  disturb  the  holy  peace  and  order  of 
the  churches,  and  hinder  our  union  and  reformation,  and  are 
the  shame  and  trouble  of  the  churches  where  you  intrude, 
and  of  all  the  places  where  you  are.  Ah,  Lord  !  how  heavy 
and  sad  a  case  is  this,  that  even  in  England,  where  the  Gos- 
pel doth  abound  above  any  other  nation  in  the  world ;  where 
teaching  is  so  plain  and  common,  and  all  the  helps  we  can 
desire  are  at  hand,  when  the  sword  hath  been  hewing  us, 
and  judgment  haUi  run  as  a  fire  through  the  land  :  when'de- 
fiverances  have  relieved  us,  and  so  many  admirable  mercies 
have  engaged  us  to  God,  and  to  the  Gospel,  and  to  an  holy 
life ;  that  yet  after  all  this  our  cities,  and  towns,  and  coun- 
tries, shall  abound  with  multitudes  of  unsanctified  men,  and 
swarm  with  so  much  sensuality,  as  every  where  to  our  grief  ^ 
.we  see.  One  would  have  thought,  that  after  all  this  light, 
and  all  this  experience,  and  all  these  judgments  and  mer- 
cies of  God,  the  people  of  this  nation  should  have  joined  to- 
gether, as  one  man,  to  turn  to  the  Lord ;  and  should  have 
Qome  to  their  godly  teachers,  and  lamented  all  their  former 
sins,  and  desired  them  to  join  with  them  in  public  humilia- 
tion to  confess  them  openly,  and  beg  pardon  of  them  from 
.the  Lord,  and  should  have  craved  their  instruction  for  the 
.time  to  come,  and  be  glad  to  be  ruled  by  the  spirit  within, 
and  the.  ministers  of  Christ  without,  according  to  the  Word 
•of  God.  One  would  think,  that  after  such  rieason  and 
Scripture  evidence  as  they  hear ;  and  after  all  these  meauB 
and  mercies,  there  should  not  be  an  ungodly  person  left 
among  us,  nor  a  worldling,  nor  a  drunkard,  or  abater  of  re- 
formation, or  an  enemy  to  holiness,  be  found  in  all  our 
towns  or  countries.  If  we  be  not  all  agreed  about  some  ce- 
remonies or  forms  of  government,  one  would  think  Uiat, 
before  this,  we  should  have  been  all  agreed  to  live  a  holy 
and  heavenly  life,  in  obedience  to  God,  his  word  and  mi- 
.nisters,  and  in  love  and  peace  with  one  another.  But,  alas ! 
how'^far  are  our  people  from  this  course  !  Most  of  them,  in 
most  places,  do  set  their  hearts  on  earthly  things,  and  seek 
not  Brst  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  the  r\ghleo\3L^we«iV»V>Ci<e.\^^S.» 


CCCXlii  PREFACE. 

but  look  at  'faolin^fto  «s  a  needless  thing;  thenar  fiEmiliea  are 
fyrayerless,  or  else  a  few  heartless,  lifeless  ^orde  miiBt  serre 
instead  of  hearty,  fervent,  daily  prayer;  their  children  are 
not  tdught  the  knowledge  of  Christ,  and  the  corenant  of 
grace,  nor  brought  up  in  the  nurture  of  the  Lord,  though 
they  falsely  promised  tliis  in  their  baptism.    They  instruct 
not  Iheir  servants  in  the  matters  of  salvation ;  but  so  their 
work  be  done  they  care  not.    There  are  more  oatihi^,  and 
curses,  and  ribald  and  railing  speeches  in  their  families,  than 
gracious  words  that  tend  to  edification.      Hdw  few  are  th^ 
fkmilies  that  fear  the  Lord,  and  inquire  after  his  word  and 
ministers,  how  they  should  live,  and  what  they  should  do; 
and  are  willing  to  be  taught  and  ruled,  and  that  heartily 
look  after  everlasting  life  !     And  those  fe^  that  Ood  hadi 
made  bo  happy,  are  commonly  the  bye  word  of  Uieir  fieigli- 
bours  ;  when  we  see  some  live  in  drunketmeis,  and  some  in 
pride  and  worldliness,  and  most  of  them  have  little  care  of 
tiieir  salvation,  though  the  c^use  be  gross,  and  past  all  con- 
troversy, yet  will  they  hardly  be  convinced  of  Aeir  misery, 
and  more  hardly  recovered  and  reformed ;  but  when  we  have 
done  all  that  we  are  able;  to  save  them  from  their  sins,  we 
leave  them,  most  of  them,  as  we  find  them.    And  if,  eo- 
cording  to  the  law  of  God,  we  cast  them  out  of  the  com" 
munion  of  the  church,  when  they  have  obstinately  rejected 
all  our  admonitions,  they  rage  at  us  as  if  we  were  their 
enemies,  and  their  hearts  are  filled  with  maUce  against  as, 
and  they  will  sooner  set  themselves  against  the  Lord,  and 
htslaws>  and  church,  and  ministers,  than  against  their  deadly 
sins.    This  is  the  doleful  case  of  England ;  we  have  magis- 
trates that  countenance  the  ways  of  godliness,  and  a  happy 
op{yortunity  for  unity  and  reformation  is  before  ns-;  and 
faithful  ministers  long  to  see  the  right  ordering  of  the 
church,  and  of  the  ordinances  of  God ;  but  the  power  of  siii 
in  our  people  doth  frustrate  almost  all.     No  where  almoe^ 
can  a  faithful  minister  set  up  the  unquestionable  discipline 
of  Christ,  or  put  back  the  most  scandalous,  impenitent  sin- 
ners from  the  communion  of  the  church,  and  participation 
of  the  sacrament,  but  the  most  of  the  people  rail  at  them, 
and   revile  them :    as  if  these  ignorant,  careless  souls  were 
iviser  than  their  teachers,  or  than  God  himself;  and  fitter  to 
rule  the  church  than  they.     And  thus  in  the  day  of  our  vi- 


PBEFACR.  OCCXiiii 

AitaAian,  mhem  Ood  calls  upon  us  to  reform  hia  cburoh, 
though  magistrates  seem  willing,  and  faithful  minisiers  are 
willing,  yet  are  the  multitude  of  the  people  still  unwilling  ; 
and  sin  hath  so  blinded  them,  and  hardened  their  hearts, 
that  even  in  these  days  of  light  and  grace,  they  were  the  ob- 
stinate onemies  of  light  and  grace,  and  will  not  be  brought 
by  the  calls  of  God,  to  see  their  folly,  and  know  whait  is 
for  their  good.     O  that  the  people  of  England  knew,  "  at 
least  in  this  their  day,  the  things  that  belong  unto  their 
peace,  before  they  ace  hid  from  their  eyes  "^ !"     O  foolish  and 
miserable  souls  I  who  hath  bewitched "  your  minds  into  such 
■madness,  and  your  hearts  into  such  deadness,  that  you 
should  be  such  mortal  enemies  to  yourselves,  and  go  on  so 
obstinately  towards  damnation,  tjiat  neither  the  word  of  God, 
nor  the  persuasions  of  men  can  change  your  mindd,  or  hold 
•your  hands,  or  atop  you  till  you  are  past  remedy  !    Well, 
sinners !  this  life  will  not  last  always ;  this  patience  will  not 
wmit  upon  you  still.      Do  not  think  that  you  shall  abuse 
•your  Maker  and  Redeemer,  and  serve  his  enemies,  and  de- 
<bMe  your  souls,  and  trouble  the  world,  and  wrong  the 
ehurdi,  and  reproach  the  godly,  and  grieve  your  teachers, 
and  hinder  reformation,  and  all  this  upon  free  cost.    You 
know  not  yet  what  this  must  cost  you,  but  you  must  sbpitly 
know,  when  the  righteous  God  shall  take  you  in  hand>  who 
will  handle  you  in  another  manner  than  the  sharpest  ma- 
gistrates, or  the  plainest  dealing  pastors  did,  unless  you  pre- 
vent the  everlasting  torments  by  a  sound  conversion,  and  a 
•speedy  obeying  the  call  of  God.    ^'  He  that  hath  an  ear  to 
hear,  let  him  hear,''  while  mercy  hath  a  voice  to  call. 

One  desperate  objection  (which  I  have  after  touched,  but 
with  too  mu^  brevity,)  I  find  sticks  close  to  the  hearts  of 
many  <ungodly  men.  Thigy  think  that  God  doth  not.  so 
much  care  wlMit  men  think,  or  say>  or  do,  as  we  persuade 
tkem ;  and  therefore  they  care  %o  little  themselves.  For 
the  convincing  of  such  atheistical  men  as  these,  I  shall  pro- 
pound the  following  questions. 

1 .  Dost  thou  think  God  careth  whether  thou  be  a  man 
or  not  ?  If  not,  who  made  thee,  and  preserved  thee  ?  If  he 
do,  then  sure  he  careth  whether  thou  behave  thyself  as  a 
man.      No  man  is  so  foolish  as  to  make  any  instrument^ 

4  Lake  xix.  42.  '  Gal.  iii.  1. 


CCCXllV  PREFACE. 

build  a  house,  or  a  ship,  and  not  care,  when  he  hath  done, 
whether  it  be  good  for  the  use  he  made  it.     Do  not,  for 
shame  then,  impute  such  folly  to  the  God  of  wisdom,  as  if  he 
made  so  noble  a  creature  as  man,  and  endowed  him  with 
fiuch  noble  faculties,  and  all  for  nothing,  and  careth  not 
what  becometh  of  him  when  he  hath  done.    Why  should 
God  give  thee  a  mind  that  can  know  him,  and  a  heart  that 
can  love  him,  when  he  careth  not  whether  thou  know  him, 
and  love  him,  or  not  ?     Do  you  not  see,  that  in  the  course 
of  nature,  every  thing  is  fitted  to  its  use  ?    The  beasts  know 
not  God,  nor  are  capable  of  loving  him,  because  they  were 
made  for  no  such  use ;  but  thy  capacity  shews  that  then 
wast  made  for  God,  and  for  a  life  to  come. 

2.  Dost  thou  think  that  God  is  every  where  present,  and 
infinite,  and  all-sufficient  ?  If  not,  thou  dost  not  believe 
that  he  is  God,  and  it  is  unreasonable  to  imagine,  that  God 
hath  made  a  world  that  is  greater,  and  more  extensive  or 
comprehensive  than  himself!  For  none  can  communicate 
more  than  he  hath.  But  if  thou  art  forced  to  confess  that 
God  is  every  where,  and  as  sufficient  for  every  single  man, 
as  if  he  had  never  another  creature  to  regard,  thou  must 
needs  confess  then  that  he  is  not  careless  of  the  hearts  and 
ways  of  the  sons  of  men  :  for  they  are  things  that  are  still 
before  his  eyes.  It  is  base  and  blasphemous  thoughts  of 
God,  as  if  he  were  limited,  absent,  or  insufficient,  that  makes 
men  think  him  so  regardless  of  their  hearts  and  ways, 

3.  Dost  thou  think  that  God  careth  what  becomes  of 
thy  body  ?  Whether  thou  be  sick  or  well  ?  Whether  thou 
live  or  die  ?  If  not,  then  how  camest  thou  by  thy  life,  and 
health,  and  mercies  ?  If  they  came  from  any  other  foun- 
tain, tell  us  from  whence  :  is  it  not  to  God  that  thou  pray- 
est  for  thy  life  and  health?  Darest  thou  say  to  him^  *  I  will 
not  depend  upon  thee  ?  I  will  not  be  beholden  to  thee  for 
the  life  and  mercies  of  another  day  V  If  so,  then  thou  art  a 
blind  atheist.  But  if  thou  thinkest  he  cares  for  thy  body, 
canst  thou  think  he  cares  not  more  for  thy  soul  ?  If  he 
must  regard  to  furnish  thee  with  mercies,  he  will  sure  have 
a  regard  whether  thou  love  and  live  to  him  that  gave  them. 

4.  Dost  thou  believe  that  God  is  the  governor  of  the 
world,  or  not?  If  not,  then  there  can  be  no  rightful  go- 
vernment.    For  as  no  justice  of  peace  can  have  a  power. 


PREFACE.  CCCXlv 

}iit  from  the  sovereign ;  so  no  sovereign  can  have  power, 
)at  from  God ;  nor  be  a  lawful  governor,  but  under  him  : 
iid  then  all  the  world  would  be  turned  into  confusion.  But 
fthou  must  needs  confess  that  God  is  the  Governor  of  the 
^orld,  what  an  unwise,  unrighteous  governor  wouldst  thou 
lake  him,  if  thou  thinkest  that  he  regardeth  not  the  hearts 
id  ways  of  those  whom  he  doth  govern  !  This  still  is  but 
>  deny  him  to  be  God. 

6.  If  God  do  not  care  so  much  what  is  in  our  hearts,  or 
hat  we  do,  why  then  should  he  make  a  law  for  our  hearts, 
id  words,  and  ways  ?  Would  he  command  us  that  which 
3  doth  not  care  for?  Would  he  so  strictly  forbid  sin,  if  he 
ere  indifferent  whether  we  sin  or  not?  Would  he  promise 
vernal  life  to  the  holy  and  obedient,  if  he  cared  not  whether 
e  be  holy  and  obedient,  or  no  ?  Would  he  threaten  hell 
»  all  that  are  ungodly,  if  he  cared  not  whether  we  are  godly 
r  not  ?  Darest  thou  say,  that  the  Almighty,  Holy  God  is 
in  to  rule  the  world  by  a  lie,  and  to  deceive  men  into 
bedience  ?  Yea,  the  very  law  of  nature  itself,  doth  contain 
ot  only  precepts  of  our  duty,  but  the  hopes  and  fears  of 
be  life  to  come,  without  which  the  world  could  not  be  go- 
verned :  and  certainly  they  are  no  deceits,  by  which  an  i^- 
inite  wisdom,  and  power,  and  goodness,  doth  govern  the 
^orld. 

&  If  God  did  not  much  regard  our  hearts  and  lives,  why 
loth  he  make  all  the  world  to  be  our  servants  ?  Doth  he 
give  us  the  sun,  and  moon,  and  stars,  the  earth,  and  all  crea- 
tures to  attend  us,  and  serve  us  with  their  lives  and  virtues, 
and  yet  doth  he  not  care  for  our  hearts  or  service  ?  This  is 
as  foolish  as  to  say,  that  he  hath  made  all  the  world  in  vain, 
and  careth  not  for  it,  now  he  hath  made  it. 

7.  If  he  cared  not  for  the  frame  of  our  hearts  and  lives, 
he  would  not  have  sent  his  Son  to  redeem  us,  and  to  cleanse 
08  from  iniquity,  and  sanctify  us  a  peculiar  people  to  him- 
self'. Surely  the  price  that  was  paid  for  sinners,  and  the 
wonderful  design  of  God  in  our  redemption,  doth  shew  that 
be  makes  not  light  of  sin,  and  that  he  is  wonderfully  in  love 
Hrith  holiness. 

8.  If  God  did  not  regard  our  hearts  and  lives,  he  would 
lot  have  made  it  the  office  of  his  ministers,  to  call  us  daily 
;o  repentance  and  a  holy  life ;  nor  commanded  them  to 

•  Tit.  ii.  14. 


CCCXhi  PREFACE- 

make  such  a  stir  mth  sinners  to  win  them  unto  God ;  ha 
would  not  have  appointed  all  his  ordinances,  public  and 
private,  also  to  this  end.     Doth  God  command  all  this  ado 
*  for  a  thing  he  regaixis  not  ? 

9.  Nor  would  he  punish  the  world  with  hell  hereafter,  or 
so  many  judgments  here,  as  thousands  feel,  if  he  cared  not 
what  they  think  or  do.  Methinks,  men  that  are  so  oft^ 
groaning  under  his  rod,  should  feel  that  he  looks  after  their 
hearts  and  ways. 

10.  And  how  can  the  Holy  Ghost  be  our  Sanctifier,  if 
God  be  so  indifferent,  whether  we  be  clean  or  unclean  ?  Dan 
you  think  that  the  Holy  Ghost  doth  take  upon  him  a  need- 
less work? 

11.  Methinks  you  might  perceive,  even  in  the  malice  of 
the  tempter,  that  God  is  holy,  and  hateth  iniquity ;  and  his 
word  is  true,  that  telleth  us  of  the  eternal  punishment  of  sis. 
The  Scripture  tells  us  of  the  angels'  fall^  and  that  many  of 
them  are  become  devils  by  their  sin,  and  are  malicious  one*' 
mies  of  man's  salvation.    And  do  you  not  easily  peprceive  k 
to  be  true  ?    How  came  they  else  to  be  su^h  importunate 
tempters  of  men,  which  we  feel,  alas  !  by  too  much  expe^  |[| 
rience  ?     Or  if  this  evidence  be  not  palpaUe  enough  to  cod- 
vince  the  infidel ;  how  come  they  to  make  so  many  bargains 
with  conjurers  and  witches,  to  draw  them  from  God  and 
salvation,  as  they  have  done  'i      How  come  they  to  appear 
in  terrible  shapes  to  so  many  as  they  have  done,  and  stiil 
upon  designs  that  declare  their  own  dejected,  base  condi- 
tion, and  their  enmity  to  God  and  man,  and  their  eager  de- 
sire to  engage  men  in  a  way  of  sin  ?     If  any  infidel  will  not 
believe  that  really  there  have  been  witches  and  apparitionsi 
and  consequently  that  there  are  devils,  who  are  nuserabky 
malicious  spirits,  who  by  sin  are  cast  out  of  the  favour  of 
God,  and  would  draw  men  into  their  miserable  case ;  hi 
them  come  and  reason  the  case  with  me,  and  I  shall  quickly 
tell  them  of  so  many  sure  and  undeniable  instances,  and  gife 
them  so  much  proof  of  the  truth  of  it,  as  shall  leave  them  no- 
thing to  say  against  it,  unless  they  will  still  say,  *  We  will 
not  believe.'     Yea,  so  much,  as  that  I  will  not  be  beholden 
to  the  vilest  atheist  or  infidel  to  believe  it,  if  he  will  not 
quite  renounce  his  reason,  but  give  it  leave  to  see  the  light. 

12.  Lastly,  iC  yet  you  VKva^  \)a.^X»  ^^  Vj3ftfc  ^vereigo 
RuJer  of  the  world,  t\vat  v^  ^^eiy  >N\vfe\^  ^\^'a»^\L\.,  ^sA^^x't- 


Ntfii^^tii  all)  d6l9t  tme-fto  littler  ^nt  m^fi^re,  or  what  they  do^ 
AAether  they  are  holy  or  uitboly^  obedient  or  disobedient  to 
Ik  laws ;  theii  methinks  that  you  yours^lves^  and  all  the  rest 
df  your  fellow-creatures,  should  little  care. 

Two  questions  therefore  I  must  propound  to  you : 
1.  Do  not  you  care  what  men  say  of  you,  or  do  to  you? 
Are  you  contented  that  men  slander  you,  and  abuse  you, 
or  set  your  houses  or  towns  on  fire,  or  destroy  your  cattle, 
or  wives  or  children,  and  imprison,  wound  or  kill  your-- 
rtves  ?  If  you  will  make  a  great  matter  what  men  say  or 
A>  against  you,  can  you  be  so  mad,  (for  it  is  no  better)  as 
to  think  that  the  omnipotent,  holy  God,  should  little  regard 
what  iB  said  or  done  against  himself,  and  against  his  sa- 
vants, and  that  by  such  silly  worms  as  men,  that  ate  his 
imkmaiiship  ?  Did  not  selfishness  make  you  blind  and 
partial,  you  would  know  that  one  sin  against  God,  deserves 
Mre  puniskmait  than  ten  thousand  thousand  times  as  much 
Igainst  Bueh  silly  things  as  you.  Do  you  make  no  matter 
hf  difference  betw^een  a  bad  servant  and  a  good?  an  obe* 
Heat  and  disobedient  child  ?  a  son  that  will  lay  down  hia 
life  for  you,  and  a  son  that  longs  for  your  death,  that  he 
■ay  have  your  land  ?  Between  a  faithful  friend  and  a  dead- 
hr  enemy  ?  If  you  do  not,  you  are  not  men,  but  something 
we  in  human  shape.  If  you  do,  then  you  are  somewhat 
m>T8e  than  men,  if  yet  you  would  have  the  blessed  God,  to 
ttake  no  great  difference  between  those  that  love  him  above 
d  the  world,  and  those  that  regard  him  not ;  between  the 
holy  and  unholy  soul. 

And  2.  I  would  ask  you  whether  you  would  have  the 
rulers  of  tlie  world  to  take  care  what  men  say  or  do,  or 
would  you  not  ?  If  not,  then  you  would  have  all  the  worid 
tamed  loose,  and  you  would  have  every  man  that  is  poorer 
than  you,  have  leave  to  rob  you :  and  every  man  that  hateth 
you,  have  leave  to  beat,  or  kill  you;  and  every  man  that 
liketh  your  house,  or  lands,  or  goods,  or  cattle,  to  have 
leave  to  take  them  from  you ;  and  every  man  defile  your 
itivoB  01*  daughters,  that  hath  a  mind  to  it?  And  so  we 
i^ould  see  whither  it  is  that  infidelity  leads  men.  But  if 
you  like  not  this,  then  you  are  most  unreasonable,  if  you 
would  have  magistrates  to  be  regardful  of  men's  actioui&^^jvd 
not  God, '  If  magistrates  must  hang  men  for  'wxoTi^v[i?>^w^'^ 


: 


CCCxWiii  PREFACE. 

and  the  eteraal  Majesty  must  not  punish  them  for  wronging 
him»  and  breaking  his  laws«  which  is  infinitely  a  greater 
matter.  As  if  you  would  have  a  constable  punish  men,&|Ml 
the  king  or  judge,  to  have  no  regard  of  it.  For  kings  aie 
under  God,  as  constables  are  under  kings,  and  a  thousand 
fold  lower. 

The  truth  is,  wicked  men  are  fallen  so  far  from  Oodto 
themselves,  that  they  are  as  God's  to  themselves  in  thdc 
own  esteem,  and  besides  themselves  they  know  no  God|  1 
and  therefore  any  wrong  that  is  done  against  them,  or  any  | 
good  that  is  done  for  them,  they  would  have  regarded :  bit  j 
-the  wrong  and  disobedience  that  is  against  God^  they  wodU  1 
have  nothing  made  of  it.    And  they  have  such  narrow,  hlas-  J 
phemous  thoughts  of  God,  as  if  he  were  a  finite  creature  like  I 
themselves,  that  can  be  but  in  one  place  at  onoe,  that  malui  f 
them  so  blaspheme  his  providence,  and  think  he  minds  so 
good  or  evil,  and  will  not  regard  the  godly,  or  punish  tk 
ungodly,  but  were  like  the  idols  of  the  heathen,  that  ban 
eyes  and  see  not,  and  ears  that  hear  not,  and  hands  withoM 
an  executive  power.     But  when  the  memorial  book  of  God 
is  opened,  which  is  written  for  thqm  that  fear  the  Lord,  and 
think  upon  his  name ;  and  when  the  Lord  shall  say  of  them» 
**  These  are  mine,"  as  he  is  making  up  his  jewels,  and  spareth 
them,  as  a  man  spareth  his  son  that  serveth  him,  then  shaO 
these  infidels  return  to  their  wits,  and  the  righteous  shall 
return  from  their  fears  and  sufferings,  and  shall  discern  be- 
tween the  righteous  and  the  wicked,  between  those  that 
serve  God,  and  those  that  serve  him  not  ^ 

Another  objection  I  find  most  common  in  the  mouths  of  ^ 
the  ungodly,  especially  of  late  years  \  they  say, '  We  can  do 
nothing  without  God ;  we  cannot  have  grace,  if  God  will 
not  give  it  us ;  and  if  he  will,  we  shall  quickly  turn ;  if  be 
have  not  predestinated  us,  and  will  not  turn  us,  how  can  we  "^ 
turn  ourselves  or  be  saved?  It  is  not  in  him  that  wills,  or  \ 
in  him  that  runs.'     And  thus  they  think  they  are  excused.     \ 

I  have  answered  this  formerly,  and  in  this  book;  but  let    ^ 
me  now  say  thus  much.     L  Though  you  cannot  cure  your- 
selves, you  can  hurt  and  poison  yourselves  ;  it  is  God  that 
must  sanctify  your  hearts ;  but  who  corrupted  them  ?    Will    , 
you  wilfully  take  poison,  because  you  cannot  cure  your- 

»  Mai.  Hi.  16— 18. 


PREFACE.  CCCxlix 

tttyes?     Methinks  you  should  the  more  forbear  it:  you 
ttould  the  more  take  heed  of  sinning,  if  you  cannot  mend 
lAat  sin  doth  mar.    2.  Though  you  cannot  be  converted 
Inthout  the  special  grace  of  God,  yet  you  must  know,  that 
|Qod  giveth  his  grace  in  the  use  of  his  holy  means  which  he 
Bath  appointed  to  that  end  ;  and  common  grace  may  enable 
|ou  to  forbear  your  gross  sinning,  as  to  the  outward  act, 
iDid  to  use  those  means.     Can  you  truly  say,  that  you  do  as 
amch  as  you  are  able  to  do  ?    Are  you  not  able  to  go  by  an 
^  dehouse  door,  or  to  shut  your  mouths  and  keep  out  the 
llrink?     Or  to  forbear  the  company  that  hardeneth  you  to 
lin  ?     Are  you  not  able  to  go  hear  the  word,  and  think  of 
wiiat  you  heard  when  you  come  home  ?    And  to  consider 
tHth  yourselves  of  your  own  condition,  and  of  everlasting 
thhlgB  ?    Are  you  not  able  to  read  good  books,  from  day  to 
Arf,  at  least  on  the  Lord's  day,  and  to  converse  with  those 
,1liat  fear  the  Lord  ?    You  cannot  say  that  you  have  done 
^hat  you  are  able.      3.    And   therefore  you  must  know 
fhat  you  can  forfeit  the  grace  and  help  of  God,  by  your  wil- 
fitt  sinning  or  negligence,  though  you  cannot,  without  grace, 
tern  to  God.    If  you  will  not  do  what  you  can,  it  is  just 
frith  God  to  deny  you  that  grace  by  which  you  might  do 
litobre.    4.  And  for  God's  decrees,  you  must  know  that  they 
teparate  not  the  end  and  means,  but  tie  them  together. 
God  never  decreed  to  save  any  but  the  sanctified,  nor  to 
damn  any  but  the  unsanctified.    God  doth  as  truly  decree 
from  everlasting,  whether  your  land  this  year  shall  be  bar- 
ren, or  fruitful,  and  just  how  long  you  shall  live  in  the 
world,  as  he  hath  decreed,  whether  you  shall  be  saved  or 
not.     And  yet  you  would  think  that  man  but  a  fool,  that 
would  forbear  ploughing  and  sowing,  and  say,  ^  If  God  have 
decreed  tliat  my  ground  shall  bear  com,  it  will  bear  whether 
I  plough  and  sow  or  not.    If  God  have  decreed  that  I  shall 
live,  I  shall  live  whether  I  eat  or  not ;  but  if  he  have  not,  it 
is  not  eating  will  keep  me  alive.*    Do  you  know  how  to  an- 
swer such  a  man,  or  do  you  not  ?    If  you  do,  then  you  know 
how  to  answer  yourselves  ;  for  the  case  is  alike :  God's  de- 
cree is  as  peremptory  about  your  bodies  as  your  souls ;  if 
you  do  not  then  try  first  these  conclusions  upon  your  bo- 
dies, before  you  venture  to  try  them  on  your  souls ;  see  first 
whether  God  will  keep  you  alive  without  food  or  raiment. 


CCcl  PREFACE. 

and  whether  he  will  give  you  corn  without  tillage  and  la- 
boar,  and  whether  he  will  bring  you  to  your  journey's  end 
without  your  travel  or  carriage :  and  if  you  apeed  well  ia 
this,  then  try  whether  he  will  bring  you  to  heaven  withool 
your  diligent  use  of  means,  and  sit  down  and  say,  ^  We  cas^ 
not  sanctify  ourselves/ 

And  for  the  point  of  Freewill,  which  you  harp  so  long 
upon,  divines  are  not  so  much  di8agreed  about  it  as  yoi 
imagine.     Augustine  as  well  as  Pelagius,  Calvin  as  well  m 
ArminiuSy  the  Dominicans  as  well  as  the  Jesuits,  all  do  go* 
nerally  maintain,  that  man  hath  freewill ;  the  orthodox  uf, 
that  freewill  is  corrupted  and  disposed  to  evil.     Epiphanioi 
condemned  Origen  for  saying,  that  man  bad  lost  the  image 
of  God,  and  makes  it  a  point  of  heresy.     And  yet  one  SMf 
truly  say, '  That  man  hath  lost  God's  image ;'  and  anotkei 
may  truly  say,  '  That  he  hath  not  lost  it/    For  there  is  i 
twofold  image  of  God  on  man :  the  one  is  natural^  and  ihil 
is  our  reason  and  freewill,  and  tiiis  is  not  lost;  the  othev  ii 
qualitative  and  ethical,  and  this  is  our  hol^neiis,  and  thja  jt 
lost,  and  by  grace  res^tored.    No  man  of  brains  denietli^ 
that  a  man  hath  a  will  that  is  natuifd.lly  free ;-  it  is  free  firon 
violence,  and  it  is  a  self-determining  principle ;  but  it  is  9iA 
free  from  evil  dispositions.     It  is  habitually  averse  to  God 
and  holiness,  and  inclined  to  earthly,  fleshly  things.    It  if 
enslaved  by  a  sinful  bias.    This,  no  man,  methinks,  that  is  a 
Christian,  should  deny ;  and  of  the  aged,  I  Jiee  not   how  W 
infidel  can  deny  it.     Alas,  we  easily  confess  to  you,  .timt 
you  have  not  this  spiritual,  moral  freewill,  which; is  but  yow 
right  inclination,  and    your  habitual    wilUngni&sft   itqelf. 
If  you  had  a  will  that  were  freed   from  wicked   incluMr 
tions,    I  had  no   need    to    write    such    books   ai  tb^se 
to   persuade    you    to  be   willing   in  a  case   whic^   yofur 
own  salvation  lieth  on.    To  the  grief  of  our  souls,  we])te^ 
ceive  after  all  our  preachings  and  persuasions,  that  the  wkf 
godly  have  not  this  spiritual  freewill.     But  this  is  nothing 
but  your  willingness  itseff,  and  inclination  to  be  willing; 
and  therefore  the  want  of  it  is  so  far  from  excusing  yoii» 
that  the  more  you  want  it  (that  is,^  the  more  you  are  wilfal 
in  sin),  the  worse  you  are,  and  the  sorer  will  be  your  pu- 
nishment.    And  our  preaching  and  persuasions,  and  yoiff 
hearing  and  considering,  are  the  appointed  means  to  get 
this  moral  power  of  fteedom,  iVi^V.  \^  \.o  vaacke  you  truly  willing* 


■  * 

PREFACii.  CCcli 

Well  sirs,  I  have  but  three  requests  to  you,  and  I  have 
done :  First,  That  you  will  seriously  read  over  this  small 
treatise  ;  (and  if  you  have  such  that  need  it  in  your  fami- 
lies, that  you  read  it  over  and  over  to  them :  and  if  -those 
that  fear  God  would  go  now  and  then  to  their  ignorant 
neighbours,  and  read  this  or  some  othet  book  to  them  of 
|hi»  subject^  they  might  be  a  means  of  winning  of  souls). 
if  we  cannot  entreat  so  small  a  labour  of  men  fot  their  own 
Mdvation,  as  to  tead  such  shortinstructions  as  these,  they 
%$t  little  by  themselves,  and  will  most  justly  perish.     Se-^ 
^ndly.  When  you  have  read  over  this  book,  I  would  en-^ 
lipeat  you  to  go  done,  and  ponder  a  little  what  you  have 
tmd^  and  bethink  you,  as  in  the  sight  of  God,  whethei*  it 
IHerfiot  true,  and  do  not  nearly  touch  your  souls,  and  whe- 
tberit  be  not  time  for  you  to  look  about  you :  and  also  en- 
tipeat  that  you  will  fall  upon  your  knees  and  beseech  the 
liovd  thslt  he  will  open  your  eyes  to  understand  the  truth, 
m^  turn  your  heairts  to  the  love  of  God,  and  beg  of  him  all 
lliat  sftving  grace,  that  you  have  so  long  neglected,  and  fol- 
lONMT  it  on  from  day  to  day,  till  your  heartd  be  changed ;  and 
trithal,  that  you  will  go  to  your  pastors  (that  are  set  over 
JOKL9  to  take  care  of  the  health  and  safety  of  your  souls,  as 
plijirsioians  do  for  the  health  of  your  bodies)  and  desire  them 
to*  direct  you  what  course  to  take,  and  acquaint  them  with 
your  spiritual  estate,  that  you  may  have  the  benefit  of  their 
advice  and  ministerial  help.     Or  if  you  have,  not  a  faithful 
|My0tor  at  home^.make  use  of  some  other  in  so  great  a  need. 
Thirdly,  When  by  reading,  consideration,  prayer  and  mini^- 
toriftl  advice,  yon  ^aro  onee  acquainted  with  your  sin  and 
nisevyi.  with  youi^duty  and  remedy,  delay  not,  but  presently 
fbislJ&e  your  sinful  company  and  courses,  and  turn  unto 
Ged,  and  obey  his  call,' and  as  you  love  your  souls>  take 
head  that  yoti  go  noton  agfainst  so  loud  a  call  of  God,  and 
igianst  your  own  eonscienoe,  lest  it  go  worse  with  you.  in 
tte.  day  of  judgment,  than  with  Sodom  and  Gomorrah.     In- 
ffme  of  God,  as  a  man  that  is  willing  to  know  the  truth* 
tad  n€>tb6  a/ wilful  cheater  of  his  soul.    Search  the  Holy 
Saripluvcr  daily, :  and  Sfee  whether  these  things  be  so  or  not ; 
tiy  impartiaJily  whether  it  be  safer  to  tru^t  heaven  or  earth  ; 
and  whether  it  be  better  to  follow  God  or  man,  the  Spirit  or 
the  flesh  ;  and  better  to  live  in  holiness  or  sin.     And  whe- 


CCClti  PREFACE. 

ther  an  unganctified  estate  be  safe  for  you  to  abide  in  one 
day  longer ;  and  when  you  have  found  out  which  is  best, 
resolve  accordingly,  and  make  your  choice  without  any 
more  ado.  If  you  will  be  true  to  your  own  souls,  and  do 
not  love  everlasting  torments,  I  beseech  you,  as  from  the 
Lord,  that  you  will  but  take  this  reasonable  advice.  O  what 
happy  towns  and  countries,  and  what  a  happy  nation  might 
we  have,  if  we  could  but  persuade  our  neighbours  to  i^ee|| 
to  such  a  necessary  motion  I  What  joyful  men  would  dl 
faithful  ministers  be,  if  they  could  but  see  their  people  tmfy 
heavenly  and  holy  !  This  would  be  the  unity,  the  peaces 
the  safety,  the  glory  of  our  churches,  the  happiness  of  otf 
neighbours,  and  the  comfort  of  our  souls.  Then  how  coflh 
fortable  should  we  preach  absolution  and  peace  to  you,  airf 
deliver  the  sacraments,  which  are  the  seals  of  peace  to  yoii 
And  with  what  love  and  joy  might  we  live  among  you;  ai 
your  death-bed,  how  boldly  might  we  comfort  and  encoth 
rage  your  departing  souls  ;  and  at  your  burial,  how  comfol* 
tably  might  we  leave  you  in  the  grave,  in  expectation 
meet  your  soul  in  heaven,  and  to  see  your  bodies  raised  ta 
that  glory. 

But  if  still  the  most  of  you  will  go  on  in  a  careless,  ig% 
norant,  fleshly,  worldly,  or  unholy  life ;  and  all  our  desirei 
and  labours  cannot  so  far  prevail,  as  to  keep  you  from  thi 
wilful  damning  of  yourselves,  we  must  then  imitate  ouf 
Lord,  who  delighteth  himself  in  those  few  that  are  his  jew^ 
els,  and  the  little  flock  that  shall  receive  the  kingdom,  when 
the  most  shall  reap  the  misery  which  they  sowed.     In  oftp 
ture  excellent  things  are  few.    The  world  hath  not  many 
suns  or  moons  ;  it  is  but  a  little  of  the  earth  that  is  gold  of 
silver ;  princes  and  nobles  are  but  a  small  part  of  the  Boni 
of  men.     And  it  is  no  great  number  that  are  learned,  judi- 
cious  or  wise,  here  in  this  world*    And  therefore  the  gate 
being  strait,  and  the  way  narrow,  there  be  but  few  that  find 
salvation ;  yet  God  will  have  his  glory  and  pleasure  in  those 
few.     And  when  Christ''  shall  come  with  his  mighty  angek 
in  flaming  fire,  taking  vengeance  on  th^m  that  know  not 
God,  and  obey  not  the  Gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  his 
coming  will  be  glorified  in  his  saints,  and  admired  in  all 
true  believers  ^.*' 


PREFACE.  CCcliii 

And  for  the  rest^  as  God  the  Father  vouchsafed  to  Cre- 
te them,  and  God  the  Son  disdained  not  to  bear  the  penal- 
ly of  their  sins  upon  the  cross ;  and  did  not  judge  suoh  suf- 
srings  vain,  though  he  knew  that  by  refusing  the  sanctifir 
ation  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  they  would  finally  destroy  them- 
Aves  ;  so  we  that  are  his  ministers,  though  these  be  not 
iUhered,  judge  not  our  labour  wholly  lost.    See  Isa.  xlix.  6. 

Reader,  I  have  done  with  thee,  (when  thou  hast  perused 
Ids  book) ;  but  sin  hath  not  yet  done  with  thee  (even  those 
bat  thou  thoughtest  had  been  forgotten  long  ago),  and  satan 
lith  not  yet  done  with  thee  (though  now  he  be  out  of  sight) ; 
i|d  God  hath  not  yet  done  with  thee,  because  thou  wilt  not 
10  persuaded  to  have  done  with  deadly,  reigning  sin.  I 
Iftve  written  thee  this  persuasive,  as  one  that  is  going  into 
liether  world,  where  the  things  are  seen  that  I  here  speak 
it,  and  as  one  that  knoweth  thou  must  shortly  be  there  thy- 
irif.  As  ever  thou  wouldst  meet  me  with  comfort  before 
le  Lord  that  made  us  ;  as  ever  thou  wilt  escape  the  ever- 
teting  plagues  prepared  for  the  final  neglecters  of  salvation, 
iad  for  all  that  are  not  sanctified  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and 
ove  not  the  communion  of  the  saints,  as  members  of  the 
ic^  catholic  church ;  and  as  ever  thou  hopest  to  see  the 
bee  of  Christ  the  Judge,  and  of  the  majesty  af  the  Father, 
lilii  peace  and  comfort,  to  be  received  into  glory,  when 
hoa  ari  turned  naked  out  of  this  world  :  I  beseech  thee,  I 
imrge  thee,  to  hear  and  obey  the  call  of  God,  and  resolved- 
j^  turn,  that  thou  mayst  live.  But  if  thou  wilt  not,  even 
Aiea  thou  hast  no  true  reason  for  it,  but  because  thou  wilt 
lOt ;  I  summon  thee,  answer  for  it  before  the  Lord,  and  re- 
^re  thee  there  to  bear  me  witness  I  gave  thee  warning,  and 
diat  thou  wert  not  condemned  for  want  of  a  call  to  turn  and 
five,  but  because  thou  wouldst  not  believe  it,  and  obey  it; 
"which  also  must  be  the  testimony  of  thy  serious  monitor, 

RICHARD  BAXTER. 

December  II,  ie57. 


VOL,    VII,  A   A 


I 


4 


« 


A  CALL 


TO  THB 


UNCONVERTED. 


EZEKIEL  XXXIII.  11. 

Say  unto  them,  As  I  live,  saith  the  Lord  God,  I  have  no  pleasure  in 
the  death  of  the  wicked,  hut  that  the  wicked  turn  from  his  way, 
and  live.  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  from  your  evil  ways ;  for  why  unll  ye 
die,  O  house  of  Israel  ? 

It  hath  been  the  astonishing  wonder  of  many  a  man,  as  well 
^  me,  to  read  in  the  holy  Scripture,  how  few  will  be  saved^ 
and^bat  the  greatest  part  even  of  those  that  are  called,  will 
be  everlastingly  shut  out  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  and  tor- 
mented with  the  devils  in^ eternal  fire.     Infidels  believe  not 
this  when  they  read  it,  and  therefore  mast  feel  it«    Those 
that  do  believe  it,  are  forced  to  cry  out  with  Paul,  "  O  the 
depth  of  the  riches  both  of  the  wisdom  and  knowledge  of 
God !     How  unsearchable  are  his  judgments,  and  his  ways 
past  finding  out^.''     But  nature  itself  doth  teach  us  all,  to 
lay  the  blam^  of  evil  works  upon  the  doers,  and  therefore 
.when  we  see  any  heinous  thing  done,  a  principle  of  justice 
doth  provoke  us  to  inquire  after  him  that  did  it,  that  the 
evil  of  the  work  may  return  the  evil  of  shame,  upon  the  au- 
thor.    If  we  saw  a  man  killed  and  cut  in  pieces  by  the  way, 
we  should  presently  ask,  *  Oh  !  who  did  this  cruel  deed  V     If 
the  town  were  wilfully  set  on  fire,  you  would  ask*   *  What 
wicked  wretch  did  this ?'     So  when  we  read  that  the  most  wiU 
l>e  firebrands  of  hell  ior  ever,  we  must  needs  t\uxi\L  vj\\\v  o^ttr 

^  Rom.  xu  13. 


366  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

selves,  how  comes  this  to  pass  ?  And,  who  is  it  long  of? 
Who  is  it  that  is  so  cruel  as  to  be  the  cause  of  such  a  thing 
as  this  ?  And  we  can  meet  with  few  that  will  own  the  guilt. 
It  is  indeed  confessed  by  all,  that  satan  is  the  cause^  but 
that  doth  not  resolve  the  doubt,  because  he  is  not  the  prin- 
cipal cause.  He  doth  not  force  men  to  sin,  but  tempt  them 
to  it,  and  leaves  it  to  their  own  wills,  whether  they  will  do 
it  or  not.  He  doth  not  carry  men  to  an  alehouse,  and  force 
open  their  mouths,  and  pour  in  the  drink ;  nor  doth  he  hold 
them  that  they  cannot  go  to  God's  service,  nor  doth  he 
force  their  hearts  from  holy  thoughts.  It  lieth,  therefore, 
between  God  himself,  and  the  sinner,  one  of  them  must  needs 
be  the  principal  cause  of  all  this  misery,  which  ever  it  is: 
for  there  is  no  other  to  cast  it  upon.  And  God  disclaimeth 
it.  He  will  not  take  it  upon  him.  And  the  wicked  dis- 
claim it  usually,  and  they  will  not  take  it  upon  them,  and 
this  is  the  controversy  that  is  here  managed  in  the  text. 

The  Lord  complaineth  of  the  people,  and  the  people 
think  it  is  long  of  God  :  the  same  controversy  is  handled  in 
chap,  xviii.  where,  (ver.  26.)  they  plainly  say,  "  That  the  way 
of  the  Lord  is  not  equal."  And  God  saith,  '*  It  is  their  ways 
that  are  not  equal."  So  here  they  say,  (ver.  19.)  "  If  our 
transgressions  and  our  sins  be  upon  us,  and  we  pine  away 
in  them,  how  shall  we  then  live?"  As  if  they  should  say. 
If  we  must  die  and  be  miserable,  how  can  we  help  itt  As 
if  it  were  not  long  of  them  but  God.  But  God,  in  my  text, 
doth  clear  himself  of  it,  and  telleth  them  how  they  may  help 
it  if  they  will,  and  persuadeth  them  to  use  the  means  :  and 
if  they  will  not  be  persuaded,  he  lets  them  know  that  it  is 
long  of  themselves ;  and  if  this  will  not  satisfy  them,  he  wiH 
not,  therefore^  forbear  to  punish  them.  It  is  he  that  will  be 
their  Judge,  and  he  will  judge  them  according  to  their  ways; 
they  are  no  judges  of  him,  or  of  themselves,  as  wanting  au- 
thority, wisdom,  and  impartiality,  nor  is  it  their  caviUing 
and  quarrelling  with  God,  that  shall  serve  their  tum^  or  save 
them  from  the  execution  of  justice  which  they  murmur  at 
The  words  of  this  verse  contain,  1.  God's  purgation  or 
\  cl^ariog.  himself  from  the  blanae  of  their  destruction.  This 
he  doth,  not  by  disowning  his  law,  that  the  '*  wicked  shall 
die;"  nor  by  disowning  his  judgments  and  execution  ac- 
cording to  that  law,  or  giving  them  any  hope  that  the  law 


? 


CALL    TO    THE    UNCONVERTED.  t357 

shall  not  be  executed  ;  but  by  profession  that  it  is  not  their 
death  that  he  takes  pleasure  in,  but  their  returning  rather, 
that  they  may  live.  And  this  he  confirraeth  to  them  by  his  >- 
oath.  2.  An  express  exhortation  to  the  wicked  to  return ; 
wherein  God  doth  not  only  command,  but  persuade  and  con- 
descend also  to  reason  the  case  with  them.  Why  will  they 
die  ?  The  direct  end  of  this  exhortation  is,  that  they  may 
turn  and  live.  The  secondary,  or  reserved  ends,  upon  sup- 
position that  this  is  not  attained,  are  these  two :  First,  To 
convince  them  by  the  means  which  he  used,  that  it  is  not 
long  of  God  if  they  be  miserable.  Secondly,  To  convince 
them  from  their  manifest  wilfulness,  in  rejecting  all  his  com- 
mands and  persuasions,  that  it  is  long  of  themselves ;  and 
they  die  even  because  they  will  die. 

The  substance  of  the  text  doth  lie  in  these  observations 
following.  > 

Doct.  I.  It  is  the  unchangeable  law  of  God,  that  wicked 
men  must  turn  or  die. 

Doct.  II.  It  is  the  promise  of  God  that  the  wicked  shall 
live,  if  they  will  but  turn. 

Doct.  III.  God  takes  pleasure  in  men's  conversion  and     / 
salvation,  but  not  in'  their  death  or  damnation  :  he  had  ra- 
ther they  would  return  and  live,  than  go  on  and  die. 

Doct.  IV.  This  is  a  most  certain  truth,  which  because 
God  would  not  have  men  to  question,  he  hath  confirmed  it 
to  them  solemnly  by  bis  oath. 

Doct.  V.  The   Lord  doth  redouble  his  commands  and    / 
persuasions  to  the  wicked  to  turn. 

Doct.  VI.  The  Lord  condescendeth  to  reason  the  case 
with  them,  and  asketh  the  wicked,  why  they  will  die? 

Doct.  VII.  If  after  all  this,  the  wicked  will  not  return,  it 
ig  not  long  of  God  that  they  perish,  but  of  themselves :  their 
own  wilfulness  is  the  cause  of  their  damnation ;  they  there- 
fore die  because  they  will  die. 

Having  laid  the  text  open  before  your  eyes  in  these  plain 
propositions,  I  shall  next  speak  somewhat  of  each  of  them 
in  order,  though  very  briefly. 

Doct.  I.  It  is  the  unchangeable  law  of  God,  that  wicked 
men  must  turn  or  die. 

If  you  will  believe  God,  believe  this.  There  is  but  one 
of  these  two  ways  for  every  wicked  man,  either  conversion 


^' 


/ 


368  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

or  damnation.  I  know  the  wicked  will  hardly  be  persuad- 
ed^ either  of  the  truth  or  equity  of  this.  No  wonder  if  the 
gailty  quarrel  with  the  law.  Few  men  are  apt  to  believe 
that  which  they  would  not  have  to  be  true  ;  and  fewer  would 
have  that  to  be  true,  which  they  apprehend  to  be  against 
them.  But  it  is  not'  quarrelling  with  the  law,  or  with  the 
judge,  that  will  save  the  malefactor :  belieying  and  regard- 
ing the  law  might  have  prevented  his  death ;  but  denying 
and  accusing  it,  will  but  hasten  it.  If  it  were  not  so,  a 
hundred  would  bring  their  reason  against  the  law,  for  one 
that  would  bring  his  reason*  to  the  law  :  and  men  would  ra- 
ther choose  to  give  their  reasons  why  they  should  not  be 
punished,  than  to  hear  the  commands  and  reasona  of  theii 
governors  which  require  them  to  obey.  The  law  was  not 
made  for  you  to  judge,  but  that  you  might  be  ruled  and 
judged  by  it.  But  if  there  be  any  so  blind,  as  to  venture  to 
question  either  the  truth  or  justice  of  the  law  of  God,  I  shall 
briefly  give  you  that  evidence  of  both,  which,  oaethinks, 
would  satisfy  a  reasonable  man.  And  first,  if  you  doubt 
whether  this  be  the  word  of  God  or  not,  besides  a  hundred 
other  texts,  you  may  be  satisfied  by  these  few.  "  Verily,  I  say 
unto  you.  Except  ye  be  converted,  and  become  as  little 
children,  ye  cannot  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven*'." 
'*  Verily,  verily,  I  say  unto  thee.  Except  a  man  be  1)oni 
again,  he  cannot  see  the  kingdom  of  God  ^.*'  **  If  any  man 
be  in  Christ  he  is  a  new  creature :  old  things  are  passed 
away,  behold  all  things  are  become  new**."  "  Ye  have  put 
off  the  old  man  with  his  deeds,  and  have  put  on  <lie  new 
man,  which  is  renewed  in  knowledge,  after  the  image  of  him 
that  created  him*.''  "Without  holiness  no  man  shall  see 
God  ^"  "  So  then  they  that  are  in  the  flesh  cannot  please 
God.  Now  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  he  is 
none  of  his  s,"  •*  For  in  Christ  Jesus  neither  circumcisioo 
availeth  any  thing,  nor  uncircumcision,  but  a  new  creature^''  | 
^  According  unto  his  abundant  grace,  he  hath  begotten  us 
iigain  to  a  lively  hope '."  '*  Being  bom  again,  not  of  cor- 
ruptible seed,  but  of  incorruptible,  by  the  word  of  God,  which 
liveth  and  abideth  for  ever  ^."  *'  Wherefore  laying  aside 
all  malice,  and  all  guile,  and  hypocrisies,  and  envyings,  and 

*»  Matt.  xvni.  3.  V  3o\m\\\»^.  «»  ^  Cor.  v.  17. 

«  Coi.  iii.  9,  10.  *  He\);  x^.  \^»  % ^wa» ^\\v ^,%, 

*Gal.  ▼!.  15.  ^\Yet.\.^.  >^Nw.  \^. 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVBRTBD.  369 

evil-speakingSy  as  newborn  babes  desire  the  sincere  milk  of 
the  word,  that  ye  may  grow  thereby  ^'*  "  The  wicked  shall 
be  turned  into  hell^  and  all  the  nations  that  forget  God"*." 
**  And  the  Lord  loveth  the  righteous ;  but  the  wicked  his 
soul  hateth*^/'  As  I  need  not  stay  to  open  these  texts  which 
ave  so  plain,  so  I  think  I  need  not  add  any  more  of  that  mul- 
titude which  speak  the  like.  If  thou  be  a  man  that  dost  be- 
Ueye  the  word  of  God,  there  is  already  enough  to  satisfy  I 
thee,  tliat  the  wicked  must  be  converted  or  condmnned*  ■ 
You  are  already  broughtso  far,  that  you  must  eidier  confess 
that  this  is  true,  or  say  plainly,  you  will  not  believe  the  word 
of  God.  And  if  once  you  be  come  to  that  pass,  there  in  but 
■mall  hopes  of  you :  look  to  yourselves  as  well  as  you  ciui  | 
for  it  is  like  you  will  not  be  long  out  of  helL     You  wo^ld  be  f 


ready  to  fly  in  the  face  of  him  that  should  give  you  the  lie ; 
and  yet  dare  you  give  the  lie  to  God  ?  But  if  you  tell  God 
plainly  you  will  not  believe  him,  blame  him  not  if  he  never 
warn  you  more,  or  if  he  forsake  you,  and  give  you  up  as 
hopeless :  for  to  what  purpose  should  he  warn  you,  if  you 
would  not  believe  htm.  Should  he  send  ani  angel  from  hea- 
ven to  you,  it  seems  you  would  not  believe,  for  an  angel  oan 
qpeak  but  the  word  of  God ;  and  if  an  angel  should  bring 
you  any  other  Gospel,  you  are  not  to  receive  it»  but  to 
hold  him  accursed  ^,  And  surely  there  is  no  angd  to  be 
believed  before  the  Son  of  God,  who  came  from  the  Fathet 
to  bring  us  this  doctrine.  If  he  be  not  to  be  believed,  then 
all  the  angels  in  heaven  are  not  to  be  believed.  And  if  you 
stand  on  these  terms  with  God,  I  shall  leave  you  till  he  deal 
With  you  in  a  more  convincing  way.  God  hath  a  voice  that 
wiU  make  you  hear  i  Though  he  entreat  you  to  hear  the 
voice  of  his  Gk>spel,  he  will  make  you  hear  the  voice  of  his 
condemning  sentence,  without  entreaty.  We  cannot  make 
you  believe  against  your  wills ;  but  God  will  make  you  feel 
against  your  wills.  But  let  us  hear  what  reason  you  have, 
why  you  will  not  believe  this  word  of  God,  which  tells  us, 
that  the  wicked  must  be  converted  or  condemned.  I  know 
your  reason  ;  it  is  because  that  you  judge  it  unlikely  that 
Ood  should  be  so  unmerciful ;  you  think  it  cruelty  to  damn 
moi  everlastingly  for  so  small  a  thing  as  a  sinful  life.    And 

Uf^iLJ,t.  »Pjai.k.i7.  »F9ia.Bl.4,        »CHV«\.«k 


1 


360  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONTBRTRI>. 

this  leads  us  up  to  the  second  thing,  which  is  to  justify  the 
equity  of  Ood  in  his  laws  and  judgment. 

And  first,  I  think  you  will  not  deny  but  that  it  is  most 
suitable  to  an  immortal  soul,  to  be  ruled  by  laws  t&at  pro- 
mise an  immortal  reward,  and  threaten  an  endless  punish- 
ment. Otherwise  the  law  should  not  be  suited  to  the  nature 
of  the  subject,  who  will  not  be  fully  ruled  by  any  lower 
means  than  the  hopes  or  fears  of  everlasting  things  :  as  it  is 
in  case  of  temporal  punishment.  If  a  law  were  now  made, 
that  the  most  heinous  crimes  should  be  punished  with  a 
hundred  years  captivity,  this  might  be  of  some  efficacy,  as 
being  equal  to  our  lives.  But  if  there  had  been  no  other 
penalties  before  the  flood,  when  men  lived  eight  or  nine  hun- 
dred years,  it  would  not  have  been  sufficient,  because  men 
would  know  that  they  might  have  so  many  hundred  years 
impunity  afterward.     So  it  is  in  our  present  case^ 

2,  I  suppose  you  will  confess,  that  the  promise  of  an  end- 
less and  inconceivable  glory,  is  not  unsuitable  to  the  wis- 
dom of  God,  or  the  case  of  man.  And  why  then  should  you 
not  think  so  of  the  threatening  of  an  endless  and  unspeak- 
able misery  ? 

3.  When  you  find  it  in  the  word  of  God,  that  so  it  is, 
and  so  it  will  be,  do  you  think  yourselves  fit  to  contradict 
this  word?.  Will  you  call  your  Maker  to  the  bar,  and  exa- 
mine his  word  upon  the  imputation  of  falsehood  ?  Will  you 
sit  upon  him,  and  judge  him  by  the  law  of  your  conceits? 
Are  you  wiser  and  better,  and  more  righteous  than  he? 
Must  .the  God  of  heaven  come  to  school  to  you  to  leam 
wisdom  ?  Must  Infinite  Wisdom  leam  of  folly ;  and  Infinite 
Goodness  be  corrected  by  a  swinish  sinner,  that  cannot  keep 
himself  an  hour  clean?  Must  the  Almighty  stand  at  the 
bar  of  a  worm?  O  horrid  arrogancy  of  senseless  dust! 
Shall  every  mole,  or  clod,  or  dunghill,  accuse  the  sun  of 
darkness,  and  undertake  to  illuminate  the  world  ?  Where 
were  you  when  the  Almighty  made  the  laws,  that  he  did  not 
call  you  to  his  counsel?  Surely  he  made  them  before  yoa 
was  bom,  without  desiring  your  advice,  and  you  came  into 
the  world  too  late  for  to  reverse  them.  If  you  could  have 
done  so  great  a  work,  you  should  have  stept  out  of  your  no- 
thingness, and  have  contradicted  Christ  when  he  was  on 
earth,  or  Moses  beiote  \vvax,  o\\v^n^.  ^^n^^  k^'^wsi^sAW 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTEfD.  361 

sinful  progeny  from  the  threatening  death,  that  so  there 
might  have  been  no  need  of  Christ.  And  what  if  God  with- 
draw his  patience  and  sustentation,  and  let  you  drop  into 
hell  while  you  are  quarrelling  with  his  words,  will  you  then 
believe  that  there  is  a  hell  ?  '  •      . 

4.  If  sin  be  such  an  evil  that  it  required  the  death  of  f| 
Christ  for  its  expiation,  no  wonder  if  it  deserve  our  everlast-  (  -. 
ing  misery. 

6.  And  if  the  sins  of  the  devils  deserved  an  endless  tor-  |  ) 
ment,  why  not  also  the  sin  of  man  ? 

6.  And  methinks,  you  should  perceive  that  it  is  not  pos- 
sible for  the  best  of  men,  much  less  for  the  wicked  to  be 
competent  judges  of  the  desert  of  sin.     Alas  !  we  are  both    • 
blind  and  partial.     You  can  never  know  fully  the  desert  of 
sin,   till  you  fully  know  the  evil  of  sin  ;  and  you  can  ne^ 
ver   know   the  evil   of  sin,   till   you   fully  know,   1.  The 
excellency  of  the  soul  which   it  deformeth.     2.  And  the 
excellency  of  holiness,  which  it  doth  obliterate.     3.  And 
the  reason  and  the  excellency  of  the  law  which  it  violateth. 
And,  4.  The  excellency  of  the  glory  which  it  doth  despise. 
And,  6.  The  excellency  and  office  of  reason  which  it  tread- 
eth  down.     6.  No,  nor  till  you  know  the  infinite  excellency, 
almightiness,  and  holiness  of  that  God,  against  whom  it  is 
committed.     When  you  fully  know  all  these,  you  shall  fully 
know  the  desert  of  sin.     Besides,  you  know  that  the  offender 
is  too  partial  to  judge  the  law,  or  the  proceedings  of  his 
judge.     We  judge  by  feeling,  which  binds  our  reason.     We 
see  in  common  worldly  things,  that  most  men  think  the 
cause  is  right  which  is  their  own ;  and  that  all  is  wrong  that 
is  done  against  them ;  and  let  the  most  wise,  or  just,  or  im- 
partial friends  persuade  them  to  the  contrary,  and  it  is  all  in 
vain.     There  are  few  children  but  think  the  father  unmerci- 
ful, or  that  he  dealeth  hardly  vrith  them,  if  he  whip  them. 
There  is  scarce  the  vilest,  swinish  wretch,  but  thinketh  the 
church  doth  wrong  him,  if  they  excommunicate  him ;  or 
scarce  a  thief  or  murderer  that  is  hanged,  but  would  accuse 
the  law  and  judge  of  cruelty,  if  that  would  serve  turn. 

7.  Can  you  think  that  an  unholy  soul  is  fit  for  heaven? 
Alas  !  they  cannot  love  God  here,  nor  do  him  any  service 
which  he  ^an  accept.  They  are  contrary  to  God,  they 
loathe  that  which  he>  most  lovetfa ;  and  love  that  which  he 


Sta  CALL   TO    THE   UNCONVERTED.' 

V  abhorreth.  They  are  incapable  of  that  imperfept  commu* 
i  nion  with  him,  which  his  saints  here  do  partake  of.  How 
then  caa  they  live  in  that  perfect  loye  of  him,  and  full  de-: 
lights  ai^'  communion  with  him,  which  is  the  blessedness 
.  of  heaven?  You  do  not  accuse  yourselves  of  unmercifol- 
ness,  if  you  make  not  your  enemy  your  bosom  counsellor; 
or  if  you  take  not  your  swine  to  bed  and  board  with  you: 
no,  nor  if  you  take  away  his  life,  though  he  never  sinned. 
And  yet  will  you  blame  the  absolute  Lord,  the  most  vrise 
and  gracious  Sovereign  of  the  world,  if  he  condemn  theuor^ 
converted  man  to  perpetual  misery. 

USE.  I  beseech  you  now,  all  that  love  your  souls,  that 
instep  of  quarrelling  with  God,  and  with  his  word^you  will 
presently  stoop  to  it,  and  use  it  for  your  good.    All  you  diat 
are  yet  unconverted  in  this  assembly,  take  this  as  the  un- 
doubted truth  of  God;  you  must  ere  long  be  converted  or 
condemned,  there  is  no  other  way  but  Turn  or  Die.    When 
God,  that  cannot  lie,  hath  told  you  this,  when  you  hear  firom 
the  Maker  and  Judge  of  the  worlds  it  is  time  for  him  that 
hath  ears' to  hear  ;  by  this  time  you  may  see.  what  you  have 
to  trust  to.    You  are  but  dead  and  damned  men>  except  you 
will  be  converted.     Should  I  tell  you  otherwise  I  should  de- 
ceive  you  with  a  lie.     Should  I  hide  this  from  you  I  should 
undo  you,  and  be,  guilty  of  your  blood,  as  the  verses  before 
my  text  assure  me,  ver.  8.  *'  When  I  say  to  the  wicked  maoi 
O  wicked  man,  thou  shalt  surely  die ;  if  thou  dost  not  speak 
to  warn  the  wicked  from  his  way,  that  wicked  man  shall 
die  in  his  iniquity,  but  his  blood  will  I  require  at  thine  hand.'' 
You  see  then,  though  this  be  a  rough,  unwelcome  doctrine, 
it  is  such  as  we  must  preach,  and  you*  must  hear.      It  is 
easier  to  hear  of  hell  than  feel  it.     If  your  necessities  did 
not  require  it  we  should  not  gall  your  tender  ears,  with  truths 
that  seem  so  harsh  and  grievous.     Hell  would  not  be  so  full, 
if  people  were  but  willing  to  know  their  case,  and  to  hear 
and  think  of  it.     The  reason  why  so  few  escape  it,  is,  be- 
cause they  strive  not  to  eiiter  in  at  the  strait  gate  of  con* 
version,  and  to  go  the  narrow  way  of  holiness  while  they  have 
time ;  and  they  strive  not,  because  they  be  not  awakened  to 
a  lively  feeling  of  the  danger  they  are  in :  and  they  be  not 
awakened,  because  tVie^  aTa\o^Ai  Vo\i^^  oitlhmk  of  it ;  afid 
that  ia  partly,  through.  ioo\\«Bci  ^.^xAfcxt^^^^  «xA  c«c&^%^^ 


CALL   TO  THE    UNCONVERTED.  3QS 

truths  methinks  the  weight  of  it  should  force  you  to  remem* 
ber  it^  and  it  should  follow  you  and  give  you  no  rest  till  you 
loye  ;  and  partly^  because  they  do  not  well  believe  the  word 
that  threateneth  it.  If  you  will  not  thoroughly  believe  this 
are  converted.  If  you  had  but  once  heard  this  word,  by  the 
voice  of  an  angel, '  Thou  must  be  converted  or  condemned  ; 
turn  or  die !'  Would  it  not  stick  in  your  mind,  and  haunt 
you  night  and  day  ?  So  that  in  your  sinning  you  would  re- 
member it,  as  if  the  voice  were  still  in  your  ears,  '  Turn  or 
Die!'  O  happy  were  your  souls,  if  it  might  thus  work  with 
you,  and  never  be  forgotten,  or  let  you  alone  till  it  hath  driven 
home  your  hearts  to  God.  But  if  you  will  cast  it  out  by  for- 
getfulness,  or  unbelief,  how  can  it  work  to  your  conversion 
and  salvation  ?  But  take  this  with  you,  to  your  sorrow, 
though  you  may  put  this  out  of  your  minds,  you  cannot  put 
it  out  of  the  Bible ;  but  there  it  will  stand  as  a  sealed  truth, 
which  you  shall  experimentally  know  for  ever,  that  there  is 
no  other  way,  but  Turn  or  Die. 

O  what  is  the  matter  then  that  the  hearts  of  sinners  be 
not  pierced  with  such  a  weighty  truth !  A  man  would  think 
now  that  every  unconverted  soul  that  hears  these  wotds 
should  be  pricked  to  the  heart,  and  think  with  themselves^ 
^  This  is  my  own  case,'  and  never  be  quiet  till  they  found 
themselves  converted*  Believe  it,  sirs,  this  drowsy,  careless 
temper  will  not  last  long.  Conversion  and  condemnation, 
are  both  of  them  awakening  things  :  and  one  of  them  will 
make  you  feel  ere  long»  I  can  foretell  it  as  truly,  as  if  I  saw 
it  with  my  eyes,  that  either  grace  or  hell  will  shortly  bring 
these  matters  to  the  qaick,  and  make  you  say,  *  What  have 
I  done  ?  What  foolish,  wicked  Courses  have  I  taken  ?'  The 
scornful  and  the  stupid  state  of  sinners,  will  last  but  a  little 
While:  as  doon  as  they  either  Turn  or  Die,  the  presumptuous 
dream  Will  be  at  an  end,  and  then  their  wits  and  feeling  will 
return. 

But,  I  foresee  there  are  two  things  that  are  like  to  har- 
den the  unconverted,  and  make  me  lose  all  my  labour,  ex- 
cept they  can  be  taken  out  of  the  way  :  and  that  is,  the  mis- 
understanding of  those  two  wordSj  *  The  wicked,'  and '  Turn/ 
Some  will  think  with  themselves,  it  is  true,  the  wicked  must 
Turn  or  Die ;  but  what  is  that  to  me  ?  I  atu  wot  Wv^kft^L,  ' 
tbougb  I  am  a  sinner,  as  all  men  be.     Ot\veta  N^'iSX  V!fii\^>  \V. 


364  CALL    TO    THE    UNCONVERTED. 

lis  true  that  we  must  turn  from  our  evil  ways  ;  but  I  aim  tunr- 
ed  long  s^o^  I  hope  this  is  not  now  to  do.  And  thus,  while 
'wicked  men  think  they  are  not  wicked,  but  are  already  con* 
verted,  we  lose  all  our  labour  in  persuading  them  to  turn:  I 
shall  therefore,  before  I  go  any  further,  tell  you  here,  who 
are  meant  by  *  the  wicked,'  and  who  they  be  tJiat  must  Turn 
or  Die,  and  also  what  is  meant  by  Turning ;  and  who  they  be 
that  are  truly  converted ;  and  this  I  have  purposely  reserv- 
ed for  this  place,  preferring  the  method  that  fits  my  end. 

And  here  you  may  observe,  that  in  the  sense  of  the  text, 
a  wicked  man  and  a  converted  man  are  contraries.  No  man 
is  a  wicked  man  that  is  converted,  and  no  man  is  a  convert- 
ed man  that  is  wicked  :  so  that  to  be  a  wicked  man,  and  to 
be  an  unconverted  man,  is  all  one.  And  therefore  in  open- 
ing one,  we  shall  open  both. 

Before  I  can  tell  you  what  either  wickedness  or  conver- 
sion is,  I  must  go  to  the  bottom,  and  fetch  up  the  matter 
from  the  beginning. 

It  pleased  the  great  Creator  of  the  world,  to  make  three 
sorts  of  living  creatures  ;  angels  he  made  pure  spirits  with- 
out fiesh,  and  therefore  he  made  them  only  for  heaven  and 
not  to  dwell  on  earth.     Beasts  were  made  fiesh  without  im- 
mortal souls  ;  and  therefore  they  were  made  only  for  earth, 
and  not  for  heaven.     Man  is  of  a  middle  nature,  between 
both,  as  partaking  of  both  fiesh  and  spirit :  and  therefore  he 
was  made  both  for  heaven  and  earth.     But  as  his  fiesh  is 
made  to  be  but  a  servant  to  his  spirit,  so  is  he  made  for  earth, 
but  as  his  passage,  or  way  to  heaven,  and  not  that  this  should 
be  his  home  or  happiness.     The  blessed  state  that  man  was 
made  for,  was  to  behold  the  glorious  majesty  of  the  Lord 
and  to  praise  him  among  his  holy  angels,  and  to  love  him, 
and  be  filled  with  his  love  for  ever.     And  as  this  was  the  end 
that  man  was  made  for,  so  God  did  give  him  means  that 
were  fitted  to  the  attaining  of  it.     These  means  were  princi- 
pally two.     First,  The  right  inclination  and  disposition  of 
the  mind  of  man.     Secondly,  The  right  ordering  of  his  life 
and  practice.     For  the  first,  God  suited  the  disposition  of 
man  to  his  end  ;  giving  him  such  knowledge  of  God,  as  was 
fit  for  his  present  state,  and  a  heart  disposed  and  inclined  to 
God  in  holy  love.     But  yet  he  did  not  fix  or  confirm  him  in 
this  condition  ;  but  ViaVuig^  ttvaA^  Xvyccl  ^  Sx^^  ^j^T^.^V'^VeS. 


CALL   TO   THP.   UNCONVERtED.  365 

him  in  the  hands  of  his  own  free-will.  For  the  second^  God 
did  that  which  belonged  to  him ;  that  is^  he  gave  man  a  per- 
fect law  requiring  him  to  continue  in  the  love  of  God,  and 
perfectly  to  obey  him.  By  the  wilful  breach  of  this  law^ 
man  did  not  only  forfeit  his  hopes  of  everlasting  life,  but 
also  turned  his  heart  from  God,  and  fixed  it  on  these  lower, 
fleshly  things,  and  hereby  did  blot  out  the  spiritual  image  of 
God  from  his  soul.  So  that  man  did  both  fall  short  of  the 
glory  of  God,  which  was  his  end,  and  put  himself  out  of  the 
way,  by  which  he  should  have  attained  it ;  and  this,  both  as 
to  the  frame  of  his  heart,  and  of  his  life.  The  holy  inclina- 
tion and  love  of  his  soul  to  God,  he  lost ;  and  instead  of  it, 
he  contracted  an  inclination  and  love  to  the  pleasing  of  his 
flesh,  or  carnal  self,  by  earthly  things  :  growing  strange  to 
God,  and  acquainted  with  the  creature :  and  the  course  of 
his  life  was  suited  to  the  bent  and  inclination  of  his  heart ; 
he  lived  to  his  carnal  self,  and  not  to  God ;  he  sought  the 
iteature  for  the  pleasing  of  his  flesh,  instead  of  seeking  to 
please  the  Lord.  With  this  nature  or  corrupt  inclination, 
we  are  all  now  born  into  the  world  ;  for  "  who  can  bring  a 
clean  thing  out  of  an  unclean  ?"  As  a  lion  hath  a  fierce 
and  cruel  nature,  before  he  doth  devour,  and  as  an  adder 
hath  a  venomous  nature  before  she  stings,  so  in  our  very  in- 
fancy we  have  those  sinful  natures  or  inclinations,  before  we 
think,  or  speak,  or  do  amiss.  And  hence  springeth  all  the 
sin  of  our  lives.  And  not  only  so,  but  when  God  hath  of  his 
mercy  provided  us  a  remedy,  even  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  to 
be  the  Saviour  of  our  souls,  and  bring  us  back  to  God  again,  j 
we  naturally  love  our  present  state,  and  are  loath  to  be  | 
brought  out  of  it,  and  therefore  are  set  against  the  means  of  [ 
our  recovery ;  and  though  custom  hath  taught  us  to  thank 
Christ  for  his  good  will,  yet  carnal  self  persuadeth  us  to  re-  < 
fiase  his  remedies,  and  to  desire  to  be  excused  when  we  are 
commanded  to  take  the  medicines  which  he  ofiereth,  and  are 
called  to  forsake  all,  and  follow  him  to  God  and  glory. 

I  pray  you  read  over  this  leaf  again,  and  mark  it ;  for 
in  these  few  words  you  have  a  true  description  of  our  natu- 
ral state  ;  and  consequently  of  a  wicked  man.  For  every 
man  that  is  in  this  state  of  corrupted  nature,  is  a  wicked  man, 
and  in  a  state  of  death. 

By  this  also  you  are  prepared  to  undetstaivd  viWl  \1\%X.^ 


3^  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED* 

be  conTerted,  to  which  end  you  ttiist  further  know»  that  the 
mercy  of  God»  not  willing  that  man  should  perieih  in  his  sin, 
provided  a  remedy,  by  causing  his  Son  to  take  our  nature, 
and  being  in  one  person  God  and  man,  to  becoo^  a  Media- 
tor between  God  and  man ;  and  by  dying  for  our  sins  on  the 
cross,  to  ransom  us  from  the  curse  of  God,  and  the  power  of 
the  devil :  and  having  thus  redeemed  us,  the  Father  bath  de- 
livered us  into  his  hands,  as  his  own.  Hereupon  the  Father 
and  the  Mediator  do  make  a  new  law  and  covenant  for  man. 
Not  like  the  first,  which  gave  life  to  none  but  the  perfectly 
obedient,  and  condemned  man  for  every  sin ;  but  Christ 
hath  made  a  law  of  grace,  or  a  promise  of  pardon  and  ever- 
lasting life  to  all,  that  by  true  repentance,  and  by  faith  in 
Christ,  are  converted  unto  God.  Like  an  act  of  oblivion, 
which  is  made  by  a  prince,  to  a  company  of  rebels,  on  con- 
dition they  will  lay  down  their  arms,  and  come  in,  and  be 
loyal  subjects  for  the  time  to  come. 

But  because  the  Lord  knoweth  that  the  heart  of  maigji 
grown  so  wicked,  that  for  all  this,  .men  will  not. acoept  of 
the  remedy  if  they  be  left  to  themselves ;  therefore  the  Holy 
Ghost  hath  undertaken  it  as  his  office,  to  inspire  the  apos- 
tles, and  seal  up  the  Scripture  by  miracles  and  wonders,  and 
to  illuminate  and  convert  the  souls  of  the  elect. 

So  that  by  this  much  you  see,  that  as  there  are  Three 
Persons  in  the  Trinity,  the  Father,  the  Son,  and  the  Holy 
Ghost ;  so  each  of  these  Persons  have  their  several  works, 
which  are  eminently  ascribed  to  them. 

The  Father's  works  were,  to  create  us,  to  rule  us  as  his 
rational  creatures^  by  the  law  of  nature,  and  judge  us  there- 
by ;  and  in  mercy  to  provide  usot  Redeemer  when  we  were 
lost ;  and  to  send  his  Son,  and  accept  his  ransom. 

The  works  of  the  Son  for  us  were  these  ;  to  ransom  and 
redeem  us  by  his  sufferings  and  righteousness,  to  give  out 
the  promise  or  law  of  grace,  and  rule  and  judge  the  world 
as  their  Redeemer,  on  terms  of  grace,  and  to  make  interces- 
sion for  us,  that  the  benefits  of  his  death  may  be  communi- 
cated, and  to  send  the  Holy  Ghost,  (which  the  Father  also 
doth  by  the  Son). 

The  works  of  the  Holy  Ghost  for  us  are  these  :  to  indite 
the  holy  Scriptures^,  by  vna^vtm^,  ^wd  guiding  the  prophets 
and  apostles ;  and  aea\\n^  l\v^  ^otdL,\i^  \vv^m\Ti^a\^wM^  *^^^ 


CALL  TO   TKB   UNGONTfiKTSD.  S67 

juid  works ;  .and:  the  ilhuniaatiBg  and  exciting  the  ordinary 
mkiiBters  of  the  Qospel ;  and  so  enabling  tiiem,  and  helping 
them  to  publish  that  word,  and  by  the  same  word  illuminat- 
ing and  converting  the  souls  of  men.  &o  that  as  you  could 
not  have  been  reasonable  creatures,  if  the  Father  had  not 
created  you ;  nor  have  had  any  access  to.  Qod,  if  the  Son 
had  not  redeemed  you;  so  neither  can  you  have  a  part  in 
Christy  or  be  saved,  except  the  Holy  Ghost  do  sanctify  you.     j^ 

So  that  by  this  time  you  may  see  the  several  icauses  of 
this  work.    The  Father  sendeth  die  Son  ;  the  Son  redeemetfa 
us,  and  maketh  the  promise  of .  grace ;  the  Holy  Ghost  in- 
diteth  and  sealeth  this  Gospel ;  the  apostles  are  the  secre-    ; 
taries  of  the  Spirit,  to  write  it ;  the  preachers  of  the  Gospd 
to  proclaim,  aaid  persuade  men  to  obey  it ;  and  th^  Holy    / 
Ghost  doth  make  their  preaching  effectual,  by  opening  the   ', 
hearts  of  men  to  entertain  it.    And  .all  this  to  irepair  the 
image  of  God  upon  the  souU  and  to  set  the  heart  upon  God 
s^ia,  and  take  it  off  the  creature,  and  carnal  self,  to  which 
it  is  revolted^and  so  4um  4be  ouvr^it  of  this  life  into  a:  hea- 
yenly  course,  which  before  was  earthly  ;  .and -all  this  by  the 
entertainment  of  Christ  by  hitix,  who  is  the  physician  of 

the  soul.  y 

By  this  which  I  have  said^  you  may  see  w^t  it  is  to  be 
wicked,  and  what  it  is  to  be  unx^oaverted.  Which  I  think, 
will  be  yet  plainer  to  you,  if  I  describe  them,  as  oonsistii^ 
of  their  several  parts :  and  for  ihe  first,  A  wipk^d  man  may 
be  known  by  these  three  things  : 

First,  He  is  one  that  plaoeth  his  chi^f  content  on  earth ; 
and  loveth  the  creature  more  than  God ;  and  bis  fleshly  pros- 
perity, above  the  heavenly  felioily  .^  he  savoureth  the  things 
of  the  flesh,  but  neither  discerneth  norsavoureth  the  things 
of  the  Spirit :  though  he  will  say,  that  heaven  is  better  than 
earth,  yet  doth  he  not  really  so  esteem  it  to  himself.  If  he 
might  be  sure  of  earth,  he  would  let  go  heaven,  and  had  ra- 
ther stay  here  than  be  removed  thither.  A  life  of  perfect 
holiness,  in  the  sight  of  God,  and  in  his  love,,  and  praises  for 
ever  in  heaven,  doth  not-£nd  such  liking  with  his  heart  as  a 
life  of  health,  and  wealth,  and  honour  here  upon  earth.  And 
though  he  falsely  profess  thfit  he  loveth  God  above  all,  yet 
indeed  he  nev^r  felt  the  power  of  divine  lov.e.¥ivild\iVi\\£L^\¥^i^ 
bis  mind  is  more  set  <>n  the  worlds  or  flea\v\y^\f«awTC&»^ic«»' 


3(58  CALL  TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

on  God.  In  a  word,  whoever  loveth  earth  -above  heaven, 
and  fleshly  prosperity  more  than  God,  is  a  wicked,  uncon- 
verted man. 

On  the  other  side,  a  converted  man  is  illuminated  to  dis- 
cern the  loveliness  of  God  ^  and  so  far  believeth  the  glory 
that  is  to  be  had  with  God,  that  his  heart  is  taken  up  to  it, 
and  set  more  upon  it  than  on  any  thing  in  this  world.  He 
had  rather  see  the  face  of  God,  and  live  in  his  everlasting 
love  and  praises,  than  have  all  the  wealth  or  pleasure  of  the 
world.  He  seeth  that  all  things  else  are  vanity,  and  nothing 
but  God  can  fill  the  soul :  and  therefore  let  the  world  go 
which  way  it  will,  he  layeth  up  his  treasures  and  hopes  in 
heaven  ;  and  for  that  he  is  resolved  to  let  go  all.  As  the 
fire  doth  mount  upward,  and  the  needle  that  is  touched  with 
the  loadstone,  still  turneth  to  the  north,  so  the  converted 
soul  is  inclined  unto  God.  Nothing  else  can  satisfy  him  : 
nor  can  he  find  any  content  and  rest  but  in  his  love.  In  a 
word,  all  that  are  converted  do  esteem  and  love  God  better 
than  all  the  world,  and  the  heavenly  felicity  is  dearer  to  them 
than  their  fleshly  prosuerity  The  proof  of  what  I  have  said, 
you  may  find  in  these  places  of  Scripture,  Phil.  iii.  18.21. 
Matt.  vi.  19—21.  Col.  iii.  1-4.  Rom.  viii.  3.6—9. 18. 23. 
Psal.  Ixxiii.  26,  26. 

Secondly,  A  wicked  man  is  one  that  maketh  it  the  prin- 
■f  cipal  business  of  his  life  to  prosper  in  the  world,  and  attain 
:^  his  fleshly  ends.     And  though  he  may  read  and  hear,  and  do 
much  in  the  outward  duties  of  religion,  and  forbear  dis- 
graceful sins ;  yet  this  is  all  but  upon  the  bye,  and  he  never 
makes  it  the  trade  and  principal  business  of  his  life  to  please 
God,  and  attain  everlasting  glory,  but  puts  ofl*  God  with  the 
leavings  of  the  world,  and  gives  him  no  more  service  than 
the  flesh  can  spare  ;  for  he  will  not  part  with  all  for  heaven. 
On  the  contrary,  a  converted  man  is  one  that  makes  it 
the  principal  care  and  business  of  his  life  to  please  God,  and 
to  be  saved  ;  and  takes  all  the  blessings  of  this  life,  but  as 
accommodations  in  his  journey  towards  another  life,  and 
useth  the  creature  in  subordination  unto  God,  he  loveth  a 
holy  life,  and  longeth  to  be  more  holy ;  he  hath  no  sin  but 
what  he  hateth,  and  longeth,  and  prayeth,  and  striveth  to  be 
rid  of.    The  drift  and  bent  of  hU  life  \&  for  God ;  and  if  he 
sin,  it  is  contrary  to  the  verj  \>exit  o^\vv^\!kftaxX.^xA\\Sfc,^».^ 


GALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTBD.  369 

therefore  he  rises  again,  and  lamenteth  it,  and  dare  not  wil- 
fully live  in  any  known  sin.  There  is  nothing  in  this  world 
so  dear  to  him  but  he  can  give  it  up  to  God,  and  forsake  it 
for  him  and  the  hopes  of  glory.  All  this  you  may  see  in  Col. 
iii.  1—6.  Matt.  vi.  20.  33.  Luke  xviii.  22,  23.  29.  xiv. 
18.  24.26,  27.  Rom.  viii.  13.  Gal.  v.  24.  Luke  xii.  21.,  8Cc. 

Thirdly,  the  soul  of  *  a  wicked  mjein  did  never  truly  dis- 
cern and  relish  the  mystery  of  redemption,  nor  thankfully 
entertain  an  offered  Saviour,  nor  is  he  taken  up  with  the 
love  of  the  Redeemer,  nor  willing  to  be  ruled  by  him,  as  the 
physician  of  his  soul,  that  he  may  be  saved  from  the  guilt 
and  power  of  his  sins,  and  recovered  unto  God ;  but  his 
heart  is  insensible  of  this  unspeakable  benefit,  and  is  quite 
iagainst  the  healing  means  by  which  he  should  be  recovered. 
Though  he  may  be  willing  to  be  carnally  religious,  yet  he 
never  resigned  up  his  soul  to  Christ,  and  to  the  motions  and 
conduct  of  his  word  and  Spirit. 

On  the  contrary,  the  converted  soul  having  felt  himself 
undone  by  sin;  and  perceiving  that  he  hath  lost  his  peace 
with. God,  and  hopes  of  heaven,  and  is  in  danger  of  everlast- 
ing misery,  doth  thankfully  entertain  the  tidings  of  redemp- 
tion, and  believing  in  the  Lord  Jesus  as  his  only  Saviour, 
resigneth  up  himself  to  him  for  wisdom,  righteousness,  sanc- 
tification,  and  redemption.  He  taketh  Christ  as  the  life  of 
his  soul,  and  liveth  by  him,  and  useth  him  as  a  salve  for 
every  sore,  admiring  the  wisdom  and  love  of  God  in  his  won- 
derful work  of  man's  redemption.  In  a  word,  Christ  doth 
even  dwell  in  his  heart  by  faith,  and  the  life  that  he  now 
liveth  is  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  that  hath  loved  him, 
and  gave  himself  for  him.  Yea,  it  is  not  so  much  he  that 
liveth,  as  Christ  in  him  :  for  these,  see  John  i.  ll,  12.  iii. 
19,20.  Rom.  viii.  9.  Phil.  iii.  7— 10.  Gal.  ii.  20.  John 
XV.  2—4.     1  Cor.  i.  20.     ii.  2. 

You  see  now  in  plain  terms,  from  the  word  of  God,  who 
are  the  wicked,  and  who  are  the  converted.  Ignorant  peo- 
ple think,  that  if  a  man  be  no  swearer,  nor  curser,  nor  railer, 
nor  drunkard,  nor  fornicator,  nor  extortioner,  nor  wrong  any 
body  in  their  dealings,  and  if  they  come  to  church,  and  say 
their  prayers,  these  cannot  be  wicked  men.  Or  if  a  man  that 
hath  been  guilty  of  drunkenness,  swearing,  gamVxi^,  ox  \^i% 
like  vices,  do  but  forbear  them  for  the  time  to  coisafc,  ^^1 

VOL.  YJI.  B    B 


I 


370  CAI*L   TO   THE    UN€ONVfeR*rfeD* 

think  that  this  is  a  converted  man.    Others  thivk,  iliat  if  It 
man  that  hath  been  an  enemy,  anda  scomer  of  godliness,  do 
but  approte  tt,  and  join  himself  with  those  that  are  godly, 
and  be  hated  for  it  by  the  wicked,  as  the  godly  «ti^  that 
this  needs  must  be  a  converted  man.     And  itome  are  so  fool- 
ish as  to  think  they  are  converted,  by  taking  up  «otae  new 
and  fake  opinion ;  and  falling  into  s(Hne  dividing  pariy  as 
Baptists,  Quakers,  Papists,  or  such  like.     And  some  thitd^, 
if  they  have  but  been  affrighted  by  the  fears  of  hell,  and  hnd 
convictions,  and  gripes  of  conscience,  and  thisreopon  have 
purposed,  and  promised,  amendment^  and  taken  up  a  life  of 
civil  behaviour,  and  outward  religion,  that  this  mttst  needs 
be  true  conversion.     And  these  are  the  poor  deluded  sovik 
that  are  like  to  lose  the  benefit  of  all  our  persuasions.     And 
when  they  hear  that  the  wicked  must  Turn  or  Die,  tii^ 
think  that  tl»s  is  not  spoken  df  them ;  for  tkey  «i^  4kA 
wicked,  but  are  Turned  already.     And  thefefote  it  is,  tibAt 
/     Christ  told  some  of  the  rulers  of  the  Jews,  who  wei«  more 
[     grave  and  civil  than  the  6bmmon  people,  that  **  PtMidaM 
and  harlots  do  go  into  the  kingdom  of  God  before  titem^^v" 
[      Not  that  a  harlot  or  gross  sinner  can  be  )saved  without  cM- 
\     version,  but  because  it  was  easier  to  make  those  gross  sin- 
ners  perceive  Aeir  sin  aiK]  misery,  and  the  n«ees«ty  «f  t 
change,  when  the  more  civil  sort  do  delude  themselv<es  by 
thinking  that  they  are  converted  already  wbea  they  h%  Mt 
O  sirs,  conversion  is  another  kind  of  work  than  moetare 
aware  of.     It  is  not  a  small  matter  to  bring  an  earthly  mind 
to  heaven,  and  to  shew  man  the  amiable  excellencies  of  God, 
till  he  be  taken  up  in  such  love  to  him,  that  can  never  fce 
quenched^  to  break  the  heart  for  sin,  and  make  him  fly  for 
refuge  unto  Christ,  and  thankfully  embrace  him  as  the  life 
of  his  soul,  to  have  the  very  drift  and  bent  of  the  heart  9StA 
life  to  be  changed ;  so  that  a  man  renounceth  that  whidi  te 
took  for  his  felicity,  and  placeth  his  felicity  where  he  never 
did  before,  and  liveth  not  to  the  same  end,  and  driveth  not 
on  the  same  design  in  the  world  as  formerly  he  did :  in  a 
word,  he  that  is  in  Christ,  "  is  a  new  creature ;  old  thiligb 
are  passed  away,  behold  all  things  are  become  new  9/'    He 
hath  a  new  understanding,  a  new  will  and  resolution,  new 
sorrows,  and  desires,  and  Von^  ^ud  delist ;  new  diougi(»i 

V     P.Mtttt.  XXI.  Si.  *^lL^t,x»vl* 


CALL   TO  THE   UNCONVERTED.  S71 

nfew  speeolies^  new  company,  (if  possible)  and  anewcon-N 
Tersation.     Sin  that  before  was  a  jesting  matter  with  hiniy 
ifi  now  so  odious  and  terrible  to  him,  that  he  flies  from  it  cut 
fnMn  death.    The  world  that  was  so  lovely  in  his  eyes^  doth 
now  appear  but  as  vanity  and  Texation  ;  God  that  was  be-^ 
fore  neglected,  is  now  the  only  happiness  of  his  soul ;  before 
be  was  forgotten  md  every  lust  preferred  before  him ;  but 
now  he  is  set  next  the  heart,  and  all  things  must  give  place 
to  him ;  and  the  heart  is  taken  up  in  the  attendance,  and  ob* 
serraace,  of  him,  and  is  grieved  when  he  hides  his  face,  aiid 
n^ver  thinks  itself  well  without  him.    Christ  himself,  that 
wa»  wont  to  be  slightly  thought  of,  is  now  his  only  hope 
refuge,  and  he  lives  upon  him,  as  on  his  daily  bread,  he 
pray  without  him,  nor  rejoice  without  him,  nor  think, 
nor  iBpeak>  nor  live,  without  him.     Heaven  itself,  that  before 
w«L8  looked  upon  but  ai  a  tolerable  reserve,  which  he  hoped 
ndght  «erve  turn  better  than  hell,  when  he  could  n6t  stay  any 
longier  in  the  world,  is  now  taken  for  his  home,  the  place  at 
his  only  hopeand  re^t,  where  he  shall  see,  and  love,  and  prt^s^ 
that  God  that  hath  his  heart  already.  Hell,  that  did  seem  be^ 
fcfe  but  lus  a  bugbear  to  frights  men  from  sin,  doth  now  ap- 
pea^to  be  a  reial  misery,  that  is  not  to  be  ventured  on  or  jested 
with*  The  works  of  holiness,  which  before  he  was  weary  of,  to4 
lailn0d  to  be  more  ado  than  needs,  are  now  both  his  reorea- 
liifif^iuid  his  business,  and  the  trade  he  lives  upon.    The 
Blkii>  which  was  before  to  him  but  almost  as  a  common 
bMk>  is  now  as  the  law  of  God,  as  h  letter  written  to  him 
fcdtta  heaven,  and  subscribied  with  the  name  of  the  Et^iml 
'^j^sty ;  it  H  tfhe  rule  of  his  thoughts,  and  words,  and 
de^ds  ;  the  commands  lire  binding,  the  threats  are  dreadful 
and  the  promises  of  it  speak  life  to  his  soul.     The  godly 
that  6eemed  to  him  but  like  other  men,  are  now  the  most 
exoeHent  a»d  happiest  on  earth.     And  the  wicked,  that 
weire  his  playfellows,  are  now  his  grief;  and  he  that  could 
lamgh  at  their  sins,  is  more  ready  now  to  weep  for  their  siri 
and  misery  ^     In  short,  he  hath  a  new  end  in  his  thoughts, 
Slid  >a  new  way  in  his  endeavours^  and  therefore  his  heart 
and  life  are  new.     Before,  his  carnal  self  was'^his  end  ;  and 
hie  pleasure,  und  worldly  profits  and  credits  were  his  wa^'* 
And  now,  Ood  and  everlasting  glory  are  liia  end  •,  ^tidiCXxnaX:, 

'Psahnxv.4.  xvl  3.     Phil.  iii.  18. 


372  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

!   and  the  Spirit,  and  word,  and  ordinances,  holiness  to  God, 
i    and  righteousness  and  mercy  to  men,  these  are  his  way. 
/    Before,  self  was  the  chiefest  ruler,  to  which  the  matters  of 
I     God  and  conscience  must  stoop  and  give  place  :  and  now, 
I     God  in  Christ,  by  the  Spirit,  word,  and  ministry,  is  the 
\     chiefest  ruler,  to  whom  both  self,  and  all  the  matters  of  self, 
must  give  place.     So  that  this  is  not  a  change  in  one,  or  two, 
or  twenty  points,  but  in  the  whole  soul ;  and  the  very  end  and 
';    bent  of  the  conversation.     A  man  may  step  out  of  one  path 
;    into  another,  and  yet  have  his  face  still  the  same  way,  and 
be  still  going  towards  the  same  place;  but  it  is  another  mat- 
ter to  turn  quite  back  again,  and  take  his  journey  ihe  clean 
contrary  way  to  a  contrary  place.     So  is  it  here ;  a  man 
may  turn  from  drunkenness  to  thriftiness,  and  forsake  his 
good  fellowship,  and  other  gross,  disgraceful  sins,  and  set 
upon  some  duties  of  religion,  and  yet  be  going  still  to  the 
same  end  as  before,  intending  his  carnal  self  above  all,  and 
giving  it  still  the  government  of  his  soul.    But  when  he  is 
converted,  this  self  is  denied,  and  taken. down,  and  God  is 
set  up^  and  his  face  is  turned  the  contrary  way ;  and  he  that 
before  was  addicted  to  himself,  and  lived  to  himself,  is  now 
by  sanctification  devoted  unto  God,  and  liveth  unto  God. 
Before  he  asked  himself  what  he  should  do  with  his  time, 
I  his  parts,  and  his  estate,  and  for  himself  he  used  them;  bat 
!  now  he  asketh  God  what  he  shall  do  with  them,  and  Ibetfa 
them  for  him :  before  he  would  please  God  so  -far  as  might 
stand  with  the  pleasure  of  his  flesh  and  carnal  self,  but  not 
to  any  great  displeasure  of  them ;  but  now  he  will  please 
God,  let  flesh  and  self  be  never  so  much  displeased.    This 
is  the  great  change  that  God  will  make  upon  all  that  shall 
be  saved. 

You  can  say  that  the  Holy  Ghost  is  our  Sanctifier;  but 
do  you  know  what  sanctification  is  ?  Why,  this  is  it  that  I 
have  now  opened  to  you  :  and  every  man  or  woman  in  the 
world  must  have  this,  or  be  condemned  to  everlasting  misery. 
They  must  Tuni  or  Die. 

Do  you  believe  all  this,  sirs,  or  do  you  not?     Surely 
\  ■  you  dare  not  say  you  do  not ;  for  it  is  past  all  doubt  or  de- 
nial.   These  are  not  controversies,  where  one  learned,  pious 
man  is  of  one  mind, and  atioV\i^\  oi  ^xvo1\v^t  *^  where  one  party 
ffaith  this,  and  the  olVvex  a^JvVJa.  tVv^X.  \  ^^^vaX&  ^xA  ^^^*ci%ns^> 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  373 

and  every  sect  among  us,  that  deserve  to  be  called  Chris- 
iians,  are  all  agreed  in  this  that  I  have  said ;  and  if  you  will 
not  believe  the  God  of  truth,  and  that  in  a  case  where  every 
sect  and  party  doth  believe  him,  you  are  utterly  inexcusable. 
But  if  you  do  believe  this,  how  comes  it  to  pass  that  you 
are  so  quiet  in  an  unconverted  state  ?     Do  you  think  you* 
are  converted  ?     And  can  you  find  this  wonderful  change 
upon  your  souls  ?    Have  you  been  thus  bom  again/  and 
made  anew  ?     Be  not  these  strange  matters  to  many  of  you  1 
And  such  as  you  never  felt  upon  yourselves  ?    If  you  can- 
not tell  the  day  or  week  of  your  change,  or  the  very  sermon 
that  converted  you,  yet  do  you  find  that  the  work  is  done, 
and  such  a  change  indeed  there  is  ?     And  that  you  have 
SQoh  hearts  as  are  before  described  ?    Alas,  the  most  do 
follow  their  worldly  business,  and  little  trouble  their  mindd 
with  such  thoughts.     And  if  they  be  but  restrained  from 
scandalous  sins,  and  can  say,  '  I  am  no  whoremonger,  nor 
thief,  nor  curser,  nor  swearer,  nor  tippler,  nor  extortioner ; 
I  goto  the  church  and  say  my  prayers;*  they  think  that 
this  is  true  conversion,  and  they  shall  be  saved  as  well  as 
any.     Alas,  this  is  foolish  cheating  of  yourselves  ;  this  is 
too  much  contempt  of  an  endless  glory,  and  too  gross  neg- 
lect of  your  immortal  souls.     Cem  you  make  so  light  of  hiea- 
ven  and  hell  ?  your  corpse  will  shortly  lie  in  the  dust,  and 
angels  or  devils  will  presently  seize  upon  your  souls  ;  and 
every  man  or  Woman  of  you  all,  will  shortly  be  among  other 
cempahy,  and  in  another  case  than  now  you  are ;  you  will 
dwell  in  these  houses  biit  a  little  longer ;  you  will  work  iti 
your  shops  and  fields  but  a  little  longer;  you  wilt  sit  in 
these  seats,  and  dwell  on  this  earth  but  a  little  longer ;  you 
will  see  with  those  eyes,  and  hear  with  those  ears,  and  speak 
with  those  tongues  but  a  little  longer,  till  the  resurrection 
day ;  and  cem  you  make  shift  to  forget  this  ?     O  what  a 
place  will  you  be  shortly  in  of  joy  or  torment!     O  what  a 
sight  will  you  shortly    see  in    heaven  or  hell !     O  whsit 
thoughts  will  shortly  fill  your  hearts  with  unspeakable  de- 
light or  horror  !     What  work  will  you  be  employed  in !    To 
praise  the  Lord  with  saints  and  angels,  or  to  cry  out  in  fire 
unquenchable  with  devils ;  and  should  all  this  be  forgotten  ? 
And  all  this  will  be  endless,  and  sealed  up  by  an  \»\c\v«xv%^- 
kble  decree.    Eternity,  eternity  will  be  tVie  m^%a.\u^  o^^o^x 


374  CALJt  TO  THE  U^CONYBRTBP. 

joys  or  sorrowfi,  and  can  this  be  forgotten?  And  all  thi» 
ks  true  sirs,  most  certainly  true :  when  you  have  gone  up  and 
down  a  little  longer,  and  slept  and  awaked  but  a  few  times 
more,  you  will  be  dead  and  gone,  and  find  all  true  that  now 
I  tell  you ;  aikl  yet  can  you  now  so  much  forget  it  ?  You 
shall  then  remember  you  heard  this  sermon,  and  tl|at  this 
day,  in  this  place,  you  were  remembered  (^  these  things,  and 
perceive  them  matters  a  thousand  times  greater  than  either 
you  or  I  could  here  conceive,  and  yet  shall  they  now  be  so 
much  forgotten  ? 

Beloved  friends,  if  the  Lord  had  not  awakened  me  to 
believe  and  lay  to  heart  these  things  myself,  I  should  have 
remained  in  the  dark  and  selfish  state,  and  have  perished  for 
ever:  but  if  he  have  truly  made  me  sensible  of  them,  it  will 
constrain  me  to  compassionate  you,  as  well  as  myself.  If 
your  eyes  were  so  far  open  as  to  see  hell,  and  you  saw  yomr 
neighbours  that  were  unconverted,  dragged  thithei!  with 
hideous  cries;  though  they  were  such  as  yon  aocounted 
honest  people  on  earth,  and  feared  no  such  matter  by  them- 
selves, such  a  sight  would  make  you  go  home  and  think  of 
it ;  and  think  again,  and  make  you  warn  all  about  you,  as 
that  damned  worldling  in  Luke  xvi.  28.  would  have  had  his 
brethren  warned,  lest  they  come  to  that  place  of  torment 
Why,  faith  is  a  kind  of  sight,  it  is  the  eye  of  the  soul,  the 
evidence  of  things  not  seen  :  if  I  believe  God,  it  is  next  to 
seeing ;  and  therefore  I  beseech  you  excuse  me,  if  I  be  half 
as  earnest  with  you  about  these  matters,  as  if  I  had  seea 
them.  If  I  must  die  to-morrow,  and  it  were  in  my  power  to 
come  again  from  another  world,  and  tell  you  what  I  had 
seen,  would  you  not  be  willing  to  hear  me  ?  And  would 
you  not  believe,  and  regard  what  I  should  tell  you?  If  I 
might  preach  one  sermon  to  you  after  I  am  dead,  and  have 
seen  what  is  done  in  the  world  to  come,  would  you  not  have 
me  plainly  speak  the  truth  ?  and  would  you  not  crowd  t6i 
hear  me  ?  and  would  you  not  lay  it  to  heart  ?  But  tbid 
must  not  be  ;  God  hath  his  appointed  way  of  teaching  yo« 
by  Scripture  and  ministers ;  and  he  will  not  humour  unbe^ 
lie  vers  so  far,  as  to  send  men  from  the  dead  to  them,  and 
(  alter  his  established  way ;  if  any  man  quaiTel  with  the  sun, 
■  I  God  will  not  humour  him  so  far,  as  to  set  up  a  clearer  light 
-  £W:eiids,  I  beseech  ^ou  regai^  m%  won^»  ^'^  -^ws.^w&ji.^^vt 


QAI^it   TO   THE    UNCONV£KT£^  375 

I  should  C0IU^  from  the  dead  to  you ;  for  I  can  give  you  tli^ 
full  assurance  of  the  truth  of  what  I  say  to  you^  as  if  I  had 
beien  there  and  seen  it  lyith  my  ^yes ;  for  it  is  possible  for 
one  from  the  dead  to  deceive  you ;  but  Jesus  can  never  de-r 
ceive  you ;  tbe^  word  of  Ood  delivered  in  Scripture,  and 
sealed  up  by  the  miracles^  and  holy  workings  of  the  Spirit* 
can  never  deceive  you.  Believe  this,  or  believe  nothing. 
Believe,  and  obey  this,  or  you  are  undone.  NoWj,  as  evq: 
you  believe  the  word  of  God,  and  as  ever  you  care  for  tl^ 
salvation  of  your  sohIs^  let  me  beg  of  you  this  jceasonab}^ 
request,  and  I  beseech  you  deny  me  not.  That  you  would 
without  any  more  delay,  when  you  are  gone  from  hence,  re- 
member what  you  heard,  and  enter  into  an  earnest  searqh  of 
your  hearts,  and  say  unto  yourselves, '  Is  it  so  indeed?  Must 
I  Turn  or  Die  ?  Must  I  be  converted  or  condemned  ?  It  is 
lime  for  me  then  to  look  about  me,  before  it  be  too  late^ 

0  why  did  not  I  look  after  this  till  now  ?     Why  did  I  ven- 
turously put  off  or  slubber  over  so  great  a  business  ?     Was 

1  awake,  or  in  my  wits  ?     O  blessed  God,  what  a  mercy  is 
it  that  thou  didst  not  cut  off  my  life  all  this  while,  before  I 
had  any  certain  hope  of  eternal  life !     Well,  God  forbid,     / 
Ithat  I  should  i^eglect  this  work  any  longer.    What  state  is     { 
my  soul  in  ?     Am  I  converted,  or  am  I  not  ?    Was  ever    | 
such  a  change,  or  work  done  upon  my  soul  ?     Have  I  been    \    ] 
illummated  by  the  word  and  Spirit  of  the  Lord,  to  see  th^     \    ^ 
odiousness  of  sin,  the  need  of  a  Saviour,  the  love  of  Christ, 
and  the  excellencies  of  God  and  glory  ?     Is  my  heart  bro-     j 
keii,  01^  humbled  within  me,  for  my  former  life  ?     Have  I     I 
thankfully  entertained  my  Saviour  and  Lord,  that  offered 
himself  with  pardon  and  life  to  my  soul?     Po  I  hate  my     / 1 
fonnejT  sinful  life,  and  the  remnant  of  every  sin  that  is  in     ^  ^ 
m^?     Po^  I  ffy  from  them  as  my  deadly  enemies?     Do  I 
givp  i^p  myself  to  a  life  of  holiness  and  obedience  to  God  ? 

I>o  I  Ipve  it  and  delight  in  it  ?  Can  I  truly  say,  that  I  am 
dea4  to  the  world,  and  carnal  self  ^  a,nd  that  I  live  for  God, 
smd  the  glory  which  he  hath  promised  ?  Hath  heaven  more 
of  my  estimation  and  resolution  than  earth?  And  is  God 
the  dearest  ^nd  highest  in  my  soul  ?  Once,  I  am  sure,  I 
liyed  principally  to  the  world  and  fle;sh,  and  God  had  no- 
Ui^ing  but  some  heartless  services  which  the  world  could 
^p^xe,  fufid  which  were  the  leavings  of  lYie  ^^^.    \^  \sv:^ 


\ 


376  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

lieart  now  turned  another  way  ?  Hare  I  a  new  deBign,  and 
a  new  end,  and  a  new  train  of  holy  affections?  Hare  I  set 
my  hope  and  heart  in  hearen  ?  And  is  it  the  scope  and  de« 
Bign,  and  bent  of  my  heart  and  life,  to  get  well  to  hearen, 
a^nd  see  the  glorious  face  of  God,  and  live  in  his  everlasting 
love  and  praise  ?  And  when  I  sin,  is  it  agahist  the  habitutd 
bent  and  design  of  my  heart?  And  do  I  conquer  all  gross 
sins,  and  am  I  weary  and  willing  to  be  rid  of  my  infirmities? 
This  is  the  state  of  a  converted  soul.  And  thus  must  it  be 
with  me,  or  I  must  perish.  Is  it  thus  with  me  indeed,  or  is 
it  not  ?  It  is  time  to  get  this  doubt  resolved,  before  thcf 
dreadful  Judge  resolve  it.  I  am  not  such  a  stranger  to  my 
own  heart  and  life,  but  1  may  somewhat  perceive  whether  1 
am  thus  converted  or  not :  if  Ibe  not,  it  will  do  me  no  good 
to  flatter  my  soul  with  false  conceits  and  hopes.  T  am  re- 
solved no  more  to  deceive  myself,  but  to  endeavour  to  know 
truly,  off  or  on,  whether  I  be  converted,  yea  or  no;  that  if 
I  be,  I  may  rejoice  in  it,  and  glorify  my  gracious  Lord,  and 
comfortably  go  on  till  I  reach  the  crown ;  and  if  I  am  no^ 
I  may  set  myself  to  beg  and  seek  after  the  grace  that  should 
convert  me,  and  may  turn  without  any  more  delay  :  for  if  I 
find  in  time  that  I  am  out  of  the  way,  by  the  help  of  Christ 
I  may  turn  and  be  received ;  but  if  I  stay  till  either  my  heart 
be  forsaken  of  God  in  blindness  and  hardness,  or  till  I  be 
catched  away  by  death,  it  is  then  too  late.  There  is  no 
place  for  repentance  and  conversion  then  ;  I  know  it  must 
be  now  or  never.' 

Sirs,  this  is  my  request  to  you,  that  you  will  but  take 
your  hearts  to  task,  and  thus  examine  them,  till  you  see,  if 
it  may  be,  whether  you  are  converted  or  not ;  and  if  yoa 
cannot  find  it  out  by  your  own  endeavours,  go  to  your  mi- 
nisters, if  they  be  faithful  and  experienced  men,  and  desire 
their  assistance.  The  matter  is  great,  let  not  bashfulness, 
nor  carelessness  hinder  you.  They  are  set  over  you  to  ad- 
vise you  for  the  saving  of  your  souls,  as  physicians  advise 
you  for  the  curing  of  your  bodies.  It  undoes  many  thou- 
sands, that  they  think  they  are  in  the  way  to  salvation, 
when  they  are  not ;  and  think  that  they  are  converted,  when 
it  is  no  such  thing.  And  then  when  we  call  to  them  daily 
to  turn,  they  go  away  as  they  came,  and  think  that  this  con- 
cerns not  them ;  for  tVie^  ^.tetxxYrv^di  ^Sx^-^^-^ » "wA  Vi»^«theY 


CALL  TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  377 

shall  do  well  enough  in  the  way  that  they  are  in,  at  least  if 
tiiey  do  pick  the  fairest  path,  and  avoid  some  of  the  foulest 
steps ;  when  alas,  all  this  while,  they  live  but  to  the  world, 
and  flesh,  and  are  strangers  to  God,  and  eternal  life,  and  are 
quite  out  of  the  way  to  heaven.     And  all  this  is  much,  be- 
cause we  cannot  persuade  them  to  a  few  serious  thoughts  of 
their  condition,  and  to  spend  a  few  hours  in  the  examination 
of  their  states :  is  there  not  many  a  self-conceited  wretch 
that  hears  me  this  day,  that  never  bestowed  one  hour,  or  a 
quarter  of  an  hour  in  all  their  lives,  to  examine  their  souls, 
and  try  whether  they  are  truly  converted  or  not?     O  merci- 
ful God  that  will  care  for  such  wretches  that  care  no  mord 
for  themselves,  and  that  will  do  so  much  to  save  thent  from 
hell,  and  help  them  to  heaven,  who  will  do  so  little  for  it 
themselves  !     If  all  that  are  in  the  way  to  hell,  and  in  the 
state  of  damnation,  did  but  know  it,  they  durst  not  conti- 
nue in  it.    The  greatest  hope  that  the  devil  hath,  of  bring- 
ing you  to  damnation  without  a  rescue,  is  by  keeping  you 
blindfold  and  ignorant  of  your  state,  and  making  you  be- 
lieve that  you  may  do  well  enough  in  the  way  that  you  are 
in.     If  you  knew  that  you  were  out  of  the  way  to  heaven, 
and  were  lost  for  ever,  if  you  should  die  as  you  are,  durst 
you  sleep  another  night  in  the  state  that  you  are  in  ?  Durst 
you  live  another  day  in  it  ?     Could  you  heartily  laugh,  or 
be  merry  in  such  a  state  ?    What !  and  not  know  but  you 
may  be  snatched  away  to  hell  in  an  hour !     Sure  it  would 
constrain  you  to  forsake  your  former  company  and  courses^ 
and  to  betake  yourselves  to  the  ways  of  holiness,  and  the 
communion  of  the  saints.     Sure  it  would  drive  you  to  cry 
to  God  for  a  new  heart,  and  to  seek  heljp  of  those  that  are 
fit  to  counsel  you.    There  is  none  of  you  sure,  that  cares 
not  for  being  damned.    Well  then,  I  beseech  you  presently 
make  inquiry  into  your  hearts,  and  give  them  no  rest,  till 
you  find  out  your  condition,  that  if  it  be  good,  you  may  re- 
joice in  it  and  go  on  :  and  if  it  be  bad,  you  may  presently 
look  about  you  for  recovery,  as  men  that  believe  they  must 
Turn  or  Die.    What  say  you,  sirs,  will  you  resolve  and  pro- 
mise to  be  at  thus  much  labour  for  your  souls  ?     Will  you 
fall  upon  this  self-examination  when  you  come  home  ?     Is 
my  request  unreasonable?     Your  consciences  know  it  is 
not ;  resolve  on  it  then,  before  you  stir ;  knowing  how  much 


378  Oil^ii   TO    THE    UNCONYERWAD^ 

U  eoncemetb  your  sou1b»  I  beseech  you  for  the  sake  of  that 
Qod  that  doth  CiOiiimiuid  you«  at  whose  bar  you  wiU  shortly 
appear,  that  you  will  not  deny  me  this,  reasonable  roqae^k. 
For  the  sake  of  those  souls  that  must  Turn  or  Die,  I  beseeok 
you  deny  me  not ;  even  but  to  make  it  your  business  to  un- 
derstand your  own  conditions,  and  build  vipon  sure  ^ound, 
and  know  off  or  on,  whether  you  are  converted  or  no,  and 
venture  not  your  souls  on  negligent  security. 

But  perhaps  you  will  say,  What  if  we  should  find  our- 
selves  yet  unconverted,  what  shall  we  do  then  1  This  qucs* 
tion  leadeth  me  to  my  second  doctrine ;  which  will  do  muok 
to  the  answering  of  it,  to  which  I  shall  now  proceed. 

DiKt.  II.  It  is  the  promise  of  God,  that  the  wicked  shall 
live  if  they  will  but  tum  ;  unfeignedly  and  thoroughly  twn. 
The  Lord  here  professeth,  that  this  is  it  he  takes  plea- 
sure in,  that  the  wicked  Turn  and  Live.  Heaven  is  made 
Aaa^iire  to  the  converted,  as  hell  is  to  the  anconverted4 
Turn  and  Live,  is  as  certain  a  truth  as  Turn  or  Die.  Q&i 
^  *  was  not  bound  to  provide  us  a  Saviour,  nor  open  to  ua  the 
door  of  hope,  nor  call  to  us  to  repent  and  tum,  when  onoe 

\  we  had  cast  ourselves  away  by  sin.     But  he  hath  freely  done 
it  to  magnify  his  mercy.     Sinners,  there  are  none  of  yoa 

■■  4»ha}l  have  cause  to  go  home  and  say,  I  preach  desperation 
to  you.     Do  we  use  to  shut  up  the  door  of  mercy  s^ainat 

[  you  ?    O  that  you  would  not  shut  it  up  against  yourselves ! 

j  Do  we  use  to  tell  you  that  Ood  will  have  no  mercy  on  you, 
though  you  tum  and  be  sanctified  ]  When  did  yoa  ever 
hear  a  preacher  say  such  a  word  ?  You  that  bark  at  the 
preadiers  of  the  Gospel,  for  desiring  to  keep  you  out  of 
hell,  and  say  that  tibey  preach  desperation  ;  teil  met  if  yop 
can,  when  did  you  ever  hear  any  sober  man  say,  that,  tikw 
is  no  hope  fcH-  you,  though  ye  repent  and  be  converted  ? 
No,  it  is  the  clean  contrary  that  we  daily  proclaim  from  the 
Lord,  That  whosoever  is  born  again,  and  by  faith  and  ^pen- 

.  tance  doth  become  a  new  creature,  shall  certainly  be  saved; 

j  and  so  far  we  are  from  persuading  you  to  despair  of  thin, 

j  that  we  persuade  you  not  to  make  any  doubt  of  it.  It  is 
life  and  not  death,  that  is  the  first  part  of  our  ng^ssage  to 
you ;  our  commission  is  to  offer  salvation ;  certain  aalva- 

'  tioQ,  a  speedy,  glorious,  everlasting  salvation,  to  every  one 
of  you  ;  to  the  poorest  be^i.^^,  «»  hi^  ^a  \ft  N^^x^^test 


GALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTBD.  379 

lord ;  to  the  worst  of  yon,  even  to  the  druiikfirc&>  swearers^       ^ 
vorldlings,  thieves,  yea,  to  the  d^pisers  tod  reproaohera  of 
Ibe  holy  way  of  salvation.     We  are  commanded  by  oiur 
Lord  and  Master,  to  offer  you  a  pardon  fox  all  that  is  past;, 
if  you  will  but  now  at  last  return  and  live ;  we  are  com-» 
manded  to  beseech  and  entreat  you  to  accept  tbf>  offeir  and 
return ;  to  tell  you  what  preparation  is  made  by  Christ, 
what  mercy  stays  for  you,  what  patience  waiteth  oq  you, 
what  thoughts  of  kindness  God  hath  towards  you  ;  and  how 
happy,  how  certainly  and  unspeakably  happy,  you  may  be 
if  you  will.    We  have  indeed,  also,  a  message  of  wrath  and 
death :  yea,  of  a  twofold  wrath  and  death ;  but  neither  of  * 
them  is  our  principal  message :  we  must  tell  you  of  the 
wrath  that  is  on  you  already,  and  the  death  that  yon  ar^ 
born  under,  for  the  breach  of  the  law  of  works :  hut  this  is 
only  to  i^ew  you  the  need  of  mercy,  and  provoke  you  to  es- 
teem, the  grace  of  the  Redeemer.    And  we  tell  you  nothing   1 
but  the  truth,  which  you  must  know  9  for  who  will  seek  out    . 
for  physic,  that  knows  not  that  he  is  sick  ?     For  telling  you    ■ 
of  your  misery,  is  not  it  that  makes  you  miserable,  but  dri-  \  1 
veth  you  to  seek  for  mercy.     It  is  you  that  have  brought 
this  death  upon  yourselves.    We  tell  you  also  of  another 
death,  even  remediless,  and  much  greater  torment  will  fall 
on  those  that  will  not  be  converted.     But  as  this  is  true, 
and  must  be  told  you ;  so  it  is  but  the  last,  and  saddest 
part  of  our  message ;  we  are  first  to  offer  you  mercy,  if  you 
will  turn  :  and  it  is  only  those  that  will  not  turn  nor  hear 
the  voice  of  mercy,  that  we  must  foretel  damnation  ta* 
Will  you  but  cast  away  your  transgressions,  delay  no  lon- 
ger, but  come  away  at  the  call  of  Christ,  and  be  converted, 
and  beoome  new  creatures,  and  we  have  not  a  word  of  damti* 
ing  wrath  or  death  to  speak  against  you^     I  do  here  in  the 
name  of  the  Lord  of  Life  proclaim  to  you  all  that  he^r  me 
this  day,  to  the  worst  of  you,  to  the  greatest,  to  the  oldest 
sinner,  that  you  may  have  mercy  and  salvation  if  you  will     ; 
but  turn.     Tliere  is  mercy  in  God,  there  is  sufficiency  in  the 
satisfaction  of  Christ,  the  promise  is  free,  full  and  univer- 
sal :  you  may  have  life  if  you  will  but  turn.     But  then,  as 
you  love  your  souls,  remember  what  turning  it  is  the  Scrips 
ture  speaks  of.     It  is  not  to  mend  the  old  house>  biiiX  W  y^qU. 
down  all,  and  build  anew  on  Christ  the  lock  ^Sidi  %\m^  iwMftr 


380  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED^ 

dation.  It  is  not  to  mend  somewhat  in  a  carnal  course  of  life, 
bnt  to  mortify  the  flesh,  and  lire  after  the  Spirit*  It  is  not  to 
serve  the  flesh  and  the  world  in  a  more  reformed  way,  without 
any  scandalous  disgraceful  sins,  and  with  a  certain  kind  of  re- 
ligiousness; but  it  is  to  change  your  master,  and  your  works, 
and  end,  and  set  your  face  a  contrary  way,  and  do  all  for  the 
]ife  that  you  never  saw,  and  dedicate  yourselves,  and  all  yoa 
have  to  God*  This  is  the  change  that  must  be  made,  if  you 
will  live. 

Yourselves  are  witness  now,  that  it  is  salvation  and  not 
damnation,  that  is  the  great  doctrine  I  preach  to  you, 
and  the  first  part  of  my  message  to  you.  Accept  of  ihis, 
and  we  shall  go  no  farther  with  you ;  for  we  would  not  so 
much  as  affright  or  trouble  you  with  the  name  of  damnation 
without  necessity. 

But  if  you  will  not  be  saved,  there  is  no  remedy,  bat 
damnation  must  take  place ;  for  there  is  no  middle  place 
between  the  two.    You  must  have  either  life  or  death. 

And  we  are  not  only  to  offer  you  life,  but  to  shew  yoa 
the  grounds  on  which  we  do  it,  and  call  you  to  believe,  diat 
God  doth  mean  indeed  as  he  speaks ;  that  the  promise  is 
true,  and  extendeth  conditionally  to  you  as  well  as  others, 
and  that  heaven  is  no  fancy,  but  a  true  felicity. 

If  you  ask,  where  is  our  commission  for  this  offer? 
Among  a  hundred  texts  of  Scripture,  I  will  shew  it  unto 
you  in  these  few  : 

First,  you  see  it  here  in  my  text,  and  the  following 
verses ;  and  Ezek.  xviii.  as  plain  as  can  be  spoke.     And  in 
2  Cor.  v.  17 — 21.  you  have  the  very  sum  of  our  commission, 
("  If  any  man  be  in  Christ  he  is  a  new  creature.     Old  things 
are  passed  away,  behold  all  things  are  become  new.    And 
all  things  are  of  God,  who  hath  reconciled  us  to  himself  by 
Jesus  Christ,  who  hath  given  to  us  the  ministry  of  reconci- 
liation.    To  wit,  that  God  was  in  Christ,  reconciling  the 
p     world  unto  himself;  not  imputing  their  trespasses  to  them; 
and  hath  committed  unto  us  the  word  of  reconciliation. 
Now  then,  we  are  ambassadors  for  Christ,  as  though  God 
did  beseech  you  by  us,  we  pray  you,  in  Christ's  stead,  be  ye 
reconciled  unto  God ;  for  he  hath  made  him  to  be  sin  for 
-us  who  knew  no  sin,  that  we  might  be  made,  the  righteous- 
ness of  God  in  him).     So  Mark  xvi.  16,  16.    "  Go  ye  into 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  381 

the  world,  and  preach  the  Gospel  to  every  creature.  He 
tiiat  believeth  (that  is,  with  such  a  converting  faith  as  is 
expressed)  and  is  baptized,  shall  be  saved ;  and  be  that  be- 
lievieth  not,  shall  be  damned.''  And  Luke  xxiv.  46,  47. 
*'  Thus  it  behoved  Christ  to  suffer,  and  to  rise  from  the  dead 
the  third  day,  and  that  repentance  (which  is  conversion)  and 
remission  of  sins,  should  be  preached  in  his  name  among  all 
nations."  And  Acts  v.  30,31.  "The  God  of  our  fathers 
raised  up  Jesus,  whom  ye  slew  and  hanged  on  a  tree,  him 
hath  God  exalted  with  his  right  hand  to  be  a  Prince  and  a 
Saviour,  to  give  repentance  to  Israel,  and  forgiveness  of 
sins."  And  Acts  xiii.  38,  39.  "  Be  it  known  unto  you, 
therefore,  men  and  brethren,  that  through  this  man  is  preach- 
ed unto  you  the  forgiveness  of  sins ;  and  by  him  all  that 
believe  are  justified  from  all  things,  from  which  ye  could  not 
be  justified  by  the  law  of  Moses."  And  lest  you  think 
this  offer  is  restrained  to  the  Jews,  see  Gal.  vi.  15.  "  For  in 
Christ,  neither  circumcisnon  availeth  any  thing,  nor  uncir- 
jSnacision,  but  a  new  creature."  And  Luke  xiv.  17.  "  Gome, 
for  all  things  are  now  ready  ;  and  ver.  23,  24. 

You  see  by  this  time,  that  we  are  commanded  to  offer 
'  tifeto  you  all,  and  to  tell  you  from  God,  that  if  you  wil) 
Turn  you  may  Live. 

Here  you  may  safely  trust  your  souls ;  for  the  love  of 
God  is  the  fountain  of  this  offer '.  And  the  blood  of  the 
Son  of  God  hath  purchased  it ;  the  faithfulness  and  truth  of 
God  is  engaged  to  make  the  promise  good ;  miracles  have 
sealed  up  the  truth  of  it;  preachers  are  sent  through  the 
World  to  proclaim  it ;  the  sacraments  are  instituted  and  used 
for  the  solemn  delivery  of  the  mercy  offered,  to  them  that 
will  accept  it ;  and  the  Spirit  doth  open  the  heart  to  enter- 
tain it,  and  is  itself  the  earnest  of  the  full  possession.  So 
that  the  truth  of  it  is  past  controversy,  that  the  worst  of 
you  all,  and  every  one  of  you,  if  you  will  but  be  converted, 
may  be  saved. 

Indeed,  if  you  will  needs  believe  you  shall  be  saved  with- 
out converaion,  then  you  believe  a  falsehood ;  and  if  I  should 
preach  that  to  you,  I  should  preach  a  lie.  This  were  not  to 
believe  God,  but  the  devil  and  your  own  deceitful  hearts. 
God  hath  his  promise  of  life,  and  the  devil  hath  his  promise 

>  Johniii.  16. 


382  caJjL  to  the  unconverted^ 

of  life.  God's  promise  is,  '  Retntn  and  Lire ;'  the  devil's 
IB,  *  Thorn  shalt  liv«  whether  thorn  turn  or  not.'  The  wofdi 
of  God  ar^,  as  I  have  rfiewed  you,  "  Except  ye  be  6oiiverted 
and  become  as  little  children,  ye  cannot  enter  into  the  king*' 
dom  of  heaven  *."  *'  Except  a  man  be  bom  again,  he  can- 
not enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God  ","  "  Without  holttiMi 
none  shall  see  God  »."  The  devil's  word  i«,  '  You  may  be 
saved  without  being  born  again,  and  converted  ;  you  may 
go  to  heaven  well  enough,  without  being  holy ;  GodtloA 
but  frighten  you ;  he  is  more  merciful  than  to  do  as  bt 
saith ;  he  will  be  better  to  you  than  his  word.'  And>  alas! 
the  greatest  part  of  the  world  believe  this  word  of  the  devfl 
before  the  word  of  God,  just  as  out  Af^t  «in'and  misery  eaml 
into  the  world.  God «aith  to  our  first  parents^  'If  ye  ^ 
ye  shall  die ;'  the  devil  contradicts  him,  and  satth>  ^  ¥l 
dball  not  die ;'  and  the  woman  believed  the  devil  before  God« 
So  now  the  Lord  saith,  '  Turn  or  Die ;'  a^d  llie  devil  uaith, 
'  You  shall  not  die  if  you  do  but^^  mercy  at  last,  and  give 
over  ikie  acts  of  sin,  when  you  can  practise  it  no  bmgiki 
And  this  is  the  word  that  the  worid  believes.  O  heiuout 
wiekedness,  to  believe  the  devil  before  God ! 

And  yet  that  is  not  the  worst>  but  blauphemously  they 
call  this  a  believing  and  trusting  in  (3od,  when  they  put 
him  in  the  shape  of  satan^  who  was  a  liar  from  the  begin- 
ning ;  and  when  they  believe  that  the  word  of  Ood  itt  a  lie, 
they  call  this  a  trusniftg  God,  und  say  they  beiiteve  in  Vaay 
and  trust  on  him  for  salvation.    Where  did  ever  Qod  my, 
that  the  unregenerate,  unconverted,  uusaucti^ed^  shall  be 
saved  ?    Shew  such  a  word  in  ficriptmre)  i  challeugu  you  if 
you  ean.    Why,  this  is  the  devil's  word,  and  to  believe  it,iii 
to  believe  the  devil,  and  is  the  ^  that  is  commonly  ^ealled 
presumption.     Aimd  do  you  call  this  a  believing  and  tmstihi^ 
God  ?     There  is  enough  in  the  wwd  of  God  to  oomlbrt  «&4 
strengthen  the  hearts  of  the  sanctified.     But  not  a  w^d  to 
strengthen  the  hands  of  wickedness,  nor  to  give  mefa  At 
least  hope  of  being  sav^d,  though  they  be  never  «anctiiAed. 

But  if  you  will  tutti,  and  come  into  the  way  of  mei^y, 
the  mercy  of  the  Lord  is  ready  to  entertain  you.  Then  tn«l 
God  for  salvation  boldly  and  confidently,  for  he  is  engaged 
by  his  word  to  save  you. 

'  M^tt.  xviii.  3.  ■  John  m,  3.  5.  ""  Heb.  xii.  14. 


CALL   TO   THfe    UNCONVKRTfiD.  383 

He  will  be  a  father  to  tiotie  but  his  diildren>  akid  he  will 
iMtve  ti<me  but  ^ose  that  forsake  the  world,  the  devil,  and 
the  flesh,  and  come  itito  his  family,  to  be  tnembers  of  hi« 
IS^sm,  and  have  eommunion  with  the  saints.     But  if  they  will      * 
not  oome  in,  it  is  long  of  themselves  ;  his  doors  are  open;     ;-  ^ 
he  keeps  none  back  ;  he  never  sent  such  a  message  as  this       f 
W  luiy  of  yott,  '  It  is  now  too  late,  I  will  not  receive  thee,      '  ^ 
ijhotigh  thOu  be  converted.'     He  might  have  done  so,  and 
4biie  yoil  no  wrong,  but  he  did.  not,  he  doth  not  to  this  day, 
fce  is  still  ready  to  receive  you,  if  you  were  but  ready  »b^ 
feignedly,  and  with  all  yo^r  hearts,  to  turn.     And  the  ful- 
iiestr  ^  this  trtith  will  yet  more  appear  in  the  two  following 
de^ttinefit,  which  I  shall,  thereibte,  next  proceed  to,  before  I 
make  a  farther  appli^cation  of  this. 

Doct.  III.  God  taketh  pleasure  in  men's  conversion  and 
^vatioti,  btft  not  in  their  death  and  damnation.  He  had 
"taliier  they  "W^uld  return  and  live,  than  go  on  and  die. 

I  shall  first  teach  you  how  to  understand  this  ;  and  then 
di«iar  ti'p  the  truth  of  it  to  you. 

And  fbr  the  filpst,  you  must  observe  these  following 
things  :  1 .  A  simple  willingness  and  complacency  is  fine 
fifftt  act  of  th^  wUi,  following  the  simple  apprehension  of  the 
understanding,  before  it  proceedeth  to  compiare  things  te^ 
gHJher.  But  the  choosing  act  of  the  Will  is  a  following  act, 
MMl  ft^pposeth  the  comparing  practical  act  of  t^  undev^ 
Vtitnding ;  and  these  two  acts  may  often  be  carried  to  con^ 
ttery  objects,  without  any  fkmlt  at  all  in  the  person. 

1i.  An  uttfeigned  willingness  may  have  dirers  degree«k 
^ide  thingd  1  aan  so  for  willing  of,  as  that  I  will  do  M 
ikttk  lieth  in  wiy  power  to  aecomplish  them.  And  some 
things  I  am  truly  willing  another  should  do,  when  yet  I  wiU 
Mot  do  ^all  that  ev^er  I  am  able  to  procure  it,  having  many 
iMAons  to  'dissuade  mie  therefrom :  though  yet  I  will  do  all 
that  belongs  to  me  to  do. 

3.  The  will  of  a  ruler,  as  such,  is  manifest  in  making 
and  executing  laws ;  but  the  will  of  a  man  in  his  simple  na- 
lutal  ci^city,  or  as  absolute  Lord  of  his  own,  is  manifested 
in  tlesiring  or  resolving  of  events. 

--  4.  A  raleir's  will,  as  law-^giver,  is,  first  and  principally, 
iftfttthia  law  be  obeyed,  and  not  at  all  that  thepemalty  be  ex- 
eeuted  on  any,  but-enly  on  supposition  that  they  will  not 


\\ 


384  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

obey  his  laws.  But  a  ruler's  will,  as  judge,  supposeth  the 
law  already  either  kept  or  broken.  And,  therefore,  he  re- 
solveth  on  reward  or  punishment  accordingly. 

Having  given  you  these  necessary  distinctions,  I  shall 
next  apply  them  to  the  case  in  hand,  in  these  following  pro- 
positions : 

1.  It  is  in  the  glass  of  the  word  and  creatures  that  in  thig 
life  we  must  know  God.  And  so,  according  to  the  nature  of 
man,  we  ascribe  to  him  understanding  and  will,  removing  all 
the  imperfections  that  we  can,  because  we  are  capable  of  no 
higher  positive  conceptions  of  him. 

.  2.  And  on  the  same  grounds  we  do  (with  the  Scriptures) 
distinguish  between  the  acts  of  God's  will,  as  diversified 
from  the  respects,  or  the  objects,  though  as  to  God's  essence 
they  are  all  one. 

3.  And  the  bolder,  because  that  when  we  speak  of 
Christ,  we  have  the  more  ground  for  it  from  his  human 
nature. 

4.  And  thus  we  say,  that  the  simple  complacency,  will, 
or  love  of  God,  is  to  all  that  is  naturally  or  morally  good, 
according  to  the  nature  and  degree  of  its  goodness.  And 
so  he  hath  pleasure  in  the  conversion  and  salvation  of  all, 

,  which  yet  will  never  come  to  pass. 

5.  And  God,  as  Ruler  and  Law-giver  of  the  world,  had 
so  far  a  practical  will  for  their  salvation,  as  to  make  them  a 
free  deed  of  gift  of  Christ  and  life,  and  an  act  of  oblivion  for 
all  their  sins,  so  be  it  they  will  not  unthankfuUy  reject  it; 
and  to  command  his  messengers  to  offer  this  gift  to  aU  the 
world,  and  persuade  them  to  accept  it.  And  so  he  doth  all 
that,  as  Law-giver  or  Promiser,  belongs  to  him  to  do  for  their 
salvation. 

6.  But  yet  he  resolveth,  as  Law-giver,  that  they  that  will 
not  Turn,  shall  Die.  And  as  Judge,  when  their  day  of  grace 
is  past,  he  will  execute  that  decree. 

7.  So  that  he  thus  unfeignedly  willeth  the  conversion  of 
those  that  never  will  be  converted,  but  not  as  absolute  Lord, 
with  the  fullest  efficacious  resolution,  nor  as  a  thing  which 
he  resolveth  shall  undoubtedly  come  to  pass,  or  would  en- 
gage all  his  power  to  accomplish.  It  is  in  the  power  of  a 
prince  to  set  a  guard  upon  a  murderer,  to  see. that  be  shall 
not  murder  and  be  hanged.     But  i^kupon  good  reason  he 


OAIX  TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  385 

\ 

forbear  this,  and  do  but  send  to  his  subjects,  and  warn  and 
entreat  them  not  to  be  murderers,  I  hope  he  may  well  say; 
that  be  would  not  have  them  murder  and  be  hanged ;  he 
takes  no  pleasure  in  it,  but  rather  that  they  forbear,  and 
live.  And  if  he  do  more  for  some,  upon  some  special  rea- 
son, he  is  not  bound  to  do  so  by  all.  The  king  may  well 
say  to  all  the  murderers  and  felons  in  the  land,  *  I  have  no 
pleasore  in  your  death,  but  rather  that  you  would  obey  my 
laws  and  live ;  but  if  you  will  not,  I  am  resolved  for  all  this, 
that  you  shall  die.'  The  judge  may  truly  say  to  the  thief, 
or  a  murderer, '  Alas  !  man,  I  have  no  delight  in  thy  death, 
I  had  rather  thou  hadst  kept  the  law,  and  saved  thy  life,  but 
seeing  thou  hast  not,  I  must  condemn  thee,  or  else  I  should 
be  unjust.'  So,  though  God  have  no  pleasure  in  your  dam- 
nation, and  therefore  calls  upon  you  to  return  and  live, 
yet  he  hath  pleasure  in  the  demonstration  of  his  own  justice^ 
and  the  executing  his  laws  ;  and,  therefore,  he  is  for  all  this 
fully  resolved,  that  if  you  will  not  be  converted,  you  shall 
be  condemned.  If  God  were  so  much  against  the  death  of 
the  wicked,  as  that  he  were  resolved  to  do  all  that  he  can  toi 
hinder  it,  then  no  man  should  be  condemned,  whereas  Christ 
telleth  you,  that  few  will  be  saved.  But  so  far  God  is  against 
your  damnation,  as  that  he  will  teach  you  and  warn  you,  and 
set  before  you  life  and  death,  and  offer  you  your  choice, 
and  command  his  ministers  to  entreat  you  not  to  damn 
yourselves,  but  accept  his  mercy,  and  so  to  leave  you  with- 
out excuse ;  but  if  this  will  not  do,  and  if  still  you  be  un- 
converted, he  professeth  to  you  he  is  resolved  of  your  dam- 
nation, and  hath  commanded  us  to  say  to  you  in  his  name, 
ver.  18.  '*  O  wicked  man,  thou  shalt  surely  die !"  And  Christ 
bath  little  less  than  sworn  it  over  and  over,  with  a  **  Verily, 
verily ;  except  ye  be  converted  and  born  again,  ye  cannot 
enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven  y."  Mark  that  he  saith, 
*'  You  cannot."  It  is  in  vain  to  hope  for  it,  and  in  vain  to 
dream,that  God  is  willing  of  it ;  for  it  is  a  thing  that  cannot  be. 
In  a  word,  you  see  then  the  meaning  of  the  text,  that 
God,  the  great  Law-giver  of  the  world,  doth  take  no  plea- 
sure in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  rather  that  they  turn 
and  live ;  though  yet  he  be  resolved  that  none  shall  live  btit 
those  that  turn ;  and  as  a  Judge  even  delighteth  in  justice, 

7  Matt.  ZTiii  3.    John  iii.3. 
VOL.  VII.  C  C 


i 


386  CALL   TO    THE   UNCONVERTED. 

and  manifesteth  his  hatred  of  sin^  though  not  in  their  misery 
which  they  have  brought  upon  themselves»in  itself  considered, 

2.  And  for  the  proofs  of  this  pointy  I  shall  be  very  brief 
in  them,,  because  I  suppose  you  easily  believe  it  already. 

L  The  very  gracious  nature  of  God  proclaimed^  Exodus 
xxxiv>  6.  XX.  6.  and  frequently  elsewhere,  inay  . assure  you 
of  this,  that  he  hath  no  pleasure  in  your  death. 

2.  If  God  had  more  pleasure  in  thy  death,  than  in  thy 
conversion  and  life,  he  would  not  have  so  frequently,  com- 
manded thee  in  his  word  to  turn,  he  would  not  have  made 
thee  such  promises  of  life,,  if  thou  wilt  but  tura^  he  woidd 
not  have  persuaded  thee  to  it  by  so  many  reasons,  llie  te- 
nor of  his  Gospel  proveth  the  point. 

3.  And  his  commission  that  he  hath  given  to  the  niinis- 
ters  of  the  Gospel,  doth  fully  prove  It.  If  God  had  taken 
more  pleasure  in  thy  damnation,  than  in  thy  conversion  %ncl 
salvation,  he  would  never  have  charged  us  to  o^e^.  yoi|jin/er- 
cy,  and  to  teach  you  the  way  of  life,  both^  publicly, ^and^prif 
vately ;  and  to  entreat  and  beseech  you  to  turp  and  liv^^  ^  P 
acquaint  you  of  your  sins,  and  foretel  you  of  your  ji^^er ; 
and  to  do  all.  that  possibly  we  can  for  your  conversion,  and 
to  continue  patiently  so  doing,  though  you  should/h%t(3,or 
abuse  us  for  our  pains.  Would  God  have  done  this  a^dfyp- 
pointed  his  ordinances  for  your  good,  if  he  h^d^takeii  pl^ 
sure  in  your  death?  ;  »      : : 

4.  It  is  proved  also  by  the  course  of  his  prj;jvidyifi&>  ,Jf 
God  had  rather  you  were  damned  than  converted  and  s^veji, 
he  would  not  second  his  word  with  his  works,^  an^^  f  i^tice 
you  by  his  daily  kindness  to  himself,  and  give  you  all  ^ 
mercies  of  this  life,  which  are  his  means  to  lead  yovi  to  ,i^ 
pentance,  ajid  bring  you  so  often  under  \m  rod,  to  force  yj|^ 
into  your  wits.  He  would  not  set  so  many  examp^l^S;  befi)^ 
your  eyes ;  no,  nor  wait  on  you  so  patiently  as  he  doth  bom 
d|ty  to  day,  and  year  to  year..  These  be  not  signs  of  one 
that  taketh  pleasure  in  your  death ;  if  this  had  beei;!  his  (le- 
light,  how  easily  could  h^  have  had  thee  long  agp  in  hell? 
How  oft,  before  this,  could  lie  have  catched  |;hee  away,  in 
the  midst  of  thy  sins«  with  a  curse  or  oath^  or  lie  .in  % 
mouth,  in  thy  ignorance  and  pride,  and  sensuE^ity^.wk^ 
thou  wert  last  in  thy  drunkenness,  or  last  deriding ^e.9)rit]r> 
of  God?     How  easily  could  he  have  stopped  thy  breaA, 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTBD.  387 

and  tamed  thee  with  his  plagues,  and  made  thee  sober  in 
another  world  ?  Alas  !  how  small  a  m?tttet  is  it  for  the  Al- 
zoighty  to  rule  the  tongue  of  th^  profanest  railer,  and  tie 
the  hands  of  the  most  malicious  persecutor ;  or  calm  the 
fury  of  the  bitterest  of  his  enemies,  and  make  them  know 
they^ar^  but  worms.  If  he  shoi:^d  but  frown  upon  thee, 
thou  wouldst  drop  into  thy  grave,  .  If  he  gave  com^isaipn 
to  one  of  his  angels  to  go  and  destrpy  ten  thousand  sinners, 
hoff  quickly  would  it  be  done  ?  How  eas^y  oa^  he  lay  t|iee  « 
upoi^  the  bed  of  languishing,  and  make  thee  lie  roaring  th^re  I 
io  pain,  and  make  thee  eat  the  words  of  reproach  which 
thou  hast  spoken  agaipst  his  servants,  his  word,  his  wor- 
ship, and  his  holy  ways ;  and  make  thee  sei^d  to  beg  ifx^it 
prayers,  whom  thou  didst  despise  in  thy.  presuij^p^pn? 
I^ow  easily  can  he  lay  that  flesh  undev  gripes  and  gipoans^ 
and  moke  it  too  weak  to  hold  thy  sojol,  and  mike  it  j;apre 
loathsome  than  the  dung  of  the  earth  ?.  That  flesh  wh^h 
Qpw  must  have  what  it  loves,  and  must  not.  be  displeased, 
and  must  be  humpured  with  meat,  drink,  and  clothes,  wh^t- 
so^Y^  Go4  ^^y^  ^^  ^^  contr^,  how,  quickly  would. t}\e 
froT^ns  of  God  consume  it  ?  When  thou  wast  passionately 
defending  thy  sin,  and  quarrelling  with  them  that  would  have 
drai^n  thee  from  it,  and  shewing  thy  spleen  against  the  re- 
pri^yofs,  an4  pleadiug  for  the.  works  of  darkness  ;  bow  easily 
i^q)4  0<>^  snatch  thee  ^way  in  a  moment,  and  ^et  ^ee  before 
his  ^r^sidful  Majesty,  where  thou  mayst  see  ten  thousand 
l^es  t^n  diousand  of  glorious  angeti  waiting  on  his  throne^ 
f^d  call  tlie.e  Inhere  to  plef^d  Uiy  c^use,  a^d  ask  thee, '  What 
iiast  tho^i  now  to  say  a^^nst  thy  Creator,  bis  trut^,  his  ^(^%t 
vants,  or  his  holy  ways ;  now  plead  thy  cause,  and  make. the 
best  of  it  thou  canst*  Now  what  canst  tho^  say  in  excuse 
of  thy  sins?  Now  give  account  of  thy  worldljnpss  and 
fleshly  life,  of  thy  tim^,  of  all  thy  mercies  t)»ou  hast  had.' 
P  how  thy  stubborn  heart  would  hav^  melted,  and  thy  proud 
Igoks  be  taken  down,  and  thy  countenance  appalled,  and  thy 
stout  words  turned  into  speechless  ^lence,  or  dreadful  criea; 
if  God  had  but  set  thee  thus  at  bis  bar,  and  pleaded  I^is 
otrn  cause  widi  thee,  which  thou  hast  here  so  maliciously 
pleaded  against.  How  easily  can  he,  at  any  time,  ^ay  to  tlvy 
guilty  soul,  '  Come  away,  and  live  in  thstt  flesh  no  longer,  till 
the  resurrection,'  and  it  cannot  resist  ?    A  word  of  his  mouth> 


388    :  cAliL  TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

would  take  off  the  noise  of  thy  present  life,  and  then  all  thy - 
parts  and  powers  would  stand  still ;  and  if  he  say  unto  thee, 
'  Live  no  longer ;'  or  'Live  in  hell/  thou  couldst  not  disobey. 
But  God  hadi  yet  done  none  of  this ;  but  hath  patien% 
forborne  thee,  and  mercifully  upheld  thee,  and  given  thee 
that  breath  which  thou  didst  breathe  out  against  him,  and 
given  those  mercies  which  thou  didst  sacrifice  to  the  flesh; 
and  afforded  thee  that  provision  which  thou  spentest  to  sa- 
tisfy thy  greedy  throat :  he  gave  thee  every  minute  of  t&it 
time  which  thou  didst  waste  in  idleness,  and  drunkenness, 
I     or  worldliness.    And  doth  not  all  his  patience  and  mercy 
I  I  shew  that  he  desired  not  thy  damnation?    Can  the  candle 
^      bum  without  the  oil  ?    Can  your  houses  stand  without  the 
earth  to  bear  them  ?    As  well  as  you  can  live  one  hour  with- 
out the  support  of  God.    And  why  did  he  so  long  support 
thy  life,  but  to  see  when  thou  wouldst  bethink  thee  of  the 
folly  of  thy  ways,  and  return  and  livie?    Will  any  man  pur* 
posely  put  arms  into  his  enemy's  hands  to  resist  him  ?    Or 
hold  a  candle  to  a  murderer  that  is  killing  his  children? 
Or  to  an  idle  servant  that  plays  and  sleeps  the  while  ?     Sure- 
ly it  is  to  see  whether  thou  wilt  at  last  return  and  live,  that 
God  has  so  long  waited  on  thee. 
/  5.  It  is  further  proved  by  the^sufferings  of  his  Son  that 

God  taketh  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  wicked.  Wgnld 
j  he  have  ransomed  them  from  death  at  so  dear  a  rate  ?  WciiM 
he  have  astonished  angels  and  men  by  his  condescension? 
Would  God  have  dwelt  in  flesh,  and  have  come  in  the  form 
of  a  servant,  and  have  assumed  humanity  into  one  person 
with  the  Godhead  ?  And  would  Christ  have  lived  a  life  of 
suffering,  and  died  a  cursed  death  for  sinners  ;  if  he  had  ra- 
ther taken  pleasure  in  their  death  ?  Suppose  you  saw  him 
but  so  busy  in  preaching  and  healing  of  them,  as  you  find 
him  in  Mark  iii.  21.;  or  so  long  in  festing,  as  in  Matt.  \y.\ 
:  or  all  night  in  prayer,  as  in  Luke  vi.  12.;  or  praying  witli 
drops  of  blood  trickling  from  him  instead  of  sweat,  as  Luke 
xxii.  44. ;  or  suffering  a  cursed  death  upon  the  cross,  and 
pouring  out  his  soul  as  a  sacrifice  for  our  sins :  would  yov 
have  thought  these  the  signs  of  one  that  delighteth  in  the 
death  of  the  wicked  ? 

And  think  not  to  extenuate  it  by  saying,  that  it  was  only 
for  bis  elect.    For  \t  ^^  lYv^  ^\w,  ^.wd  the  sin  of  all  the 


CAIiL   TO    THE   UNCONVERTED.  388 

world,  that  lay  upon  our  Redeemer;  and  his  sacrifice  and 
satisfaction  is  sufficient  for  all,  and  the  fruits  of  it  are  offer- 
ed to  one  as  well  as  another ;  but  it  is  true  that  it  was  neve 
the  intent  of  his  mind,  to  pardon  and  save  any  that  would 
not  by  faith  and  repentance  be  converted.  If  you  had  seen 
and  heard  him  weeping  and  bemoaning  the  state  of  disobe- 
dience in  impenitent  people,  Luke  xix.  41,  42,,  or  complain- 
ing of  their  stubbornness,  as  Matt.xxiii.  37.  "  O  Jerusalem, 
Jerusalem,  how  oft  would  I  have  gathered  thy  children  to- 
gether, even  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under  her  wings, 
and  ye  would  not?"  Or  if  you  had  seen  and  heard  him  on 
the  cross,  praying  for  his  persecutors,  "  Father,  forgive  them, 
for  they  know  not  what  they  do ;"  would  you  have  suspect- 
ed that  he  had  delighted  in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  even  of 
those  that  perish  by  their  wilful  unbelief?  '*  When  God 
liath  so  loved"  (not  only  loved,  but  so  loved)  *'  the  world  as  to 
give  his  only  begotten  Son,  that  whosoever  believeth  in  him," 
(by  an  effectual  faith,)  "  should  not  perish,  but  have  everlast- 
ii^  life,"  I  think  he  hath  hereby  proved,  against  the  ma- 
lice of  men  and  devils,  that  he  takes  no  pleasure  in  the  death 
of  the  wicked,  but  had  rather  that  they  would  Turn  and  Live. 

6.  Lastly,  If  all  this  will  not  yet  satisfy  you,  take  his 
own  word,  that  knoweth  best  his  own  mind,  or  at  least  be- 
lieve his  oath.  But  this  leadeth  me  up  to  the  fourta  doctrine. 

Doct.  LV.  The  Lord  hath  confirmed  it  to  us  by  his  oath, 
that  he  hath  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  ra- 
ther that  he  Turn  and  Live ;  that  he  may  leave  man  no  pre- 
tence to  question  the  truth  of  it. 

If  you  dare  question  his  word,  I  hope  you  dare  not  ques- 
tion his  oath.  As  Christ  hath  solemnly  protested,  that  the 
imregenerate  and  unconverted  cannot  enter  into  the  king- 
d<»n  of  heaven,  in  Matt,  xviii.  3.  John  iii.  3. ;  so  God  hath 
sworn,  that  his  pleasure  is  not  in  their  death,  but  in  their 
conversion  and  life.  And  as  the  apostle  saith,  Heb.  ai.  13J 
16 — 18.  ''  Because  he  can  swear  by  no  greater  than  himself^ 
he.  saith.  As  I  live,  &c.  For  men  verily  swear  by  the  greater, 
tod  an  oath  for  confirmation  is  to  them  an  end  of  all  strife^ 
Wherein  God,  willing  more  abundantly  to  shew  unto  the 
heirs  of  promise,  the  immutability  of  his  counsel,  confirmed 
it  by  an  oath  :  that  by  two  immutable  things,  in  which  it  was 
impossible  for  God  to  lie,  we  might  have  a  ^Uou^g,  c^oxa^^-^ 


390  ^        CALL  to   THiE   UNCONVEktfcD. 

Hou,  who  hMe  #ed  fot  r6fi)^^  to  \iy  )iold  6n  tK6  h6pe  a^t  be- 
fore us }  which  hope  w^  have  as  an  anchor  6'f  the  ftOTil,'boA 
sure  and  steadfast/'  If  there  be  any  itian  that  cannot  recon<* 
cile  this  truth  with  the  doctrine  of  predeistination,  or  theao 
tual  damnation  of  the  wicked^  that  is  his^  own  ignorance ;  he 
hath  «o  pretence  left  to  deny  or  question  therefore  the  trtith 
of  the  point  in  hand ;  for  this  is  confirmed  by  the  bath  of 
Ood,  and  therefore  must  not^e  distorted,  to  reduce  it  to 
other*  points,  but  doubtful  points  must  rather  be  reduced  t(y 
it,  and  certain  truths  mlist  be  believed  to  dgree  with  it,  though 
our  shallow  brains  do  hardly  discern  the  agre^imetit. 

USB.  I  do  entreat  thee,  if  thou  beaii  unconveftefd  sinneif 
that  hearest  these  words,  that  thou  wouldst  ponder  fc  little 
upon  the  forementioned  doctrines,  and  bethink  thyself 
awfaile>  who  it  is  that  takes  pleasure  in  thy  sin  and  damna- 
tion* J  Certainly  it  is  not  God'.  He  hath  swotn  for  his  pkrt, 
that  he  takes  no  pleasure  in  it.  And  I  know  it  is  not  the 
pleAfBing  of  him  that  you  intend  in  it.  You  dare  not  s$kf 
that  y Ou  drink  and  sWear,  and  neglect  holy  duties,  anil  <][iienph 
the  motions  of  the  Spirit,  to  please  God.  That  Were  as  if 
you  should  reproach  the  prince,  and  break  his  llaWis,  and 
seek  his  death,  and  say,  you  did  all  this  to  please  him. 

Who  is  it  then  that  takes  pleasure  in  your  sin  and  deatht 
Not  any  that  bear  the  image  of  God,  for  they  must  be  like- 
minded  to  hi^.     God  knows,  it  is  small  pleasure  tb  your 
faithful  teachers,  to  see  you  serve  your  deadly  enemy,  and 
madly  venture  your  eternal  state,  anil  wilfdlly  rtin  into  the 
flames  of  hell.     It  is  small  pleasure  to  them,  to.  see  upon 
your  souls  (in  the  sad  effects)  such  blindness,  and.  hard- 
heartedness,  and  carelessness,  and  ptesumption  ;  such  wil- 
fulness in  evil,   and  such  uncharitableness,  an1d  Stiffiiess, 
against  the  ways  of  life  and  peiace;  they  know  the^se  are 
marks  of  death,  and  of  the  wrath  of  God,  and  they  know 
from  the  wotd  of  God  what  is  like  to  be  the  end  df  them; 
and  therefore  it  is  no  more  pleasure  to  them,  than  to  k  ten- 
der physician  to  s<3e  the  plague-tnarks  break  out  upon  his 
patient.     Alas !  to  foresee  your  everlasting  tornients,  ^ 
know  not  how  to  prevent  them !    To  6ee  how  near  you  are 
to  hell,  and  we  cannot  make  you  believe  it,  and  consider  it! 
To  see  how  easily,  how  certainly  you  might"  escape^  if  wie 
knew  but  how  to  make  ^o\3l  vj'\\\\w%\    tt-^vi  fair  you  are  for 


CSLhl'   TO  THE  UNGOKVBKTED.  391 

evai^trting'Balyation,  if  you  would  but  turn  and  do  your 
be»ti  'and  make  it  the  oare  and  business  of  your  lives !  But 
yovwiU  not  do  it^  if  our  lives  lay  on  it^  we  cannot  persuade 
you  tedo  it.  WotStudy  day  €tnd  night  what  to  say  to  you, 
that  ^may  convince  you>  and  persuade  you,  and  yet  it  is  un«^. 
done  :  we  lay  before  you  the  word  of  Qod,  and  shew  you 
the  very  i  chapter  and  verse  where  it  is  written,  th^t  you 
cannot  foe  saved  except  you  be  converted ;  and  yet  we  leiave 
the  moat  of  yoo  as  we  find  you :  we  hope  ye  will  believe  the 
wovd  of  Qod,  though  you  believe  not  us,  and  that  you  wilL 
regard  it  when  we  shew  you  plain  Scripture  for  it :  but  we 
hope  in  vain,  and'  labour  in  vain,  as  to  any  saving  change 
upoayour  hearts^  And  do  you  think  that  this  is  a  pleasant: 
tLg  to  u»?  Many  a  time  in  secret  prayers  we  are'fain  to 
complain  to  God  with  sad  hearts,  *  Alas,  Lord,  we  have  spo*; 
ken  it  to  them,  in  thy  name,  but  they  little  regard  us ;  we 
have  told  them  what  Uiou  bidst  us  tell  them,  concerning  the 
dangerof  an  unconverted  state,  but  they  do  not  believe  us ; 
we  have  told  them  that  thou  bast  protested, ''  That  there  is 
no  peace  to  the  wicked ',"  but  the  worst  of  them  all  will 
scarcely  believe. that  they  are  wicked ;  we  have  shewed  them 
the  word,  where  thou  hast  said,  *'  That  if  they  live  Rafter  the 
flesh4bey  shall  die  V'  but  they  say,  t)iey  will  believe  in 
thee,: when  they  will  not  believe  thee:  and  that  they  will 
trust  mtheei  when  they  give  no  credit  to  thy  word,  and 
when  they  hope  that  the  threatenings  of  thy  word  are  false» 
th^  will  yet  call  diis  a  hoping  in  God ;  and  though  we 
shew  them  where  thou  hast  said, ''  That  when  a  wicked  man 
diethyiaU  his  hopes  perish^,"  yet  cannot  we  persuade  them 
from  their  deceitful  hope*.  We  tell  them  w^at  a  base,,  un- 
pro&table  thing  sin  is,  but  they  love  it,  and  therefor^  will 
n€^  leave  iU  We  tell  them  how  dear  they  buy  their  jfJiea- 
sure,- and- what  they  must  pay  for  it  in  everlasting  tormenty 
and  they  bless  themselves  and  will  not  believe  it,  but  will 
do  as  the  most  do ;  and  because  God  is  merciful,  they  will 
not  believe  him,  but  will  venture  their  souls,  come  on  it 
what  will.  We  tell  them  how  ready  the  Lord  is  to  receive 
them ;  and  this  does  but  make  them  delay  their  repentance, 
and  be  bolder  in  their  sin.  Some  of  them  say,  they  purpose 
to  repent,  but  they  are  still  the  same ;  and  some  say,  they 

»  Iia.xlfiu.  22.    Wiu  21.  *  Row.aIu,  13.  »•  Yto^.  i\.t* 


392  CALL  TO  THE    UMCONVSRTSP. 

do  repent  already,  while  yet  they  are  not  converted  finm 
their  sins.  We  exhort  them,  we  entreat  them,  we  offer  them 
oar  help,  but  we  cannot  prevail  with  them,  bat  they  that 
were  drankards  are  drankards  still,  and  they  that  were  to* 
laptupus,  flesh-pleasing  wretches,  are  such  still ;  and  th^ 
that  were  worldlings  are  worldlings  still;  and  they,  that 
were  ignorant,  proud  and  self-conceited,  are  so  still.  Few 
of  them  will  see  and  confess  their  sin,  and  fewer  will  forr 
sake  it>  but  comfort  themselves  that  all  men  are  sinncors ;  as 
if  there  were  no  difference  between  a  converted  sinner,  and 
an  unconverted.  Some  of  them  will  not  come  near  us  when 
we  are  willing  to  instruct  them,  but  think  they  know  enough 
already,  and  need  not  our  instruction :  and  some  of  them* 
will  give  us  the  hearing,  and  do  what  they  list ;  and  most 
of  them  are  like  dead  men  that  cannot  feel ;  so  that  when 
we  tell  them  of  the  matters  of  everlasting  consequence,  we 
cannot  get  a  word  of  it  to  their  hearts.  If  we  do  not  obey 
them,  and  humour  them  in  baptizing  children  of  the  most 
obstinately  wicked,  and  giving  them  the  Lord's  supper,  and 
doing  all  that  they  would  have  us,  though  never  so  mvch 
against  the  word  of  God,  they  will  hate  us,  and  rail  at  us ; 
but  if  we  beseech  them  to  confess  and  forsake  their  sins, 
and  save  their  souls,  they  will  not  do  it.  We  tell  them  if 
they  will  but  turn«  we  will  deny  them  none  of  the  ordinances 
of  God,  neither  baptism  to  their  children,  nor  the  Lord's 
supper  to  themselves;  but  they  will  not  hear  us:  they 
would  have  us  to  disobey  God,  damn  our  own  souls  to  please 
them,  and  yet  they  will  not  turn,  and  save  their  own  aouls 
to  please  God.  They  are  wiser  in  their  own  eyes  than  all 
their  teachers ;  they  rage,  and  are  confident  in  their  own 
way ;  and  if  we  would  never  so  fain  we  cannot  change  them. 
Lord,  this  is  the  case  of  our  miserable  neighbours,  and  we 
cannot  help  it ;  we  see  them  ready  to  drop  into  hell,  and  we 
cannot  help  it ;  we  know  if  they  would  unfeignedly  turn, 
they  might  be  saved  ;  but  we  cannot  persuade  them  :  if  we 
would  beg  it  of  them  on  our  knees,  we  cannot  persuade  them 
to  it ;  if  we  would  beg  it  of  them  with  tears,  we  cannot  per- 
suade them  :  and  what  more  can  we  do?' 

These  are  the  secret  complaints  and  moans  that  many  a 
poor  minister  is  fain  to  make,  and  do  you  think  that  he  hath 
any  pleasure  in  this  1    l«  it  a.  ^lea&ure  to  him  to  see  you  go 


CALL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED.  993 

on  in  sin  and  cannot  stop  you  ?  To  see  you  so  miserable^ 
and  cannot  so  much  as  make  you  sensible  of  it?  To  see  you 
merry,  when  you  are  not  sure  to  be  an  hour  out  of  hell  ?  To 
think  what  you  must  for  ever  suffer  because  you  will  not 
turn  ?  And  to  think  what  an  everlasting  life  of  glory  you 
wilfulLy  despise  and  cast  away  ?  What  sadder  things  can 
you  bring  to  their  hearts,  and  how  can  you  devise  to  grieve 
them  more? 

Who  is  it  then  that  you  pleasure  by  your  sin  and  death  ? 
It  is  none  of  your  understanding,  godly  friends.  Alas,  it  is 
the  grief  of  their  souls  to  see  your  misery,  and  they  lament 
you  many  a  time,  when  you  give  them  little  thanks  for  it, 
and  when  you  have  not  hearts  to  lament  yourselves. 

Who  is  it  then  that  takes  pleasure  in  your  sin  ?  It  is 
none  but  the  three  great  enemies  of  God,  whom  you  re- 
nounced in  your  baptism,  and  now  are  turned  falsely  to  serve. 

1  •  The  devil,  indeed,  takes  pleasure  in  your  sin  and  death ; 
for  this  is  the  very  end  of  all  his  temptations :  for  this  he 
watches  night  and  day  :  you  cannot  devise  to  please  him 
better,  than  to  go  on  in  sin  :  how  glad  is  he  when  he  sees 
thee  going  to  the  alehouse,  or  other  sin ;  and  when  he  hear- 
ejth  thee  curse,  or  swear,  or  rail.  How  glad  is  he  when  he 
heareth  thee  revile  the  minister  that  would  draw  thee  from 
thy  sin,  and  help  to  save  thee  ?    These  are  his  delight. 

2.  The  wicked  are  also  delighted  in  it,  for  it  is  agreeable 
to  their  nature. 

3.  But  I  know,,  for  all  this,  that  it  is  not  the  pleasing  of 
the  devil  that  you  intend,  even  when  you  please  him ;  but 
it  is  your  own  flesh,  the  greatest  and  most  dangerous  enemy, 
that  you  intend  to  please.  It  is  the  flesh  that  would  be  pam- 
pered-, that  would  be  pleased  in  meat  and  drink,  and  cloth- 
ing, that  would  be  pleased  in  your  company,  and  pleased  in 
applause  and  credit  with  the  world,  and  pleased  in  sports 
and  lusts,  and  idleness  ;  this  is  the  gulf  that  devoureth  all. 
This  is  the  very  God  that  you  serve,  for  the  Scripture  saith 
of  such,  "  That  their  bellies  are  their  God*^." 

But  I  beseech  you  stay  a  little  and  consider  the  business. 

1.  Quest*  Should  your  flesh  be  pleased  before  your 
Maker  ?  Will  you  displease  the  Lord,  and  displease  your 
teacher,  and  your  godly  friends,  and  all  to  please  your  brut- 

c  Phil.  iii.  18, 


394  CALL  TO  THE  uwcoNrcmmD. 

ish  appetiteB,  or  senflnial  desires  ?  Is  not  Ood  worthy  to  be 
a  ruler  of  your  flesh ;  if  he  shall  not  rule  it,  he  will  not  safe 
it ;  you  cannot  in  reason  expect  that  he  should* 

2.  Quest.  Your  flesh  is  pleased  with  your  sin ;  but  is  yo«r 
conscience  pleased  ?  Doth  not  it  grudge  within  you,  and 
tell  you  sometimes  that  all  is  not  well,  and  that  your  case  is 
not  so  ^afe  as  you  make  it  to  be  ?  And  should  aot  your 
souls  and  conscienceSjbe  pleased  before  that  corruptible  flesh? 

3.  Quest »  But  is  not  your  flesh  preparing  for  its  own  dis- 
pleasure also  ?     It  loves  the  bait,  but  doth  it  love  the  hoott 
It  loves  the  strong  drink  and  sweet  morsels ;  it  loves  its 
ease/and  sport,  and  merriment,  it  loves  to  be  rich,  and  well 
spoken  of  l>y  men,  and  to  be  somebody  in  the  world,  but 
dot6  it  love  the  curse  of  God  ?     Doth  it  love  to  stand-  trem- 
bling before  his  bar,  and  to  be  judged  to  everlasting  fire) 
Doth  it  love  to  be  tormented  with  the  devils  for  ever  ?    Take 
altogether;  for  there  is  no  separating  sin  and  hell,  but  only 
by  fkith  and  true  conversion ;  if  you  will  keep  one,  you  miu^ 
have  the  other.     If  death  and  hell  be  pleasant  to  thee,  m 
wondeir  then  if  thou  go  on  in  sin ;  but  if  they  be  not  (as  I 
am  sure  they  be  not)  then  what  if  sin  be  never  so  pleiasanti 
is  it  worth  the  loss  of  life  eternal  ?  Is  a  little  drink,  meat, 
ease,  the  good  word  of  sinners,  or  the  riches  of  this  world, 
to  be  valued  above  the  joys  of  heaven?     Or  are  they  worth 
the  suflRsrings  of  eternal  fire  ?     Sirs,  these  questions  should 
be  considered,  before  you  go  any  farther,  by  every  man  that 
hath  reason  to  consider,  and  that  believes  he  hath  a  soul  to 
save  or  lose. 

Well,  the  Lord  here  sweareth  that  he  hath  no  pleasure  in 
your  death,  but  rather  that  you  would  Tuni  and  Live:  if 
yet  you  will  go  on  and  die,  rather  than  turn,  remember  it 
was  not  to  please' God  that  you  did  it,  it  was  to  please  the 
world,  and  to  please  yourselves.  And  if  men  will  damn 
themselves  to  please  themselves,  and  run  into  endless  tor- 
ments for  delight,  and  have  not  the  wit,  the  heart,  the  grace 
to  hearken  to  God  or  man  that  would  reclaim  them,  what 
remedy  ?  But  they  must  take  what  they  get  by  it,  and  re- 
pent in  another  manner,  when  it  is  too  late.  Before  I  pro- 
ceed any  farther  in  the  application,  L  shall  come  to  the  next 
doctrine ;  which  giveth  a  fuller  ground  for  it. 

Doct.y.  So  eaTneat\»CiodLfeT\!cv^cQ>T«^t%vou  of  sinners, 


CflLfcL  IV)  THE  UNCONVCR44&.  896 

tliat  he  doubleih  liig.  cottlniandB  and  exh<Mrtation8  with  ye- 
hemency ;  •**  Turn  y^,  tarn  ye,  why  will  ye  die  V 

This  doctrine  is  the  application  of  the  former,  as  by  a 
use  of  exhortation,  atid  accordingly  I  shall  handle  it.    Iii 
there  erer  an  unconverted  sinner,  that  heareth  these  Teller* 
ment  words  of  God  ?    Is  there  ever  a  man  or  woman  in  this 
assembly,  that  is  yet  a  stranger  to  the  renewing,  sanctify- 
ing works  of  the  Holy  Ohost?    (It  is  a  happy  assembly  if 
it  be  not  so  with  the  most.)    Hearken  then  to  the  roico'of 
your   Maker,  and  turn  to  him  by  Christ  without  dehiy. 
Would  you  know  the  will  of  God?    Why  this i«  his  will, 
that  you  presently  turn.     Shall  the  living  God  send  so  eat^ 
faest  a  message  to  his  creaturei»,  and  should  they  not  obey? 
Hearken  then  all  you  that  live  after  the  flesh;  the  Lord  that 
gave  thee  thy  breath  and  being,  hath  sent  a  message  to  thee 
from  heaven,  and  this  is  his  messctge,  '' Turn  ye,  tumye^ 
why  will  ye  die  V^     *'  He  that  hath  ears  to  hear,  let  faint 
hear."    ShiUl  the  voiceof  the  Eternal  Majesty  be  neglected? 
If  he  do  but  terribly  thunder,  thou  art  afraid.     O  but  this 
voice  doth  more  nearly  concern  thee  :  if  he  do  but  tell  thee 
thou  shalt  die  to-motrow,  thou  wouldst  not  make  lightof 
it :  O  but  this  word  concemeth  thy  life  or  death  everiasting ! 
It  is  both  a  command  and  an  exhortation :  as  if  he  had.  said 
to  theOi  'I  charge  thee  upon  the  allegiance  thou  owestto 
me  thy  Creator  smd  Redeemer,  thatthou  renounce  the  flesh, 
the  world,  and  the  devil,  and  turn  to  me  that  thou  mayst 
live.     I-<condes(^nd  to  entreat  thee,  as  thou  lovest  or  fearest 
him  that  made  thee ;  as  thou  lovest  thine  own  life,  even 
thine  everlasting  life.  Turn  and  Live ;  as  ever  thou  wouldst 
escape  eternal  misery.  Turn,  turn,  "  for  why  wilt  thou  die  ?"  * 
And  is  there  a  heart  In  man,  in  a  reasonable  creature,  that 
can  once  refuse  such  a  message,  such  a  command,  such  an 
exhortation  as  this  ?    O  what  a  thing  then  is  the  heart  of  man ! 
HeaHcen  then,  all  that  love  yourselves  and  all  that  re- 
gard your  own  salvation.    Here  is  the  most  joyful  message 
that  ever  was  sent  to  the  ears  of  man,  ''Turn  ye,  turn  ye> 
why  will  you  die  ?"     You  are  not  yet  shut  up  under  despe^ 
ration.    Here  is  mercy  offered,  turn  and  you  shall  have  it. 
O  sirs,  with  what  glad  and  joyful  hearts- should  you  reeeive 
these  tidings !     I  know  that  this  is  not  the  first  time  that 
you  have  heard  it :  but  how  have  you  regarded  it,  or  how 


300  CALL   TO  THE;  UNCONVBRTSD. 

do  you  regard  it  now  ?  Hear,  all  you  ignorant,  careless  sin^ 
ners,  the  word  of  the  Lord  !  Hear  all  you  worldlings,  yoa 
sensual  fleshpleasers,  you  gluttons  and  drunkards,  and 
whoremongers  and  swearers;  you  railers  and  backbiteis, 
slanderers  and  liars ;  ''  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  why  will  ye  die  V* 
Hear  all  you  cold  and  outside  professors,  and  all  that 
are  strangers  to  the  life  of  Christ,  and  never  knew  the  power 
of  his  cross  and  resurrection,  and  never  felt  your  hearts 
wanned  with  his  love,  and  live  not  on  him  as  Uie  strength 
pf  your  souls  ;  "  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  why  will  ye  die  V* 

Hear  all  that  are  void  of  the  love  of  Ood,  whose  hearii 
are  not  towards  him,  nor  taken  up  with  the  hopes  of  glory, 
but  set  more  by  your  earthly  prosperity  and  delights,  than 
by  the  joys  of  heaven ;  you  that  are  religious  but  a  little  on 
the  bye,  and  give  God  no  more  than  your  flesh  can  spare; 
jbhat  have  not  denied  your  carnal  selves,  and  forsaken  all  that 
you  have  for  Christ,  in  the  estimation  and  grounded  resolu- 
tion of  your  souls,  but  have  some  one  thing  in  the  worid  so 
dear  to  you,  that  you  cannot  spare  it  for  Christ,  if  he  requires 
it,  but  will  rather  even  venture  on  his  displeasure,  than  for- 
sake it ;  "  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  why  will  ye  die  V* 

If  you  never  heard  it,  or  observed  it  before  ;  remember 
that  ye  were  told  it  from  the  word  of  God  this  day,  that  if 
you  will  but  turn,  you  may  live ;  and  if  you  will  not  turn  yoa 
shall  surely  die. 

What  now  will  you  do  sirs?  What  is  your  resolution? 
Will  you  turn  or  will  you  not?  Halt  not  any  longer.be- 
tween  two  opinions :  if  the  Lord  be  God  follow  him ;  if  your 
flesh  be  God,  then  serve  it  still.  If  heaven  be  better  than 
earth  and  fleshly  pleasures,  come  away  then  and  seek  a  bet- 
ter country,  and  lay  up  your  treasure  where  rust  and  moths 
do  not  corrupt,  and  thieves  cannot  break  through  and  steal, 
and  be  awakened  at  last  with  all  your  might,  to  seek  the 
kingdom  that  cannot  be  moved,  Heb.  xii.  28.  And  to  em- 
ploy your  lives  on  a  higher  design,  and  turn  the  stream  of 
your  cares  and  labours,  another  way  than  formerly  you  have 
done ;  but  if  earth  be  better  than  heaven,  or  will  do  more  for 
you,  or  last  you  longer,  then  keep  it  and  make  your  best  of 
it,  and  follow  it  still.  Sirs,  are  you  resolved  what  to  do? 
If  you  be  not,  I  will  set  a  few  more  moving  considerations 
before  you,  to  see  \{  te^on.  mW  mak^^^wteaolve. 


CALl/  TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  397 

Consider  first,  what  preparations  mercy  hath  made  for 
your  salvation.    And  what  pity  it  is  that  any  man  should  be 
damned  after  all  this.    The  time  was,  when  the  flaming 
Bword  was  in  the  way,  and  the  curse  of  Qod's  law  would 
have  kept  thee  back,  if  thou  hadst  been  never  so  willing  to 
tarn  to  God :  the  time  was,  when  thyself,  and  all  the  friends 
that  thou  hadst  in  the  world,  could  never  have  procured 
lliee  the  pardon  of  thy  sins  past,  though  thou  hadst  never  so 
much  lamented,  and  reformed  them.     But  Christ  hath  re- 
moved this  impediment,  by  the  ransom  of  his  blood.    The 
time  was,  that  God  was  wholly  unreconciled,  as  being  not 
satisfied  for  the  violation  of  his  law  :  but  now  he  is  so  far 
satisfied  and  reconciled,  as  that  he  hath  made  thee  a  free 
act  of  oblivion,  and  a  free  deed  of  the  gift  of  Christ  and 
life,  and  offereth  it  to  thee,  and  entreateth  thee  to  accept  it, 
and  it  may  be  thine  if  thou  wilt.     For,  "  He  was  in  Christ 
leconciling  the  world  unto  himself,  and  hath  committed  to 
lUl  the  word  of  actual  reconciliation^."     Sinners,  we  are 
commanded  to  do  this  message  to  you  all,  as  from  the  Lord. 
"  Come,  for  all  things  are  ready  *."  Are  all  things  ready,  and 
are  you  unready  ?     God  is  ready  to  entertain  you  and  par- 
don all  that  you  have  done  against  him,  if  you  will  but  come. 
As  long  as  you  have  sinned,  as  wilfully  as  you  have  sinned, 
as  heinously  as  you  have  sinned,  he  is  ready  to  cast  all  be^ 
hind  his  back,  if  you  will  but  come.    Though  you  have  been 
prodigals,  and  run  away  from  God,  and  have  staid  so  long, 
he  is  ready  even  to  meet  you,  and  embrace  you  in  his  arms, 
and  rejoice  in  your  conversion,  if  you  will  but  turn.    Even 
the  earthly  worldling  and  swinish  drunkard,  may  find  God 
retady  to  bid  him  welcome,  if  they  will  but  come.     Doth 
not  this  turn  thy  heart  within  thee  ?     O  sinner,  if  thou  hast 
a  heart  of  flesh,  and  not  of  stone  in  thee,  methinks  this 
should  melt  it ;  shall  the  dreadful  Infinite  Majesty  of  hea- 
ven, even  wait  for  thy  returning,  and  be  ready  to  receive 
thee  who  hast  abused  him,  and  forgotten  him  so  long?  Shall 
he  delight  in  thy  conversion,  that  might  at  any  time  glorify 
his  justice  in  thy  damnation?  and  doth  it  not  yet  melt  thy 
heart  within  thee,  and  art  thou  not  yet  ready  to  come  in? 
Hast  thou  not  as  much  reason  to  be  ready  to  come,  as  God 
hath  to  invite  thee  and  bid  thee  welcome  ? 

'  %  Cor.  V.  18, 19.  •  Lnke  iW.  17* 


398  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

But  that  is  not  all ;  Christ  bath  done  las  part  on  the 
cross,  and  made  such  a  way  for  thee  to  the  Father  tha^  on 
his  aocoopt  thou  mayst  be  welcoiqe*  if  thou  wilt  come.  Aiul 
yet  art  thou  not  ready  ? 

A  pardon  is  already  expressly  granted,  and  offered  tl^ecf 
in  the  Gospel.    And  yet  art  thou  not  re^dy  1 

The  ministers  of  the  Gospel  are  ready  to  aawt  tbeej^to 
instruct  thee,  and  pronounce  the  absolving,  words  of  peape 
to  thy  soul ;  they  are  ready  to  pray  for  thee,  and  tfii  ^esU,  ^f 
thy  pardon  by  the  administration  of  the  holy  sacrament;  ai^ 
yet  art  thou  not  ready  ? 

All  that  f^^  Gt>4  about  thee,  are  ready  to  rejoic^  in  ^y 
conversion,  and  to  receive  thee  into  the  cpovmuniq^  of  ^^inijiijii 
and  to  give  thee  the  right  hand  of  fellowship^  yesa#  ^h^Qjogli 
thou  hadst  been  one  that  had  been  cast  put  pf  the^  9G|9Aet||i 
they  dare  not  but  forgive  yirhere  God  forg^ye^,  yr\en^  ^.in 
manifest  to  them  by  thy  confession  and.amen^QM^Pt?  tjl^ciy 
dare  i^ot  so  much  as  hit  tliee  in  ijh^  ^tb  witji  tl^y  foinw^ 
siQ^  because  they  know  that  God  will  not  upbra|d^^frUh 
them.  If  thou  hc^dst  been  ne ^er  so  sct^idalow^,  if  Uiov 
WQuld^ti  biit  heartily  be  converted  an4  comQ  \x^,  they  woa)d 
not  refuse  thee,  let  the  world  sfiy  what  they  yroi^ld  s^^aiart 
it.  And  are  all  these  ready  to  receive  tl^e^^  and  yej^  art  thou 
npt  ready  to  come  in  ? 

Yea,  h^ftY^u  itself  is  ifeady ;  the  Lord  will  reoeiye  tbfi^ 
into  the  glory  of  the  saints^  as  vile  a  beast  fi^  t^Qii  hs^t  be^i 
if  thou  wilt  but  be  cleansed  thou  may^t  h^ye  s^  pl^pe  bef<W 
his  throne ;  his  angels  will  be  ready  to  guafd  thy.  ^Qi4^t9 
the  place  of  joy,  if  thou  do  but  unfeigne^y  cqfn^.ii).  Aa4 
is  God  ready,  the  sacrifice  of  Christ  ready,  the  promise 
ready,  and  pardon  ready  ?  Are  n^^fiisters  refidy,  th^  people 
of  God  ready,  an4  heaven  itself  ready,  and  ang^^  n^dy>  i^ 
all  these  but  waiting  for  thy  conversion,  and  y^t  firt  i)M^ 
not  ready?  What,  not  ready  to  live,  when  thpit  ba^t.  b^^ 
dead  so  long?  Not  ready  to  come  to  thy  right  undcqrstaR^ 
ing ;  (as  the  prodigal  is  said  to  come  to  hii|[ise}f,  Lu]^  ¥11. 
17.)  when  thou  hast  been  besides  thyself  so  long?  .  TSI'^ 
ready  to  be  saved,  when  thou  art  even  ready  to^be  cpnden^ 
ned  ?  Art  thou  not  ready  to  lay  hold  on  Christ  that  wQjd4 
deliver  thee,  when  thou  art  even  ready  to  drQ^n,  jand  tivk 
into  damnation  1     AlxI  tVioxx  not  t^^A:^  \a  be  «aved  from  hell, 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVRRTHD.  989 

when  thou  art  even  ready  to  be  cast  remediless  into  it ;  alas ! 
inaQ>  dost  thou  know  what  thou  dost  ?  If  thou  die  uncon- 
yertedf  there  is  no  doubt  to  be  made  of  thy  dc^mnation :  tmd 
thou  art  not  sure  to  live  an  hour :  and  yet  art  thou  not  ready 
to  turn,  and  to  come  in  ?  O  miserable  wretch !  Hast  thou 
BOt  served  the  flesh  and  the  devil  long  enough  !  Yet  bast 
thou  not  enough  of  sin  ?  Is  it  so  good  to  thee»  or  so  pro-* 
fitable  for  thee?  Dost  thou  know  what  it.  is;  that  Uiou 
woutdst  yet  have  more  of  it?  Hast  thou  had  so  many  calls, 
aad  so  many  mercies,  and  so  many  blows,  and  so  many  foi^ 
amples  ?  Hast  thou  seen  so  many  laid  in  the  grave  and  yet 
art  Ih'ou  not  ready  to  let  go  thy  sins,  and  come  to  Christ  ? 
What,  after  sO  many  convictions,  and  gripes  of  conacieace* 
after  so  many  purposes  and  promises,  art  thou  not  yet  ready 
to  turn  and  hve  ?  O  that  thy  eyes,  thy  heart  were  opened, 
to- know  how  fair  an  offer  is  now  made  to  thee !  And  what 
%  joyful  message  it  is  that  we  are  sent  on,  to  bid  thee  oooui^ 
f<Mr  all  things  are  ready. 

.  •  3.  Coni^ider  also,  what  calls  thou  hast  to  Turn  and  Live.        ^ 
Hfyw  mimy,  how  loud,  how  earnest,  how  dreadful,  and  yet 
what  encouraging,  joyful  calls. 

For  the  principal  inviter^  it  is  God  himself.  He  that  /^ 
oommt^deth  heaven  and  earth,  commandeth  thee  to  Txjxu. : 
tudA  presently,  without  delay  to  Turn.  He  commandeth  tb^ 
sun  tO'  run  its  course,  and  to  rise  upon  thee  every  morning  $ 
afftdi  though  it  be  so  glorious  a  creature,  and  many  tjUne? 
bigger  than  all  the  earl^^^  yet  it  obeyeth  him,  and  fail^th  pot 
one  minute  of  its  appointed  time.  He  commandeth  all  the  > 
plaaettf,  and  orbs  of  heaven,  iind  they  obey*  He  command^  I 
etb'the  sea  to  ebb  and  flow,  and  the  whole  creation  to  keep 
ito.course,  and  all  they  obey  him.  The  angels  of  heayen 
pbey  his  will,  when  he  sends  them  to  minister  tp  such  silly 
worms  4b  we  on  earth  *.  And  yet  if  he  command  but  a  sinr 
iler  to  Turn,  he  will  not  obey  him :  he  only  thinks  himself 
wber  than  tiod,  and  he  cavils  and  pleads  the  cause  of  sin, 
and  will  not  obey.  If  the  Lord  Almighty  says  the  word, 
the- heavens  and  sdl  therein  obey  him  :  but  if  he  call  a  drun- 
kard out  of  an  alehouse  he  will  not  obey :  or  if  he  call  a 
worldiy,  fleshly  sinner  to  deny  himself,  and  mortify  the  flesh, 
and  set  his  heart  on  a  better  inheritance,  he  will  not  obey. 

«  Heb.  i..U..  . 


400  CALL   TO    THE   UNCONV£RtED. 

If  thou  hadst  any  love  in  thee,  thou  wouldst  know  the 

voice^  and  say,  '  O  this  is  my  Father's  call!     How  can  I 

find  in  my  heart  to  disobey  V    For  the  sheep  of  Christ  do 

*'  know  and  hear  his  voice ;  and  they  follow  him«  and  he 

giveth  them  eternal  life^.'*    If  thou  hast  any  spiritual  life 

and  sense  in  thee,  at  least  thou  wouldst  say,  *  This  call  if 

the  dreadful  voice  of  God,  and  who  dare  disobey  ?'      For 

saith  the  prophet, "  The  lion  hath  roared,  who  will  not  fear  ^" 

Qod  is  not  a  man  that  thou  shouldst  dally  and  play  witb 

him.    Remember  what  he  said  to  Paul  at  his  conversion, 

''  It  is  hard  for  thee  to  kick  against  the  pricks^/'      Wilt 

thou  yet  go  on  and  despise  his  word,  and  resist  his  Spirit, 

and  stop  thine  ears  against  his  call?      Who  is  it  that  will 

have  the  worst  of  this  ?      Dost  thou  know  whom  thou  dis- 

obeyest  and  contendest  with,  and  what  thou  art  doing  ?    It 

were  a  far  wiser  and  easier  task  for  thee,  to  contend  with  the 

thorns,  and  spurn  them  with  thy  bare  feet,  and  beat  them 

with  thy  bare  hands,  or  put  thy  head  into  the  burning  fire. 

*'  Be  not  deceived,  God  will  not  be  mocked  *."    Whosoever 

else  be  mocked  God  will  not ;  you  had  better  play  with  the 

fire  in  your  thatch,  than  with  the  fire  of  his  burning  wrath. 

"  For  our  God  is  a  consuming  fire  *^/'      O  how  unmeet  a 

match  are  you  for  God  :  "  It  is  a  fearful  thing  to  fetU  into 

his  hands  ^"     And  therefore  it  is  a  fearful  thing  to  contend 

with  him,  or  resist  him.     As  you  love  your  own  souls  take 

heed  what  you  do.     What  will  you  say,  if  he  begin  in  wrath 

^  to  plead  with  you  ?    What  will  you  do  if  he  take  you  once 

in  hand  ?      Will  you  then  strive  against  his  judgment,  as 

now  you  do  against  his  grace  ?     Saith  the  Lord  **  Fury  is 

not  in  me  :"  that  is,  I  delight  not  to  destroy ;  I  do  it  as  it 

were  unwillingly  but  yet,  **  Who  would  set  the  briars  and 

thorns  against  me  in  battle?     I  would  ^o  through  them,  I 
would  burn  them  togetlier.      Or  let  him  take  hold  of  my 

strength,  that  he  may  make  peace  with  me,  and  he  shall 

make  peace  with  me  ""."      It  is  an  unequal  combat  for  the 

briars  and  stubble  to  make  war  with  the  fire. 

And  thus  you  see  who  it  is  that  calleth  you,  that  should 

move  you  to  hear  this  call,  and  Turn :  so  consider  also^  by 

what  instruments,  and  how  often,  smd  earnestly  he  doth  it. 

^  Johu  xii.  4.  f  Aipos  iii.  8.  ^  Acts  ix.  5*  i  Gal.  tL  7. 

*  Heb.  xii.  29.  \  Heb.  x.  SV.  ^  \wi.  vwvu  4.  e. 


CALii   TO   THE    UlfCONVSRTBD.  401 


/ 


/ 


/ 


1.  Every  leaf  of  the,  blessed  Book  of  God  hath,  as  it 
were,  a  voice,  and  calls  out  unto  thee.  "  turn  and  Live ;  Turn 
or  thou  wilt  Die.'*  How  canst  thou  open  it,  and  read  a  leaf, 
or  hear  a  chapter,  and  not  perceive  God  bids  thee  Turn  ? 

2.  It  is  the  voice  ji^very  sermon  thouhearest ;  for  what 
else  is  tiie  scope  and  drift  of  all,  but  to  call,  and  persuade, 
and  entreat  thee  to  Turn  ? 

.      3.  It  is  the  voice  of  jjiany  a  motion  of  the  Spirit,  that  , 
secretly  speaks  over  these  words  again,  and  urgeth  thee  to 
Turn. 

4.  It  is  likely  sometimes,  it  is  the  voice  of  thy  own  con-      / 
science.    Art  thou  not  sometimes  convinced,  that  all  is  not 
well  with  thee ;  and  doth  not  thy  conscience  tell  thee,  that 
thou  must  be  a  new  man,  and  take  a  new  course,  and  often 
call  upon  thee  to  Return? 

b.  It  is  the  voice  of  the  gracious  examples  of  the  godly. 
When  thou  seestthem  live  a  heavenly  life,  and  fly  from  the 
sin  which  is  thy  delight,  this  really  calls  upon  thee  to  Turn. 

6.  It  is  the  voice  of  all  the  works  of  God.  For  they  also 
ai*e  God's  books  that  teach  thee  this  lesson,  by  shewing 
thee  his  greatness,  and  wisdom,  and  goodness,  and  calling 
thee  to  observe  them,  and  admire  the  Creator.  **  The  hea* 
veas  declare  the  glory  of  God,  apd  the  firmament  sheweth 
his  handy  works ;  day  unto  day  uttereth  speech,  night  unto 
night  sheweth  knowledge '*.''  Every  time  the  sun  riseth 
upon  thee  it  really  calleth  thee  to  Turn,  as  if  it  should  say, 
'  What  do  I  travel  and  compass  the  world  for,  but  to  decliure 
to  men  the  glory  of  their  Maker,  and  to  light  them  to  do 
his  work?  And  do  I  still  find  thee  doing  the  work  of  sin, 
and  sleeping  out  thy  life  in  negligence  V  **  Awake  thou  that 
deepest,  and  arise  from  the  dead,  and  Christ  shall  give  thee 
light  ^."  ''  The  night  is  far  spent,  the  day  is  at  hand.  It  is 
ndw  high  time  to  awake  out  of  sleep ;  let  us,  therefore,  cast 
off  the  works  of  darkness,  and  let  us  put  on  the  armour  of 
light.  Let  as  walk  honestly,  as  in  the  day  ;  not  in  rioting 
and  drunkenness,  not  in  chambering  and  wantonness,  not  in 
Silrife  and  envying;  but  put  ye  on  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
and  midce  no  provision  for  the  flesh,  to  fulfil  the  lusts  there* 
of  P."    (This  text  was  the  means  of  Augustine's  conversion..) 

n  P«a.  xix,  \,%,  •  Eph.  V.  14.  V  Kom  mu  V\— W 

voh.rii.  n  D 


402  CALL    TO   THB    UNCONVKRTKD. 

7.  It  is  the  voice  of  every  mercy  thou  dost  posuess.    If 
I     thou  couldst  but  hear,  and  undersUnd  them,  they  all  cry  out 
unto  thee,  Turn.    Why  doth  the  earth  bear  thee,  but  to 
;    seek  and  serve  the  Lord  ?    Why  doth  it  afford  thee  fruit,  but 
\  to  serve  him?    Why  doth  the  air.  afford  thee  breath,  but  to 
\  serve  him  ?  Why  do  all  the  creatures  serve  thee  with  their  la- 
:  hours,  and  their  lives,  but  that  thou  mightast  serve  the  Lord 
of  them  and  thee  ?    Why  doth  he  give  thee  time,  and  health, 
and  strength,  but  to  serve  him  ?    Why  hast  thou  meat«  drink, 
^  and  clothes,  but  for  his  service  ?     Hast  thou  any  thing  which 
thou  hast  not  received  ?    And  if  thou  didst  receive  them;  it  is 
reason  thou  shouldst  bethink  thee  from  whom,  and  to  what 
end  and  use,  thou  didst  receive  them*  Didst  thou  never  cry  to 
him  for  help  in  thy  distress  ?     And  didst  thou  not  then  im- 
derstand  that  it  was  thy  part  to  turn  and  serve  him  if  he 
would  deliver  thee  ?     He  hath  done  his  part,  and  spared  thee 
yet  longer,  and  tried  thee  another  and  another,  y^tar,  and 
yet  thou  dost  not  Turn.    You  know  the  parable  of  the  on- 
I  K  fruitful  fig-tree "i.    When  the  Lord  had  said,  ''Cut  it  down, 
'  \  why  cumbereth  it  the  ground  ;"  he  was  entreated  to  try  it 
one  year  longer,  and  then,  if  it  proved  not  fruitful^  to  cut  it 
down.     Christ  himself  there  makes  the  applicailion  twice 
over,  "  Except  ye  repent,  you  shall  all  IH^ewise  perish ^^ 
^^     How  many  y«ars  hath  God  looked  for  the  fruits  of  love  and 
holiness  from  thee,  and  hath  found  Hone?    And  yet  hath 
spared  thee.     How  many  times,  by  thy  wilfril  ignoraaoe, 
carelessness,  smd  disobedience,  hast  thou  provoked  justice 
to  say,  ''  Cut  him  down,  why  cumbereth  he  the  ground  1" 
And  yet  mercy  hath  prevailed,  and  patience  hath  fbrbomi^ 
the  killing,  damning  blow  to  this  day«     If  thou  hadst  the 
understanding  of  a  man  within  thee,  thou  wouldst  know  that 
all  this  calleth  thee  to  Turn.     ''  Dost  thou  think  thou  shsH 
still  escape  the  judgment  of  God?     Or  despisest  thou  the 
riches  of  his  goodness,  forbearance,  and  long«-su£kring ;  not 
knowing  that  the  goodness  of  God  leadeth  thee  to  repeat* 
ance?     But  after  thy  hardness  and  impenitent  heart,  trea^ 
surest  up  unto  thyself  wrath  against  the  day  of  wrath,  and 
revelation  of  the  righteous  judgment  of  God  ;  who  will  ren- 
der to  every  one  according  to  his  deeds  *.*' 
V        8.  Moreover,  it  is  tV\^  \c>\c»^  of  evevv  affliction,  to  call 

'1  Luke  xiu.  6—9 ,  »  \  «, ^.  b.  * ^^m.\v ^**^ 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTKO.  403 

vthee  to  make  haste  and  Turn.     Sickness  and  pain  cry  Turn. 
Poverty,  the  loss  of  friends,  and  every  twig  of  the  chastis- 
ing rod,  cry  Turn ;  and  yet  wilt  thou  not  hearken  to  the  call  ? 
Hiese  have  eome  near  thee,  and  made  thee  feel.     They    ' 
have  made  thee  groan,  and  can  they  not  make  Aee  Turn? 

9.  The  very  frame  of  thy  nature  and  being  itself  be- 
speaketh  thy  return.  Why  hast  thou  reason,  bi^t  to  rule  thy 
flesh,  and  serve  the  Lord  ?  Why  hast  thou  an  understand* 
ing  soul,  but  to  learn  and  know  his  will,  and  do  it  ?  Why 
hast  thou  a  heart  within  thee  that  can  love,  fear,  and  desire, 
but  that  thou  shouldst  fear  him,  and  love  him,  and  desire 
lAerhim?  ^ 

10.  Yea,  t|ine  j^wn  engagementoJ^X^  to  the  Lord 
ida  caH  upon  thee  to  turn  and  serve  him.  Thou  hast  bound 
thyself  to  him  by  a  baptismal  covenant,  and  renounced  the 
world,  the  flesh,  and  the  devil ;  this  thou  hast  confirmed  by 
the  profession  of  Christianity,  and  renewed  it  at  sacraments, 
and  in  times  of  affliction.  And  wilt  thou  promisei  and  vow, 
and  never  perform,  and  turn  to  God  ? 

Lay  all  these  together  now,  and  'see  what  should  be  the  f 
issue*  The  Holy  Scriptures  call  upon  thee  to  Turn ;  the 
■nnisters  of  Christ  do  call  upon  thee  to  Turn ;  the  Spirit 
jcrieg  Turn ;  thy  conscience  cries  Turn ;  the  godly,  by  per-  > 
Munens and  examples,  cry  Turn;  the  whole  world,  and  all 
drt(^eireaitufJes  therein  that  are  presented  to  thy  consideration, 
cry  Turn :  the  patient  forbearance  of  Ood  cries  Turn ;  all 
the  knercies  which  thou  reoeivest,  <Mry  Turn ;  the  rod  of  God's 
chastisement  cries  Turn;  thy  reason,  and  the  frame  of  thy 
aatiire  bespeaks  thy  Turning ;  and  so  do  all  thy  promises  to 
Ood,  and  yet  art  thou  not  resolved  to  Turn  ? j 

3.  Moreover,  poor  hard-hearted  sinner,  didst  thou  ever 
conisider  upon  what  terms  thou  standeth  cJl  this  while  with 
him  that  calleth  thee  to  Turn  ?  thou  art  his  own,  and  ow- 
est  him  thyself,  and  all  thou  hast :  and  may  he  not  com- 
mand his  own  ?  Thou  art  his  absolute  servant,  and  shouldst 
serve  no  other  master.  Thou  standest  at  his  mercy,  and  thy 
life  is  in  his  hand  ;  and  he  is  resolved  to  save  thee  upon  no 
•other  termil.  Thou  hast  many  malicious  spiritual  enemies, 
that  would  be  glad  if  God  would  but  forsake  thee,  and  let 
them  alone  with  fthee,  and  leave  thee  to  ti\^\x  yr^\  V^^ 
quickly  would  tbey  deal  with  theeinanotYver  rwMWvex.     ^"cA 


404  CALL   TO   THB   UNCONVERTED. 

thou  canst  not  be  delivered  from  them,  but  by  turning  unto 
God.  Thou  art  fallen  under  his  wrath  by  thy  sin  already ; 
and  thou  knowest  not  how  long  his  patience  will  yet  wait 
Perhaps  this  is  the  last  year ;  perhaps  the  last  day.  His 
sword  is  even  at  thy  heart,  while  the  word  is  jiL  thine  ear ; 
and  if  tnbu  turn  not,  thou  art  a  dead  and  undone  man. 
Were  thy  eyes  but  open  to  see  where  thou  standest,  even 
upon  the  brink  of  hell,  and  to  see  how  many  thousands  are 
there  already  that  did  not  turn,  thou  wouldst  see  that  it  is 
time  to  look  about  thee. 

Well,  sirs,  look  inwards  now,  and  tell  me  how  are  your 
hearts  affected  with  these  offers  of  the  Lord  ?  You  hear 
what  is  his  mind  ;  he  delighteth  not  in  your  death.  He 
calls  to  .you.  Turn,  Turn  ;  it  is  a  fearful  sign,  if  all  this  mQ?e 
thee  no^  or  if  it  do  but  half  move  thee ;  and  much  more  if 
it  make  thee  more  careless  in  thy  misery,  because  thou  hear- 
est  of  the  mercifulness  of  God.  The  working  of  the  medi- 
cine will  partly  tell  us,  whether  there  be  any  hope  of  the  cure. 
O  what  glad  tidings  would  it  be  to  those  that  are  .now  in 
hell,  if  they  had  but  such  a  message  from  God  !  What  a 
joyful  word  would  it  be  to  hear  this, '  Turn  and  Live !'.  Yea, 
what  a  welcome  word  would  it  be  to  thyself,  when  thou  hast 
felt  that  wrath  of  God  but  an  hour;  or,  if  after  a  tho.usand,and 
ten  thousand  years  torment,  thou  couldst  but  hear  sia^  a 
word  from  God,  '  Turn  and  Live/  and  yet  wilt  thou  ne^Mt 
it,  and  suffer  us  to  return  without  our  errand  ?  > 

Behold,  sinners,  we  are  set  here  as  the  messengers  of  the 
Lord,  to  set  before  you  life  and  death ;  what  say  you,  which 
of  them  will  you  choose  ?  Christ  standeth,  as  it  were,  by  tiiee, 
with  heaven  in  one  hand  and  hell  in  the  other,  and  offereth 
thee  thy  choice ;  which  wilt  thou  choose  ?  The  voice  of 
the  Lord  maketh  the  rock  to  tremble  ^  And  is  it  nothing 
to  hear  him  threaten  thee,  if  thou  wilt  not  turn  ?  Dost  then 
not  understand  and  feel  this  voice,  "  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  why 
will  ye  Die  ?"  Why,  it  is  the  voice  of  love,  of  infinite  love, 
of  thy  best  and  kindest  friend,  as  thou  mightest  esusily  per- 
ceive by  the  motion,  and  yet  canst  thou  neglect  it  ?  It  is  the 
voice  of  pity  and  compassion.  The  Lord  seeth  whither  Uiou 
art  going,  better  than  thou  dost,  which  makes  him  call  after 
thee,  '  Turn,  turn.'    Tie  »ee\Xv  -wVvjaX  ^\ll  become  of  thee,  if 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  405 

thou  turn  not :  he  thinketh  with  himself,  '  Ah !  this  poor 
sinner  will  cast  himself  into  endless  torment,  if  he  do  not 
turn:  I  must  in  justice  deal  with  him  according  to  my 
righteous  law :'  and  therefore  he  calleth  after  thee,  *  Tum^ 
turn/  O  sinner !  if  thou  didst  but  know  the  thousandth 
part  as  well  as  God  doth,  the  danger  that  is  near  you,  and 
the  misery  that  you  are  running  into,  we  should  have  no 
more  need  to  call  after  you  to  Turn. 

Moreover,  this  voice  that  calleth  to  thee,  is  the  same 
that  hath  prevailed  with  thousands  already  and  called  all  to 
heaven  that  are  now  there  :  and  they  would  not  now  for  a 
thousand  worlds  that  they  had  made  light  of  it,  and  not 
turned  to  God.  Now  what  are  they  possessing  that  turned 
at  God's  call  ?  Now  they  perceive  indeed  that  it  was  the 
voice  of  love,  that  meant  them  no  more  harm  than  their  sal- 
vation. And  if  thou  wilt  obey  the  same  call  thou  shalt  come 
do  the  same  happiness.  Th^re  be  millions  that  must  for  ever 
lament  that  they  turned  not,  but  there  is  never  a  soul  in  hea- 
ven that  is  sorry  that  they  were  converted. 

Well,  sirs,  are  you  yet  resolved,  or  are  you  not?  Do  I 
need  to  say  any  more  to  you,  what  will  you  do  ?  Will  you 
turn  or  not  ?  Speak,  man,  in  thy  heart  to  God,  though  thou 
speak  not  out  to  me :  speak,  lest  he  take  thy  silence  for  a 
denial ;  speak  quickly,  lest  he  never  make  thee  the  like  of- 
fer more ;  speak  resolvedly,  and  not  waveringly  ;  for  he  will 
have  no  indifferents  to  be  his  followers.  Say  in  thy  heart 
now,  without  any  more  delay,  even  before  you  stir  hence, 
'  By  the  grace  of  God,  I  am  resolved  presently  to  turn.  And 
because  1  know  mine  own  insufficiency,  I  am  resolved  to 
wait  on  God  for  his  grace,  and  follow  him  in  his  ways,  and 
forsake  my  former  courses  and  companions,  and  give  up 
myself  to  the  guidance  of  the  Lord/ 

Sirs,  you  are  not  shut  up  in  the  darkness  of  heathenism, 
nor  in  the  desperation  of  the  damned.  Life  is  before  you, 
and  you  may  have  it  on  reasonable  terms  if  you  will ;  yea, 
oh  free-cost  if  you  will  accept  it.  The  way  of  God  lieth 
plain  before  you,  the  church  is  open  to  you,  and  you  may 
have  Christ/pardon  and  holiness,  if  you  will.  What  say 
you  ?  Will  you  or  will  you  not  ?  If  you  say  nay,  or  say 
nothing,  and  still  go  on,  God  is  witness,  and  this  congre- 
gation  18  witness,  and  your  own  consciences  ate  yi\\xve«i^,\LQi^ 


406  CALL  1^0  THB   UNCONVEKTKD. 

fair  an  offer  you  had  thia  day.  Remember  you  might  bare 
Christ,  and  you  would  not.  Repaember,  when  you  haTe 
Idst  it,  that  you  might  have  had  eternal  life,  as  wdl  as  otheis, 
and  would  not :  and  all  this  because  you  would  not  Turn ! 

But  let  us  come  to  the  next  Doctrine,  and  hear  your 
riEiasons. 

Doct.  YI.  The  Lord  condescendeth  to  reason  the  case  with 
unconverted  sinners,  and  to  ask  them  why  they  will  die. 

A  strange  disputation  it  is,  botb  as  to  the  controversy ; 
and  as  to  the  disputants. 

1 .  The  controversy  or  question  propounded  to  dtspvte 
of,  is.  Why  wicked  men  will  damn  themselves  ?  Or,  Whe- 
ther they  will  die  rather  than  turn  ?  Whether  they  have  any 
sufficient  reason  for  M>  doing  ? 

'  2.  The  disputants  are  Ood hodman ;  themosiboly  Ghod, 
and  wicked,  unconverted  sinners. 

.Is  it  hot  a  strange  thing  which  God  doth  seem  here  ten 
suppose,  that  any  man  should  be  willing  to  die,  :and  be 
damned ;  yea,  that  this  should  be  the  case  ofall  the  wicked: 
that  is,  of  the  greatest  part  of  the  world  ?     But  you  will  say, 

1*  This  cannot  be ;  for  nature  desireth  the  preservation  and 
felicity  of  itself,  and  the  wicked  are  more  selfish  than  others, 
;  and  not  less ;  and  therefore  how  can  any  man  be  willing 

i  to  be  damned  ?  ' 

^  To  which  I  answer,  1.  It  is  a  certain  truth,  that  no  mta 
can  be  willing  of  any  evil,  as  evil,  but  only  as  it  hath  some 
appearance  of  good  ;  much  less  can  any  man  be  willing  te 

.  be  eternally  tormented.      Misery,  as  such,  is  de&ired  by 

\  none.  2.  But  yet  for  all  that,  it  is  most  true,  which  Qod 
here  teacheth  us,  that  the  cause  why  the  wicked  die  and  are 
damned,  is,  because  they  will  die  and  be  damned.  And 
this  is  true  in  several  respects. 

1 .  Because  they  will  go  the  way  that  leads  to  hell,  though 
they  are  told  by  God  and  man  whether  it  goes  and  where  it 
ends.  And  though  God  hath  so  often  professed  in  his  word, 
that  if  they  hold  on  in  that  way  they  shall  be  condemned } 
and  that  they  shall  not  be  saved  unless  they  Turn*  "  There 
is  no  peace  (saith  the  Lord)  unto  the  wicked  "/'  "  The  way 
of  peace  they  know  not ;  there  is  no  judgment  in  their  going; 
they  have   made  them  crooked   paths,  whosoever   goetb 

^  Isa.  >\v\u,  %%>    Vn^.  %\. 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  407 

therein  shall  not  know  peace ""."  They  have  the  word,  and 
the  oath  of  the  Irying  Qod  for  it,  that  if  they  will  not  tum» 
they  shall  not  enter  into  his  rest.  And  yet  wicked  they  are« 
and  wicked  they  will  be,  let  God  and  man  say  what  they  will : 
fleshly  they  are,  and  fleshly  they  will  be ;  worldlings  they 
are,  and  worldlings  they  will  be,  though  Qod  hath  told  them> 
that  **  the  love  of  the  world  is  enmity  to  God ;  and  that  if 
any  man  love  the  world,  (in  that  measure)  the  love  of  the 
Father  is  not  in  him  y."  So  that  consequentially  these  men 
are  willing  to  be  damned,  though  not  directly :  they  are 
vrilling  of  the  way  to  hell,  and  love  the  certain  cause  of  their 
torment,  though  they  be  not  willing  of  hell  itself,  and  do 
not  love  the  pain  which  they  must  endure. 

Is  not  this  the  truth  of  your  case,  sirs  ?  You  would  not^ 
bum  in  hell,  but  you  will  kindle  the  fire  by  your  sins,  and 
cast  yourselves  into  it ;  you  would  not  be  tormented  with  de- 
vils in  hell,  but  you  will  do  that  which  will  certainly  procure 
it  in  despiteof  all  that  can  be  said  against  it.  It  is  just  as  if  you 
would  say,  'I  will  drink  this  ratsbane,  or  other  poison,  but  yet  I 
would  not  die.  I  will  cast  myself  headlong  from  the  top  of  a 
steeple,  but  yet  I  will  not  kill  myself.  I  will  thrust  my 
knife  into  my  heart,  but  yet  I  will  not  take  away  my  life. 
I  will  put  this  fire  into  the  thatch  of  my  house,  but  yet  I 
will  not  burn  it.'  Just  so  it  is  with  wicked  men ;  they  will 
be  wicked,  and  live  after  the  flesh  and  the  world,  and  yet 
they  would  not  be  damned.  But  do  you  not  know,  that  the 
means  do  lead  unto  the  end  ?  and  that  God  hath,  by  his 
righteous  law,  concluded,  that  ye  must  repent  or  perish  ? 
He  that  will  take  poison  may  as  well  say,  *  I  will  kill  my- 
self/ for  it  will  prove  no  better  in  the  end  ;  though  perhaps 
he  loved  it  for  the  sweetness  of  the  sugar  that  was  mixed 
with  it,  and  would  not  be  persuaded  it  was  poison,  but  that 
he  might  take  it  and  do  well  enough  ;  but  it  is  not  his  con- 
ceits and  confidence  that  will  save  his  life.  So  if  you  will 
be  drunkards,  or  fornicators,  or  worldlings,  or  live  after  the 
flesh,  you  may  as  well  say  plainly,  *  We  will  be  damned  ;' 
for  so  you  shall  be  unless  you  turn.  Would  you  not  re- 
buke the  folly  of  a  thief  or  murderer  that  would  say, '  I  will 
steal  or  kill,  but  I  will  not  be  hanged ;'  when  he  knows, 
that  if  he  do  the  one,  the  judge  in  justice  will  see  that  the 

*  IsH.  Ux.  8.  y  James  IV.  4.     3o\\tv\\.  \b. 


408  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVBRTBD. 

Other  be  done.  If  h^  says,  'I  will  steal  aod  murder/ be 
may  as  well  say  plainly,  '  I  will  be  hanged ;'  so  if  you  will 
go  on  in  a  carnal  life,  you  may  as  well  say  plainly*  '  We 
will  go  to  hell.' 

!  2.  Moreover,  the  wicked  will  not  use  those  means  with- 

out which  there  is  no  hope  of  their  salvation  :  he  that  will 

i  not  eat,  may  as  well  say  plainly  he  will  not  live,  unless  be 
can  tell  how  to  live  without  meat.  He  that  will  not  go  his 
journey,  may  as  well  say  plainly  he  will  not  come  to  the  end. 
He  that  falls  into  the  water,  and  will  not  come  out,  nor  suf- 
fer another  to  help  him  out,  may  as  well  say  plainly,  he  will 
be  drowned.  So  if  you  be  carnal  and  ungodly,  and  will  not 
be  converted,  nor  use  the  means  by  which  you  should  be 
converted,  but  think  it  more  ado  (iian  needs,  you  may  as 
well  say  plainly,  you  will  be  damned.  Folr  if  you  have  found 
out  a  way  to  be  saved  without  conversion,  you  have  done 
that  which  was  never  done  before. 

3.  Yea,  this  is  not  all,  but  the  wicked  are  unwilling  even 
of  salvation  itself.    Though  they  may  desire   somewhat 

^  '  which  they  call  by  the  name  of  heaven,  yet  heaven  itself, 
considered  in  the  true  nature  of  the  felicity,  they  desire  not: 

/  yea,  their  hearts  are  quite  against  it.  Heaven  is  a  state  of 
perfect  holiness,  and  of  continual  love^and  praise  to  God, 
and  the  wicked  have  no  heart  to  this.  The  imperfect  love, 
praise,  and  holiness  which  is  here  to  be  obtained,  they  have 
no  mind  of;  much  less  of  that  which  is  so  much  greater: 
the  joys  of  heaven  are  of  so  pure  and  spiritual  a  nature,  that 
the  heart  of  the  wicked  cannot  truly  desire  them. 

So  that  by  this  time  you  may  see  on  what  ground  it  is 
that  God  supposeth  that  the  wicked  are  willing  of  their  own 
destruction  :  they  will  not  Turn,  though  they  ^mst  Turn  or 
Die.  They  will  rather  venture  on  certain  misery,  than  be 
converted  ;  and  then  to  quiet  themselves  in  their  sins,  they 
will  make  themselves  believe,  that  they  shall  nevertheless 
escape. 

2.  And  as  the  controversy  is  matter  of  wonder  (that  ever 
men  should  be  such  enemies  to  themselves,  as  wilfully  to 
cast  away  their  souls),  so  are  the  disputants  too.  That  God 
should  stoop  so  low,  as  thus  to  plead  the  case  with  man; 
and  that  man  should  be  so  strangely  obstinate  as  to  need  all 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  409 

Ills  in  80  plain  a  case ;  yea,  and  to  resist  all  this,  when  their 
>wn  salvation  lieth  upon  the  issue. 

No  wonder,  if  they  will  not  hear  us  that  are  men,  when 
they  will  not  hear  the  Lord  himself:  as  God  saith,  when  he 
sent  the  prophet  to  the  Israelites,  ''  The  house  of  Israel  will 
not  hearken  unto  thee :  for  they  will  not  hearken  unto  me  : 
For  all  the  house  of  Israel  are  impudent,  and  hard-hearted  *." 
No  wonder,  if  they  can  plead  against  a  minister,  or  a  godly 
neighbour,  when  they  will  plead  against  the  Lord  himself, 
even  against  the  plainest  passages  of  his  word,  And  think  they 
have  reason  on  their  side.  *  When  they  weary  the  Lord  with 
their  words,'  they  say,  "Wherein  have  we  wearied  him*?'* 
The  priests  that  despised  his  name,  durst  ask,  **  Wherein 
have  we  despised  thy  name."  And  when  they  "  polluted  his 
altiur,  and  made  the  tables  of  the  Lord  contemptible,''  they  . 
durst  say,  "  Wherein  have  we  polluted  thee  **  ?  "  But "  Wo  ( 
unto  him  (saith  the  Lord)  that  striveth  with  his  Maker !  \ 
Let  the  potsherds  strive  with  the  potsherds  of  the  earth.  Shall 
the  clay  say  to  him  that  fashioneth  it.  What  makest  thou  ^  ?" 
Quest.  *  But  why  is  it  that  God  will  reason  the  case 
with  man  V 

Answ.  1.  Because  that  man,  being  a  reasonable  creature, 
is  accordingly  to  be  dealt  with  ;  and  by  reason  to  b6  per- 
suaded and  overcome.     God  hath  therefore  endowed  them 
with  reason,  that  they  might  use  it  for  him.      One  would 
think  a  reasonable  creature  should  not  go  against  the  clear- 
est and  greatest  reason  in  the  world,  when  it  is  set  before  him. 
2.  At  least  men  shall  see  that  God  did  require  nothing 
of  them  that  was  unreasonable,  but  that  whatever  he  com- 
mandeth  them,  and  whatever  he  forbiddeth  them,  he  hath 
all  the  right  reason  in  the  world  on  his  side,  and  they  have 
good  reason  to  obey  him,  but  none  to  disobey.      And  thus 
even  the  damned  shall  be  forced  to  justify  God,  and  confess 
that  it  was  but  reason  that  they  should  have  turned  to  him, 
and  they  shall  be  forced  to  condemn  themselves,  and  con- 
fess that  they  have  little  reason  to  cast  away  themselves  by 
the  neglecting  of  his  grace  in  the  day  of  their  visitation. 

USE.  Look  up  your  best  and  strongest  reasons  sinners, 
if  you  will  make  good  your  way  :  you  see  now  with  whom 
you  have  to  deal.     What  sayst  thou  unconverted,  sew&^%l 

»  Esek,  m.  7,  «  AfaJ.  ii.  7.  «>  Mai.  vi.  1.7.  •  \wi»  tXn  .  ^. 


410    '  CALL   TO   THE    UNt'ONVRRTHD. 

wretch?  Darest  thou  venture  upon  a  dispute  with  God: 
art  thou  able  to  confute  him  ?  Art  thou  ready  to  eater  the 
lists  ?  God  asketh  thee,  '  Why  wilt  thou  die?'  Art  thoa 
furnished  with  a  sufficient  answer  ?  Wilt  thou  undertake  to 
prove  that  God  is  mistaken,  and  that  thou  art  in  the  right? 

0  what  an  undertaking  is  that  1  Why  either  he  or  you  » 
mistaken,  when  he  is  for  your  conversion,  and  you  are 
against  it.  He  calls  upon  you  to  turn,  and  you  will  hot :  he 
bids  you  do  it  presently,  even  to-day,  while  it  is  called  to- 
day, and  you  delay,  and  think  it  time  enough  hereafter.  He 
saith,  it  must  be  a  total  change,  and  you  must  be  holy  and 
new  creatures,  and  bom  again ;  and  you  think  that  less  may 
serve  the  turn,  and  that  it  is  enough  to  patch  up  the  old 
man,  without  becoming  new.  Who  is  in  the  right  now,  God 
or  you  ?  God  oalleth  on  you  to  turn,  and  to  live  a  holyiifc, 
and  you  will  not ;  by  your  disobedient  lives  it  appears  you 
will  not.  If  you  will,  why  do  you  not  ?  Why  have  you  not 
done  it  all  this  while  ?  And  why  do  you  not  fall  upon  it 
yet{?  Your  wills  have  the  command  of  your  lives.  We  may 
certainly  conclude,  that  you  are  unwilling  to  turn,  when  you 
do  not  turn.  And  why  will  you  not?  Can  you  give  any 
reason  for  it,  that  is  worthy  to  be  called  a  reason  ? 

I  that  am  but  a  worm,  your  fellow-creature,  of  a  shallow 
capacity,  dare  challenge  the  wisest  of  you  all  to  reason  the 
case  with  me,  while  I  plead  my  Maker's  cause,  and  I  need 
not  be  discouraged,  when  I  know  I  plead  but  the  cause  that 
God  pleadeth,  and  contend  for  him  that  will  have  the  best 
at  last.     Had  I  but  these  two  general  grounds  against  you, 

1  am  sure  that  you  have  no  good  reason  on  your  side. 

1.  I  am  sure  it  can  be  no  good  reason,  which  is  against 
the  God  of  truth  and  reason ;  it  cannot  be  light  that  is  con- 
trary to  the  sun.  There  is  no  knowledge  in  any  creature, 
but  what  it  had  from  God ;  and  therefore  none  can  be  wiser 
than  God.  It  were  damnable  presumption  for  the  highest 
angel  to  compare  with  his  Creator,  what  is  it  then  for  a 
lump  of  dirt,  an  ignorant  sot,  that  knoweth  not  himself,  nor 
his  own  soul ;  that  knoweth  but  little  of  the  things  which 
he  seeth,  yea,  that  is  more  ignorant  than  many  of  his  neigh- 
bours, to  set  himself  against  the  wisdom  of  the  Lord  ?  It  is 
one  of  the  fullest  discoveries  of  the  horrible  wickedness  of 
carnal  men,  and  the  staiVL  ma^Axv^^*^  c>^  ^wOa>«\\a  %vok.>  that  so 


CALL   TO   TH£    UNGONVKRTED.  411 

silly  a  mole  dare  contradict  his  Maker^  and  call  in  question 
the  word  of  God :    yea,  that  those  people  in  our  parishes, 
that  are  so  beastly  ignorant,  that  they  cannot  give  us  a  rea* 
sonable  answer,  concerning  the  very  principles  of  reUgion, 
and  yet  so  wise  in  their  own  conceit,  that  they  dare  question 
the  plainest  truths  of  Ood,  yea,  contradict  diem^  and  pavU 
against  them,  when  they  can  scarce  speak  sense,  and  nrillbe* 
lieve  them  no  farther  than  agreeth  with  their  foolish  wisdom, 
2«  And  as  I  know  that  God  must  needs  be  in  the  right, 
so  I  know  the  case  is  so  palpable  and  gross  which  he  plead- 
eth  against,  that  no  man  can  have  reason  for  it.    Is  it  pos- 
sible that  a  man  can  have  any  good  reason  to  break  his  mas- 
ter's laws,  and  reason  to  dishonour  the  Lord  of  glory,  and 
reason  to  abuse  the  Lord  that  bought  him  ?    Is  it  possible 
that  a  man  can  have  any  good  reason  to  damn  his  own  im- 
nidrtal  soul  ?     Mark  the  Lord's  question,  "  Turn  ye,  tura 
ye.  Why  will  ye  die  ?   Is  eternal  death  a  thing  to  be  desired  ? 
Are  you  in  love  with  hell  ?    What  reason  have  you  wilfully 
to  perish  ?     If  you  think  you  have  some  reason  to  sin,  should 
you  not  remember  that  **  death  is  the  wages  of  sin  "^  ?'*   And 
think  whether  you  have  any  reason  to  undo  yourselves,  body 
and  soul  for  ever  ?    You  should  not  only  ask  whether  yoa 
love  the  adder,  but  whether  you  love  the  sting.     It  is  such 
a  thing  for  a  man  to  cast  away  his  everlasting  happiness, 
and  to  sin  against  God,  that  no  good  reason  can  be  given 
for  it ;  but  the  more  any  one  pleads  for  it,  the  more  mad  h^ 
sheweth  himself  to  be.      Had  you  a  lordship  or  aliingdom 
offered  to  you,  for  every  sin  that  you  commit,  it  were  not 
reason  but  madness  to  accept  it.     Could  you  by  every  sin 
obtain  the  highest  thing  on  earth  that  flesh  desireth,  it  were 
of  no  considerable  value  to  persuade  you  in  reason  to  com- 
mit it.    If  it  were  to  please  your  greatest  and  dearest  friends, 
or  obey  the  greatest  prince  on  earth,  or  to  save  your  lives, 
or  to  escape  the  greatest  earthly  mieeQf,  all  these  are  of  no 
consideration  to  draw  a  man  in  reason  to  the  committing  of 
one  sin.     If  it  were  a  right  hand,  or  a  right  eye  that  would 
hinder  your  salvation,  it  would  be  the  most  gainful  way  to 
cast  it  away,  rather  than  go  to  hell  to  save  it.     For  there  is 
no  saving  a  part,  when  you  lose  the  whole.     So  exceedingly 
greiit  are  the  matters  of  eternity,  that  nothing  in  this  world 

**  Rom.  vi.  t3. 


413  cAlL  to  the  ungonvbrtbd. 

deserveth  once  to  be  named  in  companRon  with  them,  nor 
can  any  earthly  thing,  though  it  were  life,  and  crowns,  and 
kingdoms,  be  a  reasonable  excuse  for  matters  of  so  high  and 
everlasting  consequence.  A  man  can  have  no  reason  to 
cross  his  ultimate  end.  Heaven  is  such  a  thing,  that  if  yon 
lose  it,  nothing  can  supply  the  want,  or  make  up  the  loss. 
And  hell  is  such  a  thing,  that  if  you  suffer  it,  nothing  can  re- 
move your  misery,  or  give  you  ease  and  comfort.  And 
therefore  nothing  can  be  a  valuable  consideration  to  excuse 
you  for  neglecting  your  own  salvation.  For  saith  our 
Saviour,  ''  What  shall  it  profit  a  man  to  win  all  the  world 
and  lose  his  own  soul  •." 

O,  sirs  !  did  you  but  know  what  matters  they  are>  we  are 
how  speaking  to  you  of!     The  saints  in  heaven  have  other 
kind  of  thoughts  of  these  things.     If  the  devil  could  come 
to  them  that  live  in  the  sight  and  love  of  God,  and  should 
offer  them  a  cup  of  ale,  or  a  whore,  or  merry  company,  or 
sport  to  entice  them  away  from  God,  and  glory,  I  pray  you 
tell  me,  how  do  you  think  they  would  entertain  the  motion. 
Nay,  if  he  should  offer  them  to  be  kings  on  the  earth,  do 
you  think  this  would  entice  them  down  from  heaven  ?    0, 
with  what  hatred,  and  holy  scorn  would  they  disdain,  and 
reject  the  motion ;  and  why  should  not  you  do  so  that  ha?e 
heaven  opened  to  your  faith,  if  you  had  but  faith  to  see  it? 
There  is  never  a  soul  in  hell,  but  knows  by  this  time,  that  it 
was  a  mad  exchange  to  let  go  heaven  for  fleshly  pleasure : 
and  that  it  is  not  a  little  mirth,  or  pleasure,  or  worldly  riches 
or  honour;  or  the  good  will,  or  the  word  of  men  that  will 
quench  hell-fire,  or  make  him  a  saver  that  loseth  his  soul. 
O  if  you  had  heard  what  I  believe,  if  you  had  seen  what  I 
believe,  and  that  on  the  credit  of  the  word  of  God,  you 
^  would  say,  there  can  be  no  reason  to  warrant  a  man  to  damn 
his  soul ;  you  durst  not  sleep  quietly  another  night,  before 
you  had  resolved  to  Turn  and  Live. 

If  you  see  a  man  put  his  hand  into  the  fire  till  it  bum  oflP, 
you  marvel  at  it ;  but  this  is  a  thing  that  a  man  may  have 
reason  for,  as  Bishop  Cranmer  had  when  he  burnt  off  his 
hand  for  subscribing  to  Popery.  If  you  see  a  man  cut  off 
a  leg,  or  an  arm,  it  is  a  sad  sight ;  but  this  is  a  thing  a  man 
may  have  good  reason  for ;  as  many  a  man  doth  to  save  his 


CALL -TO   THE    UNCONVERTED,  413 

life.  If  you  see  a  man  give  his  body  to  be  burnt  to  ashes, 
and  to  be  tormented  with  strappadoes  and  racks,  and  refuse 
deliverance  when  it  is  offered  ;  this  is  a  hard  case  to  flesh 
and  blood.  But  this  a  man  hath  good  reason  for ;  as  you 
may  see  in  Heb.  xi.  33 — 36.  And  as  many  a  hundred  mar- 
tyrs have  done.  But  for  a  man  to  forsake  the  Lord  that 
made  him,  and  for  a  man  to  run  into  the  fire  of  hell,  when  he 
is  told  of  it,  and  entreated  to  turn,  that  he  may  be  saved ; 
this  is  a  thing  that  can  have  no  reason  in  the  world,  that  is 
reason  indeed,  to  justify,  or  excuse  it.  For  heaven  will  pay 
for  the  losd  of  any  thing  that  we  can  lose  to  get  it,  or  for 
any  labour  which  we  bestow  for  it.  But  nothing  can  pay 
for  the  loss  of  heaven. 

I  beseech  you  now,  let  his  word  come  nearer  to  your 
hearts.  As  you  are  convinced  you  have  no  reason  to  des- 
troy, yourselves,  so  tell  me  what  reason  you  have  to  refuse 
to  turn,  and  live  to  God ;  what  reason  hath  the  veriest  world- 
ling, or  drunkard,  or  ignorant,  careless  sinner  of  you  all,  why 
you  should  not  be  as  holy  as  any  you  know,  and  be  as  care- 
ful for  your  souls  as  any  other  ?  Will  not  hell  be  as  hot  to 
you  as  to  others  ?  Should  not  your  own  souls  be  as  dear  to 
you,  as  theirs  to  them?  Hath  not  God  as  much  authority 
over  you?  Why  then  will  ye  not  becoipe  a  sanctified  peo- 
ple, as  well  as  they? 

.  O  sirs,  when  God  bringeth  down  the  matter  to  the  very 
principles  of  nature,  and  shews  you  that  you  have  no  more 
reason  to  be  ungodly,  than  you  have  to  damn  your  own 
souls :  if  jet  you  will  not  understand  and  Turn,  it  seems  a 
desperate  case  that  you  are  in. 

And  now  either  you  have  reason  for  what  you  do,  or  you 
have  not.  If  not,  will  you  go  on  against  reason  itself?  Will 
you  do  that  which  you  have  no  reason  for?  But  if  you 
think  you  have,  produce  them,  and  make  the  best  of  your 
matter,  reason  the  case  a  little  while  with  your  fellow-crea- 
ture, which  is  far  easier  than  to  reason  the  case  with  God. 
Tell  me,  man,  here,  before  the  Lord,  as  if  thou  wert  to  die 
this  hour,  why  shouldst  thou  not  resolve  to  turn  this  day» 
before  thou  stir  from  the  place  thou  standest  in  ?  What 
reason  hast  thou  to  deny,  or  to  delay  ?  Hast  thou  any  rea- 
son that  satisfieth  thine  own  conscience  for  it'',  0\^xc<) 
that  tbou  darest  own  and  plead  at  the  bat  oi  Godi'l    \^  VJsvow 


414  CALL  TO   THE   UNCON VERTED. 

hast,  let  us  hear  them,  bring  them  forth,  and  make  them 
good.  But  alas !  what  poor  stuff,  what  nonsense,  instead  of 
reasons,  do  we  daily  hear  from  ungodly  men  ?  But  for  thni 
necessity,  I  should  be  ashamed  to  name  them. 

1.  One  saith,  *  If  none  shall  be  saved  but  such  conTOtr 
ed  and  sanctified  ones  as  you  talk  of,  heaven  would  be  but 
empty ;  then  God  help  It  great  many.' 

Answ.  What^  it  seems  you  think  God  doth  not  know,  or 
else  th^t  he  is  not  to  be  believed  :  measure  not  all  by  yoiu^ 
self;  God  hath  thousands  and  millions  of  his  sanctified 
ones  ;  but  yet  they  are  few  in  comparison  of  the  world,  as 
Christ  himself  hath  told  us  in  Matt.  vii.  13,  14.  and  Luke 
xii.  32.  It  better  beseems  you  to  make  that  use  of  this 
truth  which  Christ  teacheth  you ;  '^  Strive  to  enter  in  at  the 
straight  gate ;  for  straight  is  the  gate,  and  narrow  istthe 
way  that  leadeth  unto  life,  and  few  there  be  that  find  it :  but 
wide  is  the  gate,  and  broad  is  the  way  that  leadeth  to  des- 
truction, and  many  there  be  that  go  in  thereat  ^J'  **  And 
fear  not  little  flock,  (saith  Christ  to  his  sanctified  ones,)  for 
it  is  your  Father's  good  pleasure  to  give  you  the  kingdom'.'' 

Objtct.2.  *  I  am  sure  if  such  as  I  go  to  hell,  we  shall 
have  store  of  company.' 

Answ.  And  will  that  be  any  ease  or  comfort  to  you  ?  Or 
do  you  think  you  may  not  have  cotnpany  enough  in  heaven? 
Will  you  be  undone  for  company  ?  Or  will  you  not  believe 
that  God  will  execute  his  threatenings,  because  there  are  so 
mai^y  that  are  guilty?  All  these  are  silly,  unreasonable 
conceits. 

Object,  3.  *  But  all  men  are  sinners,  even  the  beat  of 
yon -all.' 

An$w,  But  all  are  not  unconverted  sinners.  The  godfy 
live  not  in  gross  sins ;  and  their  very  infirmities  are  their 
grief  and  burden,  which  they  daily  long,  and  pray,  and  strife 
to  be  rid  of.     Sin  hath  not  dominion  overthem. 

Object.  4.  M  do  not  see  that  professors  are  any  better 
than  other  man :  they  will  overreach  and  oppress,  and  are 
as  covetous  as  any.' 

Answ.  Whatever  hypocrites  are,  it  is  not  so  with  those 
that  are  sanctified.  God  hath  thousands  and  ten  thousands 
that  are  otherwise.     Thou^lv  live  malicious  world  doth  ac- 

f  Luke  idu.  t«— ^4.  «  ^Ji^^  iK\.*!a. 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  416 

cuBe  them  of  what  they  can  never  prove,  and  of  that  which 
never  entered  into  their  hearts.  And  commonly  they  charge 
them  with  heart-sins,  which  none  can  see  but  God ;  be- 
cause they  can  charge  them  with  no  such  wickedness  in  their 
lives,  as  they  are  guilty  of  themselves. 

Object.  5.  *  But  I  am  no  whoremonger,  nor  drunkard,  nor 
oppressor ;  and  therefore  why  should  you  call  upon  me  to 
be  converted  V 

Amw.  As  if  you  were  not  born  after  the  flesh,  and  had 
aot  lived  after  the  flesh,  as  well  as  others.  Is  it  not  as^great 
a  sin,  as  any  of  these,  for  a  man  to  have  an  earthly  mind, 
and  to  love  the  world  above  God,  and  to  have  a  faithless, 
vnhumbled  heart?  Nay,  let  me  tell  you  more,  that  many 
persons  that  avoid  disgraceful  sins,  are  fa&t  glued  to  the 
world,  and  as  much  slaves  to  the  flesh,  and  as  strange  to 
God,  suid  averse  to  heaven  in  their  more  civil  course,  as 
others  are  in  their  more  shameful,  notorious  sins. 

Object.  6.  '  But  I  mean  nobody  any  harm,  or  do  no  harm ; 
and  why  then  should  God  condemn  me  V 

Answ^J^  it  no  harm  to  neglect  the  Lord  that  made  thee, 
and  thework  for  which  thou  earnest  into  the  world,  and  prefer 
ih£  creature  before  the  Creator,  and  neglect  grace  that  is 
daily  oflered  thee  ?  It  is  the  depth  of  thy  sinfulness,  to  be 
bfiensible  of  it.  The  dead  feel  not  that  they  are  dead.  If 
once  thou  wert  made  alive,  thou  wouldst  see  more  amiss  in 
thyself,  and  marvel  at  thyself  for  making  so  light  of  it. 

Object.  7.  '  I  think  you  will  make  men  mad  under  a  pre- 
tence of  converting  them  :  it  is  enough  to  rack  the  brains  of 
simple  people,  to  muse«o  much  on  matters  too  high  for  them.' 

Amw.  1.  Can  you  be  madder  than  you  are  already?  Or 
at  least,  can  there  be  a  more  dangerous  madness,  than  to 
Mglect  your  everlasting  welfare,  and  wilfully  undo  your- 
selves ? 

2.  A  man  is  never  well  in  his  wits  till  he  be  converted  ; 
he  neither  knows  God,  nor  sin,  nor  Christ,  nor  the  world, 
nor  himself,  nor  what  his  business  is  on  the  earth,  so  as  to 
set  himself  about  it,  till  he  be  converted.  The  Scripture 
saith  that  the  wicked  are  unreasonable  men  ^;  and  "  that  the 
wisdom  of  the  world  is  foolishness  with  God';'*  ^^^  Luke 
XV.  17.  it  is  said  of  the  prodigal,  "that  whew  Vv^  c«SDkfc\» 

*  ^  Thess.  iii  f.  }  1  Cot.  V  %0. 


416  CALL   TO   TH£   UNCONVERTED. 

himself/'  he  resolved  to  Return.  It  is  a  wise  world  when 
men  will  disobey  God,  and  run  to  hell  for  fear  of  being  out 
of  their  wits. 

3.  What  is  there  in  the  work  that  Christ  calls  you  to, 
that  should  drive  a  man  out  of  his  wits  i  Is  it  the  loving  of 
God,  and  calling  upon  him,  and  comfoitable  thinking  of  the 
glory  to  come,  and  the  forsaking  of  our  sins,  and  the  loving 
of  one  another,  and  delighting  ourselves  in  the  service  of 
God  ?     Are  these  such  things  as  should  make  men  mad? 

4.  And  whereas  you  say,  that  these  matters  are  too  high 
for  us,  you  accuse  God  himself  for  making  this  our  woik, 
and  giving  us  his  word,  and  commanding  all  that  will  be 
blessed,  to  .meditate  in  it  day  and  night.  Are  the  matters 
which  we  are  made  for,  and  which  we  live  for,  too  high  for 
us  to  meddle  with  ?  This  is  plainly  to  unman  us,  and  to 
make  beasts  of  us,  as  if  we  were  like  to  them  that  must 
meddle  with  no  higher  matters  than  what  belongeth  to  flesh 
and  earth,  if  heaven  be  too  high  for  you  to  think  on,  and  to 
provide  for,  it  will  be  too  high  for  you  ever  to  possess. 

5.  If  God  should  sometimes  suffer  any  weak-headed 
person  to  be  distracted  by  thinking  of  eternal  things ;  this 
is  because  they  misunderstand  them,  and  run  without  a 
guide.  And  of  the  two,  I  had  rather  be  in  the  case  of  such 
an  one,  than  of  the  mad,  unconverted  world,  that  take  their 
distraction  to  be  their  wisdom. 

Object.  8.  '  I  do  not  think  that  God  doth  care  so  much 
what  men  think,  or  speak,  or  do,  as  to  make  so  great  a  mat- 
ter of  it.' 

Answ.  It  seems  then,  you  take  the  word  of  God  to  be 
false,  and  then  what  will  you  believe  ?  But  your  own  rea- 
son might  teach  you  better,  if  you  believe  not  the  Scriptures : 
for  you  see  God  doth  not  set  so  light  by  us,  but  that  he 
vouchsafed  to  make  us,  and  still  preserveth  us,  and  daily 
upholdeth  us,  and  provideth  for  us  ;  and  will  any  wise  man 
make  a  curious  frame  for  nothing  ?  Will  you  make,  or  buy 
a  clock,  or  a  watch,  and  daily  look  to  it,  and  not  care  whe- 
ther it  go  true  or  false  ?  Surely  if  you  believe  not  a  parti- 
cular eye  of  Providence  observing  your  hearts  and  lives, 
you  cannot  believe  or  expect  any  particular  Providence  to 
observe  your  wants  Mid  liowblea,  to  relieve  you.  And  if 
God  had  so  Vitt\e  caxed  ?ot  ^ow,^'&  ^wsL\\»a:^\ifc^^^>\^^\li 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  41V 

never  have  lived  till  now  :  a  hundred  diseases  would  have 
striven  which  should  first  destroy  you.  Yea,  the  devil 
would  have  haunted  you,  and  fetched  you  away  alive,  as  the 
great  fishes  devour  the  less ;  and  as  ravenous  beasts  and 
birds  devour  others.  You  cannot  think  that  Ood  made 
man  for  no  end  or  use  :  and  if  he  made  him  for  any,  it  was 
sure  for  himself.  And  can  you  think  he  cares  not  whether 
his  end  be  accomplished,  and  whether  we  do  the  work  that 
we  are  made  for  ? 

Yea,  by  this  atheistical  objection,  you  make  Ood  to 
have  made,  and  upheld  all  the  world,  in  vain.  For  what  are 
all  other  lower  creatures  for,  but  for  man  ?  What  doth  the 
earth  but  bear  us,  and  nourish  us  ?  And  the  beasts  do  serve 
us  with  their  labours  aud  lives :  and  so  of  the  rest.  And 
hath  God  made  so  glorious  an  habitation,  and  set  man  to 
dwell  in  it,  and  made  all  his  servants ;  and  now  doth  he 
look  for  .nothing  at  his  hands  ?  Nor  care  how  he  thinks, 
or  speaks,  or  lives  ?    This  is  most  unreasonable. 

Object,  9.  *  It  was  a  better  world  when  men  did  not  make 
80  much  ado  in  religion.' 

Answ.  It  hath  ever  been  the  custom  to  praise  the  time 
pa8t«  That  world  that  you  speak  of,  was  wont  to  say.  It 
was  a  better  world  in  our  forefathers'  days,  and  so  did  they 
of  their  forefathers.  This  is  but  an  old  custom,  because  we 
all  feel  the  evil  of  our  own  times,  but  we  see  not  that  which 
was  before  us. 

2.  Perhaps  you  speak  as  you  think  :  worldlings  think 
the  world  is  at  the  best,  when  it  is  agreeable  to  their  minds  ; 
and  when  they  have  most  mirth  and  worldly  pleasure.  And 
I  doubt  not  but  the  devil,  as  well  as  you,  would  say,  that 
then  it  was  a  better  world  ;  for  then  he  had  more  service, 
and  less  disturbance  ;  but  the  world  is  best,  when  Ood  is 
most  loved,  regarded  and  obeyed.  And  how  else  will  you 
know  when  the  world  is. good  or  bad,  but  by  this  ? 

Object.  10.  '  There  are  so  many  ways  and  religions,  that 
we  know  not  which  to  be  of;  and  therefore  we  will  be  even 
as  we  are.' 

Answ.  Because  there  are  many,  will  you  be  of  that  way 
that  you  may  be  sure  is  wrong  ?  None  are  farther  out  of 
the  way,  than  worldly,  fleshly,  unconverted  siuwec%%  ^o^x 
they  do  not  err  in  this  or  that  opinion,  a«  m^ii:^  ^ecX%  ^^s 

VOL,  VII.  E    E 


418  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

but  in  the  very  scope  and  drift  of  their  lives.  If  you  were 
going  a  journey  that  yoiirlife  lay  on^  would  you  stop  or 
turn  again^  because  you  meet  some  cross-ways,  or  because 
you  see  some  travellers  go  the  horse-way,  and  some  the 
foot-way,  and  some  perhaps  break  over  the  hedge,  yea,  and 
some  miss  the  way?  Or  would  you  not  rather  be  more 
careful  to  inquire  the  way  ?  If  you  have  some  servants  that 
know  not  how  to  do  your  work  right,  and  some  that  are  un- 
faithful, would  you  take  it  well  at  any  of  the  rest,  that 
would  therefore  be  idle  and  do  you  no  service,  because 
they  see  the  rest  so  bad  ? 

Object.  11.  '  I  do  not  see  that  it  goes  any  better  with 
those  that  ar6  so  godly,  than  with  other  men.  They  are  as 
poor,  and  in  ^s  much  trouble  as  others. 

Amw,  And  perhaps  in  much  more,  when  God  sees  it 
meet.  They  take  not  an  earthly  prosperity  for  their  wages. 
They  have  laid  up  their  treasure  and  hopes  in  anotiier 
world,  or  else  they  are  not  Christians  indeed.  The  less 
they  have,  the  more  is  behind :  and  they  are  content  to 
wait  till  then. 

Obfect.  12.  'When  you  have  said  all  that  you  can,  I  am 
resolved  to  hope  well,  and  trust  in  Ood,  and  do  as  well  as 
I  can,  and  not  make  so  much  ado.' 

AmiD,  1.  Is  that  doing  as  well  as  you  can,  when  you  will 
not  turn  to  Ood,  but  your  heart  is  against  his  holy  and  di- 
ligent service  ?  It  is  as  well  as  you  will,  indeed  :  but  that 
is  your  misery. 

2.  My  desire  is  that  you  should  hope  and  trust  in  God. 
But  for  what  is  it  that  you  will  hope  ?  Is  it  to  be  saved,  if 
you  turn  and  be  sanctified  ?  For  dxis  you  have  God's  pro- 
mise ;  and  therefore  hope  for  it,  and  spare  not ;  but  if  you 
hope  to  be  saved  without  conversion  and  a  holy  life,  this 
is  not  to  hope  in  God,  but  in  satan,  or  yourselves;  for  God 
hath  given  you  no  such  promise,  but  told  you  the  contrary; 
but  it  is  satan  and  self-love  that  made  you  such  promises^ 
and  raised  you  to  such  hopes. 

Well,  if  these,  and  such  as  these,  be  all  you  have  to  say 

against  conversion,  and  a  holy  life,  your  all  is  nothing,  and 

worse  than  nothing ;  and  if  these,  and  such  as  these,  seem 

reasons  sufficient  to  i^ei^uade  you  to  forsake  God,  and  cast 

yourselves  into  \ie\\,  tYve  l^oidLdi^vN^x^^xxSt^sai^^aj^xwMb.^^^ 


GALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  41d 

and  from  such  blind. understandingB,  and  from  such  sense- 
less*  hardened  hearts.  Dare  you  stand  to  every  one  of 
these  reasons  at  the  bar  af  God  ?  Do  you  think  it  will  then 
serve  your  turn,  to  say, '  Lord  I  did  not  turn,  because  I  had 
so  mui^h  to  do  in  the  world,  or,  because  I  did  not  like  the 
lives  of  some  professors,  or,  because  I  saw  men  of  so  many 
minds  V  O  how  easily  will  the  light  of  that  day  confound 
and  shame  such  reasons  as  these !  Had  you  the  world  to 
look  after  ?  Let  the  world  which  you  served,  now  pay  you 
your  wages,  and  save  you  if  it  can  !  Had  you  not  a  better 
world  to  look  after  first  ?  And  were  ye  not  commanded  to 
seek  first  Ood's  kingdom  and  righteotisness,  cmd  promised, 
that  other  things  should  be  added  to  you^?  And  were  you 
not  told,  '*  that  godliness  was  profitable  to  all  things,  having 
the  promise  of  this  life,  and  of  that  which  is  to  come  ^  ?  Did 
the  sins  of  professors  hinder  you  ?  You  should  rather  have 
been  the  more  heedful,  and  learned  by  their  falls  to  beware ; 
and  have  been  the  more  careful,  and  not  the  more  careless ; 
it  was  the  Scripture  and  not  their  lives,  that  was  your  rule. 
Did  the  many  opinions  of  the  world  hinder  you  ?  Why,  the 
Scripture  that  was  your  rule,  did  teach  you  but  one  way,  and 
that  was  the  right  way ;  if  you  had  followed  that,  even  in  so 
much  as  was  plain  and  easy,  you  would  never  have  miscar- 
ried. Will  not  such  answers  as  these  confound  and  silence 
you  ?  If  these  will  not,  God  hath  those  that  will.  When 
he  asketh  the  man.  Matt.  xxii.  12.  ''Friend  how  camest 
thou  in  hither,  not  having  on  a  wedding  garment?"  That 
is,  what  dost  thou  in  my  church  amongst  professed  Chris- 
tians, without  a  holy  heart  and  life  ?  What  answer  did  he 
make  ?  Why,  the  text  saith,  **  He  was  speechless,"  he  had 
nothing  to  say.  The  clearness  of  the  case,  and  the  majesty 
of  God,  will  then  easily  stop  the  mouths  of  the  most  confi- 
dent of  you,  though  you  will  not  be  put  down  by  any  thing 
that  we  can  say  to  you  now,  but  will  make  gobd  your  cause, 
be  it  never  so  bad.  I  know  already,  that  never  a  reason 
that  now  you  can  give  me,  will  do  you  any  good  at  last,  when 
your  case  must  be  opened  before  the  Lord  and  all  the  world. 
Nay,  I  scarce  think  that  your  own  consciences  are  well 
satisfied  with  your  reasons.  For  if  they  are,  it  seems  then 
you  have  not  so  much  as  a  purpose  to  rei^etkl'.  WvKI^^xx^l^^ 

*  Matt  vi.  S3.  '  '  \  iTVmA^.i. 


430  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.     ^ 

but  purpose  to  repent^  it  seems  you  do  not  put  much  confi- 
dence in  your  reasons  which  you  bring  against  it. 

What  say  you,  unconverted  sinners?  Have  you  any 
good  reason  to  give,  why  you  should  not  Turn,  and  present- 
ly Turn  with  all  your  hearts  ?  Or,  will  you  go  to  hell  in  des- 
pite of  reason  itself?  Bethink  you  what  you  do,  in  time, 
for  it  will  shortly  be  too  late  to  bethink  you.  Can  you  find 
any  fault  with  God,  or  his  work,  or  wages  ?  Is  he  a  bad 
master?  Is  the  devil  whom  you  serve  a  better?  Or  is  the 
flesh  a  better  ?  Is  there  any  harm  in  a  holy  life  ?  Is  a  life 
of  worldliness  and  ungodliness  better?  Do  you  think  in 
your  conscience,  that  it  would  do  you  any  harm  to  be  con- 
verted, and  live  a  holy  life?  What  harm  can  it  do  you? 
Is  it  harm  to  you  to  have  the  Spirit  of  Christ  within  you? 
And  to  have  a  cleansed,  purified  heart?  If  it  be  bad  to  be 
holy,  why  doth  God  say,  "  Be  ye  holy,  for  I  am  holy  °  ?" 
Is  it  evil  to  be  like  God  ?  Is  it  not  said,  that ''  God  made 
man  in  his  own  image  ?"  Why,  this  holiness  is  his  image : 
this  Adam  lost,  and  this  Christ  by  his  word  and  Spirit  would 
restore  to  you,  as  he  doth  to  all  that  he  will  save.  Why  were 
you  baptized  into  the  Holy  Ghost ;  and  why  do  you  baptize 
your  childien  into  the  Holy  Ghost,  as  your  Sanctifier,  if  ye 
will  not  be  sanctified  by  him,  but  think  it  a  hurt  to  be  sanc- 
tified? Tell  me  truly,  as  before  the  Lord,  though  you  ^ 
loath  to  live  a  holy  life,  had  you  not  rather  die  in  the  case 
of  those  that  do  so,  than  of  others  ?  If  you  were  to  die  this 
day,  had  you  not  rather  die  in  the  case  of  a  converted  man, 
than  of  the  unconverted  ?  Of  a  holy  and  heavenly  man; 
tha^  of  a  carnal,  earthly  man  ?  And  would  you  not  say  as 
Balaam,  "  Let  me  die  the  death  of  the  righteous,  and  let 
my  last  end  be  like  his  °  ?"  And  why  will  you  not  now  be 
of  the  mind  that  you  will  be  of  then  ?  First  or  last  you 
must  come  to  this  ;  either  to  be  converted,  or  to  wish  you 
had  been,  when  it  is  too  late. 

But  what  is  it  you  are  afraid  of  losing  if  you  Turn?  Is 
it  your  friends  ?  You  will  but  change  them :  God  will  be 
your  friend,  and  Christ  and  the  Spirit  will  be  your  friend, 
and  every  Christian  will  be  your  friend.  You  will  get  one 
friend  that  will  stand  in  more  stead  than  all  the  friends  in 
the  world  could  have  done.    The  friends  you  lose  would 

«  1  Pet.  i.  15, 16.    Iift^.xx47 .  ^  '^xws&i.xwxv,  Vi. 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  421 

have  but  enticed  you  to  hell,  but  could  not  have  delivered 
you ;  but  the  friend  you  get  will  save  you  from  hell,  and 
bring  you  t(S  his  own  eternal  rest. 

Is  it  your  pleasures  that  you  are  afraid  of  losing?  You 
think  ybu  shall  never  have  a  merry  day  again,  if  once  you  be 
converted.  Alas !  that  you  should  think  it  a  greater  plea- 
sure to  Uve  in  foolish  sports  and  merriments,  and  please 
your  flesh,  than  live  in  the  believing  thoughts  of  glory,  and 
in  the  love  of  God,  and  in  righteousness,  and  peace,  and  joy 
in  the  Holy  Ghost,  in  which  the  state  of  grace  consisteth. 
If  it  be  a  greater  pleasure  to  you  to  think  of  your  lands  and 
inheritance,  (if  you  were  lord  of  ^1  the  country,)  than  it  is 
to  a  child  to  play  with  pins  ;  why  shoiUd  it  not  be  a  greater 
joy  to  you  to  think  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven  being  yours, 
thaii  all  the  riches  or  pleasures  of  the  world  ?  As  it  is  but 
foolish  childishness  that  makes  children  so  delight  in  gawds, 
that  they  would  not  leave  them  for  all  your  lands  ;  so  it  is 
but  foolish  worldliness,  and  fleshliness,  and  wickedness, 
that  makes  you  so  much  delight  in  your  houses,  and  lands, 
and  meat,  and  drink,  and  ease,  and  honour,  as  that  you  would 
not  part  with  them  for  heavenly  delights.  But  what  will 
you  do  for  pleasure  when  these  are  gone  ?  Do  you  not  think 
of  that?  When  your  pleasures  end  in  horror,  and  go  out 
with  a  stinking  snufF,  the  pleasures  of  the  saints  are  then 
at  the  best.  I  have  had  myself  but  a  little  taste  of  the  hea- 
venly pleasures,  in  the  forethoughts  of  the  blessed  approach- 
ing day,  and  in  the  present  persuasions  of  the  love  of  God  in 
Christ ;  but  I  have  taken  too  deep  a  draught  of  earthly  plea- 
sures, (so  that  you  may  see,  if  I  be  partial,  it  is  on  your  side,) 
and  yet  I  must  profess  from  that  little  experience,  that  there 
is  no  comparison.  There  is  more  joy  to  be  had  in  a  day  (if 
the  sun  of  life  shine  clear  upon  us),  in  the  state  of  holiness, 
than  in  a  whole  life  of  sinful  pleasure ;  I  had  "  rather  be  a 
door-keeper  in  the  house  of  God,  than  to  dwell  in  the  tents 
of  wickedness.  A  day  in  his  courts  is  better  than  a  thou- 
sand" any  where  else  **;  The  mirth  of  the  wicked  is  like  the 
laughter  of  a  madman,  that  knows  not  his  own  misery :  and 
therefore  Solomon  saith  of  such  laughter,  "  it  is  mad,  and  of 
mirth,  what  doth  it? — It  is  better  to  go  to  the  house  of 
mourning*  than  to  go  to  the  house  of  feaaliug*,  tot  \Xvai\.\«» 

P  Psal.  Jxxxiv.  10. 


422  CALL  TO   THE   UNCONVERTBD. 

the  end  of  all  men,  and  the  living  will  lay  it  to  his  heart. 
Sorrow  is  better  than  laughter ;  for  by  the  sadness  of  the 
countenance  the  heart  is  made  better.  The  heart  of  the 
wise  is  in  Uie  house  of  mourning,  l)ut  the  heart  of  fools  is 
in  the  house  of  mirth.    It  is  better  to  hear  the  rebuk#of  the 

^  wise,  than  to  hear  the  song  of  fools ;  for  as  the  crackling  of 
thorns  under  a  pot,  so  is  the  laughter  of  a  fool  %**  -All  the 
pleasure  of  fleshly  things,  is  but  like  the  scratching  of  a 
man  that  hath  the  itch ;  it  is  his  disease  that  makes  him 
desire  it :  and  a  wise  man  had  rathe%  be  without  his  plea- 
surd,  than  be  troubled  with  his  itch.  Your  loudest  laugh- 
ter is  but  like  that  of  a  man  that  is  tickled,  he  laughs  when 
he  hath  no  cause  of  joy.  And  it  is  a  wiser  thing  for  a 
man  to  give  all  his  estate  and  his  life,  to  be  tickled  to  make 
him  laugh,  than  for  you  to  part  with  the  love  of  Ood,  and  the 
comforts  of  holiness,  and  the  hopes  of  heaven,  and  to  cast 
yourselves  into  damnation,  that  you  may  have  your  flesh 
tickled  with  the  pleasure  of  sin  for  a  little  while.  Judge  as 
you  are  men  whether  this  be  a  wise  man's  part.  It  is  your 
carnal,  unsanctified  nature  that  makes  a  holy  life  seem  grie- 
vous to  you,  and  a  course  of  sensuality  seem  more  delight- 
ful. If  you  will  but  Turn,  the  Holy  Ghost  will  give  you  ano- 
ther nature  and  inclination,  and  then  it  will  be  more  plea- 
sant to  you  to  to  be  rid  of  your  sin,  than  now  it  is  to  keep 
it ;  and  you  will  then  say  that  you  knew  not  what  a  comfor- 
table life  was  till  now,  and  that  it  was  never  well  with  you, 
till  God  and  holiness  were  your  delight. 

Qiiest.  '  But  how  cometh  it  to  pass,  that  men  should  be 
so  unreasonable  in  the  matters  of  salvation  ?  They  have  wit 
enough  in  other  matters ;  what  makes  them  so  loath  to  be 
converted,  that  there  should  need  so  many  words  in  so  plain 

.   a  case  ;  and  all  will  not  do,  but  the  most  will  live  and  die 
unconverted  V 

Answ.  To  name  them  only  in  few  words,  the  causes  are 
these. 

1.  Men  are  naturally  in  love  with  earth  and  flesh,  they 
are  born  sinners,  and  their  nature  hath  an  enmity  to  God 
and  godliness,  as  the  nature  of  a  serpent  hath  to  a  man.  And 
when  all  that  we  can  say,  goes  against  the  habitual  inclina- 
tiouB  of  their  natures,  no  m'^ix^^l  if  it  little  prevail. 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTfiD.  423. 

2.  They  are  ia  darkness  and  know  not  the  very  things 
that  they  hear.  Like  a  man  that  was  bom  blind^  and  hears 
a  high  commendation  of  the  light :  but  what  will  hearing  do, 
unless  he  sees  it?  They  know  not  what  God  is,  nor  what  is 
the  power  of  the  cross  of  Christ,  nor  what  the  Spirit  of  ho- 
liness is,  nor  what  it  is  to  live  in  love  by  faith.  They  know 
not  the  certainty,  and  suitableness,  and  excellency  of  the 
heavenly  inheritance.  They  know  not  what  conversion,  and 
a  holy  mind  and  conversation  are,  even  when  they  hear  of 
them.  They  are  in  a  mist  of  ignorance,  they  are  lost  and  ^ 
bewildered  in  sin,  like  a  man  that  hath  lost  himself  in  the 
night,  and  knows  not  where  he  is,  nor  how  to  come  to  him- 
self again,  till  the  daylight  do  recover  him. 

3.  They  are  wilfully  confident  that  they  need  no  conver- 
sion, but  some  partial  amendment ;  and  that  they  are  in  the 
way  to  heaven  already,  and  are  converted,  when  they  are 
not.  And  if  you  meet  a  man  that  is  quite  out  of  hi^  way, 
you  may  long  enough  call  on  him  to  turn  back  again,  if  he 
will  not  believe  you  that  he  is  out  of  the  way. 

4.  They  are  become  slaves  to  their  flesh,  and  drowned  in 
the  world  to  make  provision  for  it.  Their  lusts,  and  pas- 
sions, and  appetites  have  distracted  them,  and  got  such  a 
hand  over  them,  that  they  cannot  tell  how  to  deny  them,  or 
how  to  mind  any  thing  else.  So  that  the  drunkard  saith, 
*  I  love  a  cup  of  good  drink  and  cannot  forbear  it.'  The 
glutton  saith, '  I  love  good  cheer,  and  I  cannot  forbear.'  The 
fornicator  saith, '  I  love  to  have  my  lusts  fulfilled,  and  I  can- 
hot  forbear.'  And  the  gamester  loveth  to  have  his  sports, 
and  he  canjaot  forbear.  So  that  they  are  even  become  cap- 
tivated slaves  to  their  flesh,  and  their  very  wilfulness  is  be- 
come an  impotency,  and  what  they  would  not  do,  they  say 
they  cannot.  And  the  worldling  is  so  taken  up  with  earthly 
things,  that  he  hath  neither  heart,  nor  mind,  nor  time  for  hea- 
venly ;  but  as  in  Pharaoh's  dream,  the  lean  kine  did  eat 
up  the  fat  ones ;  so  this  lean  and  barren  earth  do  eat  up  all 
the  thoughts  of  heaven. 

6.  Some  are  so  carried  away  by  the  stream  of  evil  com- 
pany, that  they  are  possessed  with  hard  thoughts  of  a  godly 
life,  by  hearing  them  speak  against  it:  or  at  least  they  think 
they  may  venture  to  do  as  they  see  most  do ;  aiid  so  they 
hold  on  in  their  sinful  ways.     And  wVieix  one  \^  cxsX.  ^^\A 

''  Gen.  zli.  4. 


424  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

cast  into  hell,  and  another  snatched  away  from  among  them, 
to  the  same  condemnation,  it  doth  not  much  daunt  them, 
because  they  see  not  whither  they  are  gone.  Poor  wretches ! 
They  hold  on  in  their  ungodliness  for  all  this  ;  for  they  little 
know  that  their  companions  are  now  lamenting  it  in  torments. 
In  Luke  xvi.  the  rich  man  in  hell  would  fain  have  had  one  to 
warn  his  five  brethren,  lest  they  should  oome  to  that  place 
of  torment.  It  is  like  he  knew  their  minds  and  lives,  and 
knew  that  they  were  hasting  thither,  and  little  dreamed  that 
he  was  there;  yea,  and  little  would  have  believed  one  that 
should  have  told  them  so.  I  remember  a  passage  a  gentle- 
man told  me  he  saw  upon  a  bridge  over  the  Severn '.  A  man 
was  driving  a  flock  of  fat  lambs,  and  something  meeting 
them  and  hindering  their  passage,  one  of  the  lambs  leaped 
upon  the  wall  of  the  bridge,  and  his  legs  slipping  from  under 
him,  he  fell  into  the  stream,  and  the  rest  seeing  him,  did 
one  after  another  leap  over  the  bridge  into  the  stream,  and 
were  all,  or  almost  all;  drowned.  Those  that  were  behind, 
did  little  know  wliat  was  become  of  them  that  were  gone  be- 
fore, but  thought  that  they  might  venture  to  follow  their 
companions.  But  as  soon  as  ever  they  were  over  the  wall 
and  falling  headlong,  the  case  was  altered.  Even  so  it  is 
with  unconverted,  carnal  men.  One  dieth  by  them,  and 
drops  into  hell,  and  another  follows  the  same  way ;  and  yet 
they  will  go  after  them,  because  they  think  not  whither  they 
are  going.  Oh  !  but  when  death  has  once  opened  their  eyes, 
and  they  see  what  is  on  the  other  side  of  the  wall,  even  in  ano; 
ther  world,  then  what  would  they^give  to  be  where  they  were? 
6.  Moreover,  they  have  a  subtle,  malicious  enemy,  that 
is  unseen  of  them,  and  plays  his  game  in  the  dark  ;  and  it  is 
his  principal  business  to  hinder  their  conversion ;  and  there- 
fore to  keep  them  where  they  are,  by  persuading  them  not  to 
believe  the  Scriptures,  or  not  to  trouble  their  minds  with 
these  matters  ;  or  by  persuading  them  to  think  ill  of  a  godly 
life,  or  to  think  that  it  is  more  ado  than  needs,  and  that  they 
may  be  saved  without  conversion,  and  without  all  this  stir ; 
and  that  God  is  so  merciful,  that  he  will  not  damn  any  such 
as  they,  or,  at  least,  that  they  may  stay  a  little  longer,  and 
take  their  pleasure,  and  follow  the  world  a  little  longer  yet, 
and  then  let  it  go,  and  repent  hereafter ;  and  by«uch  jug- 


GALL    TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  425 

;ling,  deluding  cbeats  as  these/the  devil  keeps  most  in  his 
(^ptivity,  and  leadeth  them  to  his  misery. 

These,  and  such  like  impediments  as  these,  do  keep  so 
many  thousands  unconverted,Vhen  God  hath  done  so  much, 
Euid  Christ  hath  suffered  so  much,  and  ministers  have  said  so 
much,  for  their  conversion ;  when  their  reasons  are  silenced, 
and  they  are  not  able  to  answer  the  Lord  that  calls  after 
them,  "  Turn  ye,  turn  ye,  whyj  will  ye  die  ?"  yet  all  comes 
to  nothing  with  the  greatest  part  of  them ;  and  they  leave 
us  no  more  to  do  after  all,  but  to  sit  down  and  lament  their 
wilful  misery. 

I  have  now  shewed  you  the  reasonableness  of  God's  com- 
mands, and  the  unreasonableness  of  wicked  men's  disobe- 
dience. If  nothing  will  serve  turn,  but  men  will  yet  refuse 
to  Turn,  we  are  next  to  consider  who  it  is  long  of  if  they  be 
damned.  And  this  brings  me  to  the  last  Doctrine ;  which  is, 
Doct,  VII.  That  if,  after  all  this,  men  will  not  turn,  it  is 
not  long  of  God  that  they  are  condemned  but  of  themselves, 
even  their  own  wilfulness.  They  die  because  they  will  die, 
that  is,  because  they  will  not  Turn. 

If  you  will  go  to  hell,  what  remedy  ?     God  here  acquits 
himself  jof  your  blood ;  it  shall  not  lie  on  him  if  you  be  lost. 
A  negligent  minister  may  draw  it  upon  him  ;  and  those  that 
encourage  you,  or  hinder  you  not,  in  sin,  may  draw  it  upon 
them ;  but  be  sure  of  it,  it  shall  not  lie  upon  God.     Saith 
the  Lord  concerning  his  unprofitable  vineyard,  "  Judge  I 
pray  you,  between  me   and  my  vineyard,  what  could  have 
been  done  more  to  my  vineyard,  that  I  have  not  done  to  it?" 
Wlien  he  had  "  planted  it  in  a  fruitful  soil,  and  fenced  it, 
and  gathered  out  the  stones,  and  planted  it  with  the  choic- 
est vines'."    What  should  he  have  done  more  to  it?     He 
hath  made  you  men,  and  endued  you  with  reason ;  he  hath 
furnished  you  with  external  necessaries,  all  creatures  are  at 
your  service;  he  hath  given  you  a  righteous,  perfect  law; 
"when  you  had  broke  it,  and  undone  yourselves,  he  had  pity 
on  you,  and  sent  his  Son  by  a  miracle  of  condescending 
mercy  to  die  for  you,  and  be  a  sacrifice  for  your  sins,  and  he 
**  was   in  Christ  reconciling  the  world  to  himself."    The 
Lord  Jesus  hath  made  you  a  deed  of  gift  of  himself,  and 
eternal  life  with  him,  on  the  condition  you  will  but  ^cc«^\.\V» 


426  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

and  return.  He  hath  on  this  reasonable  condition^  offered 
you  the  free  pardon  of  all  your  sins  :  he  hath  written  this  in 
his  word,  and  sealed  it  by  his  Spirit,  and  sent  it  you  by  his 
ministers ;  they  have  made  th6  offer  to  you  a  hundred  and 
a  hundred  times,  and  called  you  to  accept  it,  and  turn  to 
God.  They  have  in  his  name  entreated  you,  and  reasoned 
the  case  with  you,  and  answered  all  your  frivolous  objeo 
tions.  He  hath  long  waited  on  you,  and  staid  your  leisure ; 
and  suffered  you  to  abuse  him  to  his  face.  He  hath  mer- 
cifully sustained  you  in  the  midst  of  your  sins :  he  hatb 
compassed  you  about  with  all  sorts  of  mercies  :  he  hath 
also  inteimixed  afflictions,  to  mind  you  of  your  folly,  and 
call  you  to  .your  wits  :  and  his  Spirit  hath  been  often  striv- 
ing with  your  hearts,  and  saying  there,  *  Turn  sinner,  turn 
to  him  that  calleth  thee  :  whither  art  thou  going  ?  What 
art  thou  doing  ?  Dost  thou  know  what  will  be  the  end  ? 
How  long  wilt  thou  hate  thy  friends,  and  love  thine  ene- 
mies? When  wilt  thou  let  go  all,  and  Turn,  and  deliver  up 
thyself  to  God,  and  give  thy  Redeemer  the  possession  of  Uiy 
soul?  When  shall  it  once  be?'  These  pleadings  have 
been  used  with  thee  ;  and  when  thou  hast  delayed,  thou  hast 
been  urged  to  make  haste,  and  God  hath  called  to  thee. 
"  To-day,  while  it  is  called  to-day,  harden  not  your  heart? 
Why  not  now  without  any  more  delay  V  Life  hath  been  set 
before  you  ;  the  joys  of  heaven  have  been  opened  to  you  in 
the  Gospel :  the  certainty  of  them  hath  been  manifested ; 
the  certainty  of  the  everlasting  torments  of  the  damned 
hath  been  declared  to  you,  unless  you  would  have  had  a 
sight  of  heaven  and  hell,  what  could  you  desire  more? 
Christ  hath  been,  as  it  were,  set  forth  crucified  before  your 
eyes.  Gal.  iii.  1.  You  have  been  a  hundred  times  told,  that 
you  are  but  lost  men,  till  you  come  unto  him  ;  as  oft  as  you 
have  been  told  of  the  evil  of  sin,  and  of  the  vanity  of  sin, 
the  world,  and  all  the  pleasures  and  wealth  it  can  afford ;  of 
the  shortness  and  uncertainty  of  your  lives,  and  the  endless 
duration  of  the  joy  or  torment  of  the  life  to  come.  All  this 
and  more  than  this,  have  you  been  told,  and  told  again, 
even  till  you  were  weary  of  hearing  it,  and  till  you  could 
make  the  lighter  of  it,  because  you  had  so  often  heard  it; 
like  the  smith's  dog,  that  is  brought,  by  custom^  to  sleep 
under  the  noise  otl\ie\i^HiTxiet^,^\i^\v\!c»^^^^^ 


CALL   TO  THE   UNCONVERTED.  427 

luB  ears ;  and  though  all  this  have  not  converted  you^  yet 
you  are  alive,  and  might  have  mercy,  to  this  day,  if  you  had 
but  hearts  to  entertain  it.    And  now  let  reason  itself  be 
judge,  whether  it  be  long  of  God  or  you,  if  after  all  this  yoir 
will  be  unconverted,  and  be  damned?     If  you  die  now  it.is 
because  you  will  die.    What  should  be  said  more  to  yeal 
Or  what  course  should  be  taken,  that  is  more  like.td  prevailt 
Are  you  able  to  say  and  make  it  good,  '  We  would  fain  have 
been  converted  and  become  new  creatures,  but  we  could 
not ;  we  would  have  changed  our  company,  and  our  thoughts, 
and  our  discourse,  but  we  could  not.'     Why  could  you  not 
if  you  would  ?     What  hindered  you,  but  the  wickedness  of 
your  hearts  ?    Who  forced  you  to  sin  ?     Or  who  did  hold 
you  back  from  duty  ?    Had  you  not  the  same  teaching,  and 
time,  and  liberty  to  be  godly  as  your  godly  neighbours  bad  ? 
Why  then  could  you  not  have  been  godly  as  well  as  they? 
Were  the  church  doors  shut  against  you,  or  did  you  not 
keep  away  yourselves  ?     Or  sit  and  sleep,  or  hear  as  if  you 
did  not  hear  ?     Did  God  put  in  any  exceptions  against  you 
in  his  word,  when  he  invited  sinners  to  return,  and  when  he 
promised  mercy  to  those  that  do  return?  Did  he  say,  *  I  will 
pardon  all  that  repent,  except  thee  V    Did  he  shut  you  out 
from  the  liberty  of  his  holy  worship  ?     Did  he  forbid  you  to 
pray  to  him  any  mora  than  others  ?     You  know  he  did  not. 
God  did  not  drive  you  away  from  him,  but  you  forsook  him, 
and  run  away  yourselves.     And  when  he  called  you  to  him, 
you  would  not  come.     If  God  had  excepted  you  out  of  the 
general  promise  and  offer  of  mercy,  or  had  said  to  you, '  Stand 
off,  I  will  have  nothing  to  do  with  such  as  you ;  pray  not  to 
me,  for  I  will  not  hear  you.     If  you  repent  never  so  much, 
and  cry  for  mercy  never  so  much,  I  will  not  regard  you.'  If 
God  had  left  you  nothing  to  trust  to  but  desperation,  then 
you  had  had  a  fair  excuse.    You  might  have  said, '  To  what 
-  end  should  I  repent  and  turn,  whea  ijl'  will  do  no  good?' 
But  this  was  not  your  case.    You  might  have  had  Christ  to 
be  your  Lord  and  Saviour,  your  Head  and  Husband,  as  well 
.as  others,  and  you  would  not;  because  that  ye  felt  not 
yourselves  sick  enough  for  the  physician ;  and  because  you 
could  not  spare  your  disease ;  in  your  hearts  ye  said  as  those 
rebels,  Luke  xix.  14.    "  We  will  not  have  this  man  to  te\^ 
over  u5."    Christ  would  have  gathered youvmdieixXJcL^^m^^ 


428  CAIiL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED. 

of  his  salvation,  and  you  would  not  K  What  desires  of  your 
^  welfare  did  the  Lord  express  in  his  holy  word?  With  what 
compassion  did  he  stand  over  you  and  say,  **  O  that  my 
people  had  hearkened  unto  me,  and  that  they  had  walked  in 
my  way  "/'  **  O  that  there  were  such  a  heart  in  this  people, 
tbtt  they  would  fear  me,  and  keep  all  my  commandments 
.  always,  that  it  might  be  well  with  them,  and  with  their  chil- 
dren for  ever  *."  "  O  that  they  were  wise,  that  they  under- 
stood this ;  and  that  they  would  consider  their  latter  end  '." 
He  would  have  been  your  God,  and  done  all  for  you  that 
your  souls  could  well  desire  :  but  you  loved  the  world  and 
your  flesh  above  him ;  and,  therefore,  you  would  not  hear- 
ken to  him ;  though  you  complimented  with  him,  and  gave 
him  high  titles,  yet  when  he  came  to  the  closing,  you  would 
have  none  of  him.  No  marvel  then,  if  *'  he  gave  you  up  to 
your  own  heart's  lusts,  and  you  walked  in  your  own  coun- 
sels '."  He  condescends  to  reason,  and  pleads  the  case  with 
you,  and  asks  you,  "  What  is  there  in  me,  or  my  service,  that 
you  should  be  so  much  against  me  ?  What  harm  have  I  done 
thee,  sinner  ?  Have  I  deserved  this  unkind  dealing  at  thy 
hands  ?  Many  mercies  have  I  shewed  thee  ;  for  which  of 
them  dost  thou  despise  me  ?  Is  it  I,  or  is  it  satan,  that  is 
thy  enemy  ?  Is  it  I,  or  is  it  thy  carnal  self  that  would  un- 
do thee  ?  Is  it  a  holy  life,  or  a  life  of  sin,  that  thou  hast 
cause  to  fly  from  ?  If  thou  be  undone,  thou  procurest  this 
to  thyself,  by  forsaking  me  the  Lord,  that  would  have  saved 
thee  *."  "  Doth  not  thine  own  wickedness  correct  thee,  and 
thy  sin  reprove  thee.  Thou  mayst  see  that  it  is  an  evil  and 
bitter  things  that  thou  hast  forsaken  me  **/'  "  What  iniquity 
have  ye  found  in  me,  that  you  have  followed  after  vanity, 
and  forsaken  me  *^/'  He  calleth  out,  as  it  were,  to  the  brutes 
to  hear  the  controversy  that  he  hath  against  you.  **  Hear 
-  O  mountains,  the  Lord's  controversy,  and  ye  strong  foun- 
dations of  the  earth ;  for  the  Lord  hath  a  controversy  with 
his  people,  and  he  will  plead  with  Israel.  O  my  people, 
what  have  I  done  to  thee,  and  wherein  have  I  wearied  thee, 
testify  against  me;  for  I  brought  thee  out  of  Egypt,  and  re- 
deemed thee  ^."    "  Hear,  6  heavens,  and  give  ear  O  earth, 

» Matt,  xxiii.  27,  «  Psal.  U«xi.  13.  «  Deut.  r.  29. 

y  Deut.  xxxU,  29.  *Pm\.\xil^u.U,\^.    •Jet,u.  17. 

;;,  '^'Jer.  ii.  19.  *^  3et.  \\.  5,  ^%  ^  Wvt,  h\.  <v— v 


Vf 


CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED  429 

for  the  Lord  hath  spoken.  I  have  nourished  and  brought 
up  children^  and  they  have  rebelled  against  me.  The  ox 
knoweth  his  owner,  and  the  ass  his  master's  crib^  but  Israel 
doth  not  know,  my  people  doth  not  consider.  Ah,  sinful 
nation,  a  people  laden  with  iniquity,  a  seed  of  evil  doers  •l^ 
&c.  "  Do  you  thus  requite  the  Lord,  O  foolish  people  and 
unwise  ?  Is  not  he  thy  father  that  bought  thee^  and  estab- 
lished thee^?"  When  he  saw  that  you  forsook  him  even  for 
nothing,  and  turned  away  from  your  Lord  and  life,  to  hunt 
after  the  chaiF  and  feathers  of  the  world,  he  told  you  of  your 
folly,  and  called  you  to  a  more  profitable  employment. 
**  Wherefore  do  you  spend  your  money  for  that  which  is  not 
bread,  and  your  labour  for  that  which  satisfieth  not  ?  Hear- 
ken diligently  unto  me,  and  eat  ye  that  which  is  good,  aad 
let  your  soul  delight  itself  in  fatness.  Incline  your  ear,,  and 
come  unto  me ;  hear,  and  your  soul  shall  live,  and  I  will 
make  an  everlasting  covenant  with  you,  even  the  sure  mer^ 
cies  of  David.  Seek  ye  the  Lord  while  he  may  be  found, 
call  ye  upon  him,  while  he  is  near.  Let  the  wicked  forsake 
his  way,  and  the  unrighteous  man  his  thoughts,  and  let  him 
return  unto  the  Lord,  and  he  will  have  mercy  upon  him,  and 
to  our  God,  for  he  will  abundantly  pardon  s."  And  so  Isa^ 
i.  16 — 18.  And  when  you  would  not  hear,  ivhat  complaints 
have  you  put  him  to,  charging  it  on  you  as  your  wilfulness, 
and  stubbornness?  '' Be  astonished,  O  ye  heavens,  at  this,  and 
be  horribly  afraid ;  for  my  people  have  committed  two  evils ; 
they  have  forsaken  me,  the  fountain  of  living  waters ;  and 
hewed  them  out  cisterns,  broken  cisterns,  that  can  hold  no 
water  ^.'*  Many  a  time  hath  Christ  proclaimed  that  free  in- 
vitation to  you,  ''  Let  him  that  is  athirst  come  :  and  whoso- 
ever will,  let  him  take  the  water  of  life  freely'."  But  you 
put  him  to  complain  after  all  his  offers ;  "  They  will  not 
come  to  me  that  they  may  have  life  ^T  He  hath  invited  you 
to  feast  with  him  in  the  kingdom  of  his  grace  ;  and  you  have 
had  excuses  from  your  grounds,  and  your  cattle,  and  your 
worldly  business,  and  when  you  would  not  come,  you  have 
«aid  you  could  not,  and  .provoked  him  to  resolve  that  you 
should  never  taste  of  his  supper  ^     And  who  is  it  long  of 

«  Isa.  i.  2—4.  ^  Deut.  xxxii.  6.  »  Isa.  Iv.  1—3. 6, 7. 

»»  Jer.  ii.  12, 13.  » Rev.  xxii.  17.  ^  JoYin  ^.  AO. 

-'  Luke  xiv,  IS — leS. 


«f 


430  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED. 

now  but  yourselyes?  And  what  can  you  say  is  the  chief 
cause  of  your  damnation,  but  your  own  wills  ?  You  would 
be  damned.  The  whole  case  is  laid  open  by  Christ  himself, 
ProY.  i.  20.  to  the  end  :  *'  Wisdom  crieth  without,  she  utto^ 
eth  her  voice  in  the  streets  :  she  crieth  in  the  chief  place  of 
concourse.  How  long,  ye  simple  ones,  will  ye  love  sim- 
plicity, and  the  scomers  delight  in  their  scorning,  and  foob 
hate  knowledge?  Turn  you  at  my  reproof;  behold,  I  will 
pour  out  my  Spirit  unto  you,  I  will  make  known  my  words 
unto  you.  Because  I  have  called  and  ye  refhsed,  I  have 
stretched  out  my  hand,  and  no  man  regarded ;  but  ye  have 
set  at  naught  all  my  counsel,  and  would  have  none  of  my  re- 
proof :  I  also  will  laugh  at  your  calamity,  I  will  mock  when 
your  fear  cometh  ;  when  your  fear  cometh  as  desolation,  and 
your  destiniction  cometh  as  a  whirlwind ;  when  distFess  and 
anguish  cometh  upon  you.  Then  shall  they  callupon  me^  but 
I  will  not  answer ;  they  shall  seek  me  early,  but  they  shall 
not  find  me;  for  that  they  hated  knowledge,  and  did  not 
choose  the  fear  of  the  Lord.  They  would  none  of  my  conn- 
sel;  they  despised  all  my  reproof:  therefore  shall  they  eat 
of  the  fruit  of  their  own  way,  and  be  filled  with  their  owu 
devices.  For  the  turning  away  of  the  simple  shall  slay  them, 
and  the  prosperity  of  fools  shall  destroy  them.  But  whoso 
hearkeneth  unto  me  shall  dwell  safely,  and  shall  be  quiet  from 
the  fear  of  evil.''  I  thought  best  to  recite  die  whole  text  at 
large  to  you,  because  it  doth  so  fully  shew  the  ca^ise  of  the 
destruction  of  the  wicked.  It  is  not  because  God  would  not 
teach  them  but  because  they  would  not  learn.  It  is  not  be- 
cause God  would  not  call  them,  but  because  they  would  not 
turn  at  his  reproof.     Their  wilfulness  is  their  undoing. 

USE.  From  what  hath  been  said,  you  may  further  learo 
these  following  things : 

1.  From  hence  you  may  see,  not  only  what  blasphemy 
and  impiety  it  is,  to  lay  the  blame  of  men's  destruction  upon 
God :  but  also  how  unfit  these  wicked  wretches  are,  to  bring 
in  such  a  chai'ge  against  their  Maker.  They  cry  out  upon 
God,  and  say,  he  gives  theni  no  grace,  and  his  threatenings 
are  severe,  and  God  forbid  that  all  should  be  damned  that  be 
not  converted  and  sanctified,  and  they  think  it  hard  mea- 
sure, that  a  short  «\n  ^\\o\]iVd\i«:^^  ^n^udless  suffering;  and 
if  they  be  damned,  t\ke^  a«^,\5E\e^  c.^TLtisA.\i€c^\\..  Nf^[\s«»;N5i. 


CAliL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  431 

the  meantime  they  are  busy  about  their  own  destruction, 
eveu  cutting  the  throat  of  their  own  souls,  and  will  not.  be 
persuaded  to  hold  their  hand.    They  think  Ood  were  cruel 
if  he  should  damn  them,  and  yet  they  are  cruel  to  themselves, 
and  they  will  run  into  the  fire  of  hell,  when  Ood  hath  told 
them  it  is  a  little  before  them ;  and  neither  entreaties  nor 
tlireatenings,  nor  any  thing  that  can  be  said,  will  stop  them. 
We  see  them  almost  undone  ;  their  careless,  worldly,  fleshly, 
lives  do  tell  us,  that  they  are  in  the  power  of  the  devil ;  we 
know,  if  they  die  before  they  are  converted,  all  the  world 
cannot  save  them;  and  knowing  the  uncertainty  of  their 
lives,  we  are  afVaid  every  day  lest  they  drop  into  the  fire. 
And,  therefore,  we  entreat  them  to  pity  their  own  souls,  and 
not  to  undo  themselves  when  mercy  is  at  hand,  and  they 
will  not  hear  us.    We  entreat  them  to  cast  away  their  sin, 
and  come  to  Christ  without  delay,  and  to  have  some  mercy 
oa  themselves;  but  they  will  have  none.    And  yet  they 
think  that  God  must  be  cruel  if  he  condemn  them.     O  wil- 
ful, wretched  sinners  !     It  is  not  God  that  is  so  cruel  to  you  ; 
it  is  you  that  are  cruel  to  yourselves.     You  are  told,  you 
must  Turn  or  Burn,  and  yet  you  turn  not.    You  are  told, 
that  if  ]|ou  will  needs  keep  your  sins,  you  shall  keep  the 
CQFse  of  God  with  them,  and  yet  you  will  keep  them'. 
You  are  told,  that  there  is  no  way  to  happiness  but  by  holi- 
ness, and  yet  you  will  not  be  holy.    What  would  you  have 
God  say  more  to  you  ?    What  would  you  have  him  do  with 
his  mercy  ?    He  offered  it  to  you,  and  you  will  not  have  it. 
You  are  in  the  ditch  of  sin  and  misery,  and  he  would  ghre 
you  his  hand  to  help  you  out,  and  you  refuse  his  help ; 
he  would  cleanse  you  of  your  sins,  and  you  had  rather  keep 
them.    Ypu  love  your  lusts,  and  love  your  gluttony,  and 
sports,  and  drunkenness,  and  will  not  let  them  go;   and 
would  you  have  him  bring  you  to  heaven  whether  you  will 
or  no  ?     Or  would  you  have  him  to  bring  you  and  your  sins 
to  heaven  together  ?     Why,  that  is  an  impossibility ;  you 
may  as  well  expect  he  should  turn  the  sun  into  darkness. 
MHbat,  an  unsanctified,  fleshly  heart  be  in  heaven !  it  cannot 
be  !      "  There  entereth  nothing  that  is  unclean,*'  Rev.  xxi. 
17.     "  For  what  communication  hath  light  with  darkness, 
or  Christ  with  Belial  ?"  2  Cor.  vi.  14,  16.    "  All  the  dvj 
long  hath  he  stretched  out  his  hands  to  a  d\%c^^^^\^Ti\.  ^xA 


432  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

gainsaying  people/*  Rom.  x.  26.     What  will  ye  do  now? 
Will  you  cry  to  God  for  mercy  ?    Why,  God  calleth  upon 
you  to  have  mercy  upon  yourselves,  and  you  will  not ;  mi- 
nisters see  the  poisoned  cup  in  the  drunkard's  himd,  and  tell 
him,  '  There  is  poison  in  it,'  and  desire  him  to  have  mercy 
on  his  soul,  and  forbear,  and  he  will  not  hear  us  ;  drink  it 
he  must,  and  will ;   he  loves  it,  and,  therefore,  though  hell 
comes  next,  he  saith,  he  cannot  help  it.     What  should  one 
say  to  such  men  as  these  ?    We  tell  the  ungodly,  careless 
worldlings, '  It  is  not  such  a  life  that  will  serve  die  turn,  or 
ever  bring  you  to  heaven.     If  a  bear  were  at  your  back,  you 
would  mend  your  pace ;  and  when  the  curse  of  God  is  at 
your  back,  and  satan  and  hell  are  at  your  back,  you  will  not 
stir,  but  ask, '  What  needs  all  this  ado?'     Is  an  immortal 
soul  of  no  more  worth  ?     O  have  mercy  upon  yourselves ! 
But  they  will  have  no  mercy  on  themselves,  nor  once  regard 
us.    We  tell  them  the  end  will  ibe  bitter.     Who  can  dwell 
with  the  everlasting  fire  ?     And  yet  they  will  have  no  mer- 
cy upon  themselves.     And  yet  will  these  shameful  wretches 
say,  that  God  is  more  merciful  than  to  condemn  them? 
when  it  is  themselves  that  cruelly  and  unmercifully  run  upon 
condemnation  ?     And  if  we  should  go  to  them  with  our 
hats  in  our  hands,  and  entreat  them,  we  cannot  stop  them; 
if  we  should  fall  down  on  our  kness  to  them,  we  cannot  stop 
them ;  but  to  hell  they  will,  and  yet  will  not  believe  that 
they  are  going  thither.     If  we  beg  of  them,  for  the  sake  of 
God  that  made  them,  and  preserveth  them ;  for  the  sake  of 
Christ  that  died  for  them ;  for  the  sake  of  their  own  poor 
souls,  to  pity  themselves,  and  go  no  farther  in  the  way  to 
hell,  but  come  to  Christ  while  his  arms  are  open,  and  enter 
into  the  state  of  life,  while  the  door  stands  open,  and  now 
take  mercy  while  mercy  may  be  had,  they  will  not  be  per- 
suaded.    If  we  should  die  for  it,  we  cannot  get  them  so  much 
as  now  and  then  to  consider  with  themselves  of  the  matter, 
and  to  Turn.     And  yet  they  can  say,  *  I  hope  God  will  be 
merciful.'     Did  you  never  consider  what  he  saith,  Isa.  xxvii. 
11.  "  It  is  a  people  of  no  understanding,  therefore  he  that 
made  them  will  not  have  mercy  on  them ;  and  he  that  form- 
ed them  will  shew  them  no  favour.*'     If  another  man  will 
not  clothe  you  when  you  are  naked,  and  feed  you  when  you 
are  hungry,  youwVW  sa^YveV^  \xxi\Ckfi.\^\l\i\-  A^V'^  %\iQuld  cast 


CALL   TO    THE   UNCONVERTED.  433 

you  into  prison,  or  beat  or  torment  you,  you  would  say  he 
is  unmerciful.  And  yet  you  would  do  a  thousand  times 
more  against  yourselves,  even  cast  away  both  soul  and  body 
for  ever,  and  never  complain  of  your  own  unmercifulness. 
Yea,  and  God  that  waited  upon  you  all  the  while  with  his 
mercy,  must  be  taken  to  be  unmerciful,  if  he  punish  you  af- 
ter all  this.  Unless  the  holy  God  of  heaven  will  give  these 
wretches  leave  to  trample  upon  his  Son's  blood,  and  with  the 
Jews,  as  it  were,  again  to  spit  in  his  face,  and  do  despite  to 
the  Spirit  of  Grace,  and  make  a  jest  of  sin,  and  a  mock  at 
holiness,  and  set  more  light  by  saving  mercy,  than  by  the 
filth  of  their  fleshly  pleasure;  and  unless,  after  all  this,  he 
will  save  them  by  the  mercy  which  they  cast  away,  and 
would  none  of,  God  himself  must  be  called  unmerciful  by 
them ;  but  he  will  be  justified  when  he  judgeth ;  and  he  will 
not  stand  or  fall  at  the  bar  of  a  sinful  worm. 

I  know  there  are  many  particular  cavils,  that  are  brought 

by  them  against  the  Lord,  but  I  shall  not  here  stay  to  an- 
swer them  particularly,  having  done  it  already  in  my  "  Trea- 
tise on  Judgment,'^  to  which  I  shall  refer  them.  Had  the 
disputing  part  of  the  world  been  as  careful  to  avoid  sin  and 
destruction,  as  they  have  been  busy  in  searching  after  the 
cause  of  them,  and  forward  indirectly  to  impute  it  to  God, 
they  might  have  exercised  their  wits  more  profitably,  and 
have  less  wronged  God,  and  sped  better  themselves.  When 
80  ugly  a  monster  as  sin  is  within  us,  and  so  heavy  a  thing 
as  punishment  is  on  us,  and  so  dreadful  a  thing  as  hell  is 
before  us,  one  would  think  it  should  be  an  easy  question 
who  is  in  the  fault,  and  whether  God  or  man  be  the  princi- 
pal or  culpable  cause?  Some  men  are  such  favourable 
judges  of  themselves,  that  they  are  proner  to  accuse  the  In- 
finite Perfection  and  Goodness  itself,  than  their  own  hearts, 
and  imitate  their  first  parents,  that  said,  "  The  serpent 
tempted  me,  and  the  woman  that  thou  gavest  me,  gave  unto 
me,  and  I  did  eat,"  secretly  implying  that  God  was  the  cause. 
So  say  they,  '  The  understanding  that  thou  gavest  me  was 
unable  to  discern ;  the  will  that  thou  gavest  me,  was  unable 
to  make  a  better  choice ;  the  objects  which  thou  didst  set 
before  me,  did  entice  me  ;  the  temptation  which  thou  didst 
permit  to  assault  me,  prevailed  against  me.'  And  some  ^t^ 
so  loath  to  think,  that  God  can  mdke  a  t^^^-di^\.^x\£^x^vci^ 

VOL.  VI J.  F  F    • 


434  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVEUt^D. 

creature^  that  they  dare  not  deny  him  that  whi^h  they  take 
to  be  his  prerogative,  to  be  the  determiner  of  the  will  in  every 
sin,  as  the  first  efficient,  immediate,  physical  cause.  And 
many  could  be  content  to  acquit  Ood  from  so  much  caud- 
in^  of  evil,  if  they  could  but  t^concile  it  with  his  being  the 
chief  cause  of  good.  As  if  truths  would  be  no  longet  ttnths, 
than  we  are  able  to  see  thetn  in  their  perfect  order  BjHd  co- 
herence, because  our  ravelled  wits  cannot  set  them  right  to«- 
gether,  nor  assign  each  truth  its  proper  place,  we  presume  to 
conclude,  that  some  must  be  cast  away.  This  is  the  fruit 
of  proud  self-conceitedness,  when  men  receite  not  God-s 
truth  as  a  child  his  lesson,  in  a  holy  isubmrssion  tb  the  holy 
omniscience  of  our  teacher,  but  as  ceiisurers  that  are  too  wise 
to  learn. 

Object.  '  But  we  cannot  conviert  ourselves  till  Qod  *o*- 
vert  us ;  we  can  do  nothing  without  his  grace.  It  is  not  in 
him  that  willeth,  nor  in  him  that  runneth,  but  in  Ood  that 
sheweth  mercy/ 

Answ.  1 .  God  hath  two  degrees  of  mercy  to  shew :  the 
mercy  of  cmiversion  first,  and  the  metcy  of  salvation  last. 
The  latter  he  will  give  to  none  but  those  that  will  and  tUfi, 
and  hath  promised  it  to  them  only.  The  former  is  to  make 
them  willing  that  were  unwilling ;  and  though  your  own 
willingness  and  endeavours  deserve  not  his  grace,  yet  your 
wilful  refusal  deserveth  that  it  should  be  denied  unto  you. 
Your  disability  is  your  very  unwillingness  itself,  which  ex- 
cuseth  not  your  sin,  but  maketh  it  the  greater.  You  could 
turn,  if  you  were  but  truly  willing,  and  if  your  wills  them- 
selves are  so  corrupted,  that  nothing  but  effectual  grace  will 
move  them,  you  have  the  more  cause  to  seek  for  that  grace, 
and  yield  to  it,  and  do  what  you  can  in  the  use  of  the  means> 
and  not  neglect  it,  nor  set  against  it.  Do  what  you  are  able 
first,  and  then  complain  of  God  for  denying  you  grace,  if 
you  have  cause. 

Object.  '  But  you  seem  to  intimate,  all  this  while,  that 
man  hath  freewill.^ 

Answ.  The  dispute  about  freewill.ife  beyond  your  capaci- 
ty, I  shall,  therefore,  now  trouble  you  with  no  more  but  this 
about  it.    Your  will  is  naturally  a  free,  that  is,  a  self-deter- 
mining faculty,  but  it  \&  ^cVoxx^l^  mcUued^and  backward  to 
do  good  ;  and,  thetefote,  vi^  ^ee  \i^ ^-^^  ^'SL^^\\fetvcfc.^Scij^^ 


CAhL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED.  436 

hath  not  a  virtuousr  moral  freedom.  But  that  1$-  the  wick- 
edueas  of  it  which  deserveth  the  puni^hmaai.  And  I  pray 
yott  let  UB  not  befool  ourselves  with  opinions.  Let  the  c^e 
he  yoar  own.  If  you  had  an  enemy  so  malicioas,  that  he 
falls  upon  you  and  beats  you  every  time  he  meets  you^  and 
takes  away  the  lives  of  your  children^  wiU  you  eKcuise  him, 
because  he  saith,  *  I  have  not  freewill,  it  is  my  nature,  I 
oaimot  choose,  unless  God  give  me  grace  V  If  you  have  a 
serrant  that  robbeth  you,  will  you  take  such  an  answer  from 
him?  Might  not  ev.ery  thief  and  murderer  that  is  banged 
at  the  assize,  give  auch  an  answer,  M  have  not  free  will,  [ 
caimot  change  my  own  heart.  What  can  I  do  without  God's 
grace  V  And  shall  they,  therefore,  be  acquitted  ?  If  not, 
why  th^n  should  you  think  to  be  acquitted  for  a  course  of 
mn  against  the  Lord  ? 

2.  Firom  hence  also  you  may  observe  these  three  things  to- 
gether •<!•)  What  a  subtle  tempter  satan  18.(2.)  Whata  deceit^ 
fill  thing  sin  is.  <3.)  What  a  foolish  corrupted  creature  man  is* 
A  snbtie  fteanpter,  indeed,  that  can  persuade  the  greatest  part 
of  the  world  to  go  wilfully  into  everlasting  fire,  when  tiiey 
bMe  so  msMay  warnings  and  dissuasives  as  they  haire?  A 
dteoeitful^Bg  is  sin^  indeed,  that  can  bewitch  so  many  thou* 
saods  ito  part  with  •everlasting  lile,  for  a  thing  so  base  and 
nMeilly  umvorthy !  A  fooUsh  creatmre  is  maa^  indeed,  diai 
wiU  be  so  <sbealed  of  his  salvation  for  nothing ;  yea,  for  a 
ksuMvn  n<Mlhiiig !  and  tha4;  by  an  ea^my,  and  a  known  ene- 
my!  You  would  think  it  impossiUe  (that  any  man  in  his 
wits  should  be  persuaded  for  a  trifle,^  csst  himself  into  the 
Are  or  water>  into  a  jcoal'-pit,  to  the  •destructioin  of  his  life ; 
aad  yet  tnen  wiU  be  enticed  to  oast  tbeniselviee  into  helL  If 
yonnaatural  lives  were  in  your  owsi  hands^  thsut  you  should 
ttot  die  tiU  you  would  kill  youiselyies,  how  long  would  mos^ 
of  you  live  ?  J^nd  yet,  when  your  .eyerlasjUng  life  is  so  fy$ 
in  your  oii^n  hapds^  under  God,  that  you  ccannot  be  undo^ 
tiU  you  wido  yourselves^  hpw  lew  of  you  will  forbear  your 
own  undoing?  Ah,  Mirhat  a  ^iUy  tbi»g  is  mai^ !  imd  wh^t 
a  bewitching  and  befbaUng  thing  i&  >sin ! 

3.  From  hence  also  you  may  learn,  that  it  is  no  great 
wondier,  if  wif^f^l  men  b^  l^nder^s  of  others  in  the  way  to 
hea^vjEin,  9j^  yKmlA  IwrP  as  many  u^tieonv^ict^d  ^  ^(ki^^  c^i^cw, 
and  would  dra^  tbem  into  sin,  pxiA  Veep  ^«!cclViv\\..    C«si 


436  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVE«TRD. 

you  expect  that  they  should  have  mercy  on  others,  thathaye 
none  upon  themselves  ?  and  that  they  should  much  stick  at 
the  destruction  of  others,  that  stick  not  to  destroy  them 
selves  ?    They  do  no  worse  by  others,  than  they  do  by  them- 
selves. 

4.  Lastly,  You  may  hence  learn  that  the  greatest  enemy 
to  man  is  himself,  and  the  greatest  judgment  in  this  life, 
that  can  befal  him,  is  to  be  left  to  himself;  and  that  the 
great  work  that  grace  hath  to  do,  is  to  save  us  from  ourselves, 
and  the  greatest  accusations  and  complaints  of  men  should 
be  against  themselves,  and  that  the  greatest  work  we  have  to 
do  ourselves,  is  to  resist  ourselves ;  and  the  greatest  enemy 
we  should  daily  pray,  and  watch,  and  strive  i^ainst,  is  our 
carnal  hearts  and  wills ;  and  the  greatest  part  of  your  work, 
if  you  would  do  good  to  others,  and  help  them  to  heaven,  is 
to  save  them  from  themselves,  even  from  their  own  blind-un- 
derstandings, and  corrupted  wills,  and  perverse  affections, 
and  violent  passions,  and  unruly  senses.  I  only  name  all 
these  for  brevity  sake,  and  leave  them  to  your  farther  consi- 
deration,   

Well,  sirs,  now  we  have  found  out  the  great  delinquent 
und  murderer  of  souls  (even  men's  selves,  their  own  wills) ; 
what  remains,  but  that  you  judge  according  to  the  evidence, 
and  confess  this  great  iniquity  before  the  Lord,  and  be  hum- 
bled for  it,  and  do  so  no  more?  To  these  three  ends  dis- 
tinctly, I  shall  add  a  few  words  more.  1.  Farther  to  con- 
vince you.  2.  To  humble  you.  And  3.  To  reform  you,  if 
there  be  yet  any  hopes. 

L  We  know  so  much  of  the  exceeding  gracious  nature  of 
God,  who  is  willing  to  do  good,  and  delighteth  to  shew  mer- 
cy, that  we  have  no  reason  to  suspect  him  of  being  the  cul- 
jpable  cause  of  our  death,  or  call  him  cruel.  He  made  all 
good,  and  he  preserveth  and  maintaineth  all.  "  The  eyes 
of  all  things  do  wait  upon  him,  and  he  giveth  them  their 
meat  in  due  season ;  he  openeth  his  hand,  and  satisfieth  the 
desires  of  all  the  living  "*."  He  is  not  only  "  righteous  in  all  his 
ways,"  (and,  therefore,  will  deal  justly)  "  and  holy  in  alt  his 
works,  (and,  therefore,  not  the  author  of  sin)  but  "he  is  al- 
so good  to  all,  and  his  tender  mercies  are  over  all  his  works*." 

But  as  for  man,  we  Vnoyr  \v\^  TC![\tA\&  ^%xk^\u«t  will  per- 

«  Psa\.cx\v.  15,16.  ^'SttBLVtA^Al-.^- 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVfiRT£D.  437 

verse,  his  affections  carry  him  so  heiadlong,  that  he  is  fitted 
by  folly  and  corraption,  to  such  a  work  as  the  destroying  of 
himself.  If  you  saw  a  lamb  lie  killed  in  the  way,  would  you 
sooner  suspect  the  sheep,  or  the  dog,  or  wolf  to  be'the  au- 
thor of  it,  if  they  both  stand  by  ;  or  if  you  see  a  house  brp-. 
ken,  and  the  people  murdered,  would  you  sooner  suspect  the 
prince,  or  judge,  that  is  wise  and  just,  and  had  no  need  ;  or 
a  known  thief,  or  murderer?  I  say,  therefore,  as  James,  i. 
13 — 15.  ^' Let  no  man  say  when  he  is  tempted,  that  he  is 
tempted  of  God,  for  God  cannot  be  tempted  with  evil,  nei-, 
ther  tempteth  he  any  man,*'  (to  draw  him  to  sin)  "  but  every 
man  is  tempted,  when  he  is  drawn  away  of  his  own  lust,  and. 
enticed.  Then  when  lust  hath  conceived  it  bringeth  forth 
sin  :  and  sin,  when  it  is  finished,  bringeth  forth  death." 
You  see  here,  that  sin  is  the  brat  of  your  own  concupiscence, 
and  not  to  be  fathered  on  God ;  and  that  death  is  the  off- 
spring of  your  own  sin,  and  the  fruit  which  it  will  yield  you 
as  soon  as  it  is  ripe.  You  have  a  treasure  of  evil  in  your- 
selves, as  a  spider  hath  of  poison,  from  whence  you  are 
bringing  forth  hurt  to  yourselves  ;  and  spinning  such  webs, 
as  entangle  your  own  souls..  Your  nature  shews  it  is  you 
that  are  the  cause. 

2,  It  is  evident,  you  are  your  own  destroyers,  in  that  you 
are  so  ready  to  entertain  any  temptation  almost  that  is  of- 
fered you.  Satan  is  scarce  readier  to  move  you  to  any  evil, 
than  you  are  ready  to  hear,  and  to  do  as  he  would  have  you. 
If  he  would  tempt  your  understanding  to  error,  and  preju- 
dice, you  yield.  If  he  would  hinder  you  from  good  resolu- 
tions, it  is  soon  done.  If  he  would  cool  any  good  desires 
or  affections,  it  is  soon  done.  If  he  would  kindle  any  lust, 
or  vile  affections  and  desires  in  you,  it  is  soon  done.  If  he 
would  put  you  on  to  evil  thoughts,  words,  or  deeds,  you  are 
so  free,  that  he  needs  no  rod  or  spur.  If  he  would  keep  you 
from  holy  thoughts,  and  words,  and  ways,  a  little  doth  it ; 
you  need  no  curb.  You  examine  not  his  suggestions,  nor 
resist  them  with  any  resolution,  nor  cast  them  out  as  he 
casts  them  in,  nor  quench  the  sparks  which  he  endeavoureth 
to  kindle.  But  you  set  in  with  him  and .  meet  him  half- 
way, and  embrace  his  motions,  and  tempt  him  to  tempt  you. 
And  it  is  easy  to  catch  such  greedy  fish  thata^re  v^Ai^w^iQ'SL 
a:  bait,  aiidwill  take  the  bare  hook. 


438  GALL   TO   THK   CKC0NV£RTSI>. 

3.  Your  destruotioti  t8  avidently  long  of  yoimi§lved^  ht 
that  yoii  resist  all  that  would  help  to  &«tve  you>  and  would 
do  you  goody  or  hitider  you  from  undoing  yourselves.  God 
would  help  and  save  you  by  his  word,  and  yon  resist  it>  it  is 
too  strict  for  you.  He  would  sanctify  you  by  his  Spirit^ 
and  you  resist  and  quench  it.  If  any  man  reprove  you  for 
your  sin,  you  fly  in  his  face  with  evil  words ;  and  if  be  would 
draw  you  to  a  holy  life,  and  tell  you  of  your  present  danger, 
you  give  him  little  thanks,  but  either  bid  him  look  to  him-* 
self,  he  shall  not  answer  for  you ;  or  else  at  best,  you  put 
him  off  with  a  heartless  thanks,  and  Will  not  turn  when  you 
are  persuaded.  If  ministers  would  privately  instruct  and 
help  you,  you  will  not  come  at  them,  your  unhumbled  souls 
do  feel  but  little  need  of  their  help.  If  they  Would  cate- 
chise you,  you  are  too  old  to  be  chatechised,  thou^  you 
are  not  too  old  to  be  ignorant  and  unholy.  Whatever  they 
can  say  to  you  for  your  good,  you  are  self-conceited  and 
wise  in  your  own  eyes,  (even  in  the  depth  of  ignorance)  that 
you  will  regard  nothing  that  agreeth  not  with  your  present 
conceits,  but  contradict  your  teachers,  as  if  you  Were  wiser 
than  they  ;  you  resiist  all  that  they  can  say  to  you,  by  your 
ignorance  and  wilfulness,  and  foolish  cavils,  and  shifting 
evasions,  and  unthankful  rejections  ;  so  that  no  good  that  is 
offered,  can  find  any  welcome  acceptance  or  entertainment 
with  you. 

4.  Moreover,  it  is  apparent  that  you  are  self-destroyers, 
in  that  you  draw  the  matter  of  your  sin  and  destruction, 
even  from  the  blessed  God  himself.  You  like  not  the  con- 
trivance of  his  wisdom.  You  like  not  his  justice,  but  take 
it  for  cruelty.  You  like  not  his  holiness,  but  are  ready  to 
think  he  is  such  an  one  as  yourselves.  Psal.  1. 21.  and  makes 
as  light  of  sin  as  you.  You  like  not  his  truth,  but  would 
have  his  threatenings,  even  his  peremptory  threatenings, 
prove  false.  And  his  goodness,  which  you  seem  most 
highly  to  approve,  you  partly  abuse  to  the  strengthening  of 
your  sin,  as  if  you  might  the  freelier  sin,  because  God  is  mer- 
ciful, and  because  his  grace  doth  so  much  abound. 

6.  Yea,  you  fetch  destruction  from  your  blessed  Re- 
deemer, and  death  from  the  Lord  of  life  himself.     And  no- 
ibing  more  emboldenelli  ^^^  m  %\w,  than  that  Christ  hath 
died  for  you ;  as  if  now  O^e  ^tv^^t  xA^^ifleLHi^\^  ^^^^^s^k 


CAIiL  TO   THE   UNCONVBHTED.  439 

you  might  boldly  veature.  Ab  if  Christ  were  beconie  aaer- 
vant  to  satan^  and  your  siu»»  and  must  wait  upon  you  i^hile 
you  are  abusing  him ;  and  because  he  is  become  the  physi- 
cian of  souls,  and  is  able  to  save  to  the  utmost,  $l11  that  come 
to  God  by  him,  you  think  he  must  suffer  you  to  refuse  his 
help,  and  throw  away  his  medicines,  and  must  save  yoi|« 
whether  you  will  come  to  God  by  him  or  no  ;  so  that  a  great 
part  of  your  sins  are  occasioned  by  your  bold  presumptipq 
by  the  death  of  Christ. 

Not  considering  that  he  came  to  redeem  his  p<^ople  fron^ 
their  sip,  and  to  sanctify  them  a  peculi^.r  people  to  himself, 
?jQd  to  qonform  th^m  in  holiness  to  the  i^lag^  of  their  hea- 
venly Father,  and  to  their  head,  p 

6,  You  also  fetch  your  own  destruction  from  all  the  pro- 
vidences, and  works  of  God.  When  you  think  of  his  eter- 
nal foreknowledge  and  decrees,  it  is  to  harden  you  in  yoi^r 
sin,  or  possess  your  minds  with  quarreHiujg  thoughts,  as  if 
l^i^  decrees  might  spare  you  the  labour  of  repentance,  and 
a  holy  life,  or  else  were  the  cause  of  your  sin  and  death.  If 
he  afflict  you,  you  repine ;  if  he  prosper  you,  you  the  more 
forget  him,  and  are  the  more  backward  to  the  thoughts  of 
the  life  to  come.  If  the  wicked  prosper,  you  forget  the  end 
that  will  set  allreckopings  straight ;  and  are  ready  to  think, 
it  i?  as  good  to  be  wicked  as  godly.  And  thus  you  draw 
your  death  from  all. 

7.  Ai^d  the  like  you  do  from  all  the  creatures,  and  mer- 
cien  of  God  to  you,  he  giveth  then^  to  you  as  the  tokens  of 
bis  love,  apd  furniture  for  his  service,  and  you  turn  them 
against  him  to  the  pleasing,  of  your  flesh.  You  eat  and 
drink  to  please  your  appetite,  and  x^qt  for  the  glory  of  God, 
^md  to  enabl?  you  for  his  work*  Your  clothes  you  abuse  to 
pride.  Ypur  riches  draw  your  hearts  from  heaven  ^«  Your 
honours  and  applause  do  puff  you  up ;  if  you  have  health 
wd  strength,  it  makes  ypu  more  secure,  and  forget  your 
^^d^  Yea,  other  men's  merciies  are  abused  by  you  tp  your 
hurt.  If  you  see  their  honours  and  dignity,  you  are  pro- 
voked tQ  envy  them.  If  you  see  their  riches,  you  are  ready 
\Q  ^vet  them.  If  you  look  upon  beauty,  you  are  stirred  i^p 
to  lust.     And  it  is  well  if  godliness  be  not  an  eye-sore  to  you. 

P  Matt.  I.  21.    Tit.  ii.  14.     1  Pet.  i.  15, 16.    Col,  toAO»\V»    VVCA.\\\,  <^A^- 
9  Pldl,  iiu  18, 


440  CALL   TO   THE    UKCONVERTEO. 

8.  The  very  gifts  that  God  bestowetb  on  you,  and  the 
ordinances  of  grace  which  he  hath  instituted  for  his  church 
you  turn  unto  your  sin.  If  you  have  better  parts  than  others, 
you  grow  proud  and  self-conceited.  If  you  have  but  com-> 
mon  gifts  you  take  them  for  special  grace.  Yon  take  the 
bare  hearing  of  your  duty  for  so  good  a  work,  a&  if  it  would 
excuse  you  for  not  obeying  it.  Your  prayers  are  turned 
into  sin,  because  you  "regard  iniquity  in  your  hearts'." 
''  And  depart  not  from  iniquity  when  you  call  on  the  name  of 
the  Lord  *."  "  Your  prayers  are  abominable,  because  you 
turn  away  your  ear  from  hearing  the  law  ^"  And  are  more 
ready  to  "  offer  the  sacrifice  of  fools,"  (thinking  you  do  God 
some  special  service)  "  than  to  hear  his  word,  and  obey  it"" 
You  examine  not  yourselves  before  you  receive  the  supper 
of  the  Lord,  but  not  discerning  the  Lord's  body,  do  eat  and 
drink  judgment  Jo  yourselves  \ 

9.  Yea,  the  persons  you  converse  with,  and  all  their  ac- 
tions, you  make  the  occasions  of  your  sin  and  destruction. 
If  they  live  in  the  fear  of  God,  you  hate  them.  If  they  live 
ungodly  you  imitate  them.  If  the  wicked  are  many,  you 
think  you  may  the  more  boldly  follow  them.  If  the  godly 
be  few,  you  are  the  more  emboldened  to  despise  them :  if 
they  walk  exactly,  you  think  they  are  too  precise :  if  one  of 
them  fall  into  a  particular  temptation,  you  stumble  upon 
them,  and  turn  away  from  holiness,  because  others  are  im- 
perfectly holy :  as  if  you  were  waiTanted  to  break  your 
necks  because  some  others  have,  by  their  heedlessness, 
sprained  a  sinew  or  put  out  a  bone.  If  a  hypocrite  disco* 
ver  himself,  you  say,  '  They  are  all  alike,'  and  think  your- 
selves as  honest  as  the  best.  A  professor  can  scarce  slip 
into  any  miscarriage,  but  because  he  cuts  his  finger,  you 
think  you  may  boldly  cut  your  throats.  If  ministers  deal 
plainly  with  you,  you  say  they  rail :  if  they  speak  gently  or 
coldly,  you  either  sleep  under  them,  or  are  little  more  af- 
fected than  the  seats  you  sit  upon.  If  any  errors  creep  into 
the  church,  some  greedily  entertain  them,  and  others  re- 
proach the  Christian  doctrine  for  them,  which  is  most  against 
them*     And  if  we  would  draw  you  from  any  ancient,  rooted 

'  Psal.  ixvi.  18.  »  ft  Tim.  v\.  19.  »  Prov,  xxvUi.  9. 

°  Eccl.  ?.  1.        »  ^\  Cot.  xi.  «l%,  «l^. 


CALL  TO  TH12  UNCONVERTED.  441 

m^T,  which  can  but  plead  two,  or  three,  or  six,  or  seven 
hundred  years  custom,  you  are  as  much  offended  with  a  mo- 
tioii  for  reformation,  as  if  you  were  to  lose  your  life  by  it, 
and  hold  fast  old  errors  while  you  cry  out  against  new  ones. 
Scarce  a  difference  can  arise  among  the  ministers  of  the  Gos- 
pel, hut  you  will  fetch  your  own  death  from  it.  .  And  you 
will  not  h^r,  or  at  least,  not  obey  the  unquestionable  doc- 
trine of  any  of  those  that  jump  not  with  your  conceits :  one 
will  not  hear  a  minister,  because  he  readeth  his  sermons, 
and  another  will  not  bear  him,  because  he  doth  not  read  them. 
One  will  not  hear  him  because  he  saith  the  Lord's  prayer ; 
and  another  will  not  hear  him,  because  he  doth  not  use  it 
One  will  not  hear  them  that  are  for  episcopacy,  and  another 
will  not  hear  them  that  are  against  it.  And  thus  I  might 
shew  you  in  many  other  cases,  how  you  turn  all  that  comes 
near  you  to  your  own  destruction  ;  so  clear  is  it,  that  the 
ungodly  are  self-destroyers,  and  that  their  perdition  is  of 
themselves. 

.  Methinks,  now,  upon  the  consideration  of  what  is  said, 
and  the  review  of  your  own  ways,  you  should  bethink  you 
wliAt  you  have  done,  and  be  ashained,  and  deeply  humbled 
to  remember  it.  If  you  be  not,  I  pray  you  consider  these 
following  truths. 

1.  To  be  your  own  desti^oyers,  is  to  sin  against  the  deep- 
est principle  in  your  natures,  even  the  principle  of  self-pre- 
servation. Every  thing  naturally  desireth  or  inclineth  to  its 
own  felicity,  welfare,  or  perfection.  And  will  you  set  your- 
selves to  your  own  destruction  ?  When  you  are  commanded 
to  love  your  neighbours  as  yourselves,  it  is  supposed  that 
you  naturally  love  yourselves :  but  if  you  love  your  neigh- 
bours no  better  than  yourselves,  it  seems  you  would  have  all 
the  world  be  damned. 

2.  How  extremely  do  you  cross  your  own  intentions  !  I 
know  you  intend  not  your  own  damnation,  even  when  you 
are  procuring  it ;  you  think  you  are  but  doing  good  to  your- 
Belves,  by  gratifying  the  desires  of  your  flesh.  But  alas !  it 
is  but  as  a  draught  of  cold  water  in  a  burning  fever,  or  as 
the  scratching  of  an  itching  wildfire,  which  increaseth  the 
disease  and  ))ain.  If  indeed  you  would  have  pleasure,  profit, 
or  honour,  seek  them  where  they  are  to  be{o\XTv^»^xvdcdiO\N!c>\. 
huDt  after  them  in  the  way  to  hell.  ^ 


442  CALi«  TO  THK    UNCONVERTED. 

3.  What  pity  is  it,  that  you  should  do  that  against  your- 
selves which  none  else  in  earth  oi*  hell  can  do !  If  all  tlm 
world  were  combined  against  you,  or  all  the  devils  in  bftU 
were  combined  against  you,  they  could  not  destroy  y<w  with- 
out yourselves,  nor  make  you  sin,  but  by  your  qwu  consent. 
And  will  you  do  that  against  yourselves  which  none  else  can 
do*  You  have  hateful  thoughts  of  the  devil,  beaause  be  is 
your  enemy,  and  endeavoureth  your  destructicoii.  And  will 
you  be  worse  than  devils  to  yourselves  ?  Why  thus  it  is  with 
you,  if  you  had  hearts  to  understand  it ;  whe^  ypu  run  into 
sin,  and  run  from  godliness,  and  refuse  to  turn  at  the  caUof 
Qod,  you  do  more  against  your  own  souls  than  men  or  devila 
could  do  besides.  And  if  you  should  set  yourselves*  and 
bend  your  wits  to  do  yourselves  the  greatest  mischief,  you 
could  not  devise  to  do  a  greater* 

4.  You  are  false  to  the  trust  that  Qod  hath  reposed  m 
you.  He  hath  much  intrusted  you  with  your  own  salva* 
tion ;  and  will  you  betray  your  trust  ?  He  hath  set  you  with 
all  diligence  to  keep  your  hearts ;  and  is  thistbe^keepingof 
them  *. 

5.  You  do  even  forbid  all  others  to  pity  you,  wben'ypa 
will  have  no  pity  on  yourselves.  If  you  cry  to  (Jod  in  thft  day 
of  your  calamity,  for  mercy,  mercy  ;  what  can  you  e^cpect, 
but  that  he  should  thrust  you  away,  and  say,  '  Nay,  thou 
wouldst  not  have  mercy  on  thyself;  who  brought  this  upon 
thee  but  thine  own  wilfulness  V  And  if  your  brethren  see  yoa 
everlastingly  in  misery,  how  should  they  pity  you,  tl^  ww 
your  own  destroyers,  and  would  not  be  dissuaded* 

6.  It  will  everlastingly  make  you  your  own  tormentors 
in  hell,  to  think  on  it,  that  you  brought  yourselves  wilfully 
to  that  misery.  O,  what  a  griping  thought  it  will  be  for 
ever,  to  think  with  yourselves,  that  this  was  your  owft  doing. 
That  you  were  warned  of  this  day,  and  warned  again,  but  it 
would  not  do ;  that  you  wilfully  sinned,  and  turned  9.way  frpm 
God ;  that  you  bad  time  as  well  as  others,  but  you  abused 
it ;  you  had  teachers  as  well  a^  others,  but  you  refused  their 
instructions  :  you  had  holy  examples,  but  you  did  not  imitat? 
them :  you  were  offered  Christ,  grace,  and  glory  as  well  si 
others,  but  you  had  more  mind  to  fleshly  pleasure  ;  you 
bad  a  prize  in  your  bandit  ^^^t  Uad  not  a  heart  to  lay  it  out  ^ 

"  Prov.  iv.  ^23.  ^  ^ftt«i^,wV\^ 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVFRTED.  443 

Cttn  it  choose  but  torment  you,  to  think  of  this  your  present 
folly  ?  O  that  your  eyes  were  opened  to  see  what  you  have 
done  in  the  wilful  wronging  of  your  own  souls  !  And  that 
you  better  understood  those  words  of  God,  Prov.  viii.33 — 3&. 
**  Hear  instruction,  and  be  wise,  and  refuse  it  not.  Blessed 
is  the  man  that  heareth  me,  watching  daily  at  my  gatas^ 
waiting  at  the  posts  of  my  doors.  For  whoso  findeth  me, 
findeth  life,  and  shall  obtain  favour  of  the  Lord :  but  he  that 
sinneth  against  me,  wrongeth  his  own  soul ;  all  they  that 
hate  me,  love  death.'' 

And  now  I  am  come  to  the  conclusion  of  this  work,  my 
heart  is  troubled  to  think  how  I  shall  leave  you,  lest  after 
this  the  flesh  should  deceive  you,  and  the  world  and  the  de* 
vil  should  keep  you  asleep,  and  I  should  leave  you  as  I  found 
you,  till  you  awake  in  helL    Though,  in  care  of  your  poor 
souls,  I  am  afraid  of  this,  as  knowing  the  obstinacy  of  a 
carnal  heart,  yet  I  can  say  with  the  prophet  Jeremiah,  ''  I 
have  not  desired  the  woeful  day,  the  Lord  knoweth  y."    I 
have  not  with  James  and  John,  desired  that  fire  might  come 
down  from  heaven,  to  consimie  them  that  refused  Jesus 
Christ.    But  it  is  the  preventing  of  the  eternal  fire  that  I 
have  been  all  this  while  endeavouring :  and  O  that  it  had 
been  a  needless  work!    That  God  and  conscience  might 
have  been  as  willing  to  spare  me  this  labour,  as  some  of  you 
could  have  been.    But  dear  friends,  I  am  so  loath  you  should 
lie  in  everlasting  fire,  and  be  shut  out  of  heaven,  if  it  be  pos- 
sible to  prevent  it,  that  I  shall  once  more  ask  you.    What 
do  you  now  resolve  ?    Will  you  Turn  or  Die  ?    I  look  upon 
you  as  a  physician  on  his  patient,  in  a  dangerous  disease^ 
that  saith  unto  him,  '  Though  you  are  so  far  gone,  take  but 
Ais  medicine,  and  forbear  but  these  few  things  that  are  so 
hurtful  to  you,  and  I  dare  warrant  your  life ;  but  if  you  will 
not  do  this,  you  are  a  dead  man.'    What  would  you  think  of 
such  a  man,  if  the  physician  and  all  the  friends  he  hath,  can- 
not persuade  him  to  take  one  medicine  to  save  his  life,  or 
to  forbear  one  or  two  poisonous  things  that  would  kill  him? 
This  i«  your  case.    As  far  as  you  are  gone  in  sin,  do  bat  now 
Turn  and  come  to  Christ,  and  take  his  remedies,  and  your 
soul«  shall  live.     Cast  up  your  deadly  sins  by  repentance, 
and  return  not  to  your  poisonous  v.omit  ^ti^  tsi<:>'^^«  ^w^  >^o^\ 

y  Jer.  xrii.  16^ 


444  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVBRTED. 

• 

shall  do  welL    But  yet  if  it  were  yoar  bodies^  that  we  had 
to  deal  with,  we  might  partly  know  what  to  do  with  you. 
Though  you  would  not  consent,  you  might  be  held  or  bound, 
while  the  medicine  was  poured  down  your  throats,  and 
hurtful  things  might  be  kept  from  you.      But  about  your 
souls  it  cannot  be  so ;  we  cannot  convert  you  against  your 
wills.     Thiere  is  no  carrying  madmen  to  heaven  in  fetters. 
Yon  may  be  condemned  against  your  wills,  because  you  sin* 
ned  with  your  wills;  but  you  cannot  be  saved  against  your 
wills.    The  wisdom  of  God  hath  thought  meet  to  lay  men^s 
salvation  or  destruction  exceeding  much  upon  the  choice  of 
their  own  wills :  that  no  man  shall  come  to  heaven  that 
choose  not  the  way  to  heaven ;  and  no  man  shall  come  to 
hell,  but  shall  be  forced  to  say,  '  I  have  the  thing  I  chosei 
my  own  will  did  bring  me  hither.'    Now  if  I  could  but  get 
you  to  be  willing,  to  be  thoroughly,  and  resolvedly,  and  har 
bitually  willing,  the  work  were  more  than  half  done.     And 
alas !  must  we  lose  our  friends,  and  must  they  lose  their  God, 
their  happiness,  their  souls,  for  want  of  this  ?     O  God  for- 
bid !     It  is  a  strange  thing  to  me,  that  men  are  so  inhuman 
and  stupid  in  the  greatest  matters,  that  in  lesser  things  are 
very  civil  and  courteous,  and  good  neighbours.     For  aught 
I  know,  I  have  the  love  of  all>  or  almost  all  my  neighbours, 
so  far,  that  if  I  should  send  to  every  man  in  the  town,  or  pa- 
rish, or  country,  and  request  a  reasonable  courtesy  of  them, 
they  will  grant  it  me  ;  and  yet  when  I  come  to  request  of 
them  the  greatest  matter  in  the  world,  for  themselves,  and 
not  for  me,  I  can  have  nothing  of  many  of  them,  but  a  pa- 
tient hearing.     I  know  not  whether  people  think  a  man  in 
the  pulpit  is  in  good  sadness  or  not,  and  means  as  he  speaks : 
for  I  think  I  have  few  neighbours,  but  if  I  were  sitting  fa- 
miliarly with  them,  and  telling  them  of  what  I  have  seen  or 
done,  or  known  in  the- world,  they  would  believe  me,  and  re- 
gard what  I  say;  but  when  I  tell  them  from  the  infallible 
word  of  God,  what  they  themselves  shall  see  and  know  in 
the  world  to  come,  they  shew  by  their  lives  that  they  do 
either  not  believe  it,  or  not  much  regard  it.     If  I  met  ever 
an  one  of  them  on  the  way,  and  told  them,  yonder  is  a 
coal-pit,  or  there  is  a  quicksand,  or  there  are  thieves  lay  in 
wait  for  you,  I  could  peT&vx^di^  xii^mV^  tssxTLby,    But  when  I 
teJ]  them  that  satan  \\et\i  mYi^V.io\>i!tvCTi,  ^zcsA^^viWx^ 


CALL   TO   THE    UXCONVERT£D.  445 

poison  to  them,  and  that  hell  is  not  a  matter  to  be  jested 
with,  they  go  on  as  if  they  did  not  hear  me.  Truly,  neigh- 
bours, I  am  in  as  good  earnest  with  you  in  the  pulpit,  as  I 
am-  in  any  familiar  discourse,  and  if  ever  you  will  regard  me, 
I  beseech  you  let  it  be  here.  I  think  there  is  never  a 
man  of  you  all,  but  if  my  own  soul  lay  at  your  wills,  you 
would  be  willing  to  save  it  (though  I  cannot  promise  Uiat 
you  would  leave  your  sins  for  it).  Tell  me  thou  drunkard, 
art  thou  so  cruel  to  me  that  speaks  to  thee,  that  thou  wouldst 
not  forbear  a  few  cups  of  drink,  if  thou  knewest  it  would 
save  my  soul  from  hell  ?  Hadst  thou  rather  I  did  bum  there 
for  ever,  than  thou  shouldst  live  soberly  as  other  men  do? 
If  so,  may  I  not  say,  thou  art  an  unmerciful  monster,  and  not 
a  man  ?  If  I  came  hungry  or  naked  to  one  of  your  doors, 
would  you  not  part  with  more  than  a  cup  of  drink  to  relieve 
me?  I  ^m  confident  you  would ;  if  it  were  to  save  my  life, 
I  know  you  would  (some  of  you)  hazard  your  own.  And 
yet  will  not  be  entreated  to  part  with  your  sensual  pleasures 
for  your  own  salvation?  Wouldst  thou  forbear  a  hundred 
cups  of  drink,  man,  to  save  my  life,  if  it  were  in  thy  power^ 
and  wilt  thou  not  do  it  to  save  thy  own  soul  ?  I  profess  to 
you,  sirs,  I  am  as  hearty  a  beggar  with  you  this  day,  for  the 
saving  of  your  souls,  as  I  would  be  for  my  own  supply,  if  I 
•were  forced  to  come  a  begging  to  your  doors.  And,  there- 
fore, if  you  would  hear  me  then,  hear  me  now.  If  you  would 
pity  me  then,  be  entreated  now  to  pity  yourselves.  I  do 
again  beseech  you,  as  if  it  were  on  my  bended  knees,  that 
you  would  hearken  to  your  Redeemer,  and  Turn,  that  you 
may  Live.  All  you  that  have  lived  in  ignorance,  and  care- 
lessness, and  presumption,  to  this  day ;  and  all  you  that 
have  been  drowned  in  the  cares  of  the  world,  and  have  no 
mind  of  God  and  eternal  glory;  all  you  that  are  enslaved  to 
your  fleshly  desires  of  meats  and  drinks,  sports  and  lusts ;  and 
aH  you  that  know  not  the  necessity  of  holiness,  and  never 
w€re  acquainted  with  the  sanctifying  work  of  the  Holy  Ghost 
upon  your  souls  ;  that  never  embraced  your  iDlessed  Re- 
deemer by  a  lively  faith,  and  with  admiring  and  thankful  ap- 
prehensions of  his  love,  and  that  never  felt  a  higher  estima- 
tion of  God  and  heaven,  and  a  heartier  love  to  them^  than  to 
your  fleshly  prosperity,  and  the  things  \>e\oN?  ••  \  e^rft»s?&^ 
beseech  you,  not  only  for  my  sake,  but  fotiVift  Y^oxd? ^  «?i>i^^. 


446  CALL   TO    TH£   UNCONVBRTBD. 

and  for  your  souVs  sake»  that  you  go  not  on  one  day  lo&ger 
in  your  former  condition,  but  look  about  you  and  cry  toCk>d 
for  converting  grace,  that  you  may  be  made  new  creatures, 
and  may  escape  the  plagues  that  are  a  little  before  you.  And 
if  ever  you  will  do  any  thing  for  me,  grant  me  this  request 
to  Turn  from  your  evil  ways  and  live :  deny  me  any  thing 
that  ever  I  shall  ask  yoa  for  myself,  if  you  will  but  grant  me 
this.  And  if  you  deny  me  this,  I  care  not  for  any  thing  eke 
that  you  would  grant  me.  Nay,  as  ever  you  will  do  any  thing 
at  the  request  of  the  Lord  that  made  you,  and  redeemed  you, 
deny  him  not  this ;  for  if  you  deny  him  this,  he  cares  for  no- 
thing Uiat  you  shall  grant  him.  As  «ver  you  would  have 
him  hear  your  prayers,  and  grant  your  requests,  aad  do  for 
you  at  <^e  hour  of  death  and  day  of  judgment^  or  in  any  of 
your  extremities,  deny  not  his  request  now  in  tbe  day  of 
your  prosperity.  O  sirs,  believe  it,  death  cmd  judgment, 
and  heaven  and  hell,  are  other  matters  when  you  comei^ear 
them,  than  they  seem  to  carnal  eyes  afiur  off.  Them  you  will 
hear  Hoch  a  .message  as  I  bring  you,  with  mose  awajkened* 
regardful  hearts. 

Well,  though  I  cannot  hope  so  well  of  all,  I  wiU  hope 
that  some  of  you  are  by  this  time  pui^osing  to  Turn  and 
Live ;  and  that  you  are  ready  to  ask  me,  as  the  Jews  did 
Peter,  when  they  were  pricked  to  their  hearts,  aad  said, 
'  *'  Men  and  brethren,  what  shall  we  do '?''  How  might  we 
come  to  be  truly  converted  ?  We  are  willing,  if  we  did  but 
know  our  duty.  God  forbid  that  we  should  choose  destruc- 
tion, by  refusing  conversion,  as  hither;to  we  have  doae.' 

if  these  be  the  thon^ts  and  purposes  of  your  hearts,  I 
fiay  of  you>  as  God  did  of  a  promising  people,  ''  They  have 
well  said,  all  that  they  have  spoken :  O  that  there  was  suidi 
a  heart  in  them,  that  they  would  fear  me,  and  keep  all  my 
oommamlnients  always  ^^  Your  purposes  are  good  z  O  that 
there  were  but  a  heart  in  you  to  perform  these  purposes! 
And  in  hope  thereof,  I  shall  gladly  give  you  direction  what 
to  do,  and  that  but  briefly,  that  .you  may  the  more  -easily  re- 
member it  for  your  practice. 

Direct.  1.  If  you  would  be  converted  and  saved,  labour 
to  Understand  the  necessity  and  true  iUatiure  of  )Qonversion; 

*  Acts  m  ST.  '^  Xte,^.^.'«i,^a. 


"4 


CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED.  447 

for  what^  and  from  wh^t^  and  to  what>  and  by  what,  it  is  that 
you  muist  Turn. 

Consider  what  a  lamentable  condition  f&tx  are  in  till  the 
h(mr  of  your  conversion,  that  you  may  see  it  is  not  a  state  to 
be  rested  in.  You  are  under  the  gnilt  of  all  the  sins  that 
ever  you  committed,  and  uti^er  the  wrath  of  God,  and  the 
tntnt  of  his  law ;  you  are  bond-slaves  to  Uie  devil,  and  daily 
employed  in  his  work  against  the  Lord,  yourselves,  and 
others.  You  are  spiritually  dead  and  deformed,  as  being 
void  of  the  holy  life,  and  nature,  and  image  of  the  Lord. 
You  are  unfit  for  any  holy  wo  A,  and  do  nothing  that  is  truly 
j>Ieasitig  uuto  Qod.  You  are  without  any  promise  or  assu- 
rance of  his  projection  ;  and  hve  in  continual  danger  of  his 
justice,  not  knowing  what  hour  you  may  be  snatched  away 
to  Ittell,  and  most  certain  to  be  damned  in  that  condition. 
Alid  nothing  i^horl  of  conversion  can  prevent  it.  Whatever 
dvflities,  or  amendments,  or  virtues,  ate  short  of  true  con- 
vfersion,  will  never  procure  the  saving  of  your  souls.  Keep 
ihe  true  sense  of  thiis  natural  misery,  and  so  of  the  necessity 
of  conversion,  on  your  hearts. 

And  then  you  must  understand  what  it  is  to  be  converted ; 
it  lis  to  have  a  new  heart  or  disposition,  and  a  new  conver- 
sation* 

QuM.  1.  '  For  what  mti»t  we  Turn  V 
Answ.  For  these  ends  following,  which  you  may  attain. 
1.  You  shall  immediately  be  made  living  members  of  Christ, 
and  have  interest  in  him,  and  be  renewed  after  the  image  of 
^oA,  and  be  adorned  with  all  his  graces,  and  quickened  wkh 
a  new  and  heavenly  life,  uwd  iiaved  from  the  tyranny  of  saton 
and  i!he  dominion  of  sin,  and  be  justified  from  the  curse  of 
thie  law,  and  have  the  pardon  of  all  the  sins  of  your  whole 
liViefs,  und  be  accepted  of  God,  and  made  his  sons,  and  have 
liberty  with  boldness  to  call  him  Father,  and  go  to  him  by 
prayer  in  all  your  needs,  with  a  promise  of  acceptance ;  you 
shfi^l  l)^ve  the  Holy  Ghost  to  dwell  in  you,  to  sanct?ify^and 
guide  you.    You  shall  have  part  in  the  brotherhood^-commu- 
mon>  and  prayers  of  the  saints.    You  shall  be  fitted  for 
God*s  service,  and  be  freed  from  the  dominion  of  sin,  and 
be  useful  and  a  blessing  to  the  place  where  you  live,  and 
shaHhav^  the  promise  of  this  life  and  thafcw\ivc\v\^  V^  c>cyc£L^. 
Yoa  shall  want  nothing  that  is  truly  good  for  ^o^»  «ftdL"^Qf^^ 


448  CALL   TO   THE    UNCONVBRTBDI 

necessary  afflictions  you  will  be  enabled  to  beat.  You  may 
have  some  taste  of  the  communion  of  Qod  in  the  Spirit;  eti- 
pecially  in  all  holy  ordinances^  where  God  prepareth  a  feast 
for  your  souls.  Yon  shall  be  heirs  of  heaven  while  you  live 
on  earthy  and  may  foresee^  by  faith,  the  everlasting  glory, 
and  30  may  live  and  die  in  peace ;  and  you  shall  never  be  so 
low,  but  your  peace  and  happiness  will  be  incomparably 
greater  than  your  misery. 

How  precious  is  every  one  of  these  blessings,  which  I  do 
but  briefly  name,  and  which  in  this  life  you  may  receive ! 

And  then,  2.  At  death  your  souls  shall  go  to  Christ,  and 
at  the  day  of  judgment  both  soul  and  body  shall  be  justified 
and  glorified,  and  enter  into  your  Master's  joy ;  where  your 
happiness  will  consist  in  these  particulars. 

(1.)  You  shall  be  perfected  yourselves  i  your  mortal  bo- 
dies shall  be  made  immortal,  and  the  corruptible  shall  put 
on  incorruption ;  you  shall  no  more  be  hungry,  thirsty,  wea- 
ry, or  sick ;  nor  shall  you  need  to  fear  either  shame,  sorrow^ 
death,  or  hell.  Your  souls  shall  be  perfectly  freed  from  sin, 
and  perfectly  fitted  for  the  knowledge,  love,  and  praises  of 
the  Lord. 

(2.)  Your  employment  shall  be  to  behold  your  glorified 
Redeemer^  with  all  your  holy  fellow-citizens  of  heaven ;  and 
to  see  the  glory  of  the  most  blessed  God,  and  to  love  him 
perfectly,  and  be  loved  by  him,  and  to  praise  him  everlast- 
ingly. 

(3.)  Your  glory  will  contribute  to  the  glory  of  the  New 
Jerusalem,  the  city  of  the  living  God,  which  is  more  than  to 
have  a  private  felicity  to  yourselves. 

(4.)  Your  glory  will  contribute  to  the  glorifying  of  your 
Redeemer,  who  will  everlastingly  be  magnified  and  pleased 
in  you,  that  are  the  travail  of  his  soul.  And  this  is  more  than 
the  glorifying  of  yourselves. 

(5.)  And  the  Eternal  Majesty,  the  living  God,  will  be 
glorified  in  your  glory,  both  as  he  is  magnified  by  your  prai- 
ses, and  as  he  communicateth  of  his  glory  and  goodness  to 
you,  and  as  he  is  pleased  in  you ;  and  in  the  accomplish- 
ment of  his  glorious  works,  in  the  glory  of  the  New  Jerusa- 
lem, and  of  his  Son. 

All  this  the  poorest  beggar  of  you  that  is  converted, 
shall  certainly  and  eud\e%«V^  eiv^o^ . 


GALL   TO   THE    UNCONVERTED  449 

2.  You  see  for  what  you  must  turn ;  next  you  must  un- 
derstand from  what  you  must  turn.  And  that  is,  in  a  word, 
from  your  carnal  self,  which  is  the  end  of  all  the  unco^veFted• 
From  the  flesh,  that  would  be  pleased  before  God,  and  would 
still  be  enticing  you  thereto.  From  the  world,  that  is  the 
bait ;  and  from  the  devil,  that  is  the  angler  for  souls,  and  the 
deceiver.     And  so  from  all  known  and  wilfuj  sins. 

3.  Next  you  must  know  to  what  you  must  turn.  And 
that  is,  to  God,  as  your  end;  to  Christ,  as  the  way  to  the 
Father ;  to  holiness,  as  the  way  appointed  you  by  Christ ; 
and  so,  to  the  use  of  all  the  helps  and  means  of  grace  offered 
you  by  the  Lord. 

4.  Lastly,  You  must  know  by  what  you  must  turn.  And 
that  is,  by  Christ,  as  the  only  Redeemer  and  Intercessor ; 
and  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  as  the  Sanctifier ;  and  by  the  word, 
as  his  instrument  or  means  ;  and  by  faith  and  repentance, 
as  the  means  and  duties  on  your  part  to  be  performed.  All 
this  is  of  necessity. 

Direct.  2.  *  If  you  would  be  converted  and  saved,  be 
much  in  secret,  serious  consideration.'  Inconsiderateness 
undoes  the  world.  Withdraw  yourselves  off  into  retired  se- 
cresy,  and  there  bethink  you  of  the  end  why  you  were  made, 
of  the  life  you  have  lived,  the  time  you  have  lost,  the  sins 
you  have  committed ;  of  the  love,  and  sufferings,  and  ful- 
ness of  Christ ;  of  the  danger  you  are  in ;  of  the  nearness  of 
death  and  judgment;  and  of  the  certainty  and  excellency  of 
the  joys  of  heaven;  and  of  the  certainty  and  terror  of  the 
torments  of  hell,  and  the  eternity  of  both;  and  of  the  neces- 
sity of  conversion  and  a  holy  life  :  steep  your  hearts  in  such 
consideration3  as  these. 

Direct.  3.  *  If  you  will  be  converted  and  saved,  attend 
upon  the  word  of  God,  which  is  the  ordinary  means.'  Read 
the  Scripture,  or  hear  it  read,  and  other  holy  writings  that 
do  apply  it ;  constantly  attend  upon  the  preaching  of  the 
word.  As  God  will  lighten  the  world  by  the  sun,  and  not 
by  himself  alone,  without  it ;  so  will  he  convert  and  save 
men  by  his  ministers,  who  are  the  lights  of  the  world  ^  When 
he  hath  miraculously  humbled  Paul,  he  sendethhim  to  Ana- 
nias ^.     And  when  he  hath  sent  an  angel  to  Cornelius,  it  is 

^  Ads  xxrliT,  18.     Matt.  .y.  U.  '^  ^tl%U,  VQ. 

VOL.    VJI.  G  G 


450  CALL  TO   THE  UNCONVERTED* 

but  to  bid  him  send  for  Peter,  who  must  tell  him  what  he  is 
to  believe  and  do. 

Direct.  4.  '  Betake  yourselves  to  God,  in  a  course  of 
earnest,  constant  prayer/  Confess  and  lament  your  former 
lives,  and  beg  his  grace  to  illuminate  and  convert  you.  Be- 
seech him  to  pardon  what  is  past,  and  give  you  his  Spirit, 
and  change  your  hearts  and  lives,  and  lead  you  in  his  ways, 
and  save  you  from  temptation.  And  ply  this  work  daily, 
and  be  not  weary  of  it. 

Direct.  6.  *  Presently  give  over  your  known  and  wilfid 
sins,  make  a  stand,  and  go  that  way  no  further.'  Be  drunk 
no  more,  but  avoid  the  places  and  occasion  of  it.  Cast  away 
your  lusts  and  sinful  pleasures  with  detestation.  Curse  and 
swear,  and  r^il  no  more ;  and  if  you  have  wronged  any,  res- 
tore as  Zaccheus  did.  If  you  will  commit  again  your  old 
sins,  what  blessing  can  you  expect  on  the  metos  of  conver*' 
sion  ? 

Direct,  6.  /  Presently,  if  possible,  change  your  company, 
if  it  hath  hitherto  been  bad.*  Not  by  forsaking  your  neces- 
sary relations,  but  your  unnecessary>  sinful  companions, 
and  join  yourselves  with  those  that  fear  the  Lord,  and  in- 
quire of  them  the  way  to  heaven  ^. 

Direct,  7.  *  Deliver  up  yourselves  to  the  Lord  Jesus,  as 
the  physician  of  your  souls,  that  he  may  pardon  you  by  his 
blood,  and  sanctify  you  by  his  Spirit,  by 'his  word  and  mi- 
nisters, the  instruments  of  his  Spirit.  *'He  is  the  way,  ^ 
truth,  and  the  life :  there  is  no  coming  io^  the  Father  but  by 
him* ;"  "  nor  is  there  any  other  name  under  heaven  by  which 
you  can  be  saved  V^  Study  therefore  his  person,  and  na^ 
tare,  and  what  he  hath  done  and  suffered  for  you,  and  what 
he  is  to  you,  and  what  he  will  be,  and  how  he  is  fitted  to  the 
full  supply  of  all  your  necessities. 

Dirett.  8.  If  you  mean  indeed  to  Turn  and  Live,  *  Do  it 
spee<lily  without  delay.'  If  you  be  not  willing  to  Turn  to- 
day, you  will  not  be  willing  to  do  it  at  all*  Remember  yon 
are  all  this  while  in  your  blood ;  tinder  the  guilt  of  many 
thousand  sins,  and  under  Qod's  wrath,  and  you  stand  at  the 
very  brink  of  hell ;  there  is  but  a  step  between  you  and 
death.  And  this  is  not  a  case  for  a  man  that  is  well  in  his 
wits  to  be  quiet  in.    Up  therefore  presently,  and  fly  as  for 

<i  Acts  ix.  19. 5K6.    Psa\.xN.^.  *  36V\iAv.^.  V  k.^Vv«,Vi, 


CAUL   TO   TUE    UNCONVEETEI^.  451 

your  lives ;  as  you  would  be  gone  out  of  you  bouse  if  it  were 
all  on  fire  over  your  heads.  O  If  you  did  but  know  wbs^ 
continual  danger  you  live  in^  and  what  daUy  unspeakable 
losd  you  sustain^  and  what  a  safer  and  sweeter  life  you 
mfght  live,  you  would  not  stand  trifling,  bat  presently  Tum« 
Multitudes  miscarry  that  wilfully  delay  when  th^y  are  con- 
vinced that  it  must  be  done.  Your  lives  are  short  and  un- 
certain ;  and  what  a  case  are  you  in,  if  you  die  before  you 
thoroughly  Turn!  You  have  staid  too  late  already;  and 
wronged  Qod  too  long ;  sin  getteth  strength  and  rooting ; 
while  you  delay,  your  conversion  will  grow  more  hard  and 
d0iibtfttl.  You  have  much  to  do,  and  therefore  put  not  all 
oiff  to  the  lafi^t,  lest  God  forsake  you,  and  give  you  up  to 
yourselves,  and  then  you  are  undone  for  ever. 

Sired.  9.  If  you  will  Turn  and  Live,  do  it  unreservedly, 
absolutely  and  universally.  Think  not  to  capitulate  with 
Christ,  and  divide  your  heart  between  him  and  the  world, 
and  to  part  with  some  sins  and  keep  the  rest:  and  to  let  go 
that  which  your  flesh  can  spare.  This  i^  but  self-deluding j 
yoik  must  in  heart  and  resolution  forsake  all  that  you  have, 
<Nr  else  you  cannot  be  his  disciples  K  If  you  will  not  take 
Ood  and  healpen  for  your  portion,  and  lay  all  below  at  the 
feet  of  Christ,  but  you  must  needs  also  have  your  good 
thingft  here,  and  have  an  earthly  portion^  and  God  and  glory 
ill  notvenougfa  &a  you ;  it  is  in  vain  to  dream  of  salvation  on 
theae  terms ;  for  it  will  not  be.  If  you  seem  never  so  reli^ 
g^nsi^  if  yet  it  be  bui^a  carnal  righteousness,  and  the  flesh's 
(HTOsperity,  or  pleasure,  or  safety,  be  ;still.es:cepted  in  your 
devx>tedness  to  God;  this  is  as  certain  away  to  death,  as 
openiprofaneAess,  though  it  be  more  plausible* 

JHnci^  10.  If  you  will  Turuidnd  Live,  do  it  resolvedly, 
and  AOtatand; still  deliberating,  ;as  if  it  were  adoubtful  case. 
Stand  not  wavering,  as  if  you  were  yet  uncertain,  whether 
God  or  the  flesh  be  the  better  master :  whether  heaven  or 
faeilkbe  die  Jaetter  end;  or  whether  sin  ^or  holiness  be  the 
better  .way :  but  away  with  your  former  lusts,  and  presently, 
faalMtually^vand  vfixeiyify  resolve :  be  not  one  day  of  ^ne  mind, 
and  the  next^of  anotfasr.^  but  be  at  a  point  with  all  the 
world,  and  resolvedly  give  up  yourselves,  and  all  you  have, 
t&God*  ,  Now,  while  yo«  are  reading  or  hean«i^  ib\%>\^- 


452  ^€ALL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED. 

solve.  Before  you  sleep  another  night,  resolve.  Before 
you  stir  from  the  place,  resolve.  Before  satan  hath  time  to 
take  you  off,  resolve.  You  will  never  turn  indeed  till  you 
do  resolve;  and  that  with  a  firm,  unchangeable  resolution. 
So  much  for  the  Directions. 

And  now  I  have  done  my  part  in  this  work,  that  you 
may  Turn  at  the  call  of  Qod  and  Live.  What  will  become 
of  it,  I  cannot  tell.  I  have  cast  the  seed  at  Qod's  command ; 
but  it  is  not  in  my  power  to  give  the  increase.  I  can  go  no 
farther  with  my  message,  I  cannot  bring  it  to  your  hearts, 
nor  make  it  work  :  I  cannot  do  your  parts  for  you  to  enter- 
tain it,  and  consider  of  it ;  nor  can  I  do  God's  part,  by  open- 
ing your  heart,  to  cause  you  to  entertain  it ;  nor  can  I  shew 
you  heaven  or  hell  to  your  eyesight,  nor  give  you  new  and 
tender  hearts.  If  I.  knew  what  more  to  do  for  your  conver- 
sion, I  hope  I  should  do  it. 

But  O  thou  that  art  the  gracious  Father  of  Spirits,  thou 
hast  sworn  thou  delightest  not  in  the  death  of  the  wicked, 
but  rather  that  they  turn  and  live,  deny  not  thy  blessing  to 
these  persuasions  and  directions,  and  suffer  not  thine  ene- 
mies to  triumph  in  thy  sight;  and  the  gre'at  deceiver  of 
souls  to  prevail  over  thy  Son,  thy  Spirit,  and  thy  Word.  0 
pity  poor  unconverted  sinners,  that  have  no  hearts  to  pity  or 
help  themselves :  command  the  blind  to  see,  and  the  deaf  to 
hear,  and  the  dead  to  live,  and  let  not  sin  and  death  be  able 
to  resist  thee.  Awaken  the  secure :  resolve  the  unresolved : 
confirm  the  wavering  :  and  let  the  eyes  of  sinners,  that  read 
these  lines,  be  next  employed  in  weeping  over  their  sins; 
and  bring  them  to  themselves,  and  to  thy  Son,  before  their 
sins  have  brought  them  to  perdition.  If  thou  say  but  the 
word,  these  poor  endeavours  shall  prosper,  to  the  winning 
many  a  soul  to  their  everlasting  joy,  and  thine  everlasting 
glory.     Amen. 

Five  Prayers:  one  for  Families:  one  for  a  Penitent  Sinner: 
one  for  the  Lord^s  day :  one  for  Children  and  Servants :  one 
in  the  method  of  the  Lord's  Prayer,  being  an  Exposition  of 
it:  for  the  use  of  those  only  who  need  such  helps. 

Two  reasons  moved  me  to  annex  these  prayens ;  1.  lob- 
serve  that  abundance  o?^wv^«>>^^^^^'^^^^'oi<fe%^^^^^«ie8. 


CALL   TO  THE    UNCONVERTEP..  453 

do  forbear,  through  disability,  to  worship  Qod  ia  their  &in-« 
ilies,  who  I  hope  would  do  it,  if  they  had  some  helps.  And 
though  there  be  many  such  extaut,  yet  few*  of  these  poor 
families  have  the  books,  and  I  can  give  them  my  own  at  cL 
little  cheaper  rate,  than  I  can  buy  others  to  give  them. 

"2.  Some  that  seem  to  have  been  brought  to  true  repen- 
tance imd  newness  of  life,  by  God's  blessing,  on  the  reading* 
of  my  books,  have  earnestly  entreated  me  to  write  them  a 
form  of  prayer  for  their  families,  because  long  disuse  hath 
left  them  unable  to  pray  before  others. 

For  the  service  of  God,  and  the  good  of  men,  I  am  con- 
tented to  bear  the  censures  of  those  who  account  all  forma 
of  book-prayers  to  be  sin  ;  for  in  an  age  when  pride  (the  fa- 
ther), and  ignorance  (the  mother),  hath  bred  superstition  (the 
daughter),  and  taught  men  to  think  that  Qod  as  fondly  valu-* 
eth  their  several  modes  of  speaking  to  him^  as  they  do  them"* 
selves,  and  thinketh  as  contemptuously  of  the  contrary  as . 
they,  the  question  whether  form  or  no  form,  book  or  no 
book,  hath  been  resolved  unto  such  tragical  and  direful  ef- 
fects, that  I  were  too  tender,  if  a  censure  should  discourage 
Ine. 

A  Prayer  for  Families,  Morning  and  Evening, 

Almighty,  all-seeing,  and  most  gracious  God,  the  world 
and  all  therein,  is  made,  maintained  and  ordered  by  thee : 
thou  art  everywhere  present,  being  more  than  the  soul  of  all 
the  world.  Though  thou  art  revealed  in  thy  glory  to  those 
only  that  are  in  heaven,  thy  grace  is  still  at  work  on  earth  . 
to  prepare  men  for  that  glory :  thou  madest  us  not  as  the 
beasts  that  perish,  but  with  reasonable,  immortal  souls,  to 
know,  and  seek,  and  serve  thee  here,  and  then  to  live  with 
all  the  blessed  in  the  everlasting  sight  of  thy  heavenly  glory, 
and  the  pleasures  of  thy  perfect  love,  and  praise.  But  we 
are  ashamed  to  think  how  foolishly  and  sinfully  we  have  for- 
gotten and  neglected  our  God  and  our  souls,  and  our  hopes 
of  a  blessed  immortality,  and  have  overmuch  minded  the 
things  of  this  visible,  transitory  world,  and  the  prosperity 
and  pleasure  of  this  corruptible  flesh,  which  we  know  muat 
turn  to  rottenness  and  dust.  Thou  gavest  us  a.  l^w  ^VivrSi 
wasjast  and  good,  to  guide  us  in  the  onV^  yj^^  \.<^>\^fei  ^sxA^ 


454  CALL   TO    THE   UNCONVERTJUy. 

wheli  by  sii^if  e  had  undone  ourselves,  thou  gayest  ns  a  8a^ 
li'ionr,  even  thy  Eternal  Word  made  man,  who  by  his  holy  hfe 
and  bitter  sufferings  reconciled  us  to  thee,  and  both  pu^^ 
chased  salvation  for  us«  and  revealed  it  to  us,  better  thta  an 
angel  from  heaven  could  have  done,  if  thou  hadst  sent  him 
to  us  sinners  on  such  a  message :  but  alas,  how  light  bftve 
we  set  by  our  Redeemer !  and  by  all  that  love  which  tfaoa 
hast  manifested  by  him,  and  how  little  have  we  studied  and 
understood,  and  less  obeyed  that  covenaiit  of  grace  which 
thou  hast  made  by  him  to  lost  mankind!' 

But  O  God,  be  merciful  to  us  vile  and  miserable  sinners ; 
forgive  the  sins  of  our  natural  depravity  and  the  follies  of 
our  youth,  and  all  the  ignorance,  negligence,  omissions  and 
commissions  of  our  lives  :  and  give  us  true  repentance  for 
them,  or  else  we  know  that  thou  wilt  not  forgive  them.  Our 
life  is  but  as  a  shadow  that  passeth  away,  and  it  is  but  as  a 
moment  till  we  leave  this  world,  and  appear  before  thee  to 
give  up  our  account,  and  to  speed  for  ever  as  here  we  have 
prepared.  Should  we  die  before  thou  hast  turned  our  hearts 
from  this  sinful  flesh  and  world  to  thee  by  true  faith  and  re- 
pentance, we  shall  be  lost  for  evermore.  O  woe  to  us  that 
ever  we  were  born,  if  thou  forgive  not  our  sins,  and  make  us 
not  holy  before  this  short,  uncertain  life  be  at  an  end :  had 
we  all  the  riches  and  pleasures  of  this  world,  they  would 
shortly  leave  us  in  the  greater  sorrows.  We  know  that  all 
our  life  is  but  the  time  which  thy  mercy  allotteth  us  to  pre- 
pare for  death ;  theirefore  we  should  not  put  off  our  repen- 
tance and  preparation  to  a  sick  bed :  but  now  Lord,  as  if  it 
were  our  last  and  dying  words,  we  earnestly  beg  thy  pardon- 
ing and  sanctifying  grace,  through  the  merits  and  interces* 
sion  of  our  Redeemer :  O  thou  that  hast  pitied  and  saved  so 
many  millions  of  miserable  sinners,  pity  and  save  us  also, 
that  we  may  glorify  thy  grace  for  ever  ;  surely  thou  delight- 
est  not  in  the  death  of  sinners,  but  rather  that  they  return 
and  live  :  hadst  thou  been  unwilling*  to  shew  mercy,  thou 
wouldst  not  have  ransomed  us  at  so  precious  a  price,  and 
still  entreat  us  to  be  reconciled  utito  thee ,  we  have  no  cause 
to  distrust  thy  truth  or  goodness,  but  we  are  afraid  lest  un- 
belief, and  pride,  and  hypocrisy,  and  a  worldly,  fleshly 
mind,  should  be  out  rum.  O  save  us  from  satan,  and  this 
tempting  world,  but  especivaW^  itom  o\)x^n^!:^\  Xa^^Obl  >iak\ft 


,e»y 


CALL    TO   THE   UNCOl^VERTED.        "         455 

deny  all  ungodliness  and  fleshly  lusts,  and  to  live  soberly, 
righteously,  and  godly  in  this  world.    Let  it  be  our  chiefest 
daily  work  to  please  thee,  and  to  lay  up  a  treasure  in  hea-^ 
yen,  and  to  make  sure  of  a  blessed  life  with  Christ,  and  qui- 
etly to  trust  thee  with  soul  and  body.    Make  us  faithful  in 
our  callings,  and  our  duties  to  one  another,  and  to  all  men, 
to  our  superiors,  equals  and  inferiors  :  bless  the  king,  and 
all  in  authority,  that  we  may  live  a  quiet  and  peaceable  life 
in  all  godliness  and  honesty :  give  wise,  holy,  and  peaceable 
^,  pastors  to  all  the  churches  of  Christ,  and  holy  and  peaceable 
>^  minds  to  the  people  :  convert  the  heathen  and  infidel  nations 
of  the  world  \  and  cause  us,  and  all  thy  people  to  seek  first 
the  hallowing  of  thy  name,  the  coming  of  thy  kingdom,  the 
doing  of  thy  will  6n  earth  as.  it  is  dane  in  heaven :  give  us 
our  daily  bread,  even  all  things  necessary  to  life  and  godli- 
ness, and  let  us  be  therewith  content.     Forgive^us  our  daily 
sins,  and  let  thy  love  and  mercy  constrain  us  to  love  thee 
above  all ;  and  for  thy  sake  to  love  our  neighbours  as  our- 
.  selves,  and  in  all  our  dealings,  to  do  justly  and  mercifully, 
as  we  would  have  others  do  by  us.     Keep  us  from  hurtful 
temptations,  from  sin,  and  from  thy  judgments,  and  from  the 
malice  of  our  spiritual  and  corporal  (enemies  ;  and  let  our 
thoughts,  affections,  passions,  words,  and  actions,  be  eo* 
vemed  l)y  thy  word  aa4  Spirit  to  thy  glory :  make  all  our 
flsligion  and  obedience  pleasant  to  us ;  and  let  our  souls  be 
so  delighted  in  the  praises  of  thy  kingdom,  thy  power,  and 
thy  glory,  that  it  may  secure  and  sweeten  our  labour  by 
day,  and  our  rest  by  night,  and  keep  us  in  a  longing  and 
joyful  hope  of  the  heavenly  glory  :  and  let  the  grace  of  our  , 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  the  love  of  God  our  Father,  and  the 
communion  of  the  Holy  Spirit  be  with  us  now  and  for  ever. 
Amen. 

A  Confession  and  Prayer  for  a  Penitent  Sinner, 

O  most  great,  most  wise  and  gracious  God,  though  thou 
hatest  all  the  workers  of  iniquity,  and  canist  not  be  recon- 
ciled unto  sin ;  yet  through  the  mediation  of  thy  blessed 
Son,  with  pity  behold  this  miserable  sinner  who  casteth  him- 
self down  at  the  footstool  of  thy  grace  :  had  I  lived  to  those 
high  and  holy  ends,  for  which  1  ^aa  cteaJLeA.  ^xA  \^dL^^\£ksA, 


456  CALL   TO  THK   UNCONVERTED. 

I  might  now  have  come  to  thee  in  the  boldness  and  confi* 
dence  of  a  child,  in  assurance  of  thy  love  and  favour;  but  I 
have  played  the  fool  and  the  rebel  against  thee !  I  have 
wilfully  forgotten  tlje  God  that  miade  me,  and  the  Sariour 
that  redeemed  me,  and  the  endless  glory  which  thou  didst 
set  before  me :  I  forgot  the  business  which  I  was  sent  for 
into  the  world  ;  and  have  lived  as  if  I  had  been  made  for 
nothing,  but  to  pass  a  few  days  in  fleshly  pleasure,  and  pam-» 
per  a  carcase  for  the  worms :  I  wilfully  forgot  what  it  is  to 
be  a  man,  who  had  reason  given  him  to  rule  his  flesh,  and  to  , 
know  his  Qod,  and  to  foresee  his  death,  and  the  state  of  im- 
mortality : '  and  I  made  my  reason  a  servant  to  my  senses^ 
and  lived  too  like  the  beasts  that  perish.  O  the  precious 
time  which  I  have  lost,  which  all  the  world  cannot  call 
back!  O  the  calls  of  grace,  which  I  have  neglected! 
O  the  calling  of  God,  which  I  have  resisted  !  The  wonder- 
ful love  which  I  unthankfuUy  rejected  !  And  the  manifold 
mercies  which  I  have  abused,  and  turned  into  wantonness 
and  sin !  How  deep  is  the  guilt  which  I  have  contracted ! 
And  how  great  are  the  comforts  which  I  have  lost !  I  might 
have  lived  all  this  while  in  the  love  of  thee  my  gracious  God; 
and  in  the  delight  of  thyholy  word  and  ways !  In  the  daily 
sweet  foresight  of  heaven,  and  in  the  joy  of  the  Holy  Ghost, 
if  I  would  have  been  ruled  by  thy  righteous  laws:  but  I 
have  hearkened  to  the  flesh,  and  to  this  wicked  and  deceit 
ful  world,  and  have  preferred  a  short  and  sinful  life  before 
thy  love  and  endless  glory. 

Alas,  what  have  I  been  doing  since  I  came  into  the 
world !  Folly  and  sin  have  taken  up  my  time.  I  am  asha- 
med to  look  back  upon  the  years  that  I  have  spent ;  and  to 
think  of  the  temptations  that  I  have  yielded  to.  Alas,  what 
trifles  have  enticed  me  from  my  God !  How  little  have  I  had 
for  the  holy  pleasures  which  I  have  lost !  Like  Esau,  I  have 
profanely  sold  my  birthright  for  one  morsel,  to  please  my 
fancy,  my  appetite,  and  my  lust;  I  have  set  light  by  all  the 
joys  of  heaven;  I  have  unkindly  despised  the  goodness  of 
my  Maker ;  I  have  slighted  the  love  and  grace  of  my  Re- 
deemer; I  have  resisted  thy  Holy  Spirit,  silenced  my  own 
conscience,  and  grieved  thy  ministers,  and  my  own  faithful 
friends,  and    have    brought  myself  into  this  woeful  case. 


CALL  TO  THE   UNCONVERTED.  457 

wlierein  I  am  a  shame  and  burden  to  myself,  and  Ood  is  my 
terror,  who  should  be  only  my  hope  and  joy. 

*  Thou  knowest  my  secret  sins,  which  are  unknown  to 
men ;  thou  knowest  all  their  aggravations.  My  sins  O  Lord, 
have  found  me  out.  Fears  and  sorrows  overwhelm  me !  If 
I  look  behind  me,  I  see  my  wickedness  pursue  my  soul,  and 
as  an  army,  ready  to  overtake  me,  and  devour  me.  If  I 
look  before  me  I  see  the  just  and  dreadful  judgment,  and  I 
know  that  thou  wilt  not  acquit  the  guilty.  If  I  look  within 
me,  I  see  a  dark,  defiled  heart.  If  I  look  without  me,  I  see 
a  world  still  offering  fresh  temptations  to  deceive  me.  If  I 
look  above  me,  I  see  thine  offended  dreadful  Majesty ;  and 
if  I  look  beneath  me,  I  see  the  place  of  endless  torment,  and 
the  company  which  I  deserve  to  suffer  with.  I  am  afraid  to 
live,  and  more  afraid  to  die. 

But  yet  when  I  look  to  thy  abundant  mercy,  and  to  thy 
Son,  and  to  thy  covenant,  I  have  hope.     Thy  goodness  is 
equal  to  thy  greatness;  thou  art  love  itself,  and  thy  mercy 
is  over  all  thy  works.     So  wonderfully  hath  thy  Son  condes- 
cended unto  sinners,  and  done  and  suffered  so  much  for 
th^r  salvation,  that  if  yet  I  should  question  thy  willingness 
to  forgive,  I  should  but  add  to  all  my  sins,  by  dishonouring 
that  matchless  mercy  which  thou  dost  design  to  glorify. 
Yea  more,  I  find  upon  record  in  thy  word,  that  through 
Christ  thou  hast  made  a  covenant  of  grace,  and  act  of  obli- 
vion, in  which  thou  hast  already  conditionally,  but  freely 
pardoned  all ;  granting  them  forgiveness  of  all  their  sins, 
without  any  exception,  whenever  by  unfeigned  faith  and  re- 
pentance, they  turn  to  thee  by  Jesus  Christ.     And  thy  pre- 
sent mercy  doth  increase  my  hope,  in  that  thou  hast  not  cut    : 
jne  off,  nor  utterly  left  me  to  the  hardness  of  my  heart,  but 
shewest  me  my  sin  and  danger,  before  I  am  past  remedy. 

O,  therefore,  behold  this  prostrate  sinner,  which  with  the 
publican  suiteth  on  his  breast,  and  is  ashamed  to  look  up 
towards  heaven  :  "  O  God,  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner.**  I 
confess  not  only  my  original  sin,  but  the  follies,  and  furies 
of  my  youth,  my  manifold  sins  of  ignorance  and  knowledge, 
of  negligence  and  wilfulness,  of  omission  and  commission ; 
against  the  law  of  nature,  and  against  the  grace  and  Gospel 
of  thy  Son ;  forgive  and  save  me,  O  my  God,  for  th^  «Ai\wi- 
dant  mercy,  and  for  the  sacrifice  and  menl  ot  \Xv^  ^ot\.,  ^xA 


458  CAi:<it  TO   THE  UNCONVBRTBD.. 

for  the  promise  of  forgiveness  which  thou  hast  made  thiough 
him^  for  in  these  alone  is  all  oiy  trust.  Condemn  me  w»t 
who  condemn  myself.  O  thoa  that  hast  opened  so  praokM 
a  fountain  for  sin^  and  for  uncleanness^  wash  me  thorough 
from  my  wickedness^  and  cleanse  me  from  my  sin;  Though 
thy  justice  might  send  me  presently  to  hell,  let  mercy 
triumph  in  my  salvation.  Thou  hast  no  pleasure  in  the 
death  of  sinners,  but  rather  that  thev  repent  and  live:  if  my 
repentance  be  not  such  as  thou  requirest,  O  soften  this  har- 
dened, flinty  heart,  and  give  me  repentance  unto  life.  Turn 
me  to  thyself,  O  Qod  of  my  salvation,  and  cause  thy  feiceto 
shine  upon  me,  *'  Create  in  me  a  clean  heart,  and  renew  a 
right  Spirit  within  me."  Meet  not  this  poor,  returning  pro^ 
digal  in  thy  wrath,  but  with  the  embracement  of  thy  tender 
mercies.  Cast  me  not  from  thy  presence,  and  sentence  me 
not  to  depart  from  thee  with  the  workers  of  iniquity.  Thou 
Who  didst  patiently  endure  me  when  I  despised  thee,  refuse 
file  not  now  I  seek  unto  thee,  and  here  in  the  dust  implore 
^thy  mercy.  Thou  didst  convert  and  pardon  a  wicked  Mt* 
nasseh,  and  a  persecuting  $aiil.  And  there  are  multijji^i 
in  heaven,  who  were  once  thine  enemies.  Qlorify  also  thy 
superabounding  grace,  in  the  forgiveness  of  my  abouaiiiiig 
sins. 

I  ask  not  for  liberty  to  sin  again,  but  for  deliverance 
from  the  sinning  nature.  O  give  me  the  renewing  Spirit  of 
thy  Son,  which  may  sanctify  all  the  powers  of  my  soul.  Let 
me  have  the  new  and  heavenly  birth,  and  nature,  and  the 
spirit  of  adoption  to  reform  me  to  thine  image,  that  I  may 
be  holy  as  thou  art  holy.  Illuminate  me  with  the  saving 
knowledge  of  thyself,  and  thy  Son  Jesus  Christ.  O  fill  me 
with  thy  love,  that  my  heart  may  be  wholly  settipon  thee; 
and  the  remembrance  of  thee  be  my  chief  delight :  let  the 
freest  and  sweetest  of  my  thoughts  run  after  thee :  and  the 
freest  and  sweetest  of  my  discourse  be  of  thee,  and  of  thy 
glory,  and  of  thy  kingdom,  and  of  thy  word  and  ways !  0 
let  my  treasure  be  laid  up  in  heaven,  and  there  let  me  daily 
and  delightfully  converse.  Make  it  the  great  and  daily  bu- 
siness of  my  devoted  soul,  to  please  thee,  and  to  honour 
thee,  to  promoie  thy  kingdom,  and  to  do  thy  will !  Put  thy 
fear  into  my  heart,  that  I  may  never  depart  from  thee.  This 
ivorJd  hath  had  too  muc\i  otm^j  ^ve^xV.^!^*^^  \\sX'\\.\!L<iwh€ 


CA,LL   TO   THE   UNCONVERIBD.  459         ^ 

•nictfled  to  ma,  and  I  to  it,  by  the  cross  of  Christ :  let  me 
Mi  love  it,  nor  the  things  which  are  therein ;  but  having 
food  and  raimait,  cause  me  therewith  to  be  content.  Des- 
troy in  me  all  fleshly  lusts,  that  I  may  not  live  after  the 
flesh,  but  the  Spirit.  Keep  me  from  the  snares  of  wicked 
company,  and  from  the  counsel  and  ways  of  the  ungodly* 
Bless  me  with  the  hopeful  communion  of  the  saints,  and 
with  all  the  means  that  thou  hast  appointed  to  further  our 
sanctification  and  salvation.  'O  that  my  ways  were  so  di«  > 
rected,  that  I  might  keep  thy  statutes  !  Let  me  never  re- 
turn again  to  folly,  nor  forget  the  covenant  of  my  God :  help 
me  to  quench  the  first  motion  of  sin,  and  to  abhor  all  sinfiil 
desires  and  thoughts;  and  let  thy  Spirit  strengthen  me 
against  all  temptations  ;  that  I  may  conquer  and  endure  to 
the  end.  Prepare  me  for  sufferings,  and  for  death,  and 
judgment,  that  when  I  must  leave  this  sinful  world,  I  mly 
yield  up  my  departing  soul  with  joy  into  the  faithful  hands 
of  my  dear  Redeemer,  that  I  be  not  numbered  with  the  un- 
godly, which  die  in  their  unpardoned  sin,  and  pass  into 
everlasting  misery ;  but  may  be  found  in  Christ,  having  the 
righteousness  which  is  of  God  by  faith  :  and  may  attain  to 
the  resurrectioa  of  the  just :  that  so  the  remembrance  of  the 
sin  and  miseries  from  which  thou  hast  delivered  me,  may 
£etrther  my  perpetual  thanks  and  praise  to  thee  my  Creator, 
my  Redeemer,  and  my  Sanctifier. 

And  O  that  thou  wouldst  call  and  convert  the  miserable 
nations  of  idolaters  and  infidels,  and  the  multitudes  of  un- 
godly hypocrites,  who  have  the  name  of  Christians,  and  not 
£be  trutli,  and  power,  and  life.  O  send  forth  labourers  into 
thy  harvest  and  let  not  satan  hinder  them.  Prosper  thy  /■  . 
Gospel,  and  the  kingdom  of  thy  Son,  that  sinners  may  more 
abundantly  be  converted  to  thee,  and  this  earth  may  be 
made  like  unto  heaven  ;  that  when  thonJiast  gathered  us  all 
into  unity  with  Christ,  we  may  all,  with  perfect  love  and 
joy,  ascribe  to  thee  the  Kingdom,  the  Power,  and  the  Glory, 
for  ever  and  ever.    Amen. 

-  A  Form  of  Praise  and  Prayer  for  the  Lord^s-day. 

Glorious  Jehovah,  while  angels  and  perfected  &^\t\V:&  ^x^ 
pr^iaUkg  tbee  in  the  presence  of  thy  glory ,  t]iiou\i'aL^\.  ^o^^^ 


460  CALL   TO   TUB    UNCONVERTE0/ 

and  commanded  us  to  take  our  part  in  the  presence  of  thy 
grace  :  we  have  the  same  most  holy  God  to  praise ;  and 
though  we  see  thee  not,  our  Head  and  Saviour  seeth  thee, 
and  our  faith  discemeth  thee  in  the  glass  of  thy  holy  works 
and  word.  Though  we  are  sinners,  and  unworthy,  and  can- 
not touch  those  holy  things,  without  the  marks  of  our  pol- 
lution ;  yet  have  we  a  great  High  Priest  with  thee,  who  w^s 
separated  from  sinners,  holy,  haimless,  and  undefiled,  who 
appeareth  for  us,  in  the  merits  of  his  spotless  life  and  sacri- 
fice, and  by  whose  hands  only  we  dare  presume  to  present  a 
sacrifice  to  the  most  holy  God.  And  thou  hast  ordained  this 
day  of  holy  rest,  as  a  type  and  means  of  that  heavenly  rest 
with  the  triumphant  church  to  which  we  aspire,  and  for 
which  we  hope.  Thou  didst  accept  their  lower  praise  on 
earth,  before  they  celebrated  thy  praise  in  glory :  accept  ours 
also  by  the  same  Mediator. 

Glory  be  to  thee,  O  God  in  the  highest :  on  earth  peace, 
goodwill  towards  men.  Holy,  Holy,  Holy,  Lord  God  Al- 
mighty, who  wast,  and  art,  and  art  to  come  ;  Eternal,  with- 
out beginning  or  end  ;  Immense,  without  all  bounds  or  mea- 
sure ;  the  Infinite  Spirit,  Father,  Word,  and  Holy  Ghost. 
The  infinite  Life,  Understanding,  and  Will,  infinitely  power- 
ful, wise,  and  good ;  of  thee,  and  through  thee,  and  to  thee 
are  all  things :  to  thee  be  glory  for  evermore.  All  thy  works 
declare  thy  glory ;  for  thy  glorious  perfections  appear  on 
all,  and  for  thy  glory,  and  the  pleasure  of  thy  holy  will, 
didst  thou  create  them.  The  heavens,  and  all  the  hosts 
thereof;  the  sun  and  all  the  glorious  stars;  the  fire  with 
its  motion,  light  and  heat ;  the  earth  and  all  that  dwell 
thereon,  with  all  its  sweet  and  glorious  ornaments ;  the  air 
and  all  the  meteors  ;  the  great  deeps  and  all  that  swim  there- 
in ;  all  are  the  preachers  of  thy  praise,  and  shew  forth  the 
-f«    great  Creator's  glory.     How  great  is  that  power  which  made 

so  great  a  world  of  nothing ;  which  with  wonderful  swift- 
ness moved  those  great  and  glorious  luminaries,  which  in  a 
moment  send  forth  the  influences  of  their  motion,  light  and 
heat  through  all  the  air,  to  sea  and  earth  ;  thy  powerful  life 
giveth  life  to  all ;  and  preserveth  this  frame  of  nature  which 
thou  hast  made.  How  glorious  is  that  wisdom  which  or- 
dereth  all  things,  and  a&^\^elVv  to  all  their  place  and  office, 
and  by  its  perfect  law  mavtil'^AXi^Xk  \Xv^\i^'^MV|  ^bXk\\A3ra!i5^'^ 


,     .CALL   TO. THE    UNCONVERTED.  461 

.of. all ;  how  glorious  is  that  Goodness  and  Love^  which  made 
idl  good  and  very  good ! 
X       We  praise  and  glorify  thee  our  Lord  and  Owner ;  for  we 

.and  all  things  are  thine  own.  We  praise  and  glorify  thee 
our  King  and  Ruler ;  for  we  are  thy  subjects^  and  our  per- 

.fect  obedience  is  thy  due ;  just  are  all  thy  laws  and  judg- 

.  ments ;  true  and  sure  is  all  thy  word.  We  praise  and  glo- 
rify thee,  our  great  Benefactor ;  in  thee  we  live,  and  move, 
and  are  ;  all  that  we  are,  or  have,  or  can  do,  is  wholly  from 
thee,  the  Cause  of  all ;  and  all  is  for  thcfe,  for  thou  art  our 
End.  Delightfully  to  love  thee,  is  our  greatest  duty,  and 
our  only  felicity ;  for  thou  art  love  itself,  and  infinitely 
amiable.  ^ 

When  man  by  sin  did  turn  away  his  heart  from  thee, 

,  believed  the  tempter  against  thy  truth,  obeyed  his  senses 
against  thy  authority  and  wisdom,  and  forsaking  thy  Fa- 
therly love  and  goodness,  became  an  idol  to  himself,  thou 
didst  not  use  him  according  to  his  desert ;  when  we  forsook 
thee,  thou  didst  not  utterly  forsake  us ;  when  we  had  lost 
ourselves,  and  by  sin  became  thine  enemies,  condemned  by 
thy  law ;  thy  mercy  pitied  us,  and  gave  us  the  promise  of  a 
Redeemer,  who  in  the  fulness  of  time  did  assume  our  nature, 
fulfilled  thy  law,  and  suffered  for  our  sins,  and  conquering 
death,  did  rise  again,  ascended  to  heaven,  and  is  our  glori- 
fied Head  and  Intercessor.  Him  hast  thou  exalted  to  be  a 
Prince  and  Saviour  to  give'  us  repentance  and  remission  of 
sins.  In  him  thou  hast  given  pardon  and  justification,  re- 
conciliation and  adoption,  by  a  covenant  of  grace,  to  every 
penitent  believer.  Of  enemies,  and  the  heirs  of  death,  thou 
ha&it  made  us  sons  an<Hieirs  of  life. 

We  are  the  brands  whom  thou  hast  plucked  out  of  the 
.fire ;  we  are  the  captives  of  satan  whom  thou  hast  redeemed ; 
we  are  the  condemned  sinners,  whom  thou  hast  pardoned ; 
we  praise  thee,  we  glorify  thee  our  merciful  God,  and  gra- 
cious Redeemer.  Our  souls  have  now  refuge  from  thy  re- 
venging wrath.  Thy  promise  is  sure  :  satan,  and  the  world, 
and  death  are  overcome :  our  Lord  is  risen ;  he  is  risen,  and 
we  shall  rise  through  him.  O  death,  where  is  thy  sting !  O 
grave,  where  is  thy  victory  !  Our  Saviour  is  ascended  to  his  ' 
Father  and  our  Father,  to  his  God  and  our  God\  axud^^ 
shall  ascend ;  to  his  hands  we  may  cotatait  o\it  di^^^x^Aiv^ 


462  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTRD. 

Bouls ;  our  Head  is  glorified^  and  it  is  his  will  aad  promise 
that  we^hall  be  with  him  where  he  is  to  see  his  glory ^  he 
hath  sealed  us  thereunto  by  his  Holy  Spirit;  w«  were  dead 
in  sins^  and  he  hath  quickened  us ;  we  were  dark  in  ignoraoce, 
and  unbelief,  and  he  hath  enlightened  us ;  we  were  unholy 
and  carnal,  sold  under  sin,  and  he  hath  sanctified  our  wilk, 
and  killed  our  concupiscence.  We  praise  and  glorify  tius 
Spirit  of  life,  with  the  Father  and  the  Son  from  whom  he  is 
sent  to  be  life,  and  light,  and  love  to  our  dead,  and  daric, 
and  disafiected  s6uls.  We  are  created,  and  redeemed,  and 
sanctified  for  thy  holy  love,  and  praise,  and  service  :  O  ht 
these  be  the  very  nature  of  our  souls,  and  ihe  empkiymeDt 
and  pleasure  of  all  our  lives  !  O,  perfect  thy  weak  aad  lan- 
guid graces  in  us,  that  our  love  and  praise  may  be  men  per- 
fect !  We  tiiank  thee  for  diy  word,  and  sacred  or<Mnfflicei, 
for  the  comfort  of  the  holy  assemblies  and  oommtmion  4yf  t]ie 
saints,  and  for  the  mercy  orthese  thy  holy  da^s«  Bat  let 
not  thy  praise  foe  here  confined;  but  be  our  daily  life  and 
bread,  and  work. 

Fain  we  would  praise  ^ee  with  more  holy  and  more  joy^ 
ful  souls;  but  how  caa.we^o  it  with  so  weak  a  faith  and  so 
great  darkness  and  strangeness  to  thee  ?    With  so  little  as- 
surance of  thy  favour  and  our  salvation?    Can  we  ri^tly 
thank  thee  for  the  grace  which  we  are  still  in  doubt  of? 
Fain  we  would  be  more  like  to  those  blessed  souls  whd 
praise  diee  without  our  fears  and  dnlness  :  but  how  can  it 
be,  while  we  love  thee  so  little,  and  have  «o  Kttie  taste  and 
feeling  of  thy  love  ?     And  while  this  load  oimn  doth  pfen 
us  down,  and  we  are  imprisonedin  theiemnanttof  onrisareal 
affections?      O  kill  this  poride  and^iielfishness^  these  kists 
and  paiwionai    Destroy  this  unbelief  and  (darkness*  and  all 
our  sins,  whidi  are  the  enemies  ^f  us,*  and  of  thy  :pEa]se. 
Make  us  more  holy  and  heavenly;  and  O  bring  us  ne»er 
thee  in  faith  knd  love,  that  we  may  be  more  suitable  to  tbe 
heavenly  employment  of  thy  praise. 

Vouchsafe  more  of  thy  Spirit  to  all  thy  chmrches  aad 
servants  in  the  world ;  that  as  their  darkness,  and  selfishp 
ness,  and  imperfections,  have  defiled,  anddivided,  and  ikFedt- 
ened  them,  and  made  them  a  scandal  and  hardening  to  infi- 
dela ;  so  their  knovAedge,  ^\^-d«uial  and  impartial  lowrin^ 
truly  reform,  untie  atvA  «toeTk^\5c«a  <^«is:\  ^^^^i^gs«^<tf 


-J  '/* 
'-  "r 


GALl^   TO   THfi   UNCONVERTBD.  46S 

their  holiness  may  win  the  unbelieving  world  to  Christ.    O 
let  not  satan  keep  up  still  so  large  a  kingdom  of  tyranny, 
ignorance  and  wickedness  in  the  earth,  and  make  this  world 
as  the  suburbs  of  hell :  but  let  the  earth  be  more  conforma- 
ble to  heaven,  in  the  glorifying  of  thy  holy  name,  the  ad- 
vancing of  thy  kingdom,  and  the  doing  of  thy  just  and  holy 
will.     Let  thy  way  be  known  upon  earth,  and  thy  saving 
health  among  all  nations.     Let  the  people  praise  thee,  O 
Ood,  let  all  the  people  praise  thee !     Yea,  give  thy  Son  th* 
heathen  for  his  inheritance,  and  let  his  Gospel  enlighten  the 
dark,  forsaken  nations  of  the  earth.     Let  every  knee  bow  to 
him»  and  every  tongue  confess  that  he  is  Christ,  to  their 
salvation  and  thy  glory.     Provide  and  send  forth  the  mes- 
sengers of  thy  grace  through  all  the  earth.     Deliver  all  the 
chufcheB  from  sin,  division  and  oppression.     Let  thy  holy 
word  and  worship  continue  in  these  kingdoms,  whilst  this 
worid  endureth.     Bless  the  king  and  all  in  authority,  with 
all  tiiat  wisdom,  justice  and  holiness,  which  are  needful  to 
his  own  and  his  subjects'  safety,  peace  and  welfare.     Let 
every  congregation  among  us  have  burning  and  shining 
lights,  that  the  ignorant  and  ungodly  perish  not  for  want  of 
teachii^  and  exhotlation.    And  open  men's  hearts  to  re- 
ceive thy  WoMiy  and  cause  t'hem  to  know  the  day  of  their  vi- 
stttition.     Be  merciful  to  the  afflicted,  in  sickness,  dangers,  .; 
Wlints  or  sorrows,  according  to  thy  goodness  and  their  ne-  ^i, 
eessitiee.     Let  all  the  prayers  and  praises  of  the  faithful 
throughout  the  world  sent  up  this  day  in  the  name  of  out    ; 
common  Mediator,  ):)y  him  be  presented  acceptable  unto   ' 
thee;  notwithstanding  the  ilfnperfectiobs  and  blemishes  that  \ 
Sure  on  them,  and  t^e  censures,  divisions  and  injuries,  which    ^ 
in  their  fro wardness  they  are  guilty  of  against  each  other : 
let  thetn  enter  as  one  in  Christ  our  Head,  who  are  too  sadly 
ahd  stiffly  distant  among  themselves.    Prepare  us  alt  fbr 
that  world  of  peace,  where  the  harmony  of  universal  love,    ^ 
and  praise  shall  never  be  interrupted  by  sins,  or  griefs,  or    v 
fears,  Or  discord ;  but  shall  be  everlastingly  perfect  to  out 
joy  and  to  thy  glory,  through  our  glorified  Mediatbt,  who 
tUnght  us  when  we  pray  to  say.  Our  Father  which  ait  in  hea- 
ven, haillowed  be  thy  name,  thy  kingdom  come,  thy  will  be 
4one  on  earth,  as  it  is  in  heaven,  give  us  this  day  out  <1^\In; 
llreftd,  ftiid  forgite  m  our  trespasses,  aavr^tot^vi^^^w^^SoaX. 


464  CALL   TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

trespass  against  us  :  And  lead  us  not  into  temptation ;  but 
deliver  us  from  evil,  for  thine  is  the  kingdom,  the  power  and 
the  glory,  for  ever.    Amen. 

A  short  Prayer  for  Children  and  Servants. 

Ever-living  and  most  glorious  God,  Fathei^  Son  and 
Holy  Ghost !  Infinite  is  thy  power,  thy  wisdom,  and  thy 
goodness !  .  Thou  art  the  Maker  of  all  the  world,  the  Re- 
deemer of  lost  and  sinful  man,  and  the  Sanctifier  of  the  elect! 
Thou  hast  made  me  a  living,  reasonable  soul,  placed  awhile 
in  this  flesh  and  world  to  know,  and  love,  and  serve  thee, 
my  Creator,  with  all  my  heart,  and  mind,  and  strength,  that 
I  might  obtain  the  reward  of  the  heavenly  glory.  This 
should  have  been  the  greatest  care,  and  business,  and  plea- 
sure of  all  my  life  :  I  was  bound  to  it  by  thy  law :  I  was  in- 
vited by  thy  mercy.  And  in  my  baptism  I  was  devoted  to 
this  holy  life,  by  a  solemn  covenant  and  vow.  But  alas,  I 
have  proved  too  unfaithful  to  that  covenant:  I  hsTve  forgot- 
ten and  neglected  the  God,  the  Saviour,  and  the  Sanctifier, 
to  whom  I  was  engaged :  and  have  too  much  served  the  de- 
vil, the  world  and  flesh,  which  I  renounced  :  I  was  bom  in 
sin,  and  sinfully  I  have  lived.  I  have  been  too  careless  of 
my  immortal  soul,  and  of  the  great  work  for  which  I  was 
created  and  redeemed  :  1  have  spent  much  of  my  precious 
time  in  vanity,  in  minding  and  pleasing  this  corruptible 
fl:esh  :  and  I  have  hardened  my  heart  against  those  instruc- 
tions, by  which  thy  Spirit,  and  my  teachers,  and  my  own 
conscience,  did  call  upon  me  to  repent  and  turn   to;thee. 

And  now.  Lord,  my  convinced  soul  doth  confess,  that  I 
have  deserved  to  be  forsaken  by  thee,  and  given  over  to  my 
lust  and  folly,  and  to  be  cast  out  of  thy  glorious  presence 
into  damnation.  But  seeing  thou  hast  given  a  Saviour  to 
the  world,  and  made  a  pardoning  and  gracious  law,  promis- 
ing forgiveness  and  salvation  through  his  merits,  to  every 
true  penitent  believer,  I  thankfully  accept  the  mercy  of  thy 
covenant  in  Christ ;  I  humbly  confess  my  sin  and  guiltiness ; 
I  cast  my  miserable  soul  upon  thy  grace,  and  sacrifice,  and 
intercession  of  my  Saviour.  O  pardon  all  the  sins  of  my 
corrupted  heart  and  life  ;  and  as  a  reconciled  Father,  take 
me  to  be  thy  child*,  and  ^\e  tft&  Vk^  \«a«m\3k.^%^vclt,  to  be 


CALL  TO   TH£  UNGONVRRTED.  46fi 

ift  me  ft  iHnnctple  of  holy  life»  ftnd  lights  and  love,  and  thy 
seal  and  witae8d>  that  I  am  thine.  Let  him  quicken  my  dead 
and  hardened  heart ;  let  him  enlighten  my  dark,  unbelieving 
mind  by  clearer  knowledge  and  firm  belief;  let  him  tummy 
will  to  the  ready  obedience  of  thy  holy  will ;  let  him  reyeal 
to  my  Boul  the  wonders  of  thy  loye  in  Christ,  and  fiU-it  with 
love  to  thee  and  my  Redeemer,  and  to  all  thy  holy  word 
and  works,  till  aU  my  sinful  carnal  love  be  quenched  in  me, 
and  my  sinfiil  pleasures  iomed  into  a  sweet  delight  in  God  y 
give  me  self-denial,  humility,  and  lowliness^  and  saye  me 
irom  the  great  and  hateful  sins  of  selfishness,  worldliness, 
and  pridc^  O  set  my  heart  upon  the  heavenly  glory,  where 
I  hope,  ere  long,  to  live  with  Christ  and  all  his  holy  ones,  in 
the  joyful  sight,  and  love,  and  praise  of  thee,  the  God  of 
love,  for  ever.  Deny  me  not  any  of  those  helps  and  mer- 
cies, which  are  needful  to  my  sanctification  and  salvation. 
And  cause  me  to  live  in  a  continual  readiness  for  a  safe  and 
comfortable  death.  For  what  would  it  profit  me  to  win  all 
the  world,  and  lose  my  soul,  my  Saviour,  and  my  God  ? 

Additions  for  Children. 

Let  thy  blessings  be  upon  my  parents  and  goyemors, 
cttase  them:  to  instniet.aod  educate  me  in  thy  fear,  and  cause 
me  with  thankfidnest  to  receive  their  instructions :  and  to 
love,  honour,  and  obey  them  in  obedience  to  thee.  Keep 
mcfiroaa  the  snares  of  evil  company,  temptations,  and  yonth- 
fol  pleasures,  and  let  me  be  a  companion  of  them  that  fear 
thee.  Let  aory  daily  delight  be  to  meditate  on  thy  law;  and 
let  me  never  have  the  mark  of  the  ungodly,  to  be  a  lover  of 
pkaswres  More  than  of  God.  Furnish  my  youth  with  those 
treasarca  of  wisdom  and  holiness,  which  may  be  daily  in- 
creased and  used  to  thy  glory. 

Additions  for  Servants. 

And  w  thou  hast  made  me  a^  servant,  make  me  conscion- 
able  and  &itbful  in  my  place  and  trust,  and  careful  of  my. 
master's  goods  and  business,  as  I  would  be  if  it  were  my 
MUTlkm  Make  me  submissive  and  obedient  to  my  goyernors ; 
kee]^  me  irom  ^eJ/^wiil  and  pride,  frommu^Xlwai*^^^x!A^):&* 

VOL,  VII.  H    H 


466  GALL   TO   THU    UNCONVERTED. 

reverent  speeches^  from  falsehood^  slothfulness^  and  all  de^ 
ceit.  That  I  might  not  be  an  eye-servant,  pleasing  my  lust 
and  fleshly  appetite ;  but  may  cheerfully  and  willingly  do 
my  duty,  as  believing  that  thou  art  the  revenger  of  all  un- 
faithfulness ;  and  may  do  my  service  not  only  as  unto  man, 
but  as  to  the  Lord,  expecting  from  thee  my  chief  reward. 

All  this  I  beg  and  hope  for,  on  the  account  of  the  merits 
and  intercession  of  Jesus  Christ,  concluding  in  the  words 
which  he  hath  taught  us.  Our  Father,  which  art  in  heaven. 
Hallowed  be  thy  name :  Thy  kingdom  come :  Thy  will  be  done 
on  earth,  as  it  is  in  heaven.  Give  us  this  day  our  daily 
bread :  And  forgive  us  our  trespasses,  as  we  forgive  them 
that  trespass  against  us.  And  lead  us  not  into  temptation ; 
but  deliver  us  from  evil.  For  thine  is  the  kingdom,  the 
power,  and  the  glory,  for  ever.     Amen. 

A  Prayer  for  the  Morning,  in  the  method  of  the  LortTs  Prayer, 

being  an  Eocposition  of  it. 

Most  glorious  God,  who  art  power,  and  wisdom,  and 
goodness  itself,  the  Creator  of  all  things ;  the  Owner,  the 
Ruler,  and  the  Benefactor  of  the  world,  but  especially  of  thy 
church  and  chosen  ones.  Though  by  sin  original  and  ac- 
tual we  were  thy  enemies,  the  slaves  of  satan  and  our  flesh, 
and  under  thy  displeasure  and  the  condemnation  of  thy  law, 
yet  thy  children,  redeemed  by  Jesus  Christ  thy  Son,  and  re- 
generated by  thy  Holy  Spirit,  have  leave  to  call  thee  their 
reconciled  Father.  For  by  thy  covenant  of  grace,  thou  hast 
given  them  thy  Son  to  be  their  Head,  their  Teacher,  •  and 
their  Saviour.  And  in  him  thou  hast  pardoned,  adopted, 
and  sanctified  them ;  sealing  and  preparing  them  by  thy 
Holy  Spirit  for  thy  celestial  kingdom,  and  beginning  in 
them  that  holy  life,  and  light,  and  love,  which  shall  be  per- 
fected with  thee  in  everlasting  glory.  O  with  what  won- 
drous love  hast  thou  loved  us,  that  of  rebels  we  should  be 
made  the  sons  of  God  !  Thou  hast  advanced  us  to  this  dig- 
nity that  we  might  be  devoted  wholly  to  thee  as  thine  own, 
and  might  delightfully  obey  thee,  and  entrely  love  thee  with 
all  our  heart !     And  so  might  glorify  thee  here  and  for  ever. 

O  cause  both  us,  and  all  thy  churches,  and  all  the  world 
to  hallow  thy  great  and  VioV^  iv^m^X    K?cA  V^Nks^  v^^ee 


CALt    TO   THE    UNCONVfiRTBD.  467 

as  our  ultimate  end !  that  thy  shining  image  on  holy  souls 
may  glorify  thy  divine  perfection. 

And  cause  both  us  and  all  the  earthy  to  cast  off  the  ty- 
ranny of  satan  and  the  flesh,  and  to  acknowledge  thy  su- 
preme authority,  and  to  become  the  kingdoms  of  thee  and 
thy  Son  Jesus,  by  a  willing  and  absolute  subjection.  O  per-  ' 
feet  thy  kingdom  of  grace  in  ourselves  and  in  the  world,  and 
hasten  the  kingdom  of  glory. 

And  cause  us  and  thy  churches,  and  all  the  people  of  the 
earth,  no  more  to  be  ruled  by  the  lusts  of  the  flesh,  and  their 
erironeous  conceits,  and  by  selfwill,  which  is  the  idol  of  the 
wicked  ;  but  by  thy  purest  wisdom  and  holy  will  revealed 
in  thy  laws,  make  known  thy  word  to  all  the  world,  and  send 
them  the  messengers  of  grace  and  peace ;  and  cause  men 
to  understand,  believe,  and  obey,  the  Gospel  of  salvation. 
And  that,  with  such  holiness,  unity,  and  love,  that  the  earthy 
which  is  now  too  like  to  hell,  may  be  made  like  unto  hea- 
ven ;  and  not  only  thy  scattered,  imperfect  flock,  but  those 
also  who  in  their  carnal  and  ungodly  minds  do  now  refude  a 
Holy  life,  and  think  thy  words  and  ways  too  strict,  may  de- 
sire to  imitate  even  the  heavenly  church  ;  where  thou  art 
obeyed,  and  loved,  and  praised,  with  high  delight,  in  har- 
mony and  perfection. 

And  because  our  being  is  the  subject  of  our  well-being, 
maintain  us  in  the  life,  which  thou  hast  here  given  us,  un- 
til the  work  of  life  be  finished ;  and  give  us  such  health  of 
mind  and  body,  and  such  protection,  and  supply  of  all  our 
wants,  as  shall  best  fit  us  for  our  duty ;  and  make  us  con- 
tented with  our  daily  bread,  and  patient  if  we  want.  And 
save  us  from  the  love  of  riches,  honours,  and  pleasures  of 
this  world,  and  the  pride,  and  idleness,  and  sensuality  which 
they  cherish;  and  cause  us  to  serve  thy  Providence  by  our 
diligent  labour,  and  to  serve  thee  faithfully  with  all  that  thou 
givest  us  ;  and  let  us  not  make  provision  for  the  flesh,  to 
satisfy  its  desires  and  lusts. 

And  we  beseech  thee  of  thy  mercy,  through  the  sacrifice 
and  propitiation  of  thy  beloved  Son,  forgive  us  all  our  sins, 
original  and -actual,  from  our  birth  to  this  hour;  our  omis- 
sions of  duty,  and  committing  of  what  thou  didst  forbid ; 
our  sins  of  heart,  and  word,  and  deed  ;  our  %viit\A  \.VkQv).!^s^ak 
and  affections,  our  sinful  passions  aud  d\acoTiXAXi\»%  wa  %^- 


468  CilLL  TO  TH£   UMCONYBRTBD. 

oret  and  oar  open  sins ;  our  Bins  of  negligence  and  ignorance^ 
and  rashness ;  but  especially  our  sins  against  knowledge 
and  conscience,  which  have  made  the  deepest  guilt  and 
wounds.  Spare  ua,  O  Lord,  and  let  not  our  sin  so  find  us 
out  as  to  be  our  ruin ;  but  let  us  so  find  it  out  as  truly  to  re- 
pent and  turn  to  thee !  Especially  punish  us  not  with  the 
loss  of  thy  grace !  Take  not  thy  Holy  Spirit  from  us,  and 
deny  us  not  his  assistance  and  holy  operations.  Seal  to  us 
by  that  Spirit  the  pardon  of  our  sins,  and  lift  up  the  light  of 
thy  countenance  upon  us,  and  give  us  the  joy  of  thy  favour 
and  salvation.  And  let  thy  love  and  mercy  to  us  fill  us  not 
only  with  thankfulness  to  thee,  but  with  love  and  mercy  to 
our  brethren  and  our  enemies,  that  we  may  heartily  forgive 
them  that  do  us  wrong,  as  through  thy  grace  we  hope  to  do. 

And  for  the  time  to  come,  suffer  us  not  to  cast  ourselves 
wilfully  into  temptations,  but  carefully  to  avoid  them,  and 
resolutely  to  resist  and  conquer  what  we  cannot  avoid  ;  and 
O  mortify  those  inward  sins  and  lusts,  which  are  our  con* 
stant  and  most  dangerous  temptations.  And  let  us  not  be 
tempted  by  satan  or  the  world,  or  tried  by  thy  judgments, 
above  the  strength  which  thy  grace  shall  give  us.  Save  us 
from  a  fearless  confidence  in  our  own  strength  ;  and  let  us 
not  dally  with  the  snare,  nor  taste  the  bait,  nor  play  with 
the  fire  of  wrath.  But  cause  us  to  fear  and  depart  from  evil ; 
lest  before  we  are  aware,  we  be  entangled  and  overcome,  and 
wounded  with  our  guilt  and  with  thy  wrath,  and  our  end 
should  be  worse  than  our  beginning.  Especially  save  us 
from  those  radical  sins  of  error  and  unbelief,  pride,  hypo- 
crisy, hardheartedness,  sensuality,  slothfulness,  and  the  love 
of  this  present  world,  and  the  loss  of  our  love  to  thee^  to  thy 
kingdom  and  thy  ways. 

And  save  us  from  the  malice  of  satan  and  of  wicked 
men,  and  from  the  evils  which  our  sins  would  bring  upon  us. 

And  as  we  crave  all  thi»  from  thee,  we  humbly  tender 
our  praises  with  our  future  service  to  thee!  Thou  art 
the  King  of  all  the  world,  and  more  than  the  life  of  all  the 
living !  Thy  kingdom  is  everlasting ;  wise,  and  just,  and 
merciful,  is  thy  government.  Blessed  are  they  that  are 
faithful  subjects ;  but  who  hath  hardened  himself  against 
tbte,  and  hath  prospered''.  The  whole  creation  proclaimeth 
thy  peri^fftion*    Bui  \t  \^  \x«^^«ii  "^^aei^c^  ^^\&^ik^  ^*i^  Hk<| 


CALL   TO  THF.   UNCONVERTED.  460 

g^ory,  and  the  glory  of  p«r  Redeemer,  tvhere  the  angels  and 
saints  behold  thee,  admire  thee,  adore  thee,  lore  thee,  and 
praise  thee  with  triumphant,  joyful  songs,  the  holy,  holy, 
h^ly  God,  the  Father,  Sc^n,  and  Holy  Ghost,  who  was,  and 
is,  and  is  to  come ;  of  thee,  and  through  thee,  and  to  thee 
%re  all  things.     To  thee  be  glory  for  ever.    Amen. 

The  Creed. 

I  believe  in  God,  the  Father  Almighty,  Creator  of  hea- 
ven and  earth.  Aflfd  in  Jesus  Christ,  his  only  Son  oar  Lord, 
who  was  conceived  Dy  the  Holy  Ghost,  born  of  the  Virgin 
Mary,  sufiered  under  Pontius  Pilate,  was  crucified,  dead, 
and  buried.  He  descended  into  hell ;  the  third  day  he  rose 
again  from  the  dead ;  he  ascended  into  heaven,  and  sitteth 
'Oa  the  ri^t  hand  of  God,  the  Father  Almighty ;  from  thence 
lie  shall  come  to  judge  the  quick  and  the  dead.  I  believe 
in  the  Holy  Ghost ;  the  holy  catholic  church ;  the  comrnu*- 
nion  of  saints  ;  the  forgiveness  of  sins ;  the  resurrection  of 
the  body  \  and  the  life  everlasting.    Amen. 

The  Ten  Commandments. 

1.  I  am  the  Lord  thy  God  which  have  brought  thee  out 
of  the  land  of  Egypt,  out  of  the  house  of  bondage.  Thou 
shalt  have  no  other  God  before  me. 

IL  Thou  shalt  not  make  unto  thee  any  graven  image,  or 
the  likeness  of  any  thing  that  is  in  heaven  above,  or  that  is 
in  the  earth  beneath,  or  that  is  in  the  water  under  the  earth; 
thou  shalt  not  bow  down  thyself  to  them,  nor  serve  them ; 
for  I  the  Lord  thy  God  am  a  jealous  God,  visiting  the  ini- 
quity of  the  fathers  upon  the  children,  unto  the  third  and 
fourth  generation  of  them  that  hate  me,  and  shewing  mercy 
unto  thousands  of  them  that  love  me  and  keep  my  com- 
mandments. 

in.  Thou  shalt  not  take  the  name  of  the  Lord  thy  God 

in  vain  \  for  the  Lord  will  not  hold  him  guiltless  that  taketh 
his  name  in  vain. 

IV.  Remember  the  Sabbath-day  to  keep  it  holy ;  six  days 
shalt  thou  labour  and  do  all  thy  work :  but  the  seventh  day 
is  the  Sabbath  o(  the  Lord  thy  God,  m  \1  \);io\x  ^iiX.  wA.  ^^ 


470  CALL  TO   THE   UNCONVERTED. 

any  work«  thou«  nor  thy  son,  nor  thy  daughter,  thy  man-ser- 
vant, nor  thy  maid-servant,  nor  thy  cattle,  nor  the  stranger 
that  is  within  thy  gates.  For  in  six  days  the  Lord  made 
heaven  and  earth,  the  sea,  and  all  that  in  them  is,  and  rested 
the  seventh  day ;  wherefore  the  Lord  blessed  the  Sabbath- 
day,  and  hallowed  it. 

V.  Honour  thy  father  and  thy  mother,  that  thy  days 
may  be  long  in  the  land,  which  the  Lord  thy  God  giveth 
thee. 

VL  Thou  shalt  not  kill. 

VIL  Thou  shalt  not  commit  adulteiy. 

VIIL  Thou  shalt  not  steal. 

IX.  Thou  shalt  not  bear  false  witness  against  thy  neigh- 
bour. 

X.  Thou  shalt  not  covet  thy  neighbour's  house ;  thou 
shalt  not  covet  thy  neighbour's  wife,  nor  his  man-servant, 
nor  his  maid-servant,  nor  his  ox,  nor  his  ass,  nor  any  thing 
that  is  thy  neighbour's. 


END  OF  THE  CALL  TO  THE  UNCONVERTED. 


NOW  OR  NEVER. 


THE  HOLY.  SERIOUS,  DILIGENT  BELIEVER  JUSTIFIED,  ENCOU- 
RAGED,  EXCITED,  AND  DIRECTED.  AND  THE  OPPOSERS 
AND   NEGLECTERS  CONVINCED  BY  THE  LIGHT 
OF  SCRIPTURE  AND  REASON. 


TO  BE  COMMUNICATED  BY  SUCH  AS  WANT  ABILITY  OR  OP- 
PORTUNIIY   THEMSELVES    TO   PLEAD    THE  CAUSE  OF 
SERIOUS  HOLINESS  FOR  MEN'S  CONVICTION. 


it 


**  But  wisdom  is  justified  of  all  her  children.' 

Luke  vii.  35. 

Nihil  est  ad  defendendum  puritate  tutius :   aihil  ad  dicendum  vcritate  facilius. 

Ambros. 


*  /■       .  PREFACE. 


It  is  a  question^  mofe  boldly  than  accurately  debated  by 
many,  '  Whether  a  man  may  not  be  saved  in  any  religion, 
that  IB  faithful  to  the  principles  of  it  by  serious,  diligent 
practice?'  The  true  solution  is  this :  religion  ia  that  whicii 
men  hold  and  do  to  serve  and  please  God.  1.  tf  men  make 
tbexoaelves  a  religion  of  serving  idols  or  devils  instead  of 
God.  2.  Or  if  they  place  their  service  to  God  himself  in 
things  that  are  evil  (as  what  evil  is  there  that  some  men  have, 
not  brought  into  their  religion,  and  fathered  upon  Godi)  the 
more  diligent  such  men  are  in  their  religion,  the  more  they 
nji^,  3*  Or  if  they  niake  themselves  a  religion  of  irrational, 
fiulicxous  ceremonies^  their  greatest  diligence  in  this  will 
not  s.ave  them.  4.  Or  if  they  hold  all  the  essentials  of  the 
tnu^  religion,  except  some  one,  it  cannot  save  them  while 
one  thing  is  wanting  which  is  essential  to  that  religion,  and 
so  necessary  to  salvation  (which  is  the  case  of  real  heretics) : 
for  they  are  not  indeed  of  that  religion,  if  they  want  that 
which  is  essential  to  it.  5*  Or  if  they  hold  all  that  is  essen- 
tial to  the  true  religion  only  notionally,  and  hold  any  thing 
with  it  praotically,  which  i9H^ontradictory  and  inconsistent 
with  it,  the  soundness  of  the  motional  belief  will  not  save 
them  from  the  mortal  poison  of  their  practical  heresy  or  error. 
But,  1.  Whosoever  holdeth  all  that  is  necessary  to  sal- 
vation^ and  is  serious  and  diligent  in  living  according  there- 
unto«  shall  besaved^  whatever  error  he  holdeth  with  it.  For 
if  he  be  serious  and  diligent  in  the  practice  of  aU  things  ne- 
cessary to  salvation,  he  hath  all  that  is  necessary  to  salva- 
tion^ viz*  In  belief  and  practice ;  and  it  must  needs  follow, 
that  his  errors  are  either  not  contradictory  to  the  things  ne- 
cessary which  he  holdeth  and  practiseth,  or  that  he  holdeth 
not  those  errors  practically  but  notionaWy ,  a^  axv  o\yvp[\o\\>qt 
uneffectual  cogitation  in  a  dream,  which  pioNoV^XXv  yloI  \o 


CCCclxxiv  PREFACEr 

action :  and  in  such  a  case  the  error  keepeth  no  man  from 
salvation. 

What  is  necessary  to  be  believed  by  them  that  never  hear 
the  Gospel^  it  so  little  concemeth  us  to  know«  that  God  fatttk' 
not  thought  meet  to  make  it  so  plain  to  Os^^as  things  that 
more  concern  ourselves.  But  as  it  is  certain/ that  without 
the  atonement^  satisfaction,  and  reconciliation  made  by 
Christ,  and  without  new  terms  of  grace  to  be  judged  by,  and 
without  his  grace  for  the  performance  of  their  part,  n9  man 
can  be  saved  (that  hath  the  use  of  reaison),  so  there  is  so 
much  knowledge  necessary  to  salvation,  as  is  necessary,  to 
engage  the  heart  to  love  God  abov^  all,  and  sincerely  to 
obey  his  revealed  will,  and  to  prefer  the  life  to  come  before 
the  transitory  pleasures  of  this  life.  Now  if  any  man  can 
prove  to  me,  that  those  that  never  heard  the  Gospel,  can  thus 
love  God,  and  the  life  to  come,  and  obey  sincerely,  without 
the  knowledge  of  the  person,  life,  death,  resurrection  of 
Jesus  Christ,  and  the  declaration  of  the  attractive  love  and 
goodhess  of  God  in  him,  and  in  the  work  of  our  redemption, 
then  I  should  believe  that  such  negative  infidels  may  be 
saved ;  for  God  cannot  damns  sanctified  soul,  that  sincerdy 
loveth  him.  But  if  the  discovery  of  the  love  of  God  in  ot 
redemption  be  so  necessary  a  moral  means  to  engage  the 
heart  (now  corrupted  by  sin  and  creature-love)  to  the  ttue 
love  of  God,  that  this  love  cannot  be  wrought  without  it ;  or 
if  Christ  give  not  his  Spirit  to  produce  the  love  of  God  in  any 
but  those  that  hear  the  Gospel,  and  believe  in  him,  then  no 
such  persons  can  be  saved  by  their  religion.  For  Christ  is 
the  way  to  the  Father,  and  no  man  cometh  to  the  Father  but 
by  Jiim ;  and  the  love  of  God  is  absolutely  and  of  itself  ne- 
cessary to  salvation ;  and  fitith  in  Christ  is  so  far  necessary 
to  salvation,  as  it  is  necessaiy  to  bring  men  to  the  love  of 
God,  as  pardoning  sin  and  reconciled  to  them. 

But  if  any  should  never  so  confidently  conclude,  that 
some  that  hear  not  of  Christ  may  be  saved,  yet  he  must  needs 
confess  that  the  want  of  this  clear  and  great  discovery  of  the 
love  and  goodness  of  God,  in  his  pardoning  grace,  and  of 
the  glorious  life  which  he  hath  prepared  for  us,  must  needs 
make  the  love  of  God  a  very  rare  and  difiicult  thing,  and  con- 
sequently their  salvatioiv  T^xe  ^xv6l  difficult,  in  comparison 
of  ours. 


PREFACBi.  CCCClxXV 

The  Christian  faiths  is,  '  The  believing  an  everlasting  life 
of  happiness  to  be  given  by  God  (with  the  pardon  of  all  sin) 
as  procured  by  the  sufferings  and  merits  of  Jesus  Christ,  to 
all  that  are  sanctiiSed  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  do  persevere 
in  love  to  God  and  to  each  other,  and  in  a  holy  and  heavenly 
conversation/    This  is  saving  faith  and  Christianity,  if  we 
consent  as  well  as  assent.     All  that  was  necessary  to  salva- 
tion to  be  believed,  was  formerly  thought  to  be  contained  in 
the  creed,  and  that  was  the  test  or  symbol  of  the  Christian 
faith  ;  and  the  Christian  religion  is  the  same,  and  hath  the 
same  rule,  and  test,  and  symbol  in  all  ages.     But  since  fac- 
tion and  tyranny,  pride  and  covetousness  became  the  mat- 
ters of  the  religion  of  too  many,  vice  and  selfish  interest 
hath  commanded  them  to  change  the  rule  of  faith  by  their 
additions,  and  to  make  so  much  necessary  to  salvation,  as 
is  necessary  to  their  affected  universal  dominion,  and  to  their 
commodity  and  carnal  ends.      And  since  faction  entered, 
and  hath  torn  the  church  into  many  sects  (the  Greek,  the 
Roman,  the  Armenian,   the  Jacobites,  the  Abassine,  and 
many  more),  it  seemeth  meet  to  the  more  tyrannical  sect  to 
call  these  several  religions,  and  to  say  that  every  man  that 
differeth  from  them  in  any  of  their  opinions  or  addition, 
which  they  please  to  call  articles  of  faith,  is  of  another 
religion. 

*  And  if  the  word  '  Religion '  be  taken  in  this  sense,  and 
if  all  that  agree  in  one  Christian  religion,  are  said  to  be  of 
as  many  religions,  as  different  opinions,  in  points  that  some 
call  necessary,  then  I  answer  the  question  thus.  He  is  the 
true  Catholic  Christian  that  hath  but  one,  even  the  Chris- 

0 

tian  religion  :  and  this  is  the  case  of  the  Protestants,  who 
casting  off  the  additions  of  Popery,  adhere  to  the  primitive 


*  And  yet  when  they  have  divided  the  charch,  and  damned  the  greatest  part 
of  Christians,  and  raged  with  fire  and  sword  against  the  brethren,  they  confess  them- 
selves  that  it  is  no  point  of  faith  at  all,  that  it  is  of  Divine JHght,  that  the  Bishop  of 
Rome  is  St.  Peter's  successor,  and  not  only  of  human  right.  And  must  the  church  be 
divided,  and  most  be  damned  for  not  believing  or  submitting  to  a  human  ordinance  ? 
If  we  be  of  many  religions,  is  not  Popery  then  a  human  religion?  The  very  words  of 
Smith  Bbhop  of  Chalcedon,  the  chief  of  the  English  Popish  clergy  are  these, "  Survey" 
chap  V.  *  To  us  it  sufiiceth  that  the  Bishop  of  Rome  is  St.  Peter's  successor,  and 
this  all  the  fathers  testify,  and  all  the  Catholic  Church  believeth  ;  but  whether  it  be 
'jure  divino,'  or  '  humano,'  is  no  point  of  faith.'  And  ho^  do  tVieVc  V&\c&  \v«(«V<ok)w 
what  15  a  point  of  faith,  but  by  the  testimony  of  their  pnesU^ 


CC<X;lxXVi  PREFACE. 

gimplicity  and  unity :  if  Papists^  oi*  any  others,  corrupt  this 
religion  with  haman  additions  and  innovations,  the  great 
danger  of  these  corruptions,  is,  lest  they  draw  them  from 
the  sound  belief  and  serious  practice  of  tiiat  ancient  Gkri»* 
tianity,  which  we  are  all  agreed  in :  and  (among  the  Papists^ 
or  any  other  sect)  where  their  corruptions  do  not  thus  c<Nr<* 
rupt  their  faith  and  practice  in  the  true  essentials,  it  is  cer* 
tain  that  those  corruptions  shall  not  damn  them.  For  he 
that  truly  believeth  all  things  that  are  essential  to  Christia- 
nity, and  liveth  accordingly  with  serious  diligence,  hath  Ae 
promise  of  salvation  :  and  it  is  certain,  that  what  error  that 
man  holdeth,  it  is  either  not  inconsistent  with  true  Chris- 
tianity, or  not  practically,  but  notionally  held,  and  so  not 
inconsistent  as  held  by  him ;  for  how  can  that  be  inconsis- 
tent which  actually  doth  consist  with  it? 

If  a  Papist  or  any  other  sectary  do  seriously  love  God, 
and  his  brother ;  and  set  his  heart  upon  the  life  to  come,  and 
give  lip  himself  to  the  merits  and  grace  of  Jesus  Christ,  and 
the  sanctification  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  to  be  fitted  for  that 
glory,  and  liveth  by  faith  above  the  world,  and  mortifieth 
the  desires  of  the  flesh,  and  liveth  wilfully  in  no  known  sin, 
but  presseth  after  further  degrees  of  holiness,  I  doubt  not 
of  the  salvation  of  that  person ;  no  more  than  of  the  life  of 
him  that  hath  taken  poison  but  into  his  mouth  and  spit  it 
out  again,  or  let  down  so  little  as  nature  and  antidotes  do 
expel ;  but  I  will  not  therefore  plead  for  poison,  nor  take  it, 
because  men  may  live  that  thus  take  it. 

Having  answered  this  great  question,  reader,  I  am  now 
come  up  to  the  subject  of  my  following  discourse,  and  to 
tell  thee  that  though  it  be  a  great  question  whether  serious 
diligence  in  a  corrupt  religion  will  save  a  man,  it  is  past  all 
question,  and  agreed  on  by  all  sides,  that  no  religion  will 
save  a  man,  that  is  not  serious,  sincere,  and  diligent  in  it. 
If  thou  be  of  the  truest  religion  in  the  world,  and  art  not 
true  thyself  to  that  religion,  the  religion  is  good,  but  it  is 
none  of  thine.  Objectively  thou  art  of  a  true  and  good  re- 
ligion, the  things  in  themselves  are  true  and  good,  but  sub- 
jectively thou  art  sincerely  of  no  religion  at  all ;  for  if  thou 
art  not  serio  us,  hearty,  and  diligent  in  i%,  it  is  certain  that  thou 
dost  not  truly  entettam  \t,  ^xid  mi^ke  it  thine ;  but  it  is  thy 
books  that  have  the  tme  te\\^\oxv,  o\\Jk^  \.w\^^>trt  ^»»Swk^, 


PREFACE.  CCCClxXVii 

or  brain,  but  not  tiiy  heart ;  and  the  best  meat  on  thy  table^ 
or  that  goeth  no  fartiber  than  thy  mouth,  will  never  feed  thee, 
or  preserre  thy  life.      So  certain  is  the  salvation  of  every 
hotyy  mortified  Christian,  and  so  certain  the  damnation  of 
ervery  trogodly,  worldly,  fleshly  sensualist  \  that  I  had  a  thou* 
sazid-fold  rather  hare  my  soul  in  the  case  of  a  godly  Ana^ 
baptist,  yea,  or  a  monk,  or  friar  among  the  Papists,  that 
liveth  a  truly  heavenly  life,  in  the  love  of  God  and  man,  and 
in  a  serious,  diligent  obedience  to  God,  according  to  bis 
knowledge,  than  in  the  case  of  a  Protestant,  or  whomsoever 
yon  can  imagine  to  be  rightest  in  his  opinions,  that  is 
worldly,  and  sensual,  and  a  stranger  (if  not  an  enemy)  to 
the  power  and  serious  practice  of  his  own  profest  religion, 
and  void  of  a  holy  and  heavenly  heart  and  life.  If  ever  socb 
a  man  be  saved,  the  principles  of  all  religion  do  deceive  us* 
And  certainly  sudi  men's  hypocrisy  doth  aggravate  their 
sin,  and  will  increase  their  misery.     So  many  as  there  be  in 
the  world,  that  profess  themselves  Christians,  and  yet  are 
not  serious  raid  diligent  in  their  irti^on,  but  are  ungodly 
neglecters  or  enemies  of  a  holy  lifcj  so  many  hypocrites  are 
in  the  world.     And  I  wonder  that  their  consciences  call  them 
not  hypocrites  when  they  stand  up  at  the  creed,  or  profess 
themselves  believers :   though  the  congregation  seeth  not 
'  hypocrite  '  written  in  their  foreheads,  God  seeth  it  written 
on  their  hearts,  and  those  that  converse  with  them  may  see 
it  written  in  tlieir  lives.    And  yet  these  men  are  the  most 
forward  to  cry  out  against  hypocrites.  The  devil  hath  taught 
it  them  to  stop  the  suspicion  and  the  chase  of  conscience, 
as  he  hath  taught  the  greatest  schismatics  or  church-divid- 
ers (the  Papists)  to  cry  out  most  against  schism  and  divi- 
sion,  and  pretend  to  unity.      But  these  shifts  do  blind  none 
but  fools,  and  forsaken  consciences  ;  and  the  cheat  that  is 
now  detected  by  the  wise,  will  quickly  by  God  be  detected 
before  all  the  world.  Till  then  let  them  make  merry  in  their 
deceits :  who  would  envy  the  drunkard  the  pleasure  of  an 
hour's  swinish,  sick  delight  ?     This  is  their  portion ;  and 
this  is  their  time :  as  we  have   chosen  and  covenanted  for 
another  poition,  we  are  content  to  stay  the  time  assigned, 
till  God  shall  tell  them  and  all  the  world,  who  was  sincere, 
atid  who  the  hypocrite.     For  our  parts,  we  bti\«^^  \h»X.  \v^ 
is  artmt  or  least  siacere,  that  is  moat  ot  \e«a\.  ^»i\c^^  vew  ^^et^ 
practice  of  his  own  professed  religion. 


cccclxxviii  preface. 

For  my  part,  1  must  profess  that  (by  the  mercy  of  God) 
I  have  made  it  the  work  of  many  a  year,  to  look  about  me, 
and  think  wherein  the  felicity  of  man  doth  indeed  consist ; 
and  r  have  long  been  past  doubt  (as  much  as  I  am  that  I  am 
a  man)  that  it  is  not  in  transitory,  sensual  delights,  and  that 
these  are  such  lean  and  dry  commodities,  and  pitiful  plea- 
sures, leaving  men  so  speedily  in  a  forlorn  state,  that  I  am 
contented  that  my  greatest  enemy  have  my  part  of  them. 
I  have  renounced  them  to  God  (as  any  part  of  my  felicity) 
and  I  renounce  them  to  men.  Let  them  do  with  me  about 
these  things  as  God  will  give  them  leave.  I  will  have  a 
portion  after  death,  or  1  will  have  none. 

And  the  case  is  so  palpable,  that  it  is  my  admiration 
that  the  contrary  deceit  is  consistent  with  the  nature  and 
reason  of  a  man ;  and  that  so  many  gentlemen,  and  scholars, 
and  persons  of  an  ingenious  education,  can  no  better  distin- 
guish, and  can  possibly  conquer  their  reason  so  easily  with 
the  presence  of  sensual  delights,  and  so  easily  make  nothing 
of  that  which  will  be  toHnorrow  and  for  ever,  merely  because 
it  is  not  to-day.  Wdl,  I  must  say,  the  wisdom  and  justice 
of  God  is  abundantly  seen  in  the  government  of  the  world 
with  the  liberty  of  the  will,  and  determining  that  all  men 
should  speed  as  they  choose. 

It  may  be  the  reader  will  say,  he  expected  that  instead 
of  writing  such  popular  discourses,  1  should  have  vindica- 
ted myself  against  the  accusations,  that  in  multitudes  of  li- 
bels and  pamphlets  are  scattered  abroad  against  me.  But 
doth  he  think  that  man  is  seriously  a  Christian  that  is  not 
more  zealous  for  God,  and  religion,  and  the  souls  of  men, 
than  for  himself  ?  Have  I  nothing  else  to  do  with  my  time 
and  labour,  but  plead  a  cause  of  my  own,  which  God  will  so 
speedily  and  effectually  plead  ?  Will  it  not  be  time  enough 
to  be  justified  at  the  bar  and  day  of  God  ?  I  am  content  that 
they  carry  it  as  they  desire  till  then  (were  it  not  more  for 
their  own  and  other  men's  sakes  than  mine).  Am  I  like  to 
forsake  my  life  and  all  for  Christ,  and  endure  torments  if  I 
were  called  to  it,  if  I  cannot  endure  to  be  reviled  and  slan- 
dered by  passionate  men  ?  Was  it  nothing  that  our  Lord 
would  not  answer  for  himself,  when  he  was  accused  before 
Pilate  ?  Shall  they  be  able  to  calumniate  under  the  threat- 
enings  of  the  revenge  ot  Yie^NCu,  ^vA  ^^\  \3L^\.\i^  ^Mva  \j^ 


PREFACE.  CCCclxxix 

be  silent  under  such  a  promise,  as  Matt.  y.  10 — 12.  ?  The 
servant  of  the  Lord  must  not  strive.  Our  Lord  gave  us  an 
example  of  not  reviling  again  when  he  was  reviled ;  he  made 
himself  of  no  reputation,  but  endured  the  crOss  and  contra- 
diction of  sinners,  despising  the  shame.  I  confess  I  think 
when  God's  interest,  and  the  good  of  others  doth  require  it, 
a  man  should  not  be  wanting  to  his  own  defence,  and  I  have 
long  ago  written  that  which  will  satisfy  the  impartial :  but 
when  1  saw  that  it  is  like  to  tend  to  heats,  and  set  more  on 
work,  I  had  rather  let  men  call  me  all  the  names  they  can 
devise,  and  voluminously  accuse  me  of  any  thing  that  malice 
shall  suggest,  than  do  any  thing  to  foment  contentions  in 
the  church.  But  if  God  convince  me  that  it  is  my  duty  to 
detect  the  calumnies  of  men,  it  is  a  work  soon  done. 

But  what  good  will  it  do  the  world  for  me  to  open  the 
numerous  untruths  that  other  men  have  published,  or  to  con- 
fute every  script,  when  all  that  I  converse  with  are  satisfied 
already,  and  believe  not  the  reproachers ;  and  all  the  evi- 
dence ii^the  eWorld  will  not  satisfy  those  that  will  not  read 
it,  or  are  resolved  by  their  malice  or  interest  never  to  be  sa- 
tisfied ? 

For  my  p€trt,  I  doubt  not  but  God  and  their  consciences 
will  give  them  such  a  confutation,  as  shall  be  sufficient  to 
them  and  me  to  end  the  controversy. 

My  work  is  to  plead  the  cause  of  God  and  holiness  against 
the  profane  and  sensual  world,  and  no  further  to  plead  any 
cause  of  my  own,  than  is  necessary  to  that.  If  I  must  bear 
the  effects  of  men's  displeasure,  I  had  a  hundred  times  ra- 
ther it  were  pleading  for  holiness,  and  love,  and  peace,  and 
concord  against  impiety,  uncharitableness,  and  divisions, 
than  for  defending  myself,  or  upon  the  account  of  ceremo- 
nies or  smaller  matters.  And  if  for  these  I  bear  it,  I  doubt 
not  of  more  comfort  at  the  present,  much  less  do  I  doubt  of 
a  better  issue  than  false  accusers  can  expect.  We  shall  be 
shortly  upon  even  ground :  the  time  is  short ;  the  pleasures 
of  sin,  the  triumphs  of  malice,  the  sufferings  of  innocency, 
are  but  for  a  moment.  I  envy  them  not  so  short  and  dark 
^day :  the  Judge  is  at  the  door  that  will  judge  all  again, 
and  set  all  straight,  and  judge  in  righteousness.  When  I  am 
afraid  of  leaving  a  noisome  and  unrighteous  worlds  and  end- 
ing all  my  pain  and  trouble,  and  being  beyond  \\vfc  x^^dcL  o1 


CCCClixX  PREFACE. 

malice,  then  I  will  fiemr  what  man  can  dow  Let  them  keep 
me  out  of  heaven^  or  deprive  me  of  my  peac^  and  comfort, 
if  they  can.  If  they  fear  not  the  threatenings  of  God  against 
the  malicious  and  unjust,  surely  I  bare  less  reason  to  feur 
their  threatenings.  When  they  hare  done  their  worst  to 
others,  let  them  sare  themselves  from  death  if  they  can :  I 
am  devoted  to  God,  and  1  never  yet  found  cause  to  repent  it: 
I  am  resolved  to  use  the  utmost  of  my  power  for  the  interest 
of  holiness,  charity  and  peace,  and  for  loyaHy  to  the  king, 
and  obedience  or  patient  submission  to  superiors ;  and  if  yet 
I  bear  the  fruits  of  fury,  let  those  who  insult  over  suSeten 
as  if  they  were  therefore  guilty  or  miserable,  remember  that 
we  eonkl  have  avoided  it  if  we  would,  and  have  fonnd  the 
way  of  applause  and  prosperity  as  well  as  they ;  and  diat 
no  man  takes  that  for  his  misery  which  he  chooseth*  If 
this  kind  of  preaching  or  writing  offend,  could  not  I  have 
avoided  it?  I  am  not  in  love  with  sufferings  from  men,  nor 
will  I  escape  them  at  the  rates  of  God's  displeasure.  I  nerer 
think  myself  in  the  highest  form  of  Christians,  tiU  liam  more 
conformed  to  the  sufferiugs  of  Christ,  and  have  endured 
more  than  yet  I  have.  / 

It  is  the  Christians'  old  apology  in  Tertulfian  i  **'  Quasi 
non  totum  quod  in  nos  potestis  nostrum  sit  arbitrium!  Ccf^ 
te  si  velim,  Christianus  sum ;  tunc  ergo  me  damnabis,  si 
damnari  velim  ;  quam  vero  quod  in  me  potes,  nisi  velim  non 
potes,  jam  mea  voluntatis  est  quod  potes,  non  t\s9t  potesta- 
tis.  Proinde  at  vulgus  vane  de  nostra  vexatione  gaudet: 
proinde  et  nostrum  est  gaudium  quod  sibi  vendicant,  qui 
malumus  damnari  quam  a  Deo  excidere.  Contra,  ibi  qui 
ttos  oderunt,  dolere  non  gaudere  debebant,  conseostis  nobis 
quod  eligimus."  Tert.  Apologet.  cap*  30.  That  i«,  **  As  if 
all  that  you  can  do  against  us  were  not  our  own  choice  (oi 
will).  Certainly  it  is  because  I  will,  that  I  am  a  Christian; 
therefore  if  I  will  be  condemned,  thou  wilt  condemn  me* 
And  when  that  which  thou  canst  do  against  me,  thou  canst 
not  do,  unless  I  will,  it  is  not  now  from  thy  power  that  thou 
canst  do  it,  but  from  my  will ;  and  therefore  the  vulgar  do 
in  vam  rejoice  at  our  vexation.  And  therefore  k  is  our  joy, 
which  they  challenge  to  themselves,  while  we  had  rather  be 
condemned  than  faltl  ftom  Qod.    On  the  contrary,  diey  that 


PREFACE.  CCCCIxXXi 

hate  UB,  «bould  grieve,  and  not  rejoice,  while  we  attain  but 
what  we  choose." 

For  my  part,  if  the  world  will  needs  be  mad,  I  think  both 
the  laughing  and  the  weeping  philosopher  are  more  excusa- 
ble than  he  that  would  be  over-angry  at  them,  or  over-busy 
in  disputing  with  them.  Saith  Seneca,  ''  Quare  fers  segri 
rabiem  et  phrenetici  veii>a?  nempe  quia  videnter  nescire 
quid  faciunt.  Quid  interest  quo  quisque  vitio  fiat  impru- 
dens  ?  Sen.  de  Ira.  lib.  3.  cap.  26.  Anger  and  frenzy  are  but 
several  ways  of  a  man's  losing  his  wit ;  and  therefore  he  that 
can  bear  with  one,  should  somewhat  bear  with  the  i>ther; 
(diough  indeed  voluntariness  or  involuntariness  maketh  a 
great  difference).  It  is  not  worth  a  man's  time,  and  labour, 
and  cost,  to  be  over-solicitous  in  his  own  vindication,  let  the 
world  say  of  him  what  they  please.  **  Multum  temporis  ul- 
iio  absumit;  multis  se  injuriis  objicit,  dum  uncim  dolet. 
Diutius  irascimur!omnes*quam  Isedimur."  Sen.  de  Ira.  lib.  3. 
«ap.  27.''  Revenge  takes  up  a  deal  of  time.  He  that  complain- 
€th  of  one  injury,  objects  himself  to  many.  We  are  all  an- 
gry longer  than  we  are  hurt." 

I  have  truly  given  you  now  the  reasons,  why  I  rather 
choose  to  speak  these  common  necessary  things,  against  the 
devil's  party,  the  ungodly,  the  enemies,  or  neglecters  of  se- 
rious holiness  (agreeable  to  the  subject  of  his  Majesty's 
Christian  and  excellent  declaration  against  debauchery,  at 
his  entrance  upon  his  royal  government)  than  to  meddle  with 
any  of  the  contending  parties  of  these  times  (who  are  so  an- 
gry because  in  obedience  to  authority  I  once  endeavoured  to 
reconcile  them)  or  to  be  unseasonable  in  pleading  any  cause 
that  is  my  own.  And  now  referring  the  reader  to  this  short 
discourse,  I  must  first  desii*e  that  he  misunderstand  me  not 
in  one  or  two  passages.  1.  That  my  citation  of  the  passage 
in  the  Homilies,  be  not  taken  as  if  I  spoke  a  word  against 
it,  though  I  say,  I  dare  not  myself  subscribe  it ;  for  though 
I  think  myself,  that  seeing  a  persecutor  like  Saul  may  re- 
pent, and  be  pardoned,  a  mocker  at  godliness  may  repent 
and  be  forgiven  also ;  yet  I  am  resolved  still  to  suspect  my 
own  understanding,  rather  than  to  speak  against  the  doc- 
trine of  the  church. 

2.  Think  it  not  strange  that  I  reprehend  e^^w  3ML\a\%X«:t^ 
that  are  secret  or  open  opposers  of  aYioV^f  d\\\%'ettce\  ^ot  o>x\ 

VOL.    VII.  1   1 


CCCCixXXii  PREFACE. 

aforeflaid  Homily  telleth  us  as  followeth :  Horn,  for  Informa- 
tion, &c.  part  2. pp.  160, 151.     "  Examples  of  auchscoraei*, 
"we  Head  in  2  Chron.  when  the  good  king  Hezekiah,  in  the 
beginning  of  his  reign  had  destroyed  idolatry,  purged  the 
temple,  and  reformed  religion,  in  his  realm,  he  sent  messen- 
gers into  every  city  to  ga^er  the  people  to  Jerusalem  to  so- 
lemnize the  feast  of  Easter  in  such  sort  as  Gk>d  had  appoint** 
ed ;  the  posts  went  from  city  to  city.-^-^And  what  did  the 
people,  think  ye?     Did  they  laud  and  praise  the  name  of  the 
Lord  that  had  given  them  so  good  a  king,  so  zealous  a  prince 
to  abolish  idolatry,  and  to  restore  again  God's  true  religion? 
No,  no,  the  Scripture  saith,  the  people  laughed  them  to 
scorn,  and  mocked  the  king's  messengers.     And  in  the  last 
chapter  of  the  same  book  it  is  written,  that  Almighty  God 
having  compassion  on  his  people,  sent  his  messengers  the 
prophets  to  them,  to  call  them  from  their  abominable  idola^ 
try,  and  wicked  kind  of  living :  but  they  mocked  his  mes- 
sengers, they  despised  his  words,  and  misused  bis  prophetsi 
until  the  wrath  of  the  Lord  arose  agaiiist  his  people,  and  till 
there  was  no  remedy.    The  wicked  people  that  ware  in  the 
days  of  Noah  made  but  a  mock  at  the  word  of  God,  when 
Noah  told  them  that  God  would  take  vengeance  on  them  for 

.  their  sins* Lot  preached  to  the  Sodomites,  that  except 

they  repented,  both  they  and  their  city  should  be  destroyed ; 
they  thought  his  sayings  impossible  to  be  true  ;  they  scorn- 
ed and  mocked  his  admonitions,  and  reputed  him  as  an  old 
doting  fool.  But  God  burnt  up  those  scorners  and  mock- 
ers of  his  holy  word.  And  what  estimation  had  Christ's 
doctrine  among  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees  ?  what  reward  had 
he  among  them?  The  Pharisees  which  were  covetous,  did 
scorn  him  in  his  doctrine.  O  then  ye  see  that  worldly,  rich 
men  do  scorn  the  doctrine  of  their  salvation ;  the  worldly 
wise  men  do  scorn  the  doctrine  of  Christ  as  foolishness  to 
their  understandings.  These  scorners  have  ever  been,  and 
ever  shall  be  to  the  world's  end.  For  St.  Peter  prophesied 
that  such  scorners  should  be  in  the  end  before  the  latter 
day.  Take  heed,  therefore,  my  brethren,  take  heed ;  be  ye 
not  scorners  of  God's  most  holy  word  :  provoke  him  not  to 
pour  out  his  wrath  upon  you,  as  he  did  upon  those  gibers 
and  mockers :  be  not  wilful  murderers  of  your  own  souls." 
Thus  far  the  Homily. 


PREFACE.  eccclxxxiii 

And  no  marvel  if  priests  may  be  guilty  as  well  as  people, 
if  it  be  true  that  is  said  by  the  church  in  Horn.  3.  against 
Peril  of  Idolatry,  pp.  66,  67.  "  But  a  true  preacher  to  stay 
this  mischief,  is  in  very  many  places  scarcely  heard  once  ih 
the  whole  year,  and  somewhere  not  once  in  seven  years,  ais 
it  is  evident  to  be  proved.  Further,  it  appeareth  not  by  any 
story  of  credit,  that  true  and  sincere  preaching  hath  endured 
in  any  one  place  above  a  hundred  years.  But  it  is  evident 
that  images,  superstition,  and  worshipping  of  images,  and 
idoliatry,  have  continued  many  hundi^ed  years For  preach- 
ing of  Gbd's  word  (most  sincere  in  the  beginning)  by  procesis 
of  time  waxed  less  and  less  pure,  and  after  corrupt,  and  last 
of  an  altogether  laid  down  and  left  off,  and  other  inventions 

of  jaen  crept  in  place  of  it :- So  that  laity  arid  clergy, 

learned  and  unlearned,  all  ages,  sexes,  and  degrees  of  m6n, 
women  and  children  of  whole  Christendom  (a  most  horrible 
and  dreadful  thing  to  think),  have  been  at  oiice  drowned  in 
^ominable  idolatry,  of  all  other  vices  most  detested  of  God, 
and  most  damnable  in  man,  and  that  by  the  space  of  eight 
hundred  years."    So  far  the  Church  of  England. 

And  though  I  am  far  from  crediting  the  many  fabulous 
atones  in  that  and  such  other  books ;  yet  I  shall  recite  one 
instsmceinthe  Life  of  Philip  Nerius,  the  father  of  the  OratO- 
rians,  which  shall  shew  you,  that  even  amoiig  the  Papists, 
holy»  serious  diligence  where  it  is,  hath  the  same  usage  from 
the  profane,  both  clergy  and  laity,  as  in  other  plieices,  and 
so  th^t  every  where  holiness  is  persecuted  by  men  professing 
the  same  religion  with  those  they  persecute. 

The' meetings  of  the  Oratoriahs  and  their  exercises,  so 
like  those  now  abhorred  by  many,  are  by  Baronius  (that 'was 
one  of  them)  thus  described,  as  yon  may  see  in  the  Life  of 
Nerius,  p.  46. 

"Certainly  by  the  Divine  wisdom  was  it  brought  to  pass, 

that  in  our  times Assemblies  were  instituted  in  the  city, 

much  what  afier  the  form  of  those  apostolical  conventions; 
such  especially  as  by  the  apostle  were  appointed  for  dis* 
coursing  of  divine  matters,  both  for  edifying  the  hearers,  and 
for  propagating  the  church. — —  It  was  agreed,  that  the  zea- 
lous Christians  should  meet  a-days  at  Saint  Hierom*s  Ora- 
tory, and  there  a  religious  meeting  should  be  \v^\dL^^^«t^% 
manner.    First,  silenxie  being  made,  they  he^'^iXi  viWXv  ^x^^ex » 


•  CCCClxXXiv  PREFACE, 

,  and  one  of  the  brothers  reads  some  pious  lesson.     At  the 
reading  of  which,  the  father  used  to  interpose  upon  occasion, 
explaining  more  fully,  enlarging  and  vehemently  inculca- 
ting on  the  minds  of  the  auditors  the  things  read,  continu- 
ing his  discourse  sometime  a  whole  hour  (to  the  great  satis- 
faction of  the  hearers)  dialogue-wise,  asking  some  of  the 
company  their  opinions  of  such  a  thing. '   Afterward,  by  his 
appointment,  one  of  them  went  up  into  the  desk,  raised  up- 
on steps,  and  made  an  oration,  without  flourishes  or  varnish 
,of  language,  composed  out  of  the  approved  and  choice  lives 
of  saints,  sacred  writ,  and  sentences  of  holy  fathets.    .He 
that  succeeded  him,  discoursed  after  the  satne  manner,  but 
on  a  differing  matter.    Then  followed  the  third,  who  related 
some  part  of  the  church  story  in  the  order  of  its  several  ages. 
Every  one  of  these  had  his  half^hour  allotted  him,  and  per- 
formed all  with  marvellous  delight  and  approbation ;  dien 
singing  some  hymn,  and  going  to  prayers  again,  the  compa- 
ny broke  up.    All  things  thus  ordered,  and  ratified  by  th^ 
pope  as  far  as  the  times  would  suffer,  the  beautiful  face  of 
the  primitive  apostolical  assembling,  seemed  to  be  revived 
again;  whereat  all  good  men  rejoicing,  and  many  taking 
their  model  from  them,  the  like  exercises  of  piety  were  set 
up  and  practised  in  other  places."    So  far  Baroniiis. 

If  any  say  that  this  long  and  zealous  exercise  was  not  in 
private  houses ;  I  answer,  allow  us  an  oratory,  as  the  pope 
himself  allowed  them,  and  we  had  rather  far  be  there  than  in 
private  houses :  but  if  any  that  hinder  such  from  being  pub- 
lic, shall  then  reproach  it  for  being  in  a  less  public  place, 
they  scarce  play  fair.  The  churoh  of  England,  in  the  third 
part  of  the  sermon  against  Peril  of  Idolatry,  pp.  6*6,  67. 
saith.  In  Maximinian  and  Gonstantius  the  emperor's  pro- 
clamation, the  places  where  Christians  resorted  to  public 
prayer,  were  called  conventicles.    See  further. 

But  how  were  the  Oratorians  esteemed  and  used  ?  In 
Chap.  xvi.  of  Nerius's  Persecutions,  after  the  mention  of 
men's  rancour  and  railing  that  maligned  him,  it  follows,  p. 
56. ''  that  the  prelate  that  was  deputy  of  the  city,  moved  by 
the  reports  of  them  that  bore  a  spleen  to  Philip,  sent  for 
him,  and  reprehended  him  sharply :  '  Is  it  not  a  shame  (saith 
be)  that  you  who  ptofe^^  ^  e^xit^Tsv^t  of  the  world,  should 


PREFACE.  CCCclXXXV 

hunt  for  popular  applause,  and  walk  through  the  city  guard* 
ed  with  troops,  with  such  nets  as  these,  fishing  for  church- 
preferments  ?'  When  having  shrewdly  taunted  him  with 
suchlike  expressions,  he  prohibits  him  the^h^aring  of  con- 
fessions for  fifteen  days,  and  to  use  the  customs  of  the  Ora- 
tory, but  by  leave  first  obtained,  or  to  lead  about  with  him 
any  companies  of  men,  threatening  imprisonment  upon  his 
disobedience :  neither  would  he  let  him  depart  till  he  put  in 
security  for  his  appearance,  saying,  '  Come,  you  do  all  this 
not  for  the  glory  of  Ood,  but  to  make  a  party  for  yourself. 
Meantime,  while  the  good  man  was  commending  himself  to 
God,  having  entreated  divers  religious  persons  to  be  instant 
in  prayer  about  this  business,  one  appeareth,  and  saith, 
*  This  trouble  shall  ))e  quickly  over,  and  the  work  that  is 
begun  be  more  strongly  confirmed ;  they  who  resist  now, 
shall  assist  hereafter ;  and  if  any  one  shall  dare  to  oppose  it 
any  longer,  God  shall  speedily  avenge  it  on  him :  The  pre- 
late, that  is  your  chiefest  adversary,  shall  certainly  die  with- 
in fifteen  days.'  And  it  fell  out  precisely  as  he  foretold ;  for 
the  prelate  (the  Pope's  deputy)  relating  the  proceedings  to 
his  Holiness  somewhat  partially,  died  suddenly.  No  sooner 
was  thi«  blaze  of  persecutions  out,  but  a  much  fiercer  was  ^ 
kindled  against  the  order :  for  under  pretext  of  piety  and 
religion,  some  possessed  the  Pope  that  the  preachers  of  St. 
Hieroms,  many  times  delivered  things  ridiculous,  and  un- 
sound, which  argued  high  indiscretion,  or  ignorance,  and 

must  needs  endanger  their  hearers." 

I  would  not  have  troubled  you  with  any  of  these  citations, 
but,  to  let  those  know  that  are  ofiended  at  my  reproof  of 
impious  Ministers,  that  in  all  places  and  parties  in  the  world, 
where  there  is  any  serious  diligence  for  salvation,  there  are 
always  enemies  of  the  same  profession  even  among  the 
Clergy  as  well  as  others.  The  hindering  of  holy  diligence 
and  seriousness,  is  the  work  of  the  devil  and  his  instruments 
in  the  world.  The  promoting  it  is  the  work  of  Christ,  and 
of  his  servants.  The  great  actions  of  the  world  are  but  the 
conflicting  of  these  two  armies,  the  salvation  of  the  conque- 
rors, and  the  damnation  of  the  conquered  being  the  end.  By 
this  contending  for  faith  and  holiness,  and  bearing  the  cross, 
I  take  myself  bound  to  perform  my  covenawl  o^  *  ^^^^^^ia^s^ 


CCCclxXXvi  PREFACE. 

the  faith  of  Christ  cracified^  and  manfully  fighting  under 
his  banner,  against  the  devil,  the  world,  and  the  flesh,  to  my 
lives'  end.'  Reader,  thou  art  engaged  to  the  like  as  well  as 
I,  and  shalt  be  judged  accordingly,  and  reap  as  thou  hast 
sowed.    CHOOSE  and  DO  as  thou  wilt  SPEED. 


NOW  OR  NEVER. 


ECCLESIASTES  ix.  10. 


Whatsoever  thy  hand  findeth  to  do,  doit  with  thy  might ;  for  there  is 
no  work,  nor  device,  nor  knowledge,  nor  wisdom  in  the  grave  whither 
thou  goest. 

The  mortality  of  man  being  the  principal  subject  of  Solo- 
mon in  this  chapter,  and  observing  that  wisdom  and  piety 
exempt  not  men  from  death,  he  first  hence  infers,  that  God's 
love  or  hatred  to  one  man  above  another,  is  not  to  be  gather- 
ed by  his  dealing  with  them  here,  where  "  all  things'*  in  the 
common  course  of  providence  "  do  come  alike  to  all."  The 
common  sin  hath  introduced  death  as  a  common  punishment, 
which  levelleth  all,  and  endeth  all  the  contrivances,  busi- 
nesses,  and  enjoyments  of  this  life,  to  good  and  bad  ;  and 
the  discriminating  justice  is  not  ordinarily  manifested  here. 
An  epicure  or  infidel  would  think  Solomon  were  here  plead- 
ing their  unmanly,  impious  cause;  but  it  is  not  the. cessa- 
tion of  the  life,  or  operations,,  or  enjoyments  of  the  soul  that 
he  is  speaking  of,  as  if  there  were  no  life  to  come,  or  the 
sx)ul  of  man  were  not  immortal;  but  it  is  the  cessation  of  all 
the  actions,  and  honours,  and  pleasures  of  this  life,  whiph  to 
good  or  bad  shall  be  no  more.  Here  they  have  no  more  re- 
ward, the  memory  of  them  will  be  here  forgotten.  "  They 
have  no  more  a  portion  for  ever  in  any  thing  that  is  done  un- 
der the  sun  *.'* 

From  hence  he  further  inferreth,  that  the  comforts  of  life 
are  but  short  and  transitory,  and,  therefore,  that  what  the 
creature  can  afford,  must  be  presently  taken :  and  as  the 
wicked  shall  have  no  more  but  present  pleasures,  so  the 
faithful  may  take  their  lawful  comforts  m  tVv^^x^^^w\>\sva^^- 

*  Eccles.  ix.  5,  6. 


488  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

rate  use  of  creatures ;  for  if  their  delightful  goodness  be  of 
right  and  use  to  any,  it  is  to  them :  and  therefore,  though 
they  may  not  use  them  to  their  hurt,  to  the  pampering  of  their 
flesh,  and  strengthening  their  lusts,  and  hindering  spiritual 
duties,  benefits,  and  salvation,  yet  must  they  "  serve  the 
Lord  with  joyfulness,  and  with  gladness  of  heart,  for  the 
abundance  of  all  things,"  which  he  giveth  them  **• 

Next,  he  inferreth  from  the  brevity  of  man's  life,  the  ne- 
cessity of  speed,  and  diligence  in  his  duty.  And  this  is  in 
the  words  of  ray  text:  where  you  have,  I.  The  Duty  com- 
manded.    II.  The  Reason  or  Motive  to  enforce  it.  ^ 

The  Duty  is  in  the  first  part,  "  Whatsoever  thy  hand 
findeth  to  do,''  that  is,  whatever  work  is  assigned  thee  by 
God  to  do  in  this  transitory  life,  "do  it  with  thy  might;" 
that  is,  1.  Speedily,  without  delay.  2.  Diligentiy,  and  as 
well  as  thou  art  able,  and  not  wiUi  slothfulness,  or  by  the 
halves. 

The  Motive  is  in  the  latter  part ;  "  For  there  is  no  work 
nor  device,  nor  knowledge,  nor  wisdom  in  the  grave  whither 
thou  goest ;"  that  is,  it  must  be  now  or  never :  the  grave^ 
where  thy  work  cannot  be  done,  will  quickly  end  thy  oppor- 
tunities. The  Chaldee  paraphrase  appropriates  the  sense  too 
narrowly  to  works  of  charity,  or  alms  ;  *  whatsoever  good 
and  alms-giving  thou  findest  to  do  :'  and  the  moving  reason 
they  read  accordingly,  '  for  nothing  but  thy  works  of  righ- 
teousness and  mercy  follow  thee.'  But  the  words  are  more 
general,  and  the  sense  is  obvious,  contained  in  these  two 
propositions. 

Doct.  I.  The  work  of  this  life  cannot  be  done,  when  this 
life  is  ended.  Or,  There  is  no  working  in  the  grave,  to  which 
we  are  all  making  haste. 

Doct.  II.  Therefore  while  we  have  time,  we  must  do  our 
best.  Or,  Do  the  work  of  this  present  life  with  vigour  and 
diligence. 

It  is  from  an  unquestionable  and  commonly  acknowledg- 
ed truth,  that  Solomon  here  urgeth  us  to  diligence  in  duty ; 
and  therefore  to  prove  it  would  be  but  loss  of  time.  As 
there  are  two  worlds  for  man  to  live  in,  and  so  two  lives  for 
man  to  live,  so  each  of  these  lives  hath  its  peculiar  employ- 
ment.    This  is  the  life  of  preparation  ;  the  next  is  the  life  of 


NOW  OR  MEV£R.  489 

our  reward  or  punishment :  we  are  now  but  in  the  womb  of 
eternity,  and  must  live  hereafter  in  the  open  world.  We  are 
now  but  set  to  school  to  learn  the  work  that  we  must  do  for 
ever.  This  is  the  time  of  our  apprenticeship ;  we  are  learn- 
ing the  trade  that  we  must  live  upon  in  heaven.  We  run  now, 
that  we  may  then  receive  the  crown ;  we  fight  now,  that  we 
may  then  triumph  in  victory.  The  grave  hath  no  work,  but 
heaven  hath  work  ;  and  hell  hath  suffering  :  there  is  no  re- 
pentance unto  life  hereafker ;  but  there  is  repentance  unto 
torment,  and  to  desperation.  There  is  no  believing  of  a  hap-, 
piness  unseen  in  order  to  the  obtaining  of  it;  or  of  a  misery 
unseen  in  order  to  the  escaping  of  it ;  nor  believing  in  a  Sa- 
viour in  order  to  these  ends  :  but  there  is  the  fruition  of  the 
happiness  which  was  here  believed  ;  and  feeling  of  the  mi- 
sery that  men  would  not  believe  ;  and  suffering  from  him  as 
a  righteous  Judge,  whpm  they  rejected  as  a  merciful  Saviour.  > 
So  that  it  is  not  all  work  that  ceaseth  at  our  death ;  but  only 
the  work  of  this  present  life. 

And  indeed  no  reason  can  shew  us  the  least  probability 
of  doing  our  work  when  our  time  is  done,  that  was  given  us 
to  diP^tit  in.  If  it  can  be  done,  it  iaust  be,  1.  By  the  recall- 
ing of  our  time.  2.  By  the  return  of  life.  3.  Or,  by  oppor- 
tunil^.in  another  life :  but  there  is  no  hope  of  any  of  these. 
:  1.  Who  knoweth  not  that  time  cannot  be  recalled? 
That  which  once  was  will  be  no  more.  Yesterday  will  never 
come  again.  To-day  is  passing,  and  will  not  return.  You 
may  work  while  it  is  day ;  but  when  you  have  lost  that  day, 
it  will  not  return  for  you  to  work  in.  While  your  candle 
burneth,  you  nfty  make  use  of  its  light,  but  when  it  is  done,, 
it  is  too  late  to  use  it.  No  force  of  medicine,  no  orator's 
elegant  persuasions,  no  worldling's  wealth,  no  prince's 
power,  can  call  back  one  day  or  hour  of  time.  If  they  could,^ 
what  endeavours  would  there  be  used,  when  extremity  hath 
taught  them  to  value  what  they  now  despise  ?  What  chaf- 
ferings  would  there  be  at  last,  if  time  could  be  purchased 
for  any  thing  that  man  can  give !  Then  misers  would  bring 
out  their  wealth  and  say, '  All  this  will  I  give  for  one  day's 
time  of  repentance  more.'  And  lords  and  knights  would  lay 
down  their  honours,  and  say, '  Take  all,  and  let  us  be  the 
basest  beggars,  if  we  may  but  have  one  year  of  t\iei\\£L<&\!ci*^^ 
we  misspeat/    Then  kings  would  lay  dovju  \J[i«tt  c.\qwxl^ 


/ 


490  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

and  say^  '  Let  us  be  equal  with  the  lowest  subjects,  so  we^ 
may  but  have  the  time  again  that  we  wasted  in  the  osrai 
and  pleasures  of  the  world*^  Kingdoms  would  then  Beem'4 
contemptible  price  for  the  recovery  of  time.  The  time  €M 
is  now  idled  and  talked  away ;  the  time  that  is  now  feasted 
and  complimented  away  ;  that  is  unnecessarily  sported  aod 
slept  away ;  that  is  wickedly  and  presumptuously  sinned 
away ;  how  precious  will  it  one  day  seem  to  all !  •  How  hap- 
py a  bargain  would  they  think  that  they  had  made,  if  at  the 
dearest  rates  they  could  redeem  it !  T^e  proftmest  mamer 
falls  a  praying,  when  he  fears  his  time  is  at  an^end.  If  im- 
portunity would  then  prevail,  how  earnestly  would  they  pray 
for  the  recovery  of  time,  that  formerly  derided  praying,  or 
minded  it  not,  or  could  not  have  while,  or  mocked  Qodwith 
lip-service,  and  customary  forms,  and  feigned  words  instead 
of  praying !  What  a  liturgy,  would  death  teach  tbe  trifling, 
tkne-despising  gallants,  the  idle,  busy,  dreaming-active,  am- 
bitious, covetous  lovers  of  this  world,  if  time  could  be  en- 
treated to  return !  How  passionately  then  would  they  roar 
out  their  requests  !  '  O  Uiat  we  might  once  see  lire  days  of 
hope,  and  means,  and  merey,  which  once  we  saw,  and  would 
not  see !  O  that  we  had  those  days  to  spend  in  penitential 
tears  and  prayers,  and  holy  preparations  for  an  endless  life, 
which  we  spent  at  cards,  in  needless  recreations,  in  idle  talk, 
in  humouring  others,  on  the  pleasing  of  our  flesh,  or  in  tiie 
inordinate  cares  and  businesses  of  the  world !  O  that  our 
youthful  vigour  might  return  !  that  our  years  might  be  re- 
newed !  that  the  days  we  spent  in  vanity  might  be  recalled ! 
that  ministers  might  again  be  sent  to  us  publicly  and  pn- 
vately,  with  the  message  of  grace  that  we  once  made  light 
of!  that  the  sun  would  once  more  shine  upon  us!  and  pa- 
tience and  mercy  would  once  more  reassume  their  work !' 
If  cries  or  tears,  or  price  or  pains,  would  bring  back  lost,' 
abused  time,  how  happy  were  the  now  distracted,  dreaming, 
dead-hearted,  and  impenitent  world  !  If  it  would  then  serve 
their  turn  to  say  to  the  vigilant  believers,  "  Give  us  of  yoiir= 
oil,  for  our  lamps  are  gonecut,'*  orto  cry,  "  Lord,  Lord,  open 
to  us,"  when  the  door  is  shut,  the  foolish  would  be  saved  as 
well  as  the  wise*^.  But  '*  this  is  the  day  of  salvation  !  this 
13  the  accepted  tVme'^ "    **  WVaVe  \tk  called  to-day,  hear- 

«  Matt.  x\v.  «.  10,  U.  '^  *^l^w.Nv«s.. 


NOW    OR    NEVER.  491 

ken»  and  harden  iiDt  your  hearts  V  Aifake  thou  that  steep- 
est, and  stand  np  from  thy  sk>thfml>  wilful  death,  and  use 
Ae  light  that  is  afforded  thee  by  Christ  ^  or  else  the 
everlasting,  utter  darkness,  will  shortly  end  thy  time  and 
hope. 

2.  And  as  time  can  never  be  recalled,  so  life  shall  never 
be  here  restored.  **  If  a  man  die,  shall  he  live  (here)  again  1 
All  the  days  of  our  appointed  time  we  must  therefore  wait 
(in  jaith  and  diligence)  till  our  change  shall  come^."  One 
life  is  appointed  us  an  earth  to  dispatch  the  wotk  that  our 
everlasting  life  dependetb  on ;  and  we  shall  have  but  one. 
Lose  that,  and  ail  is  lost  for  ever.  Yet  you  may  hear,  and 
read,  and  learn,  slnd  pray ;  but  when  this  life  is  ended,  it  shall 
be  so  no  more.  You  shall  rise  from  die  dead  indeed  to  jndg* 
ment,  and  to  the  life  that  now  you  are  preparing  for;  but 
never  to  such  a  life  as  this  on  earth :  your  life  is  as  the  fight- 
ing of  a  battle,  that  must  be  won  or  lost  at  once.  There  is 
no  coming  hither  again  to  mend  what  is  done  amiss.  Over- 
sights must  be  presently  corrected  by  repentance,  or  else 
they  are  everlastingly  past  remedy.  Now  if  you  be  not  truly 
converted,  you  may  be :  if  you  find  that  you  are  carnal  and 
miserable,  you  may  be  healed :  if  you  are  unpardoned,  you^ 
may  be  pardoned :  if  you  are  enemies,  you  may  be  recouf-. 
ciled  to  God  :  but  when  once  the  thread  of  life  is  cut,  your 
opportunities  are  at  an  end.  Now  you  may  inquire  of  your 
friends  and  teachers,  what  a  poor  soul  must  do  that  he  must 
be  saved,  and  you  may  receive  particular  instructions  and 
exhortations,  and  Gpd  may  bless  them  to  the  illdminating, 
renewing,  and  saving  of  your  souls ;  but  when  life  is  past,  it- 
will  be  so  no  more.  Q  then,  if  desperate  souls  might  but  re- 
turn, and  once  more  be  tried  with  the  means  of  life,  what, 
joyful  tidings  would  it  be!  How  welcome  would  the  mes- 
senger be  that  bringeth  it!  Had  hell:  but  such  an  offer  as 
this,  and  would  any  cries  procure  it  fbom  their  righteous 
J«dge,  O  what  a  change  would  be  among  them !  How  im- 
portunately would  they  cry  to  God,  'O  send  us  once  again 
unto  the  earth !  Once  more  let  us  see  the  face  of  mercy,  and 
hear  the  tenders  of  Christ  and  of  salvation !  Once  more  let 
the  ministers  offer  us  their  helps,  and  teach  in  season  and 
out  of  season,  in  public  ahd  in  private,  and  ¥ie  vi'iXV  t^lxx^^ 

«  PsaL  xcr,  8.  f  Epliefi.  v.  14.  «  JoVj  il\v.\^- 


492  NOW    OR    K£V£R. 

their  help  aad  exhortationa.  no  more ;  we  will  hate  them  and 
drive  them  away  from  our  houses  and  towns  no  more*  Once 
more  let  us  have  thy  word  and  ordinancefb/and  try  whether 
we  will  not  believe  them,  and  use  them  better  than  we  did. 
Once  more  let  us  have  the  help  and  company  of  thy  saints, 
and  we  will  scorn  them,  and  abuse  them,  and  persecute  them 
no  more.  O  for  the  great,  invaluable  mercy  of  such  a  life  as 
once  we  had !  O  try  us  once  more  with  such  a  life,  and  see 
whether  we  will  not  contemn  the  world,  and  close  with 
Christ,  and  live  as  strictly,  and  pray  as  earnestly,  as  those 
that  we  hated  and  abused  for  so  doing!  O  tliat  we  might 
once  more  be  admitted  into  the  holy  assemblies,  and^  have 
the  Lord's  days  to  spend  in  the  business  of  our  salvation ! 
We  would  plead  no  i^ore  against  the  power  and  purity  of 
the  ordinances :  we  would  no  more  call  that  day  a  burden, 
nor  hate  them  that  spent  it  in  works  of  holiness,  nor  plead 
for  the  liberty  of  the  flesh  therein.' 
f  It  makes  my  heart  even  shake  within  me,  to  think  with 
';  what  cries  those  damned  souls  would  strive  with  God,  and 
how  they  would  roar  out, '  O  try  us  once  again,'  if  they  bad 
but  the  least  encouragement  of  hope!  But  it  will  not  be; 
it  must  not  be !  They  had  their  day,  and  would  not  know 
it.  They  cannot  lose  their  time  and  have  it.  They  had 
I  /  fai^ful  guides,  and  would  not  follow  them  :  teachers  they 
had,  but  would  not  learn.  The  dust  of  their  feet  must  wit- 
ness against  them,  because  their  entertained  obeyed  mes- 
sage cannot  witness  for  them.  Long  did  Christ  wait  with 
the  patient  tenders  of  his  blood  and  Spirit :  his  grace  was 
long  and  earnestly  offered  them,  but  could  not  be  regarded, 
and  received.  And  they  cannot  finally  refuse  a  Christ,  and 
yet  have  a  Christ ;  or  refuse  his  mercy,  and  yet  be  saved  by 
it.  He  that  would  have  Lazarus  sent  from  the  dead  to  warn 
his  unbelieving  brethren  on  earth,  no  doubt  would  have 
strongly  purposed  himself  on  a  reformation,  if  he  might  once 
more  have  been  tried.  And  how  earnestly  would  he  have 
begged  for  such  a  trial,  that  begged  so  hard  for  a  drop  of 
water  !  But,  alas !  such  mouths  must  be  stopped  for  ever 
with  a  "  Remember,  that  thou  in  thy  lifetime  receivedst  thy 
good  things  **." 

So  that  '*  It  is  appointed  fox  ^Vlxxv^^n  ouce  to  die,  and  af- 

^  LuVe  XN\.  ^4>  ^6.  •«  >'t'^ 


NOW   OR    NEVER.  493 

ter  that  the  judgment  ^"  But  there  is  no  return  to  earth 
again.  The  places  of  your  abode,  employment,  and  delight 
shall  know  you  no  more*  You  must  see  these  faces  of  your 
friends,  and  converse  in  flesh  with  men,  no  more!  ""This 
world,  these  houses,  this  wealth  and  honour,  as  to  any  frui- 
tion, must  be  to  you  as  if  you  had  never  known  them.  .  You 
must  assemble  here  but  a  little  while!  yet  a  little  longer, 
and  we  must  preach,  and  you  must  hear  it  no  more  for  ever. 
That,  therefore,  which  you  will  do,  must  presently  be  done, 
or  it  will  be  too  late.  If  ever  you  will  repent  and  believe, 
it  must  be  now.  If  ever  you  will  be  converted  and  sancti- 
fied, it  must  be  now.  If  ever  you  will  be  pardoned,  and  re- 
conciled to  God,  it  must  be  now.  If  ever  you  will  reign,  it 
is  now  that  you  must  fight  and  conquer.  O  that  you  were 
wise,  that  you  understood  this,  and  that  you  would  consider 
your  latter  end  ^.  And  that  you  would  let  those  words  sink 
down  into  your  hearts,  which  came  from  the  heart  of  the 
Redeemer,  as  was  witnessed  by  his  tears  :  **  If  thou  hadst 
known,  even  thou,  at  least  in  this  thy  day,  the  things  which 
belong  unto  thy  peace.  But  now  they  are  hidden  from 
thine  eyes  ^"  And  that  these  warnings  may  not  be  the  less 
regarded,  because  you  have  so  often  heard  them,  when  often 
hearing  increaseth  your  obligation,  and  diminisheth  not  the 
truth,  or  your  danger. 

3.  And  as  there  is  no  return  to  earth,  so  there  is  no  do- 
ing this  work  hereafter.  Heaven  and  hell  are  for  other  work . 
If  the  infant  be  dead-bom,  the  open  world  will  not  revive 
him.  That  which  is  generated,  and  bom  a  beast  or  serpent, 
will  not,  by  all  the  influences  of  the  heavens,  or  all  the 
powers  of  sun  or  earth,  become  a  man.  The  second  and 
third  concoction  presuppose  the  first ;  the  harvest  doth  pre- 
suppose the  seed-time,  and  the  labour  of  the  husbandman. 
It  is  now  that  you  must  sow,  and  hereafter  that  you  must 
reap.  It  is  now  that  you  must  work,  and  then  that  you 
must  receive  your  wages.  Is  this  believed  and  considered 
by  the  sleepy  world  ?  Alas,  sirs,  do  you  live  as  men  that 
must  live  here  no  more  ?  Do  you  work  as  men  that  must 
work  no  more,  and  pray  as  men  that  must  pray  no  more, 
when  once  the  time  of  work  is  ended  ?  What  thinkest  thou, 
poor  besotted  sinner !  will  God  command  the  ^vxw  1^  ^X.'dxv^ 

'  Heb.  xix.  f?.  k  Deut.  xxxii.  29.  ^  l-uVt  iXil.  ^\^ A^'l. 


494  NOW    OR    NRVBK. 

Still  while  thou  rebelleat  or  forgetteat  thy  work  and  him? 
Po^t  thou  look  he  lAould  pervert  the  course  of  nature,  and 
continue  the  spring  and  9«eed-time  till  thou  hast  a  mind  to 
sow  ?  or  that  he  will  return  the  dead-bom,  or  mishupen  in- 
fant into  the  womb,  that  it  may  be  better  formed  or  quick- 
ened ?  Will  he  ren^ew  thy  age  and  make  thee  young  again, 
and  call  back  the  houp9  that  thou  prodigally  wastedst  on  ihy 
lusts  and  idleness  ?  Canst  thou  look  for  ^s  at  the  hand  of 
God,  when  nature  and  Scripture  assure  thee  of  the  contrary? 
If  not,  why  hast  thou  not  yet  done  with  thy  beloved  sins? 
Why  hast  thou  not  yet  begun  to  live  ?  Why  sittest  thou 
still,  while  thy  soul  is  unrenewed,  and  all  thy  preparation  for 
death  and  judgment  is  yet  to  make  ?  Hotv  fain  would  sa- 
tan  find  thee  thus  at  death.  How  fain  would  he  liave  leave 
to  blow  out  thy  candle,  before  thou  hast  entered  into  the 
way  of  life.  Dost  thou  look  to  have  preachers  sent  after 
^  thee,  to  bring  thee  the  mercy  which  thy  contempt  here  left 
{  hehwd  ?  Wilt  thou  hear  and  be  converted  in  the  grave  and 
hell?  or  wilt  thou  be  saved  without  holiness  ?  that  is,  m  the 
despite  of  God,  that  hatb  rescdved,  it  shall  not  be  ?  O  ye 
sons  of  sleep,  of  death,  6(  darkness,  awake  and  live,  and  hear 
the  Lord,  before  the  grave  and  hell  have  shut  their  mouthi 
upon  you !  Hear  now,  lest  hearing  be  too  late !  Hear  now 
if  you  will  ever  hear !  Hear  now  if  you  have  ears  to  hear! 
And  O  ye  sons  of  light,  that  see  what  sleeping  sinners  see 
not,  call  to  them,  and  ring  them  such  a  peal  of  lamentations, 
tears,  and  compassionate  entreaties,  as  is  suited  to  such  a 
dead  and  doleful  state ;  who  knows  but  God  may  bless  itto 
awake  them  ? 

If  any  of  you  be  so  far  awakened,  as  to  ask  me,  what  I 
am  calling  you  to  do,  my  text  tells  you  in  general.  Up  and 
be  doing.  Look  about  you,  and  see  what  you  have  to  do, 
and  do  it  with  your  might. 

1.  •*  Whatsoever  thy  hand  findeth  to  do ;"  that  is,  what- 
soever is  a  duty  imposed  by  the  Lord,  whatsoever  is  a  means 
conducing  to  thy  own  or  other's  welfare ;  whatsoever  neces- 
sity calleth  thee  to  do,  and  opportunity  alloweth  thee 
to  do. 

"  Thy  hand  findeth ;"  that  is,  thy  executive  power  by 
the  conduct  of  thy  undet^\.^xid\w^  \%  xvo^  to  do. 

Do  it  with  t\\y  mVgViX."    \>o  V!k^  \i^^V  \w\V..   X.'^tv^^ 


if 


NOW    OR    NEVER.  496 

not,  bat  do  it  presently,  without  unneoessary  delay.  2.  Do 
it  resolutely.  Remain  not  doubtful,  unresolved,  in  suspense 
as  if  it  were  yet  a  question  with  thee  whether  thou  shouldst 
do  it  or  not. 

.3.  Do  it  with  thy  most  awakened  affections,  and  serious 
intention  of  the  powers  of  thy  soul.  Sleepiness  and  inseuf- 
sihility  are  most  unauitable  to  such  works.  It  is  a  peculiar 
people,  zealous  of  good  works  that  Christ  hath  purchased  to 
himself  °'. 

,.  4.  Do  it  with  all  necessary  forecast  and  contrivance. 
Not  with  a  distracting,  hindering  care ;  but  with  such  a  care 
lui  may  shew  that  you  despise  not  your  master,  and  are  not 
regardless. of  his  work.  And  with  such  a  care  as  is  suited 
|»  the  di£Bboulties  and  nature  of  the  thing,  and  is  necessary 
to  tlie .  due  accomplishment. 

,5.  Do  it  not  slothfuUy,  but  vigorously,  and  with  dili- 
gence. Stick  not  at  thy  labour,  lest  thou  hear,  ''Thou 
wicked  and  slothful  servant  ^."  ''  Hide  not  thy  hand  in  thy 
liosom  with  the  slothful,"  and  say  not,  ''  There  is  a  lion  in 
Ihe  way  ^.''  The  negligent  and  Uie  vicious,  the  waster  and 
iihe  slothful,  differ  but  as  one  brother  from  another  p.  As  the 
aelf*murder  of  the  wilfully  ungodly,  so  also  **  the  desire  of 
die  slotbfiil  killeth  him,  because  his  hands  refuse  to  labour  ^." 
**  The  soul  of.  the  sluggard  desireth  and  hath  nothing ;  but 
the  soul  of  the  diligent  shall  be  made  fat  ^''  ''  Be  thou  not 
slothful  in  business,  but  be  fervent  in  Spirit  serving  the 

LordV  

.  .  ,6.  Do  it  with  constancy,  and  not  with  destructive  pauses 
and  intermissions,  or  with  weariness  and  turning  back. 
f '  The  righteous  shall  hold  on  his  way,  and  he  that  is  of 
Glean;hands  shall  be  stronger  and  stronger  ^"  **  Be  steadfast, 
immoveable,  always  abounding  in  the  work  of  the  Lord ; 
foraismuch  as  you  know  that  your  labour  is  not  in  vain  in 
the  iLord  "."  "  Be  not  weary  of  well  doing ;  for  in  due  sear 
son  we  shall  reap  if  we  faint  not  */*  These  six  particulars 
are  necessary,  if  you  will  observe  the  precept  in  my  text. 
But  that  misunderstanding  hinder  not  the  performance, 

™  Tit.  ii.  14.  n  Matt.  xsv.  26.  •  Prov.  xxvi.  13,  14. 

P  Prov.  xviii.  9.  ^  Prov.  xxi   25.  "^  Prov.  xiii.  4. 

■  Rom.  lii.  11.  » Job  xvii.  9.  *»  1  Cov.  \n.  b^» 
»  Gal,  v'u  9. 


4"- 


496  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

I  shall  acquaint  you  further  with  the  sense,  by  these  few  ex- 
plicatory cautions. 

1.  The  Might  and  Diligence  here  required,  excludeih 
not  the  necessity  of  deliberation  and  prudent  conduct. 
Otherwise,  the  faster  you  go,  the  further  you  may  go  out  of 
the  way ;  and  misguided  zeal  may  spoil  all  the  work,  and 
make  it  but  an  injury  to  others  or  yourselves.  A  little  im- 
prudence in  the  season,  and  order,  and  manner  of  a  duty, 
sometimes  may  spoil  it,  and  hinder  the  success,  and  make  it 
to  do  more  hurt  than  good.  How  many  a  sermon,  or  prayer, 
or  reproof  is  made  the  matter  of  derision  and  contempt,  for 
some  imprudent  passages  or  deportment  ?  God  sendeth  not 
his  servants  to  be  jesters  of  the  world,  or  to  play  the  mad- 
men as  David  in  his  fears  :  we  miist  be  wise  and  innocent, 
as  well  as  resolute  and  valiant.  Though  fleshly  and  worldly 
wisdom  be  not  desirable,  as  being  but  foolishness  with  Qod, 
yet  the  ''wisdom  which  ;s  from  above,  and  is  first  pure, and 
then  peaceable,''  and  is  acquainted  with  the  high  and  hid- 
den mysteries,  and  is  "justified  of  her  children/'  must  be 
the  guide  of  all  our  holy  actions.  HoUness  is  not  bliad. 
Illumination  is  the  first  part  of  sanctification.  Believers  are 
children  of  the  light.  Nothing  requireth  so  much  wisdom 
as  the  matters  of  God,  and  of  our  salvation.  Folly  is  most 
unsuitable  to  such  excellent  employments,  and  most  unbe- 
seeming the  sons  of  the  Most  High.  It  is  a  spirit  of  wis- 
dom that  animateth  all  the  saints  ^.  It  is  the  treasures  of 
wisdom  that  dwelleth  in  Christ,  and  are  communicated  to 
his  members.'  We  must "  walk  in  wisdom  toward  them  that 
are  without*."  And  our  '^  work  must  be  shewn  out  of  a 
good  conversation,  with  meekness  of  wisdom  **."  Yet  I  must 
needs  say,  that  it  is  more  in  great  things  than  in  small,  in 
the  substance  than  the  circumstances ;  in  a  sound  judgment 
and  estimate  of  things,  and  suitable  choice  and  prosecution, 
than  in  fine  expressions  or  deportment,  answering  proud 
men's  expectations. 

2.  Though  you  must  work  with  your  might,  yet  with  a 
diversity  agreeable  to  the  quality  of  your  several  works. 
Some  works  must  be  preferred  before  others.  All  cannot 
be  done  at  once.    That  is  a  sin  out  of  season,  which  in  sea- 

yiCor.in.19.  u  6,7r   E.vWv.^.VT,  C«V\\\.\6.  sCoLiUS. 

»  Col.  iv.  5.  .  ^  3am,  \\\.  \S, 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  497 

son  is  a  duty.  The  greatest  and  the!  most  urgent  work  must 
be  preferred.  And  some  works  must  be  done  with  double 
fervour  and  resolution,  and  some  with  less.  Buying,  and 
selling,  and  marrying,  and  possessing,  and  using  the  world, 
must  be  done  with  a  fear  of  overdoing,  and  in  a  sort  as  if  we 
did  them  not,  though  they  also  must  have  a  necessary  dili- 
gence ^.  God's  kingdom  and  its  righteousness  must  be  first 
sought  °.  And  our  labour  for  the  meat  that  perisheth,  must 
be  comparatively  as  none  *^. 

3.  Lastly,  it  is  not  an  irregular,  nor  a  self-disturbing, 
vexatious  violence  that  is  required  of  us ;  but  a  sweet,  well- 
settled  resolution,  and  a  delightful,  expeditious  diligence, 
that  makes  the  wheels  go  merrily  od,  and  the  more  easily 
get  over  those  rubs  and  difficulties,  that  clog  and  stop  a 
slothful  soul. 

And  now  will  you  lend  me  the  assistance  of  your  consci- 
ences, for  the  transcribing  of  this  command  of  God  upon 
your  hearts,  and  taking  out  a  copy  of  this  order,  for  the  re- 
gulating of  your  lives  ?  *  Whatsoever,*  is  not  a  word  so 
comprehensive  as  to  include  any  vanity  or  sin ;  but  so  com- 
prehensive as  to  include  all  your  duty. 
^.  .  1.  To  begin  with  the  lowest:  the  very  works  of  your 
bodily  callings  must  have  diligence.  **  In  the  sweat  of  your 
brows  you  must  eat  your  bread  ®."  "  Six  days  shalt  thou  la- 
bour, and  do  all  that  thou  hast  to  do  ^."  "  He  that  will  not 
work,  let  him  not  eat «."  *'  Disorderly  walkers,  busybodies, 
that  will  not  work  with  quietness,  and  eat  their  own  bread, 
are  to  be  avoided  and  shamed  by  the  church  ^''  Lazy  ser- 
yatits  are  unfaithful  to  men,  and  disobedient  to  God,  who 
commandeth  them  to  "  obey  their  masters  according  to  the 
flesh'*  (unbelieving,  ungodly  masters)  "  in  all  things,"  (that 
concerns  their  service)  "and  that  not  with  eye-service,  as 
men-pleasers,  but  in  singleness  of  heart,  and  in  the  fear  of 
God,  .doing  whatsoever  they  do  as  to  the  Lord;  and  not  unto 
men  ;  knowing  that  of  the  Lord"  (even  for  this)  "  they  shall 
receive  the  reward  of  the  inheritance*."  **  But  he  that  doth 
wrong"  (by  slothfulness,  or  unfaithfulness)  shall  receive  for 
the  wrong  which  he  hath  done  ^." 

«>  1  Cor.  vii.  99—31.  ^  Matt.  vi.  33.  ^  John  vu  «T. 

e  Gen.  ill.  19.  ^  Exod.  xx.  9.  «  ^tVi^.^ \\\.  \^, 

•^      "gTbess.iii.  6.11,  it  14.  *  Col.  iii.  ««— 44.  ^\«wfc'iS. 

VOL.  yii.  K  K 


,)*• 


498  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

Success  is  God's  ordinary  temporal  reward  of  diligence'. 
And  diseases,  poverty,  shame,  disappointment^  or  self-tor- 
menting melancholy,  are  his  usual  punishments  of  sloth. 
Hard  labour  redeemeth  time :  you  will  have  the  more  to  lay 
out  in  greater  works.  The  slothful  is  still  behindhand,  and 
therefore  must  leave  much  of  his  work  undone. 
^  2.  Are  you  Parents,  or  Governors  of  Families  ?  You 
\i  have  work  to  do  for  God,  and  for  your  children's  and  ser- 
I  vants'  souls.  Do  it  with  your  might.  Deal  wisely,  but  se- 
^  riously  and  frequently  with  them  about  their  sins,  their  duty, 
and  their  hopes  of  heaven.  Tell  them  whither  they  are  go-* 
ing,  and  which  way  they  must  go.  Make  them  under- 
stand they  have  a  higher  Father  and  Master  that  must  be 
first  served,  and  greater  work  than  yours.  Waken  them  from 
their  natural  insensibility  and  sloth.  Turn  not  all  your  fa- 
mily duties  into  lifeless,  customary  forms,  (whedier  eztem- 
porate,  or  by  rote) ;  speak  about  God,  and  heaven,  and  hell, 
and  holiness  with  that  seriousness  as  beseems  men  that  be- 
lieve what  they  say,  and  would  have  those  they  speak  to»  to 
believe  it.  Talk  not  either  drowsily  or  lightly,  or  jestingly, 
of  such  dreadful,  or  joyful,  unexpressible  things.  Remem- 
ber, that  your  families  and  you,  are  going  to  the  grave,  and 
to  the  world  where  there  is  no  more  room  for  your  exhorta- 
tions. There  is  no  catechising,  examining,  or  serious  in- 
structing them  in  the  grave,  whither  they  and  you  are  going. 
It  must  be  now  or  never ;  and;  therefore,  do  it  with  your 
might.  The  words  of  God  must  be  '  -  in  your  hearts^  and  you 
must  diligently  teach  them  to  your  children,  talking  of  them 
when  you  sit  in  your  houses,  when  you  walk  by  the  way, 
when  you  lie  down,  and  when  you  rise  up  "*." 

3.  Have  you  ignorant  and  ungodly  neighbours,  whose 
misery  calls  for  your  compassion,  and  relief?  Speak  to 
them  and  help  them  with  prudent  diligence.  Lose  not  your 
opportunities.  Stay  not  till  death  hath  stopt  your  mouths, 
or  stopt  their  ears.  Stay  not  till  they  are  out  of  hearing, 
and  taken  from  your  converse.  Stay  not  till  they  are  in  hell 
before  you  warn  them  of  it,  or  till  heaven  be  lost,  befun 
you  have  seriously  called  to  them  to  remember  it.  Go  to 
their  houses ;  take  all  opportunities ;  stoop  to  their  infirmi- 
ties ;  bear  with  uut\iatik&i\  fioviatdueas  ^  it  is  for  men's  sal- 
vation.    Remember  lYiete  *\%  Xko  ^\^c^  ^w  '^^?ax\\v%\x>i^^\s&  ^t 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  499 

\ 

exhortations  in  the  grave  or  hell.  Your  dust  cannot  speak, 
and  their  dust  cannot  hear.  Up,-  therefore,  and  be  doing 
with  all  your  might !  > 

4.  Hath  God  intrusted  you  with  the  Riches  of  the  worid ;  / 
with  many  talents  or  with  few,  by  which  he  looketh  you 
should  relieve  the  needy,  and  especially  should  promote 
those  works  of  piety  which  are  the  greatest  charity  2  Give 
(prudently,  but  willingly  and  liberally)  while  you  have  to 
give.  It  is  your  gain.  The  time  of  market  for  your  souls, 
and  of  laying  up  a  treasure  in  heaven,  and  setting  your  mo- 
ney to  the  most  gainful  usury  ;  and  of  making  you  friends 
of  the  mammon  of  unrighteousness ;  and  furthering  your 
salvation,  by  that  which  hindereth  other  men's,  and  occa- 
sioneth  their  perdition.  ''As  you  have  opportunity,  do 
good  to  all  men,  but  especially  to  them  of  the  household  of 
faith  °/'  ''  Cast  thy  bread  upon  the  waters  ;  for  thou  shalt 
find  it  after  many  days.  Give  a  portion  to  seven  and  also 
to  eight;  for  thou  knowest  not  what  evil  shall  be  upon  the 
eardt"  *'  In  the  morning  sow  thy  seed,  and  in  the  evening 
withhold  not  thy  hand ;  for  thou  knowest  not  whether  shall 
prosper,this  or  that,  or  whether  they  both  shall  be  alike  good^/' 
"Withhold  not  good  from  ihem  to  whom  it  is  due,  when  it 
is  in  the  power  of  thy  hand  to  do  it.  Say  not  to  thy  neigh- 
bour, Go,  and  come  again,  and  to-morrow  I  will  give,  when 
thou  hast  it  by  thee  ^"  Lay  up  a  foundation  for  the  time 
to  come.  Do  good  before  thy  heart  be  hardened,  thy  riches 
blasted  and  consumed,  thy  opportunities  taken  away ;  part 
with  it  before  it  part  with  thee.  Remember  it  must  be  now 
or  never.    There  is  no  working  in  the  grave. 

6.  Hath  God  intrusted  you  with  Power,  or  Interest,  by 
which  you  may  promote  his  honour  in  the  world,  and  relieve 
the  oppressed,  and  restrain  the  rage  of  impious  malice ! 
Hath  he  made  you  Governors,  and  put  the  sword  of  justice 
into  your  hands  ?  Up,  then,  and  be  doing  with  your  might. 
Defend  the  innocent,  protect  the  servants  of  the  Lord,  che- 
rish them  that  do  well,  be  a  terror  to  the  wicked,  encourage 
the  strictest  obedience  to  the  Universal  Governor,  discoun- 
tenance the  breakers  of  his  laws.  Look  not  to  be  reverenced 
or  obeyed  before  him,  or  more  carefully  than  he.  Openly 
maintain  his  truth  and  worship  without  feat  ot  «\\axck!^.    X^^^^ 

«  Gal.  vU  6i  9.  U.  <>  Eccles.  xi.  1, «.  6.  *  Yt^S«T^.  Vt  ^IR* 


500  NOV  OR  NEVER. 

gently  and  tenderly  with  his  lambs  and  little  ones.  Search 
after  vice  that  you  may  successfully  suppress  it.  Hate  those 
temptations  that  would  draw  you  to  man-pleasing,  tempo- 
rizing, remissnesSfOr  countenancing  sin ;  but  especially  those 
that  would  ensnare  you  in  a  controversy  with  heaven,  and  in 
quarrels  against  the  ways  of  holiness,  or  in  that  self-con- 
founding sin  of  abusing  and  opposing  the  people  that  are 
most  careful  to  please  the  Lord.  Your  trust  is  great,  and 
so  is  your  advantage  to  do  good.  And  how  great  will  be 
your  account,  and  how  dreadful,  if  you  be  unfaithful.  As 
you  signify  more  than  hundreds  or  thousands  of  the  meaner 
sort,  and  your  actions  do  most  good  or  hurt,  so  you  must 
expect  to  be  accordingly  dealt  with,  when  you  come  to  the 
impartial,  iinal  judgment.  Befriend  the  Gospel  as  the  char- 
ter of  your  everlasting  privileges ;  own  those  that  Christ 
hath  told  you  he  will  own.  Use  them  as  men  that  are  rea- 
dy to  hear.  *'  Insomuch  as  you  did  it  to  one  of  the  least  of 
these  my  brethren,  you  did  it  unto  me  ^."  **  Know  not  a 
wicked  person ;''  but  let  **  your  eyes  be  on  the  faithfhl  of 
the  land,  that  they  may  dwell  therein,  and  lead  a  quiet  and 
peaceable  life,  in  all  godliness  and  honesty '."  **  Let  those 
that  work  the  work  of  the  Lord,  be  with  you  without  fear"." 
Remember  that  it  is  the  character  of  a  Pharisee  and  hypo- 
crite, to  see  the  mote  of  the  non-observance  of  a  ceremony, 
or  tradition,  or  smaller  matter  of  difference  in  religion  in 
their  brother's  eye,  and  not  to  see  the  beam  of  hypocrisy, 
injustice,  and  malicious,  cruel  opposition  of  Christ  and  his 
disciples  in  their  own.  And  that  it  is  the  brand  of  them 
that  please  not  God,  that  are  filling  up  their  sins,  on  whom 
God's  wrath  is  coming  to  the  utmost,  to  **  persecute  the  ser- 
vants of  the  Lord,  forbidding  them  to  preach  to  the  people 
that  they  might  be  saved  *." 

Learn  well  the  second  and  the  hundred  and  first  Psalm. 
And  write  these  sentences  on  your  walls  and  doors,  as  an 
antidote  against  that  self-undoing  sin.  '*  Whosoever  shall 
offend  one  of  these  little  ones  which  believe  in  me,  it  were 
better  for  him  that  a  milstone  were  hanged  about  his  neck, 
and  that  he  were  drowned  in  the  depth  of  the  sea  "."  "  He 
that  toucheth  you  toucheth  the  apple  of  his  eye  \**    '<  Him 

«  Matt.  «tv.  »  Psb\.  c\.  \.  *  \  C«t,  vt\,  l(K 

*  1  Tbess^ru  15,  6.  ^ M^a-U,  inuvA6.        ^IfistV/vuV 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  501 

that  is  weak  in  the  faith,  receive  you ;  but  not  to  doubtful 
disputations.  For  God  hath  received  himV  "  He  that 
receiveth  you»  receiveth  me ;  and  he  that  receiveth  me,  re- 
ceiveth  him  that  sent  me.  He  that  receiveth  a  righteous 
man,  in  the  name  of  a  righteous  man,  shall  receive  a  righte- 
ous man's  reward.  And  whoso  shall  give  to  drink  to  one  of 
these  little  ones,  a  cup  of  cold  water  only,  in  the  name  of  a 
disciple,  verily,  I  say  unto  you,  he  shall  in  no  wise  lose  his 
reward  *.'*  If  you  love  not  the  godly,  love  yourselves  (so  far 
as  to  such  self-love  is  possible),  wound  not  your  own  hearts, 
to  make  their  fingers  bleed.  Damn  not  your  own  souls,  (and 
that  by  the  surest,  nearest  way)  that  you  may  hurt  their  bo-* 
dies.  Provoke  not  God  to  thrust  you  from  his  presence,  and 
deny  your  suits,  by  your  dealing  so  with  them.  Stop  not 
your  own  mouths,  when  your  misery  will  bespeak  your  loud- 
est cries  for  mercy,  by  your  stopping  the  mouths  of  the  ser- 
vants of  the  Lord,  and  refusing  to  hear  their  requests  for 
justice*  If  you  have  the  serpent's  enmity  against  the  wo- 
man's seed/  you  must  expect  the  serpent's  doom.  Your 
heads  will  be  bruised*  when  you  have  bruised  their  heels  "." 
"  Kick  not  against  the  pricks  ^."  Let  not  *'  briars  and  thorns 
set  themselves  in  battle  against  the  Lord,  lest  he  go,  there- 
fore, through  them,  and  bum  them  together  ^." 

I  speak  not  any  of  this  by  way  of  accusation  or  disho- 
nourable reflection  on  the  Magistrate.  Blessed  be  God  that 
hath  given  us  the  comfort  of  your  defence.  But  knowing 
what  the  tempter  aimeth  at,  and  where  it  is  that  your  dan- 
ger lieth,  and  by  what  means  the  rulers  of  the  earth  haive 
been  undone,  faithfulness  commandeth  me  to  tell  you  of  the 
snare,  and  to  set  before  you  good  and  evil,  as  ever  I  would 
escape  the  guilt  of  betraying  you  by  flattery,  or  cruel  and 
cowardly  silence. 

And  especially  when  your  Magistracy  is  but  annual,  or 
for  a  short  time,  it  concemeth  you  to  be  doing  with  your 
might.  It  is  but  this  year,  or  short  space  of  time  that  you 
have  to  do  this  special  service  in ;  lose  this,  and  lose  all. 
By  what  men  on  earth  should  God  be  eminently  served  and 
honoured,  if  not  by  Magistrates,  whom  he  hath  eminently 
advanced,  impowered,  and  intrusted?     With  considerate 

jrRom.  xiv.l,?.   xy^U  »  Matt.xV.40— 4«.  »Cj€!a»\\uW 

^  ActB  ij.  5.  ^  Isa.  x&viu  4, 


502  MOW  OR  N£VEK. 

foresight,  seriously  ask  yourselves  the  question.  Are  you 
willing  to  hear,  at  the  day  of  your  accounts,  that  you  had  but 
one  year,  or  a  few,  to  do  God  special  service  in,  and  that 
you  knew  this,  and  yet  would  not  do  it  ?  Can  your  hearts 
1)ear  it  then,  to  hear  and  think,  that  you  lost,  and  wilfully 
lost  such  an  opportunity  ?  Look  about  you  then,  and  see 
what  is  to  be  done.  Are  there  not  alehouses  to  be  sup- 
pressed, and  drunkards,  and  riotous  persons  to  be  restrain- 
ed? Preaching  and  piety  to  be  promoted?  Do  it  with 
\   your  might*    For  it  must  be  now  or  never. 

6.  To  come  yet  a  little  nearer  you,  and  speak  of  the  work 
that  is  yet  to  be  done  in  our  own  souls.  Are  any  of  you  yet 
in  the  state  of  unrenewed  nature^  bom  only  of  the  flesh,  and 
not  of  the  Spirit*^.  '*  Minding  the  things  of  the  flesh,  and 
not  the  things  of  the  Spirit*,''  and  consequently  yet  in  the 
"power  of  satan,  taken  captive  by  him,  at  his  will  V  Up 
^md  be  doing,  if  thou  love  thy  soul.  If  thou  care  whether 
thou  be  in  joy  or  misery  for  ever,  bewail  thy  sin  and  spiri- 
tual distress.  Make  out  to  Christ,  cry  mightily^  to  him  for 
his  renewing  and  reconciling,  pardoning  grace.  Plead  his 
satisfaction,  his  merits,  and  his  promises.  Away  with  thy 
rebellion,  and  thy  beloved  sin ;  deliver  up  thy  soul  entirely 
to  Christ,  to  be  sanctified,  governed,  and  saved  by  him. 
Make  no  more  demurs  about  it ;  it  is  not  a  matter  to  be 
questioned,  or  trifled  in.  Let  the  earth  be  acquainted  with 
thy  bended  knees>  and  the  air  with  thy  complaints  and  cries, 
and  men  with  thy  confessions  and  inquiries  after  the  way  of 
life ;  and  heaven  with  thy  sorrows^  desires,  and  resolutions^ 
till  thy  soul  be  acquainted  with  the  Spirit  of  Christ  s,  and 
with  the  new,  the  holy,  and  heavenly  nature  ;  and  thy  heart 
have  received  the  transcript  of  God's  law,  the  impress  of  the 
Gospel,  and  so  the  image  of  thy  Creator  and  Redeemer. 
Ply  this  work  with  all  thy  might.  For  there  is  no  conver- 
sion, renovation,  or  repentance  unto  life  in  the  grave,  whi« 
ther  thou  goest.  It  must  be  now  or  never.  And  never  sav- 
ed, if  never  sanctified  **. 

7.  Hast  thou  any  prevailing  sin  to  mortify,  that  either 
reigneth  in  thee,  or  woundeth  thee  and  keepeth  thy  soul  in 
darkness  and  unacquaintedness  with  God  ?     Assault  it  re- 

«» John  ill.  3, 5, 6.    •  Rom.Vm.  V;  &w7  •  <a.  \^.    «  keta ^vil.  18*  2Tlni.  ii.  2d. 
9  ^m.  viii,  9.         ^  Heb,  xu.  V4. 


NOW  OK  N£V£R.  503 

solutely ;  reject  it  speedily ;  abhor  the  motions  of  it ;  turn 
away  from  the  persons  or  things  that  would  entice  thee. 
Hate  the  doors  of  the  harlot,  and  of  the  alehouse,  or  the 
gaming-house ;  and  go  not  as  the  **  ox  to  the  slaughter,  and 
as  a  bird  to  the  fowler's  snare,  and  as  a  fool  to  the  correction 
of  the  stocks,  as  if  thou  knewest  not  that  it  is  for  thy  life  ^" 
Why,  thou  befooled,  stupid  soul !  wilt  thou  be  tasting  of 
the  poisoned  cup  ?  wilt  thou  be  sporting  thee  with  thebait>%^ 
Hast  thou  no  where  to  walk  and  play  thee,  but  at  the  brink 
of  hell  ?  **  Must  not  the  flesh  be  crucified  with  its  affections 
and  lusts  ^/'  Must  it  not  be  tamed  and  mortified,  or  thy 
soul  condemned  ^  ?  "  Run  not,  therefore,  as  at  uncertainty  : 
fight  not  as  one  that  beats  the  air  ^,"  seeing  this  must  be 
done,  or  thou  art  undone,  delay  and  dally  with  sin  no  longer. 
Let  this  be  the  day  ;  resolve,  and  resist  it  with  thy  might. 
It  must  be  mm  or  neoer.  When  death  comes,  it  is  too  late. 
It  will  be  then  no  reward  to  leave  thy  sin,  which  thou  canst 
keep  no  longer.  No  part  of  holiness  or  happiness  that  thou 
art  not  drunk,  or  proud,  or  lustful  in  the  grave  or  hell.  As 
thou  art  wise,  therefore,  know  an^  take  thy  time. 

8.  Art. thou  in  a  declined,  lapsed  state?  decayed  in 
grace?  Hast  thou  lost  thy  first  desires  and  love?  Do  thy 
first  works,  and  do  them  with  thy  might.  Delay  not,  but 
remember  from  whence  thou  art  fallen,  and  what  thou  hast 
lost  by  it,  and  into  how  sad  a  case  thy  folly  and  negligence 
hath  brought  thee ;  say,  **  I  will  go  and  return  to  my  first 
husband ;  for  then  was  it  better  with  me  than  now  ^.^*  Qry 
out  with  Job,  **  O  that  I  were  as  in  months  past!  as  in  the 
days  when  Qod  preserved  me !  when  his  candle  shinedupon 
my  head,  and  when  by  his  light  I  walked  through  darkness. 
As  I  was  in  the  days  of  my  youth,  when  the  secret  of  God 
was  on  my  tabernacle,  when  the  Almighty  was  yet  with 
me"^."  Return  while  thou  hast  day,  lest  the  night  sur* 
prise  thee :  loiter  and  delay  no  more  ;  thou  hast  lost  by  it 
already :  thou  art  far  behindhand.  Bestir  thee  therefore 
with  all  thy  might.  / 

9.  Art  thou  in  the  darkness  of  uncertainty  concerning 
thy  conversion,  and  thy  everlasting  state  ?  Dost  thou  not 
know  whether  thou  be  in  a  state  of  life  or  death  ?  and  what 

«  Prov,  vii.  22,  23.  ^  Gal.  v.  24.  »  Rom.  vui.  13.    VC^iAx^^^l, 

"  i  Cor,  ix,  fS.  "  Hos.ii.7.  «  3Q!b  «l\x,.  %— S. 


N 


504  NOW  OR  NEVRR. 

should  become  of  thee,  if  this  were  the  day  or  hour  of  thy 
change  ?     If  thou  art  careful  about  it,  and  inquirest,  and 
usest  the  means  that  God  hath  appointed  thee  for  assurance, 
I  have  then  no  more  to  say  to  thee  now,  but  wait  on  God, 
^id  thou  shalt  not  be  disappointed  or  ashamed !     Thou  shalt 
have  assurance  in  due  time,  or  be  saved  before  thou  wouldst 
believe  thou  shouldst  be  saved.     Be  patient  and  obedient, 
and  the  light  of  Christ  will  shine  upon  thee,  and  yet  thou 
^halt  see  the  days  of  peace.     But  if  thou  art  careless  in  thy 
uncertainty,  and  mindest  not  so  great  a  business,  be  awa- 
kened, and  call  thy  soul  to  its  account ;  search  and  examine 
thy  heart  -and  life :  read,  and  consider,  and  take  advice  of 
faithful  guides.     Canst  thou  carelessly  sleep,  and  laugh, 
and  sport,  and  follow  thy  lesser  business  as  if  thy  salvation 
were  made  sure,  when  thou  knowest  not  where  thou  mast 
dwell  for  ever  ?     "  Examine  yourselves  whether  you  be  in  the 
faith  ?  prove  yourselves ;  know  ye  not  your  own  selves,  that 
Christ  is  in  you  except  you  are  reprobates p,"  **  Give  all  dili- 
gence (in  time)  to  make  your  calling  and  election  sure  ^/' 
In  the  grave  and  hell  there  is  no  making  sure  of  heaven :  yoii 
are  then  past  inquiries  and  self-examinations,  in  order  to  any 
recovery  or  hope.     Another  kind  of  trial  will  finally  resolve 
you.    Up  therefore  and  diligently  ply  the  work  ;  it  must  be 
now  or  never. 

10.  In  all  the  duties  of  thy  profession,  of  piety,  justice, 
or  charity,  to  God,  thyself,  or  others,  up  and  be  doing  with 
thy  might.  Art  thou  seeking  to  inflame  thy  soul  with  love 
to  God?  plunge  thyself  in  the  ocean  of  his  love  ;  admire  his 
mercies ;  gaze  upon  the  representations  of  his  transcendent 
goodness ;  O  taste  and  see  that  the  Lord  is  gracious !  Re- 
member that  he  must  be  loved  with  all  thy  heart,  and  soul, 
_and  might ;  canst  thou  g^our  out  thy  love  upon  a  creature, 
and,.,gixe^ut  a  few  barren  drops  to  God? 

When  tfiou  art  fearing  him,  let  Hs  fear  command  thy 
soul,  and  conquer  all  the  fear  of  man.. 

When  thou  art  trusting  him,  do  it  without  distrust,  and 
cast  all  thy  care  and  thyself  upon  him  :  trust  him  as  a  crea- 
ture should  trust  his  God,  and  the  members  of  Christ  should 
trust  their  Head  and  dear  Redeemer. 

When  thou  art  making  mention  of  his  great  and  dreadful 

P  2Cor.  x\\\,  5.  ^1^«xA.Vi, 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  505 

name^  O  do  it  with  reverence,  and  awe,  and  admiration ;  and 
take  not  the  name  of  God  in  vain. 

When  thou  art  reading  his  word,  let  the  majesty  of  the 
author,  and  the  greatness  of  the  matter,  and  gravity  of  the 
style,  possess  thee  with  an  obediential  fear.     Love  it,  and 
let  it  be  sweeter  to  thee  than  the  honeycomb,  and  more  pre- 
cious than  thousands  of  gold  and  silver.     Resolve  to  do 
what  there  thou  findest  to  be  the  will  of  God.    When  thou 
art  praying  in  secret,  or  in  the  family,  do  it  with  thy  might ; 
cry  mightily  to  God  as  a  soul  under  sin,  and  wants,  and  dan- 
ger, that  is  stepping  into  an  endless  life,  should  do.     Let 
the  reverence  and  the  fervour  of  thy  prayers  shew  that  it  is 
God  himself  that  thou  art  speaking  to ;  that  it  is  heaven  itself 
that  thou  art  praying  for;  hell  itself  that  thou  art  praying  to 
be  saved  from.    Wilt  thou  be  dull  and  senseless  on  such  an 
errand  to  the  living  God  ?     Remember  what  lieth  upon  thy 
failing  or  prevailing,  and  that  it  must  be  now  or  never. 

Art  thou  a  Preacher  of  the  Gospel,  and  takest  charge  of 
the  souls  of  men?     '*  Take  heed  to  thyself  and  to  the  whole 
flock,  over  which  the  Holy  Ghost  hath  made  thee  an  over- 
seer, to  feed  the  church  of  Gk>d,  which  he  hath  purchased 
with  his  own  blood  ^"     Let  not  the  blood  of  souls,  and  the 
blood  that  purchased  them,  be  required  at  thy  hands.  **  Thou 
art  charged  before  God,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who 
shall  judge  the  quick  and  the  dead  at  his  appearing,  and  his 
kingdom,  that  thou  preach  the  word,  be  instant  in  season  and 
out  of  season ;  reprove,  rebuke  and  exhort  with  all  longsuf- 
fering  and  doctrine  •."    "  Teach  every  man,  and  exhort  every 
man*.'*    **  Even  night  and  day  with  tears"."    "  Save  men 
with  fear,  pulling  them  out  of  the  fire  *.*'    "  Cry  aloud  ;  lift 
up  thy  voice  like  a  trumpet ;  tell  them  of  their  transgres- 
sions'.'*    Yet  thou  art  alive,  and  they  are  alive ;  yet  thou 
hast  a  tongue,  and  they  have  ears :  the  final  sentence  hath 
not  yet  cut  off  their  hopes.     Preach  therefore,  and  preach 
with  all  thy  might.     Exhort  them  privately  and  personally 
with  all  the  seriousness  thou  canst.     Quickly,  or  it  will  be 
too  late.   Prudently,  or  satan  will  overreach  thee ;  fervently, 
or  ihy  words  are  like  to  be  disregarded.     Remember  when 
thou  lookest  them  in  the  faces,   when  thou  beholdest  the 

«•  Acts  XX.  28.    Eaek  iii.  18.  JO.  •  2  Tim.^V.  1,  2.  *  Col.  i.  28. 

n  Acts  u.  31.  *Jude23.  7  Isa.Ivm.1. 


506  NOW  OR  N£V£R, 

assemblies,  that  they  must  be  converted  or  condemned,, 
sanctified  on  earth,  or  tormented  in  heU;  and  that  this  is 
the  day :  it  must  be  now  or  never. 

In  a  word :  apply  this  quickening  precept  to  all  the  du- 
ties of  the  Christian  course.     Be  religious,  and  just,  and 
charitable  in  good  earnest,  if  you  would  be  taken  for  suck 
when  you  look  for  the  reward.    "  Work  out  your  salvation 
with  fear  and  trembling  ^''    *'  Strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait 
gate ;  for  many  shall  seek  to  enter  and  shall  not  be  able*." 
^'  Many  run,  but  few  receive  the  prize :  so  run  that  you  may 
obtain  ^"    **  If  the  righteous  scarcely  be  saved,  where  shall 
the  ungodly,  and  the  sinner  appear^?"    Let  the  doating 
world  deride  your  diligence,  and  set  themselves  to  hinder  and 
afflict  you :  it  will  be  but  a  little  while  before  experience 
change  their  minds,  and  make  them  sing  another  song.    Fol- 
low Christ  fully :  ply  your  work  and  lose  no  time.    The 
Judge  is  coming.     Let  not  words  or  any  thing  that  man  can 
do,  prevail  with  you  to  sit  down,  or  stop  yon  in  ajonmey  of 
such  importance.    Please  God,  though  flesh,  and  firiendsi 
and  all  the  world  should  be  displeased.    Whatever  come  of 
your  reputation,  or  estates,  or  liberties,  or  lives,  be  snreyon 
look  to  life  eternal ;  and  cast  not  that  on  any  hazard,  for  a 
withering  flower,  or  a  pleasant  dream,  or  a  picture  of  com- 
modity, or  any  vanity  that  the  deceiver  can  present.    *'  For 
what  shall  it  profit  you  to  win  the  whole  world  and  lose 
your  soul  ^  ?"    Or  to  have  been  honoured  and  obeyed  on 
earth,  when  you  are  under  the  wrath  of  God  in  heU  ?    Or 
that  your  flesh  was  once  provided  with  variety  of  delights, 
when  it  is  turned  to  rottenness,  and  must  be  raised  to  tor- 
ments ?     Hold  on  therefore  in  faith,  and  holiness,  and  hope, 
though  earth  and  hell  should  rage  against  you,  though  all 
the  world  by  force  or  flattery,  should  do  the  worst  they  can 
to  hinder  you.    This  is  your  trial ;  your  warfare  is  the  re- 
sisting of  deceit,  and  of  all  that  would  tempt  you  to  consent 
to  the  means  of  your  own  destruction:  consent  not,  and  yon 
conquer :  conquer  and  you  are  crowned.--  The  combat  is  all 
about  your  wills ;  yield,  and  you  have  lost  the  day.     If  the 
prating  of  ungodly  fools,  or  the  contemptuous  jeers  of  har- 
dened sinners,  or  the  frowns  of  unsanctified  superiors,  conld 

>  Phil.  ii.  i^.  >  Matt.vii.  13.    Luke  xii*  24. 

*»  1  Cor.  Ix.  24.  "  1  Pet.  ir.  18.  .    *  Matt*  jcvi  «tf. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  507 

prevail  against  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  and  the  workings  of  an 
enlightened  mind,  then  what  man  could  be  saved  ?    You  de- 
serve damnation,  if  you  will  run  into  it  to  avoid  a  mock,  or 
the  loss  of  any  thing  that  man  can  take  from  you.    You  are 
unmeet  for  heaven,  if  you  can  part  with  it  to  save  your 
pvrses.    **  Fear  not  them  that  can  kill  the  body,  and  after 
that  have  no  more  that  they  can  do;  but  fear  him  that  can 
destroy  both  soul  and  body  in  hell  •."    Obey  God,  though    • 
all  the  world  forbid  you.     No  power  can  save  you  from  his 
justice :  and  none  of  them  can  deprive  you  of  his  reward. 
Though  you  lose  your  heads,  you  shall  save  your  crowns ; 
you  no  way  save  your  lives  so  certainly,  as  by  such  losing 
them.    ^  One  thing  is  necessary  ^;"  do  that  with  speed,  and 
care,  and  diligence,  which  must  be  done,  or  you  are  lost  for 
ever.    They  that  are  now  against  your  much  and  earnest 
praying,  will  shortly  cry  as  loud  themselves  in  vain.    When 
it  is  too  late,  how  fervently  will  they  beg  for  mercy,  that 
now  deride  you  for  valuing  and  seeking  it  in  time!     But 
*'  then  they  shall  call  upon  God,  but  he  will  not  answer ; 
they  shall  seek  him  early,  but  shall  not  find  him:  for  that 
diey  hated  knowledge,  and  did  not  choose  the  fear  of  the 
Lord :  they  would  none  of  his  counsel,  but  despised  all  his 
reproof  «/* 

Up  therefore  and  work  with  all  thy  might.     Let  unbe- 
lievers trifle,  that  know  not  that  the  righteous  God  stands 
over  them,  and  know  not  that  they  are  now  to  work  for  ever- 
lasting, and  know  not  that  heaven  or  hell  is  at  the  end.    Let 
Uiem  delay,  and  laugh,  and  play,  and  dream  away  their  time, 
that  are  drunk  with  prosperity,  and  mad  with  fleshly  lusts 
imd  pleasures,  and  have  lost  their  reason  in  the  cares,  and 
delusions,  and  vainglory  of  the  world.     But  shall  it  be  so 
with  thee  whose  eyes  are  opened,  who  seest  the  God,  the 
heaven,  the  hell,  which  they  do  but  hear  of  as  unlikely 
Aings?    Wilt  thou  live  awake,  as  they  that  are  asleep? 
Wilt  thou  do  in  the  daylight,  as  they  do  in  the  dark  ?  Shall 
freemen  live  as  satan's  slaves  ?     Shall  the  living  lie  as  still 
and  useless  as  the  dead?    "Work  then  while  it  is  day,  for 
the  night  is  coming  when  none  can  work  '^•" 

It  is  not  the  works  of  the  Mosaical  law,  nor  works  that 
are  conceited  for  their  proper  value  to  deserve 'any  t\vm^^ 

•  MBtt.  X,  98.       f  Matt.  x.  39.         »  Prov.  \.  44  to  th^  eivA.        ^  ^c\vkv  v«^  At, 


508  NOW  OR  NfiVKR. 

the  hands  of  God,  that  I  am  all  this  while  persuading  you 
to :  but  it  is  the  works  prescribed  you  by  Christ  in  the  Gos- 
pel, according  to  which  you  shall  be  shortly  judged  to  joy 
or  misery,  by  Christ  himself,  that  will  call  you  to  account 
These  must  be  done  with  all  your  might. 

Object.  '  But  (you  will  say  perhaps)  alas,  what  might  ha¥e 
we  ?  We  have  no  sufficiency  of  ourselves ;  without  Christ 
we  can  do  nothing !  And  this  we  find  when  it  comes  to  the 
trial/ 

Aimo,  1.  It  is  not  a  might  that  is  originally  thine  own, 
that  I  am  calling  thee  to  exercise ;  but  that  which  thou  hsust 
already  received  from  God,  and  that  which  he  is  ready  to 
bestow.  Use  well  but  all  the  might  thou  hast,  and  IJiou 
shalt  find  thy  labour  is  not  vain.  Even  the  strength  of  na- 
ture, and  of  common  grace,  are  talents  which  thou  must  im- 
prove, 

2.  Art  thou  willing  to  use  the  might  thou  hast,  and  to 
have  more,  and  use  it  if  thou  hadst  it?  If  thou  art,  thou 
hast  then  the  strength  of  Christ :  thou  standest  not,  and 
workest  not  by  thy  own  strength ;  his  promise  is  engaged 
to  thee,  and  his  strength  is  sufficient  for  thee.  But  if  thoa 
art  not  willing,  thou  art  without  excuse ;  when  thou  hadst 
heaven  and  hell  set  open  in  the  word  of  God  to  make  thee 
willing,  God  will  distinguish  thy  wilfulness  from  unwilling 
weakness. 

3.  There  is  more  power  in  all  of  you  than  you  use,  or 
than  you  are  well  aware  of.  It  wanteth  but  awakening  to 
bring  it  into  act.  Do.  you  not  find  in  your  repentings,  that 
the  change  is  more  in  your  will  than  in  your  power  ?  and  in 
the  awaking  of  your  will  and  reason  into  act,  than  in  the  ad- 
dition of  mere  abilities  ?  and  that  therefore  you  befool  your- 
selves for  your  sins  and  your  neglects,  and  wonder  that  you 
had  no  more  use  of  your  understandings  ?  Let  but  a  storm 
at  sea,  or  violent  sickness,  or  approaching  death,  rouse  up 
and  waken  the  powers  which  you  have,  and  you  will  find 
there  was  much  more  asleep  in  you  than  you  used. 

I  shall  therefore  next  endeavour  to  awaken  your  abilities, 
or  tell  you  how  you  should  awaken  them. 

When  your  souls  are  drowsy,  and  you  are  forgetting 
your  God, and  yout  \^\X^t  ^wd,  and  matters  of  eternity  have 
little  force  and  i^voMX  mxXv  -^wx^  ^\k&\!L^wi^^^  Vaay  and 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  509^ 

superficial^  and  religion  seems  a  lifeless  thing,  and  you  do 
your  duty  as  if  it  were  in  vain,  or  against  your  wills ;  when 
you  can  lose  your  time,  and  delay  repentance ;  and  friends, 
and  profit,  and  reputation,  and  pleasure,  can  be  heard 
against  the  word  of  God,  and  take  you  ofi*;  when  you  do  all 
by  the  haWes,  and  languish  in  your  Christian  course,  as  . 
near  to  death ;  stir  up  your  souls  with  the  urgency  of  such 
questions  as  these  ? 

Quest  1.  •  Can  I  do  no  more  than  this  for  God  V  Who 
gave  me  all?  Who  deserveth  all?  Who  seeth  me  in  my 
duties  and  my  sins  ?  When  he  puts  me  purposely  on  the 
trial,  what  I  can  do  for  his  sake  and  service,  can  I  do  no 
more  ?  Can  I  love  him  no  more  ?  And  obey,  and  watch, 
and  work  no  more  ? 

Quest.  2/  '  Can  I  do  no  more  than  this  for  Christ  V  For 
him  that  did  so  much  for  me  ?  that  lived  so  exactly ;  obey- 
ed so  perfectly  ;  walked  so  inoffensively  and  meekly;  des- 
pising all  the  baits,  and  honours,  and  riches  of  the  world  ? 
That  loved  me  to  the  death;  and  offered  me  freely  all  his 
benefits,  and  would  bring  me  to  eternal  glory  ?  Are  these 
careless,  cold  and  dull  endeavours  my  best  return  for  all 
this  mercy? 

Qtiest.  3.  *  Can  I  do  no  more,  when  my  salvation  is  the 
prize?'  When  heaven  or  hell  depend  much  on  it  ?  When 
I  know  this  beforehand,  and  may  see  in  the  glass  of  the  Holy 
Scriptures  what  is  prepared  for  the  diligent  and  the  negli- 
gent, and  what  work  there  is  and  will  be  for  ever  in  heaven 
and  hell  on  these  accounts  ?  Could  I  not  do  more,  if  my 
house  were  on  fire,  or  my  estate,  or  life^  or  friend  in  danger^ 
than  I  do  for  my  salvation  ? 

Quest.  4.  'Can  I  do  no  more  for  the  souls  of  men?'  When 
they  are  undone  for  ever  if  they  be  not  speedily  delivered  ? 
Is  this  my  love  and  compassion  to  my  neighbour,  my  ser- 
vant, friend  or  child  ? 

Quest.  6.  '  Can  I  do  no  more  for  the  church  of  God?' 
For  the  public  good  ?  For  the  peace  and  welfare  of  the  na- 
tion and  our  posterity  ?  In  suppressing  sin  ?  In  praying 
for  deliverance  ?  Or  in  promoting  works  of  public  benefit  ? 
Quest.  6.  *  Can  I  do  no  more,  that  have  loitered  so  long?' 
And  go  no  faster,  that  have  slept  till  the  evening  of  my  da.^^« 
when  diligence  must  be  the  discbvery  ot  my  xey^xiX^^xvCi^^ 


>510  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

Quest.  7.  '  Can  I  do  no  more^  that  know  not  now  but  I 
am  doing  my  last  V  That  see  how  fast  my  time  makes  haste, 
and  know  I  must  be  quickly  gone  ?  That  know  it  must  be 
now  dr  never  ;  and  that  this  is  all  the  time  I  shall  have,  ott 
which  an  endless  life  dependeth  ? 

Quest.  8.  '  Can  I  do  no  better,  when  I  know  beforehand, 
what  different  aspects  diligence  and  negligence  will  have,  to 
the  awakened  soul  in  the  review?'  What  a  comfort  it  will 
be  at  death  and  judgment,  to  be  able  to  say, '  I  did  my  best, 
or  loitered  not  away  the  time  I  had  V  And  what  a  vexatious, 
and  heart-disquieting  thing  it  will  then  be,  to  look  back  on 
time  as  irrecoverably  lost,  and  on  a  life  of  trial,  as  cast  away 
upon^impertinencies,  while  the  work  that  we  lived  for  lay 
undone  ?  Shall  I  now  by  trifling  prepare  such  griping  and 
tormenting  thoughts,  for  my  awakened  conscience  ? 

Quest.  9.  *  Can  I  do  no  more,  when  I  am  sure  I  cannot 
do  too  much,  and  am  sure  there  is  nothing  else  to  be  prefo- 
red  V  And  that  it  is  this  I  live  for ;  and  that  life  is  for  ac- 
tion, and  disposeth  thereunto,  (and  holy  life  for  holy  action) : 
and  that  it  is  better  not  live,  than  not  attain  the  ends  of  liv- 
ing ;  when  I  have  so  many  and  unwearied  enemies ;  when 
sloth  is  my  danger,  and  the  advantage  of  my  enemy ;  when 
I  know  that  resolution  and  vigorous  diligence,  is  so  neces- 
sary that  all  is  lost  without  it?  Will  temptations  be  resist- 
ed, and  self  denied,  and  concupiscence  mortified,  and  flesh- 
ly desires  tamed  and  subdued,  and  sin  cast  out,  and  a  holy 
communion  with  heaven  maintained  with  idleness  and  sloth  ? 
Will  families  be  well  ordered,  and  church,  or  city,  or  conn- 
tries  be  well  governed  ?  Will  the  careless  sinners  that  I  am 
bound  to  help,  be  converted  and  saved,  with  sitting  still, 
and  with  some  heartless,  cold  endeavours  ? 

Quest.  10.  *  Can  I  do  no  more  that  have  so  much  help?' 
That  have  mercies  of  all  sorts  encouraging  me,  and  crea- 
tures attending  me  ;  that  have  health  to  enable  me,  or  afflic- 
tion to  remember  and  excite  me,  that  have  such  a  master, 
such  a  work,  such  a  reward,  as  better  cannot  be  desired; 
who  is  less  excusable  for  neglect  than  I  ? 

Quest,  11.  '  Could  I  do  no  more,  if  I  were  sure,  that  my 
salvation  lay  on  this  one  duty  V  That  according  to  this 
prayer,  it  should  go  with  me  for  ever;  or  if  the  soul  of  my 
child,  or  servant,  or  neighbour  must  speed  for  ever,  as  my 


NOW  OR  NEVER*  511^ 

cmdeavours  speed  with  them  now  far  their  conversion?  for 
aught  I  know  it  may  be  thus. 

QtiesL  12.  *  Would  I  have  God  to  come  with  the  spur 
and  rod  V    How  do  I  complain  when  affliction  is  upon  me  ? 
And  will  I  neither  endure  it^  nor  be  quickened  wiUiout  it 7, 
Is  it  not  better  mend  my  pace  and  work,  on  easier  terms  ? 

I  would  not  have  distressed  souls  to  use  these  considera-* 
tions  merely  to  disquiet  themselves  for  their  infirmities,  and 
so  live  in  heaviness  and  self-vexation,  because  they  cannot 
be  so  good  as  they  desire,  or  do  as  much  and  as  well  as  they 
should  do :  it  is  not  despair  that  will  mend  the  matter,  but 
make  it  worse*  But  I  would  wish  the  lazy,  slothful  soul,  to 
plead  these  Questions  with  itself,  and  try  whether  they  haVe 
no  quickening  power,  if  closely  urged,  and  seriously  con- 
sidered. 

Believe  it,  sirs,  it  is  the  deceitfulness  of  prosperity  that    \ 
keeps  up  the  reputation  of  a  slothful  life,  and  makes  holy 
diligence  seem  unnecessaiy.    When  affliction  comes,  awa-    > 
kened  reason  is  ashamed  of  this,  and  seeth  it  as  an  odious 
thing. 

By  this  time  you  may  see,  what  difference  there  is  be- 
tween the  judgment  of  God,  and  of  the  world,  and  what  to 
think  of  the  understandings  of  those  men  (be  they  high  or 
low,  learned  or  unlearned)  that  hate  or  oppose  this  holy  dili- 
gence. God  bids  us  love,  and  seek,  and  serve  him,  with  all 
our  heart,  and  soul,  and  might :  and  these  men  call  them 
Zealots,  and  Precisians,  and  Puritans,  that  endeavour  it ; 
though,  alas,  they  fall  exceeding  short,  when  they  have  done 
their  best.  It  is  one  of  the  most  wonderful  monstrosities 
and  deformities  that  ever  befel  the  nature  of  man,  that  men, 
that  learned  men,  that  men  that  in  other  things  are  wise, 
should  seriously  think  that  the  utmost  diligence  to  obey  the 
Lord  and  save  our  souls,  is  needless,  and  that  ever  they 
should  take  it  for  a  crime,  and  make  it  a  matter  of  reproach : 
that  the  serious,  diligent  obeying  of  God's  laws,  should  be 
the  matter  of  the  common  disdain  and  hatred  of  the  world ; 
that  no  men  are  more  generally  abhorred,  and  tossed  up  and 
down  by  impatient  men ;  that  great  and  small,  the  rulers 
and  vulgar  rabble,  in  most  places  of  the  earth  cannot  ^y^^mx^ 
tbem.     To  think  bow  the  first  man  that  evet  vi^i&>aoTti  \x^.<^ 


512  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

the  world,  did  hate  his  own  brother  till  he  had  proceeded  to 
murder  him,  because  he  served  God  better  than  himself, "  be- 
cause his  own  works  were  evil,  and  his  brother's  righteous  K" 
And  how  constantly  this  horrid,  unnatural  madness  hath 
succeeded  and  raged  in  the  world  from  Cain  until  this  day! 
It  is  not  in  vain  that  the  Holy  Ghost  addeth,  in  the  next 
words,  "  Marvel  not,  my  brethren,  if  the  world  hate  you  ^," 
implying  that  we  are  apt  to  marvel  at  it,  as  I  confess  I  have 
oft  and  greatly  done.  Methinks,  it  is  so  wonderful  a  plague 
and  stain  in  nature,  that  it  doth  very  much  to  confirm  me  of 
the  truth  of  Scripture ;  of  the  doctrine  of  man's  fall  and  ori- 
ginal sin,  and  the  necessity  of  a  Reconciler,  and  of  renewing 
grace. 

Distracted,  miserable  souls  !  Is  it  not  enough  for  you 
to  refuse  your  own  salvation,  but  you  must  be  angry  with 
all  that  will  not  imitate  you !  Is  it  not  mad  enough,  and 
bad  enough  to  choose  damnation,  but  you  must  be  offended 
with  all  that  are  not  of  your  mind  ?  If  you  will  not  believe 
God,  that  without  regeneration,  conversion,  holiness,  and  a 
heavenly,  spiritual  life,  there  is  no  salvation  to  be  hoped  for^ 
must  we  all  be  unbelievers  with  you  ?  If  you  will  laugh  at 
hell  till  you  are  in  it,  must  we  do  so  too  ?  If  God  and  glory 
seem  less  worth  to  you  than  your  fleshly  pleeisure  for  a  time, 
must  we  renounce  our  Christianity,  and  our  reason,  for  fear 
of  differing  from  you  ?  If  you  dare  differ  from  your  Maker, 
and  the  Redeemer,  and  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  all  the  prophets, 
apostles,  and  evangelists,  and  all  that  ever  came  to  heaven, 
might  not  we  be  bold  to  differ  from  you  ?  If  you  will  needs 
be  ungodly,  and  choose  your  everlasting  woe,  be  patient  with 
them  that  have  more  understanding,  and  dare  not  be  so  hardy 
as  to  leap  after  you  into  the  unquenchable  fire :  mock  not  at 
holiness  if  you  have  no  mind  of  it.  Hinder  not  them  that 
"  strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate,"  if  you  refrain  your- 
selves. Be  not  so  desirous  of  company  to  hell.  It  will  prove 
no  comfort  to  you,  or  abatement  of  your  pain. 

But  because  you  have  the  faces  to  contradict  the  God  of 
truth,  and  to  reproach  that  work  which  he  commandeth,  and 
to  say,  '  What  needs  so  much  ado  V  when  he  bids  us  do  it 
with  all  our  might ;  I  will  briefly  tell  you  what  you  are  doing; 

*  1  John  Ui.l«.  '^  V5<*«iUi.  IS. 

»  1  John  111,  3.  5,  6.    MaXX.  x^u.  %.    UOb,  tS^,  V^,  '««bi.^H»^'V-W 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  5I3 

and  shew  "you  the  ugly  face  of  the  scorner,  aiid  the  filthy 
hearts  of  the  enemies  of  holiness^  that  if  it  may  be^  you  may 
loathe  yourselves. 

1.  These  enemies  of  holy  diligence,  deny  God  with  their 
works  and  lives,  and  are  practical  atheists  ;  and  it  seems  are 
so  near  of  kin  to  "  that  wicked  one  °*/'  that  they  would  have 
all  others  to  do  so  too.  And  then  how  soon  would  earth  be 
turned  into  hell !  The  case  is  plain  :  if  God  deserve  not  to 
be  loved  and  served  with  all  the  heart,  and  soul,  and  might, 
he  is  not  God.  And  if  thy  wealth,  or  honour,  or  flesh,  or 
friend  deserveth  more  of  thy  love,  and  care,  and  diligence 
than  God,  then  that  is  thy  God  that  deserveth  best.  See 
now  what  these  deriders  of  purity  and  obedience  do  think 
of  God,  and  of  the  world. 

2.  These  Cainites  do  blaspheme  the  governor  of  the 
world:  when  he  hath  given  laws  to  the  creatures  that  he 
made  of  nothing^  these  wretches  deride  and  hate  men  for 
obeying  them.  If  God  have  not  commanded  that  which  you 
oppose,  contradict  it,  and  spare  not:  I  would  you  were 
much  more  against  that  pretended  religion  which  he  com- 
mandeth  not.  But  if  he  have  commanded  it,  and  yet  you 
dare  revile  them  as  too  pure  and  precise  that  would  obey  it, 
what  do  yotibut  charge  the  King  of  saints  with  making  laws 
that  are  not  to  be  obeyed  ?  which  must  needs  imply  that  they 
are  foolish,  or  bad,  though  made  by  the  most  Wise  and  Good. 

3.  These  enemies  of  holiness  oppose  the  practice  of  the 
very  first  principles  of  all  religion :  for  "  He  that  cometh  to 
God,  must  believe  that  God  is,  and  that  he  is  the  re  warder  of 
them  that  diligently  seek  him  °.''  And  it  is  diligent  seeking 
him  that  they  hate  and  set  themselves  against. 

4.  Do  not  they  judge  heaven  to  be  less  worth  than  earth ; 
when  they  will  do  less  for  it,  and  would  have  others  to  do 
so  too  ? 

5.  They  would  have  us  all  unchristian  and  unman  our- 
selves, as  if  there  were  no  life  to  come  ;  as  if  our  reason  and 
all  our  faculties  were  given  us  in  vain.  For  if  they  are  not 
given  us  for  greater  matters  than  all  the  honours  and  plea- 
sures of  the  world,  they  are  in  vain,  or  worse ;  and  the  life  of 
ittaii  is  but  a  dream  and  misery.  Were  not  a  beast  less  mi- 
serable, if  this  were  all? 

»  Seel  Johuiii.l2.  »  Heb.xv.6. 

VOL.  VII,  L  L 


514  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

6.  How  base  a  price  do  these  Cainites  set  on  the  immor- 
tal soul  of  man,  that  think  it  not  worth  so  much  ado,  as  the 
careful  obedience  of  the  laws  of  Christ  ?  Not  worth  so  much 
as  they  do  themselves  for  their  filthy  sins  and  perishing  flesh? 
But  would  have  us  so  mad  as  to  sell  heaven  and  our  souls 
for  a  little  sinful  sloth  and  ease. 

7.  These  enemies  of  holiness  would  have  men  take  their 
mercies  for  their  hurt,  and  their  greatest  blessings  for  a  bur- 
den or  a  plague,  and  to  run  into  hell  to  be  delivered  from 
them.-  Why  man,  dost  thou  know  what  holiness  is  ?  and 
what  it  is  to  have  access  to  God  ?  I  tell  thee  it  is  the  fore- 
taste of  heaven  on  earth.  It  is  the  highest  glory,  and  sweet- 
est delight,  and  chiefest  commodity  to  the  soul.  And  art 
thou  afraid  of  having  too  much  of  this  ?  What,  thou  that 
hast  none  (which  should  make  thee  tremble),  art  thou  afraid 
of  having  too  much  ?  Thou  that  never  fearest  too  much  mo- 
ney, nor  too  much  honour,  nor  too  much  healthy  art  thou 
afraid  of  too  much  spiritual  health  and  holiness  ?  What  shall 
be  thy  desire,  if  thoti  loathe  and  fly  from  thy  felicity  ? 

8.  You  that  are  loyal  subjects,  take  heed  of  these  ungodly 
scorners ;  for  by  consequence  they  Would  tempt  you  to  des^ 
pise  your  king,  and  make  a  mock  at  the  obeying  of  his  com*- 
mands  and  laws.  For  if  a  man  persuade  you  to  despises 
judge,  he  implieth  that  you  may  despise  a.  constable^.  No 
king  is  so  great  in  comparison  of  God,  as  a  fly  or  worm  is  to 
that  king.  He  therefore  that  would  relax  the  laws  of  God, 
and  make  it  seem  a  needless  thing  to  obey  him  diligently  and 
exactly,  implieth  that  obedience  to  any  of  the  sons  of  men, 
is  much  more  needless. 

And  you  that  are  children  or  servants,  take  heed  of  the 
doctrine  of  these  men.  Masters,  admit  it  not  into  your  fa- 
milies. If  he  be  worthy  to  be  scorned  as  a  Puritan  or  Pre- 
cisian that  is  careful  to  please  and  obey  the  Lord ;  what 
scorn  do  your  children  or  servants  deserve,  if  they  will  be 
obedient  and  pleasing  to  such  as  you  ? 

9.  All  you  that  are  poor  tradesmen,  take  heed  of  the  con- 
sequences of  the  Cainites'  scorns,  lest  it  make  you  give  over 
the  labours  of  your  calling,  and  turn  yourselves  and  families 
into  beggary.  For  if  heaven  be  not  worth  your  greatest  la- 
bour, your  bodies  are  not  worth  the  least. 

10*  These   Cavw\l^^  ^^^^k  ^-aLm^t  the  awakened  con- 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  515 

seiences^  and  the  confessiona  of  all  the  world.  Whatsoever 
they  may  say  in  the  dream  of  their  blind  presumption  and 
security^  at  last^  when  death  hath  opened  their  eyes»  they  all 
cry^  *  O  that  we  had  been  saints !  ''  O  that  we  might  die 
the  death  of  the  righteous^  and  that  our  last  end  might  be  as 
his  V*  O  that  we  had  spent  that  time»  and  care«  and  labour 
for  our  souls,  which  we  spent  on  that  which  now  is  gall  to 
our  remembrance  !'  And  yet  these  men  will  take  no  warn- 
ing, but  now  oppose  and  deride  that  course  that  cdl  the  world 
clo  wish  at  last  they  had  been  as  zealous  for  as  any. 

11.  TT^e  enem/  himself  hath  a  conscience  ^thin  hi^n, 
that  either  grudgeth  against  his  malicious  impiety,  and  wit^ 
nesseth  that  he  abuseth  them  that  are  far  better  than  him- 
self or  at  least  will  shortly  call  him  to  a  reckonings  and  tell 
him  better  what  he  did,  and  make  him  change  his  face  and 
tune^  and  wish  himself  in  the  case  of  those  that  he  did  oppose. 

\%  To  conclude,  the  Cainite  is  of  that  wicked  one  ^  of 
tuilvfidher  the  devil  p  ;  and  is  his  walking,  speaking  instm^ 
Hien|^  earthy  saying  what  he  himself  would  say  :  he  is  the 
opeii  enamy  of  God :  for  who  are  his  enemies,  but  the  ene- 
mies of  holiness^  of  his  laws,  of  our  obedience,  of  his  image, 
tod  of  his  saints  ?  And  how  wiU  Christ  deal  at  last  with  his 
enemies^?  O  that  they  knew,  that  foreseeing,  they  might 
eseape  !  Thia  is  the  true,  the  ugly  picture  of  a  Cainite,  or 
enemy  of  a  holy  lile,  that  reproachedi  serious  diligence  as  a 
precise  and  needless  things  when  Ood  commandeth  us,  and 
deathi  and  the  grave,^  and  eternity  admonish  us  to  do  his 
work  with  all  our  might.  ''  Now  consider  this  ye  that  forget 
God,  lest  he  tear  you  in  pieces,  and  there  be  none  to  deli- 
ver you '." 

But  of  all  the  opposers  of  serious  holiness  in  the  world; 
there  are  none  more  ii^xcusable  and  deplorably  miserable, 
than  those  that  profess  themselves  Ministers  of  Christ. 
Would  one  believe  that  had  not  known  them,  that  there  are 
such  men  in  the  world  ?  Alas,  there  are  too  many*  Though 
education,  and  the  laws  of  the  land  engage  thetn  to  preach 
true  doctrine,  yet  are  they  false  teachers  in  the  application. 
For  they  never  well  learned  the  holy  and  heavenly  doctrine 
which  they  preach,  nor  digested  it,  or  received  the  powertmd 
ingress  of  it  upon  their  hearts ;  and  therefore,  retaining  their 

«  1  John  ill.  1«.        P  John  yui.42.  44.        <i  Lakexix.^.        ^  ^?«9\A.<«1« 


516  NOW  OR  N£VER. 

natural  corruptions,  impiety,  and  enmity  to  the  life,  and 
power,  and  practice  of  that  doctrine,, they  indirectly  destroy 
what  directly  they  would  seem  to  build ;  and  preach  both 
for  God,  and  against  him,  for  Christ  and  the  Holy  Spirit, 
and  against  them ;  for  godliness,  and  against  it,  both  in  the 
same  sermon.     In  general,  they  must  needs  speak  for  the 
word  of  God,  and  a  holy  life ;  but  when  they  come  to  the 
particulars,  they  secretly  reproach  it,  and  condemn  the  parts, 
while  they  commend  the  whole.    In  general,  they  speak  well 
of  religious,  godly,  holy  people  ;  but  when  they  meet  with 
them,  they  hate  them,  and  make  them  Precisians,  *'  a  sect 
that  is  every  where  spoken  against,  pestilent  fellows,  and 
movers  of  sedition,"  as  the  apostles  were  accused';  and 
any  thing  that  malice  can  invent  to  make  them  odious.  And 
what  they  cannot  prove,  they  will  closely  intimate,  in  the 
false  application  of  their  doctrines,  describing  them  so  as 
may  induce  the  hearers  to  believe  that  they  are  a  company 
of  self-conceited  hypocrites,  factious,  proud,  disob«diei|)it, 
turbulent,. peevish,  affecting  singularity,  desiring  to  engross 
the  reputation  of  godliness  to  themselves,  but  secretly,  as 
bad  as  others.     And  when  they  have  thus  represented  Ihem 
to  the  ignorant  sort  of  pepple,  they  have  made  the  way  of 
godliness  odious,  and  sufficiently  furnished  miserable  souls 
with  prejudice  and  dislike  ;  so  that  because  the  persons  are 
thus  made  hateful  to  them,  all  serious  diligence  for  heaven, 
all  tenderness  of  conscience,  and  fear  of  sinning,  all  heavenly 
discourse,  and  serious  preaching,  reading,  or  praying,  are 
also  made  odious  for  their  sakes ;   for  hearing  so  ill  of  the 
persons,  and  seeing  that  these  are  the  things  wherein  they 
differ  from  others,  they  reduce  their  judgment  of  their  prao 
tices  to  their  foresettled  judgment  of  the  persons*     When 
their  diligence  in  their  families,  in  prayer  and  instructions, 
in  reading  and  fruitful  improvement  of  the  Lord's-day,  or  any 
other  actions  of  strictness  and  holy  industry  are  mentioned, 
these  ungodly  ministers  are  ready  to  blot  them  with  some 
open  calumnies,  or  secret  reproaches,  or  words  of  suspicion, 
to  vindicate  their  own  unholy  lives,  and  make  people  believe 
that  serious  piety  is  faction  and  hypocrisy.  The  black  tinc- 
ture of  their  minds,  and  the  design  and  drift  of  their  preach- 
ing may  be  perceived  in  the  jeers,  girds,  and  slanderous  in* 

'  Acts  xxiv.  5.    xxviii.  ti. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  617 

timations  against  the  most  diligent  servants  of  the  Lord. 
The  controverted  truths  that  such  maintain,  they  represent 
as  errors':  their  unavoidable  errors  they  represent  as  heresy : 
their  duties  they  represent  as  faults ;  and  their  human  frail- 
ties, as  enormous  crimes :  they  feign  them  to  be  guilty  of 
the  things  that  never  entered  into  their  thoughts :  and  if 
some  that  have  professed  godliness,  be  guilty  of  greater 
crimes,  they  would  make  men  believe  that4:he  rest  are  such, 
and  that  the  family  of  Christ  is  to  be  judged  of  by  a  Judas, 
and  the  scope  is  to  intimate  that  either  their  profession  is 
culpable,  or  needless,  and  less  commendable.  Regeneration 
they  would  make  to  be  but  the  entrance  into  the  church  by 
baptism,  and  any  further  conversion,  than  the  leaving  off 
some  gross  sins,  and  taking  up  some  heartless  forms  of  duty, 
to  be  but  a  fancy  or  unnecessary  thing :  and  they  would 
draw  poor  people  to  believe,  that  if  they  be  bom  again  sa- 
cramentally  of  water,  they  may  be  saved,  though  they  be 
not  bom  again  by  the  renewing  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  Being 
strangers  themselves  to  the  mystery  of  regeneration,  and  to 
the  life  of  faith  and  a  heavenly  conversation,  and  to  the  lov- 
ing and  serving  God  with  all  their  soul  and  might ;  they 
first  endeavour  to  quiet  themselves  with  a  belief  that  these 
are  but  fancies  or  unnecessary,  and  then  to  deceive  the  peo- 
ple with  that  by  which  they  have  first  deceived  themselves. 
And  it  is  worthy  your  observation,  what  it  is  in  religion 
that  these  formal  hypocrites  are  against.  There  are  scarce, 
any  words  so  sound  or  holy,  but  they  can  bear  them,  if  they 
be  but  deprived  of  their  life  :  nor  scarce  any  duty,  if  it  be 
but  mortified,  but  they  can  endure.  But  it  is  the  spirit  and 
life  of  all  religion  which  they  cannot  bear.  As  a  body  dif- 
fereth  from  a  carcase,  not  by  the  parts,  but  by  the  life  ;  so 
there  is  a  certain  life  in  preaching,  and  prayer,  and  all  other 
acts  of  worship,  which  is  perceived  by  several  sorts  of  hear- 
ers. The  godly  perceive  it  to  their  edification  and  delight : 
for  here  it  is  that  they  are  quickened  and  encouraged.  Life 
begetteth  life,  as  fire  kindleth  fire.  The  ungodly  often  per- 
ceive it  to  their  vexation,  if  not  to  their  conviction  and  con- 
version :  this  life  in  preaching,  praying,  discipline,  reproof, 
and  conference,  is  it  which  biteth,  and  galleth,  and  disquiet- 
eth  their  consciences.  And  this  they  kick  and  rail  against: 
this  is  the  thing  that  will  not  let  them  »\ee^  c\vi\^\\^  m  ^Oc^^w 


6ia  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

sin  and  misery ;  but  is  calling  and  jogging  them  to  awake, 
and  will  not  let  them  sin  in  peace,  but  will  either  con¥ert 
them,  or  torment  them  before  the  time.  It  is  the  life  of  re- 
ligion that  the  hypocrite  wants  ;  and  the  life  that  he  is  most 
against.  A  painted  fire  bumeth  not :  a  dead  lion  biteth  not : 
the  carcase  of  an  enemy  is  not  formidable.  Let  the  word 
of  that  sermon  that  most  ofFendeth  them,  be  separated  from 
the  life,  and  put  into  a  homily,  and  said  or  read  in  a  formal, 
drowsy,  or  a  schoolboy's  tone,  and  they  can  bear  it  and  com- 
mend it.  Let  the  same  words  of  prayer  which  now  they  like 
not,  be  said  over  as  a  lifeless,  customary  form,  and  they  can 
like  it  well.  I  speak  not  against  the  use  of  forms,  but  the 
abuse  of  them :  not  against  the  body,  but  the  carcase.  Let 
forms  themselves  be  used  by  a  spiritual,  serious  man,  in  a 
spiritual,  serious  manner,  with  the  interposition  of  any  quic- 
kening exhortations,  or  occasional  passages,  that  tend  to 
keep  them  awake  and  attentive,  and  make  them  feel  what 
you  mean  and  are  about,  and  you  shall  see  they  love  not 
such  animated  forms.  It  is  the  living  Christian,  and  lively 
worship,  and  serious,  spiritual  religion,  which  they  hate : 
kill  it  and  they  can  bear  it.  Let  the  picture  of  my  enemy 
be  nearer  and  comelier  than  his  person  was,  and  I  can  en- 
dure it  in  my  bedchamber,  better  than  himself  in  the  mean- 
est dress.  It  is  the  living  Christians  that  in  all  parts  of  the 
world  are  chiefly  persecuted.  Let  them  be  once  dead,  and 
dead-hearted  hypocrites  themselves  will  honour  them,  es- 
pecially at  a  sufficient  distance :  they  will  destroy  the  living 
saints,  and  k6ep  holydays  for  the  dead  ones.  "  Woe  unto  you 
Scribes,  and  Pharisees,  hypocrites ;  because  ye  build  the 
tombs  of  the  prophets,  and  garnish  the  sepulchres  of  the 
righteous,  and  say.  If  we  had  been  in  the  days  of  our  fathers, 
we  would  not  have  been  partakers  with  them  in  the  blood  of 
the  prophets.  Wherefore  ye  be  witnesses  unto  yourselves, 
that  ye  are  the  children  of  them  which  killed  the  prophets. 
Fill  ye  up  then  the  measure  of  your  fathers.  Ye  serpents,  ye 
generation  of  vipers,  how  can  ye  escape  the  damnation  of 
hell  *  ?  "  The  dog  that  will  not  meddle  with  the  dead  crea- 
ture, will  pursue  the  living ;  and  when  he  sees  it  stir  no 
more,  will  leave  it.  Christianity  without  seriousness  is  not 
Christianity,  and  therefore  not  liable  to  the  hatred  of  its 

^  M«lXX.  iiivCv.  <i?^— ^* 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  519 

eaemies  as  such.  Say  any  thing,  and  do  any  thing  how 
strict  soever,  if  you  will  but  act  it  as  a  player  on  the  stage, 
or  do  it  coldly,  slightly,  and  as  if  you  were  but  in  jest,  you 
may  have  their  approbation.  But  it  is  this  life,  and  serious- 
ness, and  worshipping  God  in  spirit  and  truth,  that  convin- 
ceth  them  that  they  themselves  are  lifeless,  and  therefore 
troubleth  their  deceitful  peace,  and  therefore  must  not  have 
their  friendship.  If  it  were  the  mere  bulk  of  duty  that  they 
were  weary  of,  how  comes  it  to  pass  that  a  Papist .  at  his 
psalter,  beads,  and  mass-books^  can  spend  more  hours  with- 
out much  weariness  or  opposition,  than  we  can  do  in  serious 
worship  ?  Turn  all  but  into  words  and  beads,  and  canonical 
hours  and  days,  and  shews  and  ceremony,  and  you  may  be 
as  religious  as  you  will,  and  be  righteous  overmuch,  and  few 
will  hate,  or  reproach,  or  persecute  you  among  them,  as  too 
precise  or  strict.  But  living  Christians  and  worship  come 
among  them  like  fire,  that  burneth  them,  and  makes  them 
smart,  with  *'  a  word  that  is  quick  and  powerful,  sharper 
than  any  two-edged  sword,  piercing  even  to  the  dividing  of 
soul  and  spirit,  joints  and  marrow»  and  is  a  discerner  of  the 
thoughts  and  intents  of  the  heart "." 

And  the  enmity  of  the  Cainites  may  teach  the  Christian, 
what  he  should  be,  and  wherein  his  excellency  lieth.  It  is 
life  and  seriousness  that  your  enemies  hate ;  and  therefore 
it  is  life  and  seriousness  that  you  must  above  all  maintain, 
though  dead-hearted  hypocrites  never  so  much  oppose  and 
contradict  you. 

O  sirs,  they  are  no  trifles,  but  the  greatest  things  that 
God  hath  set  before  you  in  his  word,  and  called  you  out  to 
prosecute  and  possess :  and  your  time  of  seeking  them  is 
short,  and  therefore  you  have  no  time  for  trifles,  nor  any  to 
lose  in  idleness  and  slpth.  And  of  all  men,  preachers 
should  be  most  sensible  of  this.  If  they  were  not  against 
serious  holiness  in  others,  it  is  double  wickedness  for  such 
as  they,  to  be  against  it  in  themselves  It  is  great  things 
that  they  have  to  study  and  to  speak  of;  and  such  as  call 
for  the  greatest  seriousness,  and  reverence,  and  gravity  in 
the  speaker,  and  condemn  all  trifling  in  matter  or  in  manner. 
A  man  that  is  sent  of  Christ  to  run  for  an  immortal  crown, 
or  to  direct  others  in  such  a  race,  to  save  his  own,  or  othier 

«  Heb.iv.l2. 


5*20  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

men's  souls  from  endless  misery^  should  be  ashamed  to  fill 
up  his  time  with  trifles,  or  to  be  slight  and  cold  about  such 
great  and  weighty  things :  all  the  heart,  and  soul,  and  might, 
is  little  enough  for  matters  of  such  unspeakable  importance. 
When  I  hear  preachers  or  people  spend  their  time  in  little, 
impertinent,  fruitless  things,  that  do  but  divert  them  from 
the  great  business  of  their  lives,  or  to  dally  with  the  great- 
est matters,  rather  than  to  use  them,  and  treat  of  them  with 
a  seriousness  suitable  to  their  importance,  I  oft  thinjs^  of  the 
words  of  Seneca  the  serious  moralist,  as  shaming  the  hypo- 
crisy of  such  trifling  preachers  and  professors  of  the  Chris- 
tian faith ;  '  Verba  copiosa  componis,  et  interrogans  vincula 
nectis,  et  dicis.  Acuta  sunt  ista !  Nihil  acutius  arista ;  et  in 
quo  est  utilis  ?  Queedam  inutilia,  et  inefficacia  ipsa  subtili- 
tas  reddit :'  that  i?,  *  You  compose  copious  words,  and  tie 
hard  knots  by  curious  questions ;  and  you  say,  O  these  are 
acute  things  !  What  is  more  acute  than  the  peal  of  corn? 
and  yet  what  is  it  good  for?  Subtlety  itself  makes  some 
things  unprofitable  and  ineflectual.' 

"Istae  ineptisB  poetis  relinquantur,  quibus  aures  oblec- 
tare  propositum  est  et  dulcem  fabulam  nectere.  Sed  qui 
ingenia  sanare,  et  fidem  in  rebus  humanis  retinere,  ac  memo- 
riam  officiorum  animis  ingerere  volunt,  serio  loquantur,  et 
magnis  viribis  rem  agant ;"  that  is,  '  Leave  these  toys  or 
fooleries  to  poets,  whose  business  is  to  delight  the  ear,  and 
to  compose  a  pleasant  fable.  But  they  that  mean  to  heal 
men's  understandings,  and  retain  credibility  among  men,  and 
to  bring  into  men's  minds  the  remembrance  of  their  duties, 
must  speak  seriously,  and  do  their  business  with  all  their 
might.' 

•  Demens  omnibus  merito  videret ' '  He  would  justly 

by  all  be  taken  for  a  madman,  that  when  the  town  expect- 
eth  to  be  stormed  by  the  enemies,  and  others  are  busy  at 
work  for  their  defence,  will  sit  idle,  proposing  some  curious 
questions/-- — '  Nunquid  tibi  demens  videtur,  si  istis  impen- 
dero  operam,  et  nunc  obsideor?  quidagam?  morsmesequi- 
tur,  vita  fugit ;  adversis  haec  me  doce  aliquid  :  effice  ut  ego 
mortem  non  timeam,  et  vita  me  non  effugiat.'  *  And  shall 
not  I  be  taken  for  a  madman,  if  I  should  busy  myself  about 
such  things,  that  am  now  besieged  ?  What  shall  I  do  ? 
Death  pursueth  me:  \\fe  ft\^\Xi  feo\xi  ts\^\  ie^^cK  me  some- 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  521 

thing  against  these :  make  death  not  dreadful  to  me^  or  life 
not  to  fly  from  me.'  '  Si  multum  esset  eetatis,  parce  dispen- 
sandum  erat,  ut  sufficeret  necessariis  :  nunc  quae  dementia 
est,  supervacua  discere  in  tanta  temporis  egestate !'  *  If  we 
had  much  time,  we  should  sparingly  lay  it  out,  that  it  might 
suffice  for  necessary  things :  but  now  what  a  madness  is  it, 
to  learn  things  needless  or  superfluous  in  so  great  a  scarcity 
of  time  !'  '  Metire  ergo  eetatem  tuam :  tarn  multa  non  capit.' 
*  Measure  thy  age :  it  is  not  enough  for  so  many  things.' 
'Relinque  istum  ludum  literarum  philosophis.  Rem  mag- 
nificam !  ad  syllabas  vocant  qui  animum  minuta  discendo 
diminuunt  et  conterunt,  et  id  agunt,  ut  philosophia  potius 
difficilis  quam  magna  videatur :  Socrates,  qui  totam  philo- 
sophiam  revocavit  ad  mores,  hanc  summam  dixit  esse  sapi- 
entiam,  bona  malaque  distinguere.'  'Leave  this  learned 
play  to  philosophers :  a  gallant  business  !  They  call  us  to 
syllables,  and  debase  and  depress  the  mind  by  learning  such  , 
little,  trivial  things,  and  make  philosophy  rather  to  seem  a 
matter  of  difficulty  than  great.  Socrates,  that  revoked  all 
philosophy  to  manners,  did  call  this  the  highest  wisdom,  to 
distinguish  good  and  evil.' 

Did  a  Seneca  see  by  the  light  of  nature,  so  much  of  the 
necessity  of  seriousness  and  diligence,  about  the  matters  of 
the  soul  ?  And  so  much  of  the  madness  of  spending  words 
and  time,  and  trifles  ?  And  yet  shall  there  be  found  a  man 
among  professed  Christians,  and  among  the  preachers  of 
faith  and  holiness,  that  plead  for  trifling,  and  scorn  at  seri- 
ousness, and  account  them  moderate  and  wise  that  a  heathen 
brands  as  toyish  and  distracted  ?  \ 

What  is  it  that  cloudeth  the  glory  of  Christianity,  and 
keepeth  so  great  a  part  of  the  world  in  heathenism  and  infi- 
delity, but  this,  that  among  Christians  there  are  so  few  that 
are  Christians  indeed?  And  those  few  are  so  obscured  by 
the  multitude  of  formal,  trifling  hypocrites,  that  Christianity 
is  measured  and  judged  of  by  the  lives. of  those  that  are  no 
Christians?  Religion  is  a  thing  to  be  demonstrated,  and  \ 
honoured,  and  commended  by  practice  Pwords  alone  are 
meSectual  to  represent  its'  excellency  to  so  blind  a  world, 
that  must  know  by  feeling,  having  lost  their  sight.  In  our 
professed  faith  we  mount  unto  the  heavens,  and  leave  ^ooc 
unbelievers  wallowing  in  the  dirt.     O  wVvdt  ^  U^ca^c^wfti^wV* 


522  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

inconceivable  glory,  do  we  profess  to  expect  with  Qod  unto 
eternity,  and  what  manner  of  persons  should  they  be,  in  all 
holy  conversation  and  godliness,  that  look  for  such  a  life  air 
this !  How  basely  should  they  esteem  those  transitory  things, 
that  are  the  food  and  felicity  of  the  sensual  world !  How 
patiently  should  they  undergo  contempt  and  scorn,  and 
whatsoever  man  can  inflict  upon  them !  How  studiously 
should  they  devote  and  refer  all  their  time,  and  strength, 
and  wealth,  and  interest,  to  this  their  glorious,  blessed  end ! 
How  seriously  should  they  speak  of,  and  how  industriously 
should  they  seek,  such  sure,  such  near,  such  endless  joys ! 
Did  professed  Christians  more  exactly  conform  their  hearts 
and  lives  to  their  profession  and  holy  rule,  their  lives  would 
confute  the  reproaches  of  their  enemies,  and  command  a  re- 
verent and  awful  estimation  from  the  observers ;  and  do  more 
to  convince  the  unbelieving  world  of  the  truth  and  dignity 
of  the  Christian  faith,  than  all  the  words  of  the  most  subtle 
\  disputants.  Christianity  being  an  affecting  practical  science, 
:  must  practically  and  affectionately  be  declared,  according 
to  its  nature :  arguments  do  but  paint  it  out :  and  pictures 
do  no  more  make  known  its  excellency,  than  the  picture  of 
meat  and  drink  makes  known  its  sweetness.  When  a  doc- 
trine so  holy,  is  visibly  exemplified,  and  liveth,  and  walketh, 
and  worketh  in  serious  Christians  before  the  world;  either 
this  or  nothing  will  convince  them,  and  constrain  them  to 
glorify  our  Lord,  and  say,  that  God  is  among  us,  or  in  us  of 
a  truth  '^.  But  it  is  unchristian  lives,  that  darkeneth  the 
glory  of  the  Christian  faith.  When  men  that  profess  such 
glorious  hopes,  shall  be  as  sordidly  earthly,  and  sensual,  and 
ambitious,  and  impotent,  and  impatient  as  other  men,  they 
seem  but  fantastical  dissemblers. 

And  yet  shall  there  be  found  such  a  perfidious  wretch 
under  the  heavens  of  God,  as  a  professed  Minister  of  Christ, 
that  shall  subtlely  or  openly  labour  to  make  an  exact,  and 
holy,  and  heavenly  conversation  a  matter  of  reproach  and 
scorn,  and  that  under  pretence  of  reproving  the  sins  of  hypo- 
crites and  schismatics,  shall  make  the  most  exact  conformity 
to  the  Christian  rule,  and  most  faithful  obedience  to  the  al- 
mighty Sovereign,  to  seem  to  be  but  hypocrisy  or  self-con- 
ceitedness,  or  needless  trouble,  if  not  the  way  of  sedition, 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  MS 

and  public  trouble^  and  turning  all  things  upside-down? 
That  cannot  reprove  sin,  without  malicious,  insinuating 
slanders  or  suspicions  against  the  holy  law,  and  holy  life, 
that  are  most  contrary  to  sin,  as  life  to  death,  as  health  to 
sickness,  and  as  light  to  darkness  ? 

For  any  man,  especially  any  professed  Christian,  any 
where  to  oppose  or  scorn  at  godliness,  is  a  dreadful  sign,  as 
well  as  a  heinous  sin ;  but  for  a  Preacher  of  Godliness  to 
oppose  and  scorn  at  godliness,  and  that  in  the  pulpit,  while 
he  pretendeth  to  promote  it,  and  plead  for  it  in  the  name  of 
Christ,  is  a  sin  that  should  strike  the  heart  of  man  with  hor- 
ror to  conceive  of. 

Though  I  cannot  subscribe  myself  to  that  passage  in 
the  second  part  of  the  tenth  Homily,  Tom.  2.  p.  150.  (how- 
ever I  very  much  love  and  honour  the  Book  of  Homilies) 
yet  for  their  sakes  that  not  only  can  subscribe  to  it,  but 
would  have  all  kept  out  of  the  ministry  that  cannot,  and 
that  take  it  for  that  doctrine  of  the  church  of  England  whibh 
they  will  believe  and  preach,  I  will  recite  it  to  the  terror  of 
the  guilty,  not  to  drive  to  despair,  but  to  awake  them,  or  to 
shame  them  for  their  opposition  to  the  ways  of  godliness. 

Expounding  Psalm  i.  1.  -*' Blessed  is  the  man  that  hath 
not  walked  after  the  counsel  of  the  ungodly,  nor  stood  in  the 
way  of  sinners,  nor  sat  in  the  seat  of  the  scornful,"  having 
shewed  who  are  the  "  ungodly"  and  the  "  sinners,"  it  addeth 
these  words : 

''The  third  sort  he  calleth  scomers;  that  is,  a  sort  of 
men  whose  hearts  are  so  stuffed  with  malice,  that  they  are 
not  contented  to  dwell  in  sin,  and  to  lead  their  lives  in  all 
kind  of  wickedness,  but  also  they  do  contemn  and  scorn  in 
others  all  godliness,  true  religion,  all  honesty  and  virtue.  Of 
the  two  first  sorts  of  men,  I  will  not  say,  but  they  may  take 
repentance,  and  be  converted  unto  God.  Of  the  third  sort, 
I  think  I  may  without  danger  of  God's  judgment  pronounce, 
that  never  any  yet  were  converted  unto  God  by  repentance, 
but  continued  still  in  their  abominable  wickedness,  heaping 
up  to  themselves  damnation  against  the  day  of  God's  inevi- 
table judgment." 

Though  I  dare  not  say,  but  some  such  have  repented, 
yet  let  the  scorners  that  believe  this,  remember,  that  they 
subscribe  the  sentence  of  their  own  condem.n.^.t\ow. 


524  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

Though  I  look  upon  this  sort  of  the  enemies  of  holiness 
as  those  that  are  as  unlikely  to  be  recovered  and  saved,  as 
almost  any  people  in  the  world,  except  apostates  and  mali- 
cious blasphemers  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  yet  in  compassion  to 
the  people  and  themselves,  I  shall  plead  the  cause  of  God 
with  their  consciences,  and  try  what  light  can  do  with  their 
understandings,  and  the  terrors  of  the  Lord  with  their  har- 
dened hearts. 

1.  A  Preacher  of  the  Gospel  should  much  excel  the  peo- 
ple in  understanding:  and  therefore  this  sin  is  greater  in 
them  than  other  men  :  what  means,  what  light  do  they  sin 
against!  Either  thou  knowest  the  necessity  of  striving  for 
salvation  with  the  greatest  diligence,  or  thou  dost  not.  If 
not,  what  a  sin  and  shame  is  it  to  undertake  the  sacred  office 
of  the  ministry,  while  thou  knowest  not  the  things  that  are 
necessary  to  salvation,  and  that,  which  every  infant  in  the 
faith  doth  know!  But  if  thou  dost  know  it,  how  dost  thou 
make  shift  maliciously  to  oppose  it,  without  feeling  the  be- 
ginnings of  hell  upon  thy  conscience  ?  When  it  is  thy  work 
to  read  the  Scriptures,  and  meditate  on  them,  dost  thou  not 
read  thy  doom,  and  meditate  terror  ?  How  canst  thou  choose 
but  perceive  that  the  scope  of  the  word  of  God  is  contrary 
to  the  bent  of  thy  affections  and  suggestions  ?  Yea,  what 
is  more  evident  by  the  light  of  nature,  than  that  God  and 
salvation  cannot  be  regarded  with  too  much  holy  serious- 
ness, exactness  and  industry?  Should  not  the  best  things 
be  best  loved ;  and  the  greatest  matters  have  our  greatest 
care  ?  And  is  there  any  thing  to  be  compared  with  God  and 
our  eternal  state  ?  O  what  overwhelming  subjects  are  these 
to  a  sober  and  considerate  mind  !  What  toys  are  all  things 
in  comparison  of  them  !  And  yet  dost  thou  make  light  of 
them,  and  also  teach  men  so  to  do ;  as  if  there  were  some- 
thing else  that  better  deserved  men's  greatest  care  and  dili- 
gence than  they  ?  What !  a  Preacher,  and  not  a  Believer ! 
Or  a  Believer,  and  yet  not  see  enough  in  the  matters  of  eter- 
nity to  engage  all  our  powers  of  soul  and  body  against  all 
the  world  that  should  stand  in  competition! 

2.  Is  it  not  sinful  and  terrible  enough,  to  be  thyself  in  a 
carnal,  unrenewed  state  y;  alnd  to  be  without  the  Spirit  and 
life  of  Christ  ^'^  but  thou-  must  be  so  cruel  as  to  make  others 

1  Uoro/i.  iS.  ^  ^^mA.^, 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  525 

miserable  also  ?  "  But  to  the  wicked^  saith  God^  what  hast 
thou  to  do  to  declare  my  statutes?  or  that  thou  shalt  take 
my  covenant  in  thy  mouth,  seeing  thou  hatest  instruction, 
and  castest  my  words  behind  thee  *  ?"  **  Whosoever  shall 
break  one  of  these  least  commandments,  and  shall  teach  men 
so,  he  shall  be  called  the  least  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven : 
but  whosoever  shall  do  and  teach  the  same,  shall  be  called 
great  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven**." 

.3.  What  an  aggravation  is  it  of  thy  impiety  and  soul- 
murder,  that  thou  art  bound  by  office  to  teach  men  that  life 
of  holiness  which  thou  opposest ;  and  to  persuade  them  to 
that  with  all  thy  might,  which  thou  endeavourest  closely 
and  cunningly  to  disgrace !     And  wilt  thou  be  a  traitor  to 
Christ  in  the  name  of  a  Messenger  and  Preacher  of  the  Gos- 
pel ?    Wilt  thou  engSLge  thyself  to  promote  his  interest,  and 
to  use  all  thy  skill  and  power  to  build  men  up  in  holiness 
and  obedience ;  and  wheix  thou  hast  done  this,  wilt  thou  dis- 
grace and  hinder  it?     Dost  thou  take  on  thee  to  go  on  the 
message  of  Christ,  and  then  speak  against  him  ?    We  do 
not  find  that  Judas  dealt  thus  with  him :  when  he  sent  him 
as  he  did  other  preachers,  we  read  not  that  he  preached 
against  him.     O  let  not  my  soul  be  numbered  with  such 
men  in  the  day  of  the  Lord !     It  will  be  es^sier  for  Sodom 
and  Gomorrah,  than  for  the  refusers  of  the  word  and  grace 
of  Christ.    What  then  will  be  the  doom  of  the  opposers ! 
And  above  all  of  those  treacherous  opposers,  that  pretend 
themselves  to  propagate  and  promote  them ! 

If  the  wit  and  malice  of  satan's  instruments  were  sharp- 
ened against  the  ways  and  servants  of  the  Lord,  it  belongs 
to  you  to  plead  Christ's  cause,  and  shame  these  absurd,  un- 
reasonable gainsayers,  and  stop  the  mouth  of  impious  con- 
tradiction :  and  will  you  join  with  gainsayers,  and  secretly 
or  openly  say  ^  they?  Who  should  confound  the  deriders 
of  a  holy  life  but  you  ?  Who  should  lay  open  the  excellen- 
cies of  Christ,  the  glory  of  heaven,  the  terrors  of  the  Lord, 
and  all  other  obligations  to  the  most  serious  religiousness, 
but  you  that  have  undertaken  it  as  your  calling  and  employ- 
ment? If  any  man  in  the  parish  were  so  atheistical  and 
brutish,  as  to  think  God  unworthy  of  our  dearest  love,  our 
most  exact  obedience,  and  most  laborious  service,  who  should 

»  Psal.hie,  17.  ^  MaU.v,\9. 


52(t  NOW    OR    NEVEK. 

display  thia  atheist's  folly,  but  you  that  are  doubly  (as  Christ 
tians  and  ministers)  obliged  to  defend  the  honour  of  your 
Lord?  If  any  of  the  people  should  fall  into  such  a  dream 
or  dotage,  as  to  question  the  necessity  of  our  utmost  dili- 
gence in  our  preparations  for  eternal  life,  who  should  awake 
them  by  lifting  up  their  voices  as  a  trumpet,  and  help  to  re- 
cover their  understandings,  but  you  that  are  the  watdimen, 
and  know  their  blood  will  be  required  at  your  hands^  if  you 
give  them  not  loud  and  timely  warning  ?  *  If  any  subtle,  ma- 
licious servant  of  the  devil,  should  plead  against  the  neces* 
sity  of  holiness,  and  dissuade  the  people  from  serving  God 
with  all  their  might,  who  'should  be  ready  to  confirm  the 
weak,  and  strengthen  and  encourage  them  that  are  thus  as- 
saulted, and  help  to  keep  up  their  seal  and  forwardness,  but 
you  that  are  leaders  in  the  army  of  the  Lord?  I&it  not  i^ 
holy  God  that  you  are  engaged  ta  serve  ?  and  a  holy  churdi 
in  which  you  have  your  station  ?  and  a  communion  of  Isaiiila 
in  which  you  have  undert^en  to  administ^the  holy^hi*gs 
of  God  ?  Have  you  not  read  what  was  done  to  Nadab>  and 
Abihu,  when  Moses  told  Aarcm,  ''This  is  it  that  the  Lord 
6pake»  sayii^,  I  will  be  sanctified  in  them  that  come  mgh 
me,  and  before  the  people  I  will  be  glorified^."  Is  it  not  a 
holy  law  and  Gospel  which  y-ou  publish  ?  You  have  under- 
taken to  warn  the  slothful,  die  sensual,  the  worldly,  and  the 
profane>  *'  that  they  strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate,  and 
seek  first  the  kingdom  of  God  and  his  righteousness^,"  and  to 
give  diligence  to  make  sure  their  calling  and  election  V'^^ 
tp  "  give  all  diligence  in  adding  virtue  to  their  faiths  V^  sind 
"  with  all  diligence  to  keep  their  hearts  ^.'*-  And  are  you  the 
n^en  that  would  quench  their  zeal,  and  destroy  the  holy  di- 
ligence which  you^  should  preach?  The  Lord  touch  your 
hearts,  and  recover  you  in  time,  or  how  woful  will  it  be  with 
such  hardened  hypocrites,  that  in  the  light,  and  in  his  fami- 
ly and  livery,  andunder  bis  standard  and  coloursydare  prove 
traitors  and  enemies  to  the  Lord. 

4.  And  what  an  addition  is  it  to  your  guilt>  that  you 
speak  against  God  in  his  own  name  ?  By  office  you  are  to 
deliver  his  message,  and  speak  to  the  people  in  his  name, 
and  in  bis  stead*".     And  dare  you  before  the  sun,  and  under 

*^  Lev.  X.  3.  ^  Luke  xiii.  24<    Matt.  vi.  53.  «  S  Pet  i.  10. 

f  2  Pet,  I.  5.         « Pton.  \v.  <ia.  ^  *L  Cor*  ▼.  19,  fO. 


NOW    OR    NEVER.  527 

.the  heavens  of  Ood,  and  in  his  hearing,  persuade  men  that 
the  most  holy  God  is  against  holiness  ?  and  the  King  of 
saints  is  an  adversary  to  sanctity  ?  and  that  he  that  made  his 
holy  law,  is  against  the  most  exact  obeying  of  it?     Dare 
you  prefix  a  *  Thus  saith  the  Lord/  to  so  impious  a  speech  as 
*  It  is  in  vain  to  serve  the  Lord  ?    What  needs  there  so  much 
ado  for  your  salvation  ?'    Dare  you  go  to  men  as  from  the 
Lord,  and  say,  *  You  are  too  careful  and  diligent  in  his  ser- 
vice !     Less  ado  may  serve  the  turn  !    What  needs  this  fer- 
vour, and  redeeming  time  !    This  js  but  Puritanism  and  pre- 
ciseness.     It  is  better  to  do  as'  the  most,  and  venture  your 
souls  without  so  much  ado.'    Who  could  at  last  hold  up  his 
face,  or  stand  before  the  dreadful  tribunal,  that  should  be 
found  in  the  guilt  of  such  a  crime !    What !  to  put  God  in- 
to the  similitude  of  satan,  and  describe  the  Most  Holy  as  the 
enemy  of  holiness !  and  make  him  plead  against  himself,  and 
disgrace  his  own  image,  and  dissuade  men  from  that  which 
he  himself  hath  made  of  necessity  to  their  salvation !    What 
viler  blasphemy  can  be  uttered ! 

5.  And  it  aggravateth  your  sin,  that  your  relation  oblig- 
eth  you  to  the  most  tender  affections  to  your  people.    And 
yet  that  you  should  seduce  them  to  damnation.    For  the 
nurse  to  poison  them ;  for  the  parents  to  cut  the  children's  . 
throat^s,  is  worse  than  for  an  enemy  to  do  it.     If  the  devil, 
our  professed  enemy,  should  himself  appear  to  us,  and  say; 
'  Prepare  not  so  seriously  for  death.     Be  not  so  strict,  and 
diligent,  and  holy,'  it  were  not,  in  many  respects,  so  bad  as 
for  you  to  do  it,  that  should  help  to  save   us  from  his 
snares.    You  that  profess  yourselves  their  fathers ;  that 
should  travail  in  birth  till  Christ  be  formed  in  your  people's 
hearts !  that  should  love  your  people  as  your  own  bowels, 
and  tender  the  weak,  and  pity  the  wicked,  and  stick  at  no  la- 
bour, suffering,  or  cost,  Uiat  might  advance  their  holiness, 
and  further  their  salvation.^    For  you  to  tempt  men  into  a 
careless  life,  and  turn  them  out  of  the  holy  way,  is  an  aggra- 
vated cruelty.     It  is  worse  for  the  shepherd  to  destroy  us 
than  the  wolf.    Read  Ezek.  xxxiii.  xxxiv. 

6.  Are  you  not  ashamed  thus  to  contradict  yourselves  ? 
What  can  you  find  to  preach  from  the  word  of  God,  that 
tendeth  not  to  this  holy  diligence  which  you  are  against? 


528  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

How  can  you  make  shift  to  preach  an  hour,  and  not  acquaint 
men  with  the  duty  and  necessity  of  seeking  God  with  all 
their  might?  Do  you  not  tell  them,  that  "  except  they  be 
converted  and  new  born,  they  shall  not  enter  into  the  king- 
dom q(  God  \"  And  "  that  without  holiness  none  shall  see 
the  Lord""/'  And  "that  if  they  live  after  the  flesh,  they 
shall  die^"  And  "  that  except  their  righteousness  exceed 
the  righteousness  of  Scribes  and  Pharisees,  they  shall  in  no 
case  enter  the  kingdom  of  heaven  "."  And  will  you  in  your 
application,  or  private*  discourses  unsay  all  this  again,  and 
give  God  and  yourselves  the  lie  ?  And  let  people  see,  that 
the  pulpit  is  to  you  but  as  a  stage,  and  that  you  believe  not 
what  you  speak  ? 

7.  Consider  that  your  place  and  calling  maketh  you  the 
most  successful  servants  of  the  devil,  and  so  the  most  bloody 
murderers  of  souls,  while  you  give  your  judgment  against  a 
strict  and  heavenly  life.  For  a  drunkard  in  an  alehouse  to 
mock  the  minister,  and  rail  at  serious  religion,  is  less  re- 
garded by  sober  men,  and  small  advantage  to  his  master's 
cause ;  nay,  the  wickedness  of  his  life  is  so  great  a  shame  to 
his  judgment,  that  it  inclineth  many  to  think  well  of  those 
that  he  speaks  against.  But  when  a  man  that  pretendeth  to 
learning  and  understanding,  and  to  be  himself  a  Pastor  of 
the  church,  and  Preacher  of  the  mysteries  of  Christ,  shall 
make  them  odious  that  are  most  careful  of  their  souls,  and 
most  exact  in  pleasing  God,  and  shall  make  all  serious  dili- 
gence fpr  heaven  to  seem  but  intemperate  zeal  and  self-con- 
ceitedness.  And  shall  describe  a  saint  as  if  the  formal  life- 
less hypocrite,  that  giveth  God  but  the  leavings  of  the  world, 
and  never  set  his  heart  on  heaven,  were  indeed  the  man. 
What  a  snare  is  here  for  the  perdition  of  the  ignorant! 
They  that  are  naturally  averse  from  holiness,  and  are  easily 
persuaded  to  think  that  to  be  unnecessary  or  bad,  which 
seems  so  much  above  them  and  against  them,  will  be  much 
confirmed  in  their  npiistakes  and  misery,  when  they  hear  their 
teachers  speak  without  them,  the  same  that  satan  by  his 
suggestions  doth  within  them.  This  tumeth  a  trembling 
sinner  into  a  hardened  scorner.  He  that  before  went  under 
the  daily  correction  of  his  conscience,  for  neglecting  God, 

*  Johniii.  3. 5.    Matt,  xviii.  9.  ^  Heb.  zii.  14*  '  Rom.  viii.  15. 

«  Matt.  V.  iO, 


NOW.   OR    NEVER.  520 

and  omitting  holy  duties,  and  living  to  the  flesh,  grows  bold 
and  fearless,  when  he  heai*s  the  preacher  disgrace  the  stricter, 
purer  way.  By  that  time  he  hath  heard  awhile  the  fear  of 
God  derided  as  preciseness,  and  a  tender  conscience  reproach- 
ed as  a  scrupulous,  foolish  thing,  his  conscience  grows  more 
pliable  to  his  lusts,  and  hath  little  more  to  say  against  thiBm. 
When  God's  own  professed  ministers,  that  should  be  wiser 
and  better  than  the  people,  ai*e  against  this  zeal  and  indus- 
try for  heaven,  the  people  will  soon  think,  that  at  least  it  is 
tolerable .  in  them.  And  they  will  sooner  learn  to  deride  a 
saint  from  a  sermon,  or  discourse  of  a  preacher,  or  a  learned 
man,  than  from  the  scorns  or  tal^  of  hundreds  of  the  igno- 
rant. And  wilt  thou  teach  them  to  hate  godliness,  who  hast 
undertaken  before  the  righteous  God,  to  teach  them  to  prac- 
tise it  ?  He  that  dispraisetb  it,  though  under  other  names, 
and  representeth  it  as  odiolis,  though  masked  with  the  title 
of  some  odious  vice,  doth  indeed  endeavour  to  make  men 
hate  it.  And  what  a  terrible  account  wilt  thou  have  to 
make,  when  the  seduction  and  transgression  of  all  these  sin- 
ners shall  be  charged  upon  thee.  When  Christ  shall  say  to 
the  haters,  deriders,  and  opposers  of  his  holy  ways  and  ser- 
vants, ^'  Inasmuch  as  you  did  it  to  one  of  the  least  of  these 
my  brethren,  you  did  it  unto  me."  How  durst  you'  scorn 
the  image  of  your  Maker,  and  hate  the  saints  whose  com- 
munion you  professed  to  believe  ;  and  deride  or  oppose  that 
serious  holiness,  without  which  you  had  no  hope  of  being 
saved  ?  If  then  the  sinners  become  your  accusers,  and  say, 
*  Lord,  we  thought  it  had  been  but  unnecessary  preciseness, 
and  that  serious  Christians  had  been  but  self-conceited,  fac- 
tious hypocrites,  and  that  lip-service  with  a  common  worldly 
life,  might  have  served  the  turn.  We  heard  our  preachers 
represent  such  strict  and  zealous  men,  as  turbulent,  sediti- 
ous and  refractory,  as  odious,  and  not  as  imitable.  Their  ap- 
plication was  against  them.  Their  discourse  derided  them. 
Of  them  we  learnt  it.  We  thought  they  were  wiser  and  bet- 
ter than  we.  Of  whom  should  we  learn  but  of  our  teachers  V 
Wo  to  the  teachers  that  ever  they  were  born,  that  must  be 
then  found  guilty  of  this  crime. 

If  Adam's  excuse  was  Eve's  accusation,  "  The  woman 
which  thou  gavest  to  be  with  me,  she  gav^  xckfe  o^  \!ckfcVx^^»  : 

and  I  did  eat/' and  the  woman's  excuse  d\d  cJaax^^Si  \Xv^  ^«^-  } 

VOL,    Vlh  M  M 


630  NOW    OB    NEVER. 

pent,  "  The  serpent  beguiled  me,  and  I  did  eat,''/'  (thougb 
it  freed  not  the  excuBers),  how  will  it  load  you,  when  youi 
people  shall  say, '  The  teachers  that  we  thought  thou  gayest 
us,  did  teach  us,  and  go  before  us  in  setting  against  this 
holy  diligence ;  and  we  did  but  learn  of  them^  and  follow 
them!' 

8.  Are  not  the  people  backward  enough  to  the  serving 
of  God  with  all  their  might,  unless  you  hinder  theuL?  Is  not 
the  corrupted  heart  of  lapsed  man  averse  enough  to  the  mat^ 
ters  of  salvation,  but  you  must  make  them  worse?  If  yoo 
had  to  do  with  the  best  and  holiest  person  in  the  world  that 
walketh  with  God  in  the  most  heavenly  conversation,  he 
would  tell  you  that  his  dull  and  backward  heart  hath  no 
need  of  clogs,  and  pull-backs,  and  discouragements,  but  of 
all  the  help  that  can  be  afforded  him,  to  quicken  him  up  to 
:  greater  diligence.  The  most  zealous  lament  that  tl|ey  ^ure 
)  so  cold.  The  most  heavenly  lament  that  they  are  so  eadrthly 
I  and  so  strange  to  heaven.  The  most  laborious  lament  tlu^ 
I  they  are  so  slothful>  and  the  fruitfuUest  believers  that  they 
are  so  unprofitable ;  and  those  that  are  most  watchful  c^ 
their  words  and  deeds,  that  they  are  so  careless ;  and  those 
that  most  diligently  redeem  their  time,  lament  it  that  they 
lose  so  much ;  and  those  that  walk  most  accurately  and  exr 
actly,  that  they  are  so  loose,  and  keep  no  closer  to  the  rule. 
:  AncI  yet  darest  thou  increase  the  backwardness  of  the  un- 
godly ?  Will  not  their  carnal  interest  and  lust  serve  turn  to 
keep  them  from  a  holy  life?  Is  not  satan  strong  enough  of 
himself?  Will  not  the  common  distaste  of  godliness  in  the 
world,  sufficiently  prejudice  and  avert  them  without  thy 
help  ?  Do  you  see  your  people  so  forward  to  do  too  much 
for  heaven,  that  you  must  pull  them  back  ?  Canaot  fools 
be  damned  without  your  furtherance?  or  is  it  a  desirable 
work,  and  will  it  pay  for  your  cost  and  labour?  The  way 
is  up  hill ;  the  best  of  us  are  weak,  and  frequently  ready  to 
sit  down !  A  thousand  impediments  are  cast  before  us  by 
satan  and  the  world,  to  make  us  linger  till  the  time  be  past, 
and  many  a  charm  of  pleasure  and  diversion  to  make  us 
sleep  till  the  door  be  shut.  And  Ministers  are  Bent  to  keep 
us  walking,  and  take  us  by  the  hand,  and  lead  us  on,  and 
remove  impediments.     Kudi  %W\\  vVi^'^  ^^t  ia  with  the  ene- 


NOW    OR    NEVEK.  531 

mj,  and  be  our  chiefest  hinderers  ?  O  treacherous  guides ! 
O  miserable  helps !  Are  not  our  dark  understandings,  our 
earthly,  dull  and  backward  hearts,  our  passions  and  trou- 
bled affections,  our  appetites  and  sensual  inclinations,  our 
natural  strangeness  and  averseness  to  God,  and  heaven,  and 
holiness,  enough  to  hinder  us  without  you  ?  Are  not  all  the 
temptations  of  the  devil,  the  allurements  of  the  flesh  and 
world,  the  impediments  of  poverty  and  riches,  of  flattery  and 
of  frowns,  of  friends  and  foes,  in  our  callings,  and  in  our  di* 
vertisements,  are  not  all  these  enough  to  cool  and  dull  us, 
and  keep  us  from  serving  God  too  much,  and  being  too 
careful  and  diligent  for  our  souls,  but  Preachers  themselves 
must  be  our  impediments  and  snares  ?  Now  the  Lord  deli- 
ver us  from  such  impediments,  and  his  church  from  such 
unhappy  guides ! 

9.  Consider  whom  thou  imitatest  in  this.  Is  it  Christ 
or  satan  ?  Christ  calleth  men  to  strive,  to  labour,  to  seek, 
to  watcb^  to  pray  always,  and  not  wax  faint  ^.  The  apostles 
call  men  to  be  "  fervent  in  spirit,  serving  the  Lord ;  to  be  a 
peculiar  people,  zealous  of  good  works;  to  pray  continually; 
to  be  a  chosen  generation,  a  royal  priesthood  a  holy  nation, 
a  peculiar  people,  to  show  forth  the  praises  of  him  that 
hath'  called  us,  and  offer  up  spiritual  sacrifices  acceptable  to 
God  by  Jesus  Christ  p."  "  To  fight  the  good  fight  of  faith, 
and  lay  hold  upon  eternal  life "«.".  "  To  serve  God  accepts 
ably,  being  as  a  consuming  fire,  with  reverence  and  godly 
feai!'/*  "  To  be  steadfast,  unmoveable,  always  abounding 
in  the  work  of  the  Lord,  forasmuch  as  we  know  that  our  lia- 
bour  is  not  in  vain  in  the  Lord  ^"  And  dare  you  gainsay 
the  Lord  and  his  apostles,  and  concur  with>  satan,  and  th« 
Pharisees  and  enemies  of  Christ? 

10.  You  do  your  worst  to  make  the  sacred  office  of  the 
ministry  to  become  contemptible,  as  Eli's  sons  did.  Poor 
people  that  cannot  sufficiently  distinguish  the  doctrine  from 
the  application,  the  offi^ce  from  the  person,  the  use  from  the 
abuse,  will  be  tempted  to  run  from  the  ordinances  of  God, 
and  think  the  worse  of  others  for  your  sakes,  and  suspect 
all  their  food,  because  you  mix  such  poison  in  it.     And  the 

o  Lake  xiL  24.   John  vL  2^7.    Matt,  ti*  33. .  luiv.  \S.   l.\iV«  viavv.  V^ 

p  1  Pet,  lis  3. 9.  /I  Theaa.  v.  17.    Tit.  U.  14.    B»ia,  xv\.  V\. 

«  tTim,  vi.  isg.  r  /Jeb.  xii.  28, 29.  *  1  Cat.  v«.  b^* 


53*2  NOW    OK    NEVER. 

more  holy  and  necessary  the  office  and  work  is»  the  greater 
is  your  sin  in  corrupting  it,  or  making  it  suspected  or  ab- 
horred. 

Consider  soberly  of  these  things,  and  then  go  on  and 
speak  against  a  life  of  holy  diligence  if  you  dare. 

I  know  you  will  say,  •*  It  is  not  godliness,  but  sihgularity, 
or  humour,  or  disobedience,  or  hypocrisy,  or  faction,  that 
you  oppose ;  and  perhaps  you  will  instance  in  some  that  are 
guilty  of  some  of  these,  or  seem  so  at  the  least. 

But  L  I  do  here  solemnly  profess  that  I  hate  these  crimes 
as  well  as  you ;  and  that  it  is  not  any  part  0f  my  intention 
to  plead  for  intemperance,  disobedience  in  lawful  things,  for 
schism^  or  faction,  or  any  irregularity.  And  this  I  here  put 
in  against  those  that  are  disposed  to  misunderstanding,  and 
misreport  us,  and  leave  it  as  on  record  to  prove  them  slan- 
derers, that  shall  accuse  me  of  defending  any  such  thing. 
And  I  do  protest  against  those  on  the  other  side,  that  will 
fetch  encouragement  for  any  transgression,  from,  my  neces- 
sary plea  for  th^  holy  industry  apd  vigilancy^of  befievers. 
And,  moreover,  I  do  profess  that  it  is  only  the  opposers  of 
holiness  that  I  mean  in  this  defence,  and  have  not  the  least 
intent  to  intimate  that  any  others  are  guilty  of  that  crime 
that  are  not.  But  having  premised  this  protestation,  to 
prevent  mistakes  and  false  reports,  I  answer  now  to  the 
-guilty. 

2.  If  it  be  crimes  only  that  you  are  against,  deliver  your- 
self so,  as  may  not  lay  reproach  or  suspicion  on  godliness, 
which  is  most  opposite  to  all  crimes.  Cannot  you  preach 
against  divisions,  disobedience,  or  any  other  sin,  without  any 
scornful  intimations  or  reflections  against  men's  diligent 
serving  of  the  Lord? 

3.  Why  do  not  you  commend  those  that  are  not  liable 
to  your  accusations,  and  encourage  them  in  holiness,  and 
draw  others  to  imitate  them  ?  And  why  do  you  not  com- 
mend the  good,  where  you  discommend  the  evil  that  is 
commixt? 

4.  Shall  health  and  life  be  made  a  scorn,  because  there 
are  few  but  have  some  distemper  and  disease  ?  Shall  Chris- 
tianity  and  holiness  be  secretly  reproached,  because  all 
Christians  have  some  ?^\s\\.  \.o  \>^  ^c»c\i^^^  oHI    W  men  be 
faulty,  you  should  peT^\iad^\Xv««i\.Q\5^\!CLQt^^\T^^ 


NOW    OR    NRVKR,  633 

gent,  and  not  less.  It  is  for  want  of  watchfulness  and  strict- 
ness that  they  sin.  Nothing  is  more  contrary  to  their  faults 
than  holiness.  There  is  no  other  way  for  their  full  reforma- 
tion. And  therefore  all  true  humbled  Christians  are  ready 
to  confess  their  faultiness  themselves  ;  but  so  far  are  they 
from  thinking  the  worse  of  piety  for  it,  that  it  is  one  great 
reason  that  moveth  them  to  go  on,  and  to  read,  and  hear, 
and  pray,  and  meditate,  and  do  so  much  that  they  may  get 
more  strength  against  their  faults.  Must  they  think  ill  of 
food,  and  physic,  and  exercise,  because  they  are  infirm  ? 
All  faithful  ministers  tell  their  people  plainly  of  their  sins 
(so  far  as  they  are  acquainted  with  them)  as  well  as  you. 
But  they  do  it  not  in  a  way  reproachful  to  their  holy  dili- 
gence. They  do  not,  therefore,  call  them  off  from  godli- 
ness, nor  tempt  them  to  be  less  in  the  use  of  means,  but 
more,  by  how  much  their  need  is  greater.  A  holy  heart, 
and  a  malignant  heart,  will  shew  their  difference  in  the  re- 
proving of  the  same  fault.  The  one  layeth  all  the  odium  on 
the  vice,  and  honoureth  the  holy  obedience  of  the  saints. 
The  other  fasteneth  his  sting  upon  the  godly,  and  under  pre- 
tence of  dishonouring  their  faults,  doth  seek  to  fasten  the 
dishonour  on  their  holiness.  And  those  that  are  so  minded, 
will  never  want  occasion  or  pretence,  for  the  worst  that  sa- 
tan  would  have  them  say.  The  church  will  never  be  with- 
out some  hypocrites,  and  scandals,  nor  the  best  without 
some  faults  and  passions ;  nor  the  holiest  action  without 
some  mixture  of  human  frailty  and  infirmity ;  nor  will  the 
very  goodness  and  holiness  of  the  action,  be  free  from  plau- 
sible calumnies  and  scorns,  while  there  is  the  wit  and  venom 
of  the  serpent  in  the  heads  and  hearts  of  wicked  men. 

How  easy  is  it  to  put  a  name  of  ignominy  upon  every  per- 
son, and  every  duty  ?  To  charge  any  map  with  hypocrisy, 
or  pride.  To  take  the  wisest  man  for  self-conceited,  be- 
cause he  is  not  of  the  accuser's  mind.  To  call  our  obedi- 
ence to  God  by  the  name  of  disobedience  unto  man,  when 
man  forbids  it,  as  they  used  the  three  witnesses*,  and 
Daniel  himself  for  praying  in  his  house  ",  though  they  con- 
fessed they  had  nothing  else  against  him.  To  call  God's 
truth  by  the  name  of  heresy,  and  heresy  by  the  name  of 
truth.     To  charge  all  with  schism  that  dare  not  subject  thevt 


>    1 


534  NOir   OK    NEVEB. 

souls  to  the  usurpation  and  arrogant  impositions  of  the 
sons  of  pride^  that  have  neither  authority  nor  ability  to 
govern  us^  as  the  Papists  deal  by  the  greatest  part  of  the 
Christian  world.  To  lay  snares  for  men's  consciences,  and 
then  accuse  them  for  falling  into  those  snares.  To  make 
new  articles  of  faith,  till  they  have  transcended  the  capacity 
of  divine  and  rational  belief,  and  then  condemn  us  for  not 
believing  them.  To  make  laws  for  the  church,  unnecessary 
in  their  own  opinion,  and  sinful  in  other  men's,  and  com- 
mand things  which  they  know  that  others  think  the  Lord 
forbids,  and  then  load  them  with  the  sufferings  and  re- 
proaches of  the  disobedient,  turbulent,  heretical,  schismati- 
cal,  or  seditious.  To  call  men  factious,  if  they  will  not  be 
of  their  faction.  And  sectaries,  if  they  will  not  unreason- 
ably subject  their  souls  to  them,  and  join  with  an  imperious 
sect  against  the  catholic  unity  and  simplicity.  All  which 
the  Romanists  practise  upon  the  church  of  Christ.  How 
easy,  but  how  unreasonable,  and  yet  how  unresistible  is  all 
this.  How  easy  is  it  to  call  a  meeting  of  sober  Christians, 
for  prayer  and  mutual  edification,  such  as  that  was.  Acts 
xii.  12.  by  the  name  of  a  factious,  schismatical  conventicle ; 
and  a  meeting  of  drunkards,  or  gamesters,  by  a  more  gentle, 
less  disgraceful  name.  To  say  a  man  becomes  a  preacher, 
when  he  modestly  reproveth  another  for  his  sins,  or  chari- 
tably exhorteth  him  in  order  to  his  salvation,  or  giveth  any 
necessary  plain  instruction  to  his  family,  for  whom  he  must 
give  account.  Believe  it,  it  will  be  a  poor  excuse  to  any 
man,  that  becomes  an  enemy  to  the  diligence  of  a  saint, 
tiiat  he  could  thus  cloak  his  malice,  and  clothe  a  saint  with 
the  visor  of  an  hypocrite,  and  the  rags  of  any  odious  sect. 

If  the  Pharisees  were  to  be  believed,  it  was  not  they, 
but  Christ  that  was  the  hypocrite  ;  nor  was  it  the  Son  of 
God,  but  an  enemy  to  CsBsar,  and  a  blasphemer,  that  they 
put  to  death.  But  will  not  Christ  know  his  sheep  though 
he  find  them  torn  in  a  wolf's  skin  ?  You  say  it  is  turbu- 
lent precisians  that  you  strike  ;  but  what  if  Christ  find  but 
one  of  the  least  of  his  brethren  bleeding  by  it?  It  is  but 
hypocrites  or  schismatics  that  you  reproach  ;  but  if  Christ 
find  a  humble,  serious  Christian  suffering  by  your  abuse,  and 
you  to  answer  it,  I  vf o\x\A.  tvo\.  \ife  \w  ^<iMT  coats  for  all  the 
greatness  and^bonout  \jQi«it  ^c)\3L^'a!^\sa?»^\i^W^'^^>x\^^«t- 


NOW    OR    NEVER.  536 

lasting  shame.  If  TertuUus  accuse  a  pestilent  fellow,  and  a 
mover  of  sedition,  and  Christ  find  a  holy,  laborious  apostle 
in  bonds  and  suffering  by  it,  it  is  not  his  names  that  will  ex- 
cuse him,  and  make  an  apostle,  or  persecution  to  be  another 
tiling. 

To  return  to  the  endangered  fiocks :  Look  upwards, 
sirs,  and  think  whether  heaven  be  worth  your  labour  !  Look 
downwards,  and  think  whether  earth  be  more  worthy  of  it ! 
Lay  up  your  treasures  where  you  must  dwell  for  ever.  If 
that  be  here,  then  scrape,  and  flatter,  and  get  all  that  you 
can.  But  if  it  be  not  here,  but  in  another  life,  then  hearken 
to  your  Lord,  and  lay  up  for  yourselves  a  treasure  in  hea- 
ven, and  there  let  your  hearts  be  set"".  And  upon  the  peril 
of  everlasting  misery,  hearken  not  to  any  man  that  will  tempt 
you  from  a  diligent,  holy  life.  It  is  a  serious  business,  deal 
seriously  in  it ;  and  be  not  laughed  or  mocked  out  of  hea- 
ven, by  the  fiouts  of  a  distracted,  sensual  atheist.  If  any  of 
thiem  will  pretend  sobriety  and  wisdom,  and  undertake  to 
prove  that  God  should  not  be  loved  and  served,  and  your 
salvation  sought  with  all  your  might,  and  with  greater  care 
and  diligence  than  any  earthly  thing,  procure  me  a  sober 
conference  with  that  man,  and  try  whether  I  prove  him  to  be 
a  befooled  servant  of  the  devil,  and  a  mischievous  enemy  of 
your  salvation  and  his  own.  O  that  we  might  have  but  so- 
ber debates,  instead  of  jeers,  and  scorns,  and  railing,  with 
this  sort  of  men  !  How  quickly  should  we  shew  you  that 
they  must  renounce  the  Scripture,  and  renounce  Christia- 
nity, and  (if  that  be  nothing  with  them)  that  they  must  re- 
nounce God,  and  renounce  right  reason,  and  unman  them- 
selves, if  they  will  renounce  a  holy,  heavenly  life,  and  blame 
them  that  make  it  their  principal  business  in  the  world  to 
prepare  for  the  world  to  come. 

But  if  they  will  not  be  entreated  to  such  a  sober  confer- 
ence, will  you  that  hear  them  (if  you  care  what  becomes  of 
you)  but  come  to  us,  and  hear  what  we  can  say  for  a  holy 
life,  before  you  hearken  to  them ;  and  let  your  souls  have 
feir  play,  and  shew  that  you  have  so  much  love  to  yourselves, 
as  not  to  cast  away  salvation  at  the  derision  of  a  fool,  be- 
fore you  have  heard  the  other  side. 

If  I  make  not  good  the  strictest  law  of  God  Almighty  > 

«  Matt,  y'u  20,  %^. 


536  NOW    OR    N£V£R. 

against  the  most  sabtle  cavils  of  any  of  the  instmments  of 
satan,  then  tell  me  that  infidels  or  epicures  are  in  the  riglii- 
Compare  their  words  with  the  words  of  God  ;  consider  wefc 
but  th^t  one  text,  2  Pet.  iii.  11.,  and  tell  me  whether  it  saii 
with  their  opinions,  "  Seeing  all  these  things  must  be  dia-f 
solved,  what  manner  of  persons  ought  we  to  be  in  all  manner 
of  holy  conversation  and  godliness  ;  looking  for  and  hast*- 
ing  to  the  coming  of  the  day  of  God !"  Did  these  words 
but  sink  into  your  hearts,  the  next  time  you  heard  any  man. 
reproach  a  holy,  heavenly  life,  it  would  perhaps  make  yoa^ 
think  of  the  words  of  Paul  to  such  another :  "  O  full  of  aU> 
subtlety  and  all  mischief,  thou  child  of  the  devil ;  thou  ene-: 
my  of  all  righteousness,  wilt  thou  not  cease  to  pervert  the 
right  ways  of  the  Lord  ^V  > 

And  if  holiness  be  evil  spoken  of  by  them  that  never 
tried  it,  what  wonder!      Christ  hath   foretold  us  that  i% 
must  be  so.     '*  Blessed  are  ye  when  men  shall  revile  you  and 
persecute  you,  and  say  all  manner  of  evil  against  you  falsely 
for  my  sake.     Rejoice  and  be  exceeding  glad,  for  great  i» 
your  reward  in  heaven ;    for  so  persecuted  they  the  pro- 
phets which  were  before  you  *."     If  ye  were  of  the  world, 
the  world  would  love  his  own  ;  but  because  ye  are  not  of 
the  world,  but  I  have  chosen  you  out  of  the  world,  therefore 
the  world  hateth  you%"  &c.     "They  think  it  strange  that 
you  run  not  with  them  to  the  same  excess  of  riot,  speaking 
evil  of  you,  who  shall  give  account  to  him  that  is  ready  to 
judge  the  quick  and  dead.     If  ye  be  reproached  for  the 
name  of  Christ,  happy  are  ye  ;  for  the  Spirit  of  glory,  and 
of  Gcd,  resteth  upon  you.     On  their  part  he  is  evil  spoken 
of,  but  on  your  part  he  is  glorified  **.*'     Seneca  himself  oft 
telleth  us,  that  among  the  heathens,  virtue  was  a  derision, 
so  far  is  the  nature  of  man  degenerated.     The  question  is 
not  what  you  are  called  or  taken  to  be,  but  what  you  are. 
*  Intus  teipsum  considera,  (inquit  Sen.)  non  qualis  sis  aliis 
credas ;  plerumque  boni  inepti,  et  inertes  vocantur.     Mihi 
contingat  iste  derisus.     ^quo  animo  audienda  sunt  imperi- 
torum  convitia,  et  ad  honesta  vadendi  contemnendus  est 
iste  contemptus ;"  that  is  '  Inwardly  consider  of  thyself  and 
judge  not  what  thou  art  by  the  words  of  others.     For  the 

yActsxiii.  10.  «  Matt.  V.  11,12.  »  John  xv.  19,  «0. 

«»J  Pet.  iv.  4,5.14. 


NOW  OR  N£VEft.  s       53? 

most  part  good  men  are  called  fools  and  dullards.  Let  me 
be  so  derided.  The  reproaches  of  the  ignorant  (or  unskil- 
ful) must  be  patiently  heard,  and  this  contempt  of  one  that 
foUoweth  virtue,  must  be  contemned.'  Yea,  it  is  the  high- 
est honour  to  be  Content  to  be  counted  bad,  that  we  may 
not  be  so ;  and  the  greatest  trial  whether  we  be  indeed  sin- 
cere, to  be  put  to  it,  to  be  either  accounted  hypocrites,  or  to 
be  such.  Methinks  I  can  scarce  too  oft  recite  that  excellent 
saying  of  Seneca,  Epist.  72.  *  Nemo  plus  videtur  sestimare 
virtutem,  nemo  magis  illi  esse  devotus,  quam  qui  boni  viri 
famam  perdidit  ne  conscientiam  perderet :'  '  No  man  seems 
to  set  a  higher  price  on  virtue ;  no  man  seems  to  be  more 
devoted  to  it,  than  he  that  hath  lost  the  reputation  of  being 
a  good  man,  lest  he  should  lose  his  conscience.' 

But  perhaps  you  will  ask,  *  May  not  a  man  be  righteous 
overmuch  V  as  is  intimated,  Eccles.  vii.  17. 

I  answer,  it  is  making  a  man's  self  over  wise  or  righte- 
ous, that  is  there  reproved.     And  no  doubt  but,  1.  Many 
take  on  them,  or  make  themselves  more  wise  and  righteous 
than  they  are ;  that  is,  are  hypocrites.     2.  As  righteousness 
is  taken  materially  and  in  common  estimation,  so  a  man  may 
be  too  righteous.     He  may  be  too  rigorous  ;   which  is  cal- 
led justice  ;  and  too  much  in  grief,  or  fear,  or  trouble  :  and 
too  much  in  any  outward  act  that  goeth  under  the  name  of 
duty.  Butit  is  not  then  truly  and  formally  duty  and  righteous- 
ness, but  sin.     As  to  fast  to  the  disabling  the  body  for  God's 
service.     To  pray  when  we  should  hear.     To  hear  when  we 
should  be  about  some  greater  work  of  mercy  or  necessity. 
To  neglect  our  outward  labour  and  calling  on  pretence  of 
religion.    To  set  up  sacrifice  against  or  before  mercy.     To 
sorrow  when  we  should  rejoice.     To  meditate,  and  fear,  and 
grieve,  beyond  what  the  brain  can  bear,  till  it  distract  us. 
This  is  called,  being  righteous  overmuch.      As  also  to  make 
us  a  religion  of  our  own  inventions,  and  to  overdo  with  will- 
worship,  and  the  traditions  of  men,  as  the  Pharisees  and 
Papists.    But  indeed  this  is  not  righteousness,  but  sin.     To 
be  formally  overmuch  righteous,  is  a  contradiction  and  im- 
possible.    For  to  go  beyond  the  rule  is  unrighteousness. 
And  to  do  too  much,  is  to  go  beyond  the  rule.     Unless  you 
dare  imagine,  that  God  hath  erred,  and  the  rule  itself  is 
over  strict,  and  the  law  is  unrighteous.     But  then  how  shall 


538  NOW  OR  NEVfiR. 

God  judge  the  world  ^  ?"  smth  the  apostle.  ^*  Shall  not  the 
Judge  of  all  the  world  do  righteously^/'  Nay,  how  then 
should  he  be  God  ? 

And  is  there  any  thing  now  left  but  ignorance  or  wick- 
edness to  stand  np  against  thy  speedy  diligence  ?     Away 
then  with  thy  delays  and  slothfulness :  if  thou  wilt  serve 
God  with  all  thy  might,  let  it  be  seen.     If  thou  wilt  be  a 
Christian  indeed,  let  deeds  declare  it.      Christianity  is  not 
a  dead  opinion.    If  really  thou  live  in  hope  of  heaven,  such 
hopes  will  make  thee  stir  for  the  attainment.    Why  stand- 
est  thou  idle,  when  thou  art  bom  for  work,  and  all  thy  &- 
culties  are  given  thee  for  work,  and  thou  art  redeemed  for 
work  ?  (for  evangelical  work.)    If  thou  be  sanctified,  thou 
hast  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  a  quickening,  working  principle 
within  thee ;  which  way  canst  thou  look,  that  thou  mayst 
see  that  which  would  shame  a  slothful  soul,  and  fire  a  cold 
and  frozen  heart,  and  call  thee  up  to  a  speedy  industry? 
What  quickening  words  shalt  thou  find  in  Scripture,  if  thou 
wilt  but  bring  thy  heart  thither,  as  one  that  is' willing  to  be 
quickened  ?     What  powerful   commands,  what  promises, 
what  threatenings,  what  holy  examples  of  exceeding  dili- 
gence of  Christ  and  his  apostles !     See  how  the  godly  about 
thee  are  at  work,  though  the  world  oppose  them  and  deride 
them  !     How  earnestly  they  pray  !  how  carefully  they  walk ! 
how  sadly  they  complain  that  they  are  no  better !     And 
hast  thou  not  an  immortal  soul  to  save  or  lose  as  well  as 
they?     See  what  a  stir  the  proud,  ambitious  person  makes 
for  less  than  nothing !  what  a  stir  the  covetous  and  the  vo- 
luptuous make  for  a  sweetened  draught  of  mortal  poison ! 
And  shall  we  be  idle  thiat  are  engaged  for  heaven  ?     Is  it 
ifeason  that  we  should  do  less  for  God  and  our  salvation,  than 
they  do  for  sinful  pleasure  to  damnation  ?  You  cannot  mock 
them  out  of  their  pride  or  covetousness :    and  shall  they 
mock  thee  out  of  thy  religion,  and  thy  hopes  of  heaven  ? 
All  the  commands,  and  promise,  and  threatenings  of  God, 
the  most  powerful  preaching,  that,  as  it  were,  sets  open  hea- 
ven and  hell  to  them,  doth  not  prevail  with  fleshly  men,  to 
leave  the  most  sordid  and  unmanly  sin  :  and  shall  the  words 
or  frowns  of  creeping  dust  prevail  with  thee  against  the 
work  for  wbicYi  t\io\x  \\n^1  vtv  IK^  world,  when  thou  haiit  still 

c  Bom.  va.  6.  ^  ^«sv.  iwvC»:*t^* 


NOW  OR  MKVElt.  689 

athaiid  mmnswerable  orgaitents  from  God^  from  thyself^ 
from  heaven  and  bell,  to  put  ibee  on  ?    Were  it  but  for  thy 
life,  or  the  life  of  thy  children,  friend,  yea,  or  enemy  ;  or  for 
the  quenching  of  a  fire  in  thy  house,  or  in  the  town,  wouldst 
thou  not  stir  and  do  thy  best  ?     And  wilt  thou  be  idle  when 
eternal  life  lies  on  it?     Let  satan  bawl  against  thee  by  Ms 
instruments :  let  senseless  sinners  talk  awhile  of  they  know 
hot  what,  till  God  hath  made  them  change  their  note :  let 
what  will  be  the  consequent  to  thy  flesh  :  these  are  not  mat- 
ters for  a  man  much  to  observe,  that  is  engaged  for  an  end- 
less life.    O  what  are  these  to  the  things  that  thou  art  called 
to  prosecute  !     Hold  on  then.  Christians,  in  the  work  that 
you  have  begim.     Do  it  prudently,  and  do  it  universally. 
Take  it  together,  both  works  of  piety,  justice,  and  cbarity  j 
but  do  it  now  without  delay,  and  do  it  sefriously  with  yo^r 
might.     I  know  not  what  cloud  of  darkness  hath  sensed  on 
those  men's  minds  that  speak  against  this,  or  what  deadly 
damp  hath  seized  on  their  hearts  that  hath  so  benumbed  and 
unmatmed  them.      For  my  own  part,  though  I  have  long 
lived  in  a  sense  of  the  preciousness  of  time,  and  have  not 
been  wholly  idle  in  the  world  ;  yet  when  I  have  the  dieepeist 
thoughts  of  the  great,  everlasting  consequents  of  my  work, 
and  of  the  uncertainty  and  shortness  of  my  time,  I  am  even 
amazed  to  think  that  my  heart  can  be  so  slow  and  senseless, 
as  to  do  no  more  in  such  a  case.    The  Lord  knows,  and  my 
accusing,  wounded  conscience  knows,  than  my  slothfulness 
is  so  much  my  shame  and  admiration,  that  I  am  astonished 
to  think  that  my  resolutions  are  no  stronger,  my  affections 
no  livelier,  and  my  labour  and  diligence  no  greater,  when 
God  is  the  commander,  and  his  love  the  encourager,  and  his 
wrath  the  spur,  and  beaven  or  hell  must  be  the  issue.     O 
what  lives  should  all  of  us  live,  that  have  things  of  such  un- 
speakable consequence  on  our  hands,  if  our  hearts  were  not 
almost  dead  within  us  ?     Let  who  will  speak  against  such  a 
Ufe,  it  will  be  my  daily  grief  and  moan,  that  I  am  so  diill^ 
and  do  so  little.     I  know  that  our  works  do  not  profit  the 
Almighty,  nor  bear  any  proportion  with  his  reward  ;  nor  can 
^by  stand  in  his  sight,  but  as  accepted  in  the  Lord  our 
righteousness,  knd  perfumed  by  the  odour  of  his  merits. 
But  I  know  they  are  necessary,  and  they  at^  eiNv^eV*   N<  \\Xv- 
out  the  holy  employment  of  our  foomUves,  AKi^XiSft^'wSXXi^ 


540  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

but  a  burden  or  a  dream,  and  the  next  an  inexpressible  mi- 
sery. O,  therefore,  that  I  had  more  of  the  love  of  God,  that 
my  soul  could  get  but  nearer  to  him,  and  more  swiftly  move 
upward  by.faith  and  love  !  O  that  I  had  more  of  that  holy 
life,  and  active  diligence,  which  the  serpentine,  Cainish  na- 
ture doth  abhor,  though  I  had  with  it  the  scorns  of  all  about 
me,  and  though  they  made  me,  as  they  once  did  better  men, 
as  the  filth  of  the  world,  and  the  offscouring  of  all  things*! 
O  that  I  had  more  of  this  derided  diligence,  and  holy  con- 
verse with  the  Lord,  though  my  name  were  cast  out  as  an 
evil  doer  ^ :  and  I  were  spit  at  and  buffeted  by  those. that  do 
now  but  secretly  reproach !  Might  I  nearly  follow  Christ 
in  holiness,  why  should  I  grudge  to  bear  his  cross,  and  to 
be  used  as  he  was  used^?  knowing  that  ''if  we  suffer  with 
him,  we  shall  also  reign  with  him ;  and  the  sufferings  of  this 
present  time  are  not  worthy  to  be  compared  with  the  glory 
that  shall  be  revealed  in  us  **/* 

If  when  we  have  done  all,  we  are  but  unprofitable  ser- 
vants, and  must  say  we  have  done  but  our  duty  ^  have  we 
not  all  more  need  of  monitors  to  humble  us  for  doing  so 
much  less  than  our  duty,  than  to  be  reprehended  for  being 
too  diligent  and  exact? 

I  again  protest,  that  it  is  not  any  works  of  supereroga- 
tion, or  human  invention,  superstition,  or  self-appointment 
that  I  am  defending,  but  only  the  accurate  obeying  of  the 
laws  of  God,  and  the  utmost  diligence  in  such  obedience, 
for  the  obtaining  of  everlasting  life.  Either  God  hath  com- 
manded these  works  of  holiness,  justice,  and  charity,  or  not. 
If  he  have  not,  then  I  have  done,  and  yield  the  cause  :  it  is 
only  what  he  hath  commanded  that  I  plead  for.  O  that  be- 
fore you  either  speak  against  any  holy  duty,  or  yourselves 
neglect  it,  you  would  but  come  to  us,  and  soberly  join  in 
searching  the  Holy  Scriptures,  to  see  whether  it  be  required 
there  or  not ;  and  resolve  but  to  obey  it,  if  we  prove  it 
thence :  and  if  it  be  but  a  matter  of  human  imposition,  we 
leave  you  to  yourselves,  and  should  desire  that  you  may  be 
much  left  to  yourselves  in  such  things  ;  and  that  you  place 
not  too  much  of  your  religion  therein.  But  if  indeed  it  be 
commanded  in  the  word  of  God,  I  beseech  you,  as  you  are 

«  1  Cor.  XIV.  13,  '  \->\Vf^  V\.  1*1.        *  \ll!a\\..iaN\»'W,    IaiVc  xvnu  32, 

h  Rom.  vm.  17,  ift.       ^  li^Vc  w\.  \0. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  541 

Christians,  and  as  you  are  men,  remember  that  whenever 
you  blame  or  scorn  a  holy  duty,  it  is  God  himself  that  you 
blame  or  scorn.  If  it  be  naught,  it  is  long  of  him  that  did 
command  it:  the  subject  must  obey.  Should  not  such 
worms  as  we  obey  the  infinite  God  that  made  us  ?  If  it  be 
a  fault  to  obey,  it  is  a  duty  to  rebel,  or  disobey  ;  and  that 
must  be  because  that  God  hath  no  authority  to  command^ 
and  that  must  be  because  he  is  not  God.  See  whither  you 
bring  your  opposition  to  a  holy  life.  And  dare  you  stand 
to  this  ?  Dare  you  as  openly  mock  God  for  making  these 
strict  and  holy  laws,  as  you  do  men  for  obeying  them  '^  None 
but  a  professed  atheist  dare. 

Alas,  sirs,  it  is  nothing  but  intoxicating  prosperity,  and 
sensual  delights,  and  worldly  diversions,  that  turn  your 
brains,  and  leave  you  not  the  sober  use  of  reason,  that  makes 
you  think  well  of  ungodly  slothfulness,  and  makes  you  think 
80  contemptuously  or  senselessly  of  a  heavenly  life.  I  tell 
you  (and  remember  another  day  that  you  were  told  of  it), 
that  there  is  not  the  boldest  infidel  in  the  world,  nor  the 
bitterest  enemy  to  holiness  in  this  assembly,  but  shortly 
would  wish  they  had  rather  been  saints  in  rags,  with  all  the 
scorn  and  cruelty  that  malice  can  inflict  on  such,  than  to 
have  braved  it  out  in  pride  and  gallantry,  with  the  neglect 
of  the  great,  everlasting  things.  I  tell  you  again,  there  is 
not  an  ungodly  wretch  that  heareth  me,  but  ere  long  would 
give  a  world  if  he  were  owner  of  a  holy  heart  and  life,  that 
he  had  spent  his  days  in  holy,  watchful  preparations  for  his 
change,  which  he  spent  for  that  which  will  deceive  him  and 
forsake  him. 

Methinks  I  even  see  how  you  will  passionately  rage 
s^inst  yourselves,  and  tear  your  hearts  with  self-revenge 
(if  grace  prevent  it  not  by  a  more  safe  repentance),  when  you 
think  too  late  how  you  lived  on  earth,  and  what  golden 
times  of  grace  you  lost,  and  vilified  all  that  would  not  lose 
them  as  foolishly  as  you.  If  repentance  unto  life  made 
Paul  so  csdl  himself  foolish,  disobedient,  deceived,  and  ex- 
ceeding mad  '^,  you  may  imagine  how  tormenting  repentance 
will  make  you  call  yourselves  too  late. 

O  sirs,  you  cannot  now  conceive,  while  you  sit  here  m 
healthy  and  ease,  and  honour,what  diffexecvt  \\io\i^V%  ht^ 

*Titai.3.    Acts^xxvull. 


542  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

thea  possess  you  of  a  holy  and  unholy  life !  How  mad  yoa 
wUl  think  them  that  had  but  one  life's  time  of  preparatiou 
for  eternal  life>  and  desperately  neglected  it :  and  how  sen- 
sible you  will  then  be  of  the  wisdom  of  believers,  that  knew 
tiieir  time,  and  used  it  while  they  had  it.  Now  *'  wisdom  is 
justified  of  all  her  children  ;"  but  then  how  sensibly  will  it 
be  justified  of  all  its  enemies  !  O  with  what  grapes  will  un- 
done souls  look  back  on  a  life  of  mercy  and  opportunities, 
thus  basely  undervalued,  and  slept  away  in  dreaming  idle^ 
ness,  and  fooled  away  for  things  of  nau^t. 

The  language  of  that  damned  rich  man,.  Luke  xvi.  may 
help  you  in  your  predictions.  O  how  will  you  woi^der  a^ 
yourselves  that  ever  you  could:  be  so  blind  and  senseless  as 
to  be  no  more  affected  with  the  warnings  of  the  Lord;  and 
with  the  forethoughts  of  everlasting  joy  or  misery !  Tohave 
but  one^small  part  of  time  to  do  all  that  ever  must  be  done 
by  you  for  eternity,  and  say  alL  that  ever  you  mu^t  say  fc^ 
your  own  or  odiers'  souls,  and  that  Ais  was  spent  in  worse 
than  nothing  I  To  have  but  one  uncertain  life,  m  which  you 
must  rua  the  race  that  wins  or  loseth  heaven  for  ever;  and 
that;  youj  should  be  tempted  by  a  thing  of  naughty  to  lose 
that  one  irrecoverable  opportunity,  or  to  sit  stiU  or  run  , 
another  way,  when  yoa  should  have  been  making  haste  with 
all  your  might !  O  sirs,  the  thoughts  of  this  will  be  other 
kind  of  thoughts  another  day,  thaanow  you  feel  them ;  you 
cannot  now  think  how  the  thoughts  of  this  will  then  affect 
you  i  That  you  had.  a  time  in. which  you  might  have  prayed, 
with  promise  of  acceptance,  and  had  nq*  hearts  to  take  that 
time !  That  Christ  was  offered  you  as  well  as  he  was  offer- 
ed them  that  entertained  him;  that  you  were  called  on  and 
warned  as  well,  as  they,  but  obstinately  despised  and  neg- 
lected all !  That  life  and  death  were  set  before  you,  and  the 
everlasting  joys  were  offered  to  your  choice,  against  the 
channa  of  sinful  pleasures,  and  you  might  have  freely  had 
them  if  you  would,  and  were  told  that  holiness  was  t^e  only 
way,  and  that  it  must  be.  now  or  never,  and  yet  that  yoa 
chose  your  own  destruction !  These  thoughts  will  be  part 
of  hell  to  the  ungodly.  They  will  wonder  that  reason  could 
be  so  unreasonable ;  and  they  that  had  the  common  wit  of 
JOan  iaotiles.matteTa.^o\]\^£W^^^^^^^*^^^^'Qaaelve8  in 
that  which  is  the  oxiVy  Vhmft^ti'aJi'^^  *^«  ^Q\s«svfc\A^^^^  \.^\5fc 


NOW    OR    NEVER.  543 

wise  for,  that  sach<  sottish  reasonings  should  prey  ail  with 
them  against  the  clearest  light/ and  nothing  should  be  pre- 
ferred before  all  things,  and  arguments  fetched  from,  chaff 
and  dung,  should  conquer  those  that  were  fetched  from  hea- 
ven.!    O  what  heart-rending  thoughts  will  these  be,  when 
eternity  shall  afford  them  leisure  for  an.  impartial  review! 
Yea^  that  they  should  deceive  others  also  with  such  a  gros& 
deceit,  and  scorn  at  all  that  would  not  be  as  mad  as  they  ; 
that  being  drunken  with  the  world's  delusion,  they  should 
abuse  all  that  were  truly  sober;  that  the  one  thing  needful, 
should  seem  to  them  a  needless  thing ;  that  their  tongues 
should  plead  for  these  delusions  of  their  wicked  hearts,  and 
they  should  be  enemies  to  those  that  would  not  be  enemies 
to  God,  and  to  themselves,  and  cast  away  their  time  and' 
souls  as  they  did !     They  will  wonder  with  self-indignation, 
wh€Lt  could  bewitch  them  into  so  great  unreasonableness, 
below  a  man,  against  the  light  of  nature^  as  well  as  of  supers- 
natural  revelation. 

Honourable  and  beloved  hearers,  I  beseech  you  do  not 
take  it  ill,  that  I  speak  so  much  of  these  matters  that  are  so 
unpleasant  and  unwelcome  to  unbelieving,  careless,  carnal 
hearts^;  it  is,  that  I  may  prevent  all  this  in  time,  by  the  awa«- 
kening«  of  true  repentance:  and  O  that  this  might  be  the 
success !     That  I  might  hear  by  your  penitent  confessions^ 
and  see  by  your  universal^  speedy  reformations,  that  God 
hath  so  great  mercy  for  you,  and  that  these  persuasions 
might  be  the  means  of  so  much  happiness- to  youy  and  com- 
fort unto  me!    However^  this  assembly  shall  be  witnesses 
that  you  were  warned ;  and  conscience  shall  be  witness,  that      ^ 
if  you  waste  the  rest  of  your  days  in  the  pleasures  and  vani*    ;  | 
ties  of  this  deceitful  worlds  it  was  not  because  you  could  - 
have  no  better,  and  were  not  called  to  higher  things  ;  that 
if  you  yet  stand  idle,  it  is  not  because  you  could  not  be 
hived ;  for  in  the  name  of  Christ  I  have  called  you  into  his 
vineyard,  and  told  you  of  his  work  and  wages,  and  shamed 
your  excuses  and  objections  this  day.     Come  away  then 
speedily  from  the  snares  of  sinners,  and  the  company  of 
hardened,  deceived  men,  and  cast  away  the  works  of  dsurk* 
ness.     Heaven  is  before  you !     Death  is  at  hand !    Theeter-    ? 
nal  God  hath  sent  to  call  you  I    Metc^  dvA.V  >]^\.  %\x«X3dcL  N 
foHb  itBsarma!    Yon  have  staid  too  \ou!^,  w\dt  Aiv^sfc^'^^!" 


( 


544  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

tience  too  much  already  :  stay.no  longer!  O  now  please 
God,  and  comfort  us,  and  save  yourselves  by  resolving  that 
this  shall  be  the  day  ;  and  faithfully  performing  of  this  your 
resolution.  Up  and  be  doing :  believe,  repent,  desire,  obey, 
and  do  all  this  with  all  your  might.  Love  him  that  you  must 
love  for  ever,  and  love  him  with  all  your  soul  and  might ; 
seek  that  which  is  truly  worth  a  seeking,  and  will  pay  for  all 
your  cost  and  pains :  and  seek  it  first  with  all  your  might; 
remembering  still  it  must  be  now  or  never. 

Before  I  conclude,  I  have  two  messages  yet  to  deliver  to 
the  servants  of  the  Lord :  the  one  is  of  Encouragement : 
the  other  of  Direction. 

I  know  that  many  of  you  have  a  three-fold  trouble,  which 
requireth  a  three»fold  comfort  and  encouragement. 

One  is,  that  you  have  done  so  little  of  your  work ;  biut 
lost  so  much  of  your  time  already :  another,  is,  that  you  are 
so  opposed  and  hindered.  And  the  greatest  of  all  is,  that 
you  are  yet  so  dull  and  slow  ;  the  cure  of  which  must  be  the 
matter  of  my  Directions. 

1.  For  the  first :  That  you  have  lost  your  time,  must  be 
the  matter  of  your  Jiumiliation  :  but  that  all  is  not  lost,  be- 
fore you  see  your  sin  and  duty ;  but  yet  the  patience  and 
mercy  of  the  Lord  are  attending  you,  and  continuing  your 
hope;  this  is  the  matter  of  your  comfort  and  encourage- 
ment.    Repent,  therefore,  that  you  came  no  sooner  home ; 
but  rejoice  that  you  are  come  home  at  last;  and  now  be 
>  1  more  diligent  in  redeeming  your  time,  in  remembrance  of  the 
'  .time  already  lost :  and  though  it  must  be  your  grief  that 
your  master  hath  been  deprived  of  so  much  of  his  service, 
and  others  of  so  much  good  which  you  should  have  done 
them,  and  that  time  is  lost  that  cannot  be  recalled  ;  yet  it  is 
your  comfort,  that  your  own  reward  may  be  equal  with  them 
that  have  borne  the  burden  and  heat  of  the  day;  for  many 
that  are  last  (in  the  time  of  their  coming  in)  shall  be  first  (in 
receiving  the  reward).     This  is  the  meaning  of  that  parable 
in  Matt.  xx.  which  was   spoken  to  encourage  them  that 
had  stood  out  too  long,  and  to  rebuke  the  envy  and  high 
expectations  of  them  that  came  in  sooner ;  and  it  is  no  whit 
contradictory  to  those  passages  in  Matt.  xxv.  which  inti- 
mate a  difiereut  degree  o^  ^ox^  \.o\ie  ^N<eiil<ci  them  that  have 
different  degrees  o£  gt^ce  w^wx  \Ss\fcvc  \\A\)L^\xv^'>ds^  'ybk^'vsh^- 


vow  OR  NEVER,  A45 

ment.  The  6ne  parable^  (Matt,  xx.)  shews  that  men  shall 
not  be  rewarded  differently  for  their  longer  or  shorter  con- 
tinuance in  the  work»  but  that  those  that  come  in  late,  and 
yet  are  found  with  equal  holiness,  shall  be  rewarded  equally 
with  the  first;  and  more,  if  their  holiness  be  more;  which 
the  second  parable  expresseth,  declaring  God's  purpose  to 
give  them  the  greatest  glory,  that  have  improved  their  holi^- 
ness  to  the  greatest  measure.  O,  therefore,  that  the  sense 
of  your  former  unkindness  might  provoke  you  the  more  re- 
solvedly to  give  up  yourselves  in  fervent  love,  and  full  obe- 
dience :  and  then  you  will  find  that  your  time  is  redeemed^ 
though  it  cannot  be  recalled ;  and  that  mercy  hath  secured 
your  full  reward.  O  what  an  unspeakable  mercy  is  this  ; 
that  if  yet  you  will  devote  yourselves  entirely  to  Christ,  and 
serve  him  with  your  might,  the  little  time  that  yet  remains, 
he  will  take  it  as  if  you  had  come  in  at  the  first  hour  of  the 
day! 

2.  And  as  for  the  opposition  and  hindrances  in  your 
way,  they  are  no  other  than  what  your  Lord  foretold.  He 
hath  gone  before  you,  and  conquered  much  more  than  ever 
you  will  encounter  from  without,  (though  he  had  not  a  body 
of  sin  to  conquer ;  and  in  that  respect  the  conquest  of  his 
Spirit  in  his  members,  hath  the  preeminence  of  his  personal 
conquest).  He  hath  bid  you  be  of  good  cheer,  because  he 
hath  overcome  the  world.  If  you  will  not  take  up  your  cross 
and  follow  him,  you  cannot  be  his  disciples  ^  Would  you 
be  soldiers  on  condition  you  may  not  fight,  or  fight  and  yet 
have  no  opposition?  Follow  the  captain  of  your  salvation  ; 
if  tQocking,  or  buffeting,  or  spitting  in  his  face,  or  hanging 
him  upon  a  cross,  or  piercing  his  side,  would  have  made  him 
give  up  the  work  of  your  redemption,  you  had  been  left  to 
utter  desperation.  The  opposition  that  is  conquerable, 
should  serve  but  to  excite  your  courage  and  resolution  in  a 
case  of  such  necessity,  where  you  must  prevail  or  perish. 
Have  you  God  himself  on  your  side,  and  Christ  your  Cap- 
tain, and  the  Spirit  of  Christ  to  give  you  courage,  and  the 
promise  to  invite  you,  and  heaven  before  you,  hell  behind 
you,  and  the  examples  of  such  an  army  of  conquering  be- 
lievers ;  and  shall  the  scorns  or  threats  of  a  crawling  worm 
prevail  against  all  these  for  your  discouragement?    You  are 

*  John  xvi.  33.    Luke XV  47.  :i5. 
VOL.  Vfl.  N    N 


5^  NOW  OR  NEVfiK, 

not  afmtd  lest  any  man  should  pull  dowt^  the  san^  or  dry  op 
the  sea,  or  overturn  the  earth ;  and  are  you  afrftid  thut  tnsun 
should  conquer  God"?  or  take  you  out  of  the  hands  of 
Christ"?  Mark  how  they  used  David ^  " Ev*i?y  day  they 
wr^t  my  words ;  all  their  thoughts  are  against  me  for  evil. 
They  gather  themselves  together,  they  hide  themsdvasi^ 
they  mark  my  steps,  when  they  wait  for  my  soul.*'  Bat 
what,  did  he  therefore  fear,  or  fly  from  Ood  ?  No  ;  "  Wlwt 
time  I  am  afraid,  I  will  trust  in  thee.  In  Ood  will  I  praise 
his  word ;  in  God  have  I  put  my  trut^ ;  I  will  not  fejur  what 
flesh  can  do  unto  me  ^7'  "  Hearken  unto  me,  ye  that  know 
righti^ousness,  the  people  in  whose  heart  is  my  kiw  j  fear  yd 
not' the  reproach  of  men>  neither  be  ye  afraid  of  their  revi- 
lings  :  iPor  the  moth  shall  eat  them  up  like  a  garmenti  and 
the  worm  shall  eat  them  like  wool:  but  my  righteousness 
shall  be  for  ever,  and  my  salvation  from  generation  to  gene- 
ration »*."  You  deserve  to  be  shut  out  of  heaven,  if  you  wUl 
not  bear  the  breath  of  a  fool's  derision  for  it. 

3.  But  (saith  the  self-acc«ising  sou1)l  <  I  sooa  c(Hivineed 
that  I  ought  to  be  laborious  for  my  salvation^  and  Ami  aU 
this  is  too  little  that  I  can  do  ;  but  I  am  dull,  and  cold,  and 
negligent  in  all :  I  am  far  from  doing  it  with  my  might :  I 
hear,  and  read,  and  pray  as  if  I  did  it  not,  and  as  if  I  were 
hftlf  asleep,  or  my  heart  were  away  upon  somewhat  else.  I 
fear  I  am  but  a  lazy  hypocrite.' 

^nsw,  I  shall  first  ispeak  to  thy  doubt,  and  then  to  4ireet 
thee  against  thy  sin. 

And  first,  you  must  be  resolved  whether  yo«r  slodi  be 
such  as  is  predominant,  of  mortified ;  such  as  proveth  that 
you  are  dead  in  sin  ;  or  only  such  as  provetfi  you  but  dis^ 
eased  and  infirm. 

And  to  know  this,  you  must  distinguish,  I.  Between  the 
dulness  and  coldness  of  the  aflections,  and  the  unresolved- 
ness  and  disobedience  of  the  soul.  2.  Between  a  slothful- 
ness  that  keepeth  men  from  a  godly  life  in  a  life  of  wicked- 
ness ;  and  that  which  only  keepeth  them  from  some  particu- 
lar act  of  duty,  or  abateth  the  degree  of  their  sincere  affec- 
tion and  obedience.  3.  Between  that  sloth  that  is  the  vi- 
t^ious  habit  of  the  will,  and  that  which  is  the  effect  of  age, 
or  sickness,  or  melancholy,  or  other  distemper  of  the  htiif. 

»"  Rom.  viii. 37.        >*  3o\\iv  x.tft,  V^.        «»  ^^AnV^— ^.        «  IwuH. 7,8. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  547 

And  so  the  case  Keth  plain  before  you.  1.  If  it  be  not 
only  your  affections  that  are  dull,  but  your  will  through 
sloth  is  unresolv^ed ;  and  this  not  only  in  a  temptation  to  the 
abatement  of  some  degrees,  and  the  neglect  of  some  particu- 
hit  duty,  but  against  a  holy  life,  and  against  the  forsaking 
of  your  reigning  sin  ;  and  this  be  not  only  through  some  bo- 
dily distemper^  disabling  your  reason,  but  from  this  vicious 
habit  of  your  wills ;  then  is  your  sloth  a  mortal  sign,  and 
proves  you  in  a  graceless  state ;  but  if  the  sloth  which  you 
complain  of  be  only  dulness  of  your  affections,  an<f  the 
backwardness  of  your  wills  to  some  high  degrees,  or  parti- 
cular duties,  and  the  effBct  of  some  bodily  distemper,  or  the 
weakness  of  your  spiritual  life,  while  your  wills  are  habitu- 
ally resolved  for  God  and  a  holy  life,  against  a  worldly, 
fleshly  life  r  this  is  your  infirmity,  and  a  sin  to  be  lamented, 
but  not  a  mat k  of  death  and  gracelessness. 

You  will  have  a  backward,  slothful  heart  to  strive  with 
while  you  live ;  but  bless  God  that  you  are  offetided  with  rt, 
and  ^oVild  fain  be  delivered  from  it.  This  was  Paul's  evi>- 
dence,  Rom.  vii.  24.  You  will  have  flesh,  and  flesh  will 
plead  for  its  interest,  and  will  be  striving  against  the  Spirit! ; 
but  bless  God  that  you  have  also  the  Spirit  to  strive  against 
the  flesh.  Be  thankful  that  you  have  life  to  feel  your  sick- 
ness:, though  you  languish  under  it,  and  cannot  work  as 
healthful  men ;  and  that  you  are  in  the  way  to  heaven,  though 
you  go  not  so  fast  as  you  should  and-  would. 

2,  But  yet  though  you  have  life,  it  is  so  grievous  to  be 
diAeftsed  and  languish  under  duch  an  infimiity  as  sloth,  that 
I  advise  you  to  stir  up  yourselves  to  the  utmost,  and  give-* 
not  way  to  a  lazy  temper;  and  that  you  may  serve <he  Lord 
with  all  your  might,  I  recommend  these  few  Directions  to 
your  observation. 

Direct.  1.  When  you  would  be  quickened  up  toserioiw- 
ness  and  diligence,  have  ready  at  hand  such  quickening 
considerations  as  are  here  before  propounded  to  you  ;  arid 
set  them  before  you,  and  labour  to  work  them  upon  your 
hearts.  Powerful  truths^  would  have  some  power  upon  your 
souls,  if  you  will  but  soberly  apply  your  reason  to  them,  and 
plead  them  witli  yourselves,  as  you  would  do  with  anotbcil^ 
in  any  of  yoitr  reproofs  or  exhortations. 


648  NOW  OR  NE%']&R. 

Direct.  2.  Take  heed  leat  any  worldly  design  or  interest, 
or  any  lusts  or  sensual  delight,  divert  your  minds  from  God 
and  duty/  For  all  the  powers  of  your  soul  will  languish, 
when  you  should  set  them  on  work  on  spiritual  things,  and 
your  hearts  will  be  abroad,  when  you  should  be  wholly  takeu 
up  with  God,  if  once  they  be  entangled  with  worldly  things. 
Watch  therefore  over  them  in  your  callings,  lest  the  crea- 
ture steal  too  deep  into  your  affections :  for  if  you  be  alive 
to  the  world,  you  will  be  in  that  measure  dead  to  Gt)d. 

Direct.  3,  '  If  it  be  possible,  live  under  a  lively  ministry, 
that  when  your  hearts  go  cold  and  dull  unto  the  assemblies, 
they  may  come  warm  and  quickened  home/  Life  cherish- 
eth  life  as  fire  kindleth  fire.  The  word  and  ordinances  of 
God  "  are  quick,  powerful,  and  sharper  than  any  two-edged 
sword,  piercing  even  to  the  dividing  asunder  of  soul  and  spi- 
rit, and  is  a  discemer  of  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the 
heart ' ;"  and  therefore  it  may  do  much  to  make  you  feel. 
Many  a  thousand  hath  it  pricked  at  the  heart,  and  sent  them 
home  alive,  that  before  were  dead '. .  Much  more  may  you 
expect,  that  it  should  excite  the  principle  which  you  have 
already. 

Direct.  4.  '  If  it  may  be,  converse  with  lively,  active, 
stirring  Christians  :'  but  especially  have  one  such  for  a  bo- 
som friend,  that  will  warm  you  when  you  are  cold,  and  help 
to  awake  you  when  you  drop  asleep,  and  will  not  comply 
with  you  in  a  declining,  lazy  and  unprofitable  course.  "  Two 
are  better  than  one,  because  they  have  a  good  reward  for 
their  labour :  for  if  they  fall,  the  one  will  lift  up  his  fellow; 
but  woe  to  him  that  is  alone  when  he  falleth ;  for  he  hath 
not  another  to  help  him  up.  Again,  if  two  lie  together,  then 
they  have  heat ;  but  how  can  one  be  warm  alone  ?  And  if 
one  prevail  against  him,  two  shall  withstand  him;  and  a 
threefold  cord  is  not  quickly  broken*." 

Direct,  5.  '  Put  not  away  from  you  the  day  of  death. 
Look  not  for  long  life.'  It  is  the  life  to  come  that  must  be 
the  life  of  all  your  duties  here,  and  distant  things  do  lose 
their  force.  Set  death,  and  judgment,  and  eternal  life  con- 
tinually as  near  at  hand  :  live  in  a  watchful  expectation  of 
your  change  :  do  all  as  dying  men,  and  as  passing  to  receive 
the  recompence  of  endless  joy  or  woe,  and  this  will  quicken 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  549 

you.  To  this  end,  go  often  to  the  house  of  mourning,  and 
be  not  unseasonably  or  immoderately  in  the  house  of  mirth. 
When  you  observe  what  is  the  end  of  all  men,  the  heart  will 
be  made  better  by  it".  But  excess  of  carnal  mirth  doth  in- 
fatuate men,  and  destroy  their  wisdom,  seriousness  and  so- 
briety. Keep  always  a  sense  of  the  brevity  of  life,  and  of 
the  preciousness  of  time,  and  remember  that  it  is  posting  on 
whether  you  work  or  play.  Methinks  if  you  forget  any  of 
the  rest,  this  one  consideration  that  we  have  in  hand,  should 
make  you  bestir  you  with  your  might,  that  it  must  be  now 
or  never, 

I  shall  only  add  two  needful  cautions,  lest  while  we  cure 
one  disease,  we  cause  another,  (as  knowing  that  corrupted 
nature  is  used  to  run  from  extreme  into  extreme). 

1.  Desire  and  labour  more  for  an  high  estimation  of 
things  spiritual  and  eternal,  and  a  fixed  resolution,  and  an 
even  and  diligent  endeavour,  than  for  passionate  feelings 
and  affections.  For  these  latter  are  more  inconstant  in  the 
best,  and  depend  much  on  the  temper  of  the  body,  and  aire 
not  of  so  great  necessity  as  the  former,  though  excellent  iii 
a  just  degree  and  season.  (For  it  is  possible  that  passion 
even  about  good  things  may  be  too  much ;  when  estimation, 
resolution,  and  regular  endeavours  cannot.) 

'■  2.  Be  suspicious  when  you  have  the  warmest  and  liveliest 
affections,  lest  your  judgments  should  be  perverted  by  follow- 
ing, when  they  should  lead.  It  is  very  common  for  zeal 
and  strong  affections,  even  to  that  which  is  good,  to  occa- 
sion the  mistakes  of  the  understanding,  and  make  men  look 
all  on  one  side,  and  think  they  can  never  go  far  enough  from 
some  particular  sins,  till  ignorantly  they  are  carried  into 
some  perhaps  as  great  on  the  other  hand.  Be  warned  by  the 
dad  experience  of  these  times  to  suspect  your  judgments  in 
the  fervour  of  your  affections. 

And  observing  these  cautions,  let  nothing  abate  your  zeal 
and  diligence ;  but  whatever  duty  is  set  before  you,  do  it 
with  your  might ;  for  it  must  be  now  or  never. 

Though  1  know  that  the  enmity  to  a  holy,  heavenly  life 
is  so  radicated  in  corrupted  nature,  that  all  that  1  have  said 
is  necessary  and  too  little  ;  yet  some  I  know  will  think  it 
strange  that  I  should  intimate  that  any  that  preach  the  Oas- 

•»  £ccles.Vi\.% — 6«  -     * 


I 


I    \ 

t 
?       • 


&50  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

pel  ore  guilty  of  any  measure  of  this  sin,  aoid  wiU  think  that 
I  intend. by  it  to  reflect  upon  some  parties  above  the  sest. 
But  a^ain  I  profess,  that  it  is  no  party  but  tlie  devirs  party, 
and  the  ungodly  party  that  I  mean.  And  it  is  hard  if  you 
will  not  believe  me  concerning  my  own  sense.  Nor  is  it  my 
desire  that  any  of  the  odiousness  of  schisiPy  sedition,  rebel- 
lion, or  disobedience  to  authority,  should  be  so  much  as  di- 
minished by  any  man's  profession  of  godliness.  No,  I  be- 
seech you,  by  how  much  the  more  godly  you  are,  by  so  much 
the  more  you  will  detest  all  these ;  godliness  tendeth  to 
shame  and  condemn  these  odious  sins,  and.not  to  beadpak 
for  them  or  any  extenuation ;  nay,  what  can  more  aggravate 
them,  than  that  they  should  be  found  in  the  professors  of 
godliness?  I  again  profess  that  I  have  no  design  but  to 
plead  for  serious  diligence  in  the  religion  which  we  are  all 
agreed  in,  and  to  stop  the  mouths  of  those  th^t  wickedly 
speak  against  it. 

But,  alas,  it  is  too  evident  that  I4iave  too  many  to  speak 
to,  that  are  not  innocent ;  why  else  doth  Scripture  tell  us 
that  such  there  will  be  still  to  the  end  of  the  world?  and 
that  there  are  some  that  preach  Christ  of  strife  and  envy,  to 
add  affliction  to  the  bonds  of  the  afflicted  ?  and  how  came 
holy  Mr.  Bolton  to  find  so  much  work  for  these  rebukes  so 
lately  in  his  time,  as  in  his  books  you  find  ?  And  can  we 
already  forget  what  abundance  of  Antinomian  teachers  were 
among  us,  that  turned  out  the  very  doctrine  of  practical  di- 
ligence, and  cried  it  down  as  a  setting  up  ourselves  and  our 
own  works,  and  as  injurious  to  free  grace,  and  under  pretence 
of  exalting  Christ,  did  set  up  a  heartless,  lifeless  doctrine, 
that  tended  to  turn  out  the  life  of  Christianity,  and  take  men 
off  their  necessary  diligence,  as  a  legal,  dangerous  thing? 

And  what  ordinance  of  God  hath  not  been  cast  out  by 

preachers  themselves  upon  religious  pretences,  &mily-duties, 

catechising,  singing  of  psalms,  baptism,  the  Lord's  supper, 

and  which  not?  And  if  all  these  were  down,  wherein  should 

the  practice  of  religion  consist?     And  what  abundance  of 

pamphlets  had  we  that  laboured  to  make  the  orthodox,  faith- 

^"   \inistiy  a  very  scorn,  and  deride  them  for  their  faithful 

"p  of  God,  and  their  faithfulness  to  their  superiors  in 

^on  to  their  unrighteous  ways  ?     I  am  loath  to  blot 

ys  and  trouble  ^out^ai^  m^VXv^^Tc^ssk^^  oCthe  Mar- 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  561 

tin^mar-priest^y^nd  a  multitude  of  such  others^  which,!  meaa. 

And  let  np  Papists  or  any  enemy  of  our  church,  reproach 
us  because  such  enemies  to  holiness  are  found  among  us. 
Can  it  be  expected  that  our  church  should  be  better  than 
the  family  of  Adam,  that  had  a  Cain  ?  Or  of  Noah,  that  had 
a  Ham  ?  Or  of  Christ,  that  had  a  Judas  ?  And  are  there  not 
far  more  enemies  to  serious  godliness  among  the  Papists 
themselves,  than  among  us?  One  instance  out  of  the  life 
of  Philip  Nerius,  the  father  of  the  Oratorians,  I  will  put  iur 
to  the  preface,  because  it  is  too  long  to  be  here  inserted. 
There  is  no  place,  no  rank  of  men  in  the  world,  where  some 
of  the  enemies  of  a  holy  life  are  not  to  be  found,  even  among 
those  that  profess  the  same  religion  in  doctrinal?,  with  those 
whom  they  oppose.  Christ  and  the  devil  have  their  several 
armies ;  and  if  once  the  devil  disband  his  soldiers,  and  have 
none  to  oppose  a  holy  life,  then  tell  me  that  it  is  a  needless 
thing  to  defend  it  and  to  confute  them.  But  I  am  listed 
under  Christ,  and  will  never  give  over  pleading  for  him,  till 
his  adversaries  give  over  pleading  against  ..him,  and  his 
cause,  as  long  as  he  continueth  my  liberty  and  duty.  And 
blessed  be  the  Lord  that  if  an  hypocritical  preacher  be  found 
among  us,  that  secretly  or  openly  disgraoeth  a  diligent,  holy 
life,  there  are  more  able,  holy,  faithful  ones  to  confute  him 
both  by  doctrine  and  by  their  lives,  than  are  to  be  found  in 
any  other  kingdom  in  the  world  proportionably,  that  ever  I 
could  bear  pf.  And  that  the  faithful  disciples  are  so  many 
and  the  Judases  so  few,  how  great  a  blessing  is  it  to  this  landj 
and  bow  great  an  honour  to  his  majesty's  government,  and 
tp  the  church  in  his  dominions !  The  Lord  teach  this  sinful 
nation  tQ  be  th^nkfuU  and  pardon  their  ingratitude,  and  ne- 
ver deiprive  them  of  this  forfeited  mercy.  The  Lord  teacb 
them  to  hearken  to  the  friends,  and  not  to  the  enemies^  of 
holiness,  aiid  never  to  receive  a  wound  at  the  heart  of  reli- 
gion, however  they  hear  their  smaller  differences. about  things 
circu9)stantial. 

And  now  I  should  conclude,  I  am  loath  to  end,  for  fear 
le^^t  I  ha-ve  not  yet  prevailed  with  you.  What  are  you  now 
r^olved  tp  do,  from  this  day  forward?  It  is  work  that  we 
have  been  speaking  of,  and  necessary  work  of  endless  con- 
Si^quence^  which  must  be  dpne,  and  quickly  done,  and  tho- 
jrowghly  done.     Are  you  not  epnyiuced  t^-aA.  \\.  *\«»  ^^\  SSsv^ 


552  NOW  ok  N£V£R. 

ploughing  and  sowing  are  not  more  necessary  to  your  har- 
vest, than  the  work  of  holiness  in  this  day  of  grace  i»  neces- 
sary to  your  salvation  ?  You  are  blind  if  you  see  not  this; 
you  are  dead  if  you  feel  it  not ;  what  then  will  you  do  ? 
For  God's  sake,  and  for  your  own  sake,  stand  not  demurring 
till  time  be  gone.  It  is  all  that  the  devil  desireth,  if  he  can 
but  find  you  one  thing  or  other  to  be  thinking,  and  talking, 
and  doing  about,  to  keep  you  from  this  till  time  be  gone; 
and  then  he  that  kept  you  from  seeing  and  feeling,  will  help 
you  to  see  and  to  feel  your  calamity ;  then  the  devil  will 
make  you  feel  that  which  preachers  could  not  make  you  feel; 
and  he  will  make  you  think  of  that,  and  lay  it  close  enough 
to  your  hearts,  which  we  could  not  get  you  to  lay  to  heart 
Now  we  study  and  preach  to  you  in  hope ;  but  then  (alas, 
it  breaks  our  hearts  to  think  of  it)  we  have  done  with  you 
forever,  because  all  hope  is  gone.  Then  the  devil  may 
challenge  a  minister,  *  Now  do  thy  worst  to  bring  this  sin- 
ner to  repentance  :  now  call  to  him  to  consider,  and  believe, 
and  come  to  Christ :  now  offer  him  mercy,  and  entreat  him 
to  accept  it :  now  cry  to  him  to  take  heed  of  sin  and  of  temp- 
tations, that  he  come  not  to  this  place  of  torments :  now 
tell  him  of  the  beauty  or  necessity  of  holiness,  and  call  up- 
on him  to  turn  and  live :  now  do  thy  worst  to  rescue  him 
from  my  power,  and  save  his  soul.'  Alas,  poor  sinners  !  will 
you  stop  your  ears,  and  go  on  ip  sin,  and  damn  yourselves, 
and  break  our  hearts  to  foresee  that  day !  Must  we  see  the 
devil  go  away  with  such  a  prey,  and  shall  we  not  rescue  your 
captivated  souls,  because  you  will  not  hear,  you  will  not 
stir,  you  will  not  consent !  O  hear  the  God  of  heaven,  if  you 
will  not  hear  us,  who  ealleth  to  you.  Return  and  Live !  O 
hear  him  that  shed  his  blood  for  souls,  and  tendereth  you 
now  salvation  by  his  blood !  O  hear  without  any  more  de- 
lay, before  all  is  gone,  and  you  are  gone,  and  he  that  now 
deceiveth  you,  torment  you  !  Yet  hold  on  a  little  longer  in 
a  carnal,  earthly,  unsanctified  state,  and  it  is  too  late  to 
hope,  or  pray^  or  strive  for  your  salvation :  yet  a  little  longer 
and  mercy  will  have  done  with  you  for  ever;  and  Christ  will 
never  invite  you  more,  nor  ever  offer  to  cleanse  you  by  his 
blood,  or  sanctify  you  by  his  Spirit !  Yet  a  little  longer, 
and  you  shall  never  hear  a  sermon  more,  and  never  more  be 
troubled  with  those  i^ieacYiei^  VltvidX  v<^\^  vci  ^^od  madness 


NOW    OR    NBVER.  553 

with  you,  and  longed  once  for  your  conversion  and  salva- 
tion !  O  sleepy,  dead-hearted  sinners,  what  should  I  do  to 
shew  you  how  near  you  stand  to  eternity,  and  what  is  now 
doing  in  the  world  that  you  are  going  to,  and  how  these 
things  are  thought  on  there !  What  should  I  do  to  make 
you  know  how  time  is  valued,  how  sin  and  holiness  are  es- 
teemed in  the  world  where  you  must  live  for  ever!  What 
should  I  do  to  make  you  know  those  things  to-day,  which 
I  will  not  thank  you  to  know  when  you  are  gone  hence ! 
O  that  the  Lord  would  open  your  eyes  in  time !  Could  I 
but  make  you  know  these  things  as  believers  should  know 
them,  I  say  not,  as  those  that  see  them,  nor  yet  as  dreamers 
that  do  not  regard  them,  but  as  those  thai  believe  that  they 
must  shortly  see  them;  what  a  joyful  hour's  work  should  I 
esteem  this!  How  happy  would  it  be  to  you  and  me,  if 
every  word  were  accompanied  with  tears !  If  I  followed  you 
home  and  begged  your  consideration  on  my  bare  knees,  or 
as  a  beggar  begs  an  alms  at  your  doors :  if  this  sermon  cost 
me  as  many  censures  or  slanders  as  ever  sermon  did,  I  should 
not  think  it  too  dear,  if  I  could  but  help  you  to  a  sight  of 
the  things  we  speak  of,  that  you  might  truly  understand 
them  as  they  are ;  and  that  you  had  but  a  true,  awakened 
apprehension  of  the  shortness  of  your  day,  of  the  nearness 
of  eternity,  and  of  the  endless  consequence  of  your  present 
work,  and  what  holy  labour  and  sinful  loitering  will  be 
thought  of  in  the  world  to  come  for  ever !  But  when  we 
see  you  sin,  and  trifle,  and  no  more  regard  your  endless  life, 
and  see  also  what  haste  your  time  is  making,  and  yet  cannot 
make  you  understand  these  things;  when  we  know  our- 
selves as  sure  as  we  speak  to  you,  that  you  will  shortly  be 
astonished  at  the  review  of  your  present  sloth  and  folly,  and 
when  we  know  that  these  matters  are  not  thought  of  in 
another  world,  as  they  are  among  the  sleepy  or  the  Bedlam 
sinners  here,  and  yet  know  not  how  to  make  you  know  it, 
whom  it  doth  so  exceeding  much  concern,  this  amazeth  us, 
and  almost  breaks  our  hearts  !  Yea,  when  we  tell  you  of 
things  that  are  past  doubt,  and  can  be  no  further  matter  of 
controversy,  that  men  have  sold  their  understandings,  and 
betrayed  their  reason  to  their  sordid  lusts,  and  yet  we  cannot 
get  reasonable  men  to  know  that  which  they  cannot  choose 
but  know  ^  to  know  that  seriously  and  pxactXc^^  yi\{vOcL^- 


554  NOW  OR  N£VEH. 

ways  hath  a  witaesg  in  their  breasts,  and  which  non^  bat  the 
pjrofligate  dare  4eny ;  I  tell  yoa»  sinners,  this^  even  this,  is 
worse  than  a  prison  to  us :  it  is  you  that  are  our  persecutors ; 
it  is  you  that  are  the  daily  sorrow  of  our  hearts  ;  it  is  you 
that  disi^ppoint  us  of  our  hopeet,  and  make  us  lose  so  much 
of  the  labour  of  our  lives !  And  if  all  others  did  as  some  do 
by  us,  alas,  how  sad  an  employment  should  we  have ;  and 
how  little  would  it  trouble. us  to  b^  silenced  and  laid  aside! 
If  we  were  sick  of  the  ambitious  or  covetous  thirst,  we 
should  then  say  that  it  is  they  that  deny  us  wealth  t^id  ho* 
nour  that  disappoint  us.  jBut  if  we  are  Christians,  this  is 
not  our  case,  but  it  is  the  thirst  after  your  CK>^version  and 
salivatioii  that  affeeteth  us :  and  therefore  it  is  to  you,  even 
you  that  linger  i|i  your  sins  azid  delay  repentance,  and  for* 
get  youir  home,  and  neglect  your  so«d|( ;  it  is  you  thai  dis- 
appoint^ and  you  that  are  our  afflioters :  and  aa  much  as  you 
think  you  befriend  us  when  you  plead  our  cause  against 
m^n  of  violence  and  rage,  it  is  you  that  shall  apswer  for  the 
UiisA  of  our  time,  t^nd  labour*  apd  hope,  and  for  th^  grieving 
of  your  teachers'  hearts. 

Sinuers,  whatever  the  devil  and  ragiug  passion  may  say 
agaiast  a  holy  life,  God  and  your  own  consoiencea  shall  be 
your  witnesses,  that  we  desired  nothing  unreasonable,  or  unr 
necessary  at  your  hands.  I  know  it  is  the  masterpiece  of 
the  devil's  craft,  when  he  cannot  keep  all  religion  in  con*- 
te^inpt,  to  raise  up  a  dust  of  controversy  in  the  world  about 
ns^mes,  and  forms,  and  circumstances  in  religion,  that  he  may 
keep  men  busily  striving  about  these,  while  religion  itself  is 
neglected  or  unknown ;  and  that  he  may  make  men  believe 
that  they  have  some  religion,  bemuse  they  are  for  one  side 
pr  other  iu  the^e  controversies ;  and  especially  that  he  may 
entice  men  to  number  the  substantials  of  religion  itself, 
ampiig  these  less  doubtful  points,  and  make  sinners  believe 
that  it  is  but  the  precise  opinion  of  pne  party  that  they  re- 
ject, while  they  reject  the  serious  practice  of  all  true  reli* 
gion.  Aud  so  the  devil  gets  more  by  these  petty  quarrels 
and  controversies,  occasioned  by  contentious,  empty  men, 
than  he  could  have  done  by  the  open  ppppsition  of  infidels, 
heathens,  or  the  profane :  so  that  neither  I  nor  any  man, 
that  opinipnative  men  have  a  mind  to  quarrel  with*  can  tell 
hpw  4p.  exhort  y 01^  V9  il\^^  N^rj  i^x^cV^^*^  q£  Christianity  it- 


i 


NOW  OR  fir£1^£R.  665 

self»  hut  you  are  {MQ«9i)tiy  <3i«tiDg  yowr  tb^ttgbta^Ujpoa  fom^ 
points  wfa^rein  w«  are  feport^d  lo  dMfer  frowiyoii,  or  r^ 
membemg  aowQ  olamosir^Qf  maliei(MA$imeoi,  tb»i  fti^jvdv^ 
against  the  person  of  the  speaker  mi^y  l^eep  yoHT  0Qiii$:fin9isi 
profiting  to  salvation  by  tliie  doctrine  wbic4i<^Qiiyf>»rsei?.e3 
profess. 

If  this  be  the  oase  of  any  one  of  you,  I  do  nat  maan  your 
consciences  g^U  escape  the  poller  or  evidence  of  theilmith. 
Bost  thou  talk  of  our  difierenoes.  about  Ibrms  and  cere- 
monies ?  Alas,  man,  what  is  that  io  the  message  which  we 
come  about  to  iheq  ?  What  is  that  to  the  business  that  we 
are  preaching  of?  The  question  that  I  am  putting  to  you, 
is  not  whether  you  will  be  for  this  form  of  churob^^viem'* 
ment,  or  for  that>  for  a  ceremony,  or  against  it ;  but  it  is, 
wbetb^  you  will  hearken  in  time  to  God  and  conseieiioe, 
and  be  as  buay  to  provide  for  heaven^  as  ever  you  have  been 
to  provide  for  earth  7  And  whether  you  will  set  yourselves 
to  do  the  work  that  you  are  coeatedand  redeemed  for  ?  This 
is  the  business  that  I  am  sent  to  call  you  to  :  What  eay  you  ? 
Will  you  do  it,  end  do  it  seriously  without  delay?  You 
shall  not  be  able  to  say  that  I  called  you  to  a  party,  a  fac*^ 
tion,  or  some  opinion  of  my  own,  or  l9id  your  salvation>  upon 
some  doubtful  controversy •  No,  sinnev,  thy  eonscienceehall 
have  no  such  shift  for  its  deceit :  itis  godUness,  serious  mmd 
praptical  godliness  that  thou  art  called  to.  Itis  nothingibut 
what  all  Christians  in  the  world,  both  Papists,  «nd  Greeks, 
and  Protestants,  and  all  the  parties  among  those  that  are 
true  Christians,  are  agreed  in  the  profession  of.  That  I  may 
not  leave  thee  in  any  darkness  whidi  I  can  deliver  thee  from> 
I  will  tell  thee  distinctly,  though  succinctly,  what  it  is  that 
thou  art  thus  iu^ortuned  to  ;  and  tell  me  then,  whether  it 
be  that  which  any  Christian  can  make  doubt  of* 

1.  That  which  I  entreat  of  thee,  is  but  to  live  as  one  that 
verily  believeth  there  is  a  God,  and  that  this  God  is  the 
Creator,  the  Lord,  and  Ruler  of  the  wodd :  and  diat  itis  in- 
comparably more  of  our  business  to  understand  and  obey 
his  laws,  and  as  faithful  subjects  to  be  conformed  to  them, 
than  to  observe  or  be  confenned  to  the  laws  of  man  :  and  to 
live  as  men.  that  do  believe  that  this-God  is  aknigfaty,  and 
the  greatest  of  men  are  less  dian  crawling  worms  to  him ; 
and  that  he  is  infinitely  wise,  and  t\ie  «inad(«isv  ^  xgosa^  N» 


1      ' 


J 

i 


656  NOW  OR  NEVKK. 

foolishness  to  him;  and  that  he  is  infinitely  good  and  amia- 
ble ;  and  the  best  of  creatures  is  dung  and  filth  in  compa- 
rison of  him ;  and  that  his  love  is  the  only  felicity  of  man; 
and  that  none  are  happy  but  those  that  do  enjoy  it ;  and 
none  that  do  enjoy  it  can  be  miserable ;  and  that  riches^and 
honour^  and  fleshly  delights  are  brutish  vanities  in  compa- 
riiBon  of  the  eternal  love  of  Qod.  Live  but  as  men  that 
heartily  believe  all  this,  and  I  have  that  I  come  for.  And 
is  any  of  this  matter  of  controversy  or  doubt?  Not  among 
Christians  I  am  sure ;  not  among  wise  men.  It  is  no  doubt 
to  those  in  heaven,  nor  to  those  in  hell,  nor  to  those  that 
have  not  lost  their  understandings  upon  earth.  Live  then 
according  to  these  truths. 

2.  Live  as  men  that  verily  believe  that  mankind  is  fallen 
into  sin  and  misery ;  and  that  all  men  are  corrupted/  and 
under  the  condemnation  of  the  law  of  God,  till  they  are  de- 
livered, pardoned,  reconciled  to  Qod,  and  made  new  creatures 
by  a  renewing,  restoring,  sanctifying  change.  Live  but  as 
men  that  believe  that  this  cure  must  be  wrought,  and  this 
great  restoring  change  must  be  made  upon  ourselves,  if  it 
be  not  done  already.  Live  as  men  that  have  so  great  a  work 
to  look  after.  And  is  this  a  matter  of  any  doubt  or  contro- 
versy ?  Sure  it  is  not  to  a  Christian :  and  methinks  it 
should  not  be  to  any  man  else  that  knoweth  himself,  any 
more  than  to  a  man  in  a  dropsy,  whether  he  be  diseased^ 
when  he  feels  the  thirst  and  sees  the  swelling.  Did  you  but 
know  what  cures  and  changes  are  necessarily  to  be  made 
upon  your  diseased,  miserable  souls,  if  you  care  what  be- 
comes of  them,  you  would  soon  see  cause  to  look  about  you. 

3.  Live  but  as  men  that  verily  believe  that  you  are  re- 
deemed by  the  Son  of  God,  who  hath  suffered  for  your  sin, 
and  brought  you  the  tidings  of  pardon  and  salvation,  which 
you  may  have  if  you  will  give  up  yourselves  to  him  who  is 
the  physician  of  souls,  to  be  healed  by  him.  Live  as  men 
that  believe  that  the  infinite  love  of  God  revealed  to  lost 
mahkind  in  the  Redeemer,  doth  bind  us  to  love  him  with  all 
our  hearts,  and  serve  him  with  all  our  restored  faculties,  and 
to  work  as  those  that  have  the  greatest  thankfulness  to  shew, 
as  well  as  the  greatest  niercies  to  receive,  and  misery  to  es- 
cape ;  and  as  those  that  believe  that  if  sinners  that  without 
Christ  had  no  Viope,  ^\vai\  tvo>N  \qn^  Vioj^w  %vci&  ^xvd  refuse  to 


NOW  OR  NKVRE.  557 

leave  them,  and  to  repent  and  be  converted^  and  unthankfuUy 
reject  the  mercy  of  salvation  so  dearly  bought^  and  so  freely 
offered  them,  their  damnation  will  be  doubled  as  their  sin  is 
doubled.  Live  but  as  men  that  have  such  redemption  to 
admire^  such  inercy  to  entertain,  and  such  a  salvation  tp  sir 
tain,  and  that  are  sure  they  can  never  escape  if  they  con- 
tinue to  neglect  so  great  salvation :  and  is  there  any  contro- 
versy among  Christians  in  any  of  this  ?  There  is  not  certainly. 

4.  Live  but  as  men  that  believe  that  the  Holy  Ghost  is 
given  by  Jesus  Christ  to  convert,  to  quicken,  to  sanctify  all 
that  he  will  save  ;  and  that  except  you  be  bom  again  of  th^ 
Spirit,  you  shall  not  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven ;  and, 
that  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  the  same  is^ 
none  of  his  *  :  and  that  without  this  no  patching  or  mend- 
ing of  your  lives  by.  any  common  principles  will  serve  the 
turn  for  your  salvation,  or  make  you  acceptable  to  God^." 
Live  as  men  that  believe  that  this  Spirit  is  given  by  the  hear- . 
ing  of  the  word  of  God,  and  must  be  prayed  for,  and  obeyed, 
and  not  resisted,  quenched,  and  grieved.  And  is  there  any 
controversy  among  Christians  in  any  of  this?  Ask- those 
that  make  a  mock  at  holiness,  sanctification  and  the  Spirit, 
whether  they  be  not  baptized  into  the  name  of  the  Holy- 
Ghost,  and  profess  to  believe  in  him  as  their  Sanotifier,  as 
well  as  in  the  Son  their  Redeemer?  And  then  ask  them 
whether  it  be  not  a  thing  that  should  make  even  a  devil  to 
tremble  to  come  so  near  the  blasphemy  against  the  Holy 
Ghost,  as  to  mock  at  his  office  and  sanctifying  work,  and  at 
the  holiness  without  which  no  man  shall  see  the  Lord ' !  and 
this  after  they  are  baptized  and  profess  to  believe  in  the 
Holy  Ghost  as  their  Sanctifier. 

5.  Live  but  as  men  that  believe  that  sin  is  the  greatest . 
evil,  the  thing  which  the  Holy  God  abhorreth.     And  then 
you  will  never  make  a  mock  of  it,  as  Solomon  saith  the 
foolish  do  * ;  nor  say, '  What  harm  is  in  it?' 

6.  Live  but  as  men  that  believe  no  sin  is  pardoned  with- 
out repentance ;  and  that  repentance  is  the  loathing  and  for- 
saking of  sin ;  and  that  if  it  be  true,  it  will  not  suffer  you  to 
live  wilfully  in  any  gross  sin,  nor  to  desire  to  keep  the  least 
infirmity,  nor  to  be  loath  to  know  your  unknown  sins. 

7.  Live  as  those  that  believe  that  you  are  to  be  members 

«  John  111  5,  6.  Rom.  Wii.  9.       f  Heb.  xi.  6.      »  HcYj.  id\A%.     ^'^tw.'iv.-'i 


Sfid  NOW  on  NETKIB* 

of  tb^  holy  iMholie  ch«rch,  add  therem  to  hold  the  oobh 
looBion  of  saifitt^  And  Ibeti  jam  wiU  know  that  it  is  boI 
an  m  member  of  aiijr  seot  or  paortf^  but-  as  a  holy  metaiber  of 
thi*  holy  dmrcb,  dhffiit  yo«  nrast  be  saved ;  and  that  it  is  An 
name  of  a  Ghristiaiir  whiob  is  mofo  honourabk^than  the  nanw 
of  any  diTifiion  or  aubditiBioft  anieiig  Chriatiteia,  whether 
Greek,  or  Papist,  or  Protestant^  or  Prdalist^  or  Presbyter 
rkuBj  or  Independent,  or  Aifa(bapti«t«  It  i»  easy  lobe  of  any 
one  of  these  parties ;  bat  to  be^  a  Christian,  whieh  all  pre- 
tend to>  is  not  SO'  easy^  It  is  easy  to  haiFS  m  btaming  zeal 
tot  any  divided  party  or  can^e ;  but-  &e  zeal  for  the  C\m^ 
tiaal  rellgie^  is  net  so  easy  to  be  kindied  or  kept  aihre ;  bat 
reqnireth  as  nmi^  diligence  to  maintain  it;  as  dividing  teal 
requivetli  to  q-neneh  it.  It  is  easy  to  loVe  a  partysfis  a(  party ; 
bat  to  keep  ap  catholie  charity  to  all  Ght^stians/and  isol^ 
in  that  holy  love  and  converse  whieh  is  re^srte  to  a  cott^ 
mfenioiiir  of  saints  js  not  m  easy.-  9Mm,  and  ^rrnptiBd 
ttrrer  b^ftiend  th^  toys  and  zeal  of  fitotion,  wbidi  is 
to  ft  pffirty  oir  a  con tfb^evled  esae^ ;  bnt  tiley  ante  enemies  to 
the  love  of  saints',  and  to'  the  zeal  f6f  h^^SSfiteils,  and  to  6^ 
ettfjtoti<^  charity  i^v^ieh  rs  from  the  Spirit  of  Christ.  You  seiBf 
I  caiU  you  not  to  division,  not  to  side  witb  sects ;  but  to  Hve 
as  members'  of  a  holy  catholic  church,  which  consisteth  of 
all  that  are  holy  in  the  world;  and  to  live  as  those  that  be^ 
Keve  the  communion  of  saints^ 

8.  Lite  as  those  thkt  believe  that  there  is  a  life  everlast- 
ing, whert^  the  sanctified'  shidl  live  in  endless*  joy,  and  the 
unsanctrfied  in  endless  p\tti4shment  and  woe.  Live  but  as 
men  that  verfly  believe  a  he^v^n  attd  a  hell,  and  a  day  of 
judgment,  in  which  all  the  actions  of  tMs  life  must  b6  re- 
vised, and  all  isfsn  judged  to  their  endless  stated  Believe 
liiese  tbmgs  heartily,  «ind  thdh'  ^ink  a  holy  diligence  heed- 
less if  you  C9m.  Then  be  of  th^  inind  of  the  deridefs  and 
enemies  of  godlinfess'  if  yen'  cAn.  If  one  sight  of  heaven  or 
hetl  would- serve  without  any  more  ado,  instead  of  other  ar- 
guments, to  eonfefte  all  ^e  cavils  of  the  distraeted  world ; 
and  to  justify  the  most  diligent  saints  in  the  judgment  of 
those  t^at  now  abhor  them,  why  should  not  a  sound  belief 
of  the  same  thing  in  its  measure  do  the  s»ne  ? 

9.  Liive  but  tis  tYM>%e  lYi%.\i A^c^fteve  this  life  is  given  us  as 
the  only  time  to  make  iptft\>wN^\««fe^x  %\««!c«i>«Sfc\  %xA>^^ 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  56& 

all  thai  ever  shaU  be  done  for  your  BaLratioKi/miist  be  nowy 
ju8t  now«  before  your  time  is  ended..  Live  as  those  ihat^ 
know  (and  n^ed  not  fiiith  to  tell  them);  that^  this .  lime J9 
short/ and  ililmost  at  an  end  already^  and  stayethfornomafl^ 
but  as  a  postdol^  haste  away.  It  ^rill  not  stay  wkdle  yo« 
are  trimming  you«-  of  sf>ortiiig  y(m^  It  will  not  .stay  while 
you  ai^  taking  up  in  stage  ^lays,  in  oompliments^  in  idle 
vifiits^  or  any  impertinent^  needless  things^,  itwill  not  tanly 
while  you  spend  yet  the  other  year,  or  men  thy  or  day»  ia 
yourworldlili€^«Si  or  ambition,  or  in  your  lusts  of  sensual  de^ 
If  ghtSi  ^ttd  put  off  yo^r  repentance  to  another  tiniest  O,.  sira^ 
for  the  Lord'6  isake,  do  but  live  as  men  that  must  shortly  be 
buried  in  tb^  gtAV^,  and  their  sotild  appear  befove  the  Lord, 
and  as  men  that  have  but  this  little  time,  to  do  all  for  tbeiv 
everlasting  life,  that-  eter  must  be  done.  O  lite  as  men  thai 
are  ^nre  to  ^ie,  and  are  not  sut^  to  live  till  to^ifiiorrow.  A«id 
let  net  the  noid«  of  pleasure  or  worldly  business^  c»r  the  ehat 
or  scorns  of  miserable  fools,  bear  down  your  reason,  and 
make  you  live  as  if  yon  knew  not  whsil  youknow^or  a»if 
there  were  any  dt^ubt  about  these  thingifu  Who  is  the  mttiiy 
and  what  is  his  iiame,  that  daj^e  eontmdidi  them^  axvd  ca» 
mak6  it  good  ?  O  dcy  not  sin  against  your  knowledge^  De 
not  stand  ^iil  and  ^eyonr  glass^^runrnng,  and- time  mahiog 
stidh  haste,  ^ixd  yet  make  no  nK>re  h^te  yonrseltes^  than  if 
you  were  not  concerned  in  it.  Do  not,  O  de  not^slnmbev^ 
when  time  and  judgment  nev^  slumber,  nor  sit  still  whew 
you  hat^  so  much  to  die,  and  know  all  that  i^  now  left  un^ 
done  mui^  be  uttdoii&  for  ever !  Alas  I  sir»;  how  tnany  ques*< 
tions  of  exceeding  weight  hat^  you  yettd  bci  resolved  mi 
Whether  yon  are  truly  ssttrctifted?  whether  yoursins  be  par^ 
doned?  whether  you  shall  be  saved  when  you  die?  iv4ietbei^ 
you  are  ready  to  leave  this  world,  and  enter  upon  another^ 
I  tell  you,  the  answering  of  t^se  and  many  more  such  ques^ 
tions,  is  a  matter  of  no  smaH  difficulty  or  cencemment* 
And  all  these  must  be  done  in  this  Httle  and  uncertain  time* 
It  must  be  now  or  never.  Live  but  as  men  that  believe  and 
consider  these  certain  unquestionable  things. 

10.  Lastly.  WiM  you  but  live  as  men  that  believe  that  the 
world  and  the  flesh  are  the  deadly  enemies  of  your  salvation. 
And  that  believe,  that  if  any  man  love  the  world,  (%q  fexS 


5tt0  NOW    OR    NEVER. 

the  love  of  the  Father  is  not  in  him^  And  as  men  that  be- 
lieve, that»  if  ye  live  after  the  flesh  ye  shall  die;  but  if  by 
the  Spirit  ye  mortify  the  deeds  of  the  body,  ye  shall  live  S 
And  diose  that  are  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  are  freed  from  con- 
demnation, are  such  as  walk  not  after  the  flesh,  but  after  the 
Spirit.  And  that  we  must  make  no  provision  for  the  flesh 
to  satisfy  the  will  or  lusts  thereof,  and  must  not  walk  in 
gluttony  and  drunkenness,  in  chambering  and  wantonness,  in 
strife  and  envying ;  but  must  have^our  hearts  where  our  trea- 
sure is*^,  and  converse  in  heaven*,  and  being  risen  with  Christ, 
must  seek  the  things  that  are  above,  and  set  our  affections 
on  them,  and  not  on  the  things  that  are  on  earth  ^ 

Sirs,  will  you  say  that  any  of  this  is  our  singular  opinion, 
or  matter  of  controversy  and  doubt  ?     Are  not  all  Christians 
agreed  in  it?     Do  you  not,  your  ownselves  profess  that 
you  believe  it  ?     Live  then  but  as  those  that  do  believe  it, 
and  condemn  not  yourselves  in  the  things  that  you  confess. 
I  tell  thee,  if  now  thou  wilt  refuse  to  live  according  to 
these  common  acknowledged  truths,  thou  shalt  never  be 
able  to  say  before  the  Lord,  that  men's  controversy  about  a 
ceremony,  or  church-government,  or  the  manner  of  worship, 
were  the  things  that  hindered  thee.     But  all  sorts  and  sects 
shall  be  witnesses  against  thee,  and  condemn  thee :  for  they 
all  agreed  in  these  things  ;  even  the  bloodiest  sect,  that  im- 
prison, torment,  and  kill  others  for  their   differences  in 
smaller  matters,  are  yet  agreed  with  those  that  they  persecute 
and  murder,  about  these  things.     Papists  are  agreed  in  them, 
and  Protestants  are  agreed  in  them.     All  the  sects  that  are 
now  quarrelling  among  us,  and  in  the  world,  are  agreed  in 
them,  who  are  but  meet  for  the  name  of  Christians.     All 
these  will  be  ready  to  bear  witness  against  the  profane,  the 
sensual,  the  slothful  neglecter  of  God  and  his  salvation, 
and  to  say,  we  all  confessed,  notwithstanding  our  other  dif- 
ferences, that  all  these  things  were  certain  truths,  and  that 
men's  lives  should  be  ordered  according  unto  these. 

But  if  yet  you  pretend  controversy  to  cover  your  malig- 
nity or  ungodliness,  I  will  go  a  little  further,  and  tell  you 
that  in  the  matter  as  well  as  in  the  principles,  it  is  things 

»•  1  John  ii.  t5,  16.    «  Rom.  viii.  13.     d  Rom.  viii.  l.  xiii.  10.  13.     Matt.  vi.  SI. 
«  Phil.  iii.  IB— «0.  «  Co\.\yu  V—^. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  561 

that  we  are  all  agreed  in,  which  I  call  you  to,  and  which  the 
ungodly  do  refuse.     I  will  briefly  name  them. 

1.  One  part  of  your  work  which  we  urge  yon  to  do  with 
all  your  might,  is  seriously  and  soberly  to  consider  often  of 
all  these  truths  before  mentioned,  which  you  say  you  do  be- 
lieve. And  is  it  any  controversy  with  reasonable  men,  whe* 
tiler  they  should  use  their  reason  ?  or  with  believers,  whe- 
ther they  should  consider  and  lay  to  heait  the  weight  and 
use  of  the  things  which  they  believe  ? 

2.  Another  part  of  your  work  is,  to  love  God  with  all 
your  soul  and  might ;  and  to  make  him  your  delight,  and  to 
seek  first  his  kingdom,  and  the  righteousness  thereof;  and 
to  set  your  affections  on  the  things  above,  and  to  live  on 
earth  as  the  heirs  of  heaven.  And  is  there  any  controversy 
among  Protestants,  Papists,  or  any  about  this  ? 

3.  Another  part  of  your  work  is,  to  see  the  honouring  of 
God  in  the  world,  the  promoting  of  his  kingdom  and  go-> 
vemment  in  yourselves  and  others,  the  doing  of  his  will,  and 
obeying  of  his  laws.     And  is  there  any  controversy  in  this  ? 

4.  Another  part  of  your  work  is,  to  mortify  the  flesh,  and 
reject  its  conceits,  and  desires,  and  lusts,  which  resist  the 
aforesaid  obedience  to  God ;  and  to  cast  out  the  inordinate 
love  and  care  of  worldly  things  ;  to  refuse  the  counsels,  the 
commands,  the  will,  the  enticements  and  persuasions  of 
men,  which  contradict  the  commands  and  will  of  God ;  and 
to  forsake  all  that  you  have  in  the  world  rather  than  forsake 
your  dear  Redeemer,  and  hazard  your  salvation  by  any  wil- 
ful sin.  To  take  up  your  cross  and  follow  Christ  through  a 
life  of  suffering  to  glory.  I  know  there  is  difiiculty  enough 
in  all  this,  and  that  flesh  will  repine  against  it  and  abhor  it. 
But  is  there  any  controversy  about  it  among  any  true  be- 
lievers ?  Is  not  all  this  the  express  command  of  God,  and 
necessary  to  salvation? 

6.  Another  part  of  your  work  is  to  avoid  temptations/ 
and  fly  from  the  occasions  and  appearances  of  evil ;  and  not 
only  to  avoid  that  which  is  directly  evil  itself,  but  that  also 
which  would  draw  you  into  evil  (as  far  as  you  can)  and  to 
keep  as  far  as  may  be  from  the  brink  of  hell  and  danger,  and 
to  have  no  fellowship  with  the  unfruitful  works  of  darkness, 
nor  be  companions  with  them,  but  reprove  VX\exu,^^\^\!DS>v>xw 

VOL.   vji,  o  o 


56*2  NOV  OK  N£VKK. 

for  tbe'OncIean  and  wicked  convieraation  of  the  wodd.  Tbi» 
is  it  that  we  entreat  of  you ;  and.  is  there  imy>  mt-tter  of  con* 
troyevsy  in  aUthis?- 

\  6.  Another  part  of  the.  work  which  we  call  you  to,  is»  to 
redeem  this  little  time:  that  is.  allotted  you.  To  make  the 
best  of  it,  and  intproye  it  to  the  greediest  furtherance  of  your 
salTation.  To  lose  none  of  it  upon  unprofitable  things.  To 
spendi  it  in  t^ose  works  which,  will  comfort  yx>tt4nostwhen 
time  is  gone.  If  it  will  be  more  comfortable  to  you  in  the 
day  of  judgment,  that  you  have  >  spent  your  time  in  plays, 
and  sports,  and  idleness,  andworldly  canen,  and  pleasures, 
than  in  sendng  God,  and.  preparing  for.  another  life,  then 
hold,  on,  and  do  so  to  the  end.  But  if.  it  will,  not,  dien  do 
what  you  would  hear  of,  seeing  you  must  hear  of  it.  Spend 
none  of  your  time  in  idleness  and  un^fruitfiiL  things^  till  yon 
have  no  better  and  more  necessary  things,  to  spend  it  in, 
and'  ^Ul  you  hare  time  to  spareirfrooi  more;impoitant  work. 
This  is  oar  request. to.  you,  that  you  wouM^not  lose  oneheur 
of  your  precious  time,  but  spend  it^as  those  that  ha^re  lost 
too  much,  and  have  but  a  little  more ito  spfsudin  prepara- 
tion for  eternity.  And  is  this:any>:schisip0tical.orfactious> 
notion?  Is  tliere  any  thing  controvertible,  or  which  any 
Christian  can  speak  against,  in  any  of  this  ? 

7.  Another  part  of  your  work;  is,  to  search  the  Scripture 
as,  that  which  con taineth.  your  directions  for  eternal  life^ 
To  love  the  word  of  Ood  more  than,  thousands  of  gold  and 
silver^  and  pilfer  it  before  your  necessary  food  ^,  and  to  me- 
ditate in  it  day  and  night,  as  that  which  is  your  pleasure 
and  delight  ^,  and  as  that  which  is  able  to  make  you  wise 
unto  salvation^,  and  to  build  you  up,  and  give  you  an  inhe- 
ritance  among  the  sanctified  ^  That  you  lay  up  the  word 
of  Ood  in  your  hearts,  and  teach  them  diligently  to  your 
children,  and  talk  of  them  when  you  sit  in  your  housea,  and 
when  you  walk  by  the  way ^  and  when  you  lie  down,  and 
when  you  rise  up  S  that  so  you  and  your  households  may 
serve  the  Lord  °*.  Tliis  is  the  work  that  we  call  you  to. 
And  is  there  any  thing  that  a  Christian  can  make  a  contro- 

f  John  V.  39.  «  Psal.  cjux.  72.     Job  xxiii.  12.  ^  Psal.  i.  2. 

»  2  Tim.  iii.  15.  ^  Acts  xx.  32-  »  Deut.  vi.  7.   xi.  18,  19. 

"  Josh,  xxiv.  15. 


NOW  OR  NBVER.  503 

versy  of  in  all  this  ?     Is  there  any  tfaio^that  Protestants  are' 
not  agreed  of? 

8.  Another  part  of  your  woric  is,  that  you  guard  your 
tongues,  and  take  not  the  name  of  Ood  in  vainy  and  speak 
no  reproaches  or  slanders  against  your  brethren ;  and  that 
no  corrupt  communication  proceed  out  of  your  mouths,  but 
that  which  is  good  to  the  use  of  edifying,  and  that  it  may 
minister  grace  unto  the  hearers  °,  and  that  fornication,  ua^ 
cleanness,  and  covetousness  be  not  once  named  among  you^ 
as  becometh  saints ;  neither  filthiness,  nor  foolish  talking, 
nor  jesting,  which  are  not  convenient,  but  rather  giving  of 
thanks  °.  And  is  there  any  thing  of  doubt  or  controversy 
in  this  ? 

9.  Another  part  of  the  woriL  which  we  persuade  you  to^ 
is  to  pray  continually  p,  and  not  to  wax  faint  *> ;  to  be  fer-^ 
vent  and  importunate  with  God,  as  those  that  know  the 
greatness  of  their  necessity '.  That  you  pray  with  all  prayeir 
and  supplication  in  the  Spirit  %  and  in  every  thing  by  prayei* 
and  supplication  to  make  known  your  requests  to  Ood/. 
That  you  pray  for  kings  and  all  in  authority,  that  we  lead  a 
quiet  and  peaceable  life  in  all  godliness  and  honesty  **• 
And  is  there  any  thing  in  all  this  that  any  Christian  can 
deny? 

lOw  Lastly,  the  wo  A-  we  call-  you^  to,  is,  to  love  your 
n^eighbours  as  yourselves,  and  to  do  to  others  as  you  would 
have  them  (arbitrio  sano)  do  to  you.  To  scorn,  deride,  mo- 
kffit,  imprison,  slander,  or  hurt  no  man,  till  you  would  be  so 
uned  yourselves  on  the  like  occasion.  To  rejoice  in  other 
melt's  profit  and  reputation  as  your  own.  To  envy  none,  to 
hate  n6  man,  to  wrong  none  in  their  person8,estates,or  nameii 
To  preserve  the  chastity,  honour,  and  estate  of  your  neigli-* 
bour  as  your  own.  To  love  your  enemies,  and  forgive  theni 
that  wrong  you,  and  pray  for  them  that  hate,  and  hurt,  and 
persecute  you.  This  is  your  work.  And  is  there  any  thing 
of  faction,  schism,  or  controversy,  in  this  ?  No :  you  shall 
8&k>rtly  be  convinced,  that  the  differences  and  controversies 
of  believers,  and  the  many  opinions  about  religion,  were  a 

■  Eph.  iv.  29.  °  Eph.  v.  3, 4.  PI  Thess.  v.  IT, 

^  Luke  xviii.  1«  '  Luke  xviii,  6,  7.    James  ▼.  15.  '  Eph.  vi.  18« 

^  Phi).  IV.  6  "  1  Tim.  ii.  1,  2. 


&64  NOW  OR  NEVKK. 

wretched,  hypocritical  pretence  for  your  neglect  and  con- 
tempt of  the  substance  of  religion,  about  which  there  was 
no  difference,  but  all  parties  were  agreed  in  the  confession 
of  the  truth,  however  hypocrites  would  not  live  according 
to  their  own  professions. 

But  perhaps  you  will  say,  that  there  is  such  difference  in 
the  manner  yet  among  them  that  agree  in  the  principles  and 
the  matter,  that  you  know  not  which  way  God  is  to  be  wor- 
shipped. 

I  answer,  1.  Do  you  practise  as  aforesaid,  according  to 
the  principles  and  matter  agreed  on,  or  not?  If  you  do  not, 
it  is  but  gross  hypocrisy  to  pretend  disagreements  in  the 
manner,  as  an  excuse  for  your  contempt  or  omission  of  the 
matter,  which  all  agree  in.  Forsooth,  your  families  shall  be 
prayerless,  and  you  will  make  a  jest  of  serious  prayer,  be- 
cause some  pray  on  a  book,  and  some  without,  and  some 
that  are  wisest,  think  that  either  way  is  lawful.  Will  God 
be  deceived  by  such  silly  reasonings  as  these  ? 

2.  But  this  shall  not  hide  the  nakedness  of  your  impiety. 
Will  you  also,  in  the  manner  of  your  obedience,  but  go  so 
far  as  all  Christians  are  agreed  in  ?  I  will  briefly  then  give 
you  some  particular  instances. 

1.  The  work  of  God  must  be  done  with  reverence,  in  his 
fear;  not  like  the  common  works  of  men,  with  a  common, 
careless  frame  of  mind.  God  will  be  "  sanctified  of  all  that 
draw  near  him*."  He  will  be  served  as  God,  and  not  as 
man.  He  will  not  be  prayed  to  with  a  regardless  mind,  as 
those  do  that  can  divide  their  tongues  from  their  hearts,  and 
say  over  gome  customary  words,  while  they  think  of  some- 
thing else.  It  is  a  dreadful  thing  for  dust  to  speak  to  God 
Almighty  ;  and  a  dangerous  thing  to  speak  to  him  as  slight- 
ly and  regardlessly,  as  if  we  were  talking  to  one  of  our  com- 
panioiis.  It  beseemeth  a  believer  to  have  more  of  the  fear 
of  God  upon  his  heart,  in  his  ordinary  converse  in  the  world, 
than  hypocrites  and  formalists  have  in  their  most  solemn 
prayers.  Knowest  thou  the  difference  between  God  and 
man  ?  Put  then  such  a  difference  between  God  and  man 
in  thy  addresses  as  his  Majesty  requireth.  And  see  also 
that  thy  family  compose  themselves  to  a  reverent  behaviour 

'^  "Lev,  'Jv.  ^. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  .  565 

when  they  join  with  thee  in  the  worship  of  God.  What 
have  you  to  say  now  against  this  reverent  manner  of  beha- 
viour ?     Is  there  any  thing  controvertible  in  this  ? 

2.  It  is  also  requisite  that  you  be  serious  and  sober  in 
all  the  service  you  perform  to  God.  Do  it  not  ludicrously, 
and  with  half  a  heart.  Be  as  much  more  fervent  and  seri- 
ous in  seeking  God  and  your  salvation,  than  you  are  in  seek- 
ing worldly  things,  as  God  and  your  salvation  is  better  than 
any  thing  in  the  world.  Or  if  that  be  beyond  your  reach 
(though  else  there  is  reason  for  it),  at  least  let  the  greatest 
things  have  the  greatest  power  upon  your  hearts.  You  can- 
not pray  more  fervently  for  heaven  than  heaven  deserveth. 
O  let  but  the  excellency  and  greatness  of  your  work  appear 
in  the  serious  manner  of  your  performance.  I  hope  you  can- 
not say  that  this  is  any  point  of  controversy,  unless  it  be  a 
controversy  whether  a  man  should  be  a  hypocrite,  or  be  se- 
rious in  the  religion  which  he  doth  profess^ 

3.  It  is  requisite  that  your  service  of  God  be  performed 
understandingly  y.  God  delighteth  not  in  the  blind  devo- 
tion of  men  that  know  not  what  they  do.  Prayers  not  un- 
derstood are  indeed  no  prayers  ;  for  no  man^s  desire  goeth 
further  than  his  knowledge.  And  he  expresseth  not  his  de- 
sires that  knoweth  not  what  he  expresseth  himself.  Nor 
can  he  expect  the  concurrence  of  another  man's  desires,  that 
speaketb  what  another  understandeth  not.  The  word  that  is 
not  understood  cannot  sink  into  the  heart  and  sanctify  it ; 
or  if  it  be  not  well  and  soundly  understood,  it  is  easily  stole 
away  by  the  tempter  ^  If  understanding  be  necessary  in 
our  common  conversations,  much  more  in  our  holy  addresses 
to  the  Almighty  *.  "  A  man  of  understanding  is  of  an  ex- 
cellent spirit ;  but  God  hath  no  pleasure  in  fools  or  in  their 
sacrifices^;"  nor  is  pleased  with  a  parrot-like  lip-'Service 
which  is  not  understood.  He  saith  in  detestation  of  the 
hypocrites,  "  This  people  draweth  nigh  unto  me  with  their 
mouth,  and  honoureth  me  with  their  lips,  but  their  heart  is 
far  from  me"^."  I  hope  then  when  we  call  you  to  serve  God 
in  judgment  and  with  understanding,  we  call  you  to  nothing 
that  a  Christian  should  make  question  of. 

y  Psal.  xlvii.  7.     1  Cor.  xiv.  15.  .     *  Matt.  xiii.  19.  «3. 

a  Prov.  xvH.  27.  *>  Eccle?.  v.  1.4.  «  Matt.  xTve,9. 


666  NOW   OK    NEY«R» 

4.  ''God  i%  a  Spirit.  >and  tb«y  tj^t  amre  iiim  ibmsI 
serire  him  in  jipirit  and  in  truth  *^."  '^  The  Father  seeketh 
duch  to  worship. him ^"  He  calleth  for  the  heart;  he  look-, 
eth  for  the  inward  desires  of  the  soul;  he  converseth  with 
minds  that  are  abstracted  from  vanity,  and  are  seriously  ta^ 
ken  up  in  attending  him.  and  are  intent  upon  the  work  they 
do.  The  carcase  of  a  pjcayer  separated  from  the  life  of  it, 
siinketh  before  the  Holy  God.  As  he  will  beloved,  so  will 
he  .be  served.  **  with  all  the  heart,  and  soul,  and  might.'' 
And  do  we  call  yon  then  to  any  thing  that  is  doubtful,  when 
we  eall  you  to  the  spiritual  worshipping  of  God  ? 

6.  Yet  we  maintain  that  the  body  hath  its  part  in  the  ser- 
vice of  God  as  well  as  the  soul ;  and  the  body  must  express 
the  inward  reverence  and  devotion  of  the.  soul;  though  not 
in  a  Way  of  hypocritical  ostentation,  yet  in  away  of  serious 
adoration.  The  bowing  of  the  knee,  the  uncovering  of  the 
head,  and  reverent  deportment,  and  whatsoever  nature,  or 
common  use,  and  holy  institution  hath  made  an  expression 
of  holy  affections,  and  a  decent  and  grave  behaviour  of  our- 
selves, should  be  carefully  observed  in  the  presence  of  the 
Most  High,  and  the  holy  things  of  God  more  reverently  to 
be  respected  than  the  presence  of  any  mortal  man.  And 
the  rather,  because  that  a  grave,  and  reverent,  and  holy  man- 
ner of  deportment  in  God's  worship,  reflecteth  upon  the 
heart,  and  helpeth  us  in  our  inward  and  spiritual  devotion ; 
and  it  helpeth  the  beholders,  and  awakeneth  them  to  reve- 
rent thoughts  of  God  and  holy  things,  which  a  regardless 
and  common  manner  of  deportment  would  extinguish.  And 
it  is  no  dishonour  to  reverent  behaviour,  that  it  is  the  use  of 
hypocrites,  but  rather  an  honour  to  it ;  for  it  is  something 
that  is  good  that  the  hypocrite  useth  for  the  cloak  of  his  se- 
cret emptiness  or  evil.  If  there  were  nothing  good  in  reve- 
rent behaviour  before  God,  it  would  not  serve  the  hypo- 
crite's turn.  As  it  is  a  commendation  to  long  prayer,  that 
the  Pharisees  made  it  their  pretence  for  the  devouring  of 
widows*  houses.  And  those  that  call  them  hypocrites,  that 
are  much  in  holy  exercises  and  speeches,  should  consider 
that  if  holy  exercises  and  speeches  were  not  good,  they  were 
not  fit  for  the  hypocrite's  design ;  evil  will  not  be  a  fit  cloak 

«*  Jobn  iv.  24.  «  Ver.  23. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  S^? 

for  evil ;  that  which  -the  hypocrite  thinks  necessairy  to  the 
covering  of  his  sin/we  must  think  more  necessary  to  the 
cure  of  our  sin  and.  the  saving  of  our  souls.  The  T^ay 
to  avoid  hypocrisy,  is  not  by  running  into  impiety  and  pro- 
faneness ;  we  must  do  mOre  than  the  hypocrite,  ieind  not  les^, 
else  he  will  rise  up  in  judgment  against  you  and  condemn 
you,  if  he  would  do  more  to  seem  good,  than  you  would  do  to 
be  good,  and  to  pleaseyour  Maker :  if  a  Pharisee  will  pray  Ion* 
ger  to  colour  bis  oppression,  thsin  you  will  to  attsiin  isalvation. 
The  mischief  of  hypocrisy  is,  that  the  soul  ofteH^on  h  want- 
ing, while  the  corpse  is  present.  And  will  you  caist  away  botH 
soul  and  body,  both  inside  and  outside,  in  opposition  to  hy- 
pocrisy ?  If  others  do  seem  to  love  Ood  whentliey  do  not, 
will  you  therefore  not  so  much  as  seem  to  doit?  So  here 
about  reverence  in  the  service  of  6od ;  the  hypocrite  'shotild 
not  exceed  tlie  sincere  in  atiy  thing  that  is  truly  good.  This 
is  the  manner  of  Gk)d's  service  that  I  persuade  you  to,  and 
to  no  other.  And  is  there  any  thing  of  cohtroversy  in  this  ? 
Prefer  but  the  spiritual  part,  and  knowbut wHat  that  mean- 
eth,  "  I  will  have  mercy  and  not  sacrifice,"  that  so  you  ihay 
not  condemn  the  innocent,  and  you  shall  never  say  that  we 
will  be  more  backward  than  you  to  decency,  and  reverent 
behaviour  in  God^s  service. 

6.  God  will  be  served  in  Purity  and  Hbl  iness,  ^ith  cleans- 
ed hearts  and  hands,  and  not  with  such  as  remain  defiled 
with  the  guilt  of  any  wilful  sin.  He  abhorr^th  the  sacrifice 
of  the  wicked  and  disobedient.  *'  tie  that  turneth  ifiway  his 
ear  from  hearing  the  law,  his  prayefs  are  abbttiinable  ^*' 
*'  To  what  purpose  is  the  multitude  of  ydtir  sacrifices  unto 
me  ?  saith  the  Lord,  (to  oppressing,  ivickisd  men).  Whtgn 
you  come  to  appear  before  me,  whb  hath  required  this  ki 
your  hands,  to  tread  my  courts  ?  Bring  no  nlore  vaih  obla*^ 
tions :  incense  is  an  abomination  to  me ;  the  new  moons  add 
sabbaths,  the  calling  of  assemblies  I  cieinnot  away  with :  it 
is  iniquity )  even  the  solemn  meeting,  &c.  And  tirbeiif  J^u 
spread  forth  your  hands  I  will  hide  mine  eyes  from  you ; 
yea*  when  you  make  many  prayers  I  will  not  hear.  Yolir 
hands  are  full  of  blood.  Wash  you,  make  you  clean ;  put 
away  the  evil  of  your  doings  from  before  mine  eyes ;  ceasd 

f  Prov.  xxviii.  9.     xv.  8.     xxi.  27.     Isa,  i.  13.    EccVcv  ^ .  V— \. 


508  NOV  OR  NEVER. 

to  do  evU ;  leam  to  do  well ;  seek  jadgment,  reliever  the  op- 
pressed, judge  the  fatherless,  plead  for  the  widow.  Come 
now,  and  let  us  reason  together,  saith  the  Lord  >.'' 

To  play  the  glutton,  or  drunkard,  or  filthy  fornicator  in 
the  day-time^  and  then  to  come  to  Ood  at  night,  as  if  it  were 
to  make  him  amends  by  an  hypocritical  prayer;  to  bias- 
p)ieme  God's  name,  and  oppose  his  rule,  yea,  oppose  his 
kingdom  and  government  in  yourselves  and  others,  and  to 
do  your  own  will,  and  hate  and  scorn  them  that  do  his  will, 
and  study  his  will  that  they  may  do  it,  and  then  to  pray 
that  Ood's  name  may  be  hallowed,  his  kingdom  come*  and 
his  will  be  done,  is  an  abusing  Ood,  and  not  serving  or 
pleasing  him.  Live  according  to  your  prayers,  and  let  your 
lives  shew  as  well  as  your  words  what  it  is  that  you  desire. 
This  is  the  service  of  God  that  we  call  you  to :  and  can  you 
say  that  there  is  any  thing  controvertible  in  all  this  ?  Are 
there  any  men  of  any  party  among  Christians,  or  sober  infi- 
dels that  dare  contradict  it? 

7.  God  will  be  served  entirely  and  universally,  in  all  his 
commands ;  and  with  all  your  faculties ;  in  works  of  Piety, 
Justice  and  Charity,  which  must  never  be  separated.  Yon 
must  not  pretend  your  charity  against  your  duties  of  piety ; 
for  God  is  to  be  preferred  in  your  estimation,  love  and  ser- 
vice ;  and  all  that  is  done  for  man  must  be  done  for  his  sake. 
You  must  not  set  up  duties  of  Piety,  against  duties  of  Jus- 
tice, Charity  and  Sobriety :  it  is  not  true  Piety  that  will  not 
bring  forth  these.  God  must  be  loved  above  all,  and  our 
neighbour  as  ourselves ;  and  these  two  sorts  of  love  are  in- 
separable. Do  all  the  ^ood  you  can  to  all  while  yon  have 
opportunity  ;  especially  to  them  of  the  household  of  fiuth  ^. 
What  good  you  would  hear  of  in  the  day  of  your  accounts^ 
that  do  now,  speedily,  diligently,  and  sincerely,  according 
to  your  power.  Say  not,  *  I  may  come  to  want  myself,'  but 
**cast  thy  bread  upon  the  waters,  for  thou  shalt  find  it  after 
many  days ;  give  a  portion  to  seven,  and  also  to  eight,  for 
thou  knowest  not  what  evil  shall  be  upon  the  earth  *  *"  and 
whether  all  may  not  quickly  be  taken  from  thee  ;  and  then 
thou  wilt  wish  thou  hadst  done  good  with  it  while  thou  hadst 
it,  and  lent  it  to  the  Lord,  and  trusted  him  with  thy  remain- 

t  Isa.  U  tl— 18.  ^  Gal.  vi.  10»  »  Bccles.  xu  t,  2. 


NOW  OR  NfiV£R.  569 

der,  who  entrusted  thiee  with  his  blessings  :  and  hadst  made 
thee  friends  of  the  mammon  of  unrighteousness  that  when 
all  fail  they  might  receive  thee  into  the  everlasting  habita- 
tions. Drop  not  now  and  then  a  scant  and  grudging  alms, 
as  if  thou  wert  a  loser  by  it,  and  God  must  be  beholden  .to 
thee ;  but  believe,  that  the  greatest  gain  is  to  thyself,  and 
look  after  such  bargains,  and  do  good  as  readily,  and  gladly, 
and  liberally,  as  one  that  verily  expecteth  a  full  reward  in 
heaven.  This  is  part  of  the  service  of  God  that  we  exhort 
you  to,  even  to  visit,  and  relieve,  and  love  Christ  in  his  mem- 
bers and  brethren^.  And  is  there  any  thing  of  doubt  or 
controversy  in  all  this  ? 

8.  Moreover,  God  will  be  served  with  love,  and  willing- 
ness, and  delight :  it  is  the  most  gainful,  honourable,  and 
pleasant  work  in  the  world,  which  he  hath  appointed  you, 
and  not  a  toilsome  task  or  slavery ;  and  therefore  it  is  not  a 
melancholy,  pining,  troublesome  course  of  life  that  we  per- 
suade you  to,  under  the  name  of  godliness ;  but  it  is  to  re- 
joice in  the  Lord,  and  to  live  in  the  joyful  expectations  of 
eternal  life,  and  in  the  sense  and  assurance  of  the  love  of 
God.  If  you  could  shew  us  any  probability  of  a  more  plea- 
sant and  joyful  life  on  earth,  than  that  which  serious  holi- 
ness doth  afford,  I  should  be  glad  with  all  my  heart  to  hearr 
ken  to  you.  I  am  ready  to  tell  you  what  is  the  ground  of 
our  comforts,  which  faith  revealeth  :  if  you  will  come,  and 
soberly  debate  the  case,  and  shew  us  the  matter  and  ground 
of  your  comforts,  which  you  have  or  hope  for  in  any  other 
way ;  if  yours  prove  greater,  and  better,  and  surer  than  the 
joys  of  faith,  we  will  hearken  to  you,  and  be  of  your  mind 
and  side. 

The  matter  of  the  joys  of  a  believer  is  that  all  his  sins 
are  pardoned ;  that  God  is  reconciled  to  him  in  Christ ; 
that  he  hath  the  promise  of  God,  that  all  things,  even  the 
greatest  sufferings,  shall  work  together  for  his  good ;  that 
he  is  always  in  the  love,  and  care,  and  hands  of  God  ;  that 
he  hath  leave  to  draw  near  him  by  holy  prayer,  and  open  his 
heart  to  him  in  all  his  straits  and  wants ;  that  he  may  solace 
himself  in  his  praise  and  thanksgiving,  and  in  other  parts  of 
holy  worship;  that  he  may  read  and  hear  his  holy  word,  th« 

^  Matt.  xx¥. 


670  NOW  OR  N£VeE. 

rare  discovery  of  the  will  of  God,  and  revehdion^lfthe  tlitags 
unseen,  and  the  charter,  of  his  inheritance ;  that  he  may  ex- 
ercise iiis  soul  in  the  serious  belienng  thoughts  of  the  love 
of  God,  revealed  in  the  wonderful  work  of  our  redemption^ 
and  of  the  person,  and  office,  and  grace  of  Jesus  Christ  our 
Redeemer ;  and  that  he  may  love  that  God  that  hath  so  won-» 
derfuUy  loved  him ;  that  he  hath  the  Spirit  of  God  to  quick* 
en  and  actuate  his  soul,  to  supply  his  spiritual  defects,  and 
kill  his  sins,  and  help  him  to  believe,  to  love,  to  rejoice,  to 
pray.    That  this  Spirit  is  God's  seal  upon  him,  and  the  ear* 
nest  of  everlasting  life ;  that  death  shall  not  kill  his  hopes, 
nor  end  his  happiness,  but  that  his  felicity  and  fullest  joy 
beginnetfa,  when  that  of  worldlings  hath  an  end,  and  their 
endless  misery  begins ;  that  he  is  delivered  from  everlasting 
torment  by  the  redemption  of  Christ,  and  the  sanctification 
of  the  Spirit;  that  angels  will  attend  his  departing  soul  in- 
to the  presence  of  his  Father;  ^hat  he  shall  be  with  his  glo* 
rified  Redeemer  and  behold  his  glory ;  that  his  body  shall 
be  raised  to  everlasting  life ;  that  he  shall  be  justified  by 
Christ  from  all  the  accusations  of  the  devils  and  all  the  slan- 
ders of  the  malicious  world ;  that  he  shall  live  with  God  in 
endless  glory,  and  see  and  enjoy  the  glory  of  his  Creator, 
and  shall  never  more  be  troubled  with  enemies,  with  sin  or 
sorrow,  but  among  his  holy  ones  shall  perfectly  and  most 
joyfully  love  and  praise  the  Lord  for  ever. 

These  are  the  matter  of  a  believer's  joy :  these,  purcha- 
sed by  Christ,  revealed  in  his  word,  sealed  by  his  miracles, 
his  blood,  his  sacraments,  and  his  Spirit,  are  our  comfort 
This  is  the  religion,  the  labour  that  we  invite  you  to  :  it  is 
not  to  despair,  nor  to  some  dry,  unprofitable  toil,  nor  to  self- 
troubling,  grieving,  miserable  melancholy,  nor  to  costly  sa- 
crifices, or  idle  ceremonies,  or  irrational  service,  such  as  the 
heathens  offered  to  their  idols ;  it  is  not  to  cast  away  all 
mirth  and  comfort,  and  to  turn  unsociable,  and  morose,  and 
sour ;  but  it  is  to  the  greatest  joys  that  the  world  alloweth, 
and  nature  is  here  capable  of,  and  reason  can  discern  and 
own :  it  is  to  begin  a  truly  merry,  sociable  life  :  it  is  to  fly 
from  fear  and  sorrow,  in  flying  from  sin  and  hell,  and  from 
the  consuming  wrath  of  God :  it  is  to  the  foretastes  of  ever- 
lasting joys,  and  to  lYve  \ife^vaxi\\\"^^  o^  eternal  life.     This  is 


NOW   OR    NKVKR.  571 


t  •' 


the  labour,  the  religion  :which  we  would  have  you  follow 
with  all  your  might. 

If  you  have  better  things  to  seek,  and  follow,  and  find, 
let  us  see  them,  that  we  may  be  as  wise  as  you.  If  you  hare 
not,  for  your  souls'  sake,  make  not  choice  of  vanity,  which 
will  deceive  you  in  the  day  of  your  necessity. 

But  you  must  not  think  to  make  us  believe  that  a  gteat 
house,  or  a  horse,  or  a  whore,  or  a  feast,  or  a  flatterer,  or 
fine  clodies,  or  any  childish  tays,  or  brutish  filthiness,  are 
more  comfortable  things  than  Christ,  and  everlasting  life ; 
or  that  it  is  sweeter  and  better  to  love  a  harlot,  or  lands,  or 
money,  than  to  love  God,  and  Grace,  and  Glory ;  nor  that 
any  thing  that  will  go  no  further  than  the  grave  with  you, 
is  as  good  as  that  which  will  endure  to  eternity;  nor  that 
any  pleasure  which  a  dog  or  swine  hath,  is  equal  to  the  de- 
lights of  the  angels  of  heaven.   If  you  would  have  us  of  your 
mind,  you  must  not  be  of  this  mind,  aor  persuade  us  to  such 
horrible  things  as  these.     But  we  profess  to  you  and  all  the 
world  that  we  are  not  so  in  love  with  sorrows  or  sourness, 
nor  so  fallen  out  with  joy  and  pleasure,  as  to  choose  a  life  of 
miserable  sadness,  or  refuse  a  life  of  true  delight.     If  we 
could  hear  from  any  man,  or  find  by  tbe  most  diligent  inqui- 
ry, that  there  is  a  more  full,  and  sweet,  and  rational,  and  sa» 
tisfactory,  and  durable  delight  to  be  had  in  any  other  way 
than  that  of  serious  faith  and  holiness,  which  Christ  in 
Scripture  hath  revealed  to  us,  we  are  like  enough  to  hearken 
after  it. 

But  can  the  distracted,  sensual  world  believe  that  it  is 
sweeter  and  happier  to  ruffle  it  out  in  fleshly  gallantry  and 
sport,  and  to  rage  against  the  godly  for  awhile  till  the  ven-> 
geance  of  God  lay  hold  upon  them,  and  give  them  their  re- 
ward, than  to  live  in  the  love  of  God,  and  wait  in  patience 
for  the  performance  of  God's  promise  of  everlasting  joy  ?  O 
what  a  thing  is  fleshly  passion,  and  raging  sensuality,  and 
blind  unbelief !  The  Lord  have  mercy  upon  deluded  sin- 
ners !  The  devil's  business  is  to  turn  the  world  into  a  Bed- 
lam, and  alas,  how  strangely  hath  he  prevailed !  That  so 
many  men  can  take  their  greatest  misery  for  their  happiness^ 
and  the  only  happiness  for  an  intolerable  life !  Yea,  and  be 
so  angry  with  all  that  are  not  of  their  miud,  lii^d  vi'\\\  w<^V%^V 


572  NOW  OR  never; 

as  much  by  filth  and  foolery,  and  as  little  by  Ood  and  glory 
as  they !  Like  the  nobleman  that  was  lunatic,  or  mad  by 
fits,  and  whenever  he  wfis  mad,  he  would  swear  all  were  mad 
that  said  not  as  he  said,  and  would  make  all  his  servants  be 
sent  to  Bedlam  that  would  not  imitate  him,  and  there  they 
must  lie  as  madmen  till  their  lord  was  recovered  from  his 
madness.  So  are  God's  servants  used  and  talked  of  in  the 
world,  as  if  they  were  besides  themselves,  as  long  as  the 
^orld  is  uncured  of  its  madness.  As  the  man  is,  so  is  his 
judgment,  and  such  is  his  relish,  and  desire,  and  delight. 
When  I  was  a  child,  I  had  far  more  desire  to  fill  my  pin-box, 
than  now  I  have  to  fill  my  purse,  and  accounted  it  a  greater 
treasure,  and  had  much  more  delight  and  contentment  in  it. 
And,  alas,  we  may  remember  since  we  were  strangers  to  the 
relish  of  heavenly  things,  that  we  found  more  pleasure  in 
that  of  which  we  are  now  ashamed,  than  we  did  in  the  most 
high  and  excellent  things.  Let  us  therefore  pity  and  pray 
for  those  that  are  distempered  with  the  same  disease. 

I  have  been  longer  on  this  than  1  thought  to  have  been, 
because  men  think  that  we  call  them  from  all  mirth,  and  joy, 
and  pleasure,  to  a  sour,  heavy,  melancholy  life,  when  we  call 
them  to  a  serious  diligence  for  their  salvation.  As  if  levity 
and  folly  were  the  only  friends  to  pleasure,  and  it  were  only 
to  be  found  in  childish,  worthless,  transitory  things.  And 
as  if  the  greatest  everlasting  happiness  were  no  matter  of 
true  delight ;  nor  seriousness,  nor  diligence,  a  friend  to  joy. 

9.  Moreover,  as  to  the  manner ;  God  will  be  served  with 
absolute  self-resignation,  without  exceptions,  limitations  or 
reserves :  not  With  the  leavings  of  the  flesh,  nor  with  a  pro- 
viso that  you  may  not  sufier  by  your  religion,  or  be  poor,  or 
despised,  or  abused  by  the  world  :  but  with  self-denial  you 
must  lay  down  all  the  flesh's  interest  at  his  feet ;  and  you 
must  take  up  your  cross,  and  follow  a  suffering  Christ  to 
glory.  You  must  serve  him  as  those  that  are  wholly  his, 
and  not  your  own,  and  have  nothing  but  what  is  his,  and 
therefore  nothing  to  be  excepted,  reserved,  or  saved  from 
him ;  but  must  be  content  that  you  and  all  your  interest  be 
in  his  hands,  and  saved  by  him,  if  saved  at  all.  I  know 
these  terms  seem  hard  to  fiesh  and  blood,  (and  should  hea- 
ven be  the  crown  and  t^vj^vd  to  them  that  have  undergone 


NOW  OH  NEVKE.  573 

no  trial  for  it?)  .  But  here  is  nothing  but  what  is  past  all 
controversy,  and  all  Christians  do  confess  is  die  word  of 

Chri;^t,  ;         . 

10.  Lastly^Ood  will  be  served  resolvedly  and  constant- 
ly:  if  you  will  reign^  you .  must  conquer .  and  endure  to  the 
end.  Opposition  you  must  expect ;  and  overcome  it,  if  you 
would  not  be  overcome.  It  is  not  good  beginnings  that  will 
serve  turn,  unless  you  also  persevere,  and  fight  out  the  good 
fight  of  faith,  and  finish  your  course,  and  patiently  wait  out 
the  last  breath,  for  the  crown  of  righteousness,  which  the 
righteous  Judge  will  give  the  conquerors,  when  the  unbeliev* 
ing  world  shall  say  of  all  their  delight  and  hope,  '  It  is  past 
and  gone,  we  shall  never  see  or  taste  it  more,  but  must  now 
taste  of  that  endless  wrath  of  God  which  we  were  treasuring 
up,  when  we  should  have  worked  out  our  salvation/ 

Well  sirs,  I  have  all  this  -while  been  describing  to  you, 
both  as  to  the  Principles,  the  Matter  and  the  Manner,  what 
that  religion,  and  service  of  God  is,  in  which  you  must  la- 
bour with  all  your  might;  that  you  may  see  that  it  is  no 
factious  or  private  opinions  or  practices  that  we  call  you  to 
do  ;  and  that  your  consciences  may  no  longer  be  deluded 
with  the  pretences  of  men's  different  opinions  in  religion; 
and  that  the  names  of  Prelatical,  Presbyterian,  Puritan,  Pa- 
pist, or  any  other   sounding  in  your  ears,  may  not  so  dis- 
tract or  doat  you,  as  to  make  you  forget  the  name  of  Chris- 
tian, which  you  have  all  undertaken,  nor  what  the  Christian 
religion  is.     You  see  now  that  it  is  nothing  (no,  not  a  syl- 
lable or  tittle)  which  all  sober  Christians  are  not  agreed  in, 
that  we  persuade  you  to  do  as  the  work  of  your  religion ; 
and  therefore  I  tell  you  again  here,  before  that  God  that 
shall  be  your  Judge,  and  that  conscience  that  shall  be  as  a 
thousand  witnesses,  that  if  you  will  go  on  in  ungodly,  world- 
ly lives,  and  refuse  the  serious  diligence  of  Christians  in 
this  religion  which  yourselves  profess,  it  shall  be  so  far  from 
being  any  excuse  or  ease  to  you,  that  there  were  hypocrites, 
or  heretics,  or  schismatics,  or  different  opinions  in  religion 
in  the  world,  that  this  very  thing  shall  aggravate  your  sin 
and  condemnation,  that  all  these  hypocrites,  schismatics,  or 
different  parties  in  the  church,  did  agree  in  the  confession  of 
all  these  things,  and  yet  for  all  that  you  would  not  practk^ 


574  NXIW    OR    NBVEK. 

them ;  no,  nor  practise-wbat  yourseli^^  confessed :  all  these 
parties  or  sects  shall  rise  u^'agaiiist  the  sensual  anid  pro&ne, 
ungodly  sinner,  and  say, '  Though  we  are  ignorant  or  doubt-^ 
ful  of  many  other  things,  yet  we*  are  all  agreed  in  these  ;  we 
gare  our  concurrent  testimony^  of  them ;  we  tempted  no  man 
to  doubt  iof  these,  or  to  deny  them/  If  you  will  err  more 
than  an  hypocrite  or  a  schismatic,  and  be  far  worse  than 
those  that  are  such,  or  you  account  such,  and  think  to  ex- 
cuse it,  because  they  erred  in  lesser  things,  it  is  as  if  the 
devil  should  excuse  his  sin,  by  saying, '  Lord,  thy  saints  did 
none  of  them  love  thee  as  they  should,  and  hypocrites  did 
but  seem  to  love  thee,  and  therefore  I  thought  I  might  hate 
thee  and  set  against  thy  ways/ 

'  But  (saith  the  ungodly  sensualist)  V  will  never  believft 
that  God  delighteth  in  long  and  earnest  prayers ;  or  thisAh^ 
is  moved  by  the  passions  or  the  words  of  men;  and-  there- 
fore I  take  this  but  for  babbling;  which  yo«>  call  the  seriowl^ 
diligence  of  believers,  in  their  serving  God.' 

To  this  impious  objection,  I  return*  these* several  aiiisrwers. 

1.  Suppose  this  were  true  as  you  ims^ne,  what  is  this  to 
you  that  serve  God  no  way  atall  with  any  serious  diligence? 
that  live  in  sensuality,  and  wilful  disobedience  to  his  laws, 
and  do  more  for  your  bodies  than  for  your-  souls,  and  for 
temporal  things  than  for  eternal? 

2.  Who  do  you  think  is  most  like  to  understand  God's 
mind,  and  what  is  pleasing  to  him?  Himself  or  you?  Is 
any  thing  more  plainly  commanded  in  God's  word^  thiot 
praying  with  frequency,  fervency  and  importunity  ^  ?  And 
will  you  tell  God  tha4  he  hath  but  dissembled  with  you,  and 
told  you  that  he  is  pleased  with  that  which  is  not  pleslsing 
to  him? 

3.  And  what  is  the  reason  of  your  unbelief  ?  Forsooth, 
because  God  is  not  moved  with  human  words  or  passions? 
I  grant  he  is  not.  But  what  of  that  ?  Hath  prayer  no  other 
use  but  to  move  God  ?  It  is  enough,  l.Thatitmovethus,  and 
fitteth  us  to  receive  his  mercies.  2.  And  that  God  hath 
made  it  necessary  to  the  effect,  and  a  means  or  condition 
without  which  he  will  not  give  the  blessing.  Do  you  think 
(if  you  judge  but  by  natural  reason)  that  a  person  is  as  fit  for 


NOW    OR    NEVER*  &26 

a  mercy  that  knoweth  DOt  the  want  or  worth  of  it,  and  would 
not  be  thankful  for  it  if  he  had  it,  ae  one  that  valueth  it^ 
and  i«  disposed  to  thankfulness  and  improvemeni?  And;  do 
not  you  know  that  holy  prayer  is  nothing  but  the  actuating 
of  holy  desires,  and  the  exercise  of  all  those  graces  which 
are  suited  to  the  due  estimation  and  improvement  of  the 
mercy?  And  is  it  not  the  way  when  we  would  draw  the 
boat  to-  the  bank,  to  lay  hold  of  the  bank  and  pull,  as  if  we 
would  draw  it  to  the  boat  ?  If  God  be  not  moved  and  drawn; 
to  us,  it  is  enouG^h  that  we  are  moved  and  drawn  to  God.: 
and  withal  that  God  may  give  us  his  own  blessings^  to  whom 
and  upon  what  terms  he  please,  and  that  he  hath  assured  us 
he  will  give  them  but  to  those  that  value,  desire,^  and  seek 
them,  and  that  with  faith,  and  fervency,  and  impoitunity. 

And  yet  I  may  addj  that  God  is  so  far  above  us,  as*  that 
his  incomprehensible  essence,  and  blessed.natuce  is  very  litr 
tie  known  to  us^  smd  therefore  though  we  knowandconfess 
that  he  hath  no  human  passions  nor  imperfections,  yet  if  he 
assume  to  himself  the  title  of  such  a  thing  as  love,  desire^ 
joy  or  wrath,  we  must  in  reason  believe,  that  though  these 
are  not  in  God  as  they  are  in  man  with  any  imperfection.; 
yet  there  is  something  in  God  that  cannot  more  fitly  be  re^r 
presented  to  man,  nor  be  understood  by  man,  than  by  the 
images  of  such  expressionsasGod  himself  is  pleased  to  use^ 
3;  But  I  beseech  you  hearken  to  nature  itselfv    Doth  it 
not  teach  all  rational  creatures  in  necessity  to  pray  to  God  ? 
A  storm  will  teach  the  profaoest  seaman  to  pray,  and  that 
with  continuance  and  fervency*    The  mariners  could. say  to 
Jonah  in  their  dangerv  ''What  meanest  thou,  O  sleeper? 
arise,  call  upon  thy  God «;  if  so-be^  that  God  will  think  up-f 
on  us,  that  we  perish  not.".    And  they  themselves  '*  cried' 
every  man  unto  his  God^."     When  thou  comest  to  die,  and 
seest  there  is  no  more  delay,  nor  any  more  hope  from  the 
pleasures  of  sin,  or  from  any  of  thy  old  companions  or  old 
deceits,  then  tell  me  whether  nature  teach  thee  not  to  cry» 
and"  cry  mightily  for  pardon,  and  mercy,  and  help  to  God  ? 
Then  we  shall  hear  thee  crying,  *  O  mercy,  mercy.  Lord,  up- 
on a  miserable  sinner,'  though  now  thou  wilt  not  believe 
that  prayer  doth  any  good. 

1  Jon«  i.  5}  6. 


57d  NOW  OR  NEVER* 

I  will  Bay  no  more  to  thee  of  this ;  if  nature  be  not  con- 
quered, and  grace  have  not  forsaken  thee,  thou  wilt  be  taught 
at  home  to  answer  this  objection.  Sure  thou  canst  not  easily 
so  far  conquer  reason,  as  to  believe  that  there  is  no  God, 
And  if  thou  believe  that  there  is  a  God,  thou  canst  not  be- 
lieve that  he  is  not  to  be  worshipped,  and  that  with  the 
greatest  seriousness  and  diligence.  Nor  that  he  is  not  the 
giver  of  all  that  thou  dost  want.  Or  that  the  Governor  of 
the  world  regardeth  not  the  dispositions  and  actions  of 
his  subjects,  but  will  equally  reward  the  good  and  bad,  and 
give  to  all  alike,  and  have  no  respect  to  men's  preparations 
for  his  reward.  What  heathen  that  believeth  that  there  is  a 
God,  doth  not  believe  that  prayer  to  him  is  a  necessary  part 
of  his  worship? 

Object.  *  But  is  not  your  strict  observation  of  the  Lord's 
day.  a  controverted  thing?' 

Answ.  In  this  also  I  will  strip  thee  of  this  excuse.    1. 
Spend  the  Lord's  day  but  according  to  the  common  princi- 
ples of  Christianity  and  reason,  and  it  shall  suffice :  spend 
it  but  as  one  that  loveth  God  better  than  any  thing  in  the 
world,  and  that  taketh  more  pleasure  in  his  service  than  in 
sin  and  vanity :  spend  it  but  as  the  necessities  of  thy  own 
soul,  and  thy  families  require ;  as  one  that  is  glad  of  so  ho- 
nourable, gainful  and  delightful  an  employment,  as  the  pub- 
lic and  private  worshipping  of  God,  and  the  serious  contem- 
plation of  the  life  to  come :  as  one  that  knoweth  the  need 
and  benefit  of  having  stated  times  for  the  service  of  God : 
and  what  would  come  of  all  religion,  if  the  time  were  left  to 
each  one's  will  ?     Spend  it  as  men  that  put  a  just  difference 
between  the  common  business  of  this  world,  and  things  that 
concern  your  endless  state  ;  an4  that  have  considered  the 
proportion  of  one  day  in  seven,  in  reference  to  this  different 
consequence  of  the  work :  spend  it  as  men  that  have  lost  as 
much  time  as  you  have  done,  and  have  need  to  make  the 
best  of  the  little  that  is  left ;  and  that  are  behindhand  so 
far  in  the  matters  of  your  salvation,  and  have  need  to  work 
with  all  your  might,  and  should  be  more  glad  of  the  helps 
of  such  a  day,  than  of  thousands  of  gold  and  silver :  spend 
it  as  those  that  believe  that  we  owe  God  as  much  service  as 
the  Jews  did :  spetvd  \1  ^^  \\v^  ^xvcAftnt  Christians  spent  it. 


NOW  OR  NEVER.  677 

that  were  wont  to  stay  together  almost  from  morning  till 
night  in  public  worahip  and  communion :  spend  it  as  the 
king's  declaration  requireth,  which  saith,  *  Our  purpose  and 
resolution  is,  and  shall  be,  to  take  care  that  the  Lord's  day 
be  applied  to  holy  exercises,  without  unnecessary  divertise- 
ments/ 

2.  And  if  yet  there  ]|;>e  any  doubt  in  this,  I  refer  you  to 
the  judgment  of  the  church  of  England,  expressed  in  the 
Homily  of  the  Time  and  Place  of  Prayer.  And  for  the  time, 
the  name,  the  antiquity,  and  authority,  and  the  work  itself, 
I  desire  you  but  to  receive  what  is  there  delivered,  not  by 
any  factious  persons,  but  by  the  church.  Do  this,  and  we 
are  agreed  and  satisfied.  And  I  make  it  my  request  to  the 
reader,  to  peruse  both  parts  of  that  Homily,  that  he  may 
know  how  far  the  church  of  England  is  from  the  loose  con- 
ceits of  the  enemies  of  godliness :  and  if  also  you  will  read 
over  the  Homilies  against  the  Peril  of  Idolatry,  you  will  the 
more  iiilly  know  the  judgment  of  the  church  about  the  man-  ^ 
ner  of  God's  worship*  (Indeed  the  whole  book  is  such  as 
the  people  should  be  acquainted  with.) 

I  have  done  my  part  to  open  to  you  the  Necessity  of 
SERIOUS  DILIGENCE,  and  to  call  up  the  sluggish  souls 
of  sinners  to  mind  the  work  of  their  salvation,  and  to  dp  it 
SPEEDILY,  and  with  all  their  MIGHT;  I  mxM  now  leave 
die  success  to  God  and  you.  What  use  you'Will-ttake  of  it, 
and  what  you  will  be  and  do  for  the  time  to  ceme>  is  a  mat- 
ter that  more  oonoemeth  yourselves  than  mer  If  long  speak- 
ing, or  multitude  of  words,  were  the  way  to  pfevail  with  you, 
I^  should  willingly  speak  here  while  my  strength  would  en- 
dure, and  lengthen  out  my  exhortations  yet  sevenfold.  But 
tiiatis  not  the  way  :  a  little  wearieth  you :  you  love  long 
feasts,  and  long  visits,  and  plays,  and  sports,  much  better 
than  long  sermons,  or  books,  or  prayers*  But  it  is  no  small 
grief  to  us,  to  leave  you  in  a  case  of  such  importance,  with- 
out some  considerable  hopes  of  your  deliverance. 

Sirs,  the  matter  is  now  laid  before  you,  and  much  in 
your  own  hands :  it  will  not  be  so  long !  What  will  you 
now  do?    Have  I  convinced  you  now,  that  God  and  your 

VOL.  VII.  p  p 


578  NOW  OR  NEVER.' 

salvation  are  to  be  sought  with  all  your  might?  If  I  have 
not,  it  is  not  for  want  of  evidence  in  what  is  said^  but  for 
want  of  willingness  in  yourselves  to  know  the  truth  :  I  have 
proved  to  you  that  it  is  a  matter  out  of  controversy,  unless 
your  lusts,  and  passions,  and  carnal  interest  will  make  a 
controversy  of  it.  I  beseech  you  tell  me  if  you-  be  of  any 
religion  at  all,  why  are  you  not  strict,  and  serious,  and  dili- 
gent, and  mortified,  and  heavenly  in  that  religion  that  you 
are  of?  Sure,  you  will  not  so  far  shame  your  own  religion, 
whatever  it  be,  as  to  say  that  your  religion  is  not  for  morti- 
fication, holiness,  heavenliness,  self-denial,  or  that  your  re- 
ligion alloweth  you  to  be  ambitious,  covetous,  gluttonous, 
drunken ;  to  curse,  and  swear,  and  whore,  and  rail,  ai^d  op- 
press the  innocjBut :  it  is  not  religion,  but  diabolical,  serpen- 
tine malignity  that  is  for  any  of  this. 

It  is  wonderful  to  thinks  that  learned  men,  and  gentle- 
men, and  men  that  pretend  to  reason  and  ingenuity,  can 
quietly  betray  their  souls  to  the  devil  upon  such  silly 
grounds,  and  do  the  evil  that  they  have  no  more,  to  .say  for, 
and  neglect  that  duty  that  they  have  no  more  to  say  against, 
when  they  know  they  must  do  it  NOW  or  NEVER  i  That 
while  they  confess  that  there  is  a  Ood,  and  a  life  to  come,  a 
heaven  and  a  hell,  and  that  this  life  is  purposely  given  us 
for  preparation  for  eternity ;  while  they  confess  that  God  is 
most  wise,  and  holy,  and  good,  and  just,  and  that  sin  is  the 
greatest  evil,  and  that  the  word  of  God  is  true,' they  can  yet 
make  shift  to  quiet  themselves  in  an  unholy,  sensual,  care- 
less life :  and  that  while  they  honour  the  apostles  and  mar- 
tyrs, and  saints  that  are  dead  and  gone,  they  hate  their  suc- 
cessors and  imitators,  and  the  lives  that  they  lived,  and  are 
inclined  to  m9ke  more  martyrs  by  their  malicious  cruelty. 

Alas,  ^11  this  comes  from  the  want  of  a  sound  belief  of 
the  things  which  they  never  saw ;  and  the  distance  of  those 
things,  and  the  power  of  passion,  and  sensual  objects  and 
inclinations  that  hurry  them  away  after  present  vanities, 
conquer  reason,  and  rob  them  of  their  humanity ;  and  by  the 
noise  of  the  company  of  sensual  sinners,  that  harden  and 
deafen  one  another,  and  by  the  just  judgment  of  God  forsa- 
king those  that  would  not  know  him,  and  leaving  them  to 


NOW   OR  NEVfiR.  571) 

the  blindness  and  hardness  of  their  hearts.     But  is  there  no 
remedy  !     O  Thou,  the  Fountain  of  mercy  and  relief,  vouch- 
safe these  sinners  a  remedy !    O  Thou,  the  Saviour  of  lost 
mankind,  have  mercy  upon  those  sinners  in  the  depth  of 
their  security,  presumption  and  misery !  O  Thou,  the  Illumi- 
nator and  Sanctifierofsouls,  apply  the  remedy  so  dearly  pur- 
chased !  We  are  constrained  oft  to  fear  lest  it  be  much  long 
of  us,  that  should  more  seriously  preach  the  awakening  trudis 
of  God  unto  men's  hearts.     And  verily  our  consciences  can- 
not but  accuse  us,  that  when  we  are  most  lively  and  serious, 
alas,  we  seem  but  almost  to  trifle,  considering  on  what  a 
message   we  come,  and  of  what  transcendent  things  we 
speak.     But  satan  hath  got  his  advantage  upon  our  hearts; 
that  should  be  instrumental  to  kindle  theirs,  as  well  as  on 
theirs  that  should  receive  the  truth.    .0  that  we  could  thirst 
more  after  their  salvation !     O  that  we  could  pray  harder  for 
it ;  and  entreat  them  more  earnestly ;  as  those  that  were 
loath  to  take  a  denial  from  God  or  man.  I  must  confess  to 
you  all  with  shame  and  sorrow,  that  I  am  even  amazed  to 
think  of  the  hardness  of  my  own  heart  that  melteth  no  more 
in  compassion  to  the  miserable,  and  is  no  more  earnest  and 
importunate  with  sinners,  when  I  am  upon  such  a  subject  as 
this  ;  and  am  telling  them  that  it  must  be  NOW  or  NEVER ; 
and  when  the  messenger  of  death  within,  and  the  fame  of 
men's  displeasure  from  without,  doth  tell  me  how  likely  it  is 
that  my  time  shall  be  but  short,  and  that  if  I  will  say  any 
thing  that  may  reach  the  hearts  of  Isinners,  for  sought  I  know, 
it  must  be  NOW  or  NEVER.     O  what  an  obstinate,  what 
a  lamentable  disease  is  this  insensibility  and  hardness  of 
heart !     If  I  were  sure  this  were  the  last  sermon  that  ever;  I 
should  preach,  I  find  now  my  heart  would  shew  its  sluggish- 
ness, and  rob  poor  souls  of  the  serious  fervour  which  is  suit- 
able to  the  subject  and  their  case,  and  needful  to  the  desired 
success. 

But  yet,  poor  sleepy  sinners,  hear  us :  though  we  speak 
not  to  you  as  men  would  do,  that  had  seen  heaven  and  hell, 
and  were  themselves  in  a  perfectly  awakened  frame,  yet 
hear  us  while  we  speak  to  you  the  words  of  truth,  with  some 
seriousness  and  compassionate  desire  of  your  salvation.     O 


580  NOW  OR  NEVER. 

look  up  to  your  God !  Look  out  unto  eternity  ;  look  in* 
wardly  upon  your  souls :  look  wisely  upon  your  short  and 
hasty  time  :  and  then  bethink  you  how  the  little  remnant  of 
your  time  should  be  employed ;  and  what  it  is  that  .most 
concemeth  you  to  dispatch  and  secure  before  you  die.  Now 
you  have  sermons^  and  books,  and  warnings.*  It  will  not  be 
so  long.  Preachers  must  have  done.  Qod  threateneth 
them,  and  death  threateneth  them,  and  men  threaten  them, 
and  it  is  you,  it  is  you  that  are  most  severely  threatenedi 
and  that  are  called  on  by  God's  warnings.  'Mf  any  man 
have  an  ear  to  hear,  let  him  hear."  Now  you  have  al>undT 
ance  of  private  helps,  you  have  abundance  of  understand- 
ing, gracious  companions;  you  have  the  Lord's  dayp  tQ 
spend  in  holy  exercises,  for  the  edification  and  solace  of 
your  souls ;  you  have  choice  of  sound  and  serious  books ; 
wd  blessed  be  God,  you  have  the  protection  of  a  Christian 
and  a  Protestant  king  and  magistracy.  O  what  invaluable 
mercies  are  all  these  !  O  know  your  time,  and  use  these 
with  industry;  and  improve  this  harvest  for  your  souls! 
For  it  will  not  be  thus  always.  It  must  be  NOW  or 
NEVER. 

You  have  yet  time  and  leave  to  pray  and  cry  to  God  in 
hope.  Yet  if  you  have  hearts  and  tongues,  he  hath  an 
hearing  ear.  The  Spirit  of  grace  is  ready  to  assist  you.  It 
will  not  be  thus  always.  The  time  is  coming  when  the 
loudest  cries  will  do  no  good.  O  pray,  pray,  pray, 
poor,  needy,  miserable  sinners ;  for  it  must  be  NOW  or 
NEVER. 

You  have  yet  health  and  strength,  and  bodies  fit  to  serve 
your  souls.  It  will  not  be  so  always.  Languishing  and 
pains,  and  death  are  coming.  O  use  your  health  and 
strength  for  God  ;  for  it  must  be  NOW  or  NEVER. 

Yet  there  are  some  stirrings  of  couviction  in  your  con- 
sciences. You  find  that  all  is  not  well  with  you  ;  and  you 
have  some  thoughts  or  purposes  to  repent  and  be  new  crea- 
tures. There  is  some  hope  in  this,  that  yet  God  hath  not 
quite  forsaken  you.  O  trifle  not,  and  stifle  not  the  convic- 
tions of  your  consciences,  but  hearken  to  the  witness  of 
God  within  you.     It  must  be  NOW  or  NEVER. 


Would  you  not  be  loath  to  be  left  to  the  despairing  case 
of  many  poor  distressed  soiils,  that  cry  out^ '  O  it  is  now  too 
late !  I  fear  my  day  of  grace  is  past ;  <3od  will  not  hear  me 
now  if  I  should  call  upon  him ;  he  hath  forsaken  me,  and 
given  me  over  to  myself.  It  is  too  late  to  repeoit,  too  late  to 
pray^  too  late  to  think  of  a  new  life ;  all  is  too  late/  This 
case  is  sad.  But  yet  many  of  these  are  in  a  safer  and 
better  case  than  they  imagine^  and  are  but  frightened  by 
the  tempter,  and  it  is  not  too  late,  while  they  cry  out, '  It  is 
too  late/  But  if  you  are  left  to  cry  in  hell, '  It  is  too  late,' 
alas,  how  long,  and  how  doleful  a  cry  and  lamentation  will 
it  be ! 

O  consider,  poor  sinner,  that  God  knoweth  the  time  and 
season  of  thy  mercies.  He  giveth  the  spring  and  hafvest  in 
their  season,  and  all  his  mercies  in  their  seasons,  and  wilt 
thou  not  know  thy  time  and  season,  for  love  and  duty,  and 
thanks  to  him? 

Consider  that  Ood  who  hath  commanded  thee  thy  work, 
hath  also  appointed  thee  thy  time.  And  this  is  his  appoint- 
ed time.  To-day,  therefore,  hearken  to  his  voice,  and  see 
that  thou  harden  not  thy  heart.  He  that  bids  thee  ''  repent 
and  work  out  thy  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling,''  doth 
also  bid  thee  do  it  now.  Obey  him  in  the  time,  if  thou  wilt 
be  indeed  obedient.  He  best  understandeth  the  fittest  time. 
One  would  think  to  men  that  have  lost  so  much  already, 
and  loitered  so  long,  and  are  so  lamentably  behindhand,  and 
stand  so  near  the  bar  of  God,  and  their  everlasting  state, 
there  should  be  no  need  to  say  any  more,  to  persuade  them 
to  be  up  and  doing.  I  shall  add  but  this :  you  are  never 
like  to  have  a  better  time.  Take  this,  or  the  work  will  grow 
more  difficult,  more  doubtful ;  if  through  the  just  judgment 
of  God,  it  become  not  desperate.  If  all  this  will  not  serve, 
but  still  you  will  loiter  till  time  be  gone,  what  can  your  poor 
friends  do  but  lament  your  misery !  The  Lord  knows,  if  we 
knew  what  words,  what  pains,  what  cost  would  tend  to  your 
awakening,  and  conversion,  and  salvation,  we  should  be  glad 
to  submit  to  it ;  and  we  hope  we  should  not  think  our  la- 
bours, or  liberties,  or  our  lives  too  dear  to  promote  so  bless- 
ed, and  so  necessary  a  work      But  if|  when  all  is  done,  that 


682  NOW  OR  NXYBR. 

we  can  do,  you  will  leave  us  nothing  but  our. tears  and 
moans  for  self-destroyers,  the  sin  is  yours,  and  the  suffering 
shall  be  yours.  If  I  can  do  no  more,  I  shall  leave  this  upon 
record,  that  we  took  our  time  to  tell  you  home,  that  SERI- 
OUS DILIGENCE  is  necessary  to  your  salvation ;  and  that 
''  God  is  the  rewarder  of  them  that  diligently  seek  him  "",'' 
and  that  this  was  your  day,  your  only  day.  It  must  be 
NOW  or  NEVER. 

">  Heb.  li.  ^ 


END  OF  THE  SEVENTH  VOLUME. 


R.  EDWAUDS,  CRANl    COURT,    FLF.1-T  STREET,  LONDON. 


%.<^ 

\.'..-